This is a modern-English version of History of Frederick the Second, Called Frederick the Great., originally written by Abbott, John S. C. (John Stevens Cabot). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

Transcriber’s Note:
Cover created by Transcriber and placed in the Public Domain.

Transcription Note:
Cover made by the Transcriber and shared in the Public Domain.

HISTORY
OF
FREDERICK THE GREAT.

FREDERICK THE GREAT. ÆT. 73.

HISTORY
OF
FREDERICK THE SECOND,
CALLED
FREDERICK THE GREAT.

HISTORY
OF
FREDERICK II,
KNOWN AS
FREDERICK THE GREAT.

By JOHN S. C. ABBOTT,

By John S. C. Abbott,

AUTHOR OF “THE HISTORY OF NAPOLEON BONAPARTE,”
“THE FRENCH REVOLUTION,”
“NAPOLEON AT ST. HELENA,” ETC.

AUTHOR OF “THE HISTORY OF NAPOLEON BONAPARTE,”
“THE FRENCH REVOLUTION,”
“NAPOLEON AT ST. HELENA,” ETC.

WITH ILLUSTRATIONS.

WITH ILLUSTRATIONS.

NEW YORK:
HARPER & BROTHERS, PUBLISHERS,
FRANKLIN SQUARE.
1871.

NEW YORK:
Harper & Brothers, Publishers,
Franklin Square.
1871.


Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1871, by
HARPER & BROTHERS,
In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1871, by
HARPER & BROTHERS,
In the Office of the Librarian of Congress in Washington.


vii

vii

PREFACE.

It is not surprising that many persons, not familiar with the wild and wondrous events of the past, should judge that many of the honest narratives of history must be fictions—mere romances. But it is difficult for the imagination to invent scenes more wonderful than can be found in the annals of by-gone days. The novelist who should create such a character as that of Frederick William, or such a career as that of Frederick the Great, would be deemed guilty of great exaggeration, and yet the facts contained in this volume are beyond all contradiction.

It’s not surprising that many people, unfamiliar with the wild and amazing events of the past, might think that many honest accounts of history are actually fictions—just made-up stories. But it’s hard for the imagination to come up with scenes more incredible than those found in the records of previous times. A novelist who created a character like Frederick William, or a story like that of Frederick the Great, would be considered to be greatly exaggerating, and yet the facts in this book are beyond any doubt.

Mr. Carlyle has written the Life of Frederick the Great in six closely printed volumes of over five hundred pages each. It is a work of much ability and accuracy. There are, however, but few persons, in this busy age, who can find time to read three thousand pages of fine type, descriptive of events, many of which have lost their interest, and have ceased to possess any practical value. Still, the student who has leisure to peruse these voluminous annals of all the prominent actors in Europe during the reign of Frederick and of his half-insane father, will find a rich treat in the wonderfully graphic and accurate pages of Carlyle.

Mr. Carlyle has written the Life of Frederick the Great in six densely packed volumes of over five hundred pages each. It's a work of significant skill and precision. However, there are few people in today's busy world who can carve out time to read three thousand pages of fine print detailing events that many have lost interest in and that no longer hold practical value. Still, those who have the time to delve into these extensive records of all the key figures in Europe during the reign of Frederick and his somewhat insane father will discover a wealth of insight in Carlyle's remarkably vivid and accurate writing.

This volume is intended to give a clear and correct idea of the man—of his public and private character, and of his career. It would be difficult to find, in the whole range of English literature, a theme more full of the elements of entertainment and instruction.

This book aims to provide a straightforward and accurate picture of the man—his public and private character, and his career. It would be hard to find a theme in all of English literature that offers more in terms of both entertainment and learning.

The reader of these pages will be oppressed with the consciousness of how vast a proportion of the miseries of humanity is caused by the cruelty of man to his brother man. This globe might be a very happy home for those who dwell upon it. But its history, during the last six thousand years, has presented one of the most appalling tragedies of which the imagination can conceive. Among all the renowned warriors of the past, but few can be found who have contributed more to fill the world with desolated homes, with the moans of the dying, with the cry of the widow and the orphan, than Frederick the Great; but he laid the foundations of an empire which is at this moment the most potent upon the globe.

The reader of these pages will feel weighed down by the realization of how much suffering in the world comes from the cruelty of people towards one another. This planet could be a truly joyful home for all who live here. However, its history over the last six thousand years has unfolded as one of the most horrifying tragedies imaginable. Among the famous warriors of the past, only a few have caused as much devastation, as many dying, and as many cries from widows and orphans as Frederick the Great; yet he established the foundation for an empire that is currently the most powerful on Earth.


ix

ix

CONTENTS.

  Page
CHAPTER I.
PARENTAGE OF FREDERICK THE GREAT.
Origin of the Prussian Monarchy.—The Duchies of Brandenburg and Prussia.—The Elector crowned King Frederick I.—Frederick William.—His Childhood, Youth, and Marriage.—Birth of Fritz.—Death of Frederick I.—Eccentric Character of Frederick William.—His defective Education.—His Energy.—Curious Anecdotes.—Hatred of the French.—Education of Fritz.—The Father’s Plan of Instruction 17
CHAPTER II.
LIFE IN THE PALACE.
The Palace of Wusterhausen.—Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Education of the Crown Prince.—Rising Dislike of the Father for his Son.—The Mother’s Sympathy.—The double Marriage.—Character of George I.—The King of England visits Berlin.—Wilhelmina’s Account of the Interview.—Sad Fate of the Wife of George I.—The Giant Guard.—Despotism of Frederick William.—The Tobacco Parliament.—A brutal Scene.—Death of George I.—The Royal Family of Prussia.—Augustus, King of Poland.—Corruption of his Court.—Cruel Treatment of Fritz.—Insane Conduct of the King 36
CHAPTER III.
THE SUFFERINGS OF FRITZ AND WILHELMINA.
The King an Artist.—Cruel Exactions of the King.—Conflicts of Etiquette.—Quarrel with George II.—Nuptial Intrigues.—Energetic Action of Frederick William.—Marriage of Frederica Louisa.—Fritz and his Flute.—Wrath of the King.—Beats Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Attempts to strangle Fritz.—The Hunt at Wusterhausen.—Intrigues in reference to the Double Marriage.—Anguish of Wilhelmina.—Cruelty of her Mother.—Resolve of Fritz to escape to England 58
CHAPTER IV.
THE ATTEMPT TO ESCAPE.
Objections to the British Alliance.—Obstinacy of the King.—Wilhelmina’s Journal.—Policy of Frederick William and of George II.—Letter from Fritz.—The Camp of Mühlberg.—The Plan of Escape.—The Flight arrested.—Ungovernable Rage of the King.—Endeavors to kill his Son.—Arrest and Imprisonment of Fritz.—Terror of his Mother and Sister.—Wilhelmina imprisoned 80
CHAPTER V.
IMPRISONMENT OF FRITZ AND WILHELMINA.
Spirited Conduct of Fritz.—Fortress of Cüstrin.—Prison Fare.—Wilhelmina’s Captivity.—Sad Fate of Doris Ritter.—Motives of the King.—Doom of Lieutenant Katte.—Pathetic Supplications.—The Execution.—Peril of Fritz.—Theology of the King.—Letter from Fritz.—Sufferings of Wilhelmina.—Brutality of the King.—Wilhelmina brought to Terms 100
CHAPTER VI.
THE MARRIAGE OF WILHELMINA.
Wilhelmina’s Letter to her Mother.—Cruel Response.—The Court Festival.—First Interview xwith the Prince of Baireuth.—His Character and Appearance.—Interview between the King and Fritz.—The Partial Reconciliation.—Divine Decrees.—The King’s Sense of Justice.—The King’s Discipline of the Judges.—Character of Fritz.—Wilhelmina’s Annoyances.—Her Marriage.—Interview between Wilhelmina and Fritz.—The Departure 118
CHAPTER VII.
THE MARRIAGE OF THE CROWN PRINCE.
Matrimonial Intrigues.—Letters from the King to his Son.—Letter from Fritz to Grumkow.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—The Betrothal.—Character of Elizabeth.—Her cruel Reception by the Prussian Queen.—Letter from Fritz to Wilhelmina.—Disappointment and Anguish of Elizabeth.—Studious Habits of Fritz.—Continued Alienation of his Father.—The Marriage.—Life in the Castle at Reinsberg 136
CHAPTER VIII.
DEVELOPMENTS OF CHARACTER.
The Castle at Reinsberg.—Slender Purses of Fritz and Wilhelmina.—Liberality of Fritz.—The Ball at Monbijou.—Adventures of Fritz and Wilhelmina.—Letters.—The Interview.—Anecdote of the King.—Wilhelmina’s Account of her Brother.—Mental and Physical Maladies of the King.—Frederick’s cruel Neglect of his Wife.—Daily Habits of the young Prince.—The shameful Carousal 152
CHAPTER IX.
THE DEATH OF FREDERICK WILLIAM.
Voltaire and Madame Du Châtelet.—Letter from Frederick to Voltaire.—The Reply.—Visit to the Prince of Orange.—Correspondence.—The Crown Prince becomes a Mason.—Interesting Letter from the Crown Prince.—Petulance and declining Health of the King.—Scenes in the Death-chamber.—Characteristic Anecdotes.—The Dying Scene 172
CHAPTER X.
THE ACCESSION OF FREDERICK THE SECOND.
Establishment of the Berlin Academy of Sciences.—Religious Toleration.—A Free Press.—Sternness of the young King.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Provision for the Queen-mother.—Absolutism of the King.—Journey to Strasbourg.—First Interview with Voltaire 191
CHAPTER XI.
DIPLOMATIC INTRIGUES.
The Herstal Affair.—The Summons.—Voltaire’s Manifesto.—George II. visits Hanover.—The Visit of Wilhelmina to Berlin.—Unpopularity of the King.—Death of the Emperor Charles VI. 206
CHAPTER XII.
THE INVASION OF SILESIA.
Deceptive Measures of Frederick.—Plans for the Invasion of Silesia.—Avowed Reasons for the Invasion.—The Ball in Berlin.—The March of the Army.—Hardships and Successes.—Letter to Voltaire.—Capture of Glogau.—Capture of Brieg.—Bombardment of Neisse 218
CHAPTER XIII.
THE CAMPAIGN OF MOLLWITZ.
Embarrassments of Frederick.—Attempts a Compromise.—New Invasion of Silesia.—Intrigues for the Imperial Crown.—Rivalry between England and France.—Death of Anne of Russia.—Energy of Austria.—Narrow Escape of Frederick.—Frederick’s Antipathy to Christianity.—Capture of Glogau.—Peril of Frederick.—The Siege of Neisse 237
CHAPTER XIV.
THE DEFEAT AND FLIGHT OF FREDERICK.
xiPreparing for the Battle.—The Surprise.—The Snow-encumbered Plain.—Horror of the Scene.—Flight of Frederick.—His Shame and Despair.—Unexpected Victory of the Prussians.—Letters of Frederick.—Adventures of Maupertuis 254
CHAPTER XV.
THE WAR IN SILESIA.
The Encampment at Brieg.—Bombardment.—Diplomatic Intrigues.—Luxury of the Spanish Minister.—Rising Greatness of Frederick.—Frederick’s Interview with Lord Hyndford.—Plans of France.—Desperate Prospects of Maria Theresa.—Anecdote of Frederick.—Joint Action of England and Holland.—Heroic Character of Maria Theresa.—Coronation of the Queen of Hungary 265
CHAPTER XVI.
THE CONQUEST OF SILESIA.
An extraordinary Interview.—Carlyle’s Sympathy.—Trifling Demeanor of Frederick.—Conspiracy in Breslau.—Guile of Frederick.—The successful Stratagem.—Crossing the Neisse.—The Co-operation of France.—Anguish of Maria Theresa.—Inflexible Will of Frederick.—Duplicity of the King.—The Surrender of Neisse 275
CHAPTER XVII.
THE CAMPAIGN OF MORAVIA.
Frederick’s Motives for the War.—Marriage of William Augustus.—Testimony of Lord Macaulay.—Frederick and his Allies.—Visit to Dresden.—Military Energy.—Charles Albert chosen Emperor.—The Coronation.—Effeminacy of the Saxon Princes.—Disappointment and Vexation of Frederick.—He withdraws in Chagrin.—The Cantonment on the Elbe.—Winter Campaigning.—The Concentration at Chrudim 295
CHAPTER XVIII.
FREDERICK TRIUMPHANT.
The Battle of Chotusitz.—Letter to Jordan.—Results of the Battle.—Secret Negotiations.—The Treaty of Breslau.—Entrance into Frankfort.—Treachery of Louis XV.—Results of the Silesian Campaigns.—Panegyrics of Voltaire.—Imperial Character of Maria Theresa.—Her Grief over the Loss of Silesia.—Anecdote of Senora Barbarina.—Duplicity of both Frederick and Voltaire.—Gayety in Berlin.—Straitened Circumstances.—Unamiability of Frederick 309
CHAPTER XIX.
THE INVASION OF BOHEMIA.
Correspondence between Frederick and Voltaire.—Voltaire’s Visit to Frederick.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Unavailing Diplomacy of Voltaire.—The New Alliance.—The Renewal of War.—The Siege of Prague.—The Advance upon Vienna.—Darkening Prospects.—The Pandours.—Divisions in Council.—Sickness of Louis XV.—Energy of Frederick.—Distress of the Army 326
CHAPTER XX.
THE RETREAT.
The Retreat ordered.—Awful Suffering.—Narrow Escape of the King.—The Flight from Prague.—Military Mistakes of the King.—Frederick returns to Berlin.—His wonderful administrative Ability.—Poland joins Austria.—The Austrians enter Silesia.—Unreasonable Demands of Frederick.—Humiliation of the King.—Prince Charles and his Bride.—Character of Leopold.—Death of the Emperor.—Bavaria turns against Frederick.—Anecdotes of Prince Leopold.—Peril of Frederick.—Battle of Hohenfriedberg.—Signal Victory xiiof Frederick 335
CHAPTER XXI.
BATTLES AND VICTORIES.
Battle of Hohenfriedberg.—Religious Antagonism.—Anecdote of the King.—Retreat of the Austrians.—Horrors of War.—“A slight Pleasantry.”—Sufferings of the Prussian Army.—The Victory of Fontenoy.—Frederick’s Pecuniary Embarrassments.—Executive Abilities of Maria Theresa.—Inflexibility of the Austrian Queen.—The Retreat to Silesia.—The Surprise at Sohr.—Military Genius of Frederick.—Great Victory of Sohr 352
CHAPTER XXII.
THE PEACE OF DRESDEN.
Sufferings of the Peasantry.—Renown and Peril of Frederick.—New Plan of Maria Theresa.—Despondency of Frederick.—Surprise and Rout of the Austrians.—The “Old Dessauer” enters Saxony.—Battle of Kesseldorf.—Singular Prayer of the Old Dessauer.—Signal Victory of the Prussians.—Elation of Frederick.—The Peace of Dresden.—Death of M. Duhan 364
CHAPTER XXIII.
FREDERICK THE GREAT AT SANS SOUCI.
Days of Peace and Prosperity.—The Palace of Sans Souci.—Letter from Marshal Keith.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Frederick’s Snuff-boxes.—Anecdotes.—Severe Discipline of the Army.—Testimony of Baron Trenck.—The Review.—Death of the “Divine Emilie.”—The King’s Revenge.—Anecdote of the Poor Schoolmaster.—The Berlin Carousal.—Appearance of his Majesty.—Honors conferred upon Voltaire 375
CHAPTER XXIV.
THE QUARREL.
Voltaire and the Jew.—Letter from Frederick to D’Arget.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—Caustic Letters to Voltaire.—Partial Reconciliation.—Frederick’s brilliant Conversational Powers.—His Neglect of his Wife.—All Females excluded from his Court.—Maupertuis and the Academy.—Voltaire’s Malignity.—Frederick’s Anger.—Correspondence between Voltaire and Maupertuis.—Menaces of War.—Catt and the King 387
CHAPTER XXV.
COMMENCEMENT OF THE SEVEN YEARS’ WAR.
Secret Preparations for a Coalition.—Frederick’s Embarrassments.—The uncertain Support of England.—Causes of the War.—Commencement of Hostilities.—Letter from Frederick to his Sister Amelia.—Letter to his Brother.—The Invasion of Saxony.—Misfortunes of the Royal Family of Poland.—Battle of Lobositz.—Energetic Military Movements.—Prisoners of War compelled to enlist in the Prussian Service.—Dispatches from Frederick.—Battle of Prague.—Battle of Kolin.—Retreat of Frederick.—Death of Sophia Dorothea 402
CHAPTER XXVI.
DEFEATS AND PERILS.
Grief of the King over his Mother’s Death.—Interesting Letters.—Forces in the Field.—The March upon Dresden.—Devotion of Wilhelmina.—Atheism of the King.—Wilhelmina to Voltaire.—Despair of Frederick.—Great Victory of Rossbach.—Description of the Battle.—Utter Rout of the Allies.—Elation of Frederick.—His Poem on the Occasion.—Ravages of War 418
CHAPTER XXVII.
THE LEUTHEN CAMPAIGN.
Results of the Battle of Rossbach.—The Attack upon Breslau.—Extraordinary Address of the King to his Troops.—Confidence of the Prussians in their Commander.—Magnificent Array of the Austrians at Leuthen.—Tactics of Frederick.—The Battle Hymn.—The Battle and xiiithe Victory.—Scenes after the Battle.—Recapture of Breslau by Frederick 434
CHAPTER XXVIII.
DOMESTIC GRIEFS AND MILITARY REVERSES.
Destruction of the Army of Prince Charles.—Dismay in Vienna.—Testimony of Napoleon I.—Of Voltaire.—Wretchedness of the King.—Compromise rejected.—New Preparations for War.—Treaty between England and Prussia.—Plan of the Campaign.—Siege of Olmütz.—Death of Prince Augustus William.—The Baggage Train.—The irreparable Disaster.—Anxiety of Frederick for Wilhelmina.—The March against the Russians.—The Battle of Zorndorf.—Anecdotes of Frederick 445
CHAPTER XXIX.
THE THIRD CAMPAIGN OF THE SEVEN YEARS’ WAR.
Frederick’s Attempt to Rescue his Brother.—Captured Dispatches.—Battle of Hochkirch.—Defeat and Retreat of Frederick.—Death of Wilhelmina.—Letter to Voltaire.—Rejoicings at Vienna.—The Siege of Neisse.—The Siege of Dresden.—Conflagrations and Terror.—The Siege raised by Frederick.—Results of the Third Campaign.—Unavailing Efforts for Peace.—Despair of Frederick 463
CHAPTER XXX.
FOURTH CAMPAIGN OF THE SEVEN YEARS’ WAR.
Desperate Exertions of Frederick.—Aid from England.—Limited Resources.—Opening of the Campaign.—Disgraceful Conduct of Voltaire.—Letter to Voltaire.—An Act of Desperation.—Letter to Count Finckenstein.—Frankfort taken by the Prussians.—Terrible Battle of Kunersdorf.—Anguish of Frederick.—The Disastrous Retreat.—Melancholy Dispatch.—Contemplating Suicide.—Collecting the Wrecks of the Army.—Consternation in Berlin.—Letters to D’Argens.—Wonderful Strategical Skill.—Literary Efforts of the King 475
CHAPTER XXXI.
THE STRUGGLE CONTINUED.
Winter Encampment.—Death of Maupertuis.—Infamous Conduct of Voltaire.—Reproof by the King.—Voltaire’s Insincerity.—Correspondence.—The King publishes his Poems.—Dishonorable Conduct of the King.—New Encampment near Dresden.—Destruction of Frederick’s Army in Silesia.—Atrocities perpetrated by the Austrians.—Astonishing March.—The Austrians outwitted.—Dresden bombarded and almost destroyed by Frederick.—Battle of Liegnitz.—Utter Rout of the Austrians.—Undiminished Peril of Frederick.—Letter to D’Argens 495
CHAPTER XXXII.
THE END OF THE FIFTH CAMPAIGN.
Incessant Marches and Battles.—Letter from Frederick to D’Argens.—Letter to his Brother Henry.—Berlin summoned to Surrender.—Sacking of the City.—Letter to D’Argens.—Desperate Resolves of Frederick.—The Resort of Suicide.—Remarkable Address of Frederick to his Generals.—Bloody Battle of Torgau.—Dismal Night-scene.—Familiarity of the King with the Soldiers.—Winter Quarters at Freiberg.—Singular Letter to the Countess of Camas.—Death of the Princess Amelia.—Anecdotes of the King.—His domestic Habits.—His unscrupulous Measures to obtain Men and Money.—Letter of Charlotte of Mecklenburg 507
CHAPTER XXXIII.
THE END OF THE SEVEN YEARS’ WAR.
Commencement of the Sixth Campaign.—The Fortified Camp at Bunzelwitz.—Skillful Engineering.—Unintermitted Toil of the Soldiers.—Retreat of the Russians.—Loss of Schweidnitz.—Peculiar Treatment of General Zastrow.—Close of the Sixth Campaign.—The King at Breslau.—Desponding Letter to D’Argens.—Death of Elizabeth of Russia.—Accession of Peter III.—His Marriage with the Daughter of a Prussian General.—Takes the Baptismal xivName of Catharine.—Assassination of Peter III.—Curious Proclamation by the Empress.—Commencement of the Seventh Campaign.—Alliance of Russia with Prussia.—Withdrawal from the Alliance.—Termination of the War 522
CHAPTER XXXIV.
THE PARTITION OF POLAND.
The King patronizes literary and scientific Men.—Anecdotes.—The Family Quarrel.—Birth of Frederick William III.—Rapid Recuperation of Prussia.—The King’s Tour of Observation.—Desolate Aspect of the Country.—Absolutism of Frederick.—Interview between Frederick and D’Alembert.—Unpopularity of Frederick.—Death of the King of Poland.—Plans for the Partition of Poland.—Intrigues of Catharine.—Interview between Frederick and the Emperor Joseph.—Poland seized by Russia, Prussia, and Austria.—The Division of the Spoil.—Remorse of Maria Theresa.—Indifference of Frederick to public Opinion 536
CHAPTER XXXV.
LIFE’S CLOSING SCENES.
Character of the Crown Prince.—Stratagem of the Emperor Joseph II.—Death of the Empress Catharine of Russia.—Matrimonial Alliance of Russia and Prussia.—Death of the King of Bavaria.—Attempt to Annex Bavaria to Austria.—Unexpected Energy of Frederick.—Court Intrigues.—Preparations for War.—Address to the Troops.—Declaration of War.—Terror in Vienna.—Irritability of Frederick.—Death of Voltaire.—Unjust Condemnation of the Judges.—Death of Maria Theresa.—Anecdote.—The King’s Fondness for Children.—His Fault-finding Spirit.—The King’s Appearance.—The Last Review.—Statement of Mirabeau.—Anecdote related by Dr. Moore.—Frederick’s Fondness for Dogs.—Increasing Weakness.—Unchanging Obduracy toward the Queen.—The Dying Scene 550

xv

xv

ILLUSTRATIONS.

Frederick the Great. Æt. 73 Frontispiece.
  Page
Frederick the Great 19
Baptism of Frederick 22
Frederick William 23
The little Drummer 29
The Arsenal 31
The Sausage Car 33
Making a Soldier of him 39
Captain of the Giant Guards 43
The Tobacco Parliament 46
Royalty at Dinner 57
Wilhelmina 62
The Dressing-gown 68
A Royal Executioner 71
Frederick and his Sister 79
The Flight arrested 90
Frederick William enraged 94
Destroying the Letters 96
Wilhelmina Imprisoned 99
Frederick in Prison 102
Doris Ritter’s Punishment 104
Frederick at Katte’s Execution 108
Grumkow’s conference with Wilhelmina 116
Disciplining the Judges 126
Berlin Palace 129
The Reconciliation 133
The Betrothal 143
Frederick and Wilhelmina 159
The King and his Servant 162
Fritz in his Library 165
The Banquet 170
The Crown Prince entering the Tobacco Parliament 182
Frederick meeting his Ministers 190
Frederick in the Garden 196
Frederick’s first Interview with Voltaire 204
The Death-scene of the Emperor 215
Map of Silesia 217
The March into Silesia 224
Attack upon Neisse 235
Frederick on the Field of Baumgarten 241
The Assault on Glogau 246
Map illustrating the Mollwitz Campaign 247
The Night before Mollwitz 251
Flight of Frederick 257
Frederick at the Mill 260
Battle of Mollwitz 261
Frederick’s Interview with Valori 272
Frederick and the British Ministers 276
The Queen’s Appeal to the Hungarian Nobles 289
The King approaching Schnellendorf 290
Map of the second Silesian Campaign 294
Frederick the Great. Æt. 30 296
The young Lords of Saxony on a winter Campaign 303
Map illustrating the Campaign in Moravia 306
Frederick concentrating his Army at Chrudim 308
Battle of Chotusitz 310
Maria Theresa at the head of her Army 317
The Pandours 332
The King in the Tower at Collin 337
Prince Leopold inspecting the Army in his “Cart.” 343
Battle of Hohenfriedberg, June 4, 1745 350
The Retreat of the Austrians 354
A slight Pleasantry 357
Frederick and the Old Dessauer 371
Frederick at the Death-bed of M. Duhan 374
Sans Souci 375
The new Palace at Potsdam 376
Frederick and Linsenbarth 382
Tournament at Berlin in honor of Frederick 386
The Invasion of Saxony 405
Battle of Lobositz, October 1, 1756 407
The Battle of Prague, May 6, 1757 412
Battle of Kolin, June 18, 1757 416
After the Defeat 417
Sophia Dorothea 419
Map of the Campaign of Rossbach 430
Battle of Rossbach, November 5, 1757 431
Map of the Leuthen Campaign 438
Battle of Leuthen, December 5, 1757 440
The King in search of Lodgings 444
Siege of Olmütz, May 12-July 2, 1758 450
Charge of General Seidlitz at Zorndorf 457xvi
Battle of Zorndorf, August 25, 1758 459
Campaign of Hochkirch 464
Battle of Hochkirch, October 14, 1758 467
Frederick crossing the Oder 481
Battle of Kunersdorf, August 12, 1759 485
Frederick asleep in the hut at Oetscher 488
Battle of Maxen, November 20, 1759 494
The winter Camp 496
Battle of Liegnitz, August 16, 1760 505
Sacking the Palace 510
Battle of Torgau, November 3, 1760 512
The King’s Bivouac 525
The Empress Catharine 530
Assassination of Peter III. 531
The Officer and the Curate 535
Frederick the Great. Æt. 59 537
Map of the East 546
Condemnation of the Judges 558
Maria Theresa at the Tomb of her Husband 560
The last Review 564
Frederick and his Dogs 567

17

17

Frederick II.

CHAPTER I
PARENTAGE OF FREDERICK THE GREAT.

Origin of the Prussian Monarchy.—The Duchies of Brandenburg and Prussia.—The Elector crowned King Frederick I.—Frederick William.—His Childhood, Youth, and Marriage.—Birth of Fritz.—Death of Frederick I.—Eccentric Character of Frederick William.—His defective Education.—His Energy.—Curious Anecdotes.—Hatred of the French.—Education of Fritz.—The Father’s Plan of Instruction.

The Origins of the Prussian Monarchy.—The Duchies of Brandenburg and Prussia.—Elector Frederick I crowned as King.—Frederick William.—His Childhood, Youth, and Marriage.—The Birth of Fritz.—The Death of Frederick I.—Frederick William’s Eccentric Personality.—His Poor Education.—His Determination.—Interesting Anecdotes.—His Hatred for the French.—Fritz’s Education.—The Father's Educational Plan.

On the southern coasts of the Baltic Sea, between the latitudes of 52° and 54°, there lies a country which was first revealed to civilized eyes about three hundred years before the birth of Christ. The trading adventurers from Marseilles, who landed at various points upon the coast, found it a cold, savage region of lakes, forests, marshy jungles, and sandy wastes. A shaggy tribe peopled it, of semi-barbarians, almost as wild as the bears, wolves, and swine which roamed their forests. As the centuries rolled on, centuries of which, in these remote regions, history takes no note, but in which the gloomy generations came and went, shouting, fighting, weeping, dying, gradually the aspect of a rude civilization spread over those dreary solitudes. The savage inhabitants, somewhat tamed, increased in numbers, and there appeared a tall and manly race of fair complexion, light hair, stern aspect, great physical strength, and very formidable in battle.

On the southern coasts of the Baltic Sea, between the latitudes of 52° and 54°, lies a country that was first seen by civilized people about three hundred years before the birth of Christ. The trading adventurers from Marseilles, who arrived at various points along the coast, found it to be a cold, wild area of lakes, forests, marshy jungles, and sandy wastelands. It was inhabited by a rough tribe of semi-barbarians, nearly as wild as the bears, wolves, and swine that roamed their forests. As the centuries passed—centuries during which, in these remote areas, history records little, but where gloomy generations came and went, shouting, fighting, crying, and dying—the beginnings of a rough civilization began to emerge from those desolate lands. The savage inhabitants, somewhat tamed, multiplied in number, and a tall and strong race with fair skin, light hair, stern faces, great physical strength, and formidable skills in battle appeared.

Still centuries elapsed, leaving little for history to record but war and woe. Fierce tribes swept in all directions. Battle was life’s great business. Man, ignorant, degraded, brutal, could have had but few if any joys. Perhaps, through his degradation, his woes were only such as beasts feel. By degrees, from this chaos, a certain kind of governmental order emerged. Small tribes became united under powerful chieftains. Kings arose. There were all varieties of political organizations, dukedoms, principalities,18 marquisates, and electorates. It is recorded that Adalbert, bishop of Prag, about the year 997, with two companions, as apostles of Christianity, first penetrated these wilds. Like Christian heroes they went, with staff and scrip, regardless of danger. The bishop was fifty years of age, and his gray hairs floated in the breeze. As he landed a stout savage struck him with the flat of his oar, and sent him headlong to the ground.

Centuries went by, leaving little for history to show but war and suffering. Fierce tribes moved in all directions. Battle was life's main focus. Man, ignorant, degraded, and brutal, probably had few, if any, joys. Perhaps, through his degradation, his sufferings were similar to those of animals. Gradually, from this chaos, a form of governmental order began to take shape. Small tribes united under powerful leaders. Kings emerged. There were various types of political structures, including duchies, principalities,18 marquisates, and electorates. It’s noted that Adalbert, the bishop of Prague, around the year 997, along with two companions, entered these wild areas as apostles of Christianity. They went like Christian heroes, with staffs and bags, unafraid of danger. The bishop was fifty years old, and his gray hair blew in the wind. As he landed, a strong savage hit him with the flat of his oar, knocking him to the ground.

The zealous bishop, perhaps not unwilling to secure the crown of martyrdom, pressed on, preaching the Gospel, in face of prohibitions and menaces, until he entered one of the sacred inclosures which was a sanctuary of the idols of these heathen. The priests rushed upon him, endeavored to drive him out, and struck him with a dagger in the back of his neck. He uttered but one cry, “Jesus, receive me!” and, stretching out his arms, fell with his face to the ground, and lay dead there “in the form of a crucifix.” The place is yet pointed out where Adalbert fell. Still the seeds of Christianity were sown. Other missionaries followed. Idolatry disappeared, and the realm became nominally Christian. Revealed religion introduced increased enlightenment and culture, though there still remained much of the savagery of ancient days.

The passionate bishop, possibly eager to achieve the glory of martyrdom, continued to preach the Gospel despite facing prohibitions and threats until he entered one of the sacred spaces that served as a sanctuary for the idols of these pagans. The priests rushed at him, tried to force him out, and stabbed him with a dagger in the back of his neck. He let out a single cry, “Jesus, receive me!” and, stretching out his arms, fell face down and died there “in the form of a crucifix.” The spot where Adalbert fell is still pointed out. Nonetheless, the seeds of Christianity were planted. Other missionaries came after him. Idolatry faded away, and the area became nominally Christian. Revealed religion brought greater enlightenment and culture, even though much of the brutality of ancient times still lingered.

When the Reformation in the sixteenth century was presented to Europe, and was rejected by Italy, France, Austria, and Spain, it was accepted, though not unanimously, yet very generally, by the inhabitants of this wild region. In the year 1700 there was, in the midst of the realm of which we are about to write, and which is now called Prussia, a province then known as the Marquisate of Brandenburg. It embraced a little over fifteen thousand square miles, being about twice as large as the State of Massachusetts. It was one of the electorates of Germany, and the elector or marquis, Frederick, belonged to the renowned family of Hohenzollern. To the east of Brandenburg there was a duchy called Prussia. This duchy, in some of the political agitations of the times, had been transferred to the Marquis of Brandenburg. The Elector of Brandenburg, Frederick, an ambitious man, rejoicing in the extent of his domain, which was large for a marquisate, though small for a monarchy, obtained from the Emperor of Germany its recognition as a kingdom, and assumed the title of Frederick I. of Prussia. Many of19 the proud monarchies of Europe did not conceal the contempt with which they regarded this petty kingdom. They received the elector into their society very much as haughty nobles, proud of a long line of illustrious ancestry, would receive a successful merchant who had purchased a title. Frederick himself was greatly elated with the honor he had attained, and his subjects shared with him in his exultation.

When the Reformation spread across Europe in the sixteenth century, it was rejected by Italy, France, Austria, and Spain, but was accepted—though not unanimously—by the people of this rugged region. In 1700, in the area we are going to discuss, now known as Prussia, there was a province called the Marquisate of Brandenburg. It covered just over fifteen thousand square miles, roughly twice the size of Massachusetts. It was one of the electorates in Germany, and the elector or marquis, Frederick, was part of the famous Hohenzollern family. East of Brandenburg lay a duchy called Prussia, which had been transferred to the Marquis of Brandenburg during some political upheaval of the time. Frederick, the Elector of Brandenburg, was an ambitious man who took pride in the size of his land, which was considerable for a marquisate but small for a kingdom. He received the Emperor of Germany's recognition for it as a kingdom and took the title Frederick I of Prussia. Many of the proud monarchies of Europe openly looked down on this small kingdom, welcoming the elector into their circles much like arrogant nobles would greet a wealthy merchant who had bought a title. Frederick was very pleased with the honor he had achieved, and his subjects shared in his joy.

FREDERICK THE GREAT.

Berlin was the capital of Brandenburg. Königsberg, an important sea-port on the Baltic, nearly five hundred miles east of Berlin, was the capital of the Prussian duchy. The ceremony20 of coronation took place at Königsberg. The road, for most of the distance, was through a very wild, uncultivated country. Eighteen hundred carriages, with thirty thousand post-horses, were provided to convey the court to the scene of coronation. Such a cavalcade was never beheld in those parts before. The carriages moved like an army, in three divisions of six hundred each. Volumes have been written descriptive of the pageant. It is said that the diamond buttons on the king’s coat cost seven thousand five hundred dollars each. The streets were not only tapestried with the richest cloth of the most gorgeous colors, but many of them were softly carpeted for the feet of the high-born men and proud dames who contributed, by their picturesque costume, to the brilliance of the spectacle. Frederick, with his own hands, placed the crown upon his brow. Thus was the kingdom of Prussia, ushered into being at the close of the year 1700.

Berlin was the capital of Brandenburg. Königsberg, a major seaport on the Baltic, nearly five hundred miles east of Berlin, was the capital of the Prussian duchy. The coronation ceremony took place in Königsberg. For most of the journey, the route passed through very wild, uncultivated land. Eighteen hundred carriages, with thirty thousand post-horses, were arranged to transport the court to the coronation site. Such a procession had never been seen in that region before. The carriages moved like an army, divided into three groups of six hundred each. Numerous volumes have been written describing the spectacle. It’s said that the diamond buttons on the king’s coat cost seven thousand five hundred dollars each. The streets were not only decorated with the finest fabrics in vibrant colors, but many of them were also gently carpeted for the feet of the noblemen and esteemed ladies who added to the visual splendor with their elaborate costumes. Frederick personally placed the crown on his head. Thus, the kingdom of Prussia was established at the end of the year 1700.

Frederick I. had a son, Frederick William, then twelve years of age. He accompanied his father upon this coronation tour. As heir to the throne he was called the Crown Prince. His mother was a Hanoverian princess, a sister of the Elector George of Hanover, who subsequently became George I. of England. George I. did not succeed to the British crown until the death of Anne, in 1714. When Frederick William was but five years of age he had been taken by his mother to Hanover, to visit her brother, then the elector. George had two children—a little girl, named Sophie Dorothee, a few months older than Frederick William, and a son, who subsequently became George II. of England. The two boys did not love each other. They often quarreled. Though Frederick William was the younger, it is said that on one occasion he severely beat his cousin, the future King of England, causing the blood to flow freely. He developed a very energetic but unamiable character. Among other anecdotes illustrative of his determined spirit, it is recorded that at one time, during this visit, his governess ordered some task which he was unwilling to perform. The headstrong boy sprang out of the third story window of the castle, and, clinging to the sill with his hands, threatened to let himself drop. The terrified Madame Montbail was thus brought to terms.1

Frederick I had a son, Frederick William, who was twelve years old at the time. He joined his father on this coronation tour. As the heir to the throne, he was known as the Crown Prince. His mother was a Hanoverian princess, the sister of Elector George of Hanover, who later became George I of England. George I didn't take the British crown until Anne's death in 1714. When Frederick William was just five, his mother took him to Hanover to visit her brother, the elector. George had two children—a little girl named Sophie Dorothee, who was a few months older than Frederick William, and a son who would later become George II of England. The two boys didn't get along. They often fought. Even though Frederick William was the younger one, it's said that on one occasion he seriously beat his cousin, the future King of England, causing a lot of blood to flow. He developed a very energetic but unpleasant character. One story that shows his determined spirit describes an incident during this visit when his governess assigned him a task he didn't want to do. The stubborn boy jumped out of the third-story window of the castle and clung to the sill with his hands, threatening to drop down. This terrified Madame Montbail, and she ultimately gave in.

21 Sophie Dorothee was a very pretty child. The plan was probably already contemplated by the parents that the two should be married in due time. Soon after this Frederick William lost his mother, and with her all of a mother’s care and gentle influences. Her place was taken by a step-mother, whose peevishness and irritability soon developed into maniacal insanity. When Frederick William was eighteen years of age he was allowed to choose between three princesses for his wife. He took his pretty cousin, Sophie Dorothee. They were married with great pomp on the 28th of November, 1706.

21 Sophie Dorothee was a very beautiful child. It was probably already in the works for the parents that the two would end up married someday. Soon after this, Frederick William lost his mother, along with all the care and gentle influences that a mother provides. Her spot was filled by a stepmother, whose crankiness and irritability quickly turned into insanity. When Frederick William turned eighteen, he was given the option to choose from three princesses as his wife. He chose his lovely cousin, Sophie Dorothee. They got married with great fanfare on November 28, 1706.

A son was born and died. A daughter came, Wilhelmina. But a daughter could not inherit the crown. Another son was born and died. There was great anxiety at court, from fear that the direct line of succession might not be preserved. But on the 24th of January, 1712, when the monarchy was but twelve years old, the little prince was born who subsequently obtained such renown as Frederick the Great. The king, his grandfather, was aged and infirm. The excessive joy with which he greeted little Fritz, as he fondly called the child, was cordially reciprocated throughout the Prussian nation. The realm blazed with bonfires and illuminations, and resounded with every demonstration of public joy. The young prince was christened with great pomp, Charles Frederick. The emperor, Charles VI., was present on the occasion, and in the solemnities there were blended the most imposing civil, military, and ecclesiastical rites. The baptism took place on the 31st of January, 1712, when the babe was a week old. The young prince subsequently dropped the name of Charles, and Frederick became his sole designation. Wilhelmina, Frederick’s sister, was about three years older than himself. We shall have frequent occasion to allude to her in the course of this history, as between her and her brother there sprang up a warm attachment, which was of life-long continuance. Ten children were subsequently born to the royal pair, making fourteen in all, most of whom attained mature years.

A son was born and died. A daughter came, Wilhelmina. But a daughter couldn't inherit the crown. Another son was born and died. There was a lot of anxiety at court, fearing that the direct line of succession might not be preserved. But on January 24, 1712, when the monarchy was only twelve years old, a little prince was born who later became known as Frederick the Great. The king, his grandfather, was old and sick. The overwhelming joy with which he welcomed little Fritz, as he affectionately called the child, was warmly shared by the entire Prussian nation. The realm lit up with bonfires and celebrations, filled with every expression of public happiness. The young prince was baptized with great ceremony, named Charles Frederick. Emperor Charles VI was present at the event, and the ceremonies included the most impressive civil, military, and religious rites. The baptism took place on January 31, 1712, when the baby was a week old. The young prince later dropped the name Charles, and Frederick became his only name. Wilhelmina, Frederick’s sister, was about three years older than him. We will often reference her throughout this story, as a strong bond formed between her and her brother that lasted their entire lives. Ten more children were born to the royal couple, making a total of fourteen, most of whom reached adulthood.

Frederick William, the Crown Prince, was at the time of the birth of his son Frederick twenty-four years of age. He was a22 very peculiar man, sturdy and thick-set in figure, of strong mental powers, but quite uneducated. He was unpolished in manners, rude in his address, honest and sincere, a stern, persevering worker, despising all luxurious indulgence, and excessively devoted to the routine of military duties.

Frederick William, the Crown Prince, was twenty-four years old when his son Frederick was born. He was a22 very unique individual, solidly built, with strong mental capabilities but lacking formal education. He had rough manners and was blunt in his speech, honest and genuine, a tough, determined worker who looked down on all forms of luxury and was extremely dedicated to his military responsibilities.

BAPTISM OF FREDERICK.

The king, Frederick I., had for some time been in a feeble state of health. The burden of life had proved heavier than he was able to bear. His wife was crazed, his home desolate, his health broken, and many mortifications and disappointments had so crushed his spirits that he had fallen into the deepest state of melancholy. As he was sitting alone and sad in a chill morning of February, 1713, gazing into the fire, absorbed in painful musings, suddenly there was a crash of the glass door of the apartment. His frenzied wife, half-clad, with disheveled hair,23 having escaped from her keepers, came bursting through the shattered panes. Her arms were gashed with glass, and she was in the highest state of maniacal excitement. The shock proved a death-blow to the infirm old king. He was carried to his bed, which he never left, dying in a few days. His grandson Frederick was then fourteen months old.

The king, Frederick I, had been in poor health for a while. The pressures of life were too much for him to handle. His wife was insane, his home was empty, his health was failing, and countless disappointments had drained his spirits, plunging him into deep sadness. On a cold February morning in 1713, he sat alone, feeling lost and staring into the fire, lost in painful thoughts, when suddenly the glass door of his room shattered. His frenzied wife, barely dressed and with tangled hair, burst through the broken glass after escaping from her caretakers. Her arms were cut from the glass, and she was in a frenzied state. The shock was too much for the frail old king. He was taken to his bed, where he never got up again, passing away a few days later. His grandson Frederick was just fourteen months old at that time.

FREDERICK WILLIAM.

Frederick William was too stern a man to shed many tears over his father’s death. The old king was ostentatious in his tastes, fond of parade and splendor. The son had almost an insane contempt for all court etiquette and all the elegancies of24 life. As he stood by his father’s dying bed, his unamiable, rugged nature developed itself in the disgust, almost rage, with which he regarded the courtly pageantry with which the expiring monarch was surrounded. The remains of the king were allowed to be conveyed to the tomb with that pomp which had been dear to him while living.

Frederick William was too serious a man to cry much over his father's death. The old king had extravagant tastes and loved show and grandeur. The son had a near-manic disdain for all court customs and the finer aspects of life. As he stood by his father's deathbed, his unkind, tough nature showed itself in the disgust, almost anger, he felt towards the royal display surrounding the dying monarch. The king's remains were allowed to be taken to the tomb with the same pomp that he had cherished in life.

But, immediately after these ceremonies were over, the new monarch, who assumed the crown with the title of Frederick William, not with that of Frederick II., to the utter consternation of the court, dismissed nearly every honorary official of the palace, from the highest dignitary to the humblest page. His flashing eye and determined manner were so appalling that no one ventured to remonstrate. A clean sweep was made, so that the household was reduced to the lowest footing of economy consistent with the supply of indispensable wants. Eight servants were retained at six shillings a week. His father had thirty pages; all were dismissed but three. There were one thousand saddle-horses in the royal stables; Frederick William kept thirty. Three fourths of the names were struck from the pension-list. Thus rigidly the king went on through every department of administrative and household expenses, until they were reduced to below a fifth of what they had been under his father.

But as soon as these ceremonies ended, the new king, who took the crown with the title of Frederick William, not Frederick II, shocked everyone at court by letting go of almost all the honorary officials of the palace, from the highest rank to the lowest page. His intense gaze and firm demeanor were so intimidating that no one dared to protest. A complete overhaul was carried out, so the household budget was slashed to the bare minimum needed to meet essential needs. Eight servants were kept on at six shillings a week. His father had thirty pages, but he only kept three. There were a thousand saddle horses in the royal stables; Frederick William only retained thirty. Three-quarters of the names were removed from the pension list. The king strictly applied this approach to every area of administrative and household expenses, eventually cutting them down to less than a fifth of what they were during his father's reign.

For twenty-seven years this strange man reigned. He was like no other monarch. Great wisdom and shrewdness were blended with unutterable folly and almost maniacal madness. Though a man of strong powers of mind, he was very illiterate. He certainly had some clear views of political economy. Carlyle says of him, “His semi-articulate papers and rescripts on these subjects are still almost worth reading by a lover of genuine human talent in the dumb form. For spelling, grammar, penmanship, and composition they resemble nothing else extant—are as if done by the paw of a bear; indeed, the utterance generally sounds more like the growling of a bear than any thing that could be handily spelled or parsed. But there is a decisive human sense in the heart of it; and there is such a dire hatred of empty bladders, unrealities, and hypocritical forms and pretenses, which he calls wind and humbug, as is very strange indeed.”

For twenty-seven years, this unusual man ruled. He was unlike any other king. Great wisdom and insight were mixed with incomprehensible foolishness and almost crazy madness. Despite having a strong intellect, he was very uneducated. He certainly had some clear opinions on political economy. Carlyle comments on him, “His semi-articulate papers and notes on these topics are still almost worth reading for anyone who appreciates genuine human talent in its raw form. For spelling, grammar, handwriting, and composition, they are unlike anything else out there—it's as if a bear wrote them; in fact, the way he expresses himself often sounds more like a bear growling than anything that could be neatly spelled or structured. But there is a definite human sense in the core of it; and there is such a profound hatred of empty talk, pretentiousness, and hypocrisy, which he refers to as wind and humbug, that is truly remarkable.”

His energy inspired the whole kingdom, and paved the way25 for the achievements of his son. The father created the machine with which the son attained such wonderful results. He commuted the old feudal service into a fixed money payment. He goaded the whole realm into industry, compelling even the apple-women to knit at the stalls. The crown lands were carefully farmed out. He drained bogs, planted colonies, established manufactures, and in every way encouraged the use of Prussian products. He carried with him invariably a stout rattan cane. Upon the slightest provocation, like a madman, he would thrash those who displeased him. He was thoroughly an arbitrary king, ruling at his sovereign will, and disposing of the liberty, the property, and the lives of his subjects at his pleasure. Every year he was accumulating large masses of coin, which he deposited in barrels in the cellar of his palace. He had no powers of graceful speech, but spent his energetic, joyless life in grumbling and growling.

His energy inspired the entire kingdom and set the stage25 for his son's achievements. The father built the machine that enabled the son to achieve such amazing results. He replaced the old feudal service with a fixed money payment. He pushed the entire realm towards industry, even getting the apple vendors to knit at their stalls. The crown lands were carefully leased out. He drained swamps, established colonies, started up industries, and encouraged the use of Prussian products in every way possible. He always carried a sturdy rattan cane. At the slightest provocation, like a madman, he would hit anyone who displeased him. He was truly an arbitrary king, ruling completely at his own discretion, and controlling the freedom, property, and lives of his subjects as he wished. Every year, he was amassing large amounts of coin, which he stored in barrels in the cellar of his palace. He had no skill in speaking gracefully, but spent his energetic, joyless life grumbling and complaining.

The Prussian minister, Baron Pöllnitz, in a letter from Berlin dated June 6, 1729, writes: “The king’s prime minister is the king himself, who is informed of every thing, and is desirous to know every thing. He gives great application to business, but does it with extraordinary ease; and nothing escapes his penetration nor his memory, which is a very happy one. No sovereign in the world is of more easy access, his subjects being actually permitted to write to him without any other formality than superscribing the letter To the King. By writing underneath, To be delivered into his Majesty’s own hands, one may be sure that the king receives and reads it, and that the next post he will answer it, either with his own hands or by his secretary. These answers are short, but peremptory. There is no town in all the King of Prussia’s dominions, except Neufchatel, where he has not been; no province which he does not know full well; nor a court of justice but he is acquainted with its chief members.”

The Prussian minister, Baron Pöllnitz, in a letter from Berlin dated June 6, 1729, writes: “The king’s prime minister is the king himself, who is aware of everything and wants to know everything. He puts a lot of effort into his work, but does it with remarkable ease; nothing escapes his insight or memory, which is exceptionally sharp. No ruler in the world is more accessible; his subjects are actually allowed to write to him without any other formalities than addressing the letter To the King. By adding To be delivered into his Majesty’s own hands underneath, you can be sure that the king receives and reads it, and that he will respond by the next post, either by his own hand or through his secretary. These replies are brief but definitive. There is no town in all of the King of Prussia’s territories, except Neufchatel, where he has not been; no province that he doesn’t know well; and no court of justice where he isn’t familiar with the key members.”

Fully conscious that the respect which would be paid to him as a European sovereign greatly depended upon the number of men he could bring into the field of battle, Frederick William devoted untiring energies to the creation of an army. By the most severe economy, watching with an eagle eye every expenditure, and bringing his cudgel down mercilessly upon the shoulders26 of every loiterer, he succeeded in raising and maintaining an army of one hundred thousand men; seventy-two thousand being field troops, and thirty thousand in garrison.2 He drilled these troops as troops were never drilled before.

Fully aware that the respect he would receive as a European ruler depended heavily on the size of the army he could assemble, Frederick William dedicated relentless effort to building a military force. Through strict budgeting, closely monitoring every expense, and using his power without hesitation against anyone who slacked off, he managed to raise and keep an army of one hundred thousand soldiers; seventy-two thousand as field troops and thirty thousand in garrison. He trained these troops like no army had been trained before.26

Regardless himself of comfort, insensible to fatigue, dead to affection, he created perhaps the most potent military machine earth has ever known. Prussia was an armed camp. The king prized his soldiers as a miser prizes his gold coin, and was as unwilling to expose them to any danger as the miser is to hazard his treasures. War would thin his regiments, soil his uniforms, destroy his materiel. He hated war. But his army caused Prussia to be respected. If needful, he could throw one hundred thousand of the best drilled and best furnished troops in Europe, like a thunderbolt, upon any point. Unprincipled monarchs would think twice before they would encroach upon a man thus armed.

Regardless of his own comfort, numb to exhaustion, and detached from affection, he created perhaps the most powerful military force the world has ever seen. Prussia was like a military camp. The king valued his soldiers as a miser values his gold, and he was just as reluctant to put them in danger as the miser is to risk his treasures. War would reduce his regiments, dirty his uniforms, and destroy his materiel. He despised war. But his army earned Prussia respect. If necessary, he could unleash one hundred thousand of the best-trained and best-equipped troops in Europe, like a lightning bolt, on any target. Unprincipled monarchs would think twice before trying to challenge a man like that.

There was but one short war in which Frederick William engaged during his reign of twenty-seven years. That was with Charles XII. of Sweden. It lasted but a few months, and from it the Prussian king returned victorious. The demands of Frederick William were not unreasonable. As he commenced the brief campaign, which began and ended with the siege of Stralsund, he said: “Why will the very king whom I most respect compel me to be his enemy?” In his characteristic farewell order to his ministers, he wrote: “My wife shall be told of all things, and counsel asked of her. And as I am a man, and may be shot dead, I command you and all to take care of Fritz, as God shall reward you. And I give you all, wife to begin with, my curse that God may punish you in time and eternity if you do not, after my death, bury me in the vault of the palace church at Berlin. And you shall make no grand to-do on the occasion. On your body and life no festivals and ceremonials, except that the regiments, one after the other, fire a volley over me. I am assured that you will manage every thing with all the exactness in the world, for which I shall ever, zealously, as long as I live, be your friend.”

Frederick William only fought one short war during his twenty-seven-year reign, and that was against Charles XII of Sweden. It lasted just a few months, and the Prussian king returned victorious. Frederick William's demands weren’t unreasonable. As he started the quick campaign, which began and ended with the siege of Stralsund, he asked, “Why must the very king I respect the most force me to be his enemy?” In his typical farewell message to his ministers, he wrote: “My wife will be informed of everything, and I expect her advice. And since I’m a man who could be shot dead, I expect all of you to take care of Fritz, as God will reward you. And I give all of you, starting with my wife, my curse that God will punish you in this life and the next if you do not, after my death, bury me in the vault of the palace church in Berlin. And there should be no grand ceremonies for this occasion. No celebrations or events for your body and life, except for the regiments to fire a volley over me, one after the other. I trust that you will handle everything with the utmost precision, for which I will always, as long as I live, be your devoted friend.”

The king was scrupulously clean, washing five times a day. He would allow no drapery, no stuffed furniture, no carpets in27 his apartments. They caught dust. He sat upon a plain wooden chair. He ate roughly, like a farmer, of roast beef, despising all delicacies. His almost invariable dress was a close military blue coat, with red cuffs and collar, buff waistcoat and breeches, and white linen gaiters to the knee. A sword was belted around his loins, and, as we have said, a stout rattan or bamboo cane ever in his hand. A well-worn, battered, triangular hat covered his head. He walked rapidly through the streets which surrounded his palaces at Potsdam and Berlin. If he met any one who attracted his attention, male or female, he would abruptly, menacingly inquire, “Who are you?” A street-lounger he has been known to hit over the head with his cane, exclaiming, “Home, you rascal, and go to work.” If any one prevaricated or hesitated, he would sternly demand, “Look me in the face.” If there were still hesitancy, or the king were dissatisfied with the answers, the one interrogated was lucky if he escaped without a caning.3

The king was extremely clean, washing five times a day. He allowed no drapes, no upholstered furniture, and no carpets in his apartments. They collected dust. He sat on a simple wooden chair. He ate coarsely, like a farmer, favoring roast beef and looking down on all fancy foods. His usual outfit consisted of a tight military blue coat with red cuffs and a collar, a buff waistcoat and breeches, and white linen gaiters that reached his knees. A sword was fastened around his waist, and, as we’ve mentioned, he always carried a sturdy rattan or bamboo cane. A well-worn, battered, triangular hat topped his head. He walked quickly through the streets surrounding his palaces in Potsdam and Berlin. If he noticed anyone interesting, whether male or female, he would abruptly and threateningly ask, “Who are you?” He was known to hit a street loiterer on the head with his cane, declaring, “Home, you rascal, and get to work.” If someone dodged the question or hesitated, he would sternly command, “Look me in the face.” If there was still hesitation, or if the king was unhappy with the answers, the person being questioned was fortunate to escape without a caning.

The boorish king hated the refinement and polish of the French. If he met a lady in rich attire, she was pretty sure to be rudely assailed; and a young man fashionably dressed could hardly escape the cudgel if he came within reach of the king’s arm. The king, stalking through the streets, was as marked an object as an elephant would have been. Every one instantly recognized him, and many fled at his approach. One day he met a pale, threadbare young man, who was quietly passing him, when the king stopped, in his jerking gait, and demanded, in his coarse, rapid utterance, “Who are you?” “I am a theological student,” the young man quietly replied. “Where from?” added the king. “From Berlin,” was the response. “From Berlin?” the king rejoined; “the Berliners are all a good-for-nothing set.” “Yes, your majesty, that is true of many of them,” the young man added; “but I know of two exceptions.” “Of two?” responded the king; “which are they?” “Your majesty and myself,” the young man replied. The king burst into a good-humored laugh, and,28 after having the young man carefully examined, assigned him to a chaplaincy.

The rude king despised the sophistication and elegance of the French. If he encountered a lady in fancy clothing, she was likely to be treated harshly; and a young man dressed well could barely dodge a beating if he came within the king’s reach. The king, striding down the streets, stood out like an elephant would. Everyone instantly recognized him, and many would run away at his approach. One day, he came across a pale, tattered young man who was quietly passing by when the king abruptly stopped and, in his rough, fast speech, demanded, “Who are you?” “I’m a theological student,” the young man calmly replied. “Where are you from?” the king asked. “From Berlin,” was the answer. “From Berlin?” the king said; “the people from Berlin are all good-for-nothing.” “Yes, your majesty, that’s true for many of them,” the young man added; “but I know of two exceptions.” “Two?” replied the king; “who are they?” “Your majesty and myself,” the young man responded. The king burst into a good-natured laugh and, after having the young man thoroughly checked out, appointed him to a chaplaincy.

The French minister at the court of Berlin, Count Rothenburg, was a Prussian by birth. He was a man of much diplomatic ability, and a very accomplished gentleman. Having spent much of his life in Paris, he had acquired the polished manners of the French court, and wore the costume appropriate to the Tuileries and Versailles. He and his associates in the embassy attracted much attention as they appeared in their cocked hats, flowing wigs, laced coats, and other gorgeous trimmings. The king, in his homespun garb, was apprehensive that the example so obnoxious to him might spread.

The French minister at the Berlin court, Count Rothenburg, was originally from Prussia. He was a skilled diplomat and a refined gentleman. After spending a lot of time in Paris, he picked up the sophisticated manners of the French court and dressed in the style suited for the Tuileries and Versailles. He and his colleagues at the embassy drew a lot of attention with their tricorn hats, long wigs, ornate coats, and other lavish details. The king, dressed in his simple clothes, was concerned that this style, which he found so distasteful, might catch on.

There was to be a grand review on the parade-ground just out from Berlin, at which the French embassy was to be present. The king caused a party equal in number, composed of the lowest of the people, to be dressed in an enormous exaggeration of the French costume. Their cocked hats were nearly a yard in diameter. Immense wigs reached to their heels; and all other parts of the French court costume were caricatured in the most grotesque manner possible. As soon as the French embassy appeared, there was a great sound of trumpets and martial bands from another part of the field, and these harlequins were brought forward to the gaze of every eye, and conspicuously to the view of Count Rothenburg and his companions. Military discipline prevented any outburst of derisive laughter. Perfect silence reigned. The king sat upon his horse as stolid and grim as fate. Count Rothenburg yielded to this gross discourtesy of the king, and ever after, while he remained in Berlin, wore a plain German costume.

There was going to be a big parade outside of Berlin, and the French embassy was invited. The king had a group of common people dress up in an exaggerated version of French clothing. Their hats were almost a yard wide. Huge wigs reached down to their heels, and every aspect of the French court attire was exaggerated in the most ridiculous way possible. When the French embassy arrived, a loud sound of trumpets and military bands filled the air from another part of the field, and these clowns were presented for everyone to see, especially for Count Rothenburg and his companions. Military discipline kept anyone from laughing out loud. Silence filled the space. The king sat on his horse, looking as serious and unyielding as fate. Count Rothenburg tolerated this blatant disrespect from the king, and from then on, while he was in Berlin, he wore a simple German outfit.

Frederick William was very anxious that little Fritz should be trained to warlike tastes and habits; that, like himself, he should scorn all effeminacy; that, wearing homespun clothes, eating frugal food, despising all pursuits of pleasure and all literary tastes, he should be every inch a soldier. But, to the bitter disappointment of the father, the child manifested no taste for soldiering. He was gentle, affectionate, fond of books and music,4 and with an almost feminine love clung to his sister. The29 stern old king was not only disappointed, but angered. These were qualities which he deemed unmanly, and which he thoroughly despised.

Frederick William was very eager for little Fritz to develop a warrior's mindset and habits; he wanted him to reject any softness, wear simple clothes, eat basic food, avoid all forms of pleasure, and have no interest in books, so he could truly be a soldier. However, to the father's deep disappointment, the child showed no interest in being a soldier. He was gentle, loving, enjoyed reading and music, and had a deep, almost tender bond with his sister. The29 stern old king was not only let down but also frustrated. He viewed these traits as unmanly and completely looked down on them.

THE LITTLE DRUMMER.

One day the father, returning home, found, to his inexpressible delight, little Fritz strutting about beating a drum, with Wilhelmina marching by his side. The king could scarcely restrain his joy. At last the military element was being developed in his child. He hastened with the tidings to his wife, whom he called30 by the pet name of “Phiekin”—a word apparently coined from Sophie. The matter was talked about all over the palace. A painter was sent for to transfer the scene to canvas. This picture, greatly admired, still hangs upon the walls of the Charlottenburg palace. Of this picture Carlyle writes: “Fritz is still, if not in ‘long-clothes,’ at least in longish and flowing clothes of the petticoat sort, which look as of dark blue velvet, very simple, pretty, and appropriate; in a cap of the same; has a short raven’s feather in the cap, and looks up with a face and eyes full of beautiful vivacity and child’s enthusiasm, one of the beautifulest little figures, while the little drum responds to his bits of drumsticks. Sister Wilhelmina, taller by some three years, looks on in pretty stooping attitude, and with a graver smile. Blackamoor and room-furniture elegant enough; and finally the figure of a grenadier on guard, seen far off through an open window, make up the background.”

One day, as the father was coming home, he found, to his immense delight, little Fritz proudly marching around while beating a drum, with Wilhelmina walking alongside him. The king could hardly contain his happiness. Finally, his child was showing signs of a military spirit. He rushed to share the news with his wife, whom he affectionately called “Phiekin”—a name seemingly derived from Sophie. The news spread throughout the palace. A painter was called in to capture the moment on canvas. This painting, highly praised, still hangs on the walls of Charlottenburg Palace. About this painting, Carlyle writes: “Fritz is still, if not in ‘long-clothes,’ at least in longish and flowing clothes of the petticoat style, which appear to be made of dark blue velvet, very simple, pretty, and fitting; wearing a cap of the same material; with a short raven’s feather in the cap, looking up with a face and eyes full of beautiful liveliness and childlike enthusiasm, one of the prettiest little figures, while the small drum echoes his bits of drumsticks. Sister Wilhelmina, three years older, looks on in a charmingly stooped position, with a more serious smile. The elegant blackamoors and furniture fill the room; and finally, the figure of a grenadier on guard, seen far off through an open window, completes the background.”

The early governess of little Fritz was a French lady of much refinement and culture, Madame Racoule. She was in entire sympathy with her pupil. Their tastes were in harmony. Fritz became as familiar with the French language as if it were his mother tongue. Probably through her influence he acquired that fondness for French literature and that taste for French elegance which continued with him through life.

The early governess of little Fritz was a French lady of great refinement and culture, Madame Racoule. She completely understood her pupil, and their tastes matched perfectly. Fritz became as comfortable with the French language as if it were his first language. Likely because of her influence, he developed a love for French literature and an appreciation for French elegance that stayed with him for life.

When the child was but six years of age his father organized a miniature soldiers’ company for him, consisting of one hundred lads. Gradually the number was increased to three hundred. The band was called “The Crown Prince Cadets.” A very spirited, mature boy of seventeen, named Rentzel, was drill-sergeant, while an experienced colonel was appointed commander-in-chief. Fritz was very thoroughly instructed in his duties, and was furnished with a military dress, almost the fac-simile of that which his father wore. An arsenal was also provided for the child on the palace grounds at Potsdam, where he mounted batteries and practiced gunnery with small brass ordnance. Nothing was omitted which could inspire the prince with military enthusiasm, and render him skillful in the art of war. A Prussian gentleman of letters testifies as follows respecting Fritz in his seventh year:

When the child was only six years old, his father set up a miniature soldiers’ company for him, made up of one hundred boys. Eventually, that number grew to three hundred. The group was called “The Crown Prince Cadets.” A very spirited, mature seventeen-year-old named Rentzel served as the drill sergeant, while an experienced colonel was appointed as the commander-in-chief. Fritz received thorough training in his responsibilities and was given a military uniform almost identical to the one his father wore. An arsenal was also established for him on the palace grounds in Potsdam, where he set up batteries and practiced gunnery with small brass cannons. Nothing was overlooked that could spark the prince’s military enthusiasm and make him skilled in the art of war. A Prussian gentleman of letters commented as follows about Fritz in his seventh year:

“The Crown Prince manifests in this tender age an uncommon capacity, nay, we may say, something quite extraordinary. He31 is a most alert and vivacious prince. He has fine and sprightly manners, and shows a certain kindly sociality and so affectionate a disposition that all things may be hoped of him. The French lady who has had charge of him hitherto can not speak of him without enthusiasm. ‘He is a little angel,’ she is wont to say. He takes up and learns whatever is placed before him with the greatest facility.”

“The Crown Prince, at this young age, shows an unusual ability, or we might even say, something truly extraordinary. He is a very sharp and lively prince. He has charming and lively manners, and displays a friendly social nature and such a loving personality that everyone has high hopes for him. The French lady who has been responsible for him so far can't talk about him without excitement. ‘He is a little angel,’ she often says. He picks up and learns whatever is presented to him with remarkable ease.”

THE ARSENAL.

When Fritz was seven years of age, he was taken from the care of his female teachers and placed under tutors who had been carefully selected for him. They were all military officers who had won renown on fields of blood. The first of these was M. Duhan, a French gentleman of good birth and acquirements. He was but thirty years of age. By his accomplishments he won the esteem, and by his amiability the love, of his pupil. Count Finkenstein, the second, was a veteran general, sixty years old, who also secured the affections of little Fritz. Colonel Kalkstein was twenty-eight years of age. He was a thorough soldier and a man of honor. For forty years, until his death, he retained the regards of his pupil, who was ever accustomed to speak of him as “my master Kalkstein.” In the education of the young32 prince every thing was conducted in accordance with the most inflexible routine. From the minute directions given to the teachers in a document drawn up by the father, bunglingly expressed and wretchedly spelled, we cull out the following:

When Fritz turned seven, he was taken out of the care of his female teachers and was placed under the guidance of carefully chosen tutors. All of them were military officers known for their bravery in battle. The first was M. Duhan, a French gentleman with a solid background and education. He was only thirty years old. Through his skills, he earned the respect of his student, and his friendly nature won Fritz's affection. The second tutor, Count Finkenstein, was a seasoned general, sixty years old, who also gained little Fritz's fondness. Colonel Kalkstein, who was twenty-eight, was a dedicated soldier and a man of honor. For forty years, until his death, he held a special place in his pupil's heart, who always referred to him as “my master Kalkstein.” Fritz's education was structured with strict adherence to routine. From the detailed instructions given to the teachers in a document prepared by his father, poorly written and badly spelled, we can extract the following:

“My son must be impressed with love and fear of God, as the foundation of our temporal and eternal welfare. No false religions or sects of Atheist, Arian, Socinian, or whatever name the poisonous things have, which can so easily corrupt a young mind, are to be even named in his hearing. He is to be taught a proper abhorrence of papistry, and to be shown its baselessness and nonsensicality. Impress on him the true religion, which consists essentially in this, that Christ died for all men. He is to learn no Latin, but French and German, so as to speak and write with brevity and propriety.

“My son needs to be instilled with love and fear of God as the foundation for our well-being, both now and forever. He should not even hear about false religions or the toxic beliefs of atheists, Arians, Socinians, or whatever other names these harmful ideologies go by, as they can easily corrupt a young mind. He should be taught to strongly dislike papistry and to understand its lack of basis and sense. Make sure he understands the true religion, which is fundamentally that Christ died for everyone. He should learn French and German instead of Latin, so he can speak and write clearly and appropriately.”

“Let him learn arithmetic, mathematics, artillery, economy, to the very bottom; history in particular; ancient history only slightly, but the history of the last hundred and fifty years to the exactest pitch. He must be completely master of geography, as also of whatever is remarkable in each country. With increasing years you will more and more, to an especial degree, go upon fortification, the formation of a camp, and other war sciences, that the prince may, from youth upward, be trained to act as officer and general, and to seek all his glory in the soldier profession. You have, in the highest measure, to make it your care to infuse into my son a true love for the soldier business, and to impress on him that, as there is nothing in the world which can bring a prince renown and honor like the sword, so he would be a despised creature before all men if he did not love it and seek his glory therein.”

“Let him learn arithmetic, mathematics, artillery, and economics thoroughly; history especially—only a little ancient history, but the detailed history of the last hundred and fifty years. He must be completely knowledgeable about geography and aware of the notable aspects of each country. As he grows older, you should increasingly focus on fortifications, camp layout, and other military sciences, so that the prince is trained from a young age to act as an officer and general, aiming to find his glory in the military profession. It is essential that you instill in my son a genuine love for the military life and make him understand that there is nothing in the world that can bring a prince as much fame and honor as the sword; otherwise, he would be looked down upon by everyone if he does not love it and seek his glory in it.”

In October, 1723, when the prince was eleven years of age, his grandfather, George I., came to Berlin to visit his daughter and his son-in-law, the mother and father of Fritz. From the windows of his apartment he looked out with much interest upon Fritz, drilling his cadet company upon the esplanade in front of the palace. The clock-work precision of the movements of the boy soldiers greatly surprised him.

In October 1723, when the prince was eleven years old, his grandfather, George I, came to Berlin to visit his daughter and son-in-law, Fritz's parents. From his apartment windows, he watched with great interest as Fritz drilled his cadet company on the esplanade in front of the palace. He was very surprised by the clockwork precision of the boy soldiers' movements.

Every year Frederick William rigorously reviewed all his garrisons. Though accompanied by a numerous staff, he traveled with Spartan simplicity, regardless of exposure and fatigue.33 From an early age he took Fritz with him on these annual reviews. A common vehicle, called the sausage car, and which was the most primitive of carriages, was often used by the king in his rough travels and hunting excursions. This consisted of a mere stuffed pole, some ten or twelve feet long, upon which one sits astride, as if riding a rail. It rested upon wheels, probably with a sort of stirrup for the feet, and the riders, ten or a dozen, were rattled along over the rough roads, through dust or mud, alike regardless of winter’s frost or summer’s rain. The cast-iron king, rejoicing in hardship and exposure, robbed his delicate child even of needful sleep, saying, “Too much sleep stupefies a fellow.”

Every year, Frederick William thoroughly inspected all his garrisons. Accompanied by a large staff, he traveled with a straightforward, no-frills approach, facing exposure and fatigue without complaint. 33 From a young age, he brought Fritz with him on these annual reviews. The king often used a simple vehicle known as the sausage car during his rough travels and hunting trips. This vehicle was basically a long pole, about ten or twelve feet in length, on which one straddled as if riding a rail. It was mounted on wheels and likely had something like stirrups for the feet. Ten or twelve riders would bounce along on it over bumpy roads, through dust or mud, indifferent to winter’s cold or summer’s rain. The tough king, thriving in hardship and exposure, even deprived his delicate child of necessary sleep, stating, “Too much sleep makes a person dull.”

THE SAUSAGE CAR.

This rude, coarse discipline was thoroughly uncongenial to the Crown Prince. He was a boy of delicate feelings and sensitive temperament. The poetic nature very decidedly predominated in him. He was fond of music, played the flute, wrote verses, and was literary in his tastes. He simply hated chasing boars, riding on the sausage car, and being drenched with rain and spattered with mud. The old king, a mere animal with an active intellect, could not appreciate, could not understand even, the34 delicate mental and physical organization of his child. It is interesting to observe how early in life these constitutional characteristics will develop themselves, and how unavailing are all the efforts of education entirely to obliterate them. When Frederick William was a boy, he received, as a present, a truly magnificent dressing-gown, of graceful French fashion, richly embroidered with gold. Indignantly he thrust the robe into the fire, declaring that he would wear no such finery, and demanded instead a jacket of wholesome homespun. Fritz, on the contrary, could not endure the coarse homespun, but, with almost girlish fondness, craved handsome dress. He had no money allowance until he was seventeen years of age. A minute account was kept of every penny expended for him, and the most rigid economy was practiced in providing him with the mere necessaries of life. When Fritz was in the tenth year of his age, his father gave the following curious directions to the three teachers of his son in reference to his daily mode of life. The document, an abridgment of which we give, was dated Wusterhausen, September 3, 1721:

This harsh and rough discipline was totally unsuitable for the Crown Prince. He was a boy with delicate feelings and a sensitive temperament. His poetic nature was very much apparent. He loved music, played the flute, wrote poems, and had literary interests. He absolutely hated hunting boars, riding the cramped carts, and getting soaked in rain or splattered with mud. The old king, simply a brute with a sharp mind, couldn’t appreciate or even understand his child's delicate mental and physical makeup. It’s interesting to see how early these inherent traits reveal themselves and how futile all educational attempts are to completely erase them. When Frederick William was a boy, he received a truly magnificent dressing gown, stylishly designed in French fashion and richly embroidered with gold. Indignantly, he threw the robe into the fire, saying he wouldn't wear such fancy things, and instead requested a jacket made of sturdy homespun. Fritz, on the other hand, couldn’t stand the coarse homespun and, with almost a girlish fondness, longed for elegant clothing. He didn’t receive a money allowance until he was seventeen. A detailed record was kept of every penny spent on him, and the strictest economy was enforced to provide him with just the basics of life. When Fritz was ten years old, his father issued the following unusual instructions to his three teachers regarding his daily routine. The document, a summary of which we present, was dated Wusterhausen, September 3, 1721:

“On Sunday he is to rise at seven o’clock, and, as soon as he has got his slippers on, shall kneel at his bedside and pray to God, so as all in the room may hear, in these words:

“On Sunday he will wake up at seven o'clock, and as soon as he puts on his slippers, he will kneel by his bed and pray to God in a way that everyone in the room can hear, using these words:

“‘Lord God, blessed Father, I thank thee from my heart that thou hast so graciously preserved me through this night. Fit me for what thy holy will is, and grant that I do nothing this day, nor all the days of my life, which can divide me from thee; for the Lord Jesus my Redeemer’s sake. Amen.’

“‘Lord God, blessed Father, I thank you from my heart for graciously keeping me safe through this night. Prepare me for your holy will, and help me do nothing today, or any day of my life, that could separate me from you; for the sake of my Redeemer, Lord Jesus. Amen.’”

“After which the Lord’s Prayer; then rapidly and vigorously wash himself clean; dress, and powder, and comb himself. While they are combing and queuing him, he is to breakfast on tea. Prayer, washing, breakfast, and the rest to be done pointedly within fifteen minutes.

“After that, the Lord’s Prayer; then quickly and vigorously wash himself up; get dressed, apply powder, and comb his hair. While they are combing and styling him, he should have tea for breakfast. Prayer, washing, breakfast, and everything else should be done specifically within fifteen minutes."

“This finished, his domestics and preceptor, Duhan, shall come in and perform family worship. Prayer on their knees. Duhan to read a chapter of the Bible, and sing some proper psalm or hymn. All the domestics then withdraw, and Duhan reads my son the Gospel of the Sunday, expounds it a little, adducing the main points of Christianity, and questioning him from Noltenius’s Catechism. It will then be nine o’clock.

“This done, his household and teacher, Duhan, will come in and hold family worship. They’ll pray on their knees. Duhan will read a chapter from the Bible and sing an appropriate psalm or hymn. After that, everyone will leave, and Duhan will read my son the Gospel for the Sunday, explain it a bit, highlight the key points of Christianity, and quiz him using Noltenius’s Catechism. By then, it will be nine o’clock.”

35 “At nine o’clock he brings my son down to me, who goes to church and dines with me at twelve o’clock. The rest of the day is his own. At half past nine in the evening he shall come and bid me good-night; shall then go directly to his room; very rapidly get off his clothes, wash his hands, and, as soon as that is done, Duhan shall make a prayer on his knees and sing a hymn, all the servants being there again. Instantly after which my son shall get into bed; shall be in bed at half past ten.

35 “At nine o’clock, he brings my son down to me, who goes to church and has lunch with me at twelve o’clock. The rest of the day is his own. At half past nine in the evening, he will come and say goodnight; then he will go straight to his room, quickly change out of his clothes, wash his hands, and as soon as that's done, Duhan will say a prayer on his knees and sing a hymn, with all the servants present again. Right after that, my son will get into bed; he should be in bed by half past ten.”

“On Monday, as on all week-days, he is to be called at six o’clock, and so soon as he is called he is to rise. You are to stand by him that he do not loiter or turn in bed, but briskly and at once get up and say his prayers the same as on Sunday morning. This done, he shall, as rapidly as he can, get on his shoes and spatterdashes, also wash his face and hands, but not with soap; shall put on his dressing-gown, have his hair combed and queued, but not powdered. While being combed and queued, he shall, at the same time, take breakfast of tea, so that both jobs go on at once; and all this shall be ended before half past six. Preceptor and domestics shall then come in with Bible and hymn-books, and have family worship as on Sunday. This shall be done by seven o’clock.

“On Monday, just like every weekday, he will be called at six o’clock, and as soon as he is called, he should get up. You need to stand by him so he doesn’t linger or turn in bed but gets up quickly and says his prayers just like on Sunday morning. Once that’s done, he should quickly put on his shoes and spats, wash his face and hands without soap, put on his dressing gown, and have his hair combed and tied back, but not powdered. While he’s getting his hair done, he should have breakfast with tea, so both tasks can be done at the same time, all before half past six. The teacher and staff will then come in with the Bible and hymn books for family worship just like on Sunday. This should be finished by seven o’clock.”

“From seven till nine Duhan takes him on history; at nine o’clock comes Noltenius” (a clergyman from Berlin) “with the Christian religion till a quarter to eleven. Then Fritz rapidly washes his face with water, his hands with soap and water; clean shirt; powders and puts on his coat. At eleven o’clock he comes to the king, dines with him at twelve, and stays till two.

“From seven to nine, Duhan teaches him history; at nine o’clock, Noltenius” (a clergyman from Berlin) “comes in to talk about Christianity until a quarter to eleven. Then Fritz quickly washes his face with water, his hands with soap and water; puts on a clean shirt; powders himself and gets dressed in his coat. At eleven o’clock, he goes to see the king, has lunch with him at twelve, and stays until two.

“Directly at two he goes back to his room. Duhan is then ready; takes him upon maps and geography from two to three o’clock, giving account of all the European kingdoms, their strength and weakness; the size, riches, and poverty of their towns. From three o’clock till four Duhan shall treat of morality; from four till five shall write German letters with him, and see that he gets a good style. About five o’clock Fritz shall wash his hands and go to the king; ride out, and divert himself in the air, and not in his room, and do what he likes if it is not against God.”

“Right at two, he returns to his room. Duhan is ready then; he teaches him about maps and geography from two to three o'clock, explaining all the European kingdoms, their strengths and weaknesses; the size, wealth, and poverty of their towns. From three o'clock to four, Duhan will discuss morality; from four to five, they’ll write German letters together, making sure he has a good style. Around five o'clock, Fritz will wash his hands and go to the king; ride out, enjoy some fresh air instead of staying in his room, and do whatever he wants as long as it’s not against God.”

Thus the employments of every hour were strictly specified for every day in the week. On Wednesday he had a partial36 holiday. After half past nine, having finished his history and “got something by heart to strengthen the memory, Fritz shall rapidly dress himself and come to the king, and the rest of the day belongs to little Fritz.” On Saturday he was to be reviewed in all the studies of the week, “to see whether he has profited. General Finkenstein and Colonel Kalkstein shall be present during this. If Fritz has profited, the afternoon shall be his own. If he has not profited, he shall from two o’clock till six repeat and learn rightly what he has forgotten on the past days. In undressing and dressing, you must accustom him to get out of and into his clothes as fast as is humanly possible. You will also look that he learn to put on and put off his clothes himself, without help from others, and that he be clean, and neat, and not so dirty.”

The tasks for every hour were clearly laid out for each day of the week. On Wednesday, he had a half-day off. After 9:30, once he finished his history and memorized something to help strengthen his memory, Fritz would quickly get dressed and go to the king, leaving the rest of the day free for little Fritz. On Saturday, he was to be tested on all his studies from the week "to see if he has made progress." General Finkenstein and Colonel Kalkstein would be there for this. If Fritz had made progress, the afternoon would be his to enjoy. If not, he would need to review and properly learn what he had forgotten from 2 PM to 6 PM. In getting dressed and undressed, he should be trained to do it as quickly as possible. Also, ensure that he learns to put on and take off his clothes by himself, without help from others, and that he stays clean, neat, and not so dirty.


CHAPTER II.
LIFE IN THE CASTLE.

The Palace of Wusterhausen.—Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Education of the Crown Prince.—Rising Dislike of the Father for his Son.—The Mother’s Sympathy.—The double Marriage.—Character of George I.—The King of England visits Berlin.—Wilhelmina’s Account of the Interview.—Sad Fate of the Wife of George I.—The Giant Guard.—Despotism of Frederick William.—The Tobacco Parliament.—A brutal Scene.—Death of George I.—The Royal Family of Prussia.—Augustus, King of Poland.—Corruption of his Court.—Cruel Treatment of Fritz.—Insane Conduct of the King.

The Palace of Wusterhausen.—Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Education of the Crown Prince.—The Father’s Growing Dislike for his Son.—The Mother’s Support.—The Double Marriage.—Character of George I.—The King of England Visits Berlin.—Wilhelmina’s Account of the Meeting.—Tragic Fate of George I’s Wife.—The Giant Guard.—Tyranny of Frederick William.—The Tobacco Parliament.—A Violent Scene.—Death of George I.—The Prussian Royal Family.—Augustus, King of Poland.—Corruption in His Court.—Cruel Treatment of Fritz.—The King’s Unstable Behavior.

Wusterhausen, where the young Crown Prince spent many of these early years of his life, was a rural retreat of the king about twenty miles southeast from Berlin. The palace consisted of a plain, unornamented, rectangular pile, surrounded by numerous outbuildings, and rising from the midst of low and swampy grounds tangled with thickets and interspersed with fish-pools. Game of all kinds abounded in those lakelets, sluggish streams, and jungles.

Wusterhausen, where the young Crown Prince spent many of his early years, was a country getaway for the king, located about twenty miles southeast of Berlin. The palace was a simple, unadorned rectangular building, surrounded by several outbuildings, sitting in the middle of low, marshy land filled with thickets and scattered with ponds. Wildlife of all kinds thrived in those small lakes, slow-moving streams, and dense underbrush.

In the court-yard there was a fountain with stone steps, where Frederick William loved to sit on summer evenings and smoke his pipe. He frequently took his frugal dinner here in the open air under a lime-tree, with the additional protection of an awning. After dinner he would throw himself down for a nap on a wooden bench, apparently regardless of the flaming sun.

In the courtyard, there was a fountain with stone steps, where Frederick William liked to sit on summer evenings and smoke his pipe. He often had his simple dinner there outdoors under a lime tree, with the extra shade of an awning. After dinner, he would lie down for a nap on a wooden bench, seemingly unconcerned about the blazing sun.

37 There seems to have been but little which was attractive about this castle. It was surrounded by a moat, which Wilhelmina describes as a “black, abominable ditch.” Its pets were shrieking eagles, and two black bears ugly and vicious. Its interior accommodations were at the farthest possible remove from luxurious indulgence. “It was a dreadfully crowded place,” says Wilhelmina, “where you are stuffed into garrets and have not room to turn.”

37 There didn't seem to be much that was appealing about this castle. It was surrounded by a moat, which Wilhelmina calls a “black, horrible ditch.” Its pets were screeching eagles and two ugly, vicious black bears. The inside was as far from luxury as you could get. “It was an incredibly cramped place,” Wilhelmina says, “where you're crammed into attics and don’t even have room to move.”

Still Wusterhausen was but a hunting-lodge, which was occupied by the king only during a few weeks in the autumn. Fritz had many playmates—his brothers and sisters, his cousins, and the children of General Finkenstein. To most boys, the streams, and groves, and ponds of Wusterhausen, abounding with fish and all kinds of game, with ponies to drive and boats to row, with picturesque walks and drives, would have been full of charms. But the tastes of Fritz did not lie in that direction. He does not seem to have become strongly attached to any of his young companions, except to his sister Wilhelmina. The affection and confidence which united their hearts were truly beautiful. They encountered together some of the severest of life’s trials, but heartfelt sympathy united them. The nickname which these children gave their unamiable father was Stumpy.

Still, Wusterhausen was just a hunting lodge, which the king only used for a few weeks in the fall. Fritz had many playmates—his siblings, cousins, and the children of General Finkenstein. For most boys, the streams, groves, and ponds of Wusterhausen, filled with fish and all kinds of game, along with ponies to ride and boats to row, and beautiful trails to explore, would have been exciting. But Fritz's interests didn't lean that way. He didn't seem to form a strong bond with any of his young friends, except for his sister Wilhelmina. The love and trust that connected them were truly beautiful. They faced some of life's toughest challenges together, but their heartfelt sympathy kept them close. The kids even gave their unfriendly dad the nickname Stumpy.

There were other abodes of the king, the Berlin and Potsdam palaces, which retained much of the splendor with which they had been embellished by the splendor-loving monarch, Frederick I. There were but few regal mansions in the world which then surpassed them. And though the king furnished his own apartments with Spartan simplicity and rudeness, there were other portions of these royal residences, as also their surroundings in general, which were magnificent in the highest degree. The health of little Fritz was rather frail, and at times he found it hard to devote himself to his sturdy tasks with the energy which his father required.

There were other homes of the king, the Berlin and Potsdam palaces, which still held much of the grandeur that had been added by the splendor-loving monarch, Frederick I. There were only a few royal residences in the world that surpass them at that time. And even though the king decorated his own rooms with a simple and rough style, there were other parts of these royal residences, as well as their surroundings in general, that were incredibly magnificent. Little Fritz's health was quite delicate, and at times he struggled to approach his demanding tasks with the energy his father expected.

Though Fritz wrote a legible business hand, was well instructed in most points of useful knowledge, and had a very decided taste for elegant literature, he never attained correctness in spelling. The father was bitterly opposed to Latin. Perhaps it was the prohibition which inspired the son with an intense desire to learn that language. He took secret lessons. His vigilant father38 caught him in the very act, with dictionary and grammar, and a teacher by his side. The infuriated king, volleying forth his rage, would have caned the teacher had he not in terror fled.5

Though Fritz had neat handwriting for business, knew a lot about practical things, and had a strong interest in fine literature, he could never get spelling right. His father strongly opposed Latin. Maybe that ban made Fritz really want to learn the language. He took private lessons. His watchful father38 caught him in the act, with a dictionary and grammar book, and a teacher beside him. The furious king, shouting in anger, would have hit the teacher with a cane if he hadn’t run away in fear.

The king soon learned, to his inexpressible displeasure and mortification, that his boy was not soldierly in his tastes; that he did not love the rude adventures of the chase, or the exposure and hardships which a martial life demands. He had caught Fritz playing the flute, and even writing verses. He saw that he was fond of graceful attire, and that he was disposed to dress his hair in the French fashion. He was a remarkably handsome boy, of fine figure, with a lady’s hand and foot, and soft blonde locks carefully combed. All this the king despised. Scornfully and indignantly he exclaimed, “My son is a flute-player and a poet!” In his vexation he summoned Fritz to his presence, called in the barber, and ordered his flowing locks to be cut off, cropped, and soaped in the most rigid style of military cut.

The king quickly found out, to his immense disappointment and embarrassment, that his son wasn’t into soldiering; he didn’t enjoy the rough adventures of hunting or the challenges that come with a military life. He caught Fritz playing the flute and even writing poetry. He noticed that Fritz liked fancy clothes and that he tended to style his hair in the French manner. Fritz was a remarkably handsome boy, with a great physique, delicate hands and feet, and soft blonde hair that was always neatly combed. The king looked down on all of this. With scorn and anger, he exclaimed, “My son is a flute-player and a poet!” Frustrated, he called Fritz to him, summoned the barber, and ordered that his long hair be cut off, cropped, and styled in the strictest military fashion.

The father was now rapidly forming a strong dislike to the character of his son. In nothing were they in harmony. Five princesses had been born, sisters of Fritz. At last another son was born, Augustus William, ten years younger than Frederick. The king turned his eyes to him, hoping that he would be more in sympathy with the paternal heart. His dislike for Fritz grew continually more implacable, until it assumed the aspect of bitter hatred.

The father was quickly developing a strong dislike for his son's character. They had nothing in common. Five princesses had been born, sisters of Fritz. Finally, another son was born, Augustus William, ten years younger than Frederick. The king looked to him, hoping he would be more in tune with his father's feelings. His dislike for Fritz continued to grow, eventually turning into deep hatred.

Sophie Dorothee tenderly loved her little Fritz, and, with a mother’s fondness, endeavored to shield him, in every way in her power, from his father’s brutality. Wilhelmina also clung to her brother with devotion which nothing could disturb. Thus both mother and daughter incurred in some degree the hatred with which the father regarded his son. It will be remembered that the mother of Fritz was daughter of George I. of England. Her brother subsequently became George II. He had a son, Fred, about the age of Wilhelmina, and a daughter, Amelia, six months older than Fritz. The mother, Sophie Dorothee, had set her heart upon a double marriage—of Wilhelmina with Fred,39 and of Fritz with Amelia. But many obstacles arose in the way of these nuptials.

Sophie Dorothee loved her little Fritz dearly and, with a mother's affection, tried to protect him in every way she could from his father's brutality. Wilhelmina also held onto her brother with a loyalty that nothing could shake. As a result, both the mother and daughter faced some of the hatred that the father felt toward his son. It's worth noting that Fritz's mother was the daughter of George I of England. Her brother later became George II. He had a son, Fred, who was about the same age as Wilhelmina, and a daughter, Amelia, who was six months older than Fritz. Sophie Dorothee was determined to arrange a double marriage—matching Wilhelmina with Fred and Fritz with Amelia. However, many obstacles popped up that complicated these plans.

MAKING A SOLDIER OF HIM.

George was a taciturn, jealous, sullen old man, who quarreled with his son, who was then Prince of Wales. The other powers of Europe were decidedly opposed to this double marriage, as it would, in their view, create too intimate a union between Prussia and England, making them virtually one. Frederick William also vexatiously threw hinderances in the way. But the heart of the loving mother, Sophie Dorothee, was fixed upon these nuptials. For years she left no efforts of diplomacy or intrigue untried to accomplish her end. George I. is represented40 by Horace Walpole as a stolid, stubborn old German, living in a cloud of tobacco-smoke, and stupefying his faculties with beer. He had in some way formed a very unfavorable opinion of Wilhelmina, considering her, very falsely, ungainly in person and fretful in disposition. But at last the tact of Sophie Dorothee so far prevailed over her father, the British king, that he gave his somewhat reluctant but positive consent to the double matrimonial alliance. This was in 1723. Wilhelmina was then fourteen years of age. Fritz, but eleven years old, was too young to think very deeply upon the subject of his marriage. The young English Fred bore at that time the title of the Duke of Gloucester. He soon sent an envoy to Prussia, probably to convey to his intended bride presents and messages of love. The interview took place in the palace of Charlottenburg, a few miles out from Berlin. The vivacious Wilhelmina, in the following terms, describes the interview in her journal:

George was a quiet, jealous, and grumpy old man who had conflicts with his son, who was then the Prince of Wales. Other European powers were clearly against this double marriage because they believed it would create too close of a bond between Prussia and England, basically making them one. Frederick William also stubbornly threw up obstacles. But the loving mother, Sophie Dorothee, was determined about these weddings. For years, she tried every diplomatic tactic and scheme to make it happen. George I is described by Horace Walpole as a dull, stubborn old German, living in a haze of tobacco smoke and numbing his senses with beer. Somehow, he formed a very negative opinion of Wilhelmina, mistakenly viewing her as awkward and difficult. However, Sophie Dorothee’s skills eventually persuaded her father, the British king, to give his somewhat hesitant but clear approval for the double matrimonial alliance. This happened in 1723. Wilhelmina was fourteen years old at that time. Fritz, just eleven, was too young to think much about marriage. The young English Fred, at that time known as the Duke of Gloucester, quickly sent an envoy to Prussia, likely to deliver gifts and messages of affection to his future bride. The meeting took place at the Charlottenburg palace, a few miles outside Berlin. The lively Wilhelmina describes the encounter in her journal as follows:

“There came, in those weeks, one of the Duke of Gloucester’s gentlemen to Berlin. The queen had a soiree. He was presented to her as well as to me. He made a very obliging compliment on his master’s part. I blushed and answered only by a courtesy. The queen, who had her eye on me, was very angry that I had answered the duke’s compliments in mere silence, and rated me sharply for it, and ordered me, under pain of her indignation, to repair that fault to-morrow. I retired all in tears to my room, exasperated against the queen and against the duke. I vowed I would never marry him.

In those weeks, one of the Duke of Gloucester’s gentlemen came to Berlin. The queen hosted a gathering. He was introduced to her and to me. He gave a very polite compliment on his master’s behalf. I blushed and responded with just a nod. The queen, who was watching me, was really upset that I had responded to the duke’s compliments with silence, and she scolded me harshly for it, insisting that I fix that mistake tomorrow or face her anger. I went back to my room in tears, frustrated with both the queen and the duke. I swore I would never marry him.

“Meanwhile the King of England’s time of arrival was drawing nigh. We repaired on the 6th of October to Charlottenburg to receive him. My heart kept beating. I was in cruel agitations. King George arrived on the 8th about seven in the evening. The King of Prussia, the queen, and all their suite received him in the court of the palace, the apartments being on the ground floor. So soon as he had saluted the king and queen I was presented to him. He embraced me, and, turning to the queen, said, ‘Your daughter is very large of her age.’ He gave the queen his hand and led her into her apartment, whither every body followed them. As soon as I came in he took a light from the table and surveyed me from head to foot. I stood motionless as a statue, and was much put out of countenance. All41 this went on without his uttering the least word. Having thus passed me in review, he addressed himself to my brother, whom he caressed much and amused himself with for a good while.

“Meanwhile, the King of England was expected to arrive soon. On October 6th, we went to Charlottenburg to welcome him. My heart was racing. I was extremely anxious. King George arrived on the 8th around seven in the evening. The King of Prussia, the queen, and their entire entourage received him in the palace courtyard, as the apartments were on the ground floor. As soon as he greeted the king and queen, I was introduced to him. He hugged me and, turning to the queen, said, ‘Your daughter is very tall for her age.’ He took the queen’s hand and led her into her apartment, and everyone followed them. Once I entered, he picked up a light from the table and looked me over from head to toe. I stood there frozen like a statue, feeling quite embarrassed. All this happened without him saying a single word. After inspecting me, he turned to my brother, whom he was very affectionate with and spent a good amount of time entertaining.”

“The queen made me a sign to follow her, and passed into a neighboring apartment, where she had the English and Germans of King George’s suite successively presented to her. After some talk with these gentlemen she withdrew, leaving me to entertain them, and saying, ‘Speak English to my daughter; you will find she speaks it very well.’ I felt much less embarrassed when the queen was gone, and, picking up a little courage, entered into conversation with these English. As I spoke their language like my mother tongue I got pretty well out of the affair, and every body seemed charmed with me. They made my eulogy to the queen; told her I had quite the English air, and was made to be their sovereign one day. It was saying a great deal on their part; for these English think themselves so much above all other people that they imagine that they are paying a high compliment when they tell any one he has got English manners.

“The queen signaled for me to follow her and went into a nearby room, where she had the English and Germans from King George’s entourage introduced to her one after another. After chatting with these gentlemen, she left me to keep them company, saying, ‘Speak English to my daughter; you’ll find she speaks it very well.’ I felt a lot less nervous once the queen was gone, and after gathering some courage, I started a conversation with the English. As I spoke their language fluently, I managed to handle the situation well, and everyone seemed to be pleased with me. They praised me to the queen, telling her I had quite the English demeanor and was destined to be their sovereign one day. That was quite a compliment from them; you see, the English believe they’re superior to everyone else and think it’s a big compliment when they say someone has English manners.”

“Their king” (Wilhelmina’s grandfather) “was of extreme gravity, and hardly spoke a word to any body. He saluted Madam Sonsfeld, my governess, very coldly, and asked if I was always so serious, and if my humor was of a melancholy turn. ‘Any thing but that, sire,’ answered Madam Sonsfeld; ‘but the respect she has for your majesty prevents her from being as sprightly as she commonly is.’ He shook his head and said nothing. The reception he had given me, and this question, gave me such a chill that I never had the courage to speak to him.”

“Their king” (Wilhelmina’s grandfather) “was extremely serious and hardly spoke to anyone. He greeted Madam Sonsfeld, my governess, very coldly, and asked if I was always this serious and if I had a melancholy disposition. ‘Anything but that, sire,’ Madam Sonsfeld replied; ‘but the respect she has for your majesty keeps her from being as lively as she usually is.’ He shook his head and said nothing. The way he received me and this question gave me such a chill that I never had the courage to speak to him.”

The wife of George I., the mother of Sophie Dorothee, was the subject of one of the saddest of earthly tragedies. Her case is still involved in some obscurity. She was a beautiful, haughty, passionate princess of Zelle when she married her cousin George, Elector of Hanover. George became jealous of Count Königsmark, a very handsome courtier of commanding address. In an angry altercation with his wife, it is said that the infuriate husband boxed her ears. Suddenly, on the 1st of July, 1694, Count Königsmark disappeared. Mysteriously he vanished from earth, and was heard of no more. The unhappy wife, who had given birth to the daughter Sophie Dorothee, bearing her mother’s name, and to a son, afterward George II., almost frenzied with42 rage, was divorced from her husband, and was locked up in the gloomy castle of Ahlden, situated in the solitary moors of Luneburg heath. Here she was held in captivity for thirty years, until she died. In the mean time, George, ascending the throne of England, solaced himself in the society of female favorites, none of whom he honored with the title of wife. The raging captive of Ahlden, who seems never to have become submissive to her lot, could, of course, exert no influence in the marriage of her grandchildren.

The wife of George I and mother of Sophie Dorothee experienced one of the saddest tragedies in history. Her situation remains somewhat mysterious. She was a beautiful, proud, and passionate princess from Zelle when she married her cousin George, the Elector of Hanover. George became jealous of Count Königsmark, an incredibly handsome and charismatic courtier. In a heated argument with his wife, it's said that the furious husband slapped her. Suddenly, on July 1, 1694, Count Königsmark disappeared without a trace and was never seen again. The unfortunate wife, who had given birth to her daughter Sophie Dorothee and a son who later became George II, was driven almost mad with rage, divorced her husband, and was locked up in the gloomy castle of Ahlden, located in the desolate moors of Luneburg heath. She remained imprisoned for thirty years until her death. Meanwhile, George ascended to the throne of England and found comfort in the company of numerous female favorites, none of whom he acknowledged as his wife. The trapped woman in Ahlden, who never seemed to accept her fate, had no influence over the marriages of her grandchildren.

Wilhelmina says that her grandpapa George was intolerably proud after he had attained the dignity of King of England, and that he was much disposed to look down upon her father, the King of Prussia, as occupying a very inferior position. Vexatiously he delayed signing the marriage treaty, to which he had given a verbal assent, evading the subject and presenting frivolous excuses. The reputation of the English Fred was far from good. He had attained eighteen years of age, was very unattractive in personal appearance, and extremely dissolute. George I., morose and moody, was only rendered more obstinate by being pressed. These delays exasperated Frederick William, who was far from being the meekest of men. Poor Sophie Dorothee was annoyed almost beyond endurance. Wilhelmina took the matter very coolly, for she declared that she cared nothing about her cousin Fred, and that she had no wish to marry him.

Wilhelmina says that her grandpa George was incredibly proud after becoming King of England, and that he often looked down on her dad, the King of Prussia, thinking he was in a much lesser position. He annoyingly kept delaying the signing of the marriage treaty, even though he had verbally agreed to it, avoiding the topic and coming up with ridiculous excuses. The reputation of English Fred was far from great. He was eighteen, unattractive in looks, and extremely reckless. George I, gloomy and irritable, only became more stubborn when pressured. These delays frustrated Frederick William, who wasn’t the easiest person to deal with. Poor Sophie Dorothee was nearly at her wit's end. Wilhelmina took it all in stride, claiming she didn’t care about her cousin Fred and had no desire to marry him.

The months rolled rapidly on, and Fritz, having entered his fourteenth year, was appointed by his father, in May, 1725, captain in the Potsdam Grenadier Guard. This giant regiment has attained world-wide renown, solely from the peculiarity of its organization. Such a body of men never existed before, never will again. It was one of the singular freaks of the Prussian king to form a grenadier guard of men of gigantic stature. In the prosecution of this senseless aim not only his own realms were ransacked, but Europe and even Asia was explored in search of giants. The army was with Frederick William the great object of life, and the giant guard was the soul of the army. This guard consisted of three battalions, 800 in each, 2400 in all. The shortest of the men were nearly seven feet high. The tallest were almost nine feet in height. They had been gathered, at an enormous expense, out of every country where they could be found. No greater favor could be conferred upon the king than to obtain for him a giant. Many amusing anecdotes are related of the stratagems to which the king resorted to obtain these mammoth soldiers. Portraits were painted of all of them. Frederick William paid very little regard to individual rights or to the law of nations if any chance presented itself by which he could seize upon one of these monster men. Reigning in absolutism, compared with which the despotism of Turkey is mild, if he found in his domains any young woman of remarkable stature, he would compel her to marry one of his giants. It does not, however, appear that he thus succeeded in perpetuating a gigantic race.

The months went by quickly, and Fritz, having turned fourteen, was appointed by his father, in May 1725, as captain in the Potsdam Grenadier Guard. This massive regiment is famous worldwide, mainly due to its unique organization. Such a group of men has never existed before, nor will it again. It was one of the eccentric decisions of the Prussian king to create a grenadier guard made up of exceptionally tall men. To pursue this bizarre goal, he not only searched his own lands but went through Europe and even Asia looking for giants. The army was, for Frederick William, the main focus of his life, and the giant guard was the heart of that army. This guard consisted of three battalions, with 800 men each, totaling 2400. The shortest among them were nearly seven feet tall, while the tallest were almost nine feet high. They had been gathered at a tremendous cost from every place they could find them. There was no greater favor one could do for the king than to bring him a giant. Many amusing stories are told about the tricks the king used to get these enormous soldiers. Portraits were painted of all of them. Frederick William disregarded individual rights and the law of nations whenever he found an opportunity to seize one of these towering men. Ruling with such absolute power that it's more severe than Turkish despotism, if he discovered any young woman of notable height in his territories, he would force her to marry one of his giants. However, it doesn't seem that he was successful in producing a race of giants.

43

43

CAPTAIN OF THE GIANT GUARDS.

44 Prussian recruiters were sent in all directions to search with eagle eyes for candidates for the Potsdam Guard. Their pay was higher than that of any other troops, and they enjoyed unusual privileges. Their drill and discipline were as perfect as could by any possibility be achieved. The following stories are apparently well-authenticated, describing the means to which the king often resorted to obtain these men.

44 Prussian recruiters were sent out in every direction to look carefully for candidates for the Potsdam Guard. They were paid more than any other soldiers and enjoyed unique privileges. Their training and discipline were as perfect as possible. The following stories are reportedly well-confirmed, detailing the methods the king often used to recruit these men.

In the town of Zulich there was a very tall young carpenter by the name of Zimmerman. A Prussian recruiting officer, in disguise, Baron von Hompesch, entered the shop and ordered a stout chest to be made, “six feet six inches in length, at least—at all events, longer than yourself, Mr. Zimmerman. Mind you,” he added, “if too short it will be of no service to me.” At the appointed time he called for the chest. Looking at it, he exclaimed, in apparent disappointment, “Too short, as I dreaded!” “I am certain it is over six feet six,” said the carpenter, taking out his rule. “But I said that it was to be longer than yourself,” was the reply. “Well, it is,” rejoined the carpenter. To prove it, he jumped into the chest. Hompesch slammed down the lid, locked it, whistled, and three stout fellows came in, who shouldered the chest and carried it through the streets to a remote place outside of the town. Here the chest was opened, and poor Zimmerman was found dead, stifled to death.

In the town of Zulich, there was a very tall young carpenter named Zimmerman. A Prussian recruiting officer in disguise, Baron von Hompesch, entered the shop and ordered a sturdy chest to be made, “six feet six inches long, at least—definitely longer than you, Mr. Zimmerman. Just so you know,” he added, “if it’s too short, it won’t be any use to me.” At the agreed time, he came to pick up the chest. Looking at it, he exclaimed, in apparent disappointment, “It’s too short, just as I feared!” “I’m sure it’s over six feet six,” said the carpenter, pulling out his measuring tape. “But I said it should be longer than you,” was the response. “Well, it is,” the carpenter replied. To prove it, he jumped into the chest. Hompesch slammed the lid down, locked it, whistled, and three strong men came in, who lifted the chest and carried it through the streets to a remote spot outside of town. There, the chest was opened, and poor Zimmerman was found dead, suffocated.

On another occasion, an Austrian gentleman, M. Von Bentenrieder, who was exceedingly tall, was journeying from Vienna to Berlin as the embassador from the Emperor Charles VI. to the Congress of Cambrai. When near Halberstadt some part of his carriage broke. While the smith was repairing it, M. Bentenrieder walked on. He passed a Prussian guard-house, alone, in plain clothes, on foot, an immensely tall, well-formed man. It was too rich a prize to be lost. The officials seized him, and hurried him into the guard-house. But soon his carriage came along with his suite. He was obsequiously hailed as “Your Excellency.” The recruiting officers of Frederick William, mortified and chagrined, with many apologies released the embassador of the emperor.

On another occasion, an Austrian gentleman, M. Von Bentenrieder, who was extremely tall, was traveling from Vienna to Berlin as the ambassador for Emperor Charles VI. to the Congress of Cambrai. While near Halberstadt, a part of his carriage broke. While the blacksmith was fixing it, M. Bentenrieder walked on. He passed a Prussian guardhouse, alone, in plain clothes, on foot—an incredibly tall, well-built man. It was too tempting a target to let go. The officials captured him and rushed him into the guardhouse. But soon his carriage arrived with his entourage. He was respectfully greeted as “Your Excellency.” The recruiting officers of Frederick William, embarrassed and frustrated, offered many apologies before releasing the emperor’s ambassador.

As we have mentioned, the agents of the King of Prussia were45 eager to kidnap tall men, in whatever country they could find them. This greatly exasperated the rulers of the various realms of all sizes and conditions which surrounded the Prussian territory. Frederick William was always ready to apologize, and to aver that each individual act was done without his orders or knowledge. Still, there was no abatement of this nuisance. Several seizures had been made in Hanover, which was the hereditary domain of George I., King of England. George was very angry. He was increasingly obstinate in withholding his assent to the double marriage, and even, by way of reprisal, seized several of the subjects of Frederick William, whom he caught in Hanover.

As we’ve mentioned, the agents of the King of Prussia were eager to kidnap tall men, no matter what country they were in. This really annoyed the rulers of the various realms, regardless of their size or status, surrounding the Prussian territory. Frederick William was always quick to apologize and insisted that each individual act was done without his orders or knowledge. Still, this annoyance didn’t change. Several kidnappings had occurred in Hanover, which was the hereditary territory of George I, King of England. George was very angry. He became increasingly stubborn about agreeing to the double marriage and even, as a form of retaliation, captured several subjects of Frederick William who he found in Hanover.

Sophie Dorothee seemed to have but one thought—the double marriage. This would make Wilhelmina queen of England, and would give her dear son Frederick an English princess for his bride. Her efforts, embarrassments, disappointments, were endless. Frederick William began to be regarded by the other powers as a very formidable man, whose alliance was exceedingly desirable. His army, of sixty thousand men, rapidly increasing, was as perfect in drill and discipline as ever existed. It was thoroughly furnished with all the appliances of war. The king himself, living in Spartan simplicity, and cutting down the expenses of his court to the lowest possible figure, was consecrating the resources of his realm to the promotion of its physical strength, and was accumulating iron-bound casks of gold and silver coin in the cellars of his palace. It became a matter of much moment to every court in Europe whether such a monarch should be its enemy or its ally.

Sophie Dorothee seemed to have just one focus—the double marriage. This would make Wilhelmina the queen of England and provide her beloved son Frederick with an English princess as his bride. Her efforts, struggles, and disappointments were endless. Frederick William started to be seen by other powers as a very formidable leader, whose partnership was highly desirable. His army, consisting of sixty thousand men and rapidly growing, was as well-trained and disciplined as any that had ever existed. It was fully equipped with all the resources of war. The king himself, living in simple Spartan style and reducing his court expenses to the bare minimum, was dedicating the resources of his kingdom to strengthening its military might and was stockpiling iron-bound barrels of gold and silver coins in the cellars of his palace. It became very important for every court in Europe to consider whether such a monarch would be its enemy or its ally.

After a long series of intrigues, a narrative of which would not interest the reader, Frederick William was induced to enter into an alliance, offensive and defensive, with the Emperor Charles VI. of Germany. This was renouncing the alliance with England, and threw an additional obstacle in the way of the double marriage. Sophie Dorothee was bitterly disappointed, and yet pertinaciously struggled on to accomplish her end.

After a long string of schemes, the details of which wouldn’t interest the reader, Frederick William was persuaded to form a military alliance with Emperor Charles VI of Germany. This meant giving up the alliance with England and added another hurdle to the double marriage. Sophie Dorothee was extremely disappointed but relentlessly continued to pursue her goal.

There was an institution, if we may so call it, in the palace of the King of Prussia which became greatly renowned, and which was denominated “The Tobacco College,” or “Tobacco Parliament.” It consisted simply of a smoking-room very plainly furnished,46 where the king and about a dozen of his confidential advisers met to smoke and to talk over, with perfect freedom and informality, affairs of state. Carlyle thus quaintly describes this Tabagie:

There was an organization, if we can call it that, in the palace of the King of Prussia that became quite famous, known as “The Tobacco College” or “Tobacco Parliament.” It was essentially a simple smoking room with basic furnishings, where the king and about a dozen of his trusted advisors would gather to smoke and discuss state matters with complete freedom and informality. Carlyle whimsically describes this Tabagie:

THE TOBACCO PARLIAMENT.

“Any room that was large enough, and had height of ceiling and air circulation, and no cloth furniture, would do. And in each palace is one, or more than one, that has been fixed upon and fitted out for that object. A high room, as the engravings give it us; contented, saturnine human figures, a dozen or so of them, sitting around a large, long table furnished for the occasion; a long Dutch pipe in the mouth of each man; supplies of knaster easily accessible; small pan of burning peat, in the Dutch fashion (sandy native charcoal, which burns slowly without smoke), is at your left hand; at your right a jug, which I find to consist of excellent, thin, bitter beer; other costlier materials for drinking, if you want such, are not beyond reach. On side-tables stand wholesome cold meats, royal rounds of beef not wanting, with bread thinly sliced and buttered; in a rustic, but neat and abundant way, such innocent accommodations, narcotic or nutritious, gaseous, fluid, and solid, as human nature can require.47 Perfect equality is the rule; no rising or no notice taken when any body enters or leaves. Let the entering man take his place and pipe without obligatory remarks. If he can not smoke, let him at least affect to do so, and not ruffle the established stream of things. And so puff, slowly puff! and any comfortable speech that is in you, or none, if you authentically have not any.”

“Any room that is spacious, has high ceilings and good airflow, and no fabric furniture will work. And each palace has one, or more than one, that’s been designated and set up for this purpose. A tall room, as the illustrations show; relaxed, serious-looking people, around a dozen or so, sitting at a large, long table prepared for the occasion; a long Dutch pipe in each man's mouth; easily accessible supplies of knaster; a small pan of burning peat, in the Dutch style (sandy native charcoal that burns slowly without smoke), is on your left; on your right, a jug filled with excellent, thin, bitter beer; other more expensive drinks are within reach if you want them. On side tables, there are wholesome cold meats, generous portions of beef, along with thinly sliced and buttered bread; in a rustic, yet neat and plentiful way, there are all the simple foods and drinks—nutritious, narcotic, gaseous, liquid, and solid—that people could need. 47 Perfect equality is the rule; no one stands up or acknowledges anyone when they come or go. Let the new person take their seat and smoke without any necessary comments. If they can’t smoke, they should at least pretend to and not disturb the established vibe. And so puff, slowly puff! and share any comfortable thoughts you have, or none at all, if you genuinely don’t have any.”

Distinguished strangers were often admitted to the Tabagie. The Crown Prince Fritz was occasionally present, though always reluctantly. The other children of this numerous family not unfrequently came in to bid papa good-night. Here every thing was talked of, with entire freedom, all court gossip, the adventures of the chase, diplomacy, and the administrative measures of the government. Frederick William had but very little respect for academic culture. He had scarcely the slightest acquaintance with books, and gathered around him mainly men whose knowledge was gained in the practical employments of life. It would seem, from many well-authenticated anecdotes, which have come down to us from the Tabagie, that these smoking companions of the king, like Frederick William himself, must have been generally a coarse set of men.

Distinguished guests were often welcomed at the Tabagie. Crown Prince Fritz would show up occasionally, but he was always reluctant. The other children in this large family often came in to say goodnight to dad. Here, everything was discussed openly, from court gossip and hunting adventures to diplomacy and government policies. Frederick William had very little respect for academic culture. He hardly knew anything about books and mostly surrounded himself with men whose knowledge came from practical experiences in life. Many well-documented stories have come down to us from the Tabagie, suggesting that these smoking companions of the king, like Frederick William himself, were generally a rough group of men.

One of this smoking cabinet was a celebrated adventurer named Gundling, endowed with wonderful encyclopedian knowledge, and an incorrigible drunkard. He had been every where, seen every thing, and remembered all which he had either heard or seen. Frederick William had accidentally picked him up, and, taking a fancy to him, had clothed him, pensioned him, and introduced him to his Tabagie, where his peculiar character often made him the butt of ridicule. He was excessively vain, wore a scarlet coat, and all manner of pranks were cut up by these boon companions, in the midst of their cups, at his expense.

One of the regulars at this smoking lounge was a famous adventurer named Gundling. He had an incredible wealth of knowledge and was also a hopeless drunk. He had traveled everywhere, seen everything, and could recall everything he had heard or seen. Frederick William had picked him up by chance, took a liking to him, and provided him with clothes, a pension, and a spot in his smoking group, where his unique personality often made him the target of jokes. He was extremely vain, wore a bright red coat, and his drinking buddies often pulled all sorts of pranks on him while they drank.

Another adventurer, by the name of Fassman, who had written books, and who made much literary pretension, had come to Berlin and also got introduced to the Tabagie. He was in character very like Gundling, and the two could never agree. Fassman could be very sarcastic and bitter in his speech. One evening, as the king and his smoking cabinet were sitting enveloped in the clouds which they were breathing forth, and were all muddled with tobacco and beer—for the king himself was a hard drinker—Fassman so enraged Gundling by some cutting48 remarks, that the latter seized his pan of burning peat and red-hot sand and dashed it into the face of his antagonist. Fassman, who was much the more powerful of the two, was seriously burned. He instantly grasped his antagonist, dragged him down, and beat him savagely with his hot pan, amidst roars of laughter from the beer-stupefied bacchanals.

Another adventurer named Fassman, who had written books and had a lot of literary pretensions, came to Berlin and got introduced to the Tabagie. He was very similar to Gundling in character, and the two never got along. Fassman could be quite sarcastic and bitter in his speech. One evening, as the king and his smoking cabinet sat surrounded by the clouds of smoke they were exhaling, and were all muddled with tobacco and beer—since the king himself was a heavy drinker—Fassman made some cutting remarks that so enraged Gundling that he grabbed his pan of burning peat and hot sand and threw it into his opponent's face. Fassman, being much stronger of the two, was seriously burned. He immediately tackled Gundling, brought him down, and savagely beat him with the hot pan, all while the beer-fogged crowd roared with laughter.

The half-intoxicated king gravely suggests that such conduct is hardly seemly among gentlemen; that the duel is the more chivalric way of settling such difficulties. Fassman challenges Gundling. They meet with pistols. It is understood by the seconds that it is to be rather a Pickwickian encounter. The trembling Gundling, when he sees his antagonist before him, with the deadly weapon in his hand, throws his pistol away, which his considerate friends had harmlessly loaded with powder only, declaring that he would not shoot any man, or have any man shoot him. Fassman sternly advances with his harmless pistol, and shoots the powder into Gundling’s wig. It blazes into a flame. With a shriek Gundling falls to the ground as if dead. A bucket of water extinguishes the flames, and roars of laughter echo over the chivalric field of combat.

The slightly intoxicated king seriously suggests that this behavior isn’t fitting for gentlemen and that a duel is a more honorable way to resolve these issues. Fassman challenges Gundling. They agree to meet with pistols. The seconds understand that it’s meant to be more of a lighthearted encounter. When the nervous Gundling sees his opponent in front of him, holding the lethal weapon, he throws his pistol away, which his thoughtful friends had loaded with just powder, stating that he wouldn’t shoot anyone or let anyone shoot him. Fassman sternly moves forward with his harmless pistol and aims the powder at Gundling’s wig. It ignites in flames. With a scream, Gundling collapses as if he’s dead. A bucket of water puts out the fire, and roars of laughter fill the air across the once chivalrous battlefield.

Such was the Tobacco Parliament in its trivial aspects. But it had also its serious functions. Many questions were discussed there which stirred men’s souls, and which roused the ambition or the wrath of the stern old king to the utmost pitch.

Such was the Tobacco Parliament in its trivial aspects. But it also had serious functions. Many questions were debated there that ignited people’s passions and provoked the ambition or anger of the tough old king to the highest degree.

We have now reached the year 1726. The Emperor of Germany declares that he can never give his consent to the double marriage with the English princes. Frederick William, who is not at all fond of his wife’s relatives, and is annoyed by the hesitancy which his father-in-law has manifested in reference to it, is also turning his obstinate will against the nuptial alliance. A more imperative and inflexible man never breathed. This year the unhappy wife of George I. died, unreconciled, wretched, exasperated, after thirty years’ captivity in the castle of Ahlden. Darker and darker seemed the gloom which enveloped the path of Sophie Dorothee. She still clung to the marriages as the dearest hope of her heart. It was with her an ever-present thought. But Frederick William was the most obdurate and obstinate of mortals.

We have now reached the year 1726. The Emperor of Germany declares that he can never agree to the double marriage with the English princes. Frederick William, who doesn’t care much for his wife’s relatives and is frustrated by his father-in-law's hesitation about it, is also firmly against the marriage alliance. A more demanding and unyielding man never existed. This year, the unfortunate wife of George I passed away, unresolved, miserable, and furious, after thirty years of confinement in the castle of Ahlden. The darkness surrounding Sophie Dorothee’s path seemed to deepen. She still held onto the marriages as her greatest hope. It was a constant thought for her. But Frederick William was the most stubborn and obstinate person imaginable.

“The wide, overarching sky,” writes Carlyle, “looks down on49 no more inflexible sovereign man than him, in the red-collared blue coat and white leggins, with the bamboo in his hand; a peaceable, capacious, not ill-given sovereign man, if you will let him have his way; but to bar his way, to tweak the nose of his sovereign royalty, and ignominiously force him into another way, that is an enterprise no man or devil, or body of men or devils, need attempt. The first step in such an attempt will require to be the assassination of Frederick Wilhelm, for you may depend upon it, royal Sophie, so long as he is alive the feat can not be done.”

“The vast, wide-open sky,” writes Carlyle, “looks down on49 no more unyielding ruler than him, in the red-collared blue coat and white leggings, with the bamboo in his hand; a calm, generous, not unyielding ruler, if you let him have his way; but to block his path, to challenge the authority of his royal status, and shamefully force him to take another route, is an undertaking no man or devil, or group of men or devils, should attempt. The first step in such an endeavor would ultimately require the assassination of Frederick Wilhelm, for you can be sure, royal Sophie, that as long as he is alive, the task cannot be accomplished.”

While these scenes were transpiring the Crown Prince was habitually residing at Potsdam, a favorite royal residence about seventeen miles west from Berlin. Here he was rigidly attending to his duties in the giant regiment. We have now, in our narrative, reached the year 1727. Fritz is fifteen years of age. He is attracting attention by his vivacity, his ingenuous, agreeable manners, and his fondness for polite literature. He occasionally is summoned by his father to the Smoking Cabinet. But the delicacy of his physical organization is such that he loathes tobacco, and only pretends to smoke, with mock gravity puffing from his empty, white clay pipe. Neither has he any relish for the society which he meets there. Though faithful to the mechanical duties of the drill, they were very irksome to him. His books and his flute were his chief joy. Voltaire was just then rising to celebrity in France. His writings began to attract the attention of literary men throughout Europe. Fritz, in his youthful enthusiasm, was charmed by them. In the latter part of June, 1729, a courier brought the intelligence to Berlin that George I. had suddenly died of apoplexy. He was on a journey to Hanover when he was struck down on the road. Almost insensible, he was conveyed, on the full gallop, to Osnabrück, where his brother, who was a bishop, resided, and where medical aid could be obtained. But the shaft was fatal. At midnight his carriage reached Osnabrück. The old man, sixty-seven years of age, was heard to murmur, “It is all over with me,” and his spirit passed away to the judgment.

While these events were happening, the Crown Prince was typically living in Potsdam, a favorite royal residence about seventeen miles west of Berlin. He was diligently focused on his responsibilities in the large regiment. At this point in our story, it’s now the year 1727. Fritz is fifteen years old. He’s grabbing attention with his lively personality, charming demeanor, and passion for polite literature. Occasionally, his father calls him to the Smoking Cabinet. However, his delicate health makes him detest tobacco, and he only pretends to smoke, puffing from his empty white clay pipe with a serious look. He also doesn’t enjoy the company he finds there. Although he faithfully completes the mechanical tasks during drill, they feel tedious to him. His main joys are his books and his flute. At this time, Voltaire was just beginning to gain fame in France, and his writings started to catch the attention of literary figures across Europe. Fritz, in his youthful excitement, was captivated by his work. In late June 1729, a courier arrived in Berlin with news that George I had suddenly died of a stroke. He was on his way to Hanover when he was struck down on the road. Almost unconscious, he was rushed at full speed to Osnabrück, where his brother, a bishop, lived and medical help could be found. However, it was too late. His carriage arrived in Osnabrück at midnight. The old man, aged sixty-seven, was heard to murmur, “It is all over with me,” and then his spirit departed for judgment.

The death of George I. affected the strange Frederick William very deeply. He not only shed tears, but, if we may be pardoned the expression, blubbered like a child. His health seemed50 to fail, and hypochondria, in its most melancholy form, tormented him. As is not unusual in such cases, he became excessively religious. Every enjoyment was deemed sinful, if we except the indulgence in an ungovernable temper, which the self-righteous king made no attempt to curb. Wilhelmina, describing this state of things with her graphic pen, writes:

The death of George I hit the odd Frederick William hard. He not only cried but, if we can say it that way, sobbed like a child. His health seemed to decline, and he was plagued by hypochondria in its deepest form. As often happens in these situations, he became overly religious. Every pleasure was seen as sinful, except for losing his temper, which the self-righteous king never tried to control. Wilhelmina, painting this picture with her vivid writing, says:

“He condemned all pleasures; damnable all of them, he said. You were to speak of nothing but the Word of God only. All other conversation was forbidden. It was always he who carried on the improving talk at table, where he did the office of reader, as if it had been a refectory of monks. The king treated us to a sermon every afternoon. His valet de chambre gave out a psalm, which we all sang. You had to listen to this sermon with as much devout attention as if it had been an apostle’s. My brother and I had all the mind in the world to laugh. We tried hard to keep from laughing, but often we burst out. Thereupon reprimand, with all the anathemas of the Church hurled on us, which we had to take with a contrite, penitent air—a thing not easy to bring your face to at the moment.”

“He condemned all pleasures; they were all damnable, he said. You were only supposed to talk about the Word of God. Any other conversation was off-limits. He was always the one leading the serious discussions at the table, acting like it was a monk's refectory. The king treated us to a sermon every afternoon. His valet de chambre would announce a psalm that we all sang. You had to listen to this sermon with as much devotion as if it were delivered by an apostle. My brother and I found it hard not to laugh. We tried really hard to hold it in, but we often burst out laughing. Then came the reprimands, with all the church’s punishments thrown at us, which we had to accept with a contrite, penitent look—a tough thing to manage at that moment.”

In this frame of mind, the king began to talk seriously of abdicating in favor of Frederick, and of retiring from the cares of state to a life of religious seclusion in his country seat at Wusterhausen. He matured his plan quite to the details. Wilhelmina thus describes it:

In this mindset, the king started to seriously consider stepping down in favor of Frederick and retreating from the responsibilities of governance to lead a life of religious solitude at his estate in Wusterhausen. He developed his plan fully, down to the details. Wilhelmina describes it like this:

“He used to say that he would reserve for himself ten thousand crowns a year, and retire with the queen and his daughters to Wusterhausen. ‘There,’ added he, ‘I will pray to God, and manage the farming economy, while my wife and girls take care of the household matters. You, Wilhelmina, are clever; I will give you the inspection of the linen, which you shall mend and keep in order, taking good charge of laundry matters. Frederica, who is miserly, shall have charge of all the stores of the house. Charlotte shall go to market and buy our provisions. My wife shall take charge of the little children and of the kitchen.’”

“He used to say that he would set aside ten thousand crowns each year and retire with the queen and his daughters to Wusterhausen. ‘There,’ he added, ‘I will pray to God and manage the farming, while my wife and girls handle the household. You, Wilhelmina, are smart; I will assign you to oversee the linens, which you will mend and keep organized, handling all laundry matters. Frederica, who is stingy, will be in charge of all the household supplies. Charlotte will go to the market and buy our groceries. My wife will take care of the little kids and run the kitchen.’”

At that time the family consisted of nine children. Next to Wilhelmina and Fritz came Frederica, thirteen; Charlotte, eleven; Sophie Dorothee, eight; Ulrique, seven; August Wilhelm, five; Amelia, four; and Henry, a babe in arms.

At that time, the family had nine children. Next to Wilhelmina and Fritz were Frederica, thirteen; Charlotte, eleven; Sophie Dorothee, eight; Ulrique, seven; August Wilhelm, five; Amelia, four; and Henry, a baby in arms.

51 Some of the courtiers, in order to divert the king from his melancholy, and from these ideas of abdication, succeeded in impressing upon him the political necessity of visiting Augustus, the King of Poland, at Dresden. The king did not intend to take Fritz with him. But Wilhelmina adroitly whispered a word to Baron Suhm, the Polish embassador, and obtained a special invitation for the Crown Prince. It is a hundred miles from Berlin to Dresden—a distance easily traversed by post in a day. It was the middle of January, 1728, when the Prussian king reached Dresden, followed the day after by his son. They were sumptuously entertained for four weeks in a continuous round of magnificent amusements, from which the melancholic King of Prussia recoiled, but could not well escape.

51 Some of the courtiers, trying to lift the king's spirits and distract him from his thoughts of stepping down, convinced him of the political necessity of visiting Augustus, the King of Poland, in Dresden. The king hadn't planned to take Fritz with him. However, Wilhelmina cleverly mentioned it to Baron Suhm, the Polish ambassador, and secured a special invitation for the Crown Prince. It’s a hundred miles from Berlin to Dresden—a trip that can easily be made by post in a day. It was mid-January 1728 when the Prussian king arrived in Dresden, followed by his son the next day. They were lavishly entertained for four weeks in a nonstop array of extravagant activities, which the melancholic King of Prussia found overwhelming, but couldn’t really avoid.

Augustus, King of Poland, called “Augustus the Strong,” was a man of extraordinary physical vigor and muscular strength. It was said that he could break horseshoes with his hands, and crush half-crowns between his finger and thumb. He was an exceedingly profligate man, introducing to his palaces scenes of sin and shame which could scarcely have been exceeded in Rome in the most corrupt days of the Cæsars. Though Frederick William, a stanch Protestant, was a crabbed, merciless man, drinking deeply and smoking excessively, he was irreproachable in morals, according to the ordinary standard. Augustus, nominally a Catholic, and zealously advocating political Catholicism, though a good-natured, rather agreeable man, recognized no other law of life than his own pleasure.

Augustus, King of Poland, known as “Augustus the Strong,” was a man of incredible physical strength and power. It was said that he could break horseshoes with his bare hands and crush half-crowns between his fingers. He led a wildly extravagant lifestyle, bringing scenes of vice and disgrace to his palaces that rivaled the most corrupt times in Rome during the days of the Cæsars. Frederick William, a committed Protestant, was a harsh and unyielding man, who drank heavily and smoked a lot, but was considered morally upright by common standards. Augustus, who was officially a Catholic and actively promoted political Catholicism, was a good-natured and generally pleasant guy, but he followed no other rule in life than his own enjoyment.

Augustus had formed apparently the deliberate resolve to test his visitor by the most seductive and adroitly-arranged temptations. But, so far as Frederick William was concerned, he utterly failed. Upon one occasion his Prussian majesty, when conducted by Augustus, whirled around and indignantly left the room. That evening, through his minister, Grumkow, he informed the King of Poland that if there were any repetition of such scenes he would immediately leave Dresden.

Augustus seemed to have made a clear decision to challenge his guest with the most tempting and cleverly arranged lures. However, he completely failed when it came to Frederick William. On one occasion, when Augustus was showing him around, the Prussian king suddenly turned around and angrily left the room. That evening, through his minister, Grumkow, he informed the King of Poland that if such scenes occurred again, he would leave Dresden right away.

Fritz, however, had not his father’s strength to resist the allurements of this wicked court. He was but sixteen years of age. From childhood he had been kept secluded from the world, and had been reared under the sternest discipline. He was remarkably handsome, full of vivacity, which qualified him to shine52 in any society, and was heir to the Prussian monarchy. He was, consequently, greatly caressed, and every conceivable inducement was presented to him to lure him into the paths of guilty pleasure. He fell. From such a fall one never on earth recovers. Even though repentance and reformation come, a scar is left upon the soul which time can not efface.

Fritz, however, didn’t have his father’s strength to resist the temptations of this corrupt court. He was just sixteen years old. Ever since he was a child, he had been kept away from the world and raised under strict discipline. He was extremely handsome, full of energy, which made him stand out in any social setting, and he was the heir to the Prussian monarchy. Because of this, he was lavishly adored, and every possible temptation was thrown at him to draw him into a life of sinful pleasure. He fell. Once you fall like that, you can never truly recover. Even if you find remorse and try to change, a scar remains on the soul that time cannot erase.

This visit to Dresden, so fatal to Fritz, was closed on the 12th of February. The dissipation of those four weeks introduced the Crown Prince to habits which have left an indelible stain upon his reputation, and which poisoned his days. Upon his return to Potsdam he was seized with a fit of sickness, and for many years his health remained feeble. But he had entered upon the downward course. His chosen companions were those who were in sympathy with his newly-formed tastes. The career of dissipation into which the young prince had plunged could not be concealed from his eagle-eyed father. The king’s previous dislike to his son was converted into contempt and hatred, which feelings were at times developed in almost insane ebullitions of rage.

This visit to Dresden, which turned out to be disastrous for Fritz, ended on February 12th. The distractions of those four weeks introduced the Crown Prince to habits that left a permanent mark on his reputation and tainted his life. When he returned to Potsdam, he fell seriously ill, and for many years his health stayed weak. But he had already started down a slippery slope. His chosen friends were those who resonated with his new tastes. The wild lifestyle the young prince had embraced couldn't be hidden from his father, who had sharp eyes. The king's previous dislike for his son transformed into contempt and hatred, which occasionally erupted into almost crazed fits of rage.

Still the queen-mother, Sophie Dorothee, clung to the double marriage. Her brother, George II., was now King of England. His son Fred, who had been intended for Wilhelmina, was not a favorite of his father’s, and had not yet been permitted to go to England. In May, 1728, he was twenty-one years of age. He was living idly in Hanover, impatient to wed his cousin Wilhelmina, who was then nineteen years of age. He seems to have secretly contemplated, in conference with Wilhelmina’s mother, Sophie Dorothee, a trip incognito to Berlin, where he would marry the princess clandestinely, and then leave it with the royal papas to settle the difficulty the best way they could. The plan was not executed. Wilhelmina manifested coquettish indifference to the whole matter. She, however, writes that Queen Sophie was so confidently expecting him that “she took every ass or mule for his royal highness.”

Still the queen-mother, Sophie Dorothee, held on to the idea of the double marriage. Her brother, George II, was now King of England. His son Fred, who was supposed to marry Wilhelmina, wasn't a favorite of his father's and hadn't been allowed to go to England yet. In May 1728, he turned twenty-one. He was living aimlessly in Hanover, eager to marry his cousin Wilhelmina, who was nineteen at the time. He seemed to have secretly considered, in talks with Wilhelmina's mother, Sophie Dorothee, an incognito trip to Berlin where he would secretly marry the princess and then leave it to the royal fathers to sort out the situation. The plan didn't happen. Wilhelmina showed a flirtatious indifference to the whole idea. However, she noted that Queen Sophie was so sure he would come that “she mistook every donkey or mule for his royal highness.”

In May the King of Poland returned the visit of Frederick William. He came with a numerous retinue and in great splendor. During the past year his unhappy wife had died; and he, then fifty-five years of age, was seeking to bargain for the hand of Wilhelmina, hoping, by an alliance with Prussia, to promote53 some of his political schemes. The wicked old Polish king was much broken by age and his “terrible debaucheries.” He had recently suffered the amputation of two toes from an ulcerated foot, which no medical skill could cure. He was brought into the palace at Berlin in a sedan, covered with red velvet embroidered with gold. Wilhelmina had no suspicion of the object of his visit, and was somewhat surprised by the intensity of his gaze and his glowing compliments. Diplomatic obstacles arose which silenced the question of the marriage before Wilhelmina knew that it had been contemplated.

In May, the King of Poland returned Frederick William's visit. He arrived with a large entourage and in grand style. The previous year, his unfortunate wife had passed away, and now, at fifty-five, he was trying to negotiate for the hand of Wilhelmina, hoping that an alliance with Prussia would help advance some of his political goals. The wicked old Polish king was weakened by age and his "terrible debaucheries." He had recently undergone the amputation of two toes due to an infected foot that no doctor could heal. He was brought into the palace in Berlin in a sedan chair, draped in red velvet embroidered with gold. Wilhelmina had no idea why he was there and was somewhat taken aback by the intensity of his stare and his lavish compliments. Diplomatic issues came up that put the marriage discussion on hold before Wilhelmina even realized it was being considered.

Fritz had been for some time confined to his chamber and to his bed. He was now getting out again. By his mother’s persuasion he wrote to his aunt, Queen Caroline of England, expressing, in the strongest terms, his love for her daughter the Princess Amelia, and his unalterable determination never to marry unless he could lead her to the altar. Though Frederick William knew nothing of these intrigues, he hated his son with daily increasing venom. Sometimes, in a surly fit, he would not speak to him or recognize him. Again he would treat him with studied contempt, at the table refusing to give him any food, leaving him to fast while the others were eating. Not unfrequently, according to Wilhelmina’s account, he even boxed his ears, and smote him with his cane. Wilhelmina gives us one of the letters of her brother to his father about this time, and the characteristic paternal answer. Frederick writes, under date of September 11, 1728, from Wusterhausen:

Fritz had been stuck in his room and in bed for a while, but he was finally getting out again. With his mother’s encouragement, he wrote to his aunt, Queen Caroline of England, expressing, in the strongest terms, his love for her daughter, Princess Amelia, and his firm determination never to marry unless he could marry her. Although Frederick William was unaware of these schemes, his hatred for his son grew stronger every day. Sometimes, in a bad mood, he would ignore Fritz completely or refuse to acknowledge him. At other times, he would treat him with deliberate disdain, not allowing him to eat at the table and making him fast while everyone else enjoyed their meals. According to Wilhelmina’s account, he often even slapped Fritz and hit him with his cane. Wilhelmina shares one of her brother’s letters to their father from around this time, along with the typical paternal response. Frederick wrote, on September 11, 1728, from Wusterhausen:

My dear Papa,—I have not, for a long while, presumed to come near my dear papa, partly because he forbade me, but chiefly because I had reason to expect a still worse reception than usual; and for fear of angering my dear papa by my present request, I have preferred making it in writing to him.

My dear Papa,—I haven’t felt brave enough to approach my dear papa for a long time, partly because he asked me not to, but mainly because I feared an even harsher reaction than usual; to avoid disturbing my dear papa with my current request, I’ve decided to write it down instead.

“I therefore beg my dear papa to be gracious to me; and can here say that, after long reflection, my conscience has not accused me of any the least thing with which I could reproach myself. But if I have, against my will and knowledge, done any thing which has angered my dear papa, I herewith most submissively beg forgiveness, and hope my dear papa will lay aside that cruel hatred which I can not but notice in all his treatment of me. I54 could not otherwise suit myself to it, as I always thought I had a gracious papa, and now have to see the contrary. I take confidence, then, and hope that my dear papa will consider all this, and again be gracious to me. And in the mean while I assure him that I will never, all my days, fail with my will; and, notwithstanding his disfavor to me, remain my dear papa’s most faithful and obedient servant and son,

“I kindly ask my dear dad to be understanding towards me; I can honestly say that after a lot of reflection, my conscience hasn’t pointed out anything I should blame myself for. However, if I have, unknowingly and against my will, done something that has upset my dear dad, I sincerely ask for forgiveness and hope he can set aside that harsh resentment that I can’t help but notice in the way he treats me. I couldn’t adapt to it otherwise, as I always believed I had a loving dad, and now I see the opposite. So I’m hopeful, and I ask my dear dad to think about all this and be kind to me again. In the meantime, I assure him that I will always be willing, and despite his disfavor towards me, I will remain my dear dad’s most faithful and obedient son.”

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

The returning messenger took back the following reply. It was, as usual, ungrammatical, miserably spelled, and confused. Contemptuously the king spoke of his son in the third person, writing he and his instead of you and yours. Abruptly he commences:

The messenger who returned brought back this response. It was, as always, poorly written, badly spelled, and unclear. With disdain, the king referred to his son in the third person, using he and his instead of you and yours. He starts abruptly:

“His obstinate perverse disposition which does not love his father; for when one does every thing, and really loves one’s father, one does what the father requires, not while he is there to see it, but when his back is turned too. For the rest he knows very well that I can endure no effeminate fellow who has no human inclination in him; who puts himself to shame, can not ride or shoot; and, withal, is dirty in his person, frizzles his hair like a fool, and does not cut it off. And all this I have a thousand times reprimanded, but all in vain, and no improvement in nothing. For the rest, haughty; proud as a churl; speaks to nobody but some few, and is not popular and affable; and cuts grimaces with his face as if he were a fool; and does my will in nothing but following his own whims; no use to him in any thing else. This is the answer.

“His stubborn and defiant nature doesn't truly love his father; because when someone really loves their father, they do what their father asks, not just when he's watching, but also when he's not. Plus, he knows very well that I can't stand any weakling who lacks basic human qualities; someone who embarrasses himself, can't ride or shoot, and looks dirty, styling his hair foolishly and not trimming it. I've told him about this a thousand times, but none of it has changed, and there's been no improvement at all. Furthermore, he's arrogant; proud like a miser; only speaks to a few people and is neither popular nor friendly; he makes silly faces like a fool; and only acts according to his own whims. He has no interest in anything else. This is my response.”

Frederick William.

Frederick William.

Still the question of the marriages remained the subject of innumerable intrigues. There were several claimants for the hand of Wilhelmina, and many nuptial alliances suggested for Fritz. Frederick William proposed the marriage of Wilhelmina to Fred, the Prince of Wales, and to let the marriage of Fritz and Amelia for the present remain undecided. But England promptly replied “No; both marriages or none.” It is intimated by the ministers of the Prussian king that he was influenced in his vacillating course respecting the marriages not only by his doubts whether the English or a German alliance would be most desirable,55 but also by avarice, as he knew not what dowry he could secure with the English princess, and by jealousy, as he was very unwilling to add to the importance and the power of his hated son Fritz. He also disliked extremely his brother-in-law, George II.6

Still, the question of the marriages was the topic of countless intrigues. There were several contenders for Wilhelmina’s hand, and many potential marriages suggested for Fritz. Frederick William proposed marrying Wilhelmina to Fred, the Prince of Wales, and to leave the marriage of Fritz and Amelia unresolved for now. But England quickly responded, “No; both marriages or none.” It’s suggested by the ministers of the Prussian king that his wavering stance on the marriages was influenced not only by his uncertainty over whether an English or a German alliance would be preferable, 55 but also by greed, as he was unsure of the dowry he could secure with the English princess, and by jealousy, since he was very reluctant to enhance the status and power of his despised son Fritz. He was also extremely averse to his brother-in-law, George II.

About the middle of January, 1729, the king went upon a hunt with his companions, taking with him Fritz, who he knew detested the rough barbaric sport. This hunting expedition to the wilds of Brandenburg and Pommern was one of great renown. Three thousand six hundred and two wild swine these redoubtable Nimrods boasted as the fruits of their prowess. Frederick William was an economical prince. He did not allow one pound of this vast mass of wild pork to be wasted. Every man, according to his family, was bound to take a certain portion at a fixed price. From this fierce raid through swamps and jungles in pursuit of wild boars the king returned to Potsdam. Soon after he was taken sick. Having ever been a hard drinker, it is not strange that his disease proved to be the gout. He was any thing but an amiable patient. The pangs of the disease extorted from him savage growls, and he vented his spleen upon all who came within the reach of his crutch or the hearing of his tongue. Still, even when suffering most severely, he never omitted any administrative duties. His secretaries every morning came in with their papers, and he issued his orders with his customary rigorous devotion to business. It was remarked that this strange man would never allow a profane expression or an indelicate allusion in his presence. This sickness lasted five weeks, and Wilhelmina writes, “The pains of Purgatory could not equal those which we endured.”

Around mid-January 1729, the king went hunting with his friends, bringing along Fritz, knowing he really disliked this rough and wild sport. This hunting trip in the wilderness of Brandenburg and Pommern was quite famous. These skilled hunters bragged about capturing three thousand six hundred and two wild boars. Frederick William was a frugal king. He made sure not a single pound of this massive amount of wild pork went to waste. Each man, depending on his family size, had to take a specific share at a set price. After this intense hunt through swamps and forests chasing wild boars, the king returned to Potsdam. Shortly after, he fell ill. Having always been a heavy drinker, it wasn’t surprising that he came down with gout. He was far from being a pleasant patient. The pain from his illness made him growl fiercely, and he took out his frustration on anyone within reach of his crutch or who could hear him. Yet, even while in great pain, he never neglected his administrative duties. His secretaries came in every morning with their papers, and he continued to issue orders with his usual strict commitment to work. It was noted that this unusual man would not tolerate any foul language or inappropriate remarks in his presence. This illness lasted five weeks, and Wilhelmina wrote, “The pains of Purgatory could not equal those which we endured.”

During this sickness a very curious scene occurred, characteristic of the domestic life of this royal family. The second daughter, Frederica Louisa, “beautiful as an angel, and a spoiled child of fifteen,” was engaged to the Marquis of Anspach. We will allow Wilhelmina to describe the event which took place at the56 table. It was early in March, 1729, while the king was still suffering from the gout:

During this illness, a very interesting scene happened, reflecting the home life of this royal family. The second daughter, Frederica Louisa, “beautiful as an angel and a pampered 15-year-old,” was engaged to the Marquis of Anspach. We’ll let Wilhelmina describe the event that occurred at the56 table. It was early in March, 1729, while the king was still dealing with gout:

“At table his majesty told the queen that he had letters from Anspach; the young marquis to be at Berlin in May for his wedding; that M. Bremer, his tutor, was just coming with the ring of betrothal for Louisa. He asked my sister if that gave her pleasure, and how she would regulate her housekeeping when married. My sister had got into the way of telling him whatever she thought, and home truths sometimes, without his taking it ill. She answered, with her customary frankness, that she would have a good table, which should be delicately served, and, added she, ‘which shall be better than yours. And if I have children I will not maltreat them like you, nor force them to eat what they have an aversion to.’

“At the table, the king told the queen that he had received letters from Anspach; the young marquis would be in Berlin in May for his wedding, and that M. Bremer, his tutor, was on his way with the engagement ring for Louisa. He asked my sister if that made her happy, and how she planned to manage her household once married. My sister had gotten used to telling him exactly what she thought, including some home truths, and he never took offense. She replied, with her usual honesty, that she would have a nice table, served elegantly, and added, ‘which will be better than yours. And if I have kids, I won’t mistreat them like you do, nor force them to eat things they dislike.’”

“‘What do you mean by that?’ replied the king; ‘what is there wanting at my table?’

“‘What do you mean by that?’ replied the king; ‘what is missing at my table?’

“‘There is this wanting,’ she said, ‘that one can not have enough; and the little there is consists of coarse pot-herbs that nobody can eat.’

“‘There’s this desire,’ she said, ‘that you can never satisfy; and the little you do have is just rough vegetables that no one can eat.’”

“The king, as was not unnatural, had begun to get angry at her first answer. This last put him quite in a fury. But all his anger fell on my brother and me. He first threw a plate at my brother’s head, who ducked out of the way. He then let fly another at me, which I avoided in like manner. A hail-storm of abuse followed these first hostilities. He rose into a passion against the queen, reproaching her with the bad training which she gave her children, and, addressing my brother, said,

"The king, as was to be expected, started to get angry at her first response. This last one drove him completely mad. But all his anger was directed at my brother and me. He first threw a plate at my brother's head, who ducked just in time. Then he hurled another one at me, which I also managed to dodge. A storm of insults followed these initial attacks. He erupted in rage against the queen, blaming her for the poor upbringing of her children, and turned to my brother, saying,

“‘You have reason to curse your mother, for it is she who causes your being an ill-governed fellow. I had a preceptor,’ continued he, ‘who was an honest man. I remember always a story which he told me in his youth. There was a man at Carthage who had been condemned to die for many crimes he had committed. While they were leading him to execution he desired he might speak to his mother. They brought his mother. He came near, as if to whisper something to her, and bit away a piece of her ear. “I treat you thus,” said he, “to make you an example to all parents who take no heed to bring up their children in the practice of virtue.” Make the application,’ continued he, always addressing my brother; and, getting no answer57 from him, he again set to abusing us till he could speak no longer.

“‘You have every reason to blame your mother, since she’s the one responsible for you being such a poorly-behaved guy. I had a teacher,’ he went on, ‘who was a good man. I always remember a story he shared from his youth. There was a man in Carthage who had been sentenced to death for many crimes. As they were taking him to be executed, he asked to speak to his mother. They brought her to him. He leaned in as if to whisper something and then bit a piece of her ear off. “I do this,” he said, “to make you an example for all parents who neglect to raise their children in the ways of virtue.” Draw your own conclusions,’ he continued, still directing his words at my brother; and, getting no response from him, he resumed his insults until he could no longer speak.57

ROYALTY AT DINNER.

“We rose from table. As we had to pass near him in going out, he aimed a great blow at me with his crutch, which, if I had not jerked away from it, would have ended me. He chased me for a while in his wheel-chair, but the people drawing it gave me time to escape to the queen’s chamber.”

“We got up from the table. As we had to walk past him on our way out, he swung his crutch at me with full force, which would have killed me if I hadn't pulled away in time. He chased me for a bit in his wheelchair, but the people pushing it allowed me to slip away to the queen’s chamber.”

That evening Wilhelmina was taken sick with burning fever and severe pain. Still she was compelled to rise from her bed and attend a court party. The next morning she was worse. The king, upon being told of it, exclaimed gruffly, “Ill? I will58 cure you!” and compelled her to swallow a large draught of wine. Soon her sickness showed itself to be small-pox. Great was the consternation of her mother, from the fear that, even should she survive, her beauty would be so marred that the English prince would no longer desire her as his bride. Fortunately she escaped without a scar.

That evening, Wilhelmina got seriously ill with a high fever and intense pain. Still, she had to get out of bed and go to a court party. The next morning, she felt even worse. When the king heard about it, he barked, “Sick? I'll fix you!” and made her drink a big glass of wine. Soon, it became clear that she had smallpox. Her mother was extremely worried, fearing that even if she survived, her beauty would be ruined and the English prince would no longer want her as his bride. Fortunately, she came through it without a scar.


CHAPTER III.
THE SUFFERINGS OF FRITZ AND WILHELMINA.

The King an Artist.—Cruel Exactions of the King.—Conflicts of Etiquette.—Quarrel with George II.—Nuptial Intrigues.—Energetic Action of Frederick William.—Marriage of Frederica Louisa.—Fritz and his Flute.—Wrath of the King.—Beats Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Attempts to strangle Fritz.—The Hunt at Wusterhausen.—Intrigues in reference to the Double Marriage.—Anguish of Wilhelmina.—Cruelty of her Mother.—Resolve of Fritz to escape to England.

The King as an Artist.—The King's Strict Expectations.—Protocol Conflicts.—Disagreement with George II.—Marriage Plots.—Frederick William's Firm Decisions.—Frederica Louisa's Wedding.—Fritz and His Flute.—The King's Fury.—He Hits Wilhelmina and Fritz.—Attempts to Strangle Fritz.—The Hunt at Wusterhausen.—Plans for the Double Marriage.—Wilhelmina's Suffering.—Her Mother's Brutality.—Fritz's Resolve to flee to England.

While Frederick William was confined to his room, tormented by the gout, he endeavored to beguile the hours in painting in oil. Some of these paintings still exist, with the epigraph, “Painted by Frederick William in his torments.” Wilhelmina writes:

While Frederick William was stuck in his room, suffering from gout, he tried to pass the time by painting with oils. Some of these paintings still exist, marked with the caption, “Painted by Frederick William in his pain.” Wilhelmina writes:

“For the most part, one of his own grenadiers was the model from which he copied. And when the portrait had more color in it than the original, he was in the habit of coloring the cheeks of the soldier to correspond with the picture. Enchanted with the fruits of his genius, he showed them to his courtiers, and asked their opinion concerning them. As he would have been very angry with any one who had criticised them, he was quite sure of being gratified with admiration.

“For the most part, he used one of his own grenadiers as the model. And when the portrait had more color than the original, he would touch up the soldier's cheeks to match the painting. Delighted with his work, he showed it to his courtiers and asked for their thoughts on it. Since he would have been very upset if anyone criticized them, he was confident he would receive admiration.”

“‘Well,’ said he one day to an attendant, who was extolling the beauties of one of his pictures, ‘how much do you think that picture would bring at a sale?’

“‘Well,’ he said one day to an attendant, who was praising the beauty of one of his pictures, ‘how much do you think that picture would sell for?’”

“‘Sire, it would be cheap at a hundred ducats.’

“‘Sir, it would be a good deal at a hundred ducats.’”

“‘You shall have it for fifty,’ said the king, ‘because you are a good judge, and I am therefore anxious to do you a favor.’

“‘You can have it for fifty,’ said the king, ‘since you are a good judge, and I want to do you a favor.’”

“The poor courtier,” Wilhelmina adds, “obliged to become possessor of this miserable performance, and to pay so dear for it, determined for the future to be more circumspect in his admiration.”

“The poor courtier,” Wilhelmina adds, “forced to take ownership of this terrible performance and pay such a high price for it, decided from now on to be more careful in his admiration.”

59 While the king was thus suffering the pangs of the gout, his irascibility vented itself upon his wife and children. “We were obliged,” says Wilhelmina, “to appear at nine o’clock in the morning in his room. We dined there, and did not dare to leave it even for a moment. Every day was passed by the king in invectives against my brother and myself. He no longer called me any thing but ‘the English blackguard.’ My brother was named the ‘rascal Fritz.’ He obliged us to eat and drink the things for which we had an aversion. Every day was marked by some sinister event. It was impossible to raise one’s eyes without seeing some unhappy people tormented in one way or other. The king’s restlessness did not allow him to remain in bed. He had himself placed in a chair on rollers, and was thus dragged all over the palace. His two arms rested upon crutches, which supported them. We always followed this triumphal car, like unhappy captives who are about to undergo their sentence.”

59 While the king was suffering from gout, he took out his irritability on his wife and children. “We had to,” Wilhelmina says, “show up at nine o’clock in the morning in his room. We ate there and didn’t dare leave, not even for a moment. Each day was filled with the king’s angry rants against my brother and me. He referred to me only as ‘the English blackguard.’ My brother was called ‘rascal Fritz.’ He forced us to eat and drink things we hated. Every day had some dark event. It was impossible to look up without seeing some unfortunate people tormented in one way or another. The king's restlessness kept him from staying in bed. He had himself put in a chair on rollers, and was dragged all over the palace. His arms rested on crutches for support. We always followed this makeshift throne like miserable captives awaiting our sentence.”

We have now reached the summer of 1729. George II. was a weak-minded, though a proud, conceited man, who, as King of England, assumed airs of superiority which greatly annoyed his irascible and petulant brother-in-law, Frederick William. Flushed with his new dignity, he visited his hereditary domain of Hanover. The journey led him through a portion of the Prussian territory. Courtesy required that George II. should announce that intention to the Prussian king. Courtesy also required that, as the British monarch passed over Prussian soil, Frederick William should furnish him with free post-horses. “I will furnish the post-horses,” said Frederick William, “if the king apprise me of his intention. If he do not, I shall do nothing about it.” George did not write. In affected unconsciousness that there was any such person in the world as the Prussian king, he crossed the Prussian territory, paid for his own post-horses, and did not even condescend to give Frederick William any notice of his arrival in Hanover. The King of Prussia, who could not but be conscious of the vast inferiority of Prussia to England, stung to the quick by this contemptuous treatment, growled ferociously in the Tobacco Parliament.

We’ve now arrived at the summer of 1729. George II was a proud and arrogant man, despite being weak-minded, who, as King of England, carried himself with an air of superiority that really annoyed his irritable brother-in-law, Frederick William. Feeling important, he decided to visit his hereditary lands in Hanover. The trip took him through some of Prussian territory. It was customary for George II to inform the Prussian king of his plans. It was also expected that while the British monarch traveled through Prussian land, Frederick William would provide him with free post-horses. “I’ll provide the post-horses,” Frederick William said, “if the king lets me know he’s coming. If he doesn’t, I won’t do anything about it.” George didn’t write. Pretending not to acknowledge the existence of the Prussian king, he crossed through the Prussian territory, paid for his own post-horses, and didn’t even bother to inform Frederick William of his arrival in Hanover. The King of Prussia, acutely aware of Prussia’s vast inferiority to England and deeply hurt by this dismissive treatment, fumed angrily in the Tobacco Parliament.

The English minister at Berlin, Dubourgay, wrote to Hanover, urging that some notification of the king’s arrival should be sent60 to the Prussian court to appease the angry sovereign. George replied through Lord Townshend that, “under the circumstances, it is not necessary.” Thus the two kings were no longer on speaking terms. It is amusing, while at the same time it is humiliating, to observe these traits of frail childhood thus developed in full-grown men wearing crowns. When private men or kings are in such a state of latent hostility, an open rupture is quite certain soon to follow. George accused Frederick William of recruiting soldiers in Hanover. In retaliation, he seized some Prussian soldiers caught in Hanoverian territory. There was an acre or so of land, called the “Meadow of Clamei,” which both Hanover and Brandenburg claimed. The grass, about eight cart-loads, had been cut by Brandenburg, and was well dried.

The English minister in Berlin, Dubourgay, wrote to Hanover, urging that some notice of the king’s arrival be sent60 to the Prussian court to calm the upset king. George responded through Lord Townshend that, “given the situation, it is not needed.” So, the two kings stopped speaking to each other. It's amusing yet embarrassing to see these childish traits play out in grown men with crowns. When individuals or kings are in a state of hidden hostility like this, an open break is sure to happen soon. George accused Frederick William of enlisting soldiers in Hanover. In retaliation, he captured some Prussian soldiers found in Hanoverian territory. There was a piece of land, called the “Meadow of Clamei,” that both Hanover and Brandenburg argued over. The grass, about eight cart-loads, had been cut by Brandenburg and was nicely dried.

On the 28th of June, 1729, the population of Bühlitz, a Hanoverian border village, sallied forth with carts, escorted by a troop of horse, and, with demonstrations both defiant and exultant, raked up and carried off all the hay. The King of Prussia happened to be at that time about one hundred miles distant from Bühlitz, at Magdeburg, reviewing his troops. He was thrown into a towering passion. Sophie Dorothee, Wilhelmina, Fritz, all felt the effects of his rage. Dubourgay writes, under date of July 30, 1729:

On June 28, 1729, the people of Bühlitz, a village on the Hanoverian border, set out with carts, accompanied by a group of horsemen, and, with both defiant and triumphant displays, gathered and took all the hay. At that time, the King of Prussia was about a hundred miles away in Magdeburg, inspecting his troops. He was filled with intense anger. Sophie Dorothee, Wilhelmina, and Fritz all felt the impact of his fury. Dubourgay wrote on July 30, 1729:

“Her majesty, all in tears, complained of her situation. The king is nigh losing his senses on account of the differences with Hanover; goes from bed to bed in the night-time, and from chamber to chamber, like one whose brains are turned. Took a fit at two in the morning lately to be off to Wusterhausen. Since his return he gives himself up entirely to drink. The king will not suffer the prince royal to sit next his majesty at table, but obliges him to go to the lower end, where things are so ordered that the poor prince often rises without getting one bit, insomuch that the queen was obliged two days ago to send, by one of the servants who could be trusted, a box of cold fowls and other eatables for his royal highness’s subsistence.”

“Her majesty, in tears, complained about her situation. The king is almost losing his mind because of the issues with Hanover; he goes from bed to bed at night and from room to room, like someone who’s gone crazy. He recently had a fit at two in the morning and decided to head to Wusterhausen. Since he got back, he’s been completely giving in to drinking. The king won’t let the prince royal sit next to him at the table, forcing him to sit at the lower end, where the setup is such that the poor prince often gets up without eating anything, to the point that the queen had to send, through a trusted servant, a box of cold chicken and other food for his royal highness to eat just two days ago.”

Frederick William, in his extreme exasperation, seriously contemplated challenging George II. to a duel. In his own mind he arranged all the details—the place of meeting, the weapons, the seconds. With a stern sense of justice, characteristic of the man, he admitted that it would not be right to cause the blood61 of his subjects to flow in a quarrel which was merely personal. But the “eight cart-loads of hay” had been taken under circumstances so insulting and contemptuous as to expose the Prussian king to ridicule; and he was firm in his determination to settle the difficulty by a duel. The question was much discussed in the Tobacco Parliament. The Prussian ministers opposed in vain. “The true method, I tell you,” said the king, “is the duel, let the world cackle as it may.”

Frederick William, in his extreme frustration, seriously thought about challenging George II. to a duel. He mentally worked out all the details—the location, the weapons, the witnesses. With a strong sense of justice, typical of him, he recognized that it wouldn’t be right to spill the blood of his subjects over a personal dispute. But the "eight cart-loads of hay" had been taken under such insulting and disrespectful circumstances that it left the Prussian king open to mockery; he was resolute in his decision to resolve the issue with a duel. It was a hot topic in the Tobacco Parliament. The Prussian ministers opposed it without success. “The right way, I tell you,” said the king, “is the duel, no matter what the world says.”

But at length one of the counselors, Baron Borck, urged the following consideration: “Swords will be the weapons used. Your majesty has been very sick, is now weak, and also crippled with gout. The King of England is in health and vigor. There is great danger that your majesty may be worsted in the combat. That would render matters tenfold worse.”

But eventually, one of the advisors, Baron Borck, brought up this point: “We’ll be using swords. Your Majesty has been very ill, is currently weak, and is also suffering from gout. The King of England is healthy and strong. There’s a real risk that you could lose the fight. That would make things much worse.”

The king was staggered. War seemed the only alternative. But war would empty his money-casks, disfigure his splendid troops, and peril the lives even of his costly giants. One of these men, James Kirkman, picked up in the streets of London, cost the king six thousand dollars “before he could be inveigled, shipped, and brought to hand.” Nearly all had cost large sums of money. Such men were too valuable to be exposed to danger. Frederick William was in a state of extreme nervous excitement. There was no rest for him night or day. His deep potations did not calm his turbulent spirit. War seemed imminent. Military preparations were in vigorous progress. Ovens were constructed to bake ammunition bread. Artillery was dragged out from the arsenals. It was rumored that the Prussian troops were to march immediately upon the duchy of Mecklenburg, which was then held by George II. as an appendage to Hanover.

The king was shocked. War seemed like the only option. But war would drain his treasury, ruin his beautiful troops, and endanger the lives of his expensive giants. One of these men, James Kirkman, who had been found on the streets of London, cost the king six thousand dollars “before he could be lured, transported, and brought in.” Almost all of them had cost a lot of money. Such men were too precious to be put at risk. Frederick William was extremely anxious. He couldn’t find rest, night or day. His heavy drinking did nothing to soothe his restless spirit. War seemed likely. Military preparations were in full swing. Ovens were built to bake ammunition bread. Artillery was pulled out from the armories. It was rumored that the Prussian troops were set to march immediately on the duchy of Mecklenburg, which was then under George II as part of Hanover.

All thoughts of the double marriage were for the moment relinquished. The Czar of Russia had a son and a daughter. It was proposed to marry Wilhelmina to the son and Fritz to the daughter, and thus to secure a Russian instead of an English alliance. Harassed by these difficulties, Frederick William grew increasingly morose, venting his spite upon his wife and children. Fritz seriously contemplated escaping from his father’s abuse by flight, and to take refuge with his uncle George in England, and thus to secure his marriage with Amelia. The portraits of the62 princess which he had seen proved her to be very beautiful. All reports pronounced her to be as lovely in character as in person. He was becoming passionately attached to her. Wilhelmina was his only confidante. Regard for her alone restrained him from attempting to escape. “He would have done so long ago,” writes Dubourgay, under date of August 11, 1729, “were it not for his sister, upon whom the whole weight of his father’s resentment would then fall. Happen what will, therefore, he is resolved to share with her all the hardships which the king, his father, may be pleased to put upon her.”

All thoughts of the double marriage were set aside for the moment. The Czar of Russia had a son and a daughter. It was suggested to marry Wilhelmina to the son and Fritz to the daughter, securing a Russian alliance instead of an English one. Stressed by these complications, Frederick William grew more and more gloomy, taking out his frustrations on his wife and children. Fritz seriously thought about escaping from his father’s abuse by fleeing to his uncle George in England, which would also allow him to marry Amelia. The portraits of the princess he had seen showed her to be very beautiful. All accounts said she was as lovely in personality as she was in looks. He was becoming deeply attached to her. Wilhelmina was his only confidante. His concern for her was the only thing preventing him from trying to escape. “He would have done so long ago,” writes Dubourgay, on August 11, 1729, “if it weren't for his sister, who would then bear the full brunt of his father's anger. No matter what happens, he is determined to share all the difficulties with her that the king, his father, may impose.”

WILHELMINA.

One night, about the middle of August, as the king was tossing restlessly upon his pillow, he sprang from his bed, exclaiming63 “Eureka! I now see what will bring a settlement.” Immediately a special messenger was dispatched, with terms of compromise, to Kannegiesser, the king’s embassador at Hanover. We do not know what the propositions were. But the king was exceedingly anxious to avoid war. He had, in many respects, a very stern sense of justice, and would not do that which he considered to be wrong. When he abused his family or others he did not admit that he was acting unjustly. He assumed, and with a sort of fanatical conscientiousness, detestable as it was, that he was doing right; that they deserved the treatment. And now he earnestly desired peace, and was disposed to present the most honorable terms to avert a war.

One night, around the middle of August, as the king was restlessly tossing in his bed, he jumped up and exclaimed63 “Eureka! I’ve figured out how to reach an agreement.” He immediately sent a special messenger with compromise terms to Kannegiesser, the king’s ambassador in Hanover. We don’t know what the proposals were, but the king was very eager to avoid war. In many ways, he had a strict sense of justice and wouldn’t do anything he thought was wrong. When he took out his anger on his family or others, he didn’t see that he was being unjust. He believed, with a sort of fanatical sense of righteousness, as unpleasant as it was, that he was in the right; that they deserved the treatment he gave. Now, he genuinely wanted peace and was willing to offer the most honorable terms to prevent a war.

Kannegiesser, at Hanover, received the king’s propositions for reconciliation at ten o’clock in the morning of the 15th of August, 1729. George II. was then absent on a hunting excursion. The Prussian embassador called immediately at the council-chamber of the Hanoverian court, and informed M. Hartoff, the privy secretary, that he wished an audience with the ministry, then in session, to make a proposition to them from the Prussian court. Hartoff, who had met Kannegiesser in a room adjoining the council-chamber, reported the request to the council, and returned with the disrespectful answer that “M. Kannegiesser must defer what he has to say to some other time.”

Kannegiesser, in Hanover, received the king's proposals for reconciliation at 10 a.m. on August 15, 1729. George II was out on a hunting trip at the time. The Prussian ambassador immediately went to the council chamber of the Hanoverian court and told M. Hartoff, the privy secretary, that he wanted to speak to the ministry, which was in session, to present a proposal from the Prussian court. Hartoff, who had met Kannegiesser in a room next to the council chamber, reported the request to the council and came back with the rude response that "M. Kannegiesser must wait to share what he has to say until another time."

The Prussian minister condescended then so importunately to urge an audience, in view of the menacing state of affairs, that M. Hartoff returned to the council-chamber, and in seven minutes came back with an evasive answer, still refusing to grant an audience. The next day M. Kannegiesser called again at the council-chamber. “I let them know in the mildest terms,” he writes in his dispatch home, “that I desired to be admitted to speak with them, which was refused me a second time.” He then informed M. Hartoff that the Prussian court expected a definite answer to some propositions which had previously been sent to the council at Hanover; that he would remain two days to receive it; that, in case he did not receive it, he would call again, to remind them that an answer was desired.

The Prussian minister insisted so strongly on getting a meeting, given the serious situation, that M. Hartoff returned to the council chamber and came back in seven minutes with a vague response, still refusing to grant a meeting. The next day, M. Kannegiesser visited the council chamber again. “I informed them in the gentlest terms,” he wrote in his report back home, “that I wanted to be let in to speak with them, which was denied to me a second time.” He then told M. Hartoff that the Prussian court was expecting a clear response to some proposals that had been previously sent to the council in Hanover; that he would stay for two days to receive it; and that if he didn’t get a response, he would return to remind them that an answer was needed.

The next day M. Hartoff called at the residence of M. Kannegiesser, and informed him “that the ministers, understanding that he designed to ask an audience to-morrow to remind them64 of the answer which he demanded, wished to say that such applications were not customary among sovereign princes; that they dared not treat farther in that affair with him; that, as soon as they received instructions from his Britannic majesty, they would communicate to him the result.”

The next day, Mr. Hartoff visited Mr. Kannegiesser's house and informed him that "the ministers, realizing that you plan to ask for a meeting tomorrow to remind them of the response you requested, wanted to express that such requests are not typical among sovereign princes; that they cannot discuss this matter further with you; and that as soon as they receive instructions from His Britannic Majesty, they will inform you of the outcome."

The Prussian minister replied that he could not conceive why he should be refused an audience; that he should not fail to be at the council-chamber at eleven o’clock the next day to receive an answer to the proposals already made, and also to the proposals which he was prepared to make. He endeavored to inform Hartoff of the terms of compromise which the Prussian king was ready to present. But Hartoff refused to hear him, declaring that he had positive orders not to listen to any thing he had to say upon the subject. We will give the conclusion in the words of the Prussian minister, as found in his dispatch of the 18th of August, 1729:

The Prussian minister responded that he couldn't understand why he was being denied an audience. He insisted he would be at the council chamber at eleven o’clock the next day to receive an answer to both the proposals already made and the new proposals he was ready to present. He tried to inform Hartoff about the compromise terms that the Prussian king was willing to offer. However, Hartoff refused to listen, stating that he had strict orders not to hear anything regarding the matter. We will provide the conclusion in the words of the Prussian minister, as noted in his dispatch from August 18, 1729:

“At eleven this day I went to the council-chamber for the third time, and desired Secretary Hartoff to prevail with the ministry to allow me to speak with them, and communicate what the King of Prussia had ordered me to propose. Herr von Hartoff gave them an account of my request, and brought me, for answer, that I must wait a little, because the ministers were not yet all assembled; which I did. But after having made me stay almost an hour, and after the president of the council was come, Herr von Hartoff came out to me and repeated what he had said yesterday, in very positive and absolute terms, that the ministers were resolved not to see me, and had expressly forbid him taking any paper at my hands.

“At eleven today, I went to the council chamber for the third time and asked Secretary Hartoff to convince the ministry to let me speak with them and share what the King of Prussia wanted me to propose. Herr von Hartoff told them about my request and came back with the response that I needed to wait a bit longer because not all the ministers were there yet; so I did. However, after making me wait almost an hour, and after the council president arrived, Herr von Hartoff came out to me and repeated what he had said yesterday, in very clear and definitive terms, that the ministers were determined not to see me and had specifically forbidden him from accepting any documents from me.

“To which I replied, that this was very hard usage, and the world would see how the King of Prussia would relish it. But having strict orders from his majesty, my most gracious master, to make a declaration to the ministers of Hanover in his name, and finding that Herr von Hartoff would neither receive it nor take a copy of it, I had only to tell him that I was under the necessity of leaving it in writing, and had brought the paper with me; and that now, as the council were pleased to refuse to take it, I was obliged to leave the said declaration on a table in an adjoining room, in the presence of Herr von Hartoff and other secretaries of the council, whom I desired to lay it before the ministry.

“To which I replied that this was very unfair treatment, and the world would see how the King of Prussia would take it. But since I had strict orders from His Majesty, my most gracious master, to make a declaration to the ministers of Hanover in his name, and finding that Herr von Hartoff would neither accept it nor take a copy, I had to inform him that I needed to leave it in writing and had brought the document with me; and now, since the council refused to take it, I was obligated to leave the declaration on a table in an adjoining room, in the presence of Herr von Hartoff and other secretaries of the council, whom I asked to present it to the ministry.

65 “After this I went home, but had scarcely entered my apartment when a messenger returned me, by order of the ministers, the declaration, still sealed as I left it; and perceiving that I was not inclined to receive it, he laid it on my table, and immediately left the house.”

65 "After that, I went home, but I had barely gotten into my apartment when a messenger came back to me, under orders from the ministers, with the document, still sealed as I had left it; and noticing that I didn't want to accept it, he put it on my table and quickly left the house."

Having met with this repulse, Kannegiesser returned to Berlin with the report. Frederick William was exasperated in the highest degree by such treatment from a brother-in-law whom he both hated and despised. He had at his command an army in as perfect condition, both in equipment and drill, as Europe had ever seen. Within a week’s time forty-four thousand troops, horse, foot, and artillery, were rendezvoused at Magdeburg. Fritz was there, looking quite soldierly on his proud charger, at the head of his regiment of the giant guard. Vigorously they were put upon the march. George II., who had already in his boyhood felt the weight of Frederick William’s arm, and who well knew his desperate energy when once roused, was terrified. He had no forces in Hanover which could stand for an hour in opposition to the army which the Prussian king was bringing against him.

After facing this setback, Kannegiesser went back to Berlin with the news. Frederick William was extremely frustrated by the way he was treated by a brother-in-law he both hated and looked down on. He had an army in top condition, both in gear and training, unlike anything Europe had seen before. Within a week, forty-four thousand troops—cavalry, infantry, and artillery—gathered at Magdeburg. Fritz was there, looking very much the soldier on his proud horse, leading his regiment of the giant guard. They were quickly set in motion. George II, who had already experienced Frederick William’s strength as a boy and knew well how fierce he could be when provoked, was scared. He had no forces in Hanover that could withstand the army the Prussian king was sending against him.

War between Prussia and England might draw all the neighboring nations into the conflict. There was excitement in every continental court. The Pope, it is reported, was delighted. “He prays,” says Carlyle, “that Heaven would be graciously pleased to foment and blow up to the proper degree this quarrel between the two chief heretical powers, Heaven’s chief enemies, whereby holy religion might reap a good benefit.”

War between Prussia and England could pull all the neighboring countries into the conflict. There was excitement in every continental court. The Pope, it’s said, was thrilled. “He prays,” says Carlyle, “that Heaven would kindly stir up and escalate this quarrel between the two main heretical powers, Heaven’s top foes, so that holy religion might benefit from it.”

In the general alarm, France, Holland, and other neighboring courts interposed and called loudly for a settlement. Frederick William had never wished for war. George II. was thoroughly frightened. As it was certain that he would be severely chastised, he was eager to escape from the difficulty through the mediation of others. An arbitration was agreed upon, and the quarrel was settled without bloodshed.

In the widespread panic, France, Holland, and other nearby courts intervened and demanded a resolution. Frederick William had never wanted war. George II was genuinely scared. Knowing he would face serious consequences, he was keen to get out of the situation with help from others. An agreement for arbitration was reached, and the conflict was resolved without violence.

On the 8th of September Fritz returned to Potsdam from this his first military expedition, with his regiment of giants. He was then seventeen years of age. His soldierly bearing had quite rejoiced the king, and he began to think that, after all, possibly something might be made of Fritz.

On September 8th, Fritz returned to Potsdam from his first military expedition with his regiment of giants. He was seventeen years old at the time. His soldierly demeanor greatly pleased the king, and he started to believe that, after all, maybe something could be made of Fritz.

66 Just as these troubles were commencing, there was, in May, 1729, a marriage in the Prussian royal family. Some two hundred miles south of Brandenburg there was, at that time, a small marquisate called Anspach, next in dignity to a dukedom. The marquis was a frail, commonplace boy of seventeen, under the care of a young mother, who was widowed, sick, and dying. Much to the dissatisfaction of Sophie Dorothee, the queen-mother, Frederick William had arranged a marriage between this young man, who was far from rich, and his second daughter, Frederica Louisa, who was then fifteen years of age.7

66 Just as these troubles were starting, in May 1729, there was a wedding in the Prussian royal family. About two hundred miles south of Brandenburg, there was a small marquisate called Anspach, which was just below a dukedom in status. The marquis was a weak, ordinary boy of seventeen, being looked after by a young mother who was widowed, ill, and dying. Much to the dismay of Sophie Dorothee, the queen-mother, Frederick William had arranged a marriage between this young man, who wasn’t very wealthy, and his second daughter, Frederica Louisa, who was then fifteen years old.7

Fritz went in the royal carriage, with suitable escort, to meet the young marquis on the Prussian frontier, as he came to his bridals. They returned together in the carriage to Potsdam with great military display. The wedding took place on the 30th of May, 1729. It was very magnificent. Fritz was conspicuous on the occasion in a grand review of the giant grenadiers. Wilhelmina, in her journal, speaks quite contemptuously of her new brother-in-law, the Marquis of Anspach, describing him as a foolish young fellow. It was, indeed, a marriage of children. The bridegroom was a sickly, peevish, undeveloped boy of seventeen; and the bride was a self-willed and ungoverned little beauty of fifteen. The marriage proved a very unhappy one. There was no harmony between them. Frederick writes: “They hate one another like the fire” (comme le feu). They, however, lived together in incessant petty quarrelings for thirty years. Probably during all that time neither one of them saw a happy day.

Fritz traveled in the royal carriage, with a proper escort, to meet the young marquis at the Prussian border as he arrived for his wedding. They returned together in the carriage to Potsdam with an impressive military display. The wedding took place on May 30, 1729, and was quite grand. Fritz stood out during a major review of the giant grenadiers. Wilhelmina, in her journal, speaks dismissively of her new brother-in-law, the Marquis of Anspach, calling him a foolish young man. It was, in fact, a marriage of children. The groom was a frail, grumpy, immature boy of seventeen, while the bride was a headstrong and unruly beauty of fifteen. The marriage turned out to be very unhappy. There was no harmony between them. Frederick writes: “They hate one another like the fire” (comme le feu). Nevertheless, they lived together, constantly arguing, for thirty years. Likely during that entire time, neither of them experienced a truly happy day.

Fritz had now attained eighteen years of age, and Wilhelmina twenty-one. Fritz was very fond of music, particularly of his flute, upon which he played exquisitely, being, however, careful never to sound its notes within hearing of his father. A celebrated music-master from Dresden, by the name of Quantz, was his teacher. He came occasionally from Dresden and spent a week or two at Potsdam, secretly teaching the young prince.67 The mother of Fritz was in warm sympathy with her son, and aided him in all ways in her power in this gratification. Still it was a very hazardous measure. The fierce old king was quite uncertain in his movements. He might at any hour appear at Potsdam, and no one could tell to what lengths, in case of a discovery, he might go in the intensity of his rage. Fritz had an intimate friend in the army, a young man of about his own age, one Lieutenant Katte, who, when Fritz was with his music-teacher, was stationed on the look-out, that he might give instant warning in case there were any indications of the king’s approach. His mother also was prepared, when Quantz was at Potsdam, promptly to dispatch a messenger to her son in case she suspected his father of being about to turn his steps in that direction.

Fritz had just turned eighteen, and Wilhelmina was twenty-one. Fritz loved music, especially his flute, which he played beautifully, always being careful not to let his father hear it. A famous music teacher from Dresden named Quantz was his instructor. He would come from Dresden occasionally and spend a week or two in Potsdam, secretly teaching the young prince. Fritz's mother was very supportive of her son and helped him in every way she could to pursue his passion. However, it was a risky situation. The fierce old king was unpredictable. He could show up at Potsdam at any moment, and no one could guess how furious he might become if he found out. Fritz had a close friend in the army, a young lieutenant named Katte, who was about the same age. Whenever Fritz was with his music teacher, Katte would keep watch, ready to give a quick warning if he noticed any sign of the king’s approach. His mother was also prepared to send a messenger to her son right away if she suspected his father was heading that way while Quantz was in Potsdam.67

Fritz, having thus established his outposts, was accustomed to retire to his room with his teacher, lay aside his tight-fitting Prussian military coat, which he detested, and called his shroud, draw on a very beautiful, flowing French dressing-gown of scarlet, embroidered with gold, and decorated with sash and tags, and, with his hair dressed in the most fashionable style of the French court, surrender himself to the indulgence of his own luxurious tastes for sumptuous attire as well as for melodious sounds. He was thus, one day, in the height of his enjoyment, taking his clandestine music-lesson, when Lieutenant Katte came rushing into the room in the utmost dismay, with the announcement that the king was at the door. The wily and ever-suspicious monarch had stolen the march upon them. He was about to make his son a very unwelcome surprise visit.

Fritz, having set up his outposts, was used to retiring to his room with his teacher, taking off his tight Prussian military coat, which he hated and called his shroud, putting on a stunning, flowing French robe in scarlet, embroidered with gold, and adorned with a sash and tags. With his hair styled in the latest French court fashion, he indulged in his luxurious tastes for fancy clothing and beautiful music. One day, while he was fully enjoying his secret music lesson, Lieutenant Katte burst into the room in a panic, announcing that the king was at the door. The cunning and always suspicious monarch had caught them off guard. He was about to make an unwelcome surprise visit to his son.

A bomb bursting in the room could scarcely have created a greater panic. Katte and Quantz seized the flutes and music-books, and rushed into a wood-closet, where they stood quaking with terror. Fritz threw off his dressing-gown, hurried on his military coat, and sat down at the table, affecting to be deeply engaged with his books. The king, frowning like a thunder-cloud—for he always frowned when he drew near Fritz—burst into the room. The sight of the frizzled hair of his son “kindled the paternal wrath into a tornado pitch.” The king had a wonderful command of the vocabulary of abuse, and was heaping epithets of vituperation upon the head of the prince, when he caught sight of the dressing-gown behind a screen. He seized the glittering garment, and, with increasing outbursts of rage, crammed it into the fire. Then searching the room, he collected all the French books, of which Fritz had quite a library, and, sending for a bookseller near by, ordered him to take every volume away, and sell them for what they would bring. For more than an hour the king was thus raging, like a maniac, in the apartment of his son. Fortunately he did not look into the wood-closet. Had he done so, both Quantz and Katte would have been terribly beaten, even had they escaped being sent immediately to the scaffold.

A bomb going off in the room couldn’t have caused more panic. Katte and Quantz grabbed the flutes and music books and rushed into a closet, where they stood trembling with fear. Fritz took off his dressing gown, threw on his military coat, and sat down at the table, pretending to be deeply focused on his books. The king, frowning like a storm cloud—because he always frowned when he was near Fritz—burst into the room. The sight of his son’s frizzed hair “ignited his fatherly anger into a full-on storm.” The king had a talent for insults and was showering Fritz with harsh words when he noticed the dressing gown behind a screen. He grabbed the shimmering garment and, as his rage grew, shoved it into the fire. Then, searching the room, he gathered all the French books, of which Fritz had a large collection, and called in a nearby bookseller, ordering him to take every single volume away and sell them for whatever he could get. For more than an hour, the king raged like a madman in his son’s room. Luckily, he didn’t check the closet. If he had, both Quantz and Katte would have faced terrible beatings and possibly immediate execution.

68

68

THE DRESSING-GOWN.

69 “The king,” writes Wilhelmina, “almost caused my brother and myself to die of hunger. He always acted as carver, and served every body except us. When, by chance, there remained any thing in the dish, he spit in it, to prevent our eating of it. We lived entirely upon coffee, milk, and dried cherries, which ruined our health. I was nourished with insults and invectives, and was abused all day long, in every possible manner, and before every body. The king’s anger went so far against my brother and myself that he drove us from him, forbidding us to appear in his presence except at meals.

69 “The king,” writes Wilhelmina, “almost made my brother and me starve. He always served as the carver and dished out food to everyone except us. Whenever there was anything left in the dish, he would spit in it to keep us from eating it. We lived solely on coffee, milk, and dried cherries, which ruined our health. I survived on insults and harsh words, being mistreated all day long in every way possible and in front of everyone. The king was so angry with my brother and me that he drove us away, allowing us to be in his presence only at meal times.”

“The queen had contrived in her bedroom a sort of labyrinth of screens, so arranged that I could escape the king without being seen, in case he suddenly entered. One day the king came and surprised us. I wished to escape, but found myself embarrassed among these screens, of which several fell, and prevented my getting out of the room. The king was at my heels, and tried to catch hold of me in order to beat me. Not being able any longer to escape, I placed myself behind my governess. The king advanced so much that she was obliged to fall back, but, finding herself at length near the chimney, she was stopped. I found myself in the alternative of bearing the fire or the blows. The king overwhelmed me with abuse, and tried to seize me by the hair. I fell upon the floor. The scene would have had a tragical end had it continued, as my clothes were actually beginning to take fire. The king, fatigued with crying out and with his passion, at length put an end to it and went away.”

"The queen had set up a sort of maze of screens in her bedroom, arranged so that I could sneak past the king without being spotted, in case he walked in unexpectedly. One day, the king came in and caught us off guard. I wanted to make a run for it, but I got tangled up in those screens, and several of them collapsed, blocking my way out of the room. The king was right behind me, trying to grab me to hit me. With no way left to escape, I stood behind my governess. The king moved in so close that she had to back away, but she eventually found herself near the fireplace, and there was nowhere for her to go. I faced the choice of enduring the fire or the beating. The king yelled at me, trying to grab my hair. I fell to the floor. It could have ended tragically if it had gone on, as my clothes were actually starting to catch fire. Exhausted from yelling and his rage, the king finally calmed down and left."

These sufferings bound the brother and sister very intimately together. “This dear brother,” Wilhelmina writes, “passed all his afternoons with me. We read and wrote together, and occupied ourselves in cultivating our minds. The king now never saw my brother without threatening him with the cane. Fritz repeatedly told me that he would bear any thing from the king except blows; but that, if he ever came to such extremities with him, he would regain his freedom by flight.”

These hardships brought the brother and sister very close together. “This dear brother,” Wilhelmina writes, “spent all his afternoons with me. We read and wrote together, and focused on expanding our minds. The king never saw my brother without threatening him with a cane. Fritz often told me that he would endure anything from the king except for physical punishment; but that, if it ever came to that, he would escape to get his freedom.”

On the 10th of December, 1729, Dubourgay writes in his journal:70 “His Prussian majesty can not bear the sight of either the prince or the princess royal. The other day he asked the prince, ‘Kalkstein makes you English, does not he?’ To which the prince answered, ‘I respect the English, because I know the people there love me.’ Upon which the king seized him by the collar, struck him fiercely with his cane, and it was only by superior strength that the poor prince escaped worse. There is a general apprehension of something tragical taking place before long.”

On December 10, 1729, Dubourgay writes in his journal:70 “His Prussian majesty can't stand the sight of either the prince or the princess royal. Recently, he asked the prince, ‘Kalkstein makes you English, doesn’t he?’ To which the prince replied, ‘I respect the English because I know the people there love me.’ At that, the king gripped him by the collar and hit him hard with his cane, and it was only through sheer strength that the poor prince avoided something worse. There’s a general fear that something tragic is going to happen soon.”

Wilhelmina gives the following account of this transaction, as communicated to her by her brother: “As I entered the king’s room this morning, he first seized me by the hair and then threw me on the floor, along which, after having exercised the vigor of his arm upon my unhappy person, he dragged me, in spite of all my resistance, to a neighboring window. His intention apparently was to perform the office of the mutes of the seraglio, for, seizing the cord belonging to the curtain, he placed it around my neck. I seized both of his hands, and began to cry out. A servant came to my assistance, and delivered me from his hands.”

Wilhelmina shares the following account of this incident, as told to her by her brother: “When I entered the king's room this morning, he first grabbed me by my hair and then threw me to the floor. After he had attacked me with all his strength, he dragged me, despite my resistance, to a nearby window. It seemed like he intended to do what the mutes of the seraglio do, because he grabbed the curtain cord and put it around my neck. I grabbed both of his hands and started to scream. A servant came to help me and freed me from his grasp.”

In reference to this event, the prince wrote to his mother from Potsdam, “I am in the utmost despair. What I had always apprehended has at last come on me. The king has entirely forgotten that I am his son. This morning I came into his room as usual. At the first sight of me he sprang forward, seized me by the collar, and struck me a shower of blows with his rattan. I tried in vain to screen myself, he was in so terrible a rage, almost out of himself. It was only weariness that made him give up. I am driven to extremity. I have too much honor to endure such treatment, and I am resolved to put an end to it in one way or another.”

In reference to this event, the prince wrote to his mother from Potsdam, “I am in complete despair. What I’ve always feared has finally happened. The king has completely forgotten that I’m his son. This morning, I went into his room as usual. The moment he saw me, he lunged forward, grabbed me by the collar, and hit me repeatedly with his cane. I tried in vain to protect myself; he was in such a terrible rage, almost out of control. It was only exhaustion that made him stop. I am at my wit's end. I have too much dignity to accept this treatment, and I’m determined to put an end to it one way or another.”

Wilhelmina well understood that her brother contemplated running away, escaping, if possible, to England. We have mentioned that the young prince, after his return from Dresden, had become quite dissipated. The companions he chose were wild young army officers of high birth, polished address, and, in godless lives, fashionable men of the world. Lieutenant Katte was a genteel man of pleasure. Another of his bosom companions, Lieutenant Keith, a young man of illustrious lineage, was also a very undesirable associate for any young man whose principles71 of virtue were not established.8 Of Keith and Katte, the two most intimate friends of Fritz, Wilhelmina writes, about this time:

Wilhelmina clearly realized that her brother was thinking about running away, possibly finding a way to escape to England. We've mentioned that after returning from Dresden, the young prince had become quite reckless. The friends he chose were wild young officers from noble families, charming, and living carefree, fashionable lives. Lieutenant Katte was a refined party guy. Another close friend, Lieutenant Keith, who came from a distinguished family, was also not the best influence for anyone whose moral values weren't firmly in place. Of Katte and Keith, Fritz's two closest friends, Wilhelmina wrote around this time:

A ROYAL EXECUTIONER.

“Lieutenant Keith had been gone some time, stationed in Wesel with his regiment. Keith’s departure had been a great joy to me, in the hope my brother would now lead a more regular life. But it proved quite otherwise. A second favorite, and a much more dangerous, succeeded Keith. This was a young man of the name of Katte, captain lieutenant in the regiment72 Gens d’Armes. He was highly connected in the army. His mother was daughter of Field-marshal Wartensleben. General Katte, his father, had sent him to the universities, and afterward to travel, desiring that he should be a lawyer. But, as there was no favor to be hoped for out of the army, the young man found himself at last placed there, contrary to his expectation. He continued to apply himself to studies. He had wit, book-culture, and acquaintance with the world. The good company which he continued to frequent had given him polite manners to a degree then rare in Berlin. His physiognomy was rather disagreeable than otherwise. A pair of thick black eyebrows almost covered his eyes. His look had in it something ominous, presage of the fate he met with. A tawny skin, torn by small-pox, increased his ugliness. He affected the freethinker, and carried libertinism to excess. A great deal of ambition and headlong rashness accompanied this vice. Such a favorite was not the man to bring back my brother from his follies.”

Lieutenant Keith had been away for a while, stationed in Wesel with his regiment. I was really happy about Keith leaving, hoping my brother would now lead a more stable life. But it turned out to be quite the opposite. A second favorite, and a much more dangerous one, took Keith’s place. This was a young man named Katte, a captain lieutenant in the regiment 72 Gens d’Armes. He was well-connected in the army. His mother was the daughter of Field-marshal Wartensleben. General Katte, his father, had sent him to university and then traveling, hoping he would become a lawyer. However, since there was no future for him outside the army, the young man ultimately found himself serving there, which he hadn’t expected. He continued to focus on his studies. He was witty, well-educated, and had a solid understanding of the world. The good company he kept gave him polite manners, which were quite rare in Berlin at the time. His face was rather unpleasant than appealing. His thick black eyebrows almost covered his eyes, and his expression had something ominous about it, hinting at the fate he would meet. A pockmarked complexion added to his unappealing looks. He styled himself as a free thinker and took his libertinism to the extreme. A lot of ambition and reckless boldness accompanied this vice. Such a favorite was not the type to pull my brother back from his reckless ways.

Early in January, 1730, the king, returning from a hunt at Wusterhausen, during which he had held a drinking carouse and a diplomatic interview with the King of Poland, announced his intention of being no longer annoyed by matrimonial arrangements for Wilhelmina. He resolved to abandon the English alliance altogether, unless an immediate and unequivocal assent were given by George II. for the marriage of Wilhelmina with the Prince of Wales, without any compact for the marriage of Fritz with the Princess Amelia. Count Finckenstein, Baron Grumkow, and General Borck were sent to communicate this, the king’s unalterable resolve, to the queen. The first two were friends of the queen. Grumkow was understood to be the instigator of the king. Wilhelmina chanced to be with her mother when the gentlemen announced themselves as the bearers of a very important message from the king to her majesty. Wilhelmina trembled, and said in a low tone to her mother, “This regards me. I have a dreading.” “No matter,” the worn and weary mother replied; “one must have firmness, and that is not what I shall want.” The queen retired with the ministers to the audience-chamber.

Early in January 1730, the king returned from a hunt at Wusterhausen, where he had enjoyed a drinking party and a diplomatic meeting with the King of Poland. He announced that he would no longer tolerate marital arrangements for Wilhelmina. He decided to completely abandon the English alliance unless George II immediately and clearly agreed to allow Wilhelmina to marry the Prince of Wales, without any agreement for Fritz to marry Princess Amelia. Count Finckenstein, Baron Grumkow, and General Borck were sent to inform the queen of the king’s firm decision. The first two were friends of the queen, and Grumkow was believed to have influenced the king. Wilhelmina happened to be with her mother when the gentlemen arrived with a very important message from the king for her majesty. Wilhelmina trembled and whispered to her mother, “This is about me. I’m afraid.” “It doesn’t matter,” the tired and worn-out mother replied; “one must be strong, and that’s what I’ll need.” The queen went with the ministers to the audience chamber.

There they informed her that they had each received a letter the night before from the king, the contents of which they were73 forbidden, under penalty of death, from communicating to any one but to her. The king wished them to say to her majesty that he would no longer endure her disobedience in reference to the marriage of Wilhelmina; that, in case this disobedience continued, there should be an entire separation between him and his wife—a divorce—and that she and her daughter should both be banished to the château of Oranienburg, about twenty miles from Berlin, and there held in close imprisonment. The king was willing that Sophie Dorothee should write once more, and only once more, to her brother, George II., and demand of him a categorical answer, yes or no, whether he would consent to the immediate marriage of the Prince of Wales and Wilhelmina. The king would wait a fortnight for an answer, or, if the winds were contrary, three weeks; but not a day more. Should no answer in that time be returned, or a negative or an evasive answer, then Wilhelmina was to make her immediate choice of a husband between either the Duke of Weissenfels or the Marquis of Schwedt, and to be married without delay.9

They informed her that they had each received a letter the night before from the king, the contents of which they were forbidden, under penalty of death, from sharing with anyone but her. The king wanted them to tell her majesty that he would no longer tolerate her disobedience regarding Wilhelmina's marriage; if she continued to disobey, there would be a complete separation between him and his wife—a divorce—and that she and her daughter would both be exiled to the château of Oranienburg, about twenty miles from Berlin, and held in close confinement. The king allowed Sophie Dorothee to write one last time, and only one last time, to her brother, George II, to demand a clear "yes" or "no" on whether he would agree to the immediate marriage of the Prince of Wales and Wilhelmina. The king would wait for an answer for two weeks, or, if the winds were unfavorable, three weeks; but not a day longer. If no response was given in that time, or if the answer was negative or ambiguous, then Wilhelmina would have to quickly choose between the Duke of Weissenfels or the Marquis of Schwedt as her husband and marry without delay.9

Weissenfels was a small duchy in Saxony. The duke, so called by courtesy, had visited Berlin before in the train of his sovereign, King Augustus, when his majesty returned the visit of Frederick William. He was then quite captivated by the beauty and vivacity of Wilhelmina. He was titular duke merely, his brother being the real duke; and he was then living on his pay as officer in the army, and was addicted to deep potations. Carlyle describes him as “a mere betitled, betasseled, elderly military gentleman of no special qualities, evil or good.” Sophie Dorothee, noticing his attentions to Wilhelmina, deemed it the extreme of impudence for so humble a man to aspire to the hand of her illustrious child. She reproved him so severely that he retired from the court in deep chagrin. He never would have presumed to renew the suit but for the encouragement given by Frederick William.

Weissenfels was a small duchy in Saxony. The duke, only called that out of courtesy, had previously visited Berlin alongside his sovereign, King Augustus, when the king returned Frederick William's visit. He was completely enchanted by Wilhelmina's beauty and liveliness. He was just a titular duke, as his brother was the real duke, and at the time, he was living off his salary as a military officer while indulging in heavy drinking. Carlyle describes him as “a mere betitled, betasseled, elderly military gentleman of no special qualities, evil or good.” Sophie Dorothee, noticing his attention towards Wilhelmina, thought it was outrageous for such an insignificant man to seek the hand of her distinguished child. She reprimanded him so harshly that he left the court feeling very upset. He would never have dared to pursue her again if it hadn't been for Frederick William's encouragement.

The Marquis of Schwedt was a very indifferent young man, living under the tutelage of his dowager mother. She was a cousin of the King of Prussia, and had named her son Frederick74 William. Having rendered herself conspicuously ridiculous by the flaunting colors of her dress, which tawdry display was in character with her mind, both she and her son were decidedly disagreeable to Wilhelmina.

The Marquis of Schwedt was a pretty unremarkable young man, living under the care of his widowed mother. She was a cousin of the King of Prussia and had named her son Frederick74 William. By dressing in overly bright colors that made her look silly, which matched her personality, both she and her son were quite unpleasant to Wilhelmina.

There was no alternative left the young princess. Unless there were an immediate consummation of the marriage contract with the English Frederick, she was, without delay, to choose between Weissenfels and Schwedt. The queen, in response to this communication, said, “I will immediately write to England; but, whatever may be the answer, it is impossible that my daughter should marry either of the individuals whom the king has designated.” Baron Grumkow, who was in entire accord with the king, “began,” says Wilhelmina, “quoting Scripture on her majesty, as the devil can on occasion. ‘Wives, be obedient to your husbands,’ said he. The queen very aptly replied, ‘Yes; but did not Bethuel, the son of Milcah, when Abraham’s servant asked his daughter in marriage for young Isaac, answer, “We will call the damsel, and inquire of her mouth?” It is true, wives must obey their husbands, but husbands must command things just and reasonable.’

The young princess had no choice. Unless the marriage with Prince Frederick of England was finalized immediately, she had to quickly decide between Weissenfels and Schwedt. In response to this situation, the queen said, “I will write to England right away; however, regardless of the reply, my daughter cannot marry either of the men the king has suggested.” Baron Grumkow, who completely supported the king, “started,” as Wilhelmina noted, “quoting Scripture at her majesty, like the devil sometimes does. ‘Wives, be obedient to your husbands,’ he said. The queen cleverly replied, ‘Yes; but didn’t Bethuel, Milcah’s son, when Abraham’s servant asked for his daughter’s hand in marriage for young Isaac, say, “We will call the girl and ask her?” It’s true that wives must obey their husbands, but husbands should command what is just and reasonable.’”

“The king’s procedure,” added the unhappy mother, “is not in accordance with that law. He is doing violence to my daughter’s inclinations, thus rendering her wretched for the remainder of her days. He wishes to give her for a husband a brutal debauchee, a younger brother, who is nothing but an officer in the army of the King of Poland; a landless man, without the means of living according to his rank. I will write to England. But, whatever the answer, I had rather a thousand times see my child in the grave than hopelessly miserable.”

“The king’s decision,” added the distressed mother, “doesn’t follow that law. He’s forcing my daughter against her will, making her unhappy for the rest of her life. He wants to marry her off to a cruel, debauched younger brother, who is just an officer in the Polish army; a man without land and unable to live up to his status. I will write to England. But, no matter the response, I would rather see my child dead than in endless misery.”

The queen, looking reproachfully at Grumkow, remarked, “I know full well to whom I owe all this.” She then excused herself, saying that she was not well, and retired to her apartment. There she communicated to the anxious Wilhelmina the cruel message of the king. Sophie Dorothee then wrote a very earnest letter to Queen Caroline, the wife of George II., imploring that all obstacles in the way of the marriage of Wilhelmina with the Prince of Wales might be withdrawn. The idea of marriage with either Weissenfels or Schwedt was dreadful. But, on the other hand, the wrath of the king, the divorce of the queen, and75 the imprisonment of both mother and daughter in the château of Oranienburg, were also dreadful. Fritz was taken into the councils of his mother and sister. It was decided that he should also write to his aunt, urging his suit for the Princess Amelia. It is true that George II. was ready to accede to this marriage, but Frederick William threw obstacles in the way. It was probably the hope of Fritz to secure Amelia, notwithstanding his father’s opposition. The ready pen of Wilhelmina was employed to draft the letter, which her brother submissively copied. As it was not probable, in the intricacies in which the question was now involved, that both marriages could take place together, Fritz wrote pleading for the marriage of Wilhelmina at once, pledging his word that he would remain faithful to the Princess Amelia.

The queen, looking disapprovingly at Grumkow, said, “I know exactly who I have to thank for all this.” She then apologized, claiming she wasn’t feeling well, and went to her room. There, she conveyed the harsh news from the king to the worried Wilhelmina. Sophie Dorothee then wrote a very serious letter to Queen Caroline, the wife of George II, begging her to remove any obstacles to Wilhelmina’s marriage to the Prince of Wales. The thought of marrying either Weissenfels or Schwedt was horrific. But, on the other hand, the king’s anger, the queen’s divorce, and the imprisonment of both mother and daughter in the château of Oranienburg were equally terrifying. Fritz was brought into the discussions with his mother and sister. They decided that he should also write to his aunt to advocate for his interest in Princess Amelia. Although George II was willing to go along with this marriage, Frederick William created hurdles. Fritz likely hoped to win over Amelia despite his father’s resistance. Wilhelmina quickly wrote the letter, which her brother obediently copied. Given the complicated situation, it didn’t seem likely that both marriages could happen at the same time, so Fritz wrote asking for Wilhelmina’s marriage to be arranged immediately, promising that he would stay loyal to Princess Amelia.

“I have already,” he wrote, “given your majesty my word of honor never to wed any one but the Princess Amelia, your daughter. I here reiterate that promise, in case your majesty will consent to my sister’s marriage.”

“I have already,” he wrote, “given you my word of honor to never marry anyone except Princess Amelia, your daughter. I’m repeating that promise again, in case you agree to my sister getting married.”

Sophie Dorothee dispatched a courier with these documents, to go with the utmost speed to England. It was a long journey in those days, and the winds were often contrary. A fortnight passed. Three weeks were gone. Still there was no answer. On the 25th of January, 1730—“a day,” writes Wilhelmina, “which I shall never forget”—Finckenstein, Borck, and Grumkow again called upon the queen, with the following message from the king:

Sophie Dorothee sent a courier with these documents to travel as fast as possible to England. It was a long trip back then, and the winds were often against them. A week and a half went by. Three weeks passed. Still, there was no response. On January 25, 1730—“a day,” writes Wilhelmina, “that I will always remember”—Finckenstein, Borck, and Grumkow visited the queen again, bringing a message from the king:

“Whatever answer may now be returned from England I will have nothing to do with it. Whether negative, affirmative, or evasive, to me it shall be as nothing. You, madam, must now choose between the Duke of Weissenfels and the Marquis of Schwedt. If you do not choose, you and Wilhelmina may prepare for Oranienburg, where you shall suffer the just penalty of mutiny against the authority set over you by God and men.”

“Whatever response comes back from England, I will have nothing to do with it. Whether it's negative, positive, or dodging the issue, it will mean nothing to me. You, madam, need to choose between the Duke of Weissenfels and the Marquis of Schwedt. If you don’t make a choice, you and Wilhelmina can get ready for Oranienburg, where you will face the consequences for defying the authority that has been given to you by God and people.”

The queen summoned firmness to reply: “You can inform the king that he will never make me consent to render my daughter miserable; and that, so long as a breath of life remains in me, I will not permit her to take either the one or the other of these persons.”

The queen gathered her resolve to respond: “You can tell the king that he will never get me to agree to make my daughter unhappy; and that, as long as I’m alive, I won’t allow her to be with either of these people.”

Then addressing Grumkow, she said, in tones deliberate and76 intense, “For you, sir, who are the author of my misfortunes, may my curse fall upon you and your house. You have this day killed me. But I doubt not that Heaven will hear my prayer and avenge my wrongs.”

Then turning to Grumkow, she said, in a clear and intense voice, “For you, sir, who are to blame for my misfortunes, may my curse fall upon you and your family. You have killed me today. But I have no doubt that Heaven will hear my plea and take revenge for my wrongs.”

The queen was at this time in a delicate state of health, and anxiety and sorrow threw her upon a sick-bed. The king, who felt as much affection for “Phiekin” as such a coarse, brutal man could feel for any body, was alarmed; but he remained obdurate. He stormed into her room, where, in the fever of her troubles, she tossed upon her pillow, and obstreperously declared that Wilhelmina should be married immediately, and that she must take either Weissenfels or Schwedt. As both mother and daughter remained firm in their refusal to choose, he resolved to decide the question himself.

The queen was in a fragile state of health, and her anxiety and sadness had pushed her to a sick bed. The king, who had as much affection for "Phiekin" as a rough, harsh man could have for anyone, was worried; but he stayed stubborn. He stormed into her room, where she was tossing on her pillow in the fever of her troubles, and loudly declared that Wilhelmina should be married right away, and that she must choose either Weissenfels or Schwedt. Since both mother and daughter remained adamant in their refusal to decide, he resolved to make the choice himself.

Accordingly, he made proposals to the Marquise of Schwedt that Wilhelmina should marry her son. The lady replied, in terms very creditable both to her head and her heart, “Such a union, your majesty, would be in accordance with the supreme wish of my life. But how can I accept such happiness against the will of the princess herself? This I can positively never do.” Here she remained firm. The raging king returned to the bedside of his wife, as rough and determined as ever. He declared that the question was now settled that Wilhelmina was to marry the old Duke of Weissenfels.

Accordingly, he proposed to the Marquise of Schwedt that Wilhelmina should marry her son. The lady responded, in a way that showed both her intelligence and her compassion, “Such a union, your majesty, would fulfill the greatest wish of my life. But how can I accept such happiness against the princess's own will? I can never do that.” She stood her ground. The furious king returned to his wife’s bedside, as tough and resolute as ever. He announced that it was now decided that Wilhelmina would marry the old Duke of Weissenfels.

The unhappy princess, distracted by these griefs, had grown thin and pale. It was soon rumored throughout the court that the king had written to Weissenfels, and that the duke was on his way to seize his reluctant bride. In this emergence, the queen’s friend, Baron Borck, suggested to her that, in order to get rid of the obnoxious Weissenfels, she should so far yield to the wishes of the king as to give up the English alliance, and propose a third party, who might be more acceptable to Wilhelmina. But who shall this substitute be?

The unhappy princess, weighed down by her sorrows, had grown thin and pale. Soon, it circulated throughout the court that the king had contacted Weissenfels, and that the duke was on his way to claim his unwilling bride. In this situation, the queen’s friend, Baron Borck, advised her that to get rid of the unwanted Weissenfels, she should reluctantly agree to the king’s wishes by ending the English alliance and suggest a third party who might be more appealing to Wilhelmina. But who could this alternative be?

About two hundred miles south of Berlin there was quite an important marquisate called Baireuth. The marquis had a good-looking young son, the heir-apparent, who had just returned from the grand tour of Europe. Upon the death of his father he would enter upon quite a rich inheritance. This young marquis, Frederick by name, Baron Borck proposed as a substitute for77 the Duke of Weissenfels. It was understood that Wilhelmina was such a prize that kings, even, would be eager to obtain her hand. There could therefore be no doubt but that the Marquis of Baireuth would feel signally honored by such nuptials. The worn and weary mother eagerly accepted this proposal. She suggested it to the king. Sullenly he gave it his assent, saying, “I will passively submit to it, but will take no active part whatever in the affair. Neither will I give Wilhelmina one single copper for dowry.”

About two hundred miles south of Berlin, there was a significant marquisate called Baireuth. The marquis had a handsome young son, the heir apparent, who had just returned from his grand tour of Europe. After his father’s death, he would inherit quite a fortune. This young marquis, named Frederick, was proposed by Baron Borck as a substitute for the Duke of Weissenfels. It was understood that Wilhelmina was such a catch that even kings would be eager to win her hand. Therefore, the Marquis of Baireuth would undoubtedly feel honored by such a marriage. The worn and weary mother eagerly accepted this proposal. She presented it to the king. Grudgingly, he consented, saying, “I will passively go along with this, but I won’t be actively involved in the matter. Nor will I give Wilhelmina a single cent for her dowry.”

The queen, delighted in having obtained even this measure of acquiescence on the part of the king, now conferred with Wilhelmina. But, to her surprise and bitter disappointment, the young princess did not share in her mother’s joy. She was not disposed to be thus bartered away, and presented sundry objections. The poor mother, harassed by these interminable difficulties, now lost all patience. She broke out upon her equally unhappy daughter with cruel reproaches.

The queen, thrilled to have secured even this level of agreement from the king, now spoke with Wilhelmina. But, to her surprise and deep disappointment, the young princess didn't share her mother's happiness. She wasn't willing to be exchanged like this and raised several objections. The poor mother, overwhelmed by these endless challenges, lost all patience. She unleashed cruel accusations on her equally troubled daughter.

“Take, then,” she exclaimed, “the Grand Turk or the Great Mogul for your husband. Follow your own caprice. Had I known you better I would not have brought so many sorrows upon myself. You may follow the king’s bidding. It is henceforth your own affair. I will no longer trouble myself about your concerns. And spare me, if you please, the sorrows of your odious presence. I can not stand it.”

“Go ahead,” she shouted, “marry the Grand Turk or the Great Mogul. Do whatever you want. If I had known you better, I wouldn’t have put myself through so much pain. You can do what the king wants. From now on, it’s your business. I won’t worry about your issues anymore. And please, spare me the misery of your disgusting presence. I can't take it.”

Wilhelmina endeavored to reply. But the angry mother sternly exclaimed, “Silence!” and the tortured girl left the apartment, weeping bitterly. Even Fritz took his mother’s part, and reproached Wilhelmina for not acceding to her plan. New troubles were thickening around him. He was in debt. The king had found it out. To his father’s stern questioning, Fritz, in his terror, had uttered deliberate falsehood. He confessed a debt of about eight hundred dollars, which his father had detected, and solemnly declared that this was all. In fact, he owed an additional sum of seven thousand dollars. Should the king discover this debt, and thus detect Fritz in a lie, his rage would be tremendous. The king paid the eight hundred dollar debt of his son, and then issued a decree declaring that to lend money to any princes of the blood, even to the prince royal, was a high crime, to be punished, not only by forfeiture of the money, but78 by imprisonment. The king had begun to suspect that Fritz intended to escape. He could not escape without money. The king therefore took special precautions that his purse should be ever empty, and watched him with renewed vigilance.

Wilhelmina tried to respond. But the angry mother sharply interrupted, “Be quiet!” and the distressed girl left the room, crying hard. Even Fritz sided with his mother and criticized Wilhelmina for not going along with her plan. New problems were piling up for him. He was in debt. The king had found out. Under his father’s stern questioning, Fritz, in his fear, had told a lie. He admitted to a debt of about eight hundred dollars, which his father had discovered, and claimed that this was all. In reality, he owed an extra seven thousand dollars. If the king found out about this debt and caught Fritz in a lie, his anger would be immense. The king paid off his son’s eight hundred dollar debt and then issued a decree stating that lending money to any royal princes, even the crown prince, was a serious crime, punishable not only by losing the money but also by imprisonment. The king had started to suspect that Fritz planned to escape. He couldn't escape without money. Therefore, the king took extra steps to ensure that Fritz’s pockets were always empty and kept a close watch on him.

While matters were in this extremity, the British minister, Dubourgay, and Baron Knyphausen, a distinguished Prussian official, dispatched Rev. Dr. Villa, a scholarly man, who had been Wilhelmina’s teacher of English, on a secret mission to the court of England, to communicate the true state of affairs, and to endeavor to secure some disentanglement of the perplexities. Dr. Villa was a warm friend of Wilhelmina, and, in sympathy with her sorrows, wept as he bade her adieu. The king was in such ill humor that his daughter dared not appear in his presence. If Fritz came within reach of his father’s arm he was pretty sure to receive a blow from his rattan.

While things were at this breaking point, the British minister, Dubourgay, and Baron Knyphausen, a prominent Prussian official, sent Rev. Dr. Villa, an educated man who had taught Wilhelmina English, on a secret mission to the English court to explain the true situation and try to sort out the complications. Dr. Villa was a close friend of Wilhelmina, and out of sympathy for her troubles, he cried as he said goodbye. The king was in such a bad mood that his daughter didn’t dare to show up in front of him. If Fritz got too close to his father's reach, he was likely to get hit with the rattan.

On the 18th of February, 1730, some affairs of state led the king to take a trip to Dresden to see the King of Poland. He decided to take Fritz with him, as he was afraid to leave him behind. Fritz resolved to avail himself of the opportunity which the journey might offer to attempt his escape. He was unwilling to do this without bidding adieu to his sister, who had been the partner of so many of his griefs. It was not easy to obtain a private interview. On the evening of the 17th of February, as Wilhelmina, aided by her governess, was undressing for bed, the door of the anteroom of her chamber was cautiously opened, and a young gentleman, very splendidly dressed in French costume, entered. Wilhelmina, terrified, uttered a shriek, and endeavored to hide herself behind a screen. Her governess, Madam Sonsfeld, ran into the anteroom to ascertain what such an intrusion meant. The remainder of the story we will give in the words of Wilhelmina:

On February 18, 1730, some state matters prompted the king to travel to Dresden to meet the King of Poland. He decided to bring Fritz along because he was worried about leaving him behind. Fritz intended to use this trip as an opportunity to try to escape. However, he was reluctant to do this without saying goodbye to his sister, who had shared in so many of his troubles. It wasn’t easy to arrange a private meeting. On the evening of February 17, as Wilhelmina was getting ready for bed with the help of her governess, the door to her room was quietly opened, and a young man dressed in fancy French attire walked in. Wilhelmina screamed in fear and tried to hide behind a screen. Her governess, Madam Sonsfeld, rushed into the anteroom to find out what this unexpected visit was about. The rest of the story will be told in Wilhelmina's words:

“But she returned the next moment accompanying the cavalier, who was laughing heartily, and whom I recognized for my brother. His dress so altered him he seemed a different person. He was in the best humor possible. ‘I am come to bid you farewell once more, my dear sister,’ said he; ‘and as I know the friendship you have for me, I will not keep you ignorant of my designs. I go, and do not come back. I can not endure the usage I suffer. My patience is driven to an end. It is a favorable79 opportunity for flinging off that odious yoke. I will glide out of Dresden and get across to England, where, I do not doubt, I shall work out your deliverance too, when I am got thither. So I beg you calm yourself. We shall soon meet again in places where joy shall succeed our tears, and where we shall have the happiness to see ourselves in peace, and free from these persecutions.’”

“But she returned a moment later with the cavalier, who was laughing heartily, and I recognized him as my brother. His outfit changed him so much that he looked like a different person. He was in the best mood possible. 'I’ve come to say goodbye once more, my dear sister,' he said; 'and since I know how much you care for me, I won’t keep you in the dark about my plans. I’m leaving and not coming back. I can’t stand the treatment I’ve been receiving anymore. My patience has run out. This is a perfect opportunity to shake off that horrible burden. I will slip out of Dresden and make my way to England, where I have no doubt I will find a way to secure your freedom too, once I get there. So please try to stay calm. We’ll meet again soon in places where joy will replace our tears, and where we can finally enjoy peace and be free from these troubles.'”

FREDERICK AND HIS SISTER.

Wilhelmina was appalled in view of the difficulty and danger of the enterprise. It was a long distance from Dresden to the coast. Head winds might detain the vessel. The suspicious king would not long remain ignorant that he was missing. He would be pursued with energy almost demoniac. Being captured,80 no one could tell how fearful would be his doom. The sagacious sister was right. Fritz could not but perceive the strength of her arguments, and gave her his word of honor that he would not attempt, on the present occasion, to effect his flight. Fritz accordingly went to Dresden with his father, and returned.

Wilhelmina was shocked by how difficult and dangerous the plan was. It was a long way from Dresden to the coast. Strong headwinds could hold up the ship. The suspicious king wouldn’t stay unaware of his absence for long. He would be pursued with almost maniacal energy. If captured, no one could say how terrible his fate would be. Her wise sister was right. Fritz couldn’t ignore her points and promised her that he wouldn't try to escape this time. So, Fritz went to Dresden with his father and came back.


CHAPTER IV.
THE ESCAPE ATTEMPT.

Objections to the British Alliance.—Obstinacy of the King.—Wilhelmina’s Journal.—Policy of Frederick William and of George II.—Letter from Fritz.—The Camp of Mühlberg.—The Plan of Escape.—The Flight arrested.—Ungovernable Rage of the King.—Endeavors to kill his Son.—Arrest and Imprisonment of Fritz.—Terror of his Mother and Sister.—Wilhelmina imprisoned.

Objections to the British Alliance.—The King's Stubbornness.—Wilhelmina’s Journal.—Frederick William and George II's Policies.—Letter from Fritz.—The Camp at Mühlberg.—The Escape Plan.—The Flight is Halted.—The King's Uncontrollable Anger.—Attempts on His Son's Life.—Fritz's Arrest and Imprisonment.—Fear from His Mother and Sister.—Wilhelmina is Imprisoned.

In the mean time Dr. Villa reached England. In conference with the British cabinet, the members deemed it very desirable, at all events, to effect the marriage of the Prince of Wales with the Prussian princess. The main consideration was that it would tend to detach Prussia from Germany, and secure its alliance with England. It was also a good Protestant match, and would promote the interests of Protestantism. The king desired this marriage. But he was inflexible in his resolve that both marriages should take place or neither. The Prussian king was equally inflexible in his determination that, while he would consent to one marriage, he would not consent to both. Colonel Hotham, a man of good family and of some personal distinction, was accordingly sent, as envoy extraordinary, to Berlin, to make new efforts in favor of the double marriage.

In the meantime, Dr. Villa arrived in England. During a meeting with the British cabinet, the members strongly believed that it was important to arrange the marriage of the Prince of Wales with the Prussian princess. The main reason was that it would help pull Prussia away from Germany and secure its alliance with England. It was also a suitable Protestant match that would benefit the interests of Protestantism. The king wanted this marriage, but he was firm in his decision that both marriages had to happen or neither would. The Prussian king was equally firm in his stance that while he would agree to one marriage, he would not agree to both. Colonel Hotham, a man from a good background and with some personal reputation, was therefore sent as an extraordinary envoy to Berlin to make renewed efforts for the double marriage.

The Queen of Prussia had recently given birth to another prince. She was on a bed of languor. The king was somewhat mollified, and was anxious to be relieved from these protracted difficulties. Colonel Hotham reached the palace of Charlottenburg on the 2d of April, 1730, and was graciously received by the king. The next day quite a splendid dinner was given in honor of the British envoy. All the notables who surrounded the table, the English and the Prussian, in accordance with the degrading custom of those times, drank deeply. Hotham, in his dispatch, without any apparent sense of shame, writes, “We all got immoderately drunk.”

The Queen of Prussia had recently given birth to another prince. She was feeling weak and exhausted. The king was somewhat reassured and eager to be free from these ongoing troubles. Colonel Hotham arrived at the Charlottenburg palace on April 2, 1730, and was warmly welcomed by the king. The following day, an extravagant dinner was held in honor of the British envoy. All the important guests at the table, both English and Prussian, followed the embarrassing custom of the time and drank heavily. Hotham, in his dispatch, writes candidly, “We all got immoderately drunk.”

81 The object of Colonel Hotham’s mission was well known. The cordial reception he had met from the king indicated that his message was not an unwelcome one to his Prussian majesty. In the indecent hilarity of the hour, it was assumed that the marriage contract between Wilhelmina and the Prince of Wales was settled. Brains addled with wine gave birth to stupid jokes upon the subject. “A German ducat was to be exchanged for an English half guinea.” At last, in the semi-delirium of their intoxication, one proposed as a toast, “To the health of Wilhelmina, Princess of Wales.” The sentiment was received with uproarious jollity. Though all the company were in the same state of silly inebriation, neither the king nor the British ministers, Hotham and Dubourgay, for a moment lost sight of their settled policy. The king remained firm in his silent resolve to consent only to the marriage of Wilhelmina and the Prince of Wales. Hotham and Dubourgay could not swerve from the positive instructions which they had received, to insist upon both marriages or neither. Thus, notwithstanding this bacchanal jollification, neither party was disposed to swerve a hair’s breadth from its fixed resolve, and the question was no nearer a settlement than before.

81 Everyone knew what Colonel Hotham was there for. The warm welcome he received from the king showed that his message wasn’t unwelcome to the Prussian monarch. In the raucous atmosphere of the moment, people assumed that the marriage agreement between Wilhelmina and the Prince of Wales was finalized. Minds clouded by drinks led to silly jokes about it. “A German ducat would be traded for an English half guinea.” Finally, in their tipsy haze, someone proposed a toast, “To the health of Wilhelmina, Princess of Wales.” The cheer was met with loud laughter. Even though everyone else was in the same drunken state, neither the king nor the British ministers, Hotham and Dubourgay, lost sight of their determined stance. The king was resolute in his silent commitment to agree only to the marriage of Wilhelmina and the Prince of Wales. Hotham and Dubourgay couldn’t deviate from their clear orders to demand both marriages or none at all. So, despite the wild celebration, neither side was willing to budge from their firm position, and the situation was no closer to being resolved than before.

Still, most of the courtly carousers did not comprehend this. And when the toast to Wilhelmina as Princess of Wales was received with such acclaim, they supposed that all doubt was at an end. The news flew upon the wings of the wind to Berlin. It was late in the afternoon of Monday, April 30. Wilhelmina writes:

Still, most of the noble partygoers didn't get this. And when the toast to Wilhelmina as Princess of Wales was met with such enthusiasm, they thought that all doubt was gone. The news spread quickly to Berlin. It was late in the afternoon on Monday, April 30. Wilhelmina writes:

“I was sitting quiet in my apartment, busy with work, and some one reading to me, when the queen’s ladies rushed in, with a torrent of domestics in their rear, who all bawled out, putting one knee to the ground, that they were come to salute the Princess of Wales. I fairly believed these poor people had lost their wits. They would not cease overwhelming me with noise and tumult; their joy was so great they knew not what they did. When the farce had lasted some time, they told me what had occurred at the dinner.

"I was sitting quietly in my apartment, focused on work, and someone was reading to me, when the queen's ladies burst in, followed by a crowd of servants all shouting out, kneeling down to say they had come to greet the Princess of Wales. I honestly thought these poor people had lost their minds. They wouldn’t stop overwhelming me with their noise and chaos; their joy was so intense that they didn’t know what they were doing. After this went on for a while, they told me what had happened at the dinner."

“I was so little moved by it that I answered, going on with my work, ‘Is that all?’ which greatly surprised them. A while82 after, my sisters and several ladies came to congratulate me. I was much loved, and I felt more delighted at the proofs each gave me of that than at what had occasioned their congratulations. In the evening I went to the queen’s. You may readily conceive her joy. On my first entrance she called me her dear Princess of Wales, and addressed Madam De Sonsfeld as ‘Miladi.’ This latter took the liberty of hinting to her that it would be better to keep quiet; that the king, having yet given no notice of this business, might be provoked at such demonstration, and that the least trifle could still ruin all her hopes.”

"I was so unfazed by it that I just kept working and replied, 'Is that all?' which really surprised them. A little while later, my sisters and a few ladies came to congratulate me. I was very loved, and I felt happier about the affection they showed me than about the reason for their congratulations. In the evening, I went to the queen’s. You can easily imagine her joy. When I entered, she called me her dear Princess of Wales and referred to Madam De Sonsfeld as 'Miladi.’ The latter took the liberty of suggesting to her that it might be better to stay quiet; that the king hadn't said anything about this matter yet and that he could get upset over such a display, and that even the smallest thing could ruin all her hopes."

The king, upon his return from Charlottenburg to Berlin, made no allusion whatever in his family to the matter. In the court, however, it was generally considered that the question, so far as Wilhelmina was concerned, was settled. Hotham held daily interviews with the king, and received frequent communications from the Prince of Wales, who appears to have been very eager for the consummation of the marriage. Many of these letters were shown to Wilhelmina. She was much gratified with the fervor they manifested on the part of a lover who had never yet seen her. In one of these letters the prince says: “I conjure you, my dear Hotham, get these negotiations finished. I am madly in love (amoureux comme un fou), and my impatience is unequaled.”

The king, upon returning from Charlottenburg to Berlin, didn't mention the matter to his family at all. However, at court, it was widely believed that the issue regarding Wilhelmina was resolved. Hotham had daily meetings with the king and received frequent messages from the Prince of Wales, who seemed very eager to finalize the marriage. Many of these letters were shown to Wilhelmina. She was quite pleased by the passion expressed by a man who had never met her. In one of these letters, the prince writes: “I urge you, my dear Hotham, to get these negotiations wrapped up. I'm madly in love (amoureux comme un fou), and my impatience is unmatched.”

The question arises, Why was Frederick William so averse to the marriage of Fritz with the Princess Amelia? Probably the real reason was his rooted antipathy to his son, and his consequent unwillingness to do any thing which would promote his interests or increase his influence. His advisers strengthened him in this sentiment. The English were very unpopular at Berlin. Their assumption of superiority over all other peoples was a constant annoyance. The Prussian king said to his confidential friends,

The question comes up, why was Frederick William so against Fritz marrying Princess Amelia? The likely reason was his deep-seated dislike for his son and his resulting reluctance to do anything that would benefit him or boost his influence. His advisors supported this feeling. The English were quite unpopular in Berlin. Their air of superiority over other nations was a constant irritation. The Prussian king told his close friends,

“If the English Princess Amelia come here as the bride of my son, she will bring with her immense wealth. Accustomed to grandeur, she will look contemptuously upon our simplicity. With her money she can dazzle and bribe. I hate my son. He hates me. Aided by the gold of England, my son can get up a party antagonistic to me. No! I will never, never consent to his marrying the Princess Amelia. If he is never married it is83 no matter. Fortunately I have other sons, and the succession will not be disturbed.”10

“If Princess Amelia of England comes here as my son's bride, she'll bring a fortune with her. Used to luxury, she'll look down on our simple way of life. With her wealth, she can impress and manipulate people. I can’t stand my son. He can’t stand me. With England’s money, my son could rally a group against me. No! I will never, ever agree to his marriage with Princess Amelia. If he remains unmarried, it doesn’t matter. Luckily, I have other sons, so the line of succession will stay intact.”83

The king had made many efforts to force his son to surrender his rights of primogeniture, and to sign an act renouncing his claim to the succession of the Prussian throne in favor of his next brother. His only answer was, “Declare my birth illegitimate, and I will give up the throne.” But the king could never consent to fix such a stain upon the honor of his wife.

The king had tried hard to get his son to give up his right of primogeniture and sign a document renouncing his claim to the Prussian throne in favor of his younger brother. The son’s only response was, “Declare me illegitimate, and I’ll step down.” But the king could never agree to put such a stain on his wife's honor.

And why was George II. so averse to the single marriage of the Prince of Wales to Wilhelmina? It is supposed that the opposition arose simply from his own mulish obstinacy. He hated his brother-in-law, the Prussian king. He was a weak, ill-tempered man; and having once said “Both marriages or none,” nothing could induce him to swerve from that position. In such a difficulty, with such men, there could be no possible compromise.

And why was George II so opposed to the Prince of Wales marrying Wilhelmina? It’s thought that his resistance stemmed from his own stubbornness. He despised his brother-in-law, the Prussian king. He was a weak, bad-tempered man; and having once stated “Both marriages or none,” nothing could convince him to change his mind. In a situation like that, with such individuals, there could be no possible compromise.

George II. was far from popular in England. There was but little in the man to win either affection or esteem. The Prince of Wales was also daily becoming more disliked. He was assuming haughty airs. He was very profligate, and his associates were mainly actresses and opera girls. The Prussian minister at London, who was opposed to any matrimonial connection whatever between the Prussian and the English court, watched the Prince of Wales very narrowly, and wrote home quite unfavorable reports respecting his character and conduct. He had searched out the fact that Fritz had written to his aunt, Queen Caroline, pledging to her his word “never to marry any body in the world except the Princess Amelia of England, happen what will.” This fact was reported to the king, greatly exciting his wrath.

George II was not very popular in England. There was little about him that inspired affection or respect. The Prince of Wales was also becoming increasingly disliked. He was taking on an arrogant attitude. He was quite the party animal, and his friends were mostly actresses and opera singers. The Prussian minister in London, who was against any marriage connection between the Prussian and English courts, kept a close eye on the Prince of Wales and sent home quite negative reports about his character and behavior. He had discovered that Fritz had written to his aunt, Queen Caroline, promising her that he would "never marry anyone in the world except Princess Amelia of England, no matter what happens." This information was reported to the king, which greatly angered him.

To obviate the difficulty of the Crown Prince becoming the head of a party in Berlin antagonistic to the king, the plan was suggested of having him appointed, with his English princess, vice-regent of Hanover. But this plan failed. Hotham now84 became quite discouraged. He wrote home, on the 22d of April, that he had that day dined with the king; that the Crown Prince was present, but dreadfully dejected, and that great sympathy was excited in his behalf, as he was so engaging and so universally popular. He evidently perceived some indications of superiority in the Crown Prince, for he added, “If I am not much mistaken, this young prince will one day make a very considerable figure.”

To avoid the problem of the Crown Prince leading a political party in Berlin that opposed the king, the idea was proposed to appoint him and his English princess as vice-regents of Hanover. However, this plan did not work out. Hotham became quite discouraged. He wrote home on April 22nd that he had lunch with the king; the Crown Prince was there but seemed really down, and there was a lot of sympathy for him since he was so charming and widely liked. Hotham clearly saw some signs of greatness in the Crown Prince, as he noted, “If I’m not mistaken, this young prince will one day stand out significantly.”

After much diplomatic toil, the ultimatum obtained from Frederick William was the ever inflexible answer: “1. The marriage of the Prince of Wales to Wilhelmina I consent to. 2. The marriage of the Crown Prince Frederick with the Princess Amelia must be postponed. I hope it may eventually take place.”

After a lot of diplomatic effort, the ultimatum from Frederick William was his unchanging response: “1. I agree to the marriage of the Prince of Wales to Wilhelmina. 2. The marriage of Crown Prince Frederick to Princess Amelia must be delayed. I hope it will eventually happen.”

Hotham, quite indignant, sent this dispatch, dated May 13, to London, including with it a very earnest letter from the Crown Prince to his uncle, in which Fritz wrote:

Hotham, feeling quite upset, sent this message, dated May 13, to London, along with a serious letter from the Crown Prince to his uncle, in which Fritz wrote:

“The Crown Prince begs his Britannic majesty not to reject the king’s proposals, whatever they may be, for his sister Wilhelmina’s sake. For, though the Crown Prince is determined to lose his life sooner than marry any body but the Princess Amelia, yet, if this negotiation were broken off, his father would go to extremities to force him and his sister into other engagements.”

“The Crown Prince urges his British majesty not to dismiss the king’s proposals, no matter what they are, for the sake of his sister Wilhelmina. Even though the Crown Prince is set on sacrificing his life rather than marry anyone but Princess Amelia, if this negotiation falls through, his father would go to great lengths to pressure him and his sister into other commitments.”

The return mail brought back, under date of May 22, the stereotype British answer: “Both marriages or none.” Just before the reception of this reply, as Colonel Hotham was upon the eve of leaving Berlin, the Crown Prince addressed to him, from Potsdam, the following interesting letter:

The return mail brought back, dated May 22, the standard British reply: “Both marriages or none.” Just before receiving this response, as Colonel Hotham was about to leave Berlin, the Crown Prince sent him the following intriguing letter from Potsdam:

Monsieur,—I believe that it is of the last importance that I should write to you, and I am very sad to have things to say which I ought to conceal from all the earth. But one must take that bad leap, and, reckoning you among my friends, I the more easily resolve to open myself to you.

“Monsieur—I think it’s really important for me to write to you, and it makes me sad to have to share things that I should keep hidden from everyone. But I need to take this difficult step, and since I consider you a friend, it’s easier for me to be honest with you.”

“The case is this: I am treated in an unheard of manner by the king; and I know that there are terrible things in preparation against me touching certain letters which I wrote last winter, of which I believe you are informed. In a word, to speak frankly to you, the real, secret reason why the king will not consent to this marriage is, that he wishes to keep me on a low footing85 constantly, and to have the power of driving me mad whenever the whim takes him, throughout his life. Thus he will never give his consent.

“Here’s the situation: I’m being treated unusually by the king; and I know there are terrible plans against me related to certain letters I wrote last winter, which I believe you know about. To be direct, the real, underlying reason the king won’t agree to this marriage is that he wants to keep me in a subordinate position and have the power to drive me mad whenever he wants, for as long as he lives. So he will never give his consent.85

“For my own part, therefore, I believe it would be better to conclude my sister’s marriage in the first place, and not even to ask from the king any assurance in regard to mine, the rather as his word has nothing to do with it. It is enough that I here reiterate the promises which I have already made to the king, my uncle, never to take another wife than his second daughter, the Princess Amelia. I am a person of my word, and shall be able to bring about what I set forth, provided that there is trust put in me. I promise it to you. And now you may give your court notice of it, and I shall manage to keep my promise. I remain yours always.”

“For my part, I think it would be better to finalize my sister’s marriage first and not even ask the king for any assurance about mine, especially since his word doesn’t really matter in this case. It’s enough for me to repeat the promises I’ve already made to the king, my uncle, that I will never marry anyone other than his second daughter, Princess Amelia. I’m a man of my word and can make this happen as long as there’s trust in me. I promise you that. Now you can inform the court, and I will make sure to keep my promise. I am always yours.”

In June, 1730, Augustus, King of Poland, had one of the most magnificent military reviews of which history gives any record. The camp of Mühlberg, as it was called, was established upon an undulating field, twelve miles square, on the right bank of the Elbe, a few leagues below Dresden. It is hardly too much to say that all the beauty and chivalry of Europe were gathered upon that field. Fabulous amounts of money and of labor were expended to invest the scene with the utmost sublimity of splendor. A military review had great charms for Frederick William. He attended as one of the most distinguished of the invited guests. The Crown Prince accompanied the king, as his father dared not leave him behind. But Fritz was exposed to every mortification and every species of ignominy which the ingenuity of this monster parent could heap upon him.

In June 1730, Augustus, the King of Poland, held one of the most magnificent military reviews ever recorded in history. The camp at Mühlberg was set up on a rolling landscape, twelve miles square, on the right bank of the Elbe, just a short distance from Dresden. It’s fair to say that all the beauty and nobility of Europe gathered on that field. A staggering amount of money and effort was spent to make the event as grand as possible. A military review was particularly appealing to Frederick William. He attended as one of the most notable invited guests. The Crown Prince joined the king, as his father wouldn’t dare leave him behind. However, Fritz faced every humiliation and form of shame that his monstrous parent could devise.

In the presence of monarchs, of lords and ladies, of the highest dignitaries of Europe, the young heir apparent to the throne of Prussia, beautiful in person, high-spirited, and of superior genius, was treated by his father with studied contumely and insult. Every thing was done to expose him to contempt. He even openly flogged the prince with his rattan. It would seem that the father availed himself of this opportunity so to torture the sensibilities of his son as to drive him to suicide. Professor Ranke writes:

In front of kings and queens, lords and ladies, and the top dignitaries of Europe, the young heir to the Prussian throne, handsome, spirited, and exceptionally intelligent, was treated by his father with deliberate disdain and humiliation. Everything was done to make him look foolish. His father even beat the prince openly with a rattan stick. It seemed the father used this moment to torment his son so deeply that he might push him toward suicide. Professor Ranke writes:

“In that pleasure-camp of Mühlberg, where the eyes of many86 strangers were directed to him, the Crown Prince was treated like a disobedient boy, and at one time even with blows, to make him feel that he was such. The enraged king, who never weighed the consequences of his words, added mockery to his manual outrage. ‘Had I been so treated,’ he said, ‘by my father, I would have blown my brains out. But this fellow has no honor. He takes all that comes.’”

“In that pleasure camp of Mühlberg, where many strangers were watching him, the Crown Prince was treated like a disobedient boy, and at one point, even hit, to make him realize that he was one. The furious king, who never considered the consequences of his words, added ridicule to his physical punishment. ‘If I had been treated like that by my father,’ he said, ‘I would have killed myself. But this guy has no pride. He just takes whatever comes his way.’”

It would seem that if ever there were an excuse for suicide it was to be found here. But what folly it would have been! Dark as these days were, they led the prince to a crown, and to achievements of whose recital the world will never grow weary. Fritz, goaded to madness, again adopted the desperate resolve to attempt an escape. A young Englishman, Captain Guy Dickens, secretary of the British embassador, Dubourgay, had become quite the intimate friend of the Crown Prince. They conferred together upon plans of escape. But the precautions adopted by the father were such that no plan which they could devise seemed feasible at that time. Fritz confided his thoughts to his friend, Lieutenant Keith, at Berlin.

It seems that if there was ever a reason for suicide, it would be found here. But what a foolish choice that would have been! As dark as these days were, they ultimately led the prince to a crown and to achievements that the world will never tire of hearing about. Fritz, driven to madness, again made the desperate decision to try to escape. A young Englishman, Captain Guy Dickens, the secretary of the British ambassador, Dubourgay, had become quite a close friend of the Crown Prince. They discussed escape plans together. However, the precautions taken by the father were so strict that none of their ideas seemed workable at that time. Fritz shared his thoughts with his friend, Lieutenant Keith, in Berlin.

It is probable that the suspicions of the king were excited, for suddenly he sent Lieutenant Keith to a garrison at Wesel, at a great distance from Berlin, in a small Prussian province far down the Rhine. The three had, however, concocted the following plan, to be subsequently executed. Immediately after the return from Mühlberg the king was to undertake a long journey to the Rhine. The Crown Prince, as usual, was to be dragged along with him. In this journey they would pass through Stuttgart, within a few miles of Strasbourg, which was on the French side of the river. From Stuttgart the prince was to escape in disguise, on fleetest horses, to Strasbourg, and thence proceed to London. Colonel Hotham, who had accompanied the Prussian king to the camp of Mühlberg, was apprised of all this by his secretary. He immediately dispatched the secretary, on the 16th of June, to convey the confidential intelligence to London.

It's likely that the king's suspicions were raised because he suddenly sent Lieutenant Keith to a garrison in Wesel, which is far from Berlin, in a small Prussian province down the Rhine. However, the three had devised the following plan to be carried out later. Right after returning from Mühlberg, the king was supposed to take a long trip to the Rhine. The Crown Prince, as usual, was to be dragged along with him. During this journey, they would pass through Stuttgart, just a few miles from Strasbourg, which was on the French side of the river. From Stuttgart, the prince was to escape in disguise, on fast horses, to Strasbourg, and then continue on to London. Colonel Hotham, who had gone with the Prussian king to the camp at Mühlberg, was informed of all this by his secretary. He immediately sent the secretary on June 16th to deliver the confidential information to London.

At the close of these festivities at Mühlberg Frederick William and his suite took boat down the River Elbe to his hunting palace at Lichtenberg. Here they killed, in a grand hunting bout, a thousand animals, boars and deer. The Crown Prince, dishonored by insults which he could not revenge, and stung to the87 quick by innumerable humiliations, followed, dejected, like a guarded captive, in the train of his father. The unhappy prince had but just returned to his garrison at Potsdam, where spies ever kept their eyes vigilantly upon him, when his friend, Captain Guy Dickens, brought him the answer, returned from London, to the confidential communication of the Crown Prince to his uncle, the British king. The substance of the document was as follows:

At the end of the celebrations at Mühlberg, Frederick William and his entourage took a boat down the River Elbe to his hunting lodge at Lichtenberg. There, they had an extravagant hunting event, where they killed a thousand animals, including boars and deer. The Crown Prince, feeling dishonored by insults he couldn't avenge and burdened by countless humiliations, followed behind his father like a guarded prisoner, feeling downcast. The unfortunate prince had just returned to his garrison in Potsdam, where spies always kept a close watch on him, when his friend, Captain Guy Dickens, brought him the response from London to the Crown Prince's private message to his uncle, the British king. The main points of the document were as follows:

“Mr. Guy Dickens may give to the prince the assurance of the deep compassion which the king feels in view of the sad condition in which the prince finds himself, and of the sincere desire of his majesty to aid, by all the means in his power, to extricate him. While waiting the result of some negotiations now on foot, his majesty is of the opinion that it would be best for the prince to defer for a time his present design; that the present critical state of affairs in Europe do not present a favorable opportunity for the execution of the contemplated plan; that the idea of retiring to France demands very careful deliberation; and that there is not time now to ascertain how such a step would be regarded by the French court, which his majesty would think to be essential before he advise a prince so dear to him to withdraw to that country.”

“Mr. Guy Dickens can assure the prince of the deep compassion the king feels regarding the sad situation the prince is in and the sincere desire of his majesty to help in every way possible to get him out of it. While waiting for the outcome of some ongoing negotiations, his majesty believes it would be best for the prince to put his current plans on hold for a while; the current critical state of affairs in Europe does not present a favorable opportunity for implementing the proposed plan; the idea of moving to France requires a lot of careful thought; and there isn’t enough time now to figure out how such a move would be viewed by the French court, which his majesty thinks is essential before advising a prince so dear to him to relocate to that country.”

Soon after this, Colonel Hotham, having received a gross insult from the king, demanded his passports. The English embassador had presented the king with a document from his court. Frederick William angrily threw the paper upon the floor, exclaiming, “I have had enough of those things!” and, turning upon his heel, left the room. Colonel Hotham, a high-bred English gentleman, could not brook such an indignity, not only to himself, but to his sovereign. The passionate king had scarcely left the apartment before he perceived the impolicy of his conduct. He tried to make amends. But Colonel Hotham, justly regarding it as an insult to his court, persisted in demanding his passports, and returned to London. The Crown Prince in vain begged Colonel Hotham to remain. Very properly he replied that the incivility was addressed to his king, and that it was for him only to judge what satisfaction was due for the indignity offered.

Soon after this, Colonel Hotham, having received a severe insult from the king, asked for his passports. The English ambassador had given the king a document from his court. Frederick William angrily threw the paper on the floor, exclaiming, “I’ve had enough of this!” and, turning on his heel, left the room. Colonel Hotham, a well-bred English gentleman, could not tolerate such disrespect, not only to himself but to his sovereign. The passionate king had barely left the room before he realized how unwise his actions were. He tried to make amends. But Colonel Hotham, rightly seeing it as an insult to his court, insisted on demanding his passports and returned to London. The Crown Prince pleaded with Colonel Hotham to stay, but he correctly replied that the incivility was aimed at his king, and it was up to him alone to decide what satisfaction was due for the offense.

All negotiation in reference to the marriages was now apparently88 at an end. Lieutenant Katte remained at Potsdam. In the absence of Lieutenant Keith he became more than ever the friend and confidant of the Crown Prince. Wilhelmina, aware of the dissipated character of Katte, mourned over this intimacy. The king was very much annoyed by the blunder of which he himself had been guilty in insulting the court of England in the person of its embassador. He declared, in his vexation, that he would never again treat in person with a foreign minister; that his hot temper rendered it unsafe for him to do so.

All discussions about the marriages were now clearly88 over. Lieutenant Katte stayed in Potsdam. With Lieutenant Keith absent, he became even more of a friend and confidant to the Crown Prince. Wilhelmina, knowing about Katte's reckless behavior, lamented this closeness. The king was very frustrated by the mistake he made in insulting the English court through its ambassador. In his anger, he declared that he would never again deal directly with a foreign minister, as his temper made it too risky to do so.

He informed Wilhelmina that the question of her marriage with the Prince of Wales was now settled forever, and that, as she declined taking the Duke of Weissenfels for a husband, she might prepare to retire to the abbey of Hereford, a kind of Protestant nunnery for ladies of quality, who, for any reason, wished to be buried from the world. He mercilessly resolved to make her the abbess of this institution. This living burial was almost the last situation to suit the taste of Wilhelmina. The king was in the worst possible humor. “He bullies and outrages his poor Crown Prince almost worse than ever. There have been rattan showers hideous to think of, descending this very week (July, 1730) on the fine head and far into the high heart of a royal young man, who can not in the name of manhood endure, and must not in the name of sonhood resist, and vainly calls to all the gods to teach him what he shall do in this intolerable, inextricable state of affairs.”11

He told Wilhelmina that her marriage to the Prince of Wales was now settled for good, and since she refused to marry the Duke of Weissenfels, she should prepare to move to the abbey of Hereford, a sort of Protestant nunnery for ladies of high status who wanted to escape the world for any reason. He ruthlessly decided to make her the abbess of this institution. This living burial was nearly the last thing Wilhelmina would want. The king was in a terrible mood. “He bullies and mistreats his poor Crown Prince almost worse than ever. There have been brutal rattan beatings this very week (July, 1730) on the fine head and deep into the high heart of a royal young man, who, in the name of manhood, cannot endure it, and must not, in the name of being a son, resist, and cries out to all the gods to show him what he should do in this unbearable, complicated situation.”11

As soon as Hotham had left Berlin the Crown Prince held a secret midnight interview with Captain Dickens and Lieutenant Katte, to devise some new plan of escape during the journey to the Rhine, which was to commence in a few days. He made arrangements to leave all his private papers with Katte, provided himself with a large gray overcoat as a partial disguise, and, with much difficulty, obtained about a thousand ducats to defray his expenses. Lieutenant Keith was at Wesel. He was written to with the utmost secrecy, as he might be able to render efficient aid, could the Crown Prince reach him.

As soon as Hotham left Berlin, the Crown Prince had a secret midnight meeting with Captain Dickens and Lieutenant Katte to come up with a new escape plan for the journey to the Rhine, which was set to begin in a few days. He arranged to leave all his private papers with Katte, got himself a large gray overcoat as a partial disguise, and, with a lot of effort, managed to gather about a thousand ducats to cover his expenses. Lieutenant Keith was in Wesel. They wrote to him very secretly, as he might be able to provide valuable help if the Crown Prince could reach him.

On Saturday, the 15th of July, 1730, the king, with a small train, which really guarded Fritz, set out at an early hour from Potsdam on this memorable journey. Three reliable officers of89 the king occupied the same carriage with Fritz, with orders to keep a strict watch over him, and never to leave him alone. Thus, throughout the journey, one of his guards sat by his side, and the other two on the seat facing him. The king was not a luxurious traveler. He seemed to covet hardship and fatigue. Post-horses were provided all along the route. The meteoric train rushed along, scarcely stopping for food or sleep, but occasionally delayed by business of inspection, until it reached Anspach, where the king’s beautiful daughter, then but sixteen years of age, resided with her uncongenial husband. Here the Crown Prince had some hope of escape. He endeavored to persuade his brother-in-law, the young Marquis of Anspach, to lend him a pair of saddle-horses, and to say nothing about it. But the characterless young man, suspecting his brother, and dreading the wrath of his terrible father-in-law, refused, with many protestations of good-will.

On Saturday, July 15, 1730, the king, accompanied by a small entourage that was really there to keep an eye on Fritz, set off early from Potsdam on this significant journey. Three trustworthy officers of the king shared a carriage with Fritz, tasked with closely monitoring him and never leaving him alone. Throughout the trip, one of his guards sat next to him, while the other two sat across from him. The king wasn't a traveler who sought luxury; instead, he seemed to welcome hardship and exhaustion. Fresh horses were arranged at intervals along the route. The swift convoy moved quickly, barely stopping for food or rest, but occasionally held up by inspections, until it reached Anspach, where the king's beautiful daughter, just sixteen at the time, lived with her ill-matched husband. Here, the Crown Prince saw a chance to escape. He tried to convince his brother-in-law, the young Marquis of Anspach, to lend him a couple of saddle-horses without mentioning it to anyone. However, the spineless young man, suspecting his brother and fearing the anger of his formidable father-in-law, declined with numerous assurances of goodwill.

When near Augsburg, Fritz wrote a letter to Lieutenant Katte, stating that he should embrace the first opportunity to escape to the Hague; that there he should assume the name of the Count of Alberville. He wished Katte to join him there, and to bring with him the overcoat and the one thousand ducats which he had left in his hands. On Thursday, August 3d, the royal party reached the little hamlet of Steinfurth, not far from the Rhine. Here, as was not unfrequently the case, they slept in barns, carefully swept and prepared for them. The usual hour of starting was three o’clock in the morning.

When near Augsburg, Fritz wrote a letter to Lieutenant Katte, saying he should take the first chance to escape to The Hague; there, he would use the name Count of Alberville. He wanted Katte to meet him there and to bring along the overcoat and the one thousand ducats he had left with him. On Thursday, August 3rd, the royal party arrived at the small village of Steinfurth, not far from the Rhine. Here, as was often the case, they slept in barns that had been carefully cleaned and prepared for them. They usually started at three o'clock in the morning.

Just after midnight, the prince, seeing his associates soundly asleep, cautiously rose, dressed, and crept out into the open air. He had secretly made arrangements with his valet, a brother of Lieutenant Keith, to meet him with some horses on the village green. He reached the green. His valet soon appeared with the horses. Just at that moment, one of his guard, Rochow, who had been aroused by a servant whom he had left secretly on the watch, came forward through the gloom of the night, and, sternly addressing Keith, inquired, “Sirrah, what are you doing with those horses?” With much self-possession Keith replied, “I am getting the horses ready for the hour of starting.” “His majesty,” Rochow replied, “does not start till five o’clock. Take the horses directly back to the stable.”

Just after midnight, the prince, seeing his friends fast asleep, quietly got up, got dressed, and slipped outside. He had arranged in secret with his valet, who was Lieutenant Keith's brother, to meet him with some horses on the village green. When he reached the green, his valet soon showed up with the horses. At that moment, one of his guards, Rochow, who had been alerted by a servant he had secretly placed on watch, stepped out from the shadows of the night and, sternly addressing Keith, asked, “What are you doing with those horses?” With a calm demeanor, Keith replied, “I’m getting the horses ready for our departure.” “His majesty,” Rochow responded, “doesn't leave until five o’clock. Take the horses straight back to the stable.”

90

90

THE FLIGHT ARRESTED.

Keith, trembling in every limb, returned to the stable. Though Rochow pretended not to suspect any attempt at escape, it was manifestly pretense only. The prince had provided himself with a red overcoat as a disguise to his uniform, the gray one having been left with Katte at Potsdam. As Fritz was returning to the barn with Rochow, wearing this suspicious garment, they met the minister Seckendorf, whom Fritz and his mother thoroughly hated as one of the counselors of the king. Very coolly and cuttingly Rochow inquired of Seckendorf, “How do you like his royal highness in the red overcoat?” It was a desperate game these men were playing; for, should the king suddenly91 die, Fritz would surely inherit the crown, and they would be entirely at his mercy. All hope of escape seemed now to vanish, and the prince was quite in despair.

Keith, shaking in every part of his body, went back to the stable. Even though Rochow acted like he didn’t suspect any plans to escape, it was obviously just an act. The prince had given himself a red overcoat as a disguise for his uniform, since the gray one was left with Katte at Potsdam. As Fritz was heading back to the barn with Rochow while wearing this suspicious coat, they ran into Minister Seckendorf, who was despised by both Fritz and his mother for being one of the king's advisors. Rochow coolly and sharply asked Seckendorf, “What do you think of his royal highness in the red overcoat?” It was a desperate game these men were playing; if the king suddenly died, Fritz would definitely inherit the throne, leaving them completely at his mercy. All hope of escape seemed to fade, and the prince felt completely hopeless.

The king was doubtless informed of all that had occurred. They reached Manheim the next night. Keith was so terrified, fearing that his life would be the penalty, that he there threw himself upon his knees before the king, confessing all, and imploring pardon. The king, in tones of intense agitation, informed the vigilance trio that death would be their inevitable doom if they allowed the prince to escape. Thus far the prince had been nominally free. Those who occupied the carriage with him—Rochow, Waldau, and Buddenbrock—had assumed to be merely his traveling companions. Their office of guardship had been scrupulously concealed. But henceforth he was regarded and treated as a culprit in the custody of his jailers.

The king was definitely aware of everything that had happened. They arrived in Manheim the following night. Keith was so scared, worried that he would pay with his life, that he fell to his knees in front of the king, confessing everything and begging for forgiveness. The king, clearly agitated, told the vigilant trio that death would be their certain fate if they let the prince get away. Until now, the prince had been technically free. Those traveling with him—Rochow, Waldau, and Buddenbrock—had pretended to be just his companions. Their role as guards had been carefully hidden. But from this point on, he was seen and treated as a criminal in the custody of his captors.

The king, smothering his wrath, did not immediately seek an interview with his son. But the next day, encountering him, he said, sarcastically, “Ah! you are still here, then; I thought that by this time you would have been in Paris.” The prince, somewhat emboldened by despair, ventured to reply, “I certainly could have been there had I wished it.”

The king, suppressing his anger, didn’t immediately ask to see his son. But the next day, when he ran into him, he said sarcastically, “Ah! So you’re still here; I figured you would have made it to Paris by now.” The prince, feeling a bit braver due to his hopelessness, dared to respond, “I definitely could have been there if I wanted to.”

At Frankfort-on-the-Main the party were to take boats to descend the river. The prince was informed that the king had given express orders that he should not be permitted to enter the town, but that he should be conducted immediately to one of the royal yachts. Here the king received an intercepted letter from the Crown Prince to Lieutenant Katte. Boiling with indignation, he stalked on board the yacht, and assailed his captive son in the coarsest and most violent language of abuse. In the frenzy of his passion he seized Fritz by the collar, shook him, hustled him about, tore out handfuls of hair, and thrust his cane into his face, causing the blood to gush from his nose. “Never before,” exclaimed the unhappy prince, pathetically, “did a Brandenburg face suffer the like of this.”

At Frankfort-on-the-Main, the group was set to take boats down the river. The prince was told that the king had given strict orders that he should not be allowed to enter the town, but should be taken straight to one of the royal yachts. Here, the king received an intercepted letter from the Crown Prince to Lieutenant Katte. Furious with rage, he stormed onto the yacht and berated his son with the most vulgar and aggressive insults. In his blind anger, he grabbed Fritz by the collar, shook him, shoved him around, yanked out clumps of hair, and pushed his cane into his face, making blood pour from his nose. "Never before," the miserable prince exclaimed, sadly, "has a Brandenburg face endured this."

The king then, having ordered his guard to watch him with the utmost vigilance, assuring them that their heads should answer for it if they allowed him to escape, sent his son to another boat. He was prevailed upon to do so, as no one could tell to what length the king’s ungovernable passions might lead him.

The king, after ordering his guard to keep a close eye on him and warning them that their lives depended on not letting him escape, sent his son to another boat. He was convinced to do this, as no one knew how far the king's uncontrollable anger might take him.

92 The royal yachts glided down the Main to the Rhine, and thence down the Rhine to Wesel. Probably a heavier heart than that of the prince never floated upon that world-renowned stream. Lost in painful musings, he had no eye to gaze upon the picturesque scenes of mountain, forest, castle, and ruins through which they were gliding. At Bonn he had an interview with Seckendorf, whose influence was great with his father, and whom he hoped to interest in his favor. To him he said,

92 The royal yachts glided down the Main to the Rhine, and then down the Rhine to Wesel. Probably no one had a heavier heart than the prince as he floated on that famous river. Lost in painful thoughts, he didn’t even notice the beautiful sights of mountains, forests, castles, and ruins they passed by. In Bonn, he had a meeting with Seckendorf, who had a lot of influence with his father and whom he hoped to win over. He said to him,

“I intended to have escaped at Steinfurth. I can not endure the treatment which I receive from my father—his abuse and blows. I should have escaped long ago had it not been for the condition in which I should have thus left my mother and sister. I am so miserable that I care but little for my own life. My great anxiety is for those officers who have been my friends, and who are implicated in my attempts. If the king will promise to pardon them, I will make a full confession of every thing. If you can help me in these difficulties, I shall be forever grateful to you.”

"I planned to escape at Steinfurth. I can't stand how my father treats me—his abuse and his hits. I should have gotten away a long time ago if it weren't for the situation I would leave my mother and sister in. I'm so unhappy that I hardly care about my own life. My biggest concern is for the officers who have been my friends and are involved in my plans. If the king promises to forgive them, I will confess everything. If you can help me out of these problems, I will be forever grateful to you."

It is probable that even Seckendorf was somewhat moved by this pathetic appeal. Fritz succeeded in sending a letter to the post-office, addressed to Lieutenant Keith at Wesel, containing simply the words “Sauvez vous; tout est decouvert” (Save yourself; all is found out). Keith received the letter but an hour or so before a colonel of gens d’armes arrived to arrest him. Seckendorf had an interview with the king, and seems to have endeavored to mitigate his wrath. He assured the infuriate monarch of his son’s repentance, and of his readiness to make a full confession if his father would spare those who had been led by their sympathies to befriend him. The unrelenting father received this message very sullenly, saying that he had no faith that his son would make an honest confession, but that he would see what he had to say for himself.

It’s likely that even Seckendorf was a bit touched by this moving plea. Fritz managed to send a letter to the post office, addressed to Lieutenant Keith in Wesel, which simply said “Sauvez vous; tout est decouvert” (Save yourself; all is found out). Keith got the letter just about an hour before a colonel of gendarmes showed up to arrest him. Seckendorf had a meeting with the king and seems to have tried to calm his anger. He assured the furious monarch that his son regretted his actions and was ready to fully confess if his father would spare those who had supported him out of kindness. The unyielding father received this message quite grumpily, stating that he didn’t believe his son would make an honest confession, but that he would listen to what he had to say for himself.

At Geldern, when within a few miles of Wesel, the king’s wrath flamed up anew as he learned that Lieutenant Keith had escaped. The imperiled young officer, warned of his danger, had saddled his horse as if for an evening ride in the country. He passed out at one of the gates of the city, and, riding gently till darkness came, he put spurs to his horse and escaped to the Hague. Here, through the friendly offices of Lord Chesterfield,93 the British embassador, he embarked for England. The authorities there received him kindly, and he entered the British army. For ten years he was heard of no more. The king dispatched officers in pursuit of the fugitive, and redoubled the vigilance with which Fritz was guarded.

At Geldern, just a few miles from Wesel, the king's anger flared up again when he found out that Lieutenant Keith had escaped. The young officer, aware of his danger, saddled his horse as if he were going for a casual evening ride in the countryside. He left through one of the city gates and, riding slowly until it got dark, pushed his horse hard and made his way to the Hague. There, with the help of Lord Chesterfield,93 the British ambassador, he got on a ship to England. The authorities there welcomed him warmly, and he joined the British army. For ten years, he was not heard from again. The king sent officers to capture the fugitive and increased his efforts to keep a close watch on Fritz.

Upon the king’s arrival at Wesel he ordered his culprit son to be brought on shore and to be arraigned before him. It was Saturday evening, August 12, 1730. A terrible scene ensued. The despairing Crown Prince, tortured by injustice, was not disposed to humble himself before his father. Receiving no assurance that his friends would be pardoned, he evaded all attempts to extort from him confessions which would implicate them. General Mosel alone was present at this examination.

Upon the king’s arrival at Wesel, he ordered his guilty son to be brought ashore and to be put on trial before him. It was Saturday evening, August 12, 1730. A horrible scene unfolded. The despairing Crown Prince, tormented by injustice, was not willing to bow down before his father. Without any promise that his friends would be pardoned, he resisted all efforts to force confessions from him that would incriminate them. Only General Mosel was present at this interrogation.

“Why,” asked the king, furiously, “did you attempt to desert?”

“Why,” the king asked angrily, “did you try to run away?”

“I wished to escape,” the prince boldly replied, “because you did not treat me like a son, but like an abject slave.”

“I wanted to get away,” the prince replied confidently, “because you didn’t treat me like a son, but like a worthless slave.”

“You are a cowardly deserter,” the father exclaimed, “devoid of all feelings of honor.”

“You're a cowardly deserter,” the father exclaimed, “lacking any sense of honor.”

“I have as much honor as you have,” the son replied; “and I have only done that which I have heard you say a hundred times you would have done yourself had you been treated as I have been.”

“I have just as much honor as you do,” the son replied. “I’ve only done what I’ve heard you say a hundred times you would have done yourself if you had been treated the way I have.”

The wrath of the king was now ungovernable. He drew his sword, threatening to thrust it through the heart of his son, and seemed upon the point of doing so, when General Mosel threw himself before the king, exclaiming, “Sire, you may kill me, but spare your son.”12

The king’s rage was now out of control. He drew his sword, looking ready to plunge it into his son's heart, and seemed about to do it when General Mosel stepped in front of the king, saying, “Your Majesty, you can kill me, but please spare your son.”12

The prince was withdrawn, and placed in a room where two sentries watched over him with fixed bayonets. The king malignantly assumed that the prince, being a colonel in the army and attempting to escape, was a deserter, whose merited doom was death. General Mosel urged the king not to see his son again, as his presence was sure to inflame his anger to so alarming a pitch. The father did not again see him for a year and three days.

The prince was isolated and kept in a room where two guards watched over him with fixed bayonets. The king, bitterly convinced that the prince, being a colonel in the army and trying to flee, was a deserter, believed he deserved death. General Mosel urged the king not to see his son again, as it would only further anger him to an alarming degree. The father didn't see him again for a year and three days.

A stern military commission was, however, appointed to interrogate the prince from questions drawn up by the king. The examination took place the next day. The prince confessed that94 it was his intention to cross the Rhine at the nearest point, and to repair to Strasbourg, in France. There he intended to enlist incognito as a volunteer in the French army. He refused to tell how he obtained his money, or to make any revelations which would implicate his friends Katte and Keith.

A strict military panel was appointed to question the prince based on inquiries prepared by the king. The questioning happened the following day. The prince admitted that he planned to cross the Rhine at the closest location and head to Strasbourg, France. There, he aimed to secretly join the French army as a volunteer. He refused to disclose how he got his money or to reveal anything that would implicate his friends Katte and Keith.

FREDERICK WILLIAM ENRAGED.

As this report was made to the king, he exclaimed, angrily, “Let him lie in ward, then, and await the doom which the laws adjudge to him. He is my colonel. He has attempted to desert. He has endeavored to induce others to desert with him. The law speaks plainly enough as to the penalty for such crimes.”

As this report was presented to the king, he shouted, angrily, “Let him be locked up then, and face the punishment that the laws decide for him. He is my colonel. He has tried to run away. He has tried to persuade others to run away with him. The law is clear about the consequences for such offenses.”

In the mean time, the queen and Wilhelmina, at Berlin, unconscious of the dreadful tidings they were soon to receive, were95 taking advantage of the absence of the king in seeking a few hours of social enjoyment. They gave a ball at the pretty little palace of Monbijou, on the banks of the Spree, a short distance out from Berlin. In the midst of the entertainment the queen received, by a courier, the following dispatch from Frederick William:

In the meantime, the queen and Wilhelmina, in Berlin and unaware of the terrible news that was about to reach them, were95 enjoying a few hours of social fun while the king was away. They hosted a ball at the charming little palace of Monbijou, located along the banks of the Spree, just outside Berlin. In the middle of the festivities, the queen received a message from Frederick William via a courier:

“I have arrested the rascal Fritz. I shall treat him as his crime and his cowardice merit. He has dishonored me and all my family. So great a wretch is no longer worthy to live.”

“I have arrested that scoundrel Fritz. I will deal with him as his crime and cowardice deserve. He has brought shame upon me and my entire family. Such a wretch no longer deserves to live.”

Wilhelmina, in the following graphic narrative, describes the scene: “Mamma had given a ball in honor of papa’s birthday. We recommenced the ball after supper. For six years I had not danced before. It was new fruit, and I took my fill of it, without heeding much what was passing. Madam Bulow, who, with others, had worn long faces all night, pleading illness when one noticed it, said to me several times,

Wilhelmina, in the following graphic narrative, describes the scene: “Mom had thrown a party to celebrate Dad’s birthday. We started the dancing again after dinner. I hadn’t danced in six years. It was a new experience, and I enjoyed it without paying much attention to what was going on around me. Madam Bulow, who, along with others, had been sulking all night and pretending to be sick when anyone noticed, told me several times,

“‘It is late. I wish you had done.’

“‘It’s late. I wish you had finished.’”

“‘Oh dear me!’ I exclaimed; ‘do let me have enough of dancing this one new time. It may be long before it comes again.’

“‘Oh my goodness!’ I exclaimed; ‘please let me have one last dance this time. It might be a while before it happens again.’”

“She returned to me an hour after, and said, with a vexed air, ‘Will you end, then? You are so engaged you have eyes for nothing.’

“She came back to me an hour later and said with an annoyed expression, ‘Are you going to finish up? You’re so absorbed that you’re not paying attention to anything.’”

“I replied, ‘You are in such a humor I know not what to make of it.’

“I replied, ‘You’re in such a mood; I don’t know what to make of it.’”

“‘Look at the queen, then,’ she added, ‘and you will cease to reproach me.’

“‘Just look at the queen,’ she added, ‘and you’ll stop blaming me.’”

“A glance which I gave that way filled me with terror. There sat the queen, in a corner of the room, paler than death, in low conference with Madam Sonsfeld and Countess Finckenstein. As my brother was most in my anxieties, I asked if it concerned him. Madam Bulow shrugged her shoulders, answering, ‘I do not know at all.’”

“A glance I threw in that direction filled me with fear. The queen was sitting in a corner of the room, looking paler than death, engaged in a quiet conversation with Madam Sonsfeld and Countess Finckenstein. Since my brother was my biggest worry, I asked if it was about him. Madam Bulow shrugged and said, ‘I have no idea.’”

They repaired to the carriage, which was immediately ordered. Not a word was spoken until they reached the palace. Wilhelmina did not venture to ask any questions. Fearing that her brother was dead, she was in terrible trepidation. Having arrived at the palace, Madam Sonsfeld informed her of the contents of the dispatch.

They went back to the carriage, which was ordered right away. Not a word was said until they got to the palace. Wilhelmina didn’t dare ask any questions. Afraid that her brother was dead, she was filled with dread. Once they arrived at the palace, Madam Sonsfeld told her what the message said.

96

96

DESTROYING THE LETTERS.

The next morning they learned that Lieutenant Katte had been arrested. All the private papers of Fritz were left, under Katte’s charge, in a small writing-desk. These letters would implicate both the mother and the daughter. They were terror-stricken. Count Finckenstein, who was in high authority, was their friend. Through him, by the aid of Madam Finckenstein, they obtained the desk. It was locked and sealed. Despair stimulated their ingenuity. They succeeded in getting the letters. To destroy them and leave nothing in their place would only rouse to greater fury the suspicion and rage of the king. The letters were taken out and burned. The queen and Wilhelmina immediately set to work writing new ones, of a very different character, with which to replace them. For three days they thus labored almost incessantly, writing between six and seven hundred letters. They were so careful to avoid any thing97 which might lead to detection that paper was employed for each letter bearing the date of the year in which the letter was supposed to be written. “Fancy the mood,” writes Carlyle, “of these two royal women, and the black whirlwind they were in. Wilhelmina’s dispatch was incredible. Pen went at the gallop night and day. New letters of old date and of no meaning are got into the desk again, the desk closed without mark of injury, and shoved aside while it is yet time.”

The next morning, they found out that Lieutenant Katte had been arrested. All of Fritz's private papers were under Katte’s care in a small writing desk. These letters would implicate both the mother and the daughter. They were terrified. Count Finckenstein, who held a prominent position, was their ally. With his help and that of Madam Finckenstein, they managed to get the desk. It was locked and sealed. Desperation fueled their creativity. They managed to retrieve the letters. Destroying them and leaving no trace would only provoke the king's suspicion and anger even more. The letters were taken out and burned. The queen and Wilhelmina immediately started writing new ones, of a very different nature, to replace them. For three days, they worked almost non-stop, writing about six to seven hundred letters. They were extremely careful to avoid anything that might lead to detection, using paper for each letter with the date of the year it was supposed to be written. “Imagine the mood,” writes Carlyle, “of these two royal women, and the intense turmoil they were in. Wilhelmina’s dispatch was incredible. The pen raced night and day. New letters with old dates and no real meaning were placed back in the desk, which was closed without any signs of damage and set aside just in time.”

Wesel was the fortress of a small province belonging to Prussia, on the Rhine, many leagues from Berlin. The intervening territory belonged to Hanover and Hesse Cassel. The king ordered his captive son to be taken, under a strong guard, by circuitous roads, so as not to attract attention, to the castle of Mittenwalde, near Berlin. The king then started for home, probably as wretched as he was making every body about him. After a very rapid journey, he reached Berlin late in the afternoon of Sunday, the 27th of August, 1730. It was the evening after the fabrication of the letters had been completed. We give, from the graphic pen of Wilhelmina, the account of the king’s first interview with his family:

Wesel was the fortress of a small province that belonged to Prussia, located on the Rhine, quite a distance from Berlin. The land in between was part of Hanover and Hesse Cassel. The king ordered that his imprisoned son be taken, under heavy guard, by indirect routes to avoid drawing attention, to the castle of Mittenwalde, near Berlin. The king then headed home, likely just as miserable as he was making everyone around him. After a very quick journey, he arrived in Berlin late in the afternoon on Sunday, August 27, 1730. It was the evening after the letters had been fabricated. We present, from Wilhelmina's vivid account, the record of the king’s first meeting with his family:

“The queen was alone, in his majesty’s apartment, waiting for him as he approached. As soon as he saw her at the end of the suite of rooms, and long before he arrived in the one where she was, he cried out, ‘Your unworthy son has at last ended himself. You have done with him.’

“The queen was alone in the king’s apartment, waiting for him as he came closer. As soon as he spotted her at the end of the hallway, and long before he reached the room where she was, he shouted, ‘Your unworthy son has finally taken care of himself. You’re done with him.’”

“‘What!’ cried the queen, ‘have you had the barbarity to kill him?’

“‘What!’ shouted the queen, ‘have you really had the cruelty to kill him?’”

“‘Yes, I tell you,’ the king replied; ‘but I must have his writing-case.’ For he had already informed himself that it was in the queen’s possession.

“‘Yes, I tell you,’ the king replied; ‘but I need his writing case.’ For he had already found out that it was in the queen’s possession.

“The queen went to her own apartment to fetch it. I ran in to her there for a moment. She was out of her senses, wringing her hands, crying incessantly, and exclaiming, ‘O God, my son, my son!’ Breath failed me. I fell fainting into the arms of Madam Sonsfeld. The queen took the writing-desk to the king. He immediately broke it open and tore out the letters, with which he went away. The queen came back to us. We were comforted by the assurance, from some of the attendants, that my brother at least was not dead.

“The queen went to her room to get it. I ran into her for a moment. She was beside herself, wringing her hands, crying nonstop, and shouting, ‘Oh God, my son, my son!’ I felt faint. I collapsed into the arms of Madam Sonsfeld. The queen took the writing desk to the king. He immediately broke it open and tore out the letters before leaving. The queen came back to us. We were reassured by some of the attendants that at least my brother was not dead.

98 “Pretty soon the king came back, and we, his children, ran to pay our respects to him, by kissing his hands. But he no sooner noticed me than rage and fury took possession of him. He became black in the face, his eyes sparkling fire, his mouth foaming. ‘Infamous wretch!’ said he, ‘dare you show yourself before me? Go and keep your scoundrel brother company.’

98 "Before long, the king returned, and we, his children, rushed to show our respect by kissing his hands. But as soon as he noticed me, anger and fury took over him. His face turned dark, his eyes flashed with fire, and his mouth was foaming. 'Shameless wretch!' he said, 'how dare you come before me? Go and keep your deceitful brother company.'"

“So saying, he seized me with one hand, striking me several blows in the face with the other fist. One of the blows struck me on the temple, so that I fell back, and should have split my head against a corner of the wainscot had not Madam Sonsfeld caught me by the head-dress and broken the fall. I lay on the floor without consciousness. The king, in his frenzy, proceeded to kick me out of a window which opened to the floor. The queen, my sisters, and the rest, ran between, preventing him. They all ranged themselves around me, which gave Mesdames De Kamecke and Sonsfeld time to pick me up. They put me in a chair in an embrasure of a window. Madam Sonsfeld supported my head, which was wounded and swollen with the blows I had received. They threw water upon my face to bring me to life, which care I lamentably reproached them with, death being a thousand times better in the pass things had come to. The queen was shrieking. Her firmness had entirely abandoned her. She ran wildly about the room, wringing her hands in despair. My brothers and sisters, of whom the youngest was not more than four years old, were on their knees begging for me. The king’s face was so disfigured with rage that it was frightful to look upon.

“So saying, he grabbed me with one hand and hit me several times in the face with the other fist. One of the punches landed on my temple, causing me to fall back, and I would have hit my head on the corner of the wainscot if Madam Sonsfeld hadn’t caught me by my headdress and broke my fall. I lay on the floor unconscious. In his fury, the king tried to kick me out of a window that opened to the floor. The queen, my sisters, and everyone else rushed in to stop him. They all gathered around me, giving Mesdames De Kamecke and Sonsfeld a chance to pick me up. They placed me in a chair in a window nook. Madam Sonsfeld supported my head, which was injured and swollen from the blows. They splashed water on my face to revive me, an act I sadly resented, as death seemed a thousand times better given how things had turned out. The queen was screaming. She had completely lost her composure. She dashed around the room, wringing her hands in despair. My brothers and sisters, the youngest not more than four years old, were on their knees pleading for me. The king’s face was so twisted with rage that it was terrifying to look at.”

“The king now admitted that my brother was still alive, but vowed horribly that he would put him to death, and lay me fast within four walls for the rest of my life. He accused me of being the prince’s accomplice, whose crime was high treason. ‘I hope now,’ he said, ‘to have evidence enough to convict the rascal Fritz and the wretch Wilhelmina, and to cut their heads off. As for Fritz, he will always, if he lives, be a worthless fellow. I have three other sons, who will all turn out better than he has done.’

“The king now admitted that my brother was still alive, but he swore he would kill him and lock me away for the rest of my life. He accused me of being the prince’s accomplice in his high treason. ‘I hope,’ he said, ‘to have enough evidence to convict that scoundrel Fritz and that miserable Wilhelmina, and to execute them. As for Fritz, he'll always be a failure, as long as he lives. I have three other sons, and they will all be better than he ever was.’”

“‘Oh, spare my brother,’ I cried, ‘and I will marry the Duke of Weissenfels.’ But in the great noise he did not hear me. And while I strove to repeat it louder, Madam Sonsfeld clapped99 her handkerchief on my mouth. Pushing aside to get rid of the handkerchief, I saw Katte crossing the square. Four soldiers were conducting him to the king. My brother’s trunks and his were following in the rear. Pale and downcast, he took off his hat to salute me. He fell at the king’s feet imploring pardon.”

“‘Oh, spare my brother,’ I shouted, ‘and I’ll marry the Duke of Weissenfels.’ But in the commotion, he didn’t hear me. As I tried to say it louder, Madam Sonsfeld covered my mouth with her handkerchief. Pushing it aside to get rid of it, I saw Katte crossing the square. Four soldiers were escorting him to the king. My brother’s trunks and his were following behind. Pale and downcast, he took off his hat to greet me. He fell at the king’s feet, begging for forgiveness.”

WILHELMINA IMPRISONED.

The king kicked him, and struck him several heavy blows with his cane. He was hit repeatedly in the face, and blood gushed from the wounds. With his own hands the king tore from Katte’s breast the cross of the Order of Saint John. After this disgraceful scene the interrogatory commenced. Katte confessed all the circumstances of the prince’s intended escape, but denied that there had been any design against the king or the state. His own and the prince’s letters were examined, but nothing was found in them to criminate either. Katte was then100 remanded to prison. Wilhelmina, after receiving the grossest possible insults from her father, who accused her, in coarsest terms, of being the paramour of Lieutenant Katte, was ordered to her room. Two sentries were placed at her door, and directions were given that she should be fed only on prison fare.

The king kicked him and hit him hard several times with his cane. He got struck in the face repeatedly, and blood flowed from the wounds. With his own hands, the king ripped the cross of the Order of Saint John from Katte’s chest. After this humiliating scene, the questioning began. Katte confessed to all the details of the prince’s planned escape but denied any conspiracy against the king or the state. His and the prince’s letters were examined, but nothing in them incriminated either of them. Katte was then100 sent back to prison. Wilhelmina, after enduring the worst insults from her father, who crudely accused her of being Lieutenant Katte's mistress, was ordered to her room. Two guards were stationed at her door, and it was instructed that she should only be given prison food.

“Tell your unworthy daughter,” said the king to the queen, “that her room is to be her prison. I shall give orders to have the guard there doubled. I shall have her examined in the most rigorous manner, and will afterward have her removed to some fit place, where she may repent of her crimes.”

“Tell your unworthy daughter,” the king said to the queen, “that her room will be her prison. I’ll have the guard doubled there. She will be examined thoroughly, and then I’ll move her to a more appropriate place where she can reflect on her crimes.”

The whole city of Berlin was agitated by the rumor of these events. The violent scene in the palace had taken place in an apartment on the ground floor. The loud and angry tones of the king, the shrieks of the queen, the cries of the children, the general clamor, had so attracted the attention of the passers-by that a large crowd had assembled before the windows. It was necessary to call out the guard to disperse them. Difficult as it was to exaggerate outrages so infamous, still they were exaggerated. The report went to all foreign courts that the king, in his ungovernable rage, had knocked down the Princess Wilhelmina and trampled her to death beneath his feet.

The entire city of Berlin was buzzing with the rumor about these events. The violent scene at the palace had occurred in a ground-floor apartment. The king's loud, angry shouts, the queen's screams, the children's cries, and the general uproar drew so much attention from passers-by that a large crowd gathered outside the windows. The guard had to be called in to break them up. As hard as it was to overstate such infamous acts, they were still exaggerated. Reports spread to all foreign courts that the king, in his uncontrollable rage, had knocked down Princess Wilhelmina and trampled her to death.


CHAPTER V.
IMPRISONMENT OF FRITZ AND WILHELMINA.

Spirited Conduct of Fritz.—Fortress of Cüstrin.—Prison Fare.—Wilhelmina’s Captivity.—Sad Fate of Doris Ritter.—Motives of the King.—Doom of Lieutenant Katte.—Pathetic Supplications.—The Execution.—Peril of Fritz.—Theology of the King.—Letter from Fritz.—Sufferings of Wilhelmina.—Brutality of the King.—Wilhelmina brought to Terms.

Fritz's Courageous Actions.—Fortress of Cüstrin.—Prison Food.—Wilhelmina’s Imprisonment.—Tragic Fate of Doris Ritter.—The King’s Motivations.—Lieutenant Katte’s Fate.—Sincere Appeals.—The Execution.—Fritz’s Risk.—The King’s Beliefs.—Letter from Fritz.—Wilhelmina’s Struggles.—The King’s Cruelty.—Wilhelmina Gives In.

The captive Crown Prince was conveyed from Wesel to the castle of Mittenwalde, where he was imprisoned in a room without furniture or bed. An old chest which chanced to be there was his only seat. One of the king’s favorite ministers, Grumkow, with other officials, was sent to interrogate him. The prince, probably aware that nothing which he could now do could make matters worse than they actually were, displayed much spirit in the interview. Frankly avowing his intention to escape, he refused to make any disclosures which should implicate his friends. Grumkow insolently informed him that the101 use of the rack was not yet abolished in his majesty’s dominions, and that, if he were not more pliant, the energies of that instrument might be called into requisition. Frederick admitted afterward that his blood ran cold at that suggestion. Still he had the nerve to reply, according to the testimony of Wilhelmina,

The captive Crown Prince was taken from Wesel to the castle of Mittenwalde, where he was locked in a room that had no furniture or bed. An old chest that happened to be there was his only seat. One of the king’s favorite ministers, Grumkow, along with other officials, was sent to question him. The prince, likely aware that nothing he could do would make his situation any worse, showed a lot of determination during the interview. He openly stated his intention to escape and refused to reveal anything that would implicate his friends. Grumkow rudely told him that the use of the rack was still an option in his majesty’s lands, and that if he didn’t cooperate, the powers of that instrument might be used against him. Frederick later admitted that he felt a chill at that suggestion. Still, he had the courage to respond, according to Wilhelmina's testimony,

“A hangman such as you naturally takes pleasure in talking of his tools and of his trade, but on me they will produce no effect. I have owned every thing, and almost regret to have done so. I ought not to degrade myself by answering the questions of a scoundrel such as you are.”

“A hangman like you obviously enjoys talking about his tools and his job, but they don’t affect me. I've experienced everything and almost wish I hadn’t. I shouldn’t lower myself by answering the questions of a scoundrel like you.”

Grumkow gathered up his papers, and, with his associate officials, departed, probably meditating upon his own prospects should the Crown Prince ever become King of Prussia. The next day, September 5, the captive was taken from the castle of Mittenwalde, and sent to the fortress of Cüstrin, a small and quiet town about seventy miles from Berlin. The strong, dungeon-like room in which he was incarcerated consisted of bare walls, without any furniture, the light being admitted by a single aperture so high that the prince could not look out at it. He was divested of his uniform, of his sword, of every mark of dignity.

Grumkow gathered his papers and, along with his fellow officials, left, likely pondering his own future if the Crown Prince ever became King of Prussia. The next day, September 5, the prisoner was taken from the castle of Mittenwalde and sent to the fortress of Cüstrin, a small and quiet town about seventy miles from Berlin. The stark, dungeon-like room where he was kept had bare walls and no furniture, with light coming through a single opening so high that the prince couldn’t see out of it. He was stripped of his uniform, his sword, and any sign of dignity.

Coarse brown clothes of plainest cut were furnished him. His flute was taken from him, and he was deprived of all books but the Bible and a few devotional treatises. He was allowed a daily sum, amounting to twelve cents of our money, for his food—eight cents for his dinner and four for his supper. His food was purchased at a cook-shop near by, and cut for him. He was not permitted the use of a knife. The door was opened three times a day for ventilation—morning, noon, and night—but not for more than four minutes each time. A single tallow-candle was allowed him; but that was to be extinguished at seven o’clock in the evening.

He was given rough brown clothes with the simplest design. They took away his flute and only let him keep the Bible and a few religious texts. He was provided with a daily allowance of twelve cents for food—eight cents for lunch and four for dinner. His meals were bought at a nearby eatery and cut up for him. He wasn’t allowed to use a knife. The door was opened three times a day for fresh air—morning, noon, and night—but only for four minutes each time. He was allowed one candle, but it had to be blown out by seven in the evening.

Thus deprived of all the ordinary comforts of life, the prince, in the nineteenth year of his age, was consigned to an imprisonment of absolute solitude. For weeks and months he was left to his own agitating thoughts, with the apparent blighting of every earthly hope, awaiting whatever doom his merciless father might award to him. His jailers, not unmindful of the embarrassing fact that their captive might yet become King of Prussia,102 with their fate in his hands, gradually treated him with all the secret kindness which they dared to exhibit.13

Thus stripped of all the usual comforts of life, the prince, at the age of nineteen, was placed in complete isolation. For weeks and months, he was left alone with his troubling thoughts, watching as every earthly hope seemed to wither away, waiting for whatever punishment his cruel father might impose on him. His guards, aware of the awkward reality that their prisoner could one day become King of Prussia,102 and that their futures were tied to his, gradually showed him as much secret kindness as they could manage.13

FREDERICK IN PRISON.

Though Wilhelmina was also a close prisoner in her apartment in the Berlin palace, and was fed upon the coarsest fare, she103 still had a comfortable room, her musical instruments, and the companionship of her governess, Madam Sonsfeld. It was rather a relief to the unhappy princess to be shut out from the presence of her father and from the sound of his voice. She occasionally obtained a smuggled letter from her mother, and even got one, in pencil, from her brother, full of expressions of tenderness.

Though Wilhelmina was also confined to her apartment in the Berlin palace and ate the plainest meals, she still had a comfortable room, her musical instruments, and the company of her governess, Madam Sonsfeld. It was somewhat of a relief for the unhappy princess to be away from her father's presence and the sound of his voice. She occasionally received a hidden letter from her mother, and even got one, written in pencil, from her brother, filled with expressions of affection.

All the friends of Fritz were treated by the infuriate father with the most cruel severity. No mercy was shown to any one who had ever given the slightest indication of sympathy with the Crown Prince. A bookseller, who had furnished Fritz with French books, was cruelly exiled to the remote shores of the Baltic, on the extreme northern frontiers of Prussia. A French gentleman, Count Montholieu, who had loaned the Crown Prince money, would probably have perished upon the scaffold had he not escaped by flight. His effigy was nailed to the gallows.

All of Fritz's friends were treated with extreme harshness by his furious father. No mercy was shown to anyone who had ever shown even the slightest support for the Crown Prince. A bookseller, who had supplied Fritz with French books, was brutally exiled to the far-off shores of the Baltic, at the northernmost borders of Prussia. A French gentleman, Count Montholieu, who had lent the Crown Prince money, would likely have been executed had he not managed to escape. His effigy was hung from the gallows.

There was a young lady in Potsdam by the name of Doris Ritter. She was the daughter of highly respectable parents, and was of unblemished character. As Fritz was extremely fond of music, and she played sweetly on the harpsichord, he loaned her pieces of music, and occasionally, under the eye of her parents, accompanied her with the flute. The life of a colonel in garrison at Potsdam was so dull, that this innocent amusement was often quite a help in beguiling the weary hours.

There was a young woman in Potsdam named Doris Ritter. She was the daughter of very respectable parents and had an impeccable character. Since Fritz was very fond of music and she played beautifully on the harpsichord, he lent her music pieces, and sometimes, with her parents watching, he accompanied her on the flute. The life of a colonel stationed in Potsdam was so boring that this innocent pastime often helped pass the long, tedious hours.

The young lady was not beautiful, and there was no evidence of the slightest improprieties, or of any approach even to flirtation. But the infuriate king, who, without the shadow of reason, could accuse his own daughter of infamy, caused this young lady, under the pretext that she had been the guilty intimate of his son, to be taken from her parents, to be delivered to the executioners, and to be publicly conveyed in a cart and whipped on the bare back through the principal streets of the town. She was then imprisoned, and doomed to beat hemp as a culprit for three years.

The young woman wasn't beautiful, and there was no sign of any wrongdoing or even flirting. But the furious king, who had no reason at all to accuse his own daughter of disgrace, forced this young woman to be taken from her parents under the pretense that she had been involved with his son. She was handed over to the executioners and paraded through the main streets of the town in a cart while being whipped on her bare back. She was then imprisoned and sentenced to work as a hemp breaker for three years.

One’s faith in a superintending Providence is almost staggered by such outrages. It would seem that there could scarcely be any compensation even in the future world for so foul a wrong inflicted upon this guileless and innocent girl. There can be no possible solution of the mystery but in the decree, “After death cometh the judgment.”

One's belief in a caring higher power is almost shaken by such atrocities. It seems that there can hardly be any compensation, even in the afterlife, for such a vile wrong done to this innocent and naïve girl. The only possible explanation for the mystery lies in the saying, “After death comes the judgment.”

104

104

DORIS RITTER’S PUNISHMENT.

“It is impossible,” writes Lord Dover, “not to perceive that the real reason of his conduct was his enmity to his son, and that the crime of the poor girl was the having assisted in making the son’s existence more supportable. The intention of Frederick William apparently being that the infliction of so infamous a punishment in so public a manner should prevent the possibility of Frederick’s ever seeing her again.”14

“It’s impossible,” writes Lord Dover, “not to see that the real reason for his actions was his hatred for his son, and that the poor girl’s crime was simply helping make the son’s life a bit more bearable. Frederick William’s apparent intention was to make such a disgraceful punishment public to ensure that Frederick would never see her again.”14

A court-martial was convened to pronounce sentence upon the105 Crown Prince and his confederates. The court was appointed by the king, and consisted of three major generals, three colonels, three lieutenant colonels, three majors, three captains, and three belonging to the civil courts, called auditors. The court, thus composed of eighteen members, met on the 20th of October, 1730, in the little town of Copenick, a few miles from Berlin. Grumkow, well aware that these proceedings would attract the attention of every court in Europe, had persuaded the king to submit to the formality of a court-martial.

A court-martial was set up to deliver a verdict on the105 Crown Prince and his associates. The court was appointed by the king and included three major generals, three colonels, three lieutenant colonels, three majors, three captains, and three auditors from the civil courts. This court, made up of eighteen members, convened on October 20, 1730, in the small town of Copenick, a few miles from Berlin. Grumkow, knowing that these proceedings would draw the attention of every court in Europe, had convinced the king to go through the formal process of a court-martial.

It was well understood that a verdict was to be returned in accordance with the wishes of the king, and also that the king desired that no mercy should be shown to his son.15 After a session of six days the verdict of the court was rendered. The crime of the Crown Prince, in endeavoring to escape from the brutality of his father, was declared to be desertion, and the penalty was death. Lieutenant Keith was also declared to be a deserter, and doomed to die. But as he had escaped, and could not be recaptured, he was sentenced to be hanged in effigy, which effigy was then to be cut in four quarters and nailed to the gallows at Wesel. Lieutenant Katte, who certainly had not deserted, and whose only crime was that he had been a confidant of the Crown Prince in his plan to escape, was condemned to imprisonment in a fortress for two years, some say for life.

It was widely known that the verdict was expected to align with the king's wishes, and the king also wanted no mercy shown to his son. After six days of proceedings, the court delivered its verdict. The Crown Prince’s crime, for trying to flee from his father's cruelty, was labeled as desertion, and the punishment was death. Lieutenant Keith was also found guilty of being a deserter and sentenced to die. However, since he had escaped and couldn't be caught, he was sentenced to be hanged in effigy, which would then be cut into four pieces and displayed on the gallows in Wesel. Lieutenant Katte, who definitely had not deserted and whose only offense was being an accomplice to the Crown Prince's escape plan, was sentenced to two years in a fortress, with some claiming it could be for life.

The king approved of the first two sentences of the court. The mildness of the last roused his indignation. “Katte,” he exclaimed, “is guilty of high treason. He shall die by the sword of the headsman. It is better that he should die than that justice depart out of the world.” His doom was thus fixed as irreversible as fate.

The king agreed with the first two statements from the court. The gentleness of the last one angered him. “Katte,” he shouted, “is guilty of treason. He will die by the headsman's sword. It’s better for him to die than for justice to disappear from the world.” His sentence was set, as unchangeable as fate.

Fortunately for the young man’s mother, she was in her grave. His father was at that time commandant of Königsberg, in high favor with the king. His illustrious grandfather on his mother’s side, Field-marshal Wartensleben, was still living. For half106 a century he had worthily occupied the most eminent posts of honor. The tears, the agonizing entreaties of these friends were not of the slightest avail. The king’s heart was as impervious to appeals for mercy as are the cliffs of Sinai.

Fortunately for the young man's mother, she was already in her grave. His father was then the commandant of Königsberg and held the king's favor. His distinguished grandfather on his mother's side, Field Marshal Wartensleben, was still alive. For half106 a century, he had honorably held the highest positions of prestige. The tears and desperate pleas from these friends were completely fruitless. The king’s heart was as unyielding to requests for mercy as the cliffs of Sinai.

There are several letters still remaining which Lieutenant Katte wrote to his friends during those hours of anguish in which he was awaiting his death. No one can read them without compassionate emotion, and without execrating the memory of that implacable tyrant who so unjustly demanded his execution. The young man wrote to the king a petition containing the following pathetic plea:

There are several letters still left that Lieutenant Katte wrote to his friends during those agonizing hours as he awaited his death. No one can read them without feeling deep compassion and without cursing the memory of that relentless tyrant who so unjustly ordered his execution. The young man wrote a petition to the king that included this heartfelt plea:

Sire,—It is not to excuse myself that I address this letter to your majesty; but, moved by sincere repentance and heartfelt sorrow, I implore your clemency, and beseech you, sire, to have some consideration for my youth, which renders me capable of imprudence without any bad design.

“Your Majesty, I’m not writing this letter to excuse my actions, but out of genuine regret and deep sorrow. I ask for your mercy and hope you will consider my young age, which makes me prone to foolishness without any bad intentions.

“God does not always follow the impulse of his justice toward sinners, but often, by his mercy, reclaims those who have gone astray. And will not your majesty, sire, who are a resemblance of the divinity, pardon a criminal who is guilty of disobedience to his sovereign? The hope of pardon supports me, and I flatter myself that your majesty will not cut me off in the flower of my age, but will give me time to prove the effect your majesty’s clemency will have on me.

“God doesn’t always act on His justice towards sinners, but often, through His mercy, helps those who have lost their way. Will you, Your Majesty, who reflects the divine, forgive a wrongdoer who has disobeyed his ruler? The hope of forgiveness keeps me going, and I truly believe that Your Majesty won’t end my life while I’m still young, but will give me a chance to demonstrate how much your mercy could change me.”

“Sire, I own that I am guilty. Will not your majesty grant me a pardon, which God never refuses to the greatest sinner who sincerely confesses his sins? I shall be always ready to shed even the last drop of my blood to show your majesty what grateful sentiments your clemency can raise in me.”

“Sir, I admit my guilt. Please grant me a pardon, which God never refuses to the worst sinner who sincerely confesses. I would be willing to give even the last drop of my blood to show you how grateful I am for your kindness.”

It was all in vain. On Sunday evening, September 5th, as the condemned young man was sitting alone in his prison cell, sadly awaiting his doom, yet clinging to hopes of mercy, an officer entered with the startling intelligence that the carriage was at the door to convey him to the fortress of Cüstrin, at a few leagues distance, where he was to be executed. For a moment he was greatly agitated. He soon, however, regained his equanimity. It must indeed have been a fearful communication to one in the107 vigor of health, in the prime of youth, and surrounded by every thing which could render life desirable. Two brother-officers and the chaplain accompanied him upon this dismal midnight ride. Silence, pious conversation, prayers, and occasional devotional hymns occupied the hours. The dawn of a cold winter’s morning was just appearing as they reached the fortress.

It was all pointless. On Sunday evening, September 5th, as the condemned young man sat alone in his prison cell, sadly awaiting his fate but still holding onto hopes for mercy, an officer entered with the shocking news that the carriage was at the door to take him to the fortress of Cüstrin, a few leagues away, where he was to be executed. For a moment, he was extremely agitated. However, he soon regained his composure. It must have been a terrifying message for someone in the107 prime of health, in the bloom of youth, and surrounded by everything that made life desirable. Two fellow officers and the chaplain accompanied him on this grim midnight journey. Silence, thoughtful conversation, prayers, and occasional hymns filled the hours. The dawn of a cold winter morning was just breaking as they arrived at the fortress.

His companions had no heart to witness the bloody execution of their friend and brother-officer. The chaplain, Müller, who had accompanied the condemned to Cüstrin, and also Besserer, the chaplain of the garrison there, were either obliged by their official position, or were constrained by Christian sympathy, to ride by his side in the death-cart to the scaffold. Of the rest of his friends he took an affectionate leave, saying, “Adieu, my brothers; may God be with you evermore!” He was conveyed to the rampart of the castle dressed in coarse brown garments precisely like those worn by the prince.

His friends couldn’t bear to watch the brutal execution of their friend and fellow officer. The chaplain, Müller, who had accompanied the condemned to Cüstrin, along with Besserer, the chaplain of the garrison there, were either required by their official roles or moved by Christian compassion to ride alongside him in the death cart to the scaffold. As for the rest of his friends, he said a heartfelt goodbye, saying, “Goodbye, my brothers; may God always be with you!” He was taken to the castle rampart dressed in rough brown clothes just like those worn by the prince.

By order of the king, Fritz, who had also been condemned to die and was awaiting his doom, was brought down into a lower room of the fortress, before whose window the scaffold was erected, that he might be compelled “to see Katte die.” At his entrance the curtains were closed, shutting out the view of the court-yard. Upon the drawing of the curtains, Fritz, to his horror, beheld the scaffold draped in black on a level with the window, and directly before it.

By the king's orders, Fritz, who was also sentenced to death and waiting for his fate, was taken down to a lower room in the fortress, where the scaffold was set up outside the window so that he would have to “watch Katte die.” When he arrived, the curtains were closed, blocking his view of the courtyard. When the curtains were finally opened, Fritz was horrified to see the scaffold draped in black, right at the same level as the window and directly in front of him.

The unhappy Crown Prince was in an agony of despair. Again and again he frantically exclaimed, “In the name of God, I beg you to stop the execution till I write to the king! I am ready to renounce all my rights to the crown if he will pardon Katte!” As the condemned was led by the window to ascend the scaffold, Fritz cried out to him, in anguish as intense as a generous heart can endure, “Pardon me, my dear Katte, pardon me! Oh that this should be what I have done for you!”

The upset Crown Prince was filled with despair. Over and over, he desperately shouted, “For the love of God, please delay the execution until I can write to the king! I’ll give up all my rights to the throne if he will spare Katte!” As the condemned man was taken by the window to go up to the scaffold, Fritz cried out to him, with a pain as deep as a generous heart can bear, “Forgive me, my dear Katte, forgive me! I can’t believe this is what I’ve done for you!”

A smile flitted across Katte’s pallid features as he replied, “Death is sweet for a prince I love so well.” With fortitude he ascended the scaffold. The executioner attempted to bandage his eyes, but he resisted, and, looking to heaven, said, “Father, into thy hands I surrender my soul!” Four grenadiers held Fritz with his face toward the window. Fainting, he fell senseless upon the floor. At the same moment, by a single blow, Katte’s head rolled upon the scaffold. As the prince recovered consciousness, he found himself still at the window, in full view of the headless and gory corpse of his friend. Another swoon consigned him to momentary unconsciousness.16

A smile flickered across Katte's pale face as he replied, “Death is sweet for a prince I care for so much.” With courage, he climbed the scaffold. The executioner tried to cover his eyes, but he resisted and, looking up to the sky, said, “Father, into your hands I commend my soul!” Four soldiers held Fritz facing the window. Overcome, he fell unconscious onto the floor. At the same moment, with a single blow, Katte's head fell onto the scaffold. When the prince regained his senses, he found himself still at the window, staring at the headless and bloody body of his friend. Another faint sent him back into momentary unconsciousness.16

108

108

FREDERICK AT KATTE’S EXECUTION.

109 The body of Katte remained upon the scaffold during the short wintry day, and at night was buried in one of the bastions of the fortress. This cruel tragedy was enacted more than a century ago; but there are few who even now can read the record without having their eyes flooded, through the conflicting emotions of sympathy for the sufferers and indignation against the tyrant who could perpetrate such crimes.

109 Katte's body lay on the scaffold throughout the brief winter day, and that night he was buried in one of the fortress's bastions. This brutal tragedy happened over a century ago, yet even today, few can read about it without their eyes filling with tears, caught between sympathy for the victims and anger at the tyrant who could commit such atrocities.

When Frederick returned to consciousness his misery plunged him into a high fever. Delirium ensued, during which Chaplain Müller, who remained with him, says that he frequently attempted to destroy himself. As the fever abated and he became more tranquil, floods of tears gushed from his eyes. He for some time refused to take any nourishment. It seemed to him now that every hope in life was forever blighted. He had no doubt that his own death was fully decided upon, and that he would soon be led to his execution. In his moments of delirious anguish he at times longed for death to come as speedily as possible. And again it seemed awful to have his young life—for he was then but eighteen years of age—cut off by the bloody sword.17

When Frederick woke up, his misery sent him into a high fever. He became delirious, during which Chaplain Müller, who stayed with him, said he often tried to harm himself. As the fever decreased and he became calmer, he cried uncontrollably. He refused to eat for a while. It felt to him like every hope in life had been destroyed forever. He was sure that his own death was inevitable, and that he would soon be taken to his execution. In his moments of tormented delirium, he sometimes wished for death to come quickly. Yet, it also felt terrible to think of his young life—he was only eighteen—being cut short by a bloody sword.17

Chaplain Müller seems to have enjoyed the confidence of the king to an unusual decree. He was ordered to remain at Cüstrin, and to have daily interviews with the prince, to instruct him in religion. The king professed to be eminently a religious man. While torturing the body and the mind of the prince in every way, he expressed great anxiety for the salvation of his soul. It is not strange that the example of such a father had staggered the faith of the son. Illogically he renounced that religion which condemned, in the severest terms, the conduct of the father, and which caused the king often to tremble upon his throne, appalled by the declaration, “Know thou that for all these things God will bring thee into judgment.”

Chaplain Müller seems to have had the king’s trust to an unusual extent. He was ordered to stay in Cüstrin and meet daily with the prince to teach him about religion. The king claimed to be a very religious man. While he tortured the prince’s body and mind in every possible way, he showed great concern for the salvation of his soul. It's not surprising that the example of such a father shook the son's faith. Illogically, he rejected the religion that condemned his father's behavior in the harshest terms, a religion that often made the king tremble on his throne, horrified by the statement, “Know that for all these things God will bring you into judgment.”

The young prince had also become dissolute in life. The sacred110 volume denounced such a career as offensive to God, as sure to bring down upon the guilty prince the divine displeasure in this life, and, if unrepented of, in the life to come. No man who believes the Bible to be true can, with any comfort whatever, indulge in sin. The prince wished to indulge his passions without restraint. He therefore, thus living, found it to be a necessity to renounce that religion which arrayed against his sinful life all the terrors of the final judgment. A wicked life and true Christian faith can not live in peace together. The one or the other must be abandoned. Frederick chose to abandon Christian faith.

The young prince had also become morally reckless. The holy110 scripture condemned such a lifestyle as offensive to God, certain to bring divine wrath upon the guilty prince in this life, and possibly in the afterlife if he didn’t repent. No one who believes the Bible is true can comfortably engage in sin. The prince wanted to pursue his desires without limits. Therefore, living this way, he felt it necessary to reject the religion that opposed his sinful lifestyle with the threats of final judgment. A sinful life and genuine Christian faith cannot coexist in harmony. One must be given up for the other. Frederick chose to give up his Christian faith.

It seems that the Crown Prince had an inquiring mind. He was interested in metaphysical speculations. He had adopted, perhaps, as some excuse for his conduct, the doctrine of predestination, that God hath foreordained whatsoever cometh to pass. The idea that there is a power, which Hume calls philosophical necessity, which Napoleon calls destiny, which Calvin calls predestination, by which all events are controlled, and that this necessity is not inconsistent with free agency, is a doctrine which ever has commanded the assent, and probably ever will, of many of the strongest thinkers in the world.

It seems that the Crown Prince had a curious mind. He was interested in metaphysical theories. He had perhaps adopted the concept of predestination as a justification for his actions, believing that God has predetermined everything that happens. The idea that there is a force, which Hume refers to as philosophical necessity, which Napoleon calls destiny, and which Calvin designates as predestination, that controls all events, while also allowing for free will, is a belief that has consistently been accepted, and likely always will be, by many of the strongest thinkers in the world.

“The heresy about predestination,” writes Carlyle, “or the election by free grace, as his majesty terms it, according to which a man is preappointed, from all eternity, either to salvation or the opposite, which is Fritz’s notion, and indeed Calvin’s, and that of many benighted creatures, this editor among them, appears to his majesty an altogether shocking one. What! may not deserter Fritz say to himself, even now, or in whatever other deeps of sin he may fall into, ‘I was foredoomed to it? How could I or how can I help it?’ The mind of his majesty shudders as if looking over the edge of an abyss.”

“The idea of predestination,” writes Carlyle, “or the selection by free grace, as his majesty puts it, where a person is predetermined for eternity to either salvation or the opposite, which is Fritz’s belief, and indeed Calvin's, along with many misguided individuals, this editor included, seems utterly shocking to his majesty. What! Can’t deserter Fritz think to himself, even now, or in any other depths of sin he might fall into, ‘Wasn’t I doomed to this? How could I or how can I change it?’ The thought makes his majesty shudder as if peering into an abyss.”

Chaplain Müller was especially directed to argue with Frederick upon this point, and, if possible, to convert him to Christianity. The correspondence which ensued between the king and Müller is preserved. The king wrote to the chaplain, under date of November 3d, 1730:

Chaplain Müller was specifically instructed to discuss this issue with Frederick and, if possible, to convert him to Christianity. The correspondence that followed between the king and Müller has been preserved. The king wrote to the chaplain on November 3rd, 1730:

“I have been assured that you are an honest and pious clergyman, and a faithful minister of the Word of God. Since, therefore, you are going to Cüstrin, on account of the execution of111 Lieutenant Katte, I command you, after the execution, to pay a visit to the Prince Royal; to reason with him and to represent to him that whosoever abandons God is also abandoned by God; and that, when God has abandoned a man, and has taken away his grace from him, that man is incapable of doing what is good, and can only do what is evil. You will exhort him to repent, and to ask pardon for the many sins he has committed, and into which he has seduced others, one of whom has been just punished with death.

“I’ve been told that you are an honest and devout clergyman, and a dedicated servant of the Word of God. Since you are heading to Cüstrin because of Lieutenant Katte's execution, I instruct you to visit the Prince Royal afterward. Talk to him and explain that anyone who turns away from God is also forsaken by God; and that when God has abandoned a person and removed His grace, that person is unable to do good and can only do evil. Encourage him to repent and seek forgiveness for the many sins he has committed, including those he has led others into, one of whom has just been executed.”

“If you then find the prince contrite and humble, you will engage him to fall on his knees with you, to ask pardon of God with tears of penitence. But you must proceed with prudence and circumspection, for the prince is cunning. You will represent to him also, in a proper manner, the error he labors under in believing that some are predestinated to one thing and some to another; and that thus he who is predestinated to evil can do nothing but evil, and he who is predestinated to good can do nothing but good, and that, consequently, we can change nothing of what is to happen—a dreadful error, especially in what regards our salvation.

“If you find the prince feeling regretful and humble, you can encourage him to kneel with you and ask God for forgiveness with tears of true remorse. But you need to be careful and mindful because the prince is clever. You'll also need to clearly explain to him the mistake he makes in thinking that some are destined for one thing and others for something else; that someone destined for evil can do nothing but evil, while someone destined for good can do nothing but good, which means that we can’t change what’s meant to happen—a terrible mistake, especially when it comes to our salvation.”

“Now, as I hope that his present situation, and the execution which has just taken place before his eyes, will touch and soften his heart, and will lead him to better sentiments, I charge you, as you value your conscience, to do all that is humanly possible to represent forcibly to the prince these things; and particularly, in what relates to predestination, to convince him by means of passages from the Scriptures which satisfactorily prove what I wish you to advance.”

“Now, I hope that his current situation and the event that just happened right in front of him will move and soften his heart, leading him to better feelings. I urge you, as you care about your conscience, to do everything you can to strongly convey these points to the prince; especially regarding predestination, use passages from the Scriptures that clearly support what I want you to argue.”

This letter was addressed to the “reverend, well-beloved, and faithful Müller,” and was signed “your affectionate king.” Though the king had not yet announced any intention of sparing the life of his son, and probably was fully resolved upon his execution, he was manifestly disturbed by the outcry against his proceedings raised in all the courts of Europe. Three days before the king wrote the above letter, the Emperor of Germany, Charles VI., had written to him, with his own hand, earnestly interceding for the Crown Prince. In addition to the letter, the emperor, through his minister Seckendorf, had presented a very firm remonstrance. He announced to Frederick William that112 Prince Frederick was a prince of the empire, and that he was entitled to the protection of the laws of the Germanic body; that the heir-apparent of the Prussian monarchy was under the safeguard of the Germanic empire, and that the king was bound to surrender to this tribunal the accused, and the documents relative to this trial.

This letter was addressed to the “reverend, well-loved, and faithful Müller” and signed “your affectionate king.” Although the king had not yet revealed any intention to spare his son’s life and likely intended his execution, he was clearly troubled by the outcry against his actions that was being raised in courts across Europe. Three days before the king wrote this letter, the Emperor of Germany, Charles VI., had personally written to him, urgently pleading for the Crown Prince. Along with the letter, the emperor, through his minister Seckendorf, had delivered a strong protest. He informed Frederick William that Prince Frederick was a prince of the empire and entitled to the protection of the laws of the Germanic body; that the heir to the Prussian monarchy was under the protection of the Germanic empire, and that the king was obligated to present the accused and the documents related to this trial to this tribunal.

The emperor was probably induced to this decisive course not merely by motives of humanity, but also by the consideration that by thus saving the life of Frederick he would forever attach him to the interests of the house of Austria. The kings of Poland and Sweden also wrote to the king, earnestly interceding for the life of the Crown Prince.

The emperor was likely motivated to take this crucial action not just by humanitarian reasons, but also by the thought that saving Frederick's life would permanently tie him to the interests of the house of Austria. The kings of Poland and Sweden also reached out to the king, urgently advocating for the life of the Crown Prince.

The king was at first much incensed by these attempts at interference. It was not safe for him to bid defiance to the opinions of the civilized world. Emotions of anger and mortification struggled in the bosom of the king. Captain Guy Dickens, secretary of Dubourgay, writes:

The king was initially very angry about these attempts to interfere. It wasn't wise for him to ignore the views of the civilized world. Feelings of anger and embarrassment battled within the king. Captain Guy Dickens, secretary of Dubourgay, writes:

“The King of Prussia can not sleep. The officers sit up with him every night, and in his slumbers he raves and talks of spirits and apparitions.”

“The King of Prussia can't sleep. The officers stay awake with him every night, and in his sleep, he raves and talks about spirits and ghosts.”

He drank deeply, wandering about by night as if possessed by fiends. “He has not,” writes Captain Dickens, “gone to bed sober for a month past.” Once he rose, about midnight, and, with a candle in his hand, entered the apartment of the queen, apparently in a state of extreme terror, saying that there was something haunting him. His agitation was so great that a bed was made up for him there.

He drank heavily, roaming around at night as if he were possessed by demons. “He hasn’t,” writes Captain Dickens, “gone to bed sober for a month.” Once, around midnight, he got up and, holding a candle, entered the queen's room, looking terrified and claiming that something was haunting him. He was so upset that they set up a bed for him there.

Two days after the death of Katte, the king wrote to Chaplain Müller, under date of November 7th, 1730, a letter closing with the following words:

Two days after Katte's death, the king wrote to Chaplain Müller on November 7th, 1730, ending the letter with these words:

“As God often, by wondrous guidance, strange paths, and thorny steps, will bring men into the kingdom of Christ, so may our divine Redeemer help that this prodigal son be brought into his communion; that his godless heart be beaten until it is softened and changed, and so he be snatched from the claws of Satan. This grant us, the Almighty God and Father, for our Lord Jesus Christ and his passion and death’s sake. Amen.

"Just as God often guides people to the kingdom of Christ through remarkable direction, unexpected paths, and tough challenges, may our divine Redeemer assist in bringing this lost son into his fellowship; may his sinful heart be broken until it is softened and changed, so he can be freed from Satan's hold. We ask this of Almighty God and Father, for the sake of our Lord Jesus Christ and his suffering and death. Amen."

“I am, for the rest, your well-affectioned king,
Frederick William.”

“I am, after all, your caring king,
Frederick William.”

113 The prince supposed that the object of Muller’s visits was to prepare him for his death. But upon receiving the full assurance that his father contemplated pardoning him, should there be evidence of repentance, he promised to take an oath of entire submission to his father’s will. Seven commissioners were sent to the prison of Cüstrin, on the 19th of November, to administer this oath with the utmost solemnity. He was conducted to the church. A large crowd was in attendance. A sermon appropriate to the occasion was preached. The sacrament of the Lord’s Supper was administered to him. And then he audibly repeated the oath and attached to it his signature.

113 The prince thought that the reason for Muller’s visits was to get him ready for his death. But after receiving the clear assurance that his father was considering pardoning him if he showed genuine remorse, he promised to take an oath of complete obedience to his father’s wishes. On November 19th, seven commissioners were sent to the Cüstrin prison to administer this oath with the utmost seriousness. He was taken to the church, where a large crowd had gathered. A fitting sermon was delivered. He received the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper. Then he clearly repeated the oath and signed it.

From the church the prince was conducted, not back to his prison in the fortress, but to a town mansion, which was assigned as his residence. His sword was restored to him. But he was still not fully liberated. Officials, appointed by his father, surrounded him, who watched and reported all his movements. The first act of the young prince, upon reaching his apartment after this partial liberation, was to write as follows to his father. We give the letter as translated by Carlyle:

From the church, the prince was taken, not back to his prison in the fortress, but to a town mansion that was designated as his home. His sword was given back to him. However, he was still not completely free. Officials appointed by his father surrounded him, observing and reporting all his actions. The first thing the young prince did upon arriving at his apartment after this partial release was to write the following to his father. We present the letter as translated by Carlyle:

“Cüstrin, November 19, 1730.

“Cüstrin, November 19, 1730.

All-serenest and All-graciousest Father,—To your royal majesty, my all-graciousest Father, I have, by my disobedience as Their subject and soldier, not less than by my undutifulness as Their son, given occasion to a just wrath and aversion against me. With the all-obedientest respect I submit myself wholly to the grace of my most All-gracious Father, and beg him most All-graciously to pardon me, as it is not so much the withdrawal of my liberty, in a sad arrest, as my own thoughts of the fault I have committed that have brought me to reason, who, with all-obedientest respect and submission, continue till my end my All-graciousest king’s and Father’s faithfully-obedientest servant and son,

Most serene and gracious Father,—To your royal majesty, my dear Father, I have, through my disobedience as your subject and soldier, as well as my unfilial behavior as your son, brought about just anger and disdain towards me. With the utmost respect, I completely submit to the mercy of my kind Father and sincerely ask for your forgiveness, as it is not just the loss of my freedom in this unfortunate situation, but my own reflections on the mistakes I’ve made that have led me to this realization. I remain, with the highest respect and submission, your most obedient servant and son until the end.

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

Here, in the little town of Cüstrin, in a house very meagerly furnished, the Crown Prince established his household upon the humblest scale. The prince was allowed to wear his sword, but not his uniform. He was debarred all amusements, and was forbidden to read, write, or speak French. To give him employment,114 he was ordered to attend regularly the sittings of the Chamber of Counselors of that district, though he was to take his seat as the youngest member. Three persons were appointed constantly to watch over him. Lord Dover writes:

Here, in the small town of Cüstrin, in a sparsely furnished house, the Crown Prince set up his household on a very modest scale. He was allowed to wear his sword, but not his uniform. He was cut off from all forms of entertainment and forbidden to read, write, or speak French. To keep him occupied, he was required to regularly attend the sessions of the Chamber of Counselors for that district, although he had to sit as the youngest member. Three people were assigned to keep an eye on him. Lord Dover writes:

“His diet was regulated at a sum which made it barely sufficient to prevent actual starvation. His apartment was most miserable, and almost entirely devoid of furniture. He was in great want of linen, and of others of the first necessaries of life. At nine o’clock at night his candle was taken from him, while pen, ink, paper, and books were alike denied him.”

“His diet was limited to barely enough to avoid actual starvation. His apartment was very bleak and nearly empty of furniture. He was in desperate need of linens and other essential items for living. At nine o'clock at night, his candle was taken away, and he was denied pen, ink, paper, and books as well.”

“His very flute,” Carlyle writes, “most innocent ‘Princess,’ as he used to call his flute in old days, is denied him ever since he came to Cüstrin. But by degrees he privately gets her back, and consorts much with her; wails forth, in beautiful adagios, emotions for which there is no other utterance at present. He has liberty of Cüstrin and the neighborhood. Out of Cüstrin he is not to lodge any night without leave had of the commandant.”

“His very flute,” Carlyle writes, “most innocent ‘Princess,’ as he used to call his flute back in the day, has been taken from him ever since he arrived in Cüstrin. But gradually, he secretly gets her back and spends a lot of time with her; he pours out, in beautiful adagios, emotions that have no other words at the moment. He has permission to roam Cüstrin and the surrounding area. Outside of Cüstrin, he isn't allowed to stay anywhere overnight without permission from the commandant.”

While these sad scenes were transpiring, the Princess Wilhelmina was held in close captivity in her apartment at the palace in Berlin. The king had convened a council of eight clergymen, and had put to them the question whether a father had not a right to give his daughter in wedlock to whom he pleased. Much to the honor of these clergymen, they replied, with but one exception, in the negative.

While these sad events were happening, Princess Wilhelmina was being held in tight confinement in her room at the palace in Berlin. The king had gathered a council of eight clergymen and asked them if a father didn’t have the right to marry off his daughter to whomever he wanted. To their credit, the clergymen answered negatively, with only one exception.

The queen remained firm in her determination that Wilhelmina should marry the Prince of Wales. The king was equally inflexible in his resolve that she should not marry the Prince of Wales. The queen occasionally had interviews with Wilhelmina, when they wept together over their disappointments and trials. The spirited young princess had no special predilections for the English prince, but she was firm in her resolve not to have a repugnant husband forced upon her. On the night of the 27th of January, 1731, as the queen was about to leave Berlin for Potsdam, she said to her daughter,

The queen was adamant that Wilhelmina should marry the Prince of Wales. The king was just as determined that she shouldn't marry him. Occasionally, the queen and Wilhelmina would have private talks where they would cry together about their disappointments and struggles. The spirited young princess didn't have any particular feelings for the English prince, but she was resolute about not being forced into a marriage with someone she found repulsive. On the night of January 27, 1731, just as the queen was about to leave Berlin for Potsdam, she said to her daughter,

“Be firm, my child. Trust in my management. Only swear to me, on your eternal salvation, that never, on any compulsion, will you marry another than the Prince of Wales. Give me that oath.”

“Stay strong, my child. Have faith in my guidance. Just promise me, on your eternal well-being, that under no circumstances will you marry anyone other than the Prince of Wales. Give me that promise.”

But Wilhelmina evaded the oath upon the ground of religious115 scruples. Anxiety, confinement, and bad diet had so preyed upon her health that she was reduced almost to a skeleton. The following extract from her journal gives a graphic account of her painful condition:

But Wilhelmina avoided the oath because of her religious beliefs. Anxiety, being confined, and poor nutrition had taken such a toll on her health that she was almost a skeleton. The following excerpt from her journal provides a vivid description of her painful condition:

“I was shut up in my bedchamber, where I saw nobody, and continued always to fast. I was really dying of hunger. I read as long as there was daylight, and made remarks upon what I read. My health began to give way. I became as thin as a skeleton from want of food and exercise. One day Madam De Sonsfeld and myself were at table, looking sadly at one another, having nothing to eat but soup made with salt and water, and a ragout of old bones, full of hairs and other dirt, when we heard a knocking at the window. Surprised, we rose hastily to see what it was. We found a raven with a morsel of bread in its beak, which it laid down on the sill of the window so soon as it saw us, and flew away. Tears came into our eyes at this adventure. ‘Our lot is very deplorable,’ said I to my governess, ‘since it even touches the creatures devoid of reason. They have more compassion for us than men, who treat us with so much cruelty.’”

"I was locked in my bedroom, where I saw no one, and kept fasting. I was really starving. I read as long as there was daylight and made notes on what I read. My health started to decline. I became as thin as a skeleton from lack of food and exercise. One day, Madam De Sonsfeld and I were at the table, looking sadly at each other, having only soup made from salt and water and a stew of old bones, full of hair and other grime, when we heard a knock at the window. Surprised, we quickly got up to see what it was. We found a raven with a piece of bread in its beak, which it dropped on the windowsill as soon as it saw us and then flew away. Tears filled our eyes at this encounter. ‘Our situation is truly sad,’ I said to my governess, ‘since it even moves creatures without reason. They have more compassion for us than humans, who treat us with such cruelty.’"

The raven was a tame one, which had got lost and was seeking for its home. The story, however, spread, and created great sympathy for the imprisoned princess. There was a large number of French refugees in Berlin. With characteristic kindness, at the risk of incurring the royal displeasure, they sent daily a basket of food, which was placed in a situation from which Wilhelmina’s maids could easily convey the contents to her, while compassionate sentries kindly looked the other way. The princess wrote to her father, imploring permission to receive the sacrament, from which she had been debarred for nearly a year. The reply from her-father was couched in the following terms:

The raven was a tame one that had gotten lost and was looking for its home. The story, however, spread and created a lot of sympathy for the imprisoned princess. There were many French refugees in Berlin. With their usual kindness, risking royal disapproval, they sent a basket of food every day, which was placed in a spot where Wilhelmina’s maids could easily take it to her, while compassionate guards looked the other way. The princess wrote to her father, pleading for permission to receive the sacrament, from which she had been denied for almost a year. Her father’s reply was worded as follows:

“My blackguard daughter may receive the sacrament.”

“My worthless daughter can receive the sacrament.”

Her sisters were now permitted occasionally to visit her, and her situation became somewhat ameliorated. On the 10th of May Wilhelmina received a letter from her mother which caused her to wring her hands in anguish. It informed her that the next day a deputation was to call upon her from the king, to insist upon her giving her consent to marry the Prince of Baireuth.

Her sisters were now allowed to visit her from time to time, and her situation improved a bit. On May 10th, Wilhelmina got a letter from her mother that made her wring her hands in distress. The letter told her that the next day a delegation would come to see her from the king, insisting that she agree to marry the Prince of Baireuth.

The letter was as follows:

The letter said:

“All is lost, my dear daughter. The king is determined, at all hazards, upon your marriage. I have sustained several dreadful contests on this subject, but neither my prayers nor my tears have had any effect. Eversman has orders to make the purchases necessary for your marriage. You must prepare yourself to lose Madam Sonsfeld. The king is determined to have her degraded with infamy if you do not obey him. Some one will be sent to persuade you. In God’s name consent to nothing, and God will support you in it. A prison is better than a bad marriage. Adieu, my dear daughter! I expect every thing from your firmness.”

“All is lost, my dear daughter. The king is set on your marriage, no matter what it takes. I've fought hard against this, but neither my pleas nor my tears have made a difference. Eversman has been instructed to buy everything needed for your marriage. You need to prepare yourself to say goodbye to Madam Sonsfeld. The king is determined to disgrace her if you do not comply. Someone will come to try to persuade you. For the love of God, agree to nothing, and God will support you in this. A prison is better than a bad marriage. Goodbye, my dear daughter! I expect everything from your strength.”

116

116

GRUMKOW’S CONFERENCE WITH WILHELMINA.

117 A deputation of four ministers, headed by Baron Grumkow, the next day presented themselves to the princess. To overawe Wilhelmina, they approached her with all the solemnity of state. Grumkow opened the conference:

117 The next day, a delegation of four ministers, led by Baron Grumkow, came to see the princess. To impress Wilhelmina, they approached her with all the formal seriousness of an official meeting. Grumkow began the discussion:

“Obey the wishes of the king,” said he, “and the royal favor will be restored to you. Refuse to do it, and no one can tell what will be the doom which will fall upon your mother, your brother, and yourself.”

“Do what the king wants,” he said, “and you'll win back his favor. If you refuse, no one can predict what will happen to your mother, your brother, and you.”

They all united their entreaties, arguments, prayers, and threats. The princess was in a state of terrible agitation. Almost distracted she paced the floor. That she might have a little time to reflect, the four deputies retired into the recess of a window. One of them, M. Tulmier, then approached the princess, and, in a low tone of voice, said to her,

They all combined their pleas, arguments, requests, and threats. The princess was extremely agitated. Almost losing her mind, she paced the floor. To give her a moment to think, the four representatives stepped back into the corner of a window. One of them, Mr. Tulmier, then approached the princess and quietly said to her,

“Do not resist any longer. Submit to whatever is required of you. I will answer with my life that the marriage will never really take place. It is necessary, at whatever cost, to appease the king for the present. I will explain to the queen that this is the only means of obtaining a favorable declaration from the King of England.”

“Stop resisting. Go along with whatever is needed from you. I swear on my life that the marriage will never actually happen. We must, at any cost, keep the king satisfied for now. I’ll tell the queen that this is the only way to get a good response from the King of England.”

Thus influenced, she yielded. Tears flooded her eyes, and her voice was broken with sobs as she said, “I am ready to sacrifice myself for the peace of the family.” The deputation withdrew, leaving the princess in despair. Baron Grumkow conveyed to the king the pleasing intelligence of her submission.

Thus influenced, she gave in. Tears filled her eyes, and her voice broke with sobs as she said, “I’m ready to sacrifice myself for the peace of the family.” The delegation left, leaving the princess in despair. Baron Grumkow delivered the good news of her submission to the king.


118

118

CHAPTER VI.
WILHELMINA'S WEDDING.

Wilhelmina’s Letter to her Mother.—Cruel Response.—The Court Festival.—First Interview with the Prince of Baireuth.—His Character and Appearance.—Interview between the King and Fritz.—The Partial Reconciliation.—Divine Decrees.—The King’s Sense of Justice.—The King’s Discipline of the Judges.—Character of Fritz.—Wilhelmina’s Annoyances.—Her Marriage.—Interview between Wilhelmina and Fritz.—The Departure.

Wilhelmina’s Letter to her Mother.—Harsh Response.—The Court Celebration.—First Encounter with the Prince of Baireuth.—His Character and Appearance.—Discussion between the King and Fritz.—The Partial Reconciliation.—Divine Intentions.—The King’s Fairness.—The King’s Preparations for the Judges.—Fritz’s Personality.—Wilhelmina’s Discontent.—Her Marriage.—Meeting between Wilhelmina and Fritz.—The Departure.

Wilhelmina, having thus given her very reluctant assent to her marriage with the Prince of Baireuth, wrote as follows to her mother:

Wilhelmina, having reluctantly agreed to her marriage with the Prince of Baireuth, wrote the following to her mother:

“I have hardly strength enough to trace these lines. My state is altogether worthy of pity. It is not through any menaces, however violent they may have been, that I have yielded my consent to the king’s wishes. An interest still more dear to me has determined me to this sacrifice. I have been till now the innocent cause of all the unhappiness which your majesty has endured. My too sensible heart has been penetrated by the touching details you have latterly made of them.

“I barely have the strength to write this. My situation is completely pitiful. It’s not because of any threats, no matter how intense they were, that I’ve agreed to the king’s wishes. A cause even more important to me has led me to make this sacrifice. Until now, I have been the innocent reason for all the pain that your majesty has suffered. My overly sensitive heart has been affected by the heartbreaking stories you’ve recently shared about them.”

“You have been willing to suffer for me. Is it not much more natural that I should sacrifice myself for you, and that I should finish, once for all, this fatal division in the family? Could I balance a moment between the choice of unhappiness for myself and the pardon of my brother? What dreadful discourses have there not been held to me on this subject! I tremble when I think of them. All the objections I could allege against the king’s proposal were refuted to me beforehand. Your majesty yourself had proposed to him the Prince of Baireuth as a fit alliance for me. I can not therefore imagine that you will disapprove of my resolution. Besides, necessity is not to be resisted. I shall have the honor to offer a more circumstantial detail of the whole transaction to your majesty when I shall be permitted to throw myself at your feet. I can understand easily what must be your grief on the occasion. It is that which touches me the most.”

“You have been willing to suffer for me. Isn’t it only natural that I should sacrifice myself for you and finally put an end to this tragic split in the family? Could I really choose between my own unhappiness and forgiving my brother? What awful discussions have been held with me about this! I shudder when I think of them. All the arguments I could raise against the king’s proposal were already countered for me. Your majesty, you yourself had suggested the Prince of Baireuth as a suitable match for me. So I can’t imagine that you will disapprove of my decision. Besides, this is something I have to do. I will have the honor of providing a more detailed account of the entire situation to your majesty when I’m allowed to throw myself at your feet. I can easily understand how deeply this must affect you. That’s what affects me the most.”

The king, in response to the report of Baron Grumkow, which119 was so gratifying to him, sent the same evening the following note to Wilhelmina:

The king, after receiving the report from Baron Grumkow, which made him very pleased, sent the following note to Wilhelmina that same evening:

“I am delighted, my dear Wilhelmina, that you are so submissive to the wishes of your father. The good God will bless you for it; and I will never abandon you. I will take care of you all my life, and will endeavor to prove to you that I am your very affectionate father.”

“I’m so happy, my dear Wilhelmina, that you are so obedient to your father’s wishes. God will reward you for it; and I will always be there for you. I will take care of you for the rest of my life and will try to show you that I am your very loving father.”

The next morning the princess received the following cruel epistle from her mother:

The next morning, the princess received this harsh letter from her mother:

“You have cut me to the heart, and have inflicted on me the greatest misery I ever endured. I had placed all my hope in you, in consequence of my ignorance of your character. You have had the address to disguise to me the bad propensities of your heart, and the baseness of your disposition. I repent a thousand times the kindness I have shown you, the care I have taken of your education, and all that I have suffered on your account. I no longer acknowledge you as my daughter, and shall, in future, never regard you but as my most cruel enemy, since it is you who have sacrificed me to my persecutors, who now triumph over me. Never count upon me again. I vow eternal hatred to you, and will never forgive you.”

“You have hurt me deeply and caused me the greatest pain I’ve ever felt. I put all my trust in you because I didn’t know your true character. You skillfully concealed the negative traits of your heart and the ugliness of your nature. I regret a thousand times the kindness I’ve shown you, the care I took in your upbringing, and everything I’ve endured because of you. I no longer see you as my daughter, and from now on, I will only see you as my most cruel enemy, since it is you who has sacrificed me to my tormentors, who are now celebrating my downfall. Don’t expect anything from me again. I swear eternal hatred for you and will never forgive you.”

Soon after, the king returned to Berlin and summoned his daughter to his presence. He received her very graciously. The queen, however, remained quite unreconciled, and was loud in the expression of her anger: “I am disgraced, vanquished, and my enemies are triumphant!” she exclaimed. Her chagrin was so great that she fell quite sick. To a few words of sympathy which her child uttered, she replied, “Why do you pretend to weep? It is you who have killed me.”

Soon after, the king came back to Berlin and called for his daughter. He welcomed her warmly. However, the queen was still very upset and openly expressed her anger: “I'm ashamed, defeated, and my enemies are celebrating!” she shouted. Her distress was so intense that she became quite ill. When her child offered a few words of comfort, she responded, “Why are you pretending to cry? You're the one who has killed me.”

Frederick William was in high spirits. Many distinguished strangers were invited to his court, and they were received with great magnificence. There were costly and showy entertainments, served by “six-and-twenty blackamoors,” bands of music, with much pomp of etiquette, and reviews of the giant guard and of the marvelously drilled army. Preparations were made for a review of great splendor on Monday, the 28th of May. The Prince of Baireuth was invited, though neither the queen nor Wilhelmina were aware of it. At the early hour of seven o’clock of the preceding evening the king went to bed, that he120 might be fresh for the review on the morrow. His high-born guests were left to be entertained by the queen and the princess. Just as they were passing in to supper, the sound of carriage wheels, approaching the foot of the grand staircase, was heard in the court-yard. As that was an honor conferred only upon princes, the queen was a little surprised, and sent to inquire who had arrived. To her consternation, she found that it was the Prince of Baireuth.

Frederick William was in great spirits. Many distinguished guests were invited to his court, and they were welcomed with impressive grandeur. There were extravagant and lavish entertainments, served by "twenty-six servants from Africa," musical bands, a lot of ceremonial splendor, and reviews of the giant guard and the excellently trained army. Plans were made for a grand review on Monday, May 28th. The Prince of Baireuth was invited, though neither the queen nor Wilhelmina knew about it. At the early hour of seven o'clock the night before, the king went to bed so he would be rested for the review the next day. His noble guests were left to be entertained by the queen and the princess. Just as they were about to sit down for supper, the sound of carriage wheels approaching the grand staircase was heard in the courtyard. Since that honor was reserved only for princes, the queen was a bit taken aback and sent someone to find out who had arrived. To her shock, she learned that it was the Prince of Baireuth.

“The head of Medusa,” writes the princess, “never produced such horror as did this piece of news to the queen. For some time she could not utter a word, and changed color so often that we thought she would faint. Her state went to my heart. I remained as immovable as she. Every one present appeared full of consternation.”

“The head of Medusa,” the princess writes, “never caused such terror as this piece of news did to the queen. For a while, she couldn’t say anything and changed color so frequently that we thought she might pass out. Her distress affected me deeply. I stayed just as still as she was. Everyone there seemed completely shocked.”

The prince retired to his chamber, to be presented to the royal family at the review the next day. Wilhelmina passed a miserable night. She could not sleep, and in the morning found herself so ill that she begged to be excused from the review. She also greatly dreaded encountering the coarse jests of her father. But she could not be released from the review. Both she and her mother were compelled to go. In an open carriage, the queen and princess, with attendant ladies of the court, passed before the line. The Marquis of Schwedt, whom the princess had so emphatically discarded, was at the head of his regiment. He seemed “swollen with rage,” and saluted the royal party with his eyes turned away. The royal carriages were then withdrawn to a little distance that the ladies might witness the spectacle.

The prince went back to his room, preparing to be introduced to the royal family at the review the next day. Wilhelmina spent a terrible night. She couldn't sleep and in the morning felt so unwell that she asked to be excused from the review. She was also very anxious about facing her father's crude jokes. But she couldn't be released from the review. Both she and her mother had to attend. In an open carriage, the queen and princess, along with the ladies of the court, passed in front of the line. The Marquis of Schwedt, whom the princess had firmly rejected, was leading his regiment. He looked “swollen with rage,” and he acknowledged the royal party with his gaze averted. The royal carriages were then moved back a little so the ladies could enjoy the spectacle.

“Such a show for pomp and circumstance, Wilhelmina owns, as could not be equaled in the world; such wheeling, rhythmic coalescing and unfolding, accurate as clock-work, far and wide; swift, big column here hitting big column there at the appointed place and moment; with their volleyings and trumpetings, bright uniforms, and streamers, and field-music, in equipment and manœuvre perfect all, to the meanest drummer or black kettle-drummer; supreme drill sergeant playing on the thing as on his huge piano, several square miles in area.”18

“Wilhelmina puts on quite a show of pomp and circumstance that can't be matched anywhere else; it’s all about the smooth, rhythmic movements coming together and unfolding perfectly, as precise as clockwork. From far and wide, you see the swift, large columns colliding at just the right place and moment, with their blasts and trumpet sounds, bright uniforms, streamers, and field music. Every detail is flawless, right down to the lowliest drummer or kettle drummer; it’s like a master drill sergeant playing on an enormous piano that covers several square miles.”18

As the ladies of the court were gazing upon this spectacle, an121 officer rode up to the royal carriage, cap in hand, and said that he was directed to present to the queen and princess his Highness the Prince of Baireuth. Immediately a tall young man, in rich dress and of very courtly air, rode up to the carriage and saluted his future mother and his destined bride. His reception was very chilling. The queen, with frigid civility, scarcely recognized his low bow. Wilhelmina, faint from fasting, anxiety, and sleeplessness, was so overcome by her emotions that she fell back upon her seat in a swoon.

As the ladies of the court watched this scene, an121 officer approached the royal carriage, holding his cap in hand, and announced that he was instructed to present to the queen and princess his Highness, the Prince of Baireuth. Immediately, a tall young man, dressed richly and exuding an air of sophistication, rode up to the carriage and greeted his future mother and fiancée. His welcome was very cold. The queen, with icy politeness, barely acknowledged his low bow. Wilhelmina, overwhelmed by hunger, anxiety, and lack of sleep, was so affected by her emotions that she fell back into her seat in a faint.

Wilhelmina had never seen the Prince of Wales. Her mother had not attempted to conceal from her that he was exceedingly plain in person, slightly deformed, weak in intellect, and debased by his debaucheries. But the ambitious queen urged these considerations, not as objections, but as incentives to the marriage. “You will be able,” she said, “to have him entirely under your direction. You will thus be virtually King of England, and can exert a powerful control over all the nations of Europe.” These considerations, however, did not influence the princess so much as they did her mother. She had never taken any special interest in her marriage with the Prince of Wales. Indeed, at times, she had said that nothing should ever induce her to marry him.

Wilhelmina had never met the Prince of Wales. Her mother hadn’t tried to hide the fact that he was quite plain-looking, slightly deformed, not very smart, and had a reputation for debauchery. But the ambitious queen presented these facts not as drawbacks, but as reasons to go through with the marriage. “You’ll be able,” she said, “to have him completely under your control. This way, you’ll effectively be the King of England and can have significant influence over all the countries in Europe.” However, these arguments didn't sway the princess as much as they did her mother. She had never been particularly interested in marrying the Prince of Wales. In fact, she had even said that nothing could ever make her marry him.

The first glance at the Prince of Baireuth prepossessed the princess in his favor. She subsequently, when better acquainted with him, described him in the following terms:

The first look at the Prince of Baireuth impressed the princess positively. Later, as she got to know him better, she described him like this:

“The prince is tall, well made, and has a noble air. His features are neither handsome nor regular; but his countenance, which is open, engaging, and very agreeable, stands him in the place of beauty. He is of a hasty temper, and replies with quickness and without embarrassment. Though his nature is inclined to anger, he knows so well how to overcome it that it is never perceived, and no one has ever suffered by it. He is very gay. His conversation is very agreeable, though he has some difficulty in making himself intelligible from lisping so much. His conception is quick, and his intellect penetrating. The goodness of his heart gains him the attachment of all who know him. He is generous, charitable, compassionate, polite, engaging, and enjoys very equal spirits. The only fault I know in him is too much levity, which I must mention here, as otherwise122 I should be accused of partiality. He has, however, much corrected himself of it.”

“The prince is tall, well-built, and has a noble presence. His features aren’t particularly handsome or uniform, but his open, charming, and pleasant expression makes up for it. He has a quick temper and responds rapidly and confidently. Although he tends to get angry, he manages it so well that no one ever notices, and no one has been harmed by it. He is very cheerful. His conversation is enjoyable, though he struggles a bit to be understood because of his lisp. He thinks quickly, and his mind is sharp. His kind heart earns him the affection of everyone who knows him. He is generous, charitable, compassionate, polite, engaging, and has a consistently positive mood. The only flaw I see in him is his tendency to be a bit too frivolous, which I must point out here, or else I would be accused of bias. However, he has significantly worked on this issue.”

The next Sunday, June 3d, the betrothal took place with great magnificence. The ceremony was attended by a large concourse of distinguished guests. Lord Dover says that the very evening of the day of the betrothing a courier arrived from England with dispatches announcing that the English court had yielded to all the stipulations demanded by the King of Prussia in reference to the marriage of Wilhelmina to the Prince of Wales. It was now too late to retract. Probably both the king and Wilhelmina were gratified in being able to decline the offer. But the chagrin of the queen was terrible. She fell into a violent fever, and came near dying, reproaching her daughter with having killed her.

The following Sunday, June 3rd, the engagement ceremony took place in grand style. A large crowd of notable guests attended the event. Lord Dover mentions that on the very evening of the engagement, a courier arrived from England with messages announcing that the English court had agreed to all the demands made by the King of Prussia regarding Wilhelmina's marriage to the Prince of Wales. It was now too late to back out. Both the king and Wilhelmina likely felt pleased to decline the offer. However, the queen was extremely upset. She fell into a severe fever and came close to dying, blaming her daughter for her suffering.

There seems to be no end to the complications and troubles of this royal family. It is said that Wilhelmina, to soothe her mother, treated her betrothed with great coldness; that her younger sister Charlotte fell deeply in love with the Prince of Baireuth, and endeavored to win him to herself; and that the prince himself, attracted by warmth on the one hand, and repelled by coldness on the other, was quite disposed to make the exchange.19 The king, irritated by these interminable annoyances, and the victim of chronic petulance and ill nature, recommenced his brutal treatment of his daughter.

There seems to be no end to the complications and troubles of this royal family. It's said that Wilhelmina, trying to calm her mother, treated her fiancé with great indifference; that her younger sister Charlotte fell head over heels for the Prince of Baireuth and tried to win him over; and that the prince himself, drawn to warmth on one side and pushed away by coldness on the other, was quite ready to make the switch. 19 The king, annoyed by these endless problems and constantly irritable and grumpy, resumed his harsh treatment of his daughter.

While these scenes were transpiring, the Crown Prince was at Cüstrin, upon probation, being not yet admitted to the presence of his father. He seems to have exerted himself to the utmost to please the king, applying himself diligently to become familiar with all the tedious routine and details of the administration of finance, police, and the public domains. Fritz was naturally very amiable. He was consequently popular in the little town in which he resided, all being ready to do every thing in their power to serve him. The income still allowed him by his father was so small that he would have suffered from poverty had not the gentry in the neighborhood, regardless of the prohibition to lend money to the prince, contributed secretly to replenish his purse.

While all this was happening, the Crown Prince was at Cüstrin, on probation, not yet allowed to see his father. He seemed to have worked hard to win the king's favor, diligently learning all the boring routines and details of managing finance, policing, and public lands. Fritz was naturally very charming, which made him popular in the small town where he lived, with everyone eager to help him in any way they could. The allowance his father provided was so meager that he would have struggled financially if the local gentry hadn’t secretly pitched in to help him, despite the ban on lending money to the prince.

A year and a day had elapsed since the father had seen the123 son. On the 15th of August, the king, being on a journey, stopped for a couple of hours at Cüstrin, and held an interview with Fritz. The monarch was attended by a retinue of several hundred persons. The scene which ensued is described by Grumkow in his summary of what took place at Cüstrin on the 15th of August, 1731. The king sent for the prince to be brought before him at the government house. As Fritz entered he fell upon his knees at his father’s feet. The king coldly ordered him to rise, saying,

A year and a day had passed since the father had seen his son. On August 15th, the king, while traveling, stopped for a couple of hours in Cüstrin and met with Fritz. The king was accompanied by a group of several hundred people. Grumkow describes the scene that took place in Cüstrin on August 15, 1731. The king summoned the prince to come before him at the government house. As Fritz walked in, he dropped to his knees at his father’s feet. The king coldly told him to get up, saying,

“You will now recall to mind what passed a year and a day ago—how scandalously you behaved, and what a godless enterprise you undertook. As I have had you about me from the beginning, and must know you well, I did all in the world that was in my power, by kindness and by harshness, to make an honorable man of you. As I rather suspected your evil purposes, I treated you in the harshest and sharpest way in the Saxon camp, in hopes you would consider yourself, and take another line of conduct; would confess your faults to me, and beg forgiveness. But all in vain. You grew ever more stiff-necked. You thought to carry it through with your headstrong humor. But hark ye, my lad! if thou wert sixty or seventy instead of eighteen, thou couldst not cross my resolutions. And as up to this date I have managed to sustain myself against any comer, there will be methods found to bring thee to reason too.

“You’ll now remember what happened a year and a day ago—how scandalously you acted and the godless venture you took on. Since I’ve had you around from the start and know you well, I did everything in my power, through kindness and tough love, to make an honorable person out of you. Since I suspected your bad intentions, I treated you as harshly as possible in the Saxon camp, hoping you would reconsider and change your ways; that you would confess your faults to me and ask for forgiveness. But it was all in vain. You became even more stubborn. You thought you could get away with your headstrong attitude. But listen, my boy! Even if you were sixty or seventy instead of eighteen, you couldn’t change my mind. And just like I’ve managed to stand my ground against anyone who challenged me until now, I’ll find a way to make you see reason too.”

“Have I not, on all occasions, meant honorably by you? Last time I got wind of your debts, did I not, as a father, admonish you to tell me all? I would pay all; you were only to tell me the truth; whereupon you said there were still two thousand thalers beyond the sum named. I paid these also at once, and fancied I had made peace with you. And then it was found, by-and-by, you owed many thousands more. And as you knew you could not pay, it was as good as if the money had been stolen—not to reckon how the French vermin, Montholieu and partner, cheated you with their new loans.

“Have I not always treated you honorably? The last time I heard about your debts, didn’t I, as your father, urge you to come clean? I said I would cover everything; you just needed to be honest with me. You then mentioned there were still two thousand thalers beyond what we discussed. I paid that right away, thinking I had settled things with you. But later, it turned out you owed many thousands more. And since you knew you couldn’t pay, it was just like the money was stolen—not to mention how the French scoundrels, Montholieu and his partner, ripped you off with their new loans.”

“Nothing touched me so much as that you had not any trust in me. All this that I was doing for the aggrandizement of the house, the army, and the finances, could only be for you, if you made yourself worthy of it. I here declare that I have done all things to gain your friendship, and all has been in vain.”

“Nothing hurt me more than knowing you didn’t trust me. Everything I was doing for the betterment of the family, the army, and our finances was meant for you, if you were deserving of it. I hereby state that I have done everything to earn your friendship, and it has all been for nothing.”

124 The Crown Prince, either deeply touched with penitence or affecting to be so, again threw himself upon his knees before his father, as if imploring pardon. The king continued:

124 The Crown Prince, either genuinely remorseful or pretending to be, once again fell to his knees in front of his father, as if begging for forgiveness. The king continued:

“Was it not your intention to go to England?”

“Didn't you plan to go to England?”

“Yes,” the prince replied.

"Yeah," the prince replied.

“Then hear what the consequences would have been. Your mother would have got into the greatest misery. I could not but have suspected she was the author of the business. Your sister I would have cast for life into a place where she would never have seen sun or moon again. Then on with my army to Hanover, and burn and ravage—yes, if it had cost me life, land, and people. Your thoughtless and godless conduct, see what it was leading to. I intended to employ you in all manner of business, civil and military. But how, after such action, could I show your face to my officers?”

“Then think about what the consequences would have been. Your mother would have faced terrible misery. I would have had no choice but to suspect she was behind it all. I would have condemned your sister to a life in a place where she would never see the sun or the moon again. After that, I would have marched my army to Hanover and burned and destroyed everything—yes, even if it cost me my life, my land, and my people. Your reckless and godless behavior, look at where it was leading us. I planned to involve you in all sorts of civil and military matters. But how could I possibly show your face to my officers after such an act?”

Here the young prince made the most solemn promises to try to regain his father’s favor. The king then asked: “Was it thou that temptedst Katte, or did Katte tempt thee?” Fritz promptly replied, “I tempted Katte.” “I am glad,” rejoined the king, “to hear the truth from you, at any rate.”

Here, the young prince made serious vows to try to win back his father's approval. The king then asked, “Did you tempt Katte, or did Katte tempt you?” Fritz quickly answered, “I tempted Katte.” “I’m glad,” the king responded, “to hear the truth from you, at least.”

The king then rattled on without waiting for replies: “How do you like your Cüstrin life? Do you still have as much aversion to Wusterhausen, and to wearing your shroud, as you called your uniform? Likely enough my company does not suit you. I have no French manners, and can not bring out witty sayings in the coxcomb way; and I truly consider all that as a thing to be thrown to the dogs. I am a German prince, and mean to live and die in that character. But you can now say what you have got by your caprices and obstinate heart, hating every thing that I liked, and if I distinguished any one, despising him. If an officer was put in arrest, you took to lamenting about him. Your real friends, who intended your good, you hated and calumniated. Those who flattered you and encouraged your bad purpose you caressed. You see what that has come to. In Berlin, in all Prussia, for some time back, nobody asks after you, whether you are in the world or not. And were it not that one or the other coming from Cüstrin reports you as playing tennis or wearing French hair-bags, nobody would know whether you were dead, or alive.”

The king continued talking without waiting for a response: “How do you like life in Cüstrin? Do you still dislike Wusterhausen and wearing your shroud, as you called your uniform? It’s likely my company doesn’t suit you. I don’t have French manners and can’t come up with clever remarks in a flashy way; I honestly think all that is just nonsense. I’m a German prince and plan to live and die as one. But now you can reflect on what you've gained from your whims and stubborn heart, rejecting everything I liked, and if I favored someone, despising them. If an officer was put on hold, you would complain about him. You hated and slandered your true friends who meant well for you. Meanwhile, those who flattered you and supported your bad intentions were your favorites. Look where that’s gotten you. In Berlin, across all of Prussia, lately, no one asks about you, whether you’re even around anymore. If it weren’t for the occasional person coming from Cüstrin saying you’re playing tennis or sporting French hairstyles, nobody would know if you were dead or alive.”

125 Grumkow then goes on to relate, quite in detail, that the king took up the subject of theology. “He set forth the horrible results of that absolute decree notion which makes God the author of sin; and that Jesus Christ died only for some.” The prince declared that he had thoroughly renounced that heresy. The king then added:

125 Grumkow then goes on to explain in detail that the king discussed theology. “He pointed out the terrible consequences of that absolute decree idea which claims God is responsible for sin; and that Jesus Christ died only for a select few.” The prince stated that he had completely rejected that heresy. The king then added:

“When godless fellows about you speak against your duties to God, the king, and your country, fall instantly on your knees and pray with your whole soul to Jesus Christ to deliver you from such wickedness, and lead you on better ways. And if it come in earnest from your heart, Jesus, who would have all men saved, will not leave you unheard.”

“When people around you criticize your responsibilities to God, the king, and your country, drop to your knees right away and pray with all your heart to Jesus Christ to save you from such evil and guide you toward better paths. If it truly comes from your heart, Jesus, who desires that all people be saved, will hear you.”

The Crown Prince, with what degree of sincerity we know not, was now in tears. Prostrating himself before his majesty, he kissed his feet. The king, much moved, was in tears also, and retired to another room.

The Crown Prince, with how sincere we can only guess, was now in tears. He bowed down before his majesty and kissed his feet. The king, deeply touched, was also in tears and left for another room.

“It being his majesty’s birthday,” writes Grumkow, “the prince, in deep emotion, followed his father, and, again falling prostrate, testified such heartfelt joy, gratitude, and affection over this blessed anniversary as quite touched the heart of the king, who at last clasped him in his arms, and hurried out to avoid sobbing aloud. The Crown Prince followed his majesty, and, in the presence of many hundred people, kissed his majesty’s feet, and was again embraced by his majesty, who said, ‘Behave well, as I see you mean, and I will take care of you.’ Which words,” writes Grumkow, “threw the Crown Prince into such an ecstasy of joy as no pen can express.”

“It being the king’s birthday,” writes Grumkow, “the prince, overwhelmed with emotion, followed his father and, once again falling to the ground, showed such genuine joy, gratitude, and love over this special day that it truly touched the king’s heart. Finally, the king embraced him and quickly left to avoid crying out loud. The Crown Prince followed the king and, in front of hundreds of people, kissed the king’s feet and was embraced again by the king, who said, ‘If you behave well, as I can see you intend to, I will take care of you.’ These words,” writes Grumkow, “filled the Crown Prince with a joy that no pen can express.”

Two events occurred at this time highly characteristic of the king. There was a nobleman by the name of Schlubhut, occupying a high official position, who was found a defaulter to the amount of a sum equal to twenty-five thousand dollars. The supreme court sentenced him to three or four years’ imprisonment. The king was indignant at the mildness of the sentence. “What,” said he, “when the private thief is sent to the gallows, shall a nobleman and a magistrate escape with fine and imprisonment?” Schlubhut was immediately sent to prison. All night long he was disturbed with the noise of carpentering in the castle square in front of his cell. In the morning he saw directly before his window a huge gallows erected. Upon that126 gallows he was immediately hung, and his body was left to swing in the wind for several days, some say for weeks.

Two events happened at this time that were very typical of the king. There was a nobleman named Schlubhut, who held a high official position, and he was found guilty of embezzling an amount equal to twenty-five thousand dollars. The supreme court sentenced him to three or four years in prison. The king was furious about the leniency of the sentence. “What,” he said, “when a common thief is sent to the gallows, should a nobleman and a magistrate escape with just a fine and imprisonment?” Schlubhut was immediately sent to prison. All night, he was disturbed by the sound of carpentry in the castle square in front of his cell. In the morning, he looked out of his window and saw a huge gallows constructed right outside. He was soon hanged on that gallows, and his body was left to swing in the wind for several days, some say for weeks.

DISCIPLINING THE JUDGES.

Soon after, a soldier, six feet three inches tall, the ringleader of a gang, broke into a house and robbed it of property to the amount of about five thousand dollars. He was sentenced to be hung. We give the result in the words of Carlyle:

Soon after, a soldier, six feet three inches tall and the leader of a gang, broke into a house and stole property worth about five thousand dollars. He was sentenced to be hanged. We present the outcome in Carlyle's words:

“Friedrich Wilhelm feels this sad contrast very much; the127 more, as the soldier is his own chattel withal, and of superlative inches. Friedrich Wilhelm flames up into wrath; sends off swift messengers to bring these judges, one and all, instantly into his presence. The judges are still in their dressing-gowns, shaving, breakfasting. They make what haste they can. So soon as the first three or four are reported to be in the anteroom, Friedrich Wilhelm, in extreme impatience, has them called in; starts discoursing with them upon the two weights and two measures. Apologies, subterfuges, do but provoke him farther. It is not long till he starts up growling terribly, ‘Ye scoundrels, how could you?’ and smites down upon the crown of them with the royal cudgel itself. Fancy the hurry-scurry, the unforensic attitudes and pleadings! Royal cudgel rains blows right and left. Blood is drawn, crowns cracked, crowns nearly broken; and several judges lost a few teeth and had their noses battered before they could get out. The second relay, meeting them in this dilapidated state on the staircases, dashed home again without the honor of a royal interview. This is an actual scene, of date, Berlin, 1731, of which no constitutional country can hope to see the fellow. Schlubhut he hanged, Schlubhut being only Schlubhut’s chattel. This musketeer, his majesty’s own chattel, he did not hang, but set him shouldering arms again after some preliminary dusting.”

Friedrich Wilhelm feels this sad contrast deeply, especially since the soldier is his own property and exceptionally tall. Friedrich Wilhelm erupts in anger; he sends out swift messengers to bring all these judges to him immediately. The judges are still in their robes, shaving and having breakfast. They hurry as quickly as they can. As soon as the first three or four are reported in the anteroom, Friedrich Wilhelm, losing his patience, calls them in; he starts discussing the double standards. Apologies and excuses only make him angrier. It doesn't take long before he jumps up, growling menacingly, "You scoundrels, how could you?" and strikes down upon them with the royal cudgel. Imagine the chaos, the awkward positions and desperate pleas! The royal cudgel rains blows left and right. Blood is spilled, crowns cracked, some nearly broken; several judges lose some teeth and get their noses bruised before they can escape. The next group, encountering the beaten judges on the staircase, quickly retreated without the honor of a royal meeting. This is a real event from Berlin, 1731, something no constitutional country could ever replicate. He hanged Schlubhut, as Schlubhut was merely Schlubhut's property. This musketeer, being his majesty's own property, he didn't hang but instead made him stand at attention again after a quick dusting off.

The king, after his apparent reconciliation with Fritz, granted him a little more liberty. He was appointed to travel over and carefully inspect several of the crown domains. He was ordered to study thoroughly the practical husbandry of those domains—how they were to be plowed, enriched, and sown. He was also to devote his attention to the rearing of cattle; to the preparing of malt and the brewing of ale. “Useful discourse,” said the king, “is to be kept up with him on these journeys, pointing out why this is and that, and whether it could not be better.” On the 22d of September the Crown Prince wrote to his father as follows:

The king, after seemingly making peace with Fritz, gave him a bit more freedom. He was assigned to travel around and carefully inspect several of the crown's estates. He was instructed to thoroughly study the practical farming of those lands—how they should be plowed, enriched, and planted. He was also to focus on raising cattle, preparing malt, and brewing beer. “Useful discussions,” said the king, “are to be carried on with him during these trips, explaining why things are done a certain way and whether there might be a better approach.” On September 22nd, the Crown Prince wrote to his father as follows:

“I have been to Lebus. There is excellent land there; fine weather for the husbandmen. Major Röder passed this way, and dined with me last Wednesday. He has got a fine fellow for my most all-gracious father’s regiment. I depend on my most all-gracious father’s grace that he will be good to me. I128 ask for nothing, and for no happiness in the world but what comes from him; and hope that he will some day remember me in grace, and give me the blue coat to put on again.”

“I have been to Lebus. The land there is great, and the weather is nice for farmers. Major Röder came through here and had dinner with me last Wednesday. He’s got a great guy for my most gracious father's regiment. I'm counting on my most gracious father's kindness to be good to me. I ask for nothing and no happiness in the world except what comes from him; and I hope that one day he will remember me kindly and let me wear the blue coat again.”

It is very evident, from the glimpses we catch of Fritz at this time, that he was a wild fellow, quite frivolous, and with but a feeble sense of moral obligation. General Schulenburg, an old soldier, of stern principles, visited him at Cüstrin, and sent an account of the interview to Baron Grumkow, under date of October 4th, 1731. From this letter we cull the following statement:

It’s clear from the bits we see of Fritz during this time that he was a wild guy, pretty carefree, and had a weak sense of moral duty. General Schulenburg, an old soldier with strict principles, visited him in Cüstrin and sent a report of their meeting to Baron Grumkow on October 4th, 1731. From this letter, we get the following statement:

“I found him much grown; an air of health and gayety about him. He caressed me greatly. We went to dinner. He asked me to sit beside him. Among other things, he said that he liked the great world, and was charmed to observe the ridiculous, weak side of some people.”

“I found him much taller; he had a healthy and cheerful vibe. He was very affectionate with me. We went out for dinner. He asked me to sit next to him. Among other things, he mentioned that he enjoyed the big social scene and was amused by the ridiculous, weaker side of some people.”

The prince inquired, in quite an indifferent tone, respecting the marriages his father had in contemplation for him. He objected to the marriage with the Princess of Mecklenburg, niece of the Czar Peter, that it would require him to change his religion, which he would not do. He expressed himself as inclined to take the second daughter of the Emperor of Germany, if the emperor would throw in a duchy or two.

The prince asked, in a pretty casual tone, about the marriages his father was considering for him. He opposed the match with the Princess of Mecklenburg, the niece of Czar Peter, because it would force him to change his religion, which he refused to do. He mentioned that he would be inclined to consider the second daughter of the Emperor of Germany if the emperor would include a duchy or two.

“Since you speak so much of marriages,” said the general, “I suppose you wish to be married?”

“Since you talk about marriage so much,” said the general, “I guess you want to get married?”

“No,” the prince replied; “but if the king absolutely will have it, I will marry to obey him. After that I will shove my wife into a corner, and live after my own fancy.”

“No,” the prince replied; “but if the king insists, I will marry to please him. After that, I’ll push my wife aside and live my life the way I want.”

Against this unprincipled declaration General Schulenburg remonstrated, declaring it to be unchristian and dishonorable. But the prince seemed to regard such suggestions very contemptuously. “I can perceive,” the general adds, “that if he marries, it will only be that he may have more liberty than now. It is certain that if he had his elbows free he would strike out. He said to me several times, ‘I am young; I want to profit by my youth.’”

Against this unethical declaration, General Schulenburg protested, calling it unchristian and dishonorable. But the prince seemed to look down on such suggestions. “I can see,” the general adds, “that if he gets married, it will only be so he can have more freedom than he does now. It's clear that if he had a little more freedom, he would go for it. He told me several times, ‘I’m young; I want to make the most of my youth.’”

A fortnight later General Schulenburg wrote, under date of the 19th of October: “I introduced to the Crown Prince all the officers of my regiment who are here. He received them in the style of a king. It is certain he feels what he is born to; and if he ever get to it, he will stand on the top of it. As to me, I129 mean to keep myself retired, and shall see as little of him as I can. I perceive well he does not like advice, and does not take pleasure except with men inferior to him in mind. His first aim is to find out the ridiculous side of every one, and he loves to banter and quiz.

Two weeks later, General Schulenburg wrote on October 19th: “I introduced all the officers of my regiment who are here to the Crown Prince. He welcomed them like a king. It’s clear he knows what he’s destined for, and if he ever gets there, he will excel at it. As for me, I plan to keep to myself and will avoid seeing him as much as possible. I can tell he doesn’t like advice and prefers the company of those he considers less intelligent. His main goal is to find the silly side of everyone, and he enjoys teasing and mocking.”

“I assure you he is a prince who has talent, but who will be the slave of his passions, and will like nobody but such as encourage him therein. For me, I think all princes are cast in the same mould. There is only a more and a less.”

“I assure you he’s a prince with talent, but he will be ruled by his passions and will only like those who support him in that. As for me, I believe all princes are pretty much the same. There are just varying degrees.”

BERLIN PALACE.

On Tuesday, the 20th of November, 1731, Wilhelmina, eight months after her betrothal, was married to the Prince of Baireuth. The marriage ceremony was attended with great magnificence in the royal palace of Berlin. The father of Frederick William, who was fond of pageantry, had reared one of the most sumptuous mansions in Europe, and had furnished it with splendor which no other court could outvie. Entering the interior of the palace through the outer saloon, one passed through nine apartments en suite, of grand dimensions, magnificently decorated, the last of which opened into the picture-gallery, a room ninety feet in length, and of corresponding breadth. All these were in a line. Then turning, you entered a series of fourteen rooms, each more splendid than the preceding. The chandeliers were of massive solid silver. The ceilings were exquisitely painted130 by Correggio. Between each pair of windows there were mirrors twelve feet high, and of such width that before each mirror tables could be spread for twelve guests. The last of these magnificent apartments, called the Grand Saloon, was illuminated by “a lustre weighing fifty thousand crowns; the globe of it big enough to hold a child of eight years, and the branches of solid silver.”

On Tuesday, November 20, 1731, Wilhelmina, eight months after her engagement, married the Prince of Baireuth. The wedding ceremony took place with great grandeur in the royal palace of Berlin. Frederick William's father, who loved extravagance, had built one of the most luxurious mansions in Europe, equipped with a splendor that no other court could match. Entering the palace through the outer salon, visitors passed through nine spacious, beautifully decorated rooms, the last of which led to the picture gallery, a room that was ninety feet long and equally wide. All of these rooms were in a row. Then, turning, you entered a series of fourteen rooms, each more magnificent than the last. The chandeliers were made of solid silver. The ceilings were intricately painted by Correggio. Between each pair of windows were mirrors twelve feet high and wide enough that tables could be set for twelve guests in front of each mirror. The last of these grand rooms, known as the Grand Saloon, was lit by a chandelier weighing fifty thousand crowns, with a globe large enough to hold an eight-year-old child, and branches made of solid silver.

Though Frederick the First had reared and originally furnished this Berlin palace, yet the masses of solid silver wrought into its ornamentation were mainly the work of Frederick William. Conscious that his influence in Europe depended not only upon the power of his army, but also upon the fullness of his treasury, he had been striving, through all his reign, to accumulate coin. But the money, barreled up and stored away in the vaults of his palace, was of no service while thus lying idle. Banking institutions seem not then to have been in vogue in his realms. But the silver, wrought into chandeliers, mirror-frames, and music balconies, added to the imposing splendor of his court, gave him the reputation of great wealth, and could, at any time when necessary, be melted down and coined. The wealth thus hoarded by the father afterward saved the son from ruin, when involved in wars which exhausted his treasury.

Though Frederick the First built and originally decorated this palace in Berlin, the large amounts of solid silver used in its design were mostly from Frederick William. He realized that his influence in Europe relied not just on the strength of his army, but also on the size of his treasury, so throughout his reign, he focused on accumulating money. However, the money he stored in barrels and kept tucked away in the vaults of his palace was of no use sitting idle. Banking institutions didn't seem to be popular in his territories at the time. The silver crafted into chandeliers, mirror frames, and music balconies not only enhanced the grandeur of his court, but also gave him a reputation for being very wealthy, and could be melted down and turned into coins whenever needed. The wealth that the father hoarded ultimately saved the son from disaster during wars that drained his treasury.

The queen remained bitterly unreconciled to the marriage of Wilhelmina with any one but the Prince of Wales. Stung by the sense of defeat, she did every thing in her power, by all sorts of intrigues, to break off the engagement with the Prince of Baireuth. When she found her efforts entirely unavailing, she even went so far as to take her daughter aside and entreat her, since the ceremony must take place, to refuse, after the marriage, to receive the Prince of Baireuth as her husband, that the queen might endeavor to obtain a divorce.

The queen was very upset about Wilhelmina marrying anyone other than the Prince of Wales. Feeling defeated, she did everything she could, through all kinds of schemes, to end the engagement with the Prince of Baireuth. When she realized her efforts were completely useless, she even took her daughter aside and begged her, since the ceremony was going to happen, to refuse to accept the Prince of Baireuth as her husband after the marriage, so the queen could try to get a divorce.

The annoyances to which Wilhelmina was exposed, while thus preparing for her wedding, must have been almost unendurable. Not only her mother was thus persistent and implacable in her hostility, but her father reluctantly submitted to the connection. He had fully made up his mind, with all the strength of his inflexible will, that Wilhelmina should marry either the Margrave of Schwedt or the Duke of Weissenfels. It was with extreme reluctance, and greatly to his chagrin, that the stern old man131 found himself constrained, perhaps for the first time in his life, to yield to others.

The annoyances that Wilhelmina faced while preparing for her wedding must have been almost unbearable. Not only was her mother relentless and fierce in her opposition, but her father also reluctantly accepted the arrangement. He had firmly decided, with all the determination of his unyielding will, that Wilhelmina should marry either the Margrave of Schwedt or the Duke of Weissenfels. It was with extreme hesitance, and much to his frustration, that the stern old man131 found himself, perhaps for the first time in his life, forced to give in to others.

Even Wilhelmina had accepted the Prince of Baireuth, whom she had never seen, only to avoid being sacrificed to men whom she utterly loathed. Fortunately for the princess, her affections were not otherwise engaged, and when introduced to her intended she became quite reconciled to the idea of accepting him as her husband.

Even Wilhelmina had agreed to marry the Prince of Baireuth, whom she had never met, just to avoid being forced to marry men she completely despised. Luckily for the princess, she wasn't in love with anyone else, and when she met her future husband, she became totally okay with the idea of marrying him.

On the day of the marriage, the princess, having formally renounced all her rights to the personal property of the family, dined with the royal household and her intended, and then retired to her apartment to dress for the wedding. It would seem that the queen must have become quite insane upon this point. Even at this late hour she did every thing she could to delay operations and to gain time, hoping every moment that some courier would arrive from England with proposals which would induce the king to break off the engagement. As fast as the princess’s hair on one side was dressed the queen would contrive to undo it, so that at last the hair would no longer curl, making her look, as Wilhelmina said, “like a mad woman.” She adds:

On the day of the wedding, the princess, having officially given up all her rights to the family's assets, had dinner with the royal family and her fiancé before heading to her room to get ready for the ceremony. It seemed that the queen must have been quite out of her mind about this. Even at this late hour, she did everything she could to stall the process and buy more time, hoping every moment that some messenger would arrive from England with offers that would convince the king to call off the engagement. As soon as one side of the princess's hair was styled, the queen would find a way to mess it up, so eventually the hair wouldn’t hold its curl, making her look, as Wilhelmina put it, “like a crazy person.” She adds:

“A royal crown was placed upon my head, together with twenty-four curls of false hair, each as big as my arm. I could not hold up my head, as it was too weak for so great a weight. My gown was a very rich silver brocade, trimmed with gold lace, and my train was twelve yards long. I thought I should have died under this dress.”

“A royal crown was put on my head, along with twenty-four fake curls, each as big as my arm. I could barely lift my head because it was too heavy. My gown was a lavish silver brocade, edged with gold lace, and my train was twelve yards long. I thought I was going to suffocate under this dress.”

The marriage took place in the Grand Saloon. The moment the benediction was pronounced, a triple discharge of cannon announced the event to the inhabitants of Berlin. Then the newly-married pair, seated under a gorgeous canopy, received the congratulations of the court. A ball followed, succeeded by a supper. After supper there came, according to the old German custom, what was called the dance of torches. This consisted of the whole company marching to music in procession through the rooms, each holding a lighted torch. The marriage festivities were continued for several days, with a succession of balls each night. Wilhelmina had not yet been permitted to see her brother since his arrest. But the king had promised Wilhelmina, as her reward for giving up the wretched Prince of Wales, that he132 would recall her brother and restore him to favor. On Friday evening, the 23d, three days after the wedding, there was a brilliant ball in the Grand Apartment. Wilhelmina thus describes the event which then took place:

The wedding took place in the Grand Saloon. As soon as the blessing was given, a triple cannon salute announced the event to the people of Berlin. Then the newlyweds, seated under a beautiful canopy, received congratulations from the court. A ball followed, and then there was a supper. After supper, in keeping with the old German tradition, came what was called the dance of torches. This involved the whole group marching together to music in a procession through the rooms, each person holding a lit torch. The wedding celebrations continued for several days, with balls every night. Wilhelmina had not yet been allowed to see her brother since his arrest. But the king had promised Wilhelmina, as a reward for giving up the unfortunate Prince of Wales, that he would recall her brother and restore him to favor. On Friday evening, the 23rd, three days after the wedding, there was a spectacular ball in the Grand Apartment. Wilhelmina describes the event that took place then:

“I liked dancing, and was taking advantage of my chances. Grumkow came up to me, in the middle of a minuet, and said, ‘Mon dieu, madame, you seem to have got bit by the tarantula. Don’t you see those strangers who have just come in?’ I stopped short, and, looking all around, I noticed at last a young man, dressed in gray, whom I did not know. ‘Go, then,’ said Grumkow, ‘and embrace the Crown Prince. There he is before you.’ My whole frame was agitated with joy. ‘Oh, heavens, my brother!’ cried I; ‘but I do not see him. Where is he? For God’s sake show him to me.’

"I loved dancing and was making the most of my opportunities. Grumkow approached me in the middle of a minuet and said, ‘Oh my gosh, madame, it looks like you've been bitten by the tarantula. Don't you see those newcomers who just arrived?’ I froze and, looking around, finally spotted a young man dressed in gray that I didn't recognize. ‘Go ahead,’ said Grumkow, ‘and greet the Crown Prince. He’s right in front of you.’ My whole body filled with joy. ‘Oh my goodness, my brother!’ I exclaimed; ‘but I can't see him. Where is he? For heaven's sake, show him to me.’"

“Grumkow led me to the young man in gray. Coming near, I recognized him, though with difficulty. He had grown much stouter, and his neck was much shorter. His face also was much changed, and was no longer as handsome as it had been. I fell upon his neck. I was so overcome that I could only speak in an unconnected manner. I wept, I laughed like a person out of her senses. In my life I have never felt so lively a joy. After these first emotions were subsided I went and threw myself at the feet of the king, who said to me aloud, in the presence of my brother,

“Grumkow led me to the young man in gray. As I got closer, I recognized him, though it was hard. He had gotten much heavier, and his neck was significantly shorter. His face had also changed a lot and was no longer as good-looking as it used to be. I threw my arms around him. I was so overwhelmed that I could only speak in a jumbled way. I cried and laughed like someone losing their mind. In my life, I have never felt such intense joy. After these initial feelings subsided, I went and threw myself at the king's feet, who said to me out loud, in front of my brother,

“‘Are you content with me? You see that I have kept my word with you.’

“‘Are you happy with me? You can see that I’ve kept my promise to you.’”

“I took my brother by the hand, and implored the king to restore his affection to him. This scene was so touching that it drew tears from all present. I then approached the queen. She was obliged to embrace me, the king being close opposite. But I remarked that her joy was only affected. I turned to my brother again. I gave him a thousand caresses, to all which he remained cold as ice, and answered only in monosyllables. I presented to him my husband, to whom he did not say one word. I was astonished at this; but I laid the blame of it on the king, who was observing us, and who I judged might be intimidating my brother. But even the countenance of my brother surprised me. He wore a proud air, and seemed to look down upon every body.”

“I took my brother by the hand and begged the king to restore his affection for him. This scene was so emotional that it brought tears to everyone present. I then approached the queen. She had to hug me since the king was right across from us. But I noticed that her happiness was just an act. I turned to my brother again. I showered him with affection, but he remained as cold as ice, responding only with one-word answers. I introduced him to my husband, but he didn’t say a single word. I was shocked by this, but I blamed it on the king, who was watching us and might have been intimidating my brother. Even my brother’s expression surprised me. He had a proud look and seemed to look down on everyone.”

133

133

THE RECONCILIATION.

Neither the king nor the Crown Prince appeared at the supper. With a select circle, to which neither Wilhelmina nor her mother were admitted, they supped in a private apartment. At the report that the king was treating the Crown Prince with great friendliness, the queen could not conceal her secret pique. “In fact,” says Wilhelmina, “she did not love her children except as they served her ambitious views.” She was jealous of134 Wilhelmina because she, and not her mother, had been the means of the release of Fritz. After supper the dancing was resumed, and Wilhelmina embraced an opportunity to ask her brother why he was so changed, and why he treated her so coldly. He assured her that he was not changed; that his reserve was external only; that he had reasons for his conduct. Still he did not explain his reasons, and Wilhelmina remained wounded and bewildered.

Neither the king nor the Crown Prince showed up for dinner. Instead, they dined in a private room with a select group that didn't include Wilhelmina or her mother. When word got out that the king was being very friendly with the Crown Prince, the queen couldn't hide her irritation. “Honestly,” Wilhelmina said, “she only loved her children when it suited her ambitions.” The queen was jealous of Wilhelmina because she had helped free Fritz rather than their mother. After dinner, the dancing continued, and Wilhelmina took the chance to ask her brother why he had changed so much and why he was being so distant with her. He assured her that he hadn’t changed; his distance was just for show and that he had his reasons for acting this way. However, he never explained those reasons, leaving Wilhelmina feeling hurt and confused.

Before the king released the Crown Prince he extorted from him an oath that he would be, in all respects, obedient to his father; that he would never again attempt to escape, or take any journey without permission; that he would scrupulously discharge all the duties of religion, and that he would marry any princess whom his father might select for him. The next morning, after the interview to which we have above alluded, the prince called upon his sister. They had a short private interview, Madam Sonsfeld alone being present. The prince gave a recital of his adventures and misfortunes during the many months since they last had met. The princess gave an account of her great trials, and how she had consented to a marriage, which was not one of her choice, to obtain her brother’s release.

Before the king let the Crown Prince go, he made him swear that he would be completely obedient to his father; that he would never try to escape again or travel anywhere without permission; that he would faithfully follow all religious duties, and that he would marry any princess his father chose for him. The next morning, after the conversation we just mentioned, the prince visited his sister. They had a brief private meeting, with only Madam Sonsfeld present. The prince shared stories of his adventures and hardships from the many months since they last met. The princess recounted her own struggles and how she agreed to a marriage that wasn't her choice in order to secure her brother’s freedom.

“He appeared,” she writes, “quite discountenanced at this last part of my narrative. He returned thanks for the obligations I have laid on him, with some caressings which evidently did not proceed from the heart. To break this conversation he started some indifferent topic, and, under pretense of seeing my apartment, moved into the next room, where the prince, my husband, was. Him he surveyed with his eyes from head to foot for some time; then, after some constrained civilities to him, he went his way.”

“He seemed,” she writes, “pretty unsettled by the last part of my story. He thanked me for the obligations I had placed on him, with some affectionate gestures that clearly didn’t come from the heart. To change the subject, he brought up some trivial topic and, pretending to want to see my apartment, moved into the next room where my husband, the prince, was. He looked him over from head to toe for a while; then, after exchanging some awkward pleasantries, he left.”

Wilhelmina and her husband soon left for Baireuth. Though the princess thus left the splendors of a royal palace for the far more quiet and humble state of a ducal mansion, still she was glad to escape from a home where she had experienced so many sorrows.

Wilhelmina and her husband soon headed to Baireuth. Even though the princess was leaving the grandeur of a royal palace for the much quieter and simpler life of a ducal mansion, she was still happy to get away from a home where she had faced so many hardships.

“Berlin,” she writes, “had become as odious to me as it once was dear. I flattered myself that, renouncing grandeurs, I might lead a soft and tranquil life in my new home, and begin a happier year than the one which had just ended.”

“Berlin,” she writes, “had become as unpleasant to me as it once was beloved. I convinced myself that by giving up my ambitions, I could lead a gentle and peaceful life in my new home and start a happier year than the one that just passed.”

135 As the king was about to take leave of his child, whom he had treated so cruelly, he was very much overcome by emotion. It is a solemn hour, in any family, when a daughter leaves the parental roof, never to return again but as a visitor. Whether the extraordinary development of feeling which the stern old monarch manifested on the occasion was the result of nervous sensibility, excited by strong drink or by parental affection, it is not easy to decide. Wilhelmina, in a few words of intense emotion, bade her father farewell.

135 As the king was preparing to say goodbye to his child, whom he had treated so harshly, he was overcome with emotion. It’s a significant moment in any family when a daughter leaves her childhood home, never to return except as a visitor. Whether the intense feelings expressed by the stern old monarch were due to nerves heightened by alcohol or genuine parental love is hard to tell. Wilhelmina, with a few heartfelt words, said farewell to her father.

“My discourse,” she writes, “produced its effect. He melted into tears, and could not answer me for sobs. He explained his thoughts by his embracings of me. Making an effort at length, he said, ‘I am in despair that I did not know thee. They had told me such horrible tales—I hated thee as much as I now love thee. If I had addressed myself direct to thee I should have escaped much trouble, and thou too. But they hindered me from speaking. They said that thou wert ill-natured as the devil, and wouldst drive to extremities, which I wanted to avoid. Thy mother, by her intriguings, is in part the cause of the misfortunes of the family. I have been deceived and duped on every side. But my hands are tied. Though my heart is torn in pieces, I must leave these iniquities unpunished.’”

“My speech,” she writes, “had its effect. He broke down in tears and couldn’t respond because he was sobbing. He expressed his feelings through his embraces. After making an effort, he finally said, ‘I’m in despair that I didn’t know you. They told me such terrible stories—I hated you as much as I now love you. If I had spoken to you directly, I could have avoided a lot of trouble, and so could you. But they stopped me from talking. They said you were as ill-tempered as the devil and that you would push me to extremes, which I wanted to avoid. Your mother, with her scheming, is partly responsible for the troubles in the family. I’ve been fooled and misled from every direction. But my hands are tied. Even though my heart is breaking, I have to leave these wrongs unpunished.’”

“The queen’s intentions were always good,” Wilhelmina kindly urged. The king replied, “Let us not enter into that detail. What is past is past. I will try to forget it. You are the dearest to me of all the family. I am too sad of heart to take leave of you. Embrace your husband on my part. I am so overcome that I must not see him.”

“The queen’s intentions were always good,” Wilhelmina gently insisted. The king answered, “Let’s not dwell on that. What’s done is done. I’ll try to forget it. You’re the closest to me in the family. I’m too heartbroken to say goodbye to you. Give your husband a hug for me. I’m so overwhelmed that I can’t see him.”

Wilhelmina, with flooded eyes, entered her carriage, bidding a final adieu to the home of her childhood, where she had passed through so many scenes, eventful and afflictive. Though she afterward visited Berlin, it was her home no more. The Crown Prince returned to Cüstrin, where he impatiently awaited his future destinies.

Wilhelmina, tears in her eyes, got into her carriage, saying a final goodbye to the home of her childhood, where she had experienced so many significant and painful moments. Even though she later visited Berlin, it no longer felt like home to her. The Crown Prince went back to Cüstrin, where he eagerly awaited his future.


136

136

CHAPTER VII.
THE MARRIAGE OF THE CROWN PRINCE.

Matrimonial Intrigues.—Letters from the King to his Son.—Letter from Fritz to Grumkow.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—The Betrothal.—Character of Elizabeth.—Her cruel Reception by the Prussian Queen.—Letter from Fritz to Wilhelmina.—Disappointment and Anguish of Elizabeth.—Studious Habits of Fritz.—Continued Alienation of his Father.—The Marriage.—Life in the Castle at Reinsberg.

Marriage Intrigues.—Letters from the King to his Son.—Letter from Fritz to Grumkow.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—The Engagement.—Character of Elizabeth.—Her cold reception by the Prussian Queen.—Letter from Fritz to Wilhelmina.—Elizabeth's disappointment and distress.—Fritz's dedication to studying.—Continued distance from his father.—The wedding.—Life in the castle at Reinsberg.

Upon the return of the Crown Prince to Cüstrin after the marriage of Wilhelmina, several of the officers of the army sent in a petition to the king that he would restore to the prince his uniform and his military rank. The king consented, and made out his commission anew as colonel commandant of the Goltz regiment at Ruppin. This was a small town about seventy-five miles northeast of Berlin. His commission was signed on the 29th of February, 1732, he being then twenty years of age. In this little hamlet, mainly engaged in the dull routine of garrison duties, the prince passed most of his time for the next eight years.

After the Crown Prince returned to Cüstrin following Wilhelmina's wedding, several army officers submitted a request to the king to reinstate the prince's uniform and military rank. The king agreed and issued a new commission for him as colonel commandant of the Goltz regiment in Ruppin. This was a small town located about seventy-five miles northeast of Berlin. His commission was signed on February 29, 1732, when he was just twenty years old. In this small town, primarily focused on the monotonous routine of garrison duties, the prince spent most of the next eight years.

The Crown Prince was quite exasperated that the English court would not listen to his earnest plea for the marriage of Wilhelmina to the Prince of Wales, and accept his vows of fidelity to the Princess Amelia. The stubborn adhesion of the King of England to the declaration of “both marriages or none” so annoyed him that he banished Amelia from his thoughts. In his reckless way he affirmed that the romance of marriage was all over with him; that he cared not much what bride was forced upon him, provided only that she were rich, and that she were not too scrupulous in religious principle. The tongues of all the court gossips were busy upon this theme. Innumerable were the candidates suggested to share the crown of the future Prussian king. The Archduchess Maria Theresa, subsequently the renowned Empress of Germany, was proposed by Prince Eugene. But the imperial court could not wed its Catholic heiress to a Protestant prince. Still the emperor, though unwilling to give his daughter to the Crown Prince, was anxious137 for as close an alliance as possible with Prussia, and recommended a niece of the empress, the young Princess Elizabeth Christina, only daughter of Ferdinand, Duke of Brunswick Bevern. She was seventeen years of age, rather pretty, with a fine complexion, not rich, of religious tastes, and remarkably quiet and domestic in her character.

The Crown Prince was quite frustrated that the English court wouldn’t listen to his sincere request for Wilhelmina to marry the Prince of Wales and accept his promises to stay loyal to Princess Amelia. The King of England's stubborn insistence on “both marriages or none” annoyed him so much that he pushed Amelia out of his mind. Recklessly, he declared that the idea of marriage was done for him; he didn’t care much about which bride was forced upon him, as long as she was wealthy and not too strict with her religious beliefs. The gossipmongers at court couldn’t stop talking about this. Countless candidates were suggested to become the future queen of Prussia. Prince Eugene proposed Archduchess Maria Theresa, who would later become the famous Empress of Germany. But the imperial court couldn’t marry its Catholic heiress to a Protestant prince. Still, the emperor, while unwilling to give his daughter to the Crown Prince, wanted a strong alliance with Prussia, so he recommended the empress’s niece, the young Princess Elizabeth Christina, the only daughter of Ferdinand, Duke of Brunswick Bevern. She was seventeen, quite pretty, had a nice complexion, wasn’t wealthy, had religious inclinations, and was known for being very calm and domestic.

The Crown Prince did not fancy this connection at all. His first wish was to journey about, through the courts of Europe, to select him a wife. But that measure his father would not think of. Frederick professed a willingness to submit to marry Anna, Princess of Mecklenburg, or the Princess of Eisenach. Seckendorf, the embassador of the emperor, aided by Grumkow, who had been bribed, urged the marriage with Elizabeth. The king adopted their views. His decision was like a decree of fate. The following letter, written by the king to his son, dated Potsdam, February 4, 1732, very clearly expresses his views:

The Crown Prince was not at all interested in this connection. His first desire was to travel around the courts of Europe to choose a wife for himself. But his father would not consider that. Frederick expressed a willingness to marry Anna, Princess of Mecklenburg, or the Princess of Eisenach. Seckendorf, the emperor's ambassador, with the help of the bribed Grumkow, pushed for the marriage with Elizabeth. The king agreed with their proposal. His decision felt like a decree of fate. The following letter, written by the king to his son, dated Potsdam, February 4, 1732, clearly outlines his views:

My dear Son Fritz,—I am glad you need no more medicine. But you must have a care of yourself some days yet, for the severe weather gives me and every body colds. So pray be on your guard.

Dear Son Fritz,—I’m relieved to hear you don’t need any more medicine. However, you still have to take care of yourself for a few more days because the harsh weather is causing colds for me and everyone else. So please be careful.

“You know, my dear son, that when my children are obedient I love them much. So when you were at Berlin, I from my heart forgave you every thing; and from that Berlin time, since I saw you, have thought of nothing but of your well-being, and how to establish you; not in the army only, but also with a right step-daughter, and so see you married in my lifetime. You may be well persuaded I have had the Princesses of Germany taken survey of, so far as possible, and examined by trusty people what their conduct is, their education, and so on. And so a princess has been found, the eldest one of Bevern, who is well brought up, modest and retiring as a woman ought to be.

“You know, my dear son, that I love my children a lot when they're obedient. So when you were in Berlin, I truly forgave you for everything; since that time, I have only been thinking about your well-being and how to support you—not just in the army, but also in finding a good stepdaughter, so I can see you married while I'm still alive. You can be sure I've researched the princesses of Germany as much as possible and had reliable people look into their conduct, education, and more. So, I've found a princess—the eldest from Bevern—who is well-raised, modest, and reserved, just as a woman should be.”

“You will quickly write me your mind on this. I have purchased the Von Katsch house. The field marshal, as governor of Berlin, will get that to live in. His government house I will have made new for you, and furnish it all, and give you enough to keep house yourself there.

“You will quickly let me know your thoughts on this. I've bought the Von Katsch house. The field marshal, as governor of Berlin, will be living there. I’ll renovate his government house for you, furnish it completely, and give you enough to run the household on your own.”

“The princess is not ugly nor beautiful. You must mention it to no mortal. Write indeed to mamma that I have written138 to you. And when you shall have a son, I will let you go on your travels; wedding, however, can not be before next winter. Meanwhile I will try and contrive opportunity that you see one another a few times, in all honor, yet so that you get acquainted with her. She is a God-fearing creature, will suit herself to you, as she does to the parents-in-law.

“The princess is neither ugly nor beautiful. You must keep this to yourself. Do write to Mom that I’ve written to you138. And when you have a son, I’ll let you go on your travels; however, the wedding can't take place until next winter. In the meantime, I’ll try to set up a few opportunities for you to meet her, in all honor, so you can get to know her. She is a God-fearing person and will adapt to you just like she does with her in-laws.”

“God give his blessing to it, and bless you and your posterity, and keep you as a good Christian. And have God always before your eyes, and don’t believe that damnable predestination tenet; and be obedient and faithful. So shall it here in time, and there in eternity, go well with thee. And whosoever wishes that from the heart, let him say Amen.

“May God bless it, and bless you and your descendants, and keep you as a good Christian. Always keep God in your thoughts, and don’t believe in that terrible idea of predestination; be obedient and faithful. In time and in eternity, things will go well for you. And whoever truly wishes this, let them say Amen.

“Your true father to the death,
Friedrich Wilhelm.

“Your true father until the end,
Friedrich Wilhelm.

“When the Duke of Lorraine comes I will have thee come. I think the bride will be here then. Adieu; God be with you.”

“When the Duke of Lorraine arrives, I want you to be there. I believe the bride will be here by then. Goodbye; take care.”

One week after the reception of this letter the Crown Prince wrote to Baron Grumkow in the following flippant and revolting strain. He probably little imagined that the letter was to be read by all Europe and all America. But those whose paths through life lead over the eminences of rank and power can not conceal their words or deeds from the scrutiny of the world. Grumkow, a very shrewd man, had contrived to secure influence over both the father and the son. The prince’s letter was dated Cüstrin, February 11, 1732:

One week after receiving this letter, the Crown Prince wrote to Baron Grumkow in a dismissive and distasteful tone. He probably didn’t realize that the letter would be read across all of Europe and America. But those whose lives are shaped by the heights of status and power can't hide their words or actions from the world's watchful eyes. Grumkow, a very clever man, had managed to gain influence over both the father and the son. The prince’s letter was dated Cüstrin, February 11, 1732:

My dear General and Friend,—I was charmed to learn, by your letter, that my affairs are on so good a footing. You may depend on it I am prepared to follow your advice. I will lend myself to whatever is possible for me. And, provided I can secure the king’s favor by my obedience, I will do all that is within my power.

My dear General and Friend,—I was thrilled to read in your letter that my position is so secure. You can count on me; I’m ready to follow your advice. I will do everything I can. As long as I can win the king’s favor through my loyalty, I will do everything possible.”

“Nevertheless, in making my bargain with the Duke of Bevern, manage that my intended be brought up under her grandmother.20 I should rather have a wife who would dishonor me than to marry a blockhead who would drive me mad by her awkwardness, and whom I should be ashamed to produce.

“However, when I make my arrangement with the Duke of Bevern, I want my future wife to be raised by her grandmother.__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ I’d rather have a scandalous wife than marry an incompetent who would frustrate me with her awkwardness and be someone I’d be embarrassed to introduce.”

139 “I beg you labor at this affair. When one hates romantic heroines as heartily as I do, one dreads those timid virtues; and I had rather marry the greatest profligate21 in Berlin than a devotee with half a dozen bigots at her beck. If it were still possible to make her a Calvinist! But I doubt that. I will insist, however, that her grandmother have the training of her. What you can do to help me in this, my dear friend, I am persuaded you will do.

139 “I really need you to handle this. When someone dislikes romantic heroines as much as I do, they also can’t stand those timid traits; I’d prefer to marry the biggest scandal in Berlin than someone who is overly devoted with fanatics at her feet. If only I could make her a Calvinist! But I’m uncertain about that. I will insist that her grandmother instructs her. Whatever you can do to assist me with this, my dear friend, I’m sure you will.”

“It afflicted me a little that the king still has doubts of me, while I am obeying in such a matter diametrically opposite to my own ideas. In what way shall I offer stronger proofs? I may give myself to the devil, it will be to no purpose. Nothing but the old song over again, doubt on doubt. Don’t imagine I am going to disoblige the duke, the duchess, or the daughter, I beseech you. I know too well what is due to them, and too much respect their merits, not to observe the strictest rules of what is proper, even if I hated their progeny and them like the pestilence.

“It bothers me a bit that the king still doubts me, even though I’m doing something entirely against my own beliefs. How much more can I prove myself? I could sell my soul to the devil, and it wouldn’t change a thing. It’s just the same old story, doubt after doubt. Don’t think for a second that I intend to offend the duke, the duchess, or their daughter, I swear. I know exactly what they deserve, and I respect them too much to break the rules of decency, even if I detest their family like a disease.”

“I hope to speak to you with open heart at Berlin. You may think, too, how I shall be embarrassed in having to act the lover without being it, and to feign a passion for mute ugliness; for I have not much faith in Count Seckendorf’s taste in this article. Monsieur, once more get this princess to learn by heart the Ecole des Maris and the Ecole des Femmes. That will do her much more good than True Christianity by the late Arndt. If, beside, she would learn steadiness of humor, learn music, become rather too free than too virtuous—ah! then, my dear general, then I should feel some liking for her; and a Colin marrying a Phillis, the couple would be in accordance. But if she is stupid, naturally I renounce the devil and her.

“I hope to talk to you candidly in Berlin. You might want to consider how uncomfortable I’ll feel pretending to be in love when I’m not and faking a passion for something unappealing; I don’t have much faith in Count Seckendorf’s taste in this area. Sir, please make sure this princess memorizes the Ecole des Maris and the Ecole des Femmes. That will be much more beneficial for her than True Christianity by the late Arndt. Additionally, if she could learn to manage her emotions, pick up music, and be a bit more carefree rather than overly virtuous—ah! then, my dear general, I might actually find her appealing; a Colin marrying a Phillis would make sense. But if she’s dull, then I’m out, no devil and no her.”

“It is said she has a sister who at least has common sense. Why take the eldest, if so? To the king it must be all one. There is also a princess, Christina Marie, of Eisenach, who would be quite my fit, and whom I should like to try for. In fine, I mean soon to come into your countries, and perhaps will say, like Cæsar, Veni, vidi, vici.”

“I’ve heard she has a sister who at least has some common sense. Why choose the eldest then? It must not matter to the king. There’s also a princess, Christina Marie, from Eisenach, who would be a good match for me, and I intend to pursue her. In short, I plan to come to your lands soon, and I might say, like Caesar, Veni, vidi, vici.”

In another letter to Grumkow, he writes: “As to what you tell me of the Princess of Mecklenburg, could not I marry her?140 She would have a dowry of two or three million rubles.22 Only fancy how I could live with that. I think that project might succeed. I find none of these advantages in the Princess of Bevern, who, as many people even of the duke’s court say, is not at all beautiful, speaks almost nothing, and is given to pouting. The good empress has so little money herself that the sums she could afford her niece would be very moderate.”

In another letter to Grumkow, he writes: “Regarding what you’ve told me about the Princess of Mecklenburg, could I marry her? She would have a dowry of two or three million rubles. Just imagine how I could live with that. I think that plan might work. I don’t see any benefits with the Princess of Bevern, who, as many people at the duke’s court say, is not beautiful at all, hardly speaks, and tends to pout. The good empress has so little money herself that the amounts she could offer her niece would be quite modest.”

Again, on the 19th of February, 1732, the Crown Prince wrote from Cüstrin to Baron Grumkow. From his letter we make the following extracts:

Again, on February 19, 1732, the Crown Prince wrote from Cüstrin to Baron Grumkow. Here are some excerpts from his letter:

“Judge, my dear general, if I have been much charmed with the description you give of the abominable object of my desires. For the love of God disabuse the king in regard to her. Let him remember that fools are commonly the most obstinate of creatures. Let the king remember that it is not for himself that he is marrying me, but for myself. Nay, he too will have a thousand chagrins to see two persons hating one another, and the most miserable marriage in the world; to hear their mutual complaints, which will be to him so many reproaches for having fashioned the instrument of our yoke. As a good Christian, let him consider if it is well done to wish to force people, to cause divorces, and to be the occasion of all the sins that an ill-assorted marriage leads us to commit. I am determined to front every thing in the world sooner. Since things are so, you may, in some good way, apprise the Duke of Bevern that, happen what may, I never will have her.

"Judge, my dear general, if I haven't been quite taken with the description you give of the terrible object of my desires. For the love of God, set the king straight about her. Let him remember that fools are often the most stubborn beings. Let the king realize that he’s not marrying me for his own sake, but for my sake. He too will face a thousand frustrations seeing two people who despise each other, leading to the most miserable marriage in existence; to hear their complaints, which will serve as countless reminders of his role in creating our misery. As a good Christian, let him reflect on whether it's right to force people, to create divorces, and to be the cause of all the sins that a mismatched marriage leads us to commit. I am determined to face anything in the world before that. Given the situation, you might find a good way to inform the Duke of Bevern that, no matter what, I will never have her."

“I have been unhappy all my life, and I think it is my destiny to continue so. One must be patient, and take the time as it comes. Perhaps a sudden tract of good fortune, on the back of all the chagrins I have encountered since I entered this world, would have made me too proud. I have suffered sufficiently, and I will not engage myself to extend my miseries into future times. I have still resources. A pistol-shot can deliver me from my sorrows and my life, and I think a merciful God would not damn me for that, but, taking pity on me, would, in exchange for a life of wretchedness, grant me salvation. This is whitherward despair can lead a young person whose blood is not so quiescent as if he were seventy.

“I have been unhappy my whole life, and I believe it’s my fate to stay that way. One has to be patient and take things as they come. Maybe a sudden wave of good luck, after all the disappointments I’ve faced since I arrived in this world, would have made me too arrogant. I’ve suffered enough, and I won’t tie myself to extending my misery into the future. I still have options left. A gunshot could free me from my pain and my life, and I think a compassionate God wouldn’t condemn me for that; instead, feeling sorry for me, He would grant me salvation in exchange for a life of misery. This is where despair can lead a young person whose blood isn’t as calm as if he were seventy.

141 “I have received a letter from the king, all agog about the princess. When his first fire of approbation is spent, you might, praising her all the while, lead him to notice her faults. Mon Dieu, has he not already seen what an ill-assorted marriage comes to—my sister of Anspach and her husband, who hate one another like the fire? He has a thousand vexations from it every day.

141 “I got a letter from the king, who's really excited about the princess. Once his initial excitement fades, you could, while still praising her, subtly point out her flaws. Mon Dieu, hasn’t he already witnessed what a mismatched marriage leads to—my sister from Anspach and her husband, who can’t stand each other? He deals with a hundred frustrations from it every day."

“And what aim has the king? If it is to assure himself of me, that is not the way. Madam of Eisenach might do it, but a fool not. On the contrary, it is morally impossible to love the cause of our misery. The king is reasonable, and I am persuaded he will understand this himself.”

“And what is the king's goal? If it's to guarantee my loyalty, that's not the way to do it. The lady from Eisenach might succeed, but a fool wouldn’t. In fact, it's morally impossible to love what brings us pain. The king is sensible, and I believe he will realize this himself.”

To his sister, Fritz wrote, about the same time, in a more subdued strain, referring simply to his recent life in Cüstrin: “Thus far my lot has been a tolerably happy one. I have lived quietly in the garrison. My flute, my books, and a few affectionate friends have made my way of life there sufficiently agreeable. They now want to force me to abandon all this in order to marry me to the Princess of Bevern, whom I do not know. Must one always be tyrannized over without any hope of a change? Still, if my dear sister were only here, I should endure all with patience.”

To his sister, Fritz wrote around the same time, in a more thoughtful tone, simply discussing his recent life in Cüstrin: “So far, my life has been fairly happy. I’ve lived quietly in the garrison. My flute, my books, and a few close friends have made my life there pretty enjoyable. Now they want to force me to give all this up to marry the Princess of Bevern, whom I don’t even know. Do I always have to be pushed around with no hope for a change? Still, if my dear sister were just here, I could handle it all with patience.”

Queen Sophie, who still clung pertinaciously to the idea of the English match, was, of course, bitterly hostile to the nuptial alliance with Elizabeth. Indeed, the queen still adhered to the idea of the double English marriage, and exhausted all the arts of diplomacy and intrigue in the endeavor to secure the Princess Amelia for the Crown Prince, and to unite the Prince of Wales to a younger sister of Wilhelmina. Very naturally she cherished feelings of strong antipathy toward Elizabeth, who seemed to be the cause, though the innocent cause, of the frustration of her plans. She consequently spoke of the princess in the most contemptuous manner, and did every thing in her power to induce her son to regard her with repugnance. But nothing could change the inexorable will of the king. Early in March the doomed Princess Elizabeth, a beautiful, artless child of seventeen years, who had seen but little of society, and was frightened in view of the scenes before her, was brought to Berlin to be betrothed to the Crown Prince, whom she had never seen, of whom she could not have heard any very favorable reports, and from142 whom she had never received one word of tenderness. The wreck of happiness of this young princess, which was borne so meekly and uncomplainingly, is one of the saddest which history records. Just before her arrival, Fritz wrote to his sister as follows. The letter was dated Berlin, March 6, 1732:

Queen Sophie, who stubbornly held onto the idea of an English marriage, was, of course, deeply opposed to the alliance with Elizabeth. In fact, she was still committed to the concept of a double English marriage and used every diplomatic trick in the book to try to secure Princess Amelia for the Crown Prince, and to pair the Prince of Wales with one of Wilhelmina’s younger sisters. Naturally, she harbored strong feelings of dislike towards Elizabeth, who seemed to be the innocent cause of her plans falling apart. As a result, she spoke of the princess in the most dismissive way and did everything she could to make her son look at her with disdain. But nothing could sway the king’s unyielding decision. In early March, the doomed Princess Elizabeth, a beautiful and naive girl of seventeen, who had experienced very little of society and was terrified by what lay ahead, was brought to Berlin to be engaged to the Crown Prince, whom she had never met, and about whom she couldn't have heard many positive things, and from whom she had never received a kind word. The tragic loss of happiness for this young princess, which she endured so quietly and without complaint, is one of the saddest stories in history. Just before her arrival, Fritz wrote to his sister as follows. The letter was dated Berlin, March 6, 1732:

My dearest Sister,—Next Monday comes my betrothal, which will be done just as yours was. The person in question is neither beautiful nor ugly; not wanting in sense, but very ill brought up, timid, and totally behind in fashionable address. That is the candid portrait of the princess. You may judge by that, my dearest sister, if I find her to my taste or not.

My dearest sister,—Next Monday is my engagement, which will happen just like yours did. The person involved isn't particularly beautiful or unattractive; she has some intelligence, but she's poorly raised, shy, and completely lacks social grace. That's the honest assessment of the princess. You can decide, my dearest sister, whether I find her attractive or not.”

“You never can believe, my adorable sister, how concerned I am about your happiness. All my wishes centre there, and every moment of my life I form such wishes. You may see by this that I preserve still that sincere friendship which has united our hearts from our tenderest years. Recognize at least, my dear sister, that you did me a sensible wrong when you suspected me of fickleness toward you, and believed false reports of my listening to tale-bearers—me, who love only you, and whom neither absence nor lying rumors could change in respect of you. At least, don’t again believe such things on my score, and never mistrust me till you have had clear proof, or till God has forsaken me, or I have lost my wits.

“You can't imagine, my dear sister, how much I care about your happiness. Everything I wish for centers around that, and I think about it every moment of my life. You can see from this that I still hold that genuine friendship we've shared since we were children. Please understand, my dear sister, that you did me a real injustice when you doubted my loyalty to you and believed those false rumors about me listening to gossip—me, who loves only you, and whose feelings for you can’t be changed by distance or lies. At the very least, don’t ever believe such things about me again, and never doubt me unless you have undeniable proof, or unless God has abandoned me, or I’ve lost my mind.”

“Your most humble brother and servant,
Frederick.”

“Your most humble brother and servant,
Frederick.”

The betrothal took place in the Berlin palace on Monday evening, March 10, 1732. Many distinguished guests from foreign courts were present. The palace was brilliantly illuminated. The Duke and Duchess of Bevern, with their son, had accompanied their daughter Elizabeth to Berlin. The youthful pair, who were now to be betrothed only, not married, stood in the centre of the grand saloon, surrounded by the brilliant assemblage. With punctilious observance of court etiquette, they exchanged rings, and plighted their mutual faith. The old king embraced the bride tenderly. The queen-mother, hoping that the marriage would never take place, saluted her with repulsive coldness. And, worst of all, the prince himself scarcely treated143 her with civility. The sufferings of this lovely princess must have been terrible. The testimony to her beauty, her virtues, her amiable character, is uncontradicted. The following well-merited tribute to her worth is from the pen of Lord Dover:

The engagement happened in the Berlin palace on Monday evening, March 10, 1732. Many notable guests from foreign courts were in attendance. The palace was brightly lit. The Duke and Duchess of Bevern brought their son along to Berlin with their daughter Elizabeth. The young couple, who were only getting engaged and not married yet, stood in the center of the grand hall, surrounded by the impressive gathering. Following strict court etiquette, they exchanged rings and promised their mutual fidelity. The old king embraced the bride affectionately. The queen mother, wishing that the marriage would never happen, greeted her with chilling indifference. And, unfortunately, the prince himself barely treated her with any courtesy. The hardships this beautiful princess faced must have been immense. The acknowledgment of her beauty, virtues, and charming character is undisputed. The following well-deserved praise of her worth comes from Lord Dover:

THE BETROTHAL.

“Elizabeth Christina, who became the wife of Frederick the Great, was a princess adorned with all the virtues which most dignify human nature; religious, benevolent, charitable, affectionate,144 of the strictest and most irreproachable conduct herself, yet indulgent and forgiving for the faults of others. Her whole life was passed in fulfilling the circle of her duties, and, above all, in striving without ceasing to act in the way she thought would be most pleasing to her husband, whom she respected, admired, and even loved, in spite of his constant neglect of her.”

“Elizabeth Christina, who became the wife of Frederick the Great, was a princess blessed with all the virtues that elevate human nature; she was religious, generous, charitable, loving, 144 conduct herself was strict and above reproach, yet she was indulgent and forgiving of others' faults. She spent her entire life fulfilling her responsibilities and, above all, constantly striving to act in ways she believed would please her husband, whom she respected, admired, and even loved, despite his ongoing neglect of her.”

Baron Bielfeld, a member of the court, thus describes her personal appearance: “Her royal highness is tall of stature, and her figure is perfect. Never have I seen a more regular shape in all its proportions. Her neck, her hands, and her feet might serve as models to the painter. Her hair, which I have particularly admired, is of a most beautiful flaxen, but somewhat inclining to white, and shines, when not powdered, like rows of pearls. Her complexion is remarkably fine; and in her large blue eyes vivacity and sweetness are so happily blended as to make them perfectly animated.

Baron Bielfeld, a member of the court, describes her appearance this way: “Her royal highness is tall, and her figure is flawless. I have never seen a more perfectly shaped body. Her neck, hands, and feet could all serve as models for artists. Her hair, which I find particularly beautiful, is a lovely light blonde, almost white, and shines like strands of pearls when not powdered. Her complexion is exceptionally smooth, and in her large blue eyes, brightness and gentleness blend together perfectly, giving them a lively expression.”

“The princess has an open countenance; her eyebrows are neat and regular; her nose is small and angular, but very elegantly defined; and her coral lips and well-turned neck are equally admirable. Goodness is strongly marked in her countenance; and we may say, from her whole figure, that the Graces have exerted themselves in forming a great princess. Her highness talks but little, especially at table, but all she says is sterling sense. She appears to have an uncommon genius, which she ornaments by the continual study of the best French authors.”

“The princess has a friendly expression; her eyebrows are tidy and well-shaped; her nose is small and angular, but very elegantly defined; and her coral lips and gracefully shaped neck are equally remarkable. Kindness is clearly visible in her face; and we can tell from her entire figure that the Graces have played a role in shaping a great princess. She speaks very little, especially at dinner, but everything she says is meaningful. She seems to have a unique talent, which she enhances through her ongoing study of the best French authors.”

The reception of the princess was so cruel, by Queen Sophie and her younger daughter Charlotte, that the inexperienced maiden of but seventeen summers must have been perfectly wretched. But she could only bear her anguish in silence. There was nothing for her to say, and nothing for her to do. She was led, by resistless powers, a victim to the sacrifice.

The way Queen Sophie and her younger daughter Charlotte treated the princess was so harsh that the young girl, who was only seventeen, must have felt completely miserable. But she could only endure her pain in silence. There was nothing she could say or do. She was driven, against her will, to her fate.

About three weeks after this sad betrothal, Fritz wrote to his sister Wilhelmina, under date of Berlin, March 24, 1732, as follows:

About three weeks after this unfortunate engagement, Fritz wrote to his sister Wilhelmina, dated Berlin, March 24, 1732, as follows:

“God be praised, my dearest sister, that you are better. Nobody can love you more tenderly than I do. As to the Princess of Bevern, the queen bids me answer that you need not style her ‘Highness,’ but that you may write to her quite as to an indifferent145 princess. As to ‘kissing the hands,’ I assure you I have not kissed them nor will kiss them. They are not pretty enough to tempt me that way.

“Thank God, my dearest sister, that you're feeling better. No one can love you more deeply than I do. Regarding the Princess of Bevern, the queen asks me to let you know that you don't need to call her ‘Highness’ and that you can write to her just like you would to any other princess you don’t really know. As for ‘kissing her hands,’ I promise I haven't done that and won’t. They’re not attractive enough to tempt me like that.

“Believe, my charming sister, that never brother in the world loved with such tenderness a sister so charming as mine.”

“Believe me, my lovely sister, that no brother in the world has ever loved a sister as wonderful as you.”

The betrothed princess, bewildered, wounded, heart-broken, returned with her parents to her home, there to await the consummation of her sacrifice by being married to a man who had never addressed to her a loving word, and who, in his heart, had resolved never to receive her as his wife. The Crown Prince, unfeeling and reckless, returned to his dissolute life in garrison at Ruppin. The queen continued an active correspondence with England, still hoping to break the engagement of her son with Elizabeth, and to secure for him the Princess Amelia.

The betrothed princess, confused, hurt, and heartbroken, went back home with her parents, waiting for the moment when her sacrifice would be completed by marrying a man who had never spoken a kind word to her and who secretly intended never to accept her as his wife. The Crown Prince, indifferent and reckless, returned to his wild life at the garrison in Ruppin. The queen kept an active correspondence with England, still hoping to end her son’s engagement to Elizabeth and arrange for him to marry Princess Amelia.

Ruppin, where the Crown Prince continued to reside for several years, was a small, dull town of about two thousand inhabitants. The only life it exhibited was found in the music and drillings of the garrison. The only important event in its history was the removal of the Crown Prince there. Of what is called society there was none. The hamlet was situated in the midst of a flat, marshy country, most of it quite uncultivated. The region abounded in peat bogs, and dark, still lakes, well stocked with fish.

Ruppin, where the Crown Prince lived for several years, was a small, boring town with about two thousand residents. The only energy it had came from the music and training of the garrison. The most significant event in its history was the arrival of the Crown Prince. There was no such thing as a social scene. The village was located in the middle of a flat, marshy area, most of which was quite uncultivated. The region was full of peat bogs and dark, calm lakes that were well-stocked with fish.

A comfortable house, with garden and summer-house, was provided for the Crown Prince. He occasionally gave a dinner-party to his brother officers; and from the summer-house rockets were thrown into the sky, to the great gratification of the rustic peasantry.

A cozy house with a garden and a summer house was given to the Crown Prince. He sometimes hosted dinner parties for his fellow officers, and from the summer house, fireworks were launched into the sky, much to the delight of the local villagers.

Both father and son had become by this time fully satisfied that their tastes and characters were so different that it was not best for them to live near each other. The prince spent much of his time with his flute. He also engaged in quite a wide range of reading to occupy the listless hours. Works of the most elevated and instructive character especially interested him, such as history, biography, moral and intellectual philosophy, and polite literature in its higher branches of poetry and the drama. “What mankind have done and been in this world,” writes Carlyle, “and what the wisest men, poetical or other, have thought about mankind and their world, this is what he evidently146 had the appetite for—appetite insatiable, which lasted him to the very end of his days.”

Both the father and son had come to realize that their tastes and personalities were so different that it was better for them not to live close to each other. The prince spent a lot of his time playing his flute. He also read a variety of books to fill his unoccupied hours. He was particularly interested in works that were elevated and informative, such as history, biography, moral and intellectual philosophy, and the higher forms of literature including poetry and drama. “What mankind has done and been in this world,” writes Carlyle, “and what the wisest men, whether poets or not, have thought about mankind and their world—this is what he clearly146 had an unquenchable thirst for, a thirst that lasted him until the very end of his days.”

It is unquestionable that the mental discipline acquired by this elevated course, to which he consecrated so diligently his hours, prepared him for the wonderful career upon which he soon entered, and enabled him to act with efficiency which filled Europe with his renown.

It’s clear that the mental discipline gained from this advanced course, to which he dedicated so many hours, prepared him for the amazing career he soon embarked on and allowed him to perform with a level of efficiency that made him famous throughout Europe.

It appears, moreover, that Fritz devoted himself very assiduously to his military duties, earnestly studying the art of war, and making himself familiar with the achievements of the most renowned commanders. His frugal father allowed him but a very meagre income for a prince—not above four thousand five hundred dollars a year. With this sum it was scarcely possible to keep up even the appearance of such an establishment as belonged to his rank. Such glimpses as we get of his moral and social developments during this period are not favorable. He paid no respect to the claims of religion, and was prone to revile Christianity and its advocates. He was particularly annoyed if the chaplain uttered, in his sermons, any sentiments which the prince thought had a bearing against the sensual indulgences and the wild amusements of himself and his companions. On one occasion the chaplain said in his sermon, “There was Herod, who had Herodias to dance before him, and he gave her John the Baptist’s head for her pains.”

It seems that Fritz diligently committed himself to his military responsibilities, seriously studying the art of war and familiarizing himself with the accomplishments of the most famous commanders. His frugal father provided him with a very limited income for a prince—no more than four thousand five hundred dollars a year. With this amount, it was nearly impossible to maintain even the appearance of the dignified lifestyle that corresponded with his status. The glimpses we get of his moral and social growth during this time are not positive. He showed little respect for the demands of religion and often criticized Christianity and its supporters. He was especially irritated if the chaplain expressed any views in his sermons that the prince believed were against his own indulgent lifestyle and the wild entertainment of him and his friends. On one occasion, the chaplain stated in his sermon, “There was Herod, who had Herodias dance before him, and he gave her John the Baptist’s head for her pains.”

The prince assumed to make a personal application of this. Herod meant the Crown Prince; Herodias, his boon companions; and John the Baptist was the chaplain. To punish the offender, the prince, with several brother officers, went at night, smashed the windows of the chaplain, and threw in a shower of fire-crackers upon him and his wife, who was in delicate health, driving them in dismay out into the stable-yard. The stern old king was very indignant at this conduct. Grumkow affirms, we hope falsely, that the prince threw the whole charge upon his associate officers, and that they were punished for the deed, while he escaped.

The prince decided to take this personally. Herod referred to the Crown Prince; Herodias was his close companions; and John the Baptist was the chaplain. To punish the wrongdoer, the prince, along with several fellow officers, went out at night, broke the chaplain's windows, and threw a bunch of firecrackers at him and his wife, who was in poor health, sending them out into the stable yard in panic. The strict old king was very upset by this behavior. Grumkow claims, we hope falsely, that the prince passed the blame entirely onto his fellow officers, who were punished for the act while he got away unscathed.

Thus the summer of 1732 passed away. In November Wilhelmina returned from Baireuth to Berlin on a visit. She remained at home for ten months, leaving her babe, Frederica, at Baireuth. There must have been some urgent reason to have147 induced her to make this long visit, for her reception, by both father and mother, was far from cordial. Neither of them had been really in favor of the match with the young prospective Margraf of Baireuth, but had yielded to it from the force of circumstances. The journey to Berlin was long and cold. Her mother greeted her child with the words, “What do you want here? What is a mendicant like you come hither for?” The next day her father, who had been upon a journey, came home. His daughter had been absent for two years. And yet this strange father addressed her in the following cruel and sarcastic words:

Thus the summer of 1732 came to an end. In November, Wilhelmina returned from Baireuth to Berlin for a visit. She stayed at home for ten months, leaving her baby, Frederica, in Baireuth. There must have been a strong reason for her to make this long visit, as her reception from both her father and mother was far from warm. Neither of them had really supported the union with the young prospective Margrave of Baireuth, but they had gone along with it due to circumstances. The journey to Berlin was long and cold. Her mother welcomed her with the words, “What do you want here? What is a beggar like you doing here?” The next day, her father, who had been away on a trip, returned home. His daughter had been gone for two years. Yet this strange father spoke to her with cruel and sarcastic words:

“Ah! here you are. I am glad to see you.” Then, taking a light, he carefully examined her from head to foot. After a moment’s silence, he added, “How changed you are! I am sorry for you, on my word. You have not bread to eat, and but for me you might go a-begging. I am a poor man myself; not able to give you much; will do what I can. I will give you now and then twenty or thirty shillings, as my affairs permit. It will always be something to assuage your want. And you, madam,” turning to the queen, “will sometimes give her an old dress, for the poor child hasn’t a shift to her back.”

“Ah! there you are. I'm so glad to see you.” Then, taking a light, he carefully looked her over from head to toe. After a moment of silence, he added, “You’ve changed so much! I genuinely feel for you. You don’t have food to eat, and if it weren’t for me, you might be begging. I’m not wealthy myself; I can’t give you much, but I’ll do what I can. I can give you twenty or thirty shillings now and then, as my circumstances allow. It’ll be something to help with your needs. And you, ma’am,” he said, turning to the queen, “can sometimes give her an old dress, because the poor girl doesn’t even have a shift to wear.”

This merciless banter from her parents cut the unhappy princess to the heart. With the utmost difficulty she refrained from bursting into convulsive crying. Her husband seems to have been a kind man, inspired with true and tender affection for his wife. But much of the time he was necessarily absent on regimental duty. The old Marquis of Baireuth, her husband’s father, was penurious, irascible, and an inebriate. Wilhelmina often suffered for the necessaries of life. There seemed to be no refuge for her. The home of her step-parents was unendurable, and the home of her childhood was still more so. Few and far between must have been the joys which visited her crushed heart.

This harsh teasing from her parents hit the unhappy princess deeply. With great effort, she held back her tears. Her husband appeared to be a kind man, genuinely caring for his wife. But he was often away on military duty. The old Marquis of Baireuth, her husband's father, was stingy, irritable, and a drunkard. Wilhelmina frequently struggled for the basics of life. There seemed to be nowhere for her to turn. The home of her step-parents was unbearable, and her childhood home was even worse. Joys must have been rare for her broken heart.

A few days after her arrival at Berlin, Fritz, on short leave of absence, ran over from Ruppin, and had a brief interview with his sister, whom he had not seen since her marriage. The royal family supped together, with the exception of the king, who was absent. At the table the conversation turned upon the future princess royal, Elizabeth. The queen said, addressing Wilhelmina, and fixing her eyes on Fritz,

A few days after she arrived in Berlin, Fritz, who was on short leave, came over from Ruppin and had a quick chat with his sister, whom he hadn't seen since her wedding. The royal family had dinner together, except for the king, who was missing. During the meal, the conversation shifted to the future princess royal, Elizabeth. The queen said, looking at Wilhelmina and focusing on Fritz,

148 “Your brother is in despair at the idea of marrying her. And he is not wrong. She is an actual fool. She can only answer whatever is said to her by yes or no, accompanied by a silly laugh, which is painful to hear.”

148 “Your brother is really upset about the idea of marrying her. And he has a point. She’s genuinely clueless. All she can say in response to anything is yes or no, followed by a silly laugh, which is hard to listen to.”

Charlotte added, in terms still more bitter and unpardonable, “Your majesty is not yet aware of all her merit. I was one morning at her toilet. I remarked that she is deformed. Her gown is stuffed on one side, and she has one hip higher than the other.” The cruel girl even went so far as to accuse the princess of suffering from loathsome ulcers. This discourse was uttered in a loud voice, in presence of the domestics. Fritz was evidently greatly annoyed, and blushed deeply, but said nothing. Immediately after supper he retired. Wilhelmina soon followed him, and they met again privately in Wilhelmina’s room. The princess asked her brother how he was now getting along with his father. He replied,

Charlotte added, in even more bitter and unforgiving terms, “Your majesty doesn’t fully understand all her flaws. One morning while she was getting ready, I noticed that she is deformed. Her dress is stuffed on one side, and one of her hips is higher than the other.” The cruel girl even went so far as to claim that the princess had horrible ulcers. She said this loudly in front of the servants. Fritz looked extremely annoyed and blushed deeply, but he didn't say anything. Right after dinner, he left the room. Wilhelmina soon followed him, and they met privately in Wilhelmina’s room. The princess asked her brother how things were going with their father. He replied,

“My situation changes every moment. Sometimes I am in favor, sometimes in disgrace. My chief happiness consists in my being absent from him. I lead a quiet and tranquil life with my regiment at Ruppin. Study and music are my principal occupations. I have built me a house there, and laid out a garden where I can read and walk about.”

"My situation changes every moment. Sometimes I'm in a good place, sometimes I'm not. My main happiness comes from being away from him. I lead a calm and peaceful life with my regiment in Ruppin. Studying and music are my main activities. I've built a house there and created a garden where I can read and stroll around."

“Then,” writes Wilhelmina, “as to his bride, I begged him to tell me candidly if the portrait the queen and my sister had been making of her were the true one.”

“Then,” writes Wilhelmina, “regarding his bride, I asked him to honestly tell me if the picture the queen and my sister had painted of her was the real one.”

“We are alone,” Fritz replied, “and I will conceal nothing from you. The queen, by her miserable intrigues, has been the source of our misfortunes. Scarcely were you gone when she began again with England. She wished to substitute our sister Charlotte for you, and to contrive her marriage with the Prince of Wales.

“We're alone,” Fritz replied, “and I won't hide anything from you. The queen, with her pathetic schemes, has caused all our problems. Hardly had you left when she started up again with England. She wanted to replace you with our sister Charlotte and arrange her marriage to the Prince of Wales.

“You may easily imagine that she used every endeavor for the success of her plan, and also to marry me to the English Princess Amelia. The king was informed of this design from its commencement. He was much nettled at these fresh intrigues, which have caused many quarrels between the queen and him. Seckendorf finally took part in the affair, and counseled the king to make an end of all these plans by concluding my marriage with the Princess of Bevern.

"You can easily imagine that she did everything possible to make her plan a success and to get me married to the English Princess Amelia. The king was aware of this scheme from the very beginning. He was quite annoyed by these new intrigues, which led to many arguments between the queen and him. Seckendorf eventually got involved in the situation and advised the king to put an end to all these plans by arranging my marriage with the Princess of Bevern."

149 “The queen can not console herself for this reverse. She vents her despair in the abuse of that poor princess. She wanted me to refuse the marriage decidedly, and told me that she should not mind my quarreling again with the king provided I would only show firmness, in which case she would be well able to support me. I would not follow her advice, and declared to her plainly that I did not choose to incur the displeasure of my father, which had already caused me so much suffering.

149 "The queen can't seem to get over this setback. She takes out her frustration on that poor princess. She wanted me to firmly refuse the marriage and said she wouldn't mind if I fought with the king again, as long as I stood my ground; she could handle the fallout. I chose not to take her advice and made it clear to her that I didn’t want to anger my father, which had already brought me so much pain."

“With regard to the princess herself, I do not dislike her as much as I pretend. I affect not to be able to bear her, in order to make the more merit of my obedience to the king. She is pretty—a complexion of lily and rose. Her features are delicate, and her whole face is that of a beautiful person. She has no breeding, and dresses ill. But I flatter myself that when she comes here you will have the goodness to assist in forming her. I recommend her to you, my dear sister; and I hope you will take her under your protection.”

"About the princess, I don't dislike her as much as I let on. I act like I can't stand her to make my obedience to the king seem more impressive. She's pretty—a mix of fair and rosy skin. Her features are delicate, and her whole face is that of a lovely person. She doesn't have much polish and doesn't dress well. But I’m hopeful that when she arrives, you’ll help shape her up. I’m counting on you, my dear sister, and I hope you’ll take her under your wing."

On Monday, the 8th of June, 1733, the Crown Prince left Ruppin, and, joining his father and mother, set out, with a suitable retinue, for the ducal palace of Salzdahlum, in Brunswick, where the marriage ceremony was to be solemnized. Fritz was twenty-one years of age. Elizabeth was not quite eighteen. The wedding took place at noon of Friday, the 12th, in the beautiful chapel of the palace, with the usual display of splendor and rejoicing. The mansion, situated a few miles from Wolfenbüttel, was renowned for its gardens and picture-galleries, and was considered one of the finest in Europe.

On Monday, June 8, 1733, the Crown Prince left Ruppin and, joined by his parents, set out with a suitable entourage for the ducal palace of Salzdahlum in Brunswick, where the wedding ceremony was to take place. Fritz was twenty-one years old, and Elizabeth was not quite eighteen. The wedding occurred at noon on Friday, the 12th, in the beautiful chapel of the palace, featuring the usual display of grandeur and celebration. The mansion, located a few miles from Wolfenbüttel, was famous for its gardens and art galleries and was considered one of the finest in Europe.

The ceremony was performed by the Reverend Johann Lorenz Mosheim, favorably known throughout Christendom for his treatise upon Ecclesiastical History. Immediately after the nuptial benediction had been pronounced, Fritz wrote as follows to Wilhelmina:

The ceremony was conducted by the Reverend Johann Lorenz Mosheim, well-known throughout the Christian world for his work on Ecclesiastical History. As soon as the wedding blessing was given, Fritz wrote the following to Wilhelmina:

“Salzdahlum, Noon, June 12, 1733.

“Salzdahlum, Noon, June 12, 1733.

My dear Sister,—A minute since the whole ceremony was finished. God be praised, it is over. I hope you will take it as a mark of my friendship that I give you the first news of it. I hope that I shall have the honor to see you again soon, and to assure you, my dear sister, that I am wholly yours. I write in great haste, and add nothing that is merely formal. Adieu.

My dear Sister,—The whole ceremony just finished a moment ago. Thank God it’s over. I hope you see this as a sign of my friendship that I’m telling you the news first. I can’t wait to see you again soon and to reassure you, my dear sister, that I’m completely yours. I’m writing this quickly and won’t add anything just for the sake of politeness. Goodbye.

Frederick.

Frederick.

150 The queen behaved very unamiably, “plunged in black melancholy,” and treating her new daughter-in-law with great contempt. There have been many sad weddings, but this was surely one of the saddest. Frederick had often declared that he never would receive the princess as his wife. In the evening, just after the newly-married couple had retired to their room, through the arrangement of the prince, a false alarm of fire was raised by some of his friends. This furnished him with the opportunity to rush from the apartment. He did not return. Ever after he saw the princess but unfrequently, treating her with cold politeness when they met, though on public occasions giving her, with all external forms of civility, the position of honor to which, as his wedded wife, she was entitled.

150 The queen was very unfriendly, “plunged in black melancholy,” and treated her new daughter-in-law with a lot of disdain. There have been many unhappy weddings, but this was definitely one of the saddest. Frederick had often said that he would never accept the princess as his wife. In the evening, just after the newly married couple had gone to their room, the prince arranged for a fake fire alarm to be triggered by some of his friends. This gave him the chance to dash out of the room. He didn't come back. From then on, he saw the princess only rarely, treating her with cold politeness when they met, although during public events he did give her, with all the outward signs of respect, the place of honor that she deserved as his wife.

It was apparently easy for the Crown Prince to relinquish Amelia. But the English princess, being very unhappy at home, had fixed her affections upon Frederick with the most romantic tenderness. In beauty of person, in chivalric reputation, in exalted rank, he was every thing an imaginative maiden could have desired. She regarded him probably as, in heart, true to her. He had often sent his protestations to the English court that he would never marry any one but Amelia. Though the marriage ceremony had been performed with Elizabeth, he recognized only its legal tie. Poor Amelia was heart-crushed. Earth had no longer any joys for her. She never married, but wore the miniature of the prince upon her breast for the rest of her days. We have no record of the weary years during which grief was consuming her life. Her eyelids became permanently swollen with weeping. And when, at the age of sixty, she died, the miniature of the Crown Prince was still found resting upon her true and faithful heart. Amelia and Elizabeth—how sad their fate! Through no fault of their own, earth was to them both truly a vale of tears. The only relief from the contemplation of the terrible tragedies of earth is found in the hope that the sufferers may find compensation in a heavenly home.

It was seemingly easy for the Crown Prince to let go of Amelia. However, the English princess, who was very unhappy at home, had developed deep feelings for Frederick with the most romantic tenderness. In terms of looks, chivalrous reputation, and high status, he was everything an imaginative young woman could wish for. She likely believed he was true to her at heart. He often sent messages to the English court declaring that he would never marry anyone but Amelia. Although the marriage ceremony with Elizabeth had been conducted, he only acknowledged its legal aspect. Poor Amelia was heartbroken. Life held no more joy for her. She never married and wore the prince's miniature around her neck for the rest of her days. We have no record of the long years when grief consumed her life. Her eyelids became permanently puffy from crying. And when she died at sixty, the miniature of the Crown Prince was still found resting on her true and faithful heart. Amelia and Elizabeth—how sad their fate! Through no fault of their own, the world was truly a place of sorrow for both of them. The only relief from the painful realities of life comes from the hope that the suffering may find solace in a heavenly home.

On Tuesday, the 16th, the King and Queen of Prussia left Salzdahlum to return to Potsdam. At the close of the week the Crown Prince and his bride, escorted by a brilliant retinue of Brunswick notabilities, set out on their return. In most of the intervening towns they were received with great pomp. On151 the 27th, the last day of the next week, the bridal pair had a grand entrance into Berlin. The troops were all out upon parade. The clang of bells, the roar of cannon, and peals of martial music filled the air. All the inhabitants of Berlin and the surrounding region were in the streets, which were spanned by triumphal arches, and garlanded with flowers. Gladly would the princess have exchanged all this for one loving word from her husband. But that word was not uttered. Two days before the grand reception at Berlin the princess arrived at Potsdam. Here Wilhelmina, for the first time, met her cruelly-wronged and heart-crushed sister-in-law. In the following terms she describes the interview:

On Tuesday, the 16th, the King and Queen of Prussia left Salzdahlum to head back to Potsdam. By the end of the week, the Crown Prince and his bride, accompanied by a dazzling group of Brunswick dignitaries, set off on their journey home. In most of the towns along the way, they were welcomed with great fanfare. On the 27th, the last day of the following week, the newlyweds made a grand entrance into Berlin. The troops were all out on parade. The sound of bells, cannon fire, and the blast of military music filled the air. Everyone in Berlin and the surrounding areas filled the streets, which were decorated with triumphal arches and flowers. The princess would have gladly traded all this for a single loving word from her husband. But that word was never spoken. Two days before the grand reception in Berlin, the princess arrived in Potsdam. Here, Wilhelmina met her heartbroken sister-in-law for the first time. In the following terms, she describes the meeting:

“The king led the princess into the queen’s apartment. Then seeing, after she had saluted us all, that she was much heated and her hair deranged, he bade my brother take her to her own room. I followed them thither. My brother said to her, introducing me,

“The king took the princess into the queen’s room. After she greeted us all, he noticed that she seemed quite flustered and her hair was messy, so he asked my brother to take her to her own room. I followed them there. My brother introduced me to her,

“‘This is a sister I adore, and to whom I am obliged beyond measure. She has the goodness to promise me that she will take care of you and help you with her good counsel. I wish you to respect her beyond even the king and queen, and not to take the least step without her advice. Do you understand?’

“‘This is a sister I really admire, and I owe her a lot. She kindly promised me that she will look after you and guide you with her good advice. I want you to respect her even more than the king and queen, and not to make any moves without her input. Do you get it?’”

“I embraced the Princess Royal,” Wilhelmina continues, “and gave her every assurance of my attachment. But she remained like a statue, not answering a word. Her people not being come, I arranged her hair and readjusted her dress a little, without the least sign of thanks or any answer to all my caressings. My brother got impatient at last, and said aloud,

“I hugged the Princess Royal,” Wilhelmina continues, “and assured her of my deep affection. But she just stood there like a statue, not saying a word. Since her people hadn't arrived yet, I fixed her hair and straightened her dress a bit, with no sign of gratitude or any response to all my attention. My brother eventually got frustrated and said aloud,

“‘Devil’s in the blockhead! Thank my sister, then?’

“‘The devil’s in the fool! Should I thank my sister, then?’”

“She made me a courtesy on the model of that of Agnes in the Ecole des Femmes. I took her back to the queen’s apartment, little edified by such a display of talent.”

“She showed me a courtesy like Agnes in the Ecole des Femmes. I brought her back to the queen’s apartment, not very impressed by such a display of talent.”

It is probable that the princess, in the strangeness of her position, very young and inexperienced, and insulted by cruel neglect, in the freshness of her great grief dared not attempt to utter a syllable, lest her voice should break in uncontrollable sobbings. The Crown Prince returned to Ruppin, leaving the princess at Berlin. Charles, the heir-apparent to the ducal crown of Brunswick, and brother of the Princess Elizabeth, about a152 week after the arrival of the princess in Berlin, was married to Fritz’s sister Charlotte—that same wicked Charlotte who had flirted with Wilhelmina’s intended, and who had so shamelessly slandered the betrothed of her brother. Several fêtes followed these marriages, with the usual concomitants of enjoyment and disappointment. Wilhelmina thus describes one of them:

It’s likely that the princess, feeling strange in her situation, very young and inexperienced, and hurt by cruel neglect, couldn’t bring herself to speak a word. She feared her voice would break into uncontrollable sobs because of her overwhelming grief. The Crown Prince went back to Ruppin, leaving the princess in Berlin. About a week after the princess arrived in Berlin, Charles, the heir to the ducal crown of Brunswick and brother of Princess Elizabeth, married Fritz’s sister Charlotte—who had previously flirted with Wilhelmina’s fiancé and had shamelessly gossiped about her brother’s betrothed. Several celebrations followed these marriages, bringing with them both joy and disappointment. Wilhelmina describes one of these events:

“The next day there was a great promenade. We were all in phaetons, dressed out in our best. All the nobility followed in carriages, of which there were eighty-five. The king, in a Berline, led the procession. He had beforehand ordered the round we were to take, and very soon fell asleep. There came on a tremendous storm of wind and rain, in spite of which we continued our procession at a foot’s pace. It may easily be imagined what state we were in. We were as wet as if we had been in the river. Our hair hung about our ears, and our gowns and head-dresses were destroyed. We got out at last, after three hours’ rain, at Monbijou, where there was to be a great illumination and ball. I never saw any thing so comical as all these ladies, looking like so many Xantippes, with their dresses sticking to their persons. We could not even dry ourselves, and were obliged to remain all the evening in our wet clothes.”

The next day there was a big parade. We were all in fancy carriages, dressed in our best outfits. All the nobility followed in 85 carriages. The king, in a luxury coach, led the procession. He had planned our route ahead of time and soon fell asleep. A huge storm of wind and rain hit, but we kept going at a slow pace. You can imagine what a mess we were in. We were soaked as if we had jumped into a river. Our hair was plastered to our ears, and our dresses and headpieces were ruined. After three hours of rain, we finally arrived at Monbijou, where there was supposed to be a big light display and ball. I’d never seen anything so funny as all these ladies looking like a bunch of Xantippes, with their dresses stuck to them. We couldn’t even dry off and had to spend the whole evening in our wet clothes.


CHAPTER VIII.
Character Development.

The Castle at Reinsberg.—Slender Purses of Fritz and Wilhelmina.—Liberality of Fritz.—The Ball at Monbijou.—Adventures of Fritz and Wilhelmina.—Letters.—The Interview.—Anecdote of the King.—Wilhelmina’s Account of her Brother.—Mental and Physical Maladies of the King.—Frederick’s cruel Neglect of his Wife.—Daily Habits of the young Prince.—The shameful Carousal.

The Castle at Reinsberg.—Fritz and Wilhelmina's Tight Finances.—Fritz's Generosity.—The Ball at Monbijou.—Fritz and Wilhelmina's Adventures.—Letters.—The Meeting.—A Story about the King.—Wilhelmina's Perspective on her Brother.—The King's Mental and Physical Problems.—Frederick's Cruel Neglect of His Wife.—Daily Life of the Young Prince.—The Embarrassing Party.

About six miles from Ruppin there was the village of Reinsberg, containing about one thousand inhabitants, clustered around an ancient dilapidated castle. Frederick was with his regiment in Ruppin. The Princess Royal, his wife, resided in Berlin. There was an ostensible reason for this separation in the fact that there was no suitable mansion for the royal couple at Ruppin. The castle, with its extensive grounds, belonged to a French refugee. The king purchased it, and assigned it to his son. As the whole estate was in a condition of extreme dilapidation, Frederick immediately commenced improvements and repairs.153 The building, the gardens, the forests, and the surrounding lands rapidly assumed a new aspect, until Reinsberg became one of the most attractive spots in Europe.

About six miles from Ruppin, there was the village of Reinsberg, home to around one thousand residents, gathered around an old, crumbling castle. Frederick was stationed with his regiment in Ruppin, while his wife, the Princess Royal, lived in Berlin. The official reason for their separation was that there wasn’t a suitable house for the royal couple in Ruppin. The castle, along with its large grounds, belonged to a French refugee. The king bought it and gave it to his son. Since the entire estate was in severe disrepair, Frederick immediately started making improvements and repairs. 153 The building, gardens, forests, and surrounding lands quickly took on a new look, turning Reinsberg into one of the most appealing places in Europe.

The situation of the castle was admirable. A beautiful sheet of water bathed its walls on one side, while a dense forest of oaks and beeches rose like an amphitheatre upon the other. The whole edifice assumed the form of a square, with two towers connected by a double colonnade, richly ornamented with vases and statuary. Over the majestic portal was inscribed the motto, Frederico, tranquillitatem colenti.23 The interior of the palace, in the magnitude and arrangement of the apartments, their decoration and furniture, was still more imposing than the exterior. The grand saloon was a superb hall, the walls lined with mirrors and costly marbles, and the ceiling painted by the most accomplished artists of the day. The garden, with its avenues, and bowers, and labyrinth of bloom, extended the whole length of the lake, upon whose waters two beautiful barges floated, ever ready, under the impulse of sails or oars, to convey parties on excursions of pleasure.

The castle's location was impressive. A beautiful lake surrounded its walls on one side, while a thick forest of oaks and beeches rose like an amphitheater on the other. The entire structure was square-shaped, featuring two towers linked by a double colonnade, adorned with vases and statues. Above the grand entrance was the motto, Frederico, tranquillitatem colenti.23 The interior of the palace, in the size and layout of the rooms, their decoration and furnishings, was even more striking than the exterior. The grand salon was an amazing hall, with walls lined with mirrors and expensive marble, and the ceiling painted by the most skilled artists of the time. The garden, with its pathways, gazebos, and maze of flowers, stretched along the length of the lake, where two elegant boats floated on the water, always ready, powered by sails or oars, to take groups out for leisure trips.

This immense building presented a front of nearly a thousand feet; for, being in a quadrangular form, it fronted four ways. It was all faced with hammered stone. In one of the towers this bachelor husband constructed his library. It was a magnificent apartment, provided with every convenience, and decorated with the most tasteful adornments which the arts could furnish. Its windows commanded an enchanting prospect of the lake, with its tufted islands and the densely wooded heights beyond.

This huge building had a facade of nearly a thousand feet, as it was shaped like a square and faced in four directions. It was all built with hammered stone. In one of the towers, this single husband created his library. It was a stunning room, equipped with all the amenities and decorated with the most stylish designs that art could offer. Its windows offered a beautiful view of the lake, with its lush islands and the densely wooded hills beyond.

The apartments prepared for the Princess Royal were also very magnificent. Her parlor was twenty feet high. It had six windows, three opening in the main front toward the town, and the other three opening toward the interior court. The spaces between the windows were covered with immense mirrors, so arranged as to display the ceiling, beautifully painted by one of the finest artists of the day. The artist had spread his colors with such delicacy and skill, so exquisitely blending light and shade, that the illusion was almost perfect. The spectator felt that the real sky, with its fleecy clouds and infinite depth of blue, overarched him.

The apartments set up for the Princess Royal were incredibly grand. Her parlor was twenty feet high. It had six windows, three facing the main front towards the town and the other three looking into the inner courtyard. The spaces between the windows were covered with huge mirrors, arranged to reflect the ceiling, which was beautifully painted by one of the best artists of the time. The artist applied his colors with such finesse and skill, creating an exquisite blend of light and shadow, that the illusion was nearly perfect. The viewer felt as if the real sky, with its fluffy clouds and endless blue depth, was arching above them.

154 Three years were occupied in enlarging and decorating this palace. In the mean time the Princess Elizabeth resided in Berlin, or in a small country house provided for her at Schönhausen. The Crown Prince occasionally visited her, always treating her with the marked respect due a lady occupying her high position.

154 It took three years to expand and decorate this palace. In the meantime, Princess Elizabeth lived in Berlin or at a small country house set up for her in Schönhausen. The Crown Prince visited her from time to time, always showing her the respect that was fitting for someone of her high status.

The king was by no means pleased with the costly luxuries with which his son was surrounding himself. But he had, in a very considerable degree, lost his control over the Crown Prince. Frederick was now twenty-one years of age. He had married the niece of the Emperor of Germany. The emperor had probably once saved his life, and was disposed particularly to befriend him, that he might secure his alliance when he should become King of Prussia. Frederick was now the rising sun, and his father the setting luminary. All the courts in Europe were interested in winning the regards of the Crown Prince.

The king was definitely not happy with the expensive luxuries his son surrounded himself with. However, he had largely lost control over the Crown Prince. Frederick was now twenty-one years old and had married the niece of the Emperor of Germany. The emperor had likely saved his life at some point and was particularly inclined to support him to secure an alliance when Frederick became King of Prussia. Frederick was now the rising star, while his father was the fading light. All the courts in Europe were eager to win the favor of the Crown Prince.

The king, as we have mentioned, allotted to his son a very moderate income, barely enough for the necessary expenses of his establishment. But the prince borrowed money in large sums from the Empress of Germany, from Russia, from England. It was well known that, should his life be preserved, he would soon have ample means to repay the loan. Frederick William probably found it expedient to close his eyes against these transactions. But he did not attempt to conceal the chagrin with which he regarded the literary and voluptuous tastes of his son.

The king, as we mentioned, gave his son a fairly modest income, barely enough to cover the necessary expenses of his household. However, the prince borrowed significant amounts of money from the Empress of Germany, from Russia, and from England. It was widely known that if he survived, he would soon have more than enough money to pay back the loans. Frederick William likely found it convenient to ignore these dealings. However, he didn’t hide the disappointment he felt about his son’s love for literature and pleasure.

“When I am dead,” he said, petulantly, “you will see Berlin full of madmen and freethinkers, and the sort of people who walk about the streets.”

"When I'm dead," he said sulkily, "you'll see Berlin packed with crazy people and free thinkers, along with the kind of folks who just roam around the streets."

Wilhelmina’s purse was generally empty, and she was often in great want of money. Her penurious father had married her below her rank that he might escape settling upon her a dowry. Though her husband was heir to the marquisate of Baireuth, his father was still living. That father was a drunkard and a miser. It seems that the son received but little more than his wages as colonel in the army. Wilhelmina records that one day her brother Fritz came to her and said,

Wilhelmina’s purse was usually empty, and she often struggled with money. Her stingy father had married her beneath her social status to avoid giving her a dowry. Even though her husband was next in line for the marquisate of Baireuth, his father was still alive. That father was a drunk and a miser. It seems the son received barely anything more than his salary as a colonel in the army. Wilhelmina writes that one day her brother Fritz came to her and said,

“Seckendorf” (the embassador of the emperor) “sometimes sends me money, of which I have great need. I have already taken measures that he should procure some for you. My galleons arrived yesterday, and I will divide their contents with you.”

“Seckendorf” (the ambassador of the emperor) “sometimes sends me money, which I really need. I’ve already arranged for him to get some for you. My galleons arrived yesterday, and I’ll share their contents with you.”

155 He then gave her a thousand crowns. Wilhelmina manifested a little natural reluctance in receiving the money. But he shrugged his shoulders and said,

155 He then handed her a thousand crowns. Wilhelmina showed a bit of hesitation in taking the money. But he shrugged his shoulders and said,

“Take them freely. The empress sends me as much money as I wish. I assure you that by this means I get rid of the demon of poverty as soon as I find him approaching me.”

“Take them without hesitation. The empress gives me as much money as I want. I promise you that this way, I can chase away the demon of poverty the moment I sense him coming.”

“The empress, then,” added Wilhelmina, “is a better exorcist than other priests.”

“The empress, then,” added Wilhelmina, “is a better exorcist than other priests.”

“Yes,” the Crown Prince replied; “and I promise you that she will drive away your demon as well as mine.”

“Yes,” the Crown Prince replied, “and I promise you that she will chase away your demon just like she will mine.”

Poland, ever in turmoil, was at this time choosing a king. The emperor advocated the claims of August of Saxony. France urged Stanislaus, a Polish noble, whose daughter had married the French dauphin. War ensued between France and Germany. Frederick William became the ally of the emperor. An army of ten thousand men, admirably equipped and organized, was upon the march for the Rhine, to act with the emperor against France. The Crown Prince was very eager to join the expedition, and obtained permission to do so.

Poland, constantly in turmoil, was choosing a king at this time. The emperor supported the claims of Augustus of Saxony. France backed Stanislaus, a Polish noble whose daughter had married the French dauphin. This led to war between France and Germany. Frederick William allied with the emperor. An army of ten thousand well-equipped and organized soldiers was on the way to the Rhine to collaborate with the emperor against France. The Crown Prince was very eager to join the expedition and got permission to do so.

On the evening of the 29th of June, 1734, there was a grand ball at the little palace of Monbijou. At three o’clock in the morning the Crown Prince changed his ball-dress for a military suit, and with his staff set out at full speed for the seat of war. They traveled in carriages, by post, night and day, hastening to take part in the siege of Philipsburg. A little after midnight on the morning of the 2d of July, they reached Hof, having traveled two hundred miles, and having two hundred miles still farther to go. At Hof the prince was within thirty-five miles of Baireuth, to which place Wilhelmina had some time before returned. He was very anxious to see her. But his father had strictly prohibited his going through Baireuth, under the assumption that it would occasion loss of time. Frederick made arrangements with Wilhelmina, who was in a very delicate state of health, to meet him at Berneck, about twelve miles from Baireuth. But, unfortunately, one of the carriages which conveyed the Crown Prince and his companions lost a wheel, which detained them several hours. The commands of the king were explicit that the Crown Prince should not be separated from the rest of the company.

On the evening of June 29, 1734, there was a fancy ball at the little palace of Monbijou. At three in the morning, the Crown Prince switched out his formal outfit for a military uniform and, along with his staff, hurried off to the frontline. They traveled by carriage, continuously, day and night, pushing to join the siege of Philipsburg. Just after midnight on July 2, they arrived in Hof after traveling two hundred miles, with another two hundred miles still ahead of them. In Hof, the prince was just thirty-five miles from Baireuth, where Wilhelmina had returned some time earlier. He was eager to see her. However, his father had strictly forbidden him from going through Baireuth, believing it would waste time. Frederick arranged to meet Wilhelmina, who was in a very fragile state of health, in Berneck, about twelve miles from Baireuth. Unfortunately, one of the carriages transporting the Crown Prince and his companions lost a wheel, which delayed them for several hours. The king's orders were clear that the Crown Prince should not be separated from the rest of the party.

156 Thus Wilhelmina, upon reaching Berneck, according to appointment, did not find her brother there, and could hear nothing from him. The prince, upon his arrival at Hof, wrote as follows to his sister

156 So, when Wilhelmina arrived in Berneck as scheduled, she found that her brother wasn’t there, and she couldn’t get any news about him. The prince, upon getting to Hof, wrote this to his sister:

“Hof, July 2, 1734, not long after 4 A.M.

“Hof, July 2, 1734, not long after 4 A.M.

My dear Sister,—Here I am, within six leagues of a sister I love, and I have to decide that it will be impossible to see her after all. I have never so lamented the misfortune of not depending on myself as at this moment. The king being very sour sweet on my score, I dare not risk the least thing. A week from next Monday, when he arrives himself, I should be queerly treated in the camp if I were found to have disobeyed orders.

My dear Sister,—Here I am, just six leagues away from a sister I love, and I have to accept that I won’t be able to see her after all. I’ve never regretted being so dependent on others as I do right now. The king is quite upset with me, so I can’t take any risks. A week from next Monday, when he arrives himself, I would be treated very poorly in the camp if it turns out I disobeyed orders.

“The queen commands me to give you a thousand regards from her. She appeared much affected at your illness. But I can not warrant you how sincere it was, for she is totally changed, and I no longer comprehend her. She has done me all the hurt with the king she could. As to Sophie, she is no longer the same. She approves all the king says or does, and is charmed with her big clown of a bridegroom.

“The queen asked me to send you a thousand regards from her. She seemed really upset about your illness. But I can’t guarantee how genuine that was, because she’s completely different now, and I don’t understand her anymore. She’s done everything she could to undermine me with the king. As for Sophie, she’s not the same anymore. She backs everything the king says or does and is thrilled with her big goofy groom.”

“The king is more difficult than ever. He is content with nothing. He has no gratitude for whatever favors one can do him. As to his health, it is one day better, another worse; but the legs they are always swelled. Judge what my joy must be to get out of that turpitude; for the king will only stay a fortnight at most in camp.

“The king is tougher than ever. He’s satisfied with nothing. He shows no gratitude for any favors done for him. Regarding his health, some days are better, others worse; but his legs are always swollen. Imagine my relief at getting away from that situation, since the king will only stay at camp for at most a fortnight.”

“Adieu! my adorable sister. I am so tired I can not stir, having left on Tuesday night, or rather Wednesday morning, at three o’clock, from a ball at Monbijou, and arrived here this Friday morning at four. I recommend myself to your gracious remembrance, and am, for my own part, till death, dearest sister, your

“Goodbye! my lovely sister. I’m so exhausted I can’t move, having left on Tuesday night, or actually Wednesday morning, at three o’clock, from a party at Monbijou, and arrived here this Friday morning at four. I hope you remember me fondly, and I am, for my own part, until the end, your dearest sister.

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

In the mean time, Wilhelmina, disappointed in not finding her brother, wrote to him the following account of her adventures:

In the meantime, Wilhelmina, let down by not finding her brother, wrote him this account of her adventures:

“I got to Berneck at ten. The heat was excessive. I found myself quite worn out with the little journey I had taken. I alighted at the house which had been got ready for my brother. We waited for him, and in vain waited till three in the afternoon. At three we lost patience; had dinner served without157 him. While we were at table there came on a frightful thunder-storm. I have witnessed nothing so terrible. The thunder roared and reverberated among the rocky cliffs which begirdle Berneck, and it seemed as if the world were going to perish. A deluge of rain succeeded the thunder.

“I arrived in Berneck at ten. The heat was unbearable. I was already pretty exhausted from the short trip. I got off at the house that was prepared for my brother. We waited for him, and we waited in vain until three in the afternoon. By three, we lost our patience and had dinner served without him. While we were at the table, a terrifying thunderstorm hit. I have never seen anything so awful. The thunder roared and echoed among the rocky cliffs surrounding Berneck, and it felt like the world was about to end. A downpour of rain followed the thunder.”

“It was four o’clock, and I could not understand what had become of my brother. I had sent out several persons on horseback to get tidings of him, and none of them came back. At length, in spite of all my prayers, the hereditary prince24 himself would go in search. I was in cruel agitations. These cataracts of rain are very dangerous in the mountain countries. The roads get suddenly overflowed, and accidents often happen. I thought for certain one had happened to my brother, or to the hereditary prince.

“It was four o’clock, and I couldn’t understand what had happened to my brother. I had sent several people on horseback to find out about him, and none of them came back. Finally, despite all my pleas, the hereditary prince24 himself decided to go look for him. I was in a lot of distress. These heavy rains are really dangerous in the mountains. The roads can suddenly get flooded, and accidents happen often. I was sure something had happened to either my brother or the hereditary prince.”

“At last, about nine, somebody brought word that my brother had changed his route and gone to Culmbach, there to stay overnight. I was for setting out thither. Culmbach is twenty miles from Berneck. But the roads are frightful, and full of precipices. Every body rose in opposition. And whether I would or not they put me into the carriage for Himmelkron, which is only about ten miles off. We had like to have got drowned on the road, the waters were so swollen. The horses could not cross but by swimming.

“At last, around nine, someone delivered the news that my brother had changed his route and gone to Culmbach, where he would stay overnight. I wanted to head there. Culmbach is twenty miles from Berneck. But the roads were terrible and full of cliffs. Everyone opposed me. Whether I liked it or not, they put me in the carriage for Himmelkron, which is only about ten miles away. We nearly drowned on the way because the water levels were so high. The horses could only cross by swimming.”

“I arrived at last about one in the morning. I instantly threw myself on a bed. I was like to die of weariness, and in mortal terror that something had happened to my brother or the hereditary prince. The latter relieved me on his own score. He arrived at last about four o’clock; had still no news of my brother. I was beginning to doze a little, when they came to inform me that M. von Knobelsdorf wished to speak to me from the Prince Royal. I darted out of bed and ran to him.”

“I finally arrived around one in the morning. I immediately collapsed onto a bed. I felt like I was going to die from exhaustion, and I was terrified that something had happened to my brother or the hereditary prince. The latter calmed my nerves. He showed up around four o’clock; still no news about my brother. I was just starting to doze off when I was informed that M. von Knobelsdorf wanted to speak with me on behalf of the Prince Royal. I jumped out of bed and rushed to him.”

Knobelsdorf was the bearer of a second letter from the Crown Prince. The first had not reached her. Frederick, having taken an hour or two of sleep at Hof, rose much refreshed, and, continuing his journey about fifteen miles farther, wrote this second letter as follows to his sister:

Knobelsdorf brought a second letter from the Crown Prince. The first one hadn't gotten to her. Frederick, after getting a couple of hours of sleep at Hof, felt much more refreshed and, continuing his journey about fifteen miles further, wrote this second letter to his sister:

“Munchberg, July 2, 1734.

“Munchberg, July 2, 1734.

My dearest Sister,—I am in despair that I can not satisfy158 my impatience and my duty, to throw myself at your feet this day. But, alas! dear sister, it does not depend upon me. We poor princes are obliged to wait here till our generals come up. We dare not go along without them. They broke a wheel in Gera. Hearing nothing of them since, we are absolutely forced to wait here. Judge in what a mood I am, and what sorrow must be mine. Express order not to go by Baireuth or Anspach. Forbear, dear sister, to torment me on things not depending on myself at all.

My dearest Sister,—I'm heartbroken that I can't ease my impatience and responsibilities by throwing myself at your feet today. But, unfortunately, dear sister, this is beyond my control. We poor princes have to wait here until our generals arrive. We can't move forward without them. They broke a wheel in Gera, and since we haven't heard anything from them, we're completely stuck here. Just imagine the mood I'm in and the sorrow I feel. There's a strict order against going through Baireuth or Anspach. Please, dear sister, don’t torment me about things that are completely out of my control.

“I waver between hope and fear of paying my court to you. I hope it might still be at Berneck, if you could contrive a road into the Nürnberg highway again, avoiding Baireuth; otherwise I dare not go. The bearer, Captain Knobelsdorf, will apprise you of every particular. Let him settle something that may be possible. This is how I stand at present: instead of having to expect some favor from the king, I get nothing but chagrin. But what is more cruel upon me than all is that you are ill. God, in his grace, be pleased to help you, and restore that health which I so much wish for you.

“I'm conflicted between wanting to reach out to you and being afraid to do so. I hope it’s still possible to meet at Berneck if you can find a way to get back to the Nürnberg highway without passing through Baireuth; otherwise, I can’t take the risk. The messenger, Captain Knobelsdorf, will update you on all the details. Let him figure out something that might work. Here’s my current situation: instead of hoping for any favor from the king, all I receive is disappointment. But what hurts me the most is that you're not well. May God, in His grace, help you and restore the health that I wish for you so much.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

Arrangements were made for them to meet at eight o’clock Saturday morning, at the Lake House, situated on a small island in a beautiful artificial sheet of water a couple of miles north of Baireuth. The prince thus obeyed the letter of the order not to go to Baireuth. The following account of the interview which ensued is from the pen of Wilhelmina:

Arrangements were made for them to meet at 8:00 AM Saturday morning at the Lake House, located on a small island in a lovely artificial lake a couple of miles north of Baireuth. The prince followed the instructions by not going to Baireuth. The following account of the meeting that took place is written by Wilhelmina:

“My brother overwhelmed me with caresses, but found me in so pitiable a state that he could not restrain his tears. I was not able to stand on my limbs, and felt like to faint every moment, so weak was I. He told me that the king was very angry at the margraf for not letting his son make the campaign. I told him all the margraf’s reasons, and added surely they were good, in respect of my dear husband.

“My brother overwhelmed me with hugs, but found me in such a sad state that he couldn't hold back his tears. I couldn't stand on my own and felt like I might faint at any moment, I was so weak. He told me that the king was very angry at the margrave for not allowing his son to go on the campaign. I explained all the margrave's reasons to him and added that they were surely valid, considering my dear husband.”

“‘Well,’ said he, ‘let him quit soldiering then, and give back his regiment to the king. But quiet yourself as to the fears you may have about him if he do; for I know, by certain information, that there will be no blood spilt.’

“‘Well,’ he said, ‘if that’s the case, he should just leave the army and return his regiment to the king. But don’t worry about any fears you might have if he does; I have reliable information that there won’t be any bloodshed.’”

“The hereditary prince came in while we were talking, and earnestly entreated my brother to get him away from Baireuth. They went to a window and talked a long time together. My brother told me he would write a letter to the margraf, and give him such reasons in favor of the campaign that he doubted not it would turn the scale. He promised to obtain the king’s express leave to stop at Baireuth on his return, after which he went away. It was the last time I saw him on the old footing with me. He has much changed since then. We returned to Baireuth, where I was so ill that for three days they did not think I should get over it.”

“The hereditary prince walked in while we were talking and earnestly asked my brother to help him get away from Baireuth. They went to a window and talked for a long time. My brother told me he would write a letter to the margrave and give him strong reasons to support the campaign, assuring me that it would make a difference. He promised to get the king’s approval to stop in Baireuth on his way back, and then he left. That was the last time I saw him in our usual way. He has changed a lot since then. We went back to Baireuth, where I was so sick that for three days they thought I might not make it.”

159

159

FREDERICK AND WILHELMINA.

160 After this interview the Crown Prince hurried away on his route to Philipsburg. He reached Nürnberg that night, where he wrote the following brief but affectionate letter to his sister:

160 After this meeting, the Crown Prince quickly continued on his way to Philipsburg. He arrived in Nürnberg that night, where he wrote the following short but loving letter to his sister:

“Nürnberg, July 3, 1734.

“Nuremberg, July 3, 1734.

My very dear Sister,—It would be impossible to leave this place without signifying, dearest sister, my lively gratitude for all the marks of favor you showed me in the House on the Lake. The highest of all that it was possible to do was that of procuring me the satisfaction of paying my court to you. I beg millions of pardons for so incommoding you, dearest sister, but I could not help it, for you know my sad circumstances well enough. I entreat you write me often about your health. Adieu, my incomparable and dear sister. I am always the same to you, and will remain so till my death.

My dear Sister,—I couldn't leave this place without expressing my heartfelt thanks for all the kindness you showed me at the House on the Lake. The most meaningful thing you did for me was giving me the opportunity to show my love for you. I'm truly sorry for any trouble I caused you, dear sister, but I couldn't help it, as you know my difficult situation well enough. Please write to me often and let me know how you're doing. Goodbye, my wonderful and dear sister. I will always feel the same way about you and will continue to do so until my death.

Frederick.

Frederick.

Early on the morning of the 4th the prince left Nürnberg, and reached the camp at Weisenthal on the 7th. Here the imperial and Prussian troops were collected, who had been sent to attempt to raise the siege of Philipsburg. But the French lines investing the city were so strong that Prince Eugene, in command of the imperial army, did not venture to make an attack. The Crown Prince almost immediately rode out to reconnoitre the lines of the foe. As he was returning through a strip of forest a cannonade was opened, and the balls went crashing around him through the trees. Pride of character probably came to the aid of constitutional courage. The prince did not in the slightest degree quicken his pace. Not the least tremor could be perceived in his hand as he held the reins. He continued conversing with the surrounding generals in perfect tranquillity, as if unconscious of any danger.

Early on the morning of the 4th, the prince left Nürnberg and arrived at the camp in Weisenthal on the 7th. Here, the imperial and Prussian troops were gathered, who had been sent to try to lift the siege of Philipsburg. However, the French lines surrounding the city were so strong that Prince Eugene, in charge of the imperial army, didn’t dare to make an attack. The Crown Prince quickly went out to scout the enemy lines. As he was coming back through a stretch of forest, artillery fire erupted, and cannonballs were crashing through the trees around him. His strong character likely bolstered his composure. The prince didn’t speed up at all. There was not the slightest tremor in his hand as he held the reins. He kept talking with the nearby generals in complete calm, as if he were unaware of any danger.

A week after the arrival of the prince the Prussian king entered the camp. As it was expected that some remarkable feats of war would be exhibited in the presence of the king, under the leadership of the renowned Prince Eugene, a very large assemblage of princes and other distinguished personages was collected on the field. The king remained for a month, dwelling in a161 tent among his own troops, and sharing all their hardships. He, with his son, attended all the councils of war. Still no attempt was made to relieve Philipsburg. The third day after the king’s arrival the city surrendered to the French. The campaign continued for some time, with unavailing manœuvring on both sides of the Rhine; but the Crown Prince saw but little active service. About the middle of August the king left the camp to return home. His health was seriously impaired, and alarming symptoms indicated that he had not long to live. His journey was slow and painful. Gout tortured him. Dropsy threatened to strangle him. He did not reach home until the middle of September. The alarming state of the king’s health added very much to the importance of the Crown Prince. It was evident that ere long he must come into power. The following characteristic anecdote is related of the king during this illness:

A week after the prince arrived, the Prussian king entered the camp. Since it was expected that some impressive military displays would be shown in front of the king, led by the famous Prince Eugene, a large group of princes and other notable figures gathered in the field. The king stayed for a month, living in a161 tent with his troops and sharing in all their challenges. He and his son attended all the war councils. Still, no efforts were made to relieve Philipsburg. Three days after the king arrived, the city surrendered to the French. The campaign continued for a while, with unproductive maneuvers on both sides of the Rhine, but the Crown Prince had very little active duty. Around mid-August, the king left the camp to return home. His health had seriously declined, and concerning symptoms indicated that he didn’t have much longer to live. His journey was slow and painful. Gout tormented him, and dropsy threatened to suffocate him. He didn’t get home until mid-September. The alarming state of the king’s health significantly raised the importance of the Crown Prince. It was clear that soon he would have to take over power. The following story is told about the king during this illness:

One evening, being too unwell to read his usual devotions, he called upon his valet de chambre to read prayers. In the prayer occurred the words, “May God bless thee.” The servant, not deeming it respectful to use thee in reference to the king, took the liberty to change the phrase, and read it, “May God bless you.” The king, exasperated, hurled something at the head of the speaker, exclaiming, “It is not so; read it again.” The terrified servant, not conceiving in what he had done wrong, read again, “May God bless you.” The irascible monarch, having nothing else he could grasp, took off his night-cap and threw it into the man’s face, exclaiming, “It is not so; read it over again.” The servant, frightened almost out of his senses, read for the third time, “May God bless you.” “Thee, rogue,” shouted the king. “‘May God bless thee.’ Dost thou not know, rascal, that, in the eyes of God, I am only a miserable rascal like thyself?”

One evening, feeling too sick to read his usual prayers, he asked his valet de chambre to read them for him. In the prayer, the words “May God bless thee” were mentioned. The servant, thinking it was disrespectful to use thee when referring to the king, changed it to “May God bless you.” The king, annoyed, threw something at the servant's head and shouted, “That’s not right; read it again.” The frightened servant, not understanding what he had done wrong, read it again, saying, “May God bless you.” The irate king, with nothing else within reach, removed his nightcap and threw it in the man's face, shouting, “That’s not right; read it again.” The terrified servant, almost losing his mind, read for the third time, “May God bless you.” “Thee, you scoundrel,” yelled the king. “‘May God bless thee.’ Don’t you realize, fool, that, in the eyes of God, I am just a miserable fool like you?”

Early in October, the Crown Prince, not socially or morally improved by his campaigning, set out on his return to Berlin. He was by no means insensible to the fact that the crown of Prussia would soon rest upon his brow. On the 5th he called again upon his sister at Baireuth. She was sick and very sad. The following is Wilhelmina’s account of the interview:

Early in October, the Crown Prince, who hadn't changed for the better socially or morally from his campaigning, set off on his return to Berlin. He was well aware that the crown of Prussia would soon be on his head. On the 5th, he visited his sister in Baireuth again. She was unwell and very upset. The following is Wilhelmina’s description of their meeting:

“My brother arrived on the 5th of October. He seemed to me in ill humor. To break off conversation with me, he said that he had to write to the king and queen. I ordered him pen and162 paper. He wrote in my room, and spent more than a good hour in writing a couple of letters of a line or two each. He then had all the court, one after another, introduced to him; said nothing to any of them; looked merely with a mocking air at them; after which we went to dinner.

“My brother arrived on October 5th. He seemed to be in a bad mood. To end our conversation, he said he needed to write to the king and queen. I got him pen and paper. He wrote in my room and spent over an hour writing a couple of letters that were just a line or two each. Then, he had all the court introduced to him one by one; he said nothing to any of them and just looked at them with a mocking expression. After that, we went to dinner.”

THE KING AND HIS SERVANT.

“Here his whole conversation consisted in quizzing whatever he saw, and repeating to me, above a hundred times over, the words ‘little prince,’ ‘little court.’ I was shocked, and could not understand how he had changed so suddenly toward me. The etiquette of all courts in the empire is, that nobody who has not at least the rank of captain can sit at a prince’s table. My brother put a lieutenant there who was in his suite, saying, ‘A king’s lieutenant is as good as a margraf’s minister.’ I swallowed this incivility, and showed no sign.

“Here, his entire conversation was just teasing everything he saw and repeating to me, more than a hundred times, the phrases ‘little prince’ and ‘little court.’ I was taken aback and couldn’t understand how he had changed so suddenly toward me. The rules of all courts in the empire state that no one lower than a captain can sit at a prince’s table. My brother had a lieutenant, who was part of his entourage, sit there, saying, ‘A king’s lieutenant is just as good as a margrave’s minister.’ I accepted this rudeness without showing any reaction.”

163 “After dinner, being alone with me, he said, ‘Our sire is approaching his end. He will not live out this month. I know that I have made you great promises, but I am not in the condition to keep them. I will leave you the half of the sum which my predecessor lent you. I think that you will have every reason to be satisfied with that.’

163 “After dinner, when we were alone, he said, ‘Our ruler is nearing his end. He won't make it through this month. I know I’ve made you big promises, but I can’t fulfill them. I’ll leave you half of what my predecessor lent you. I think you’ll find that satisfactory.’”

“I answered that my regard for him had never been of an interested nature; that I would never ask any thing of him but the continuance of his friendship; and that I did not wish for one penny if it would in the least inconvenience him.

“I replied that my feelings for him had never been self-serving; that I would never ask anything from him other than his continued friendship; and that I wouldn't want a single penny if it would cause him any inconvenience.”

“‘No, no,’ said he; ‘you shall have those one hundred thousand thalers. I have destined them for you. People will be much surprised to see me act quite differently from what they had expected. They imagine I am going to lavish all my treasures, and that money will become as common as pebbles in Berlin. But they will find that I know better. I mean to increase my army, and to leave all other things on the old footing. I will have every consideration for the queen, my mother, and will satiate her with honors. But I do not mean that she shall meddle with my affairs. If she try it she will find so.’

“No, no,” he said, “you’re going to get that one hundred thousand thalers. I’ve set them aside for you. People will be really surprised to see me act completely differently than they expected. They think I’m going to spend all my wealth and that money will be as common as pebbles in Berlin. But they’ll see that I know better. I plan to strengthen my army and keep everything else the same. I’ll make sure to respect the queen, my mother, and shower her with honors. But I’m not going to let her interfere in my affairs. If she tries, she’ll find out.”

“I fell from the clouds on hearing all that, and knew not if I were sleeping or waking. He then questioned me on the affairs of this country. I gave him the detail of them. He said to me, ‘When your goose of a father-in-law dies, I advise you to break up the whole court, and reduce yourselves to the footing of a private gentleman’s establishment in order to pay your debts. In real truth, you have no need of so many people. And you must try to reduce the wages of those whom you can not help keeping. You have been accustomed to live, at Berlin, with a table of four dishes. That is all you want here. I will invite you now and then to Berlin, which will spare table and house expenses.’

“I was stunned when I heard all that and couldn't tell if I was dreaming or awake. He then asked me about the situation in this country. I explained everything to him. He said, ‘When your foolish father-in-law dies, I suggest you dismantle the entire court and scale back to being like a regular gentleman’s household to manage your debts. Honestly, you don’t need so many people. And you should try to lower the salaries of those you can’t let go. You're used to living in Berlin with just four dishes on the table. That’s all you really need here. I’ll invite you to Berlin now and then, which will help save on meals and housing expenses.’”

“For a long time my heart had been swelling. I could not restrain my tears at hearing all these indignities. ‘Why do you cry?’ said he. ‘Ah! ah! I see that you are in low spirits. We must dissipate that dark humor. The music waits us. I will drive that fit out of you by an air or two on the flute.’ He gave me his hand and led me into the other room. I sat down to the harpsichord, which I inundated with my tears.”

“For a long time, my heart felt heavy. I couldn't hold back my tears at all the injustices I had witnessed. ‘Why are you crying?’ he asked. ‘Oh! I see you’re feeling down. We need to shake off that gloom. The music is ready for us. I'll lift your spirits with a tune or two on the flute.’ He took my hand and led me into the next room. I sat down at the harpsichord, which I soaked with my tears.”

164 On the fourth day after the arrival of the Crown Prince at Baireuth, a courier came with a letter from the queen conjuring him to return immediately, as the king was growing worse and worse. Frederick immediately hastened to Potsdam, and on the 12th of October entered the sick-chamber of his father in the palace there. He seems to have thought nothing of his wife, who was at Berlin. We have no evidence that he wrote to her during his absence, or that he visited her upon his return. For four months the king remained a great sufferer in Potsdam, trembling between life and death. It was often with great difficulty that he could breathe. He was impatient and irritable in the extreme. As he was rolled about in his Bath chair, he would petulantly cry out, “Air! air!” as if his attendants were to blame for his shortness of breath. The distress from the dropsy was very great. “If you roll the king a little fast,” writes an attendant, “you hear the water jumble in his body.” The Crown Prince was deeply affected in view of the deplorable condition of his father, and wept convulsively. The stern old king was stern to the end. He said one day to Frederick, “If you begin at the wrong end with things, and all go topsy-turvy after I am gone, I will laugh at you out of my grave.”

164 On the fourth day after the Crown Prince arrived in Baireuth, a messenger brought a letter from the queen urging him to come back immediately, as the king's health was getting worse. Frederick quickly headed to Potsdam, and on October 12th, he entered his father's sickroom in the palace there. He seemed to hardly think of his wife, who was in Berlin. There's no evidence that he wrote to her during his time away or that he visited her when he returned. The king suffered greatly in Potsdam for four months, hovering between life and death. He often had a hard time breathing, and he was extremely impatient and irritable. As he was wheeled around in his bath chair, he would impatiently shout, “Air! air!” as if his attendants were responsible for his shortness of breath. The discomfort from the dropsy was intense. “If you roll the king a little too fast,” wrote an attendant, “you can hear the water slosh around in his body.” The Crown Prince was deeply affected by his father's terrible condition and cried uncontrollably. The stern old king remained stern until the end. One day he told Frederick, “If you start things off wrong and everything turns chaotic after I'm gone, I'll be laughing at you from my grave.”

Quite unexpectedly, the latter part of January the virulence of the king’s complicated diseases of gout, dropsy, and ulcers seemed to abate. Though but forty-seven years of age, he was, from his intemperate habits, an infirm old man. Though he lingered along for many months, he was a great sufferer. His unamiability filled the palace with discomfort.

Surprisingly, in the latter part of January, the severity of the king’s complex illnesses—gout, edema, and ulcers—appeared to lessen. Even though he was only forty-seven years old, his unhealthy lifestyle made him feel like a frail old man. He endured for many months, experiencing significant pain. His lack of friendliness made the atmosphere in the palace quite uncomfortable.

Frederick returned to Ruppin. Though he treated his wife with ordinary courtesy, as an honored member of the court, his attentions were simply such as were due to every lady of the royal household. It does not appear that she accompanied him to Ruppin or to Reinsberg at that time, though the apartments to which we have already alluded were subsequently provided for her at Reinsberg, where she was ever treated with the most punctilious politeness. Lord Dover says that after the accession of the prince to the throne he went to see his wife but once a year, on her birthday. She resided most of the time at Berlin, surrounded by a quiet little court there. However keen may have been her sufferings in view of this cruel neglect, we have165 no record that any word of complaint was ever heard to escape her lips. “This poor Crown Princess, afterward queen,” says Carlyle, “has been heard, in her old age, reverting in a touching, transient way to the glad days she had at Reinsberg. Complaint openly was never heard of her in any kind of days; but these, doubtless, were the best of her life.”

Frederick went back to Ruppin. Although he treated his wife with ordinary politeness, as an esteemed member of the court, his attention was just what any lady in the royal household would normally receive. It seems she didn’t travel with him to Ruppin or Reinsberg at that time, although the rooms we’ve mentioned earlier were later set up for her at Reinsberg, where she was always treated with the utmost courtesy. Lord Dover mentions that after the prince became king, he visited his wife only once a year, on her birthday. She mostly lived in Berlin, surrounded by a small, quiet court. Despite the pain she must have felt from this harsh neglect, there’s no record of her ever complaining. “This poor Crown Princess, later queen,” says Carlyle, “has been heard, in her old age, reminiscing in a touching, fleeting way about the happy times she had at Reinsberg. She never openly complained at any time; but those were likely the best days of her life.”

FRITZ IN HIS LIBRARY.

Frederick had become very ambitious of high intellectual culture and of literary renown. He gathered around him a numerous class of scholarly men, and opened an extensive correspondence with the most distinguished philosophers, poets, and historians all over Europe. He commenced and persevered in a course of very rigorous study, rising at an early hour, and devoting the unbroken morning to intellectual pursuits. The renowned men of earth have not attained their renown but by untiring exertions.166 For six or seven consecutive hours every day the prince was busy in his library, when no one was allowed to interrupt him. He wrote to a friend about this time:

Frederick had become very ambitious about gaining high intellectual culture and literary fame. He surrounded himself with a large group of scholarly individuals and started an extensive correspondence with the most distinguished philosophers, poets, and historians across Europe. He began and maintained a strict study routine, getting up early and dedicating his uninterrupted mornings to intellectual activities. Renowned individuals don’t achieve their fame without tireless effort.166 For six or seven hours every day, the prince was busy in his library, where no one was allowed to disturb him. He wrote to a friend around this time:

“Having been not quite well lately, my physician has advised me to take more exercise than I have hitherto done. This has obliged me to mount my horse and take a gallop every morning. But, in order not to be obliged on that account to change my ordinary way of life, I get up earlier, in order to regain on the one hand what I lose on the other.”

“Since I haven’t been feeling great lately, my doctor has advised me to exercise more than I have been. This has forced me to get on my horse and take a ride every morning. But to avoid having to change my usual routine, I wake up earlier to make up for what I lose on the other end.”

He rose about five o’clock. After a horseback ride of an hour he devoted the mornings to his books. The remainder of the day was given to society, music, and recreation. The following extract from his correspondence throws additional light upon the employment of his time. The letter was addressed to an intimate friend, Baron Von Suhm, of Saxony:

He got up around five o’clock. After an hour of horseback riding, he spent his mornings with his books. The rest of the day was dedicated to socializing, music, and leisure. The following excerpt from his letters provides more insight into how he spent his time. The letter was sent to a close friend, Baron Von Suhm, from Saxony:

“I think you will not be sorry if I say a few words to you respecting our rural amusements, for with persons who are dear to us we love to enter even into the smallest details. We have divided our occupations into two classes, of which the first consists of what is useful, and the second of what is agreeable. I reckon in the list of the usefuls the study of philosophy, history, and languages. The agreeables are music, the tragedies and comedies which we represent, the masquerades and presents which we give. The serious occupations, however, have always the prerogative of going before the others. And I think I can say that we make a reasonable use of our pleasures, only indulging in them to relieve the mind, and to prevent moroseness and too much philosophic gravity, which is apt not to yield a smile even to the graces.”

“I think you won’t regret it if I share a few thoughts with you about our rural activities, because with the people we care about, we love to dig into even the smallest details. We’ve divided our activities into two categories: the first is what’s useful, and the second is what’s enjoyable. I include in the useful category the study of philosophy, history, and languages. The enjoyable activities consist of music, the plays we perform, the masquerade balls, and the gifts we give. However, serious pursuits always take priority over the others. I believe we make good use of our pleasures, indulging in them only to lighten the mind and to avoid being overly serious or too philosophically heavy, which often fails to appreciate the lighter aspects of life.”

Again he wrote a few months after, while absent from home: “I set off on the 25th to return to my dear garden at Ruppin. I burn with impatience to see again my vineyards, my cherries, and my melons. There, tranquil and free from all useless cares, I shall live really for myself. I become every day more avaricious of my time, of which I render an account to myself, and never lose any of it without much regret. My mind is now wholly turned toward philosophy. That study renders me wonderful services, which are repaid by me with affection. I find myself happy because I am more tranquil than formerly. My167 soul is much less agitated with violent and tumultuous emotions. I suppress the first impulses of my passions, and do not proceed to act upon them till after having well considered the question before me.”

Again he wrote a few months later, while away from home: “I left on the 25th to return to my beloved garden at Ruppin. I can't wait to see my vineyards, my cherries, and my melons again. There, calm and free from all pointless worries, I will truly live for myself. I’m becoming more protective of my time every day, and I hold myself accountable for it, regretting any loss of it. My mind is now completely focused on philosophy. That study does me great favors, which I repay with gratitude. I feel happy because I’m more at peace than before. My soul is much less disturbed by intense and chaotic emotions. I hold back my initial impulses and don’t act on them until I’ve thought things through.”

Immediately after his return he wrote again: “I am now a peaceable inhabitant of Reinsberg, applying myself to study and reading almost from morning till night. With regard to the news of this world, you will learn them better through the gazetteers than through me. They contain the history of the madness and folly of the great, the wars of some, the quarrels of others, and the childish amusements of all. These news are as little worthy the attention of a man of sense as the quarrels of rats and mice would be.”25

Immediately after his return, he wrote again: “I’m now a peaceful resident of Reinsberg, focusing on studying and reading almost all day long. As for the news of the world, you’ll get a better sense of it from the newspapers than from me. They cover the crazy antics and foolishness of the powerful, the conflicts of some, the disputes of others, and the trivial pastimes of everyone. This news is as unworthy of a sensible person’s attention as the quarrels of rats and mice would be.”25

The king was not at all pleased either with his son’s studies or his recreations. Philosophy and literature were as obnoxious to the sturdy old monarch as were music and all amusements save the rough pastime of hunting stags and boars. He was a thorough materialist, having no other thought than to drill his troops and develop the resources of his realm. Beer and tobacco, both of which he used inordinately, were almost his only luxuries. He often growled loudly at what he deemed the coxcombry of his son and companions at Reinsberg, and frequently threatened to disperse his associates.

The king was not at all happy with his son's studies or his hobbies. Philosophy and literature annoyed the tough old ruler just as much as music and any entertainment except for the rough sport of hunting deer and wild boar. He was a complete materialist, focused only on training his troops and building up his kingdom's resources. Beer and tobacco, which he indulged in excessively, were almost his only luxuries. He often grumbled loudly about what he saw as the silliness of his son and his friends at Reinsberg, and he frequently threatened to send his companions away.

But Frederick was now a full-grown man. His heirship to the throne rendered him a power among the courts of Europe. It was doubtful whether he would again submit to a caning. The infirm old king, gouty, dropsical, weakened, and lamed by ulcers, could not conceal from himself that his power, with his energies, was rapidly waning. Indeed, at times, he even talked of abdicating in favor of his son. Whenever there was a transient abatement in his maladies, he roused himself to the utmost, took short journeys, and tried to deceive himself into the belief that he was well again.

But Frederick was now a grown man. His position as the heir to the throne made him a significant figure among the courts of Europe. It was uncertain whether he would ever submit to being punished again. The old king, suffering from gout, dropsy, weakened by illness, and hindered by ulcers, couldn't ignore the fact that his power, along with his vitality, was quickly fading. In fact, there were times when he considered stepping down and letting his son take over. Whenever his illnesses momentarily subsided, he pushed himself as much as he could, went on short trips, and tried to convince himself that he was healthy again.

The principal companions of Frederick at Reinsberg were gay, pleasure-loving men. Among them were Major Keyserling, a thoughtless young man, full of vivacity, and of very agreeable manners; and M. Jordan, a French young gentleman, formerly a168 preacher, very amiable, and an author of considerable note. M. Jordan was devotedly attached to the prince, and continued so through life. He gives the following testimony to the good qualities of Frederick:

The main companions of Frederick at Reinsberg were fun-loving, carefree guys. Among them were Major Keyserling, a carefree young man full of energy and great manners, and M. Jordan, a young Frenchman who used to be a preacher, very friendly, and a well-known author. M. Jordan was deeply devoted to the prince and remained so throughout his life. He gives the following testimony to Frederick's good qualities:

“It is not the king that I love in him; it is the man. If I considered the dignity and the power of the king, I should only seek to keep myself at a distance from him. But the qualities which are personal to him, both of the heart and of the head, they attach me to him for life, without reserve and without fear.”26

“It’s not the king I love in him; it’s the man. If I focused on the king's dignity and power, I would just want to keep my distance. But the qualities that are uniquely his, both in his heart and mind, connect me to him for life, completely and without fear.”26

Lieutenant Chasot, another of his friends, was a French officer who had killed a brother officer in a duel at Philipsburg, and, in consequence, had fled to the Prussian lines. He had brightness of intellect and winning manners, which rendered him a universal favorite. Captain Knobelsdorf was a distinguished musician and architect. He rendered signal service in enlarging and decorating the chateau at Reinsberg. Baron De Suhm, with whom Frederick kept up a constant correspondence, was then in Saxony, translating for the Crown Prince the philosophy of Wolff. He sent the prince chapter by chapter, with copious notes.

Lieutenant Chasot, one of his friends, was a French officer who had killed a fellow officer in a duel at Philipsburg and had thus fled to the Prussian lines. He was known for his sharp intellect and charming personality, making him a favorite among everyone. Captain Knobelsdorf was a talented musician and architect, and he made significant contributions to expanding and decorating the chateau at Reinsberg. Baron De Suhm, with whom Frederick maintained regular correspondence, was in Saxony at the time, translating Wolff's philosophy for the Crown Prince. He sent the prince each chapter along with detailed notes.

In this assembly of gay young men religion was generally a topic of ridicule. Even Jordan, the ex-preacher, was either willingly or unwillingly borne along by the current. Subsequently, when youth and health had fled, and he was on a sick-bed suffering from lingering disease, he felt the need of those consolations which Christianity alone can give. He wrote, under date of April, 1745, to Frederick, who was then king, and whose friendship continued unabated:

In this group of young gay men, religion was usually a subject of mockery. Even Jordan, the former preacher, was either willingly or unwillingly swept along with the crowd. Later, when youth and health had faded, and he was lying in a hospital bed suffering from a long illness, he realized he needed the comfort that only Christianity could provide. He wrote in April 1745 to Frederick, who was then king, and whose friendship remained strong:

“My complaint increases so much that I no longer even hope to recover from it. I feel strongly, in the situation in which I at present find myself, the necessity of an enlightened religion arising from conviction. Without that, we are the beings on earth most to be pitied. Your majesty will, after my death, do me the justice to testify that if I have combated superstition with vehemence, I have always supported the interests of the Christian religion, though differing from the ideas of some theologians. As it is only possible when in danger to discover the169 necessity of bravery, so no one can really have the consoling advantage of religion except through sufferings.”

"My complaint has grown so severe that I no longer even hope to recover from it. I strongly feel, given my current situation, the need for a meaningful faith that comes from true conviction. Without that, we are the most pitiful beings on earth. Your majesty will, after my death, be fair enough to acknowledge that although I have passionately fought against superstition, I have always supported the principles of the Christian faith, even if I disagree with some theologians. Just as we can only recognize the need for courage in times of danger, no one can truly benefit from the comfort of faith without facing suffering."

It speaks well for Frederick that during this illness, which was long and painful, he almost daily visited at the bedside of his friend, ministering to his wants with his own hand. After his death the king continued his kindness to the bereaved family. Baron Bielfeld gives the following account of one of the scenes of carousal in which these men engaged, when in the enjoyment of youth and health:

It says a lot about Frederick that during his long and painful illness, he nearly every day visited his friend’s bedside, taking care of his needs himself. After his friend passed away, the king kept showing kindness to the grieving family. Baron Bielfeld recounts one of the wild parties these men enjoyed when they were young and healthy:

“About a fortnight ago the prince was in a humor of extraordinary gayety at the table. His gayety animated all the rest; and some glasses of Champagne still more enlivened our mirth. The prince, perceiving our disposition, was willing to promote it, and on rising from table, told us that he was determined that we should recommence our jollity at supper.

“About two weeks ago, the prince was in a really cheerful mood at the table. His happiness lifted everyone else's spirits; and a few glasses of Champagne made us even more festive. The prince, noticing our mood, wanted to keep it going, and as he got up from the table, he told us he was set on making sure we continued our fun at supper.”

“We were scarcely seated at supper before he began by drinking a number of interesting healths, which there was a necessity of pledging. This first skirmish being over, it was followed by an incessant flow of sallies and repartees. The most contracted countenances became expanded. The gayety was general, even the ladies assisting in promoting our jollity.

“We had barely sat down for dinner when he started raising a number of interesting toasts that we had to respond to. Once this first round was done, it was followed by a constant exchange of witty remarks and comebacks. Even the most serious faces broke into smiles. The mood was light and cheerful, with the ladies also contributing to our fun.

“After about two hours I stepped out for a moment into the vestibule. I had placed before me a large glass of water, which the princess, opposite to whom I had the honor to sit, in a vein of mischievous pleasantry, had ordered to be emptied, and had filled it with Sellery wine, which was as clear as rock water. Having already lost my taste, I mixed my wine with wine. Thinking to refresh myself, I became joyous, but it was a kind of joy that leaned toward intoxication.

“After about two hours, I stepped out for a moment into the vestibule. In front of me was a large glass of water that the princess, sitting across from me and feeling a bit playful, had ordered to be emptied and filled with Sellery wine, which was as clear as spring water. Losing my taste for the original drink, I mixed my wine with more wine. Hoping to refresh myself, I felt cheerful, but it was more of a tipsy kind of joy.”

“To finish my picture—the prince ordered me to come and sit by him. He said many gracious things to me, and let me see into futurity as far as my feeble sight was then capable of discovering. At the same time, he made me drink bumper after bumper of his Lunelle wine. The rest of the company, however, were not less sensible than I of the effects of the nectar which there flowed in such mighty streams.

“To complete my picture—the prince asked me to come and sit by him. He said many kind things to me and allowed me to catch a glimpse of the future as far as my limited vision could grasp. At the same time, he had me drink glass after glass of his Lunelle wine. The rest of the guests, however, were just as aware as I was of the effects of the nectar that flowed in such abundant streams.”

“At last, whether by accident or design, the princess broke a glass. This was the signal for our impetuous jollity, and an example that appeared highly worthy of our imitation. In an instant170 all the glasses flew to the several corners of the room. All the crystals, porcelain, mirrors, branches, bowls, and vases were broken into a thousand pieces. In the midst of this universal destruction, the prince stood, like the man in Horace who contemplates the crush of worlds, with a look of perfect tranquillity.

“At last, whether it was an accident or on purpose, the princess broke a glass. This was the cue for our wild celebration, and a prime example that seemed totally worth copying. In an instant170 all the glasses shattered across the room. All the crystal, porcelain, mirrors, branches, bowls, and vases were smashed into a thousand pieces. In the middle of this chaos, the prince stood, like the man in Horace who contemplates the destruction of worlds, with a look of complete calmness.”

THE BANQUET.

“To this tumult succeeded a fresh burst of mirth, during which the prince slipped away, and, aided by his pages, retired to his171 apartment; and the princess immediately followed. The day after this adventure the court was at its last gasp. Neither the prince nor any of the courtiers could stir from their beds.”

“To this chaos followed a new wave of laughter, during which the prince quietly slipped away and, with the help of his attendants, went to his171 room; the princess quickly followed him. The day after this incident, the court was in complete disarray. Neither the prince nor any of the courtiers could get out of bed.”

Baron Bielfeld himself was so intoxicated that, in attempting to retire, he fell down the grand staircase from top to bottom. He was severely bruised, and was taken up senseless. “After lying about a fortnight in bed,” he writes, “where the prince had the goodness to come every day to see me, and to contribute every thing possible to my cure, I got abroad again.”

Baron Bielfeld was so drunk that when he tried to leave, he fell down the grand staircase from the top to the bottom. He was badly bruised and was carried out unconscious. "After lying in bed for about two weeks," he writes, "where the prince kindly came to see me every day and did everything he could to help me recover, I was able to get out again."

Frederick William, through spies, kept himself informed of every thing which was said or done at Reinsberg. Such orgies as the above excited his contempt and abhorrence. But, notwithstanding the above narrative, there is abundant testimony that the prince was not ordinarily addicted to such shameful excesses. The Italian Count Algarotti, distinguished alike for his familiarity with the sciences and his cultivated taste for the fine arts, was an honored guest at Reinsberg. In a letter addressed to Lord Hervey, under date of September 30th, 1739, the count writes:

Frederick William used spies to stay updated on everything said or done at Reinsberg. Events like those described above filled him with disdain and disgust. However, despite this account, there is plenty of evidence that the prince wasn't usually prone to such disgraceful behavior. The Italian Count Algarotti, known both for his knowledge of the sciences and his refined appreciation of the arts, was a respected guest at Reinsberg. In a letter to Lord Hervey dated September 30th, 1739, the count writes:

“What shall I say to you, my lord, of the Prince Royal, the lover and the favorite of the Muses? Several days, which we passed with him in his castle of Reinsberg, seemed to be but a few hours. He is the most intelligent and the most amiable of men. Though I could notice only his private virtues, I can boldly assure you, my lord, that the world will one day admire his royal qualifications, and that when he shall be upon the throne he will show himself to be the greatest of sovereigns. There is all the reason in the world to believe that he will seek out for great men with as much eagerness as his father does for giants.”

“What should I tell you, my lord, about the Prince Royal, the lover and favorite of the Muses? The several days we spent with him in his castle at Reinsberg felt like just a few hours. He is the most intelligent and charming man. While I could only see his personal qualities, I can confidently assure you, my lord, that the world will eventually recognize his royal talents, and when he ascends to the throne, he will prove to be the greatest of rulers. There is every reason to believe that he will seek out great individuals with the same enthusiasm that his father seeks giants.”

Baron Bielfeld gives the following account of the ordinary employments, and the tone of conversation of the prince: “All the employments and all the pleasures of the prince are those of a man of understanding. He is, at this time, actually engaged in refuting the dangerous political reveries of Machiavel. His conversation at table is charming. He talks much and excellently well. His mind seems to be equal to all sorts of subjects, and his imagination produces on each of them a number of new and just ideas. His genius resembles the fire of the vestals that was never extinct. A decent and polite contradiction is not disagreeable172 to him. He possesses the rare talent of displaying the wit of others, and of giving them opportunity to shine on those subjects in which they excel. He jests frequently, and sometimes rallies, but never with asperity; and an ingenious retort does not displease him.

Baron Bielfeld gives the following account of the prince's daily activities and conversation tone: “All the prince’s activities and pleasures reflect a thoughtful person. Right now, he is actively working to counter the dangerous political ideas of Machiavelli. His conversation at dinner is delightful. He speaks a lot and does so very well. His intellect seems capable of handling all kinds of topics, and his imagination yields a wealth of fresh and insightful ideas on each one. His talent is like the fire of the vestals, which is never extinguished. He doesn’t mind a respectful disagreement. He has the rare ability to highlight the talents of others and give them the chance to shine in areas where they excel. He often jokes and sometimes teases, but never harshly; a clever comeback is welcome to him.

“Nothing can be more elegant than this prince’s library. It has a view of the lake and gardens. A collection, not very numerous, but well chosen, of the best books in the French language are ranged in glass cases, which are ornamented with carvings and gildings in excellent taste. The portrait of M. De Voltaire occupies an honorable place in this library. He is the favorite author of the prince, who has, in general, a high esteem for good French writers both in prose and verse.

“Nothing can be more elegant than this prince’s library. It has a view of the lake and gardens. A collection, not very large, but well selected, of the best books in the French language are displayed in glass cases, which are decorated with carvings and gold accents in excellent taste. The portrait of M. De Voltaire holds a prominent place in this library. He is the prince's favorite author, who generally has a high regard for good French writers in both prose and poetry.”

“The evenings are devoted to music. The prince has a concert in his saloon, where no one enters who is not invited, and such invitation is regarded as an extraordinary favor. The prince has commonly performed a sonata and a concert for the flute, on which he plays in the greatest perfection. He fills the flute admirably well, has great agility with the fingers, and a vast fund of music. He composes himself sonatas. I have had the honor of standing behind him more than once while he was playing, and was charmed with his taste, especially in the adagio. He has a continual creation of new ideas.”

“Evenings are dedicated to music. The prince holds a concert in his salon, and only those who are invited can enter, with such an invitation seen as a special privilege. Typically, the prince performs a sonata and a flute concerto, playing them with great skill. He plays the flute beautifully, has quick fingers, and a huge repertoire of music. He even composes sonatas himself. I’ve had the honor of standing behind him more than once while he played, and I was enchanted by his taste, especially in the adagio. He constantly comes up with new ideas.”


CHAPTER IX.
THE PASSING OF FREDERICK WILLIAM.

Voltaire and Madame Du Châtelet.—Letter from Frederick to Voltaire.—The Reply.—Visit to the Prince of Orange.—Correspondence.—The Crown Prince becomes a Mason.—Interesting Letter from the Crown Prince.—Petulance and declining Health of the King.—Scenes in the Death-chamber.—Characteristic Anecdotes.—The Dying Scene.

Voltaire and Madame Du Châtelet.—Letter from Frederick to Voltaire.—The Response.—Visit to the Prince of Orange.—Correspondence.—The Crown Prince Joins the Freemasons.—Interesting Letter from the Crown Prince.—Irritability and Deteriorating Health of the King.—Events in the Death Chamber.—Notable Anecdotes.—The Dying Scene.

The Crown Prince had for some time been inspired with an ever-increasing ambition for high intellectual culture. Gradually he was gathering around him, in his retreat at Reinsberg, men of high literary reputation, and was opening correspondence with the most distinguished men of letters in all the adjacent countries.

The Crown Prince had been feeling a growing ambition for advanced intellectual culture for quite a while. Slowly, he was bringing together well-known literary figures at his retreat in Reinsberg and was starting to correspond with the most esteemed writers from all the nearby countries.

Voltaire was, at this time, about forty years of age. His renown as a man of genius already filled Europe. He was residing,173 on terms of the closest intimacy, with Madame Du Châtelet, who had separated from her husband. With congenial tastes and ample wealth they occupied the chateau of Cirey, delightfully situated in a quiet valley in Champagne, and which they had rendered, as Madame testifies, a perfect Eden on earth. It is not always, in the divine government, that sentence against an evil work is “executed speedily.” Madame Du Châtelet, renowned in the writings of Voltaire as the “divine Emilie,” was graceful, beautiful, fascinating. Her conversational powers were remarkable, and she had written several treatises upon subjects connected with the pure sciences, which had given her much deserved celebrity.

Voltaire was around forty years old at this time. His reputation as a genius had already spread throughout Europe. He was living,173 in very close friendship with Madame Du Châtelet, who had separated from her husband. With shared interests and plenty of money, they occupied the chateau of Cirey, beautifully located in a quiet valley in Champagne, which they had turned, as Madame claims, into a perfect Eden on earth. It is not always, in the divine plan, that judgement against a bad deed is “carried out quickly.” Madame Du Châtelet, known in Voltaire's writings as the “divine Emilie,” was graceful, beautiful, and captivating. Her conversational skills were exceptional, and she had written several essays on subjects related to the pure sciences, which earned her well-deserved fame.

Still it is evident that the serpent was in this Eden. Carlyle writes: “An ardent, aerial, gracefully predominant, and, in the end, somewhat termagant female, this divine Emilie. Her temper, radiant rather than bland, was none of the patientest on occasion. Nor was M. De Voltaire the least of a Job if you came athwart him in a wrong way. I have heard that their domestic symphony was liable to furious flaws; that plates, in presence of the lackeys, actual crockery or metal, have been known to fly from end to end of the dinner-table; nay, they mention ‘knives,’ though only in the way of oratorical action; and Voltaire has been heard to exclaim, ‘Don’t fix those haggard, sidelong eyes on me in that way!’—mere shrillness of pale rage presiding over the scene.”

Still, it’s clear that the serpent was present in this Eden. Carlyle writes: “An enthusiastic, lively, and somewhat feisty woman, this divine Emilie. Her temperament was more radiant than calm and could be quite impatient at times. M. De Voltaire was no saint either if you crossed him the wrong way. I've heard that their home life was prone to intense arguments; that dishes, both china and metal, have been known to be thrown from one end of the dinner table to the other in front of the servants; in fact, they even mention ‘knives,’ though only in a dramatic sense; and Voltaire has been heard shouting, ‘Don’t look at me with those haggard, sideways eyes!’—a mere high-pitched display of pale rage dominating the scene.”

Voltaire had already written the epic poem the Henriade, the history of Charles XII., and several tragedies.

Voltaire had already written the epic poem Henriade, the history of Charles XII., and several plays.

The first letter from Frederick to Voltaire was dated August 8th, 1736. The following extracts will show the spirit of this flattering epistle:

The first letter from Frederick to Voltaire was dated August 8, 1736. The following excerpts will show the tone of this complimentary letter:

Monsieur,—Although I have not the satisfaction of knowing you personally, you are not the less known to me through your works. They are treasures of the mind, if I may so express myself; and they reveal to the reader new beauties at every perusal. I think I have recognized in them the character of their ingenious author, who does honor to our age and to human nature. If ever the dispute on the comparative merits of the moderns and the ancients should be revived, the modern great men174 will owe it to you, and to you only, that the scale is turned in their favor. With the excellent quality of poet you join innumerable others more or less related to it.

“Sir, even though I don’t have the pleasure of knowing you personally, I’m very familiar with your work. They are mental treasures, to put it simply, and each time I read them, they reveal new beauties. I believe I can see the character of their brilliant author, who brings honor to our time and to humanity. If the discussion about the pros and cons of modern versus ancient writers comes up again, the modern greats will owe it to you that the scales tip in their favor. Along with your exceptional qualities as a poet, you possess countless others that are closely related.”

“Monsieur, there is nothing I wish so much as to possess all your writings. Pray do communicate them to me without reserve. If there be among your manuscripts any that you wish to conceal from the eyes of the public, I engage to keep them in profoundest secrecy.

“Sir, there’s nothing I want more than to have all your writings. Please share them with me freely. If there are any manuscripts you wish to keep private, I promise to keep them completely confidential.”

“I should think myself richer in the possession of your works than in that of all the transient goods of fortune.

“I would feel richer having your works than owning all the fleeting wealth in the world.

“You inspire the ambition to follow in your footsteps. But I, how often have I said to myself, unhappy man! throw down a burden which is above thy strength! One can not imitate Voltaire without being Voltaire.

“You inspire me to aim to follow in your footsteps. But I often find myself thinking, unhappy man! let go of a burden that's too heavy for you! One cannot imitate Voltaire without being Voltaire.

“It is in such moments that I have felt how small are those advantages of birth, those vapors of grandeur, with which vanity would solace us. They amount to little, properly to nothing. Ah! would glory but make use of me to crown your successes!

“In moments like these, I realize how insignificant those advantages of birth are, those illusions of greatness that vanity tries to comfort us with. They truly mean very little, almost nothing at all. Ah! if only glory would use me to celebrate your successes!”

“If my destiny refuse me the happiness of being able to possess you, may I at least hope one day to see the man whom I have admired so long now from afar, and to assure you, by word of mouth, that I am, with all the esteem and consideration due those who, following the torch of truth for guide, consecrate their labors to the public, Monsieur, your affectionate friend,

“If my fate denies me the joy of meeting you, may I at least hope to one day encounter the man I have admired from a distance for so long, and to tell you in person that I hold, with all the respect and regard that is due to those who, guided by the light of truth, dedicate their efforts to the public, Monsieur, your affectionate friend,

Frederick, Prince Royal of Prussia.”

“Frederick, Prince Royal of Prussia.”

Voltaire promptly replied to this letter in corresponding terms of flattery. His letter was dated Cirey, August 26th, 1736:

Voltaire quickly responded to this letter with equally flattering words. His letter was dated Cirey, August 26th, 1736:

Monseigneur,—A man must be void of all feeling who were not infinitely moved by the letter which your royal highness has deigned to honor me with. My self-love is only too much flattered by it. But my love of mankind, which I have always nourished in my heart, and which, I venture to say, forms the basis of my character, has given me a very much purer pleasure to see that there is now in the world a prince who thinks as a man—a Philosopher prince, who will make men happy.

Your Excellency,—Only someone completely heartless wouldn't be touched by the letter your royal highness took the time to send me. I must admit, it does boost my ego. However, my genuine love for humanity, which I have always cherished and which is, I dare say, the core of my character, fills me with even greater joy to realize that there is a prince in the world who thinks like a person—a Philosopher prince who will bring happiness to mankind.

“Permit me to say there is not a man on the earth but owes thanks for the care you take to cultivate, by sound philosophy,175 a soul that is born for command. Good kings there never were except those who had begun by seeking to instruct themselves; by knowing good men from bad; by loving what was true; by detesting persecution and superstition. No prince, persisting in such thoughts, but might bring back the golden age into his countries.

“Let me express that everyone on earth owes gratitude for the efforts you’ve put into fostering, through solid philosophy,175 a spirit meant for leadership. There have never been good kings except those who began by educating themselves; by distinguishing good people from bad; by valuing what is true; by rejecting persecution and superstition. No prince who remains dedicated to such thoughts could fail to restore a golden age in his lands.”

“Unless one day the tumult of business and the wickedness of men alter so divine a character, you will be worshiped by your people and loved by the whole world. Philosophers, worthy of the name, will flock to your states. The illustrious Queen Christina quitted her kingdom to go in search of the arts. Reign you, Monseigneur, and the arts will come to seek you.

“Unless one day the chaos of business and the evils of people disrupt such divine nature, you will be revered by your people and loved by everyone. True philosophers will gather in your realm. The famous Queen Christina left her kingdom in search of the arts. Reign, Monseigneur, and the arts will come to you.”

“I will obey your commands as to sending those unpublished pieces. Your criticism will be my reward. It is a price few sovereigns can pay. I am sure of your secrecy. Your virtue and your intellect must be in proportion. I should indeed consider it a precious happiness to come and pay my court to your royal highness. One travels to Rome to see paintings and ruins. A prince such as you is a much more singular object, worthier of a long journey.

“I will follow your instructions regarding the unpublished pieces. Your feedback will be my reward. That’s a compensation few rulers can provide. I trust you to keep this confidential. Your character and intellect should be in harmony. It would bring me great joy to visit and pay my respects to your royal highness. People travel to Rome to see paintings and ruins. A prince like you is a much more unique sight, worthy of a long journey.”

“In whatever corner of the world I may end my life, be assured, Monseigneur, my wishes will be continually for you. My heart will rank itself among your subjects. Your glory will be ever dear to me. I shall wish, May you always be like yourself, and may other kings be like you. I am, with profound respect, your royal highness’s most humble

“In whatever part of the world I may spend my life, know this, Monseigneur: my wishes will always be with you. My heart will be with your subjects. Your glory will always be dear to me. I hope you remain exactly as you are, and may other kings be like you. I am, with deep respect, your royal highness’s most humble

Voltaire.”

Voltaire.

The correspondence thus commenced was prosecuted with great vigor. It seemed difficult to find language sufficiently expressive of their mutual admiration. Frederick received many of Voltaire’s unpublished manuscripts, and sent him many tokens of regard. Some of Frederick’s manuscripts Voltaire also examined, and returned with slight corrections and profuse expressions of delight.

The letters they began exchanging were filled with enthusiasm. They struggled to find words that fully captured their admiration for each other. Frederick got several of Voltaire’s unpublished works and sent him gifts as a sign of his appreciation. Voltaire also looked over some of Frederick’s manuscripts and returned them with minor edits and plenty of compliments.

In the summer of 1738 the infirm old king undertook a journey to Holland, on a visit of diplomacy to the Prince of Orange. The Crown Prince accompanied him. It does not, however, appear that they had much intercourse with each other on the journey. They spent several days at the beautiful palace of176 Loo, in Geldern, occupied by the Prince of Orange and his English bride, a niece to his Prussian majesty. The palace was imposing in its architectural structure, containing many gorgeous saloons, and surrounded with beautiful gardens. In a letter which Frederick wrote from Loo to Voltaire, dated August 6th, we find the following sentiments:

In the summer of 1738, the frail old king took a trip to Holland to meet with the Prince of Orange for diplomatic reasons. The Crown Prince went along with him. However, it seems they didn’t interact much during the journey. They spent several days at the beautiful palace of176 Loo in Geldern, which was occupied by the Prince of Orange and his English bride, who was a niece of the Prussian king. The palace was impressive in its architecture, featuring many stunning rooms and surrounded by beautiful gardens. In a letter Frederick wrote from Loo to Voltaire on August 6th, he expressed the following thoughts:

“I write from a place where there lived once a great man,27 which is now the Prince of Orange’s house. The demon of ambition sheds its unhappy poisons over his days. He might be the most fortunate of men, and he is devoured by chagrins in his beautiful palace here, in the middle of his gardens and of a brilliant court.”

“I’m writing from a place where a great man once lived, 27 which is now the Prince of Orange’s residence. The demon of ambition spreads its unhappy toxins over his days. He could be the luckiest man alive, yet he’s consumed by grief in his beautiful palace, right in the middle of his gardens and a dazzling court.”

In one of the letters of the Crown Prince, speaking of the mode of traveling with his father, he says: “We have now been traveling near three weeks. The heat is as great as if we were riding astride upon a ray of the sun. The dust is like a dense cloud, which renders us invisible to the eyes of the by-standers. In addition to this, we travel like the angels, without sleep, and almost without food. Judge, then, what my condition must be.”

In one of the letters from the Crown Prince, reflecting on his travels with his father, he writes: “We have been traveling for almost three weeks now. The heat feels as intense as if we were riding directly on a sunbeam. The dust is thick like a heavy fog, making us almost invisible to those around us. On top of that, we travel like angels, without sleep and nearly without food. So, just think about what my condition must be.”

While on this journey to Holland the Crown Prince was one day dining with a prince of Lippe-Bückeburg. Freemasonry became one of the topics of conversation at the table. King Frederick William denounced the institution in his usual style of coarse vituperation, as tomfoolery, atheism, and every thing else that was bad. But the Prince of Bückeburg, himself a mason and a very gentlemanly man, defended the craft with such persuasive eloquence as quite captivated the Crown Prince. After dinner the prince took him secretly aside, conversed with him more fully upon the subject, expressed his admiration of the system, and his wish to be admitted into the fraternity: But it was necessary carefully to conceal the step from the irate king. Arrangements were immediately made to assemble at Brunswick a sufficient number of masons from Hamburg, where the Crown Prince, on his return, could be received in a secret meeting into the mystic brotherhood.

While traveling to Holland, the Crown Prince was having dinner with a prince from Lippe-Bückeburg. Freemasonry came up as one of the topics during the meal. King Frederick William harshly criticized the organization, calling it nonsense, atheism, and everything else negative. However, the Prince of Bückeburg, who was a mason and a very refined gentleman, defended the organization with such convincing eloquence that it completely fascinated the Crown Prince. After dinner, the prince took him aside privately to discuss the topic in more detail, shared his admiration for the system, and expressed his desire to join the fraternity. But it was crucial to keep this hidden from the angry king. Plans were quickly set in motion to gather enough masons from Hamburg in Brunswick, where the Crown Prince could secretly be initiated into the mystical brotherhood upon his return.

The Crown Prince met the masons by agreement at “Korn’s Hotel.” On the night of Tuesday, August 14th, 1738, the king having that evening continued his journey, Frederick, after adopting177 extreme precautions to prevent any publicity of the act, fearing probably only lest it should reach his father’s ears, passed through the mysterious rites of initiation. It does not, however, appear that subsequently he took any special interest in the society.28

The Crown Prince met the masons as planned at “Korn’s Hotel.” On the night of Tuesday, August 14th, 1738, with the king continuing his journey that evening, Frederick, after taking extreme measures to keep the act under wraps, likely worrying it might reach his father, went through the secret initiation rites. However, it seems he didn't take any particular interest in the society afterward.177

The year 1739 was spent by the prince mostly at Reinsberg. Many distinguished visitors were received at the chateau. Frederick continued busily engaged in his studies, writing both prose and verse, and keeping up a lively correspondence with Voltaire and other literary friends. He engaged very earnestly in writing a book entitled Anti-Machiavel, which consisted of a refutation of Machiavel’s Prince. This book was published, praised, and read, but has long since been forgotten. The only memorable thing about the book now is that in those dark days of absolutism, when it was the almost universally recognized opinion that power did not ascend from the people to their sovereign, but descended from the monarch to his subjects, Frederick should have spoken of the king as the “born servant of his people.”

The year 1739 was mostly spent by the prince at Reinsberg. Many notable visitors came to the chateau. Frederick stayed busy with his studies, writing both prose and poetry, and maintaining an active correspondence with Voltaire and other literary friends. He devoted himself to writing a book called Anti-Machiavel, which was a critique of Machiavel’s Prince. The book was published, received praise, and was read, but has since been forgotten. The only noteworthy aspect of the book today is that during those dark days of absolute rule, when it was widely accepted that power did not come from the people to their ruler, but flowed down from the monarch to his subjects, Frederick referred to the king as the “born servant of his people.”

In July of this year the Crown Prince took another journey with his father through extensive portions of the Prussian territory. The following extract from one of his letters to Voltaire reflects pleasing light upon the heart of Frederick, and upon the administrative ability of his father:

In July of this year, the Crown Prince traveled again with his father across large areas of Prussian territory. The following excerpt from one of his letters to Voltaire shines a positive light on Frederick's character and on his father's administrative skills:

“Prussian Lithuania is a hundred and twenty miles long, by from forty to sixty broad. It was ravaged by pestilence at the beginning of this century, and they say three hundred thousand people died of disease and famine. The disorder carried off the people, and the lands remained uncultivated and full of weeds. The most flourishing of our provinces was changed into the most miserable of solitudes.

“Prussian Lithuania is one hundred and twenty miles long and between forty to sixty miles wide. It was hit hard by disease at the start of this century, and it's said that three hundred thousand people died from illness and starvation. The chaos wiped out the population, and the land was left uncultivated and overgrown with weeds. What used to be our most prosperous province has turned into the most desolate of wastelands.”

178 “Meanwhile Frederick the First died, and with him was buried all his false grandeur, which consisted only in a vain magnificence, and in the pompous display of frivolous ceremonies. My father, who succeeded him, compassionated the general misery. He visited the spot, and saw, with his own eyes, this vast country laid waste, and all the dreadful traces which a contagious malady, a famine, and the sordid avarice of a venal administration leave behind them. Twelve or fifteen towns depopulated, and four or five hundred villages uninhabited, presented themselves to his view. Far from being discouraged by such a sad spectacle, his compassion only became the more lively from it; and he resolved to restore population, plenty, and commerce to this land, which had even lost the appearance of an inhabited country.

178 “Meanwhile, Frederick the First passed away, taking with him all his false grandeur, which was just a show of empty magnificence and flashy ceremonies. My father, who took over after him, felt deep sympathy for the widespread suffering. He visited the area and witnessed firsthand the devastation across this vast land, seeing all the horrible signs left behind by a contagious disease, famine, and the greedy exploitation of a corrupt administration. Twelve or fifteen towns were deserted, and four or five hundred villages lay empty. Instead of feeling disheartened by this heartbreaking scene, his compassion grew even stronger; he made it his mission to restore the population, abundance, and trade to a land that had even lost the look of being inhabited.”

“Since this time he has spared no expense for the furtherance of his salutary intentions. He first established wise regulations and laws. He rebuilt whatever had been allowed to go to ruin in consequence of the plague. He brought and established there thousands of families from the different countries of Europe. The lands became again productive, and the country populous. Commerce reflourished; and at the present time abundance reigns in this country more than ever before. There are now half a million of inhabitants in Lithuania. There are more towns than formerly; more flocks, and more riches and fertility than in any other part of Germany.

“Since then, he has spared no expense to further his beneficial goals. He first set up wise regulations and laws. He rebuilt everything that had fallen into disrepair because of the plague. He brought in and established thousands of families from various European countries. The land became productive again, and the population grew. Trade thrived again, and now there is more abundance in this country than ever before. Lithuania now has half a million residents. There are more towns than before, more flocks, and more wealth and fertility than in any other part of Germany.”

“And all that I have been relating to you is due to the king alone, who not only gave the orders, but himself saw that they were faithfully obeyed. He both conceived the designs and executed them. He spared neither care, nor trouble, nor vast treasures, nor promises, nor recompenses, in order to assure the existence and the comfort of half a million of rational beings, who owe to him alone their happiness. There is something in my mind so heroic in the generous and laborious manner in which the king has devoted himself to the restoring to this deserted country its population, fertility, and happiness, that I think you will see his conduct in the same light as I do when you are made acquainted with the circumstances.”

“And everything I've been telling you is thanks to the king alone, who not only gave the orders but also made sure they were followed. He came up with the ideas and put them into action. He didn’t hold back on care, effort, money, promises, or rewards to ensure the survival and well-being of half a million rational beings who owe their happiness solely to him. There’s something so heroic in the selfless and diligent way the king has dedicated himself to bringing back the population, fertility, and happiness to this neglected land that I believe you’ll see his actions in the same positive light as I do once you learn the full story.”

It would be unjust alike to the father and the son to withhold a letter which reflects so much credit upon them both—upon179 the father for his humane measures, and upon the son for his appreciation of their moral beauty.

It would be unfair to both the father and the son to keep back a letter that brings so much credit to them both—credit to the father for his compassionate actions, and to the son for recognizing their moral value.

The king was so pleased with the conduct of his son during this journey that, in a moment of unusual good-nature, he made him a present of a very extensive horse-breeding establishment near Tilsit, consisting of seven farms, all in the most perfect order, as every thing was sure to be which was under the control of Frederick William. The profits of this establishment added about ten thousand dollars to the annual income of the Crown Prince. He was quite overjoyed at the unexpected gift, and wrote to his sister Wilhelmina a letter glowing with satisfaction.

The king was so happy with how his son handled the journey that, in a rare moment of generosity, he gifted him a large horse-breeding estate near Tilsit, made up of seven perfectly maintained farms, as everything managed by Frederick William was bound to be. The profits from this estate added around ten thousand dollars to the Crown Prince's annual income. He was thrilled with the surprise gift and wrote a letter to his sister Wilhelmina, filled with excitement.

During the first part of his journey the king had been remarkably cheerful and genial, but toward its close he was attacked by a new fit of very serious illness. To the discomfort of all, his chronic moodiness returned. A few extracts from Pöllnitz’s account of this journey throws interesting light upon those scenes:

During the first part of his journey, the king was surprisingly cheerful and friendly, but towards the end, he was struck by a serious illness. To everyone’s discomfort, his long-standing moodiness came back. A few excerpts from Pöllnitz’s account of this journey shed interesting light on those moments:

“Till now his majesty has been in especial good-humor. But in Dantzig his cheerfulness forsook him, and it never came back. He arrived about ten o’clock at night in that city, slept there, and was off again next morning at five. He drove only fifty miles this day; stopped in Luppow. From Luppow he went to a poor village near Belgard, and staid there overnight.

“Until now, his majesty has been in particularly good spirits. But in Dantzig, his cheerfulness left him, and it never returned. He arrived in the city around ten o’clock at night, slept there, and set off again the next morning at five. He only traveled fifty miles that day and stopped in Luppow. From Luppow, he went to a small village near Belgard and stayed there overnight."

“At Belgard next morning he reviewed the dragoon regiment, and was very ill content with it. And nobody, with the least understanding of that business, but must own that never did Prussian regiment manœuvre worse. Conscious themselves how bad it was, they lost head and got into confusion. The king did every thing that was possible to help them into order again, but it was all in vain. The king, contrary to wont, restrained himself amazingly, and would not show his displeasure in public. He got into his carriage and drove away, not staying to dine with General Von Platen, as was always his custom with commandants whom he had reviewed.

“At Belgard the next morning, he reviewed the dragoon regiment and was very unhappy with it. And anyone with even a basic understanding of military matters would have to admit that no Prussian regiment had ever maneuvered worse. Aware of how poorly they were performing, they lost their composure and fell into confusion. The king did everything he could to help them regain their order, but it was all pointless. Unlike his usual behavior, the king restrained himself remarkably and didn’t show his displeasure in public. He got into his carriage and left, not staying to dine with General Von Platen, as was always his custom with commanders he had reviewed."

“As the prince was anxious to come up with his majesty again, and knew not where he would meet him, we had to be very swift in the business. We found the king, with Anhalt and Winterfeld, by-and-by, sitting in a village in front of a barn, eating a cold pie there which the Marquis of Anhalt chanced to180 have with him. His majesty, owing to what he had seen on the parade-ground, was in the utmost ill-humor. Next day, Saturday, he went a hundred and fifty or two hundred miles, and arrived in Berlin at ten o’clock at night, not expected there till the morrow, so that his rooms were locked, her majesty being over in Monbijou giving her children a ball.”

“As the prince was eager to see his majesty again and had no idea where they would cross paths, we had to act quickly. Eventually, we found the king, along with Anhalt and Winterfeld, sitting in a village in front of a barn, eating a cold pie that the Marquis of Anhalt happened to have with him. His majesty was in a terrible mood due to what he had witnessed on the parade ground. The next day, Saturday, he traveled a hundred and fifty to two hundred miles and arrived in Berlin at ten o’clock at night, earlier than expected, so his rooms were locked, and her majesty was over in Monbijou hosting a ball for the children.”

Late in the fall of 1739 the health of Frederick William was so rapidly failing that it became manifest to all that his days on earth would soon be ended. He sat joylessly in his palace, listening to the moaning of the wind, the rustle of the falling leaves, and the pattering of the rain. His gloomy spirit was in accord with the melancholy days. More dreary storms darkened his turbid soul than those which wrecked the autumnal sky.

Late in the fall of 1739, Frederick William's health was deteriorating so quickly that it was clear to everyone that his time was running out. He sat in his palace without joy, listening to the howling wind, the rustling leaves, and the sound of the rain falling. His dark mood matched the gloomy days. More troubling storms clouded his troubled soul than those that devastated the autumn sky.

Early in November he came to Berlin, languid, crippled, and wretched. The death-chamber in the palace is attended with all the humiliations and sufferings which are encountered in the poor man’s hut. The king, through all his life, had indulged his irritable disposition, and now, imprisoned by infirmities and tortured with pain, his petulance and abuse became almost unendurable. Miserable himself, he made every one wretched around him. He was ever restless—now in his bed, now out of it, now in his wheel-chair, continually finding fault, and often dealing cruel blows to those who came within his reach. He was unwilling to be left for a moment alone. The old generals were gathered in his room, and sat around his bed talking and smoking. He could not sleep at night, and allowed his attendants no repose. Restlessly he tried to divert his mind by whittling, painting, and small carpentry. The Crown Prince dared not visit him too often, lest his solicitude should be interpreted into impatience for the king to die, that he might grasp the crown. In the grossest terms the king insulted his physicians, attributing all his sufferings to their wickedness or their ignorance. Fortunately the miserable old man was too weak to attempt to cane them. A celebrated physician, by the name of Hoffman, was sent for to prescribe for the king. He was a man of much intellectual distinction, and occupied an important position in the university. As his prescriptions failed to give relief to his majesty, he was assailed, like the rest, in the vilest language of vituperation. With great dignity Professor Hoffman replied:

Early in November, he arrived in Berlin, feeling weak, disabled, and miserable. The death chamber in the palace was filled with all the humiliations and struggles that you find in a poor person's home. Throughout his life, the king had indulged his irritable nature, and now, confined by health issues and tormented by pain, his irritability and outbursts became almost unbearable. As he suffered, he made everyone around him miserable. He was constantly restless—sometimes in bed, sometimes out of it, sometimes in his wheelchair—always complaining and often lashing out at anyone who got too close. He hated being left alone for even a moment. The old generals gathered in his room, sitting around his bed, chatting and smoking. He couldn’t sleep at night and didn’t allow his attendants to rest either. In his restlessness, he tried to distract himself by whittling, painting, and doing small carpentry projects. The Crown Prince didn’t dare visit him too often, worried that his concern might be seen as impatience for the king to die so he could take the crown. The king insulted his doctors in the crudest terms, blaming all his pain on their malice or incompetence. Luckily, the frail old man was too weak to physically attack them. A renowned doctor named Hoffman was called in to treat the king. He was an intellectually distinguished man and held a significant position at the university. When his treatments failed to relieve the king's suffering, he became the target of the king's harshest insults, just like the others. Professor Hoffman responded with great dignity:

181 “Sire, I can not bear these reproaches, which I do not deserve. I have tried, for the relief of your majesty, all the remedies which art can supply, or which nature can admit. If my ability or my integrity is doubted, I am willing to leave not only the university, but the kingdom. But I can not be driven into any place where the name of Hoffman will not be respected.”

181 "Your Majesty, I can't handle these accusations, which I don't deserve. I've done everything I can, both in terms of skill and what’s natural, to help you. If there are doubts about my abilities or my honesty, I'm ready to leave not just the university but the entire kingdom. However, I can't be pushed to a place where the name Hoffman won't be honored."

The king was so impressed by this firm attitude of his physician that he even made an apology for his rudeness. As Frederick William was now convinced that ere long he must appear before the tribunal of God, he gradually became a little more calm and resigned.29 It is, however, evident that the Crown Prince still had his share of earthly annoyances, and certainly his full share of earthly frailties. In a letter to his friend Suhm, written this summer, he says:

The king was so impressed by his physician's strong stance that he actually apologized for his rudeness. Now that Frederick William was convinced he would soon face God's judgment, he slowly became a bit more calm and accepting.29 However, it was clear that the Crown Prince still dealt with his share of earthly troubles and certainly his full share of human weaknesses. In a letter to his friend Suhm, written this summer, he says:

“Tantalus never suffered so much while standing in the river, the waters of which he could not drink, as I when, having received your package of the translation of Wolff, I was unable to read it. All the accidents and all the bores in the world were, I think, agreed to prevent me. A journey to Potsdam, daily reviews, and the arrival of my brother in company with Messrs. De Hacke and De Rittberg, have been my impediments. Imagine my horror, my dear Diaphanes,30 at seeing the arrival of this caravan without my having in the least expected them. They weigh upon my shoulders like a tremendous burden, and never quit my side, in order, I believe, to make me wish myself at the devil.”

“Tantalus never endured as much suffering while standing in a river he couldn’t drink from as I did when I received your package of Wolff’s translation and couldn’t read it. It felt like all the mishaps and annoying things in the world conspired against me. A trip to Potsdam, daily reviews, and the arrival of my brother with Messrs. De Hacke and De Rittberg have held me back. Imagine my shock, my dear Diaphanes, 30 when this group showed up unexpectedly. They weigh on me like a heavy burden and never leave me, I believe, just to make me wish I was anywhere else.”

As the king’s infirmities and sufferings increased, the sympathies of his son were more and more excited. He seemed to forget all his father’s cruel treatment, and to remember only his kingly energies. The thought of his death became very painful to him, and at times he recoiled from the oppressive cares he must of necessity assume with the crown.

As the king's health problems and suffering worsened, his son's feelings of sympathy grew stronger. He appeared to forget all the harsh treatment he had received from his father and focused only on his father’s royal strengths. The idea of his father's death became quite distressing for him, and at times he hesitated at the heavy responsibilities he would have to take on with the crown.

182

182

THE CROWN PRINCE ENTERING THE TOBACCO PARLIAMENT.

One evening in April, the king, feeling a little better, decided to dress and hold a tobacco parliament, as formerly. Quite a numerous party of his customary cabinet was assembled, and the circle was full. The pipes were lighted; the king was in good-humor; the beer-pots circulated merrily; and as every one made an effort to be agreeable, the scene was unusually animated. Quite unexpectedly, in the midst of the lively talk, the door opened, and the Crown Prince entered. Simultaneously, as by a183 common instinct, the whole company arose and bowed profoundly to the young prince. The king was exceedingly annoyed. Trembling with rage, he exclaimed,

One evening in April, the king, feeling a bit better, decided to get dressed and hold a tobacco gathering, like he used to. A good number of his usual cabinet members had gathered, and the room was bustling. The pipes were lit; the king was in a good mood; the beer mugs were passed around happily, and since everyone was trying to be pleasant, the atmosphere was unusually lively. Suddenly, in the middle of the animated conversation, the door swung open, and the Crown Prince walked in. At the same moment, as if they all had the same thought, the entire group stood up and bowed deeply to the young prince. The king was extremely annoyed. Shaking with anger, he shouted,

“This is the homage you render the rising sun, though you know that the rule in the tobacco parliament is to rise to no one. You think I am dead. But I will teach you that I am yet living.”

“This is the respect you show the rising sun, even though you know that in the tobacco parliament, no one gets up for anyone. You think I’m dead. But I will show you that I am still alive.”

Ringing violently for his servants, and deaf to all protestations and excuses, he had himself immediately rolled from the room. As the courtiers stood bewildered and gazing at each other in consternation, an officer came in with an order from the king that they should all leave the palace immediately, and come not back again. The next morning Pöllnitz, who occupied a position somewhat similar to that of prime minister, applied for admission to his majesty’s apartment. But a gendarme seized him by the shoulder and turned him around, saying, “There is no admittance.” It was several days, and not till after repeated acts of humiliation, that the king would permit any member of the parliament again to enter his presence.

Ringing loudly for his servants and ignoring all protests and excuses, he had himself quickly rolled out of the room. As the courtiers stood confused and stared at each other in shock, an officer entered with an order from the king for them all to leave the palace immediately and never return. The next morning, Pöllnitz, who held a position similar to that of prime minister, requested to see his majesty. But a officer grabbed him by the shoulder and turned him away, saying, “No one is allowed inside.” It took several days, and not until after numerous humiliations, for the king to allow any parliament member to enter his presence again.

In the latter part of April, the weather being very fine, the king decided to leave Berlin and retire to his rural palace at Potsdam. It seems, however, that he was fully aware that his days were nearly ended, for upon leaving the city he said, “Fare thee well, then, Berlin; I am going to die in Potsdam.” The winter had been one of almost unprecedented severity, and the month of May was cold and wet. As the days wore on the king’s health fluctuated, and he was continually struggling between life and death. The king, with all his great imperfections, was a thoughtful man. As he daily drew near the grave, the dread realities of the eternal world oppressed his mind. He sent for three clergymen of distinction, to converse with them respecting his preparation for the final judgment. It seems that they were very faithful with him, reminding him of his many acts of violence and tyranny, alluding particularly to his hanging Baron Schlubhut, at Königsberg, without even a trial. The king endeavored to defend himself, saying,

In late April, with the weather being really nice, the king decided to leave Berlin and retreat to his country palace in Potsdam. However, it seemed he was fully aware that his days were numbered because, as he left the city, he remarked, “Goodbye, Berlin; I’m going to die in Potsdam.” The winter had been unusually harsh, and May was cold and rainy. As time passed, the king's health varied, and he constantly struggled between life and death. Despite all his flaws, the king was a reflective man. As he approached the end, the heavy realities of the afterlife weighed on his mind. He called for three respected clergymen to discuss his preparation for judgment day. It seems they were quite honest with him, reminding him of his many acts of violence and tyranny, especially mentioning his execution of Baron Schlubhut in Königsberg, without any trial. The king tried to defend himself, saying,

“It is true that Schlubhut had no trial, but he certainly deserved his doom. He was a public thief, stealing the taxes he was sent to gather; insolently offering to repay, as if that were184 all the amends required; and saying that it was not good manners to hang a nobleman.”

“It’s true that Schlubhut didn’t go to trial, but he definitely got what he deserved. He was a public thief, stealing the taxes he was supposed to collect; shamelessly offering to pay them back, as if that was all he needed to make up for it; and claiming that it wasn’t proper etiquette to hang a nobleman.”

Still the clergymen pressed upon him his sins, his many acts of oppression, his unrelenting and unforgiving spirit. Singularly enough, most of the members of the tobacco parliament were present at this strange interview; and some of them, courtier like, endeavored to defend the king against several of the charges brought against him. The king might emphatically be called a good hater; and he hated his brother-in-law, the King of England, perhaps with passion as implacable as ever took possession of a human heart. In allusion to this, one of the clergymen, M. Roloff, said,

Still, the clergy confronted him about his sins, his numerous acts of oppression, and his relentless and unforgiving nature. Interestingly, most of the members of the tobacco parliament were present during this unusual meeting; and some of them, like courtiers, tried to defend the king against several of the accusations made against him. The king could certainly be described as someone who hated deeply; he harbored a fierce hatred for his brother-in-law, the King of England, a passion that might have been as unyielding as any emotion that grips a human heart. Referring to this, one of the clergymen, M. Roloff, said,

“There is the forgiveness of enemies. Your majesty is bound to forgive all men. If you do not do this, how can you ask to be forgiven?”

“There is the forgiveness of enemies. Your majesty must forgive everyone. If you don’t do this, how can you expect to be forgiven?”

The king had a logical mind. He could keenly feel where the argument pinched. He seemed quite troubled. After a moment’s pause, he said, “Well, I will do it.” Then, turning to the queen, he said, “You, Phiekin, may write to your brother, after I am dead, and tell him that I forgave him, and died at peace with him.”

The king was very rational. He could clearly sense where the argument was flawed. He looked genuinely troubled. After a brief pause, he said, “Alright, I’ll do it.” Then, turning to the queen, he said, “You, Phiekin, can write to your brother, after I’m gone, and let him know that I forgave him and left this world in peace with him.”

“It would be better,” M. Roloff mildly suggested, “that your majesty should write at once.”

“It would be better,” M. Roloff gently suggested, “for your majesty to write right away.”

“No,” said the king, sternly and peremptorily. “Write after I am dead. That will be safer.”

“No,” said the king, firmly and decisively. “Write after I'm gone. That will be safer.”

At parting, the king bore magnanimous testimony to the fidelity of his spiritual advisers. He said to M. Roloff, who had been the principal speaker, “You do not spare me. It is right. You do your duty like an honest Christian man.”

At parting, the king generously acknowledged the loyalty of his spiritual advisors. He said to M. Roloff, who had been the main speaker, “You don’t hold back with me. That’s fair. You fulfill your duty like a decent Christian man.”

For such a mind and such a body there could be no possible peace or repose in the dying-chamber. Feverish, restless, sleepless, impatient, he knew not what to do with himself. He was incessantly passing from his bed to his wheel-chair and back again, irascibly demanding this and that, complaining of every body and every thing. Sometimes he would declare that he would no longer be sick, but would dress and be well; and scarcely would he get his clothes on ere he would sink in fainting weakness, as though he had not another hour to live. Thus the sad days of sickness wore away as death drew near.

For a mind and body like his, there was no chance of finding peace or comfort in the dying room. Feverish, restless, sleepless, and impatient, he didn’t know what to do with himself. He constantly moved from his bed to his wheelchair and back again, irritably demanding this and that, complaining about everyone and everything. Sometimes he would insist that he wouldn’t be sick anymore and would get dressed and be well; but hardly would he put on his clothes before he would collapse in fainting weakness, as if he had only an hour left to live. And so, the sad days of illness passed as death approached.

185 On the 26th of May the Crown Prince received an express informing him that his father was dying, and that he must hasten to Potsdam with the utmost speed if he would ever again see him alive. Reinsberg was about thirty miles north from Potsdam. It took the courier some hours to reach the place. Frederick, with emotions not easily imagined, started before the dawn of the morning, followed by a train of attendants, to hasten to the death-bed of his father, and to receive the kingly crown of Prussia.

185 On May 26th, the Crown Prince got an urgent message letting him know that his father was dying and that he needed to rush to Potsdam as quickly as possible if he wanted to see him alive again. Reinsberg was about thirty miles north of Potsdam. It took the courier several hours to reach him. Frederick, filled with emotions hard to imagine, left before dawn, accompanied by a group of attendants, to hurry to his father's deathbed and to receive the royal crown of Prussia.

As he reached Potsdam and turned the corner of the palace, he saw, at a little distance, a small crowd gathered around some object; and soon, to his inexpressible surprise, beheld his father, dressed, in his wheel-chair, out of doors, giving directions about laying the foundations of a house he had undertaken to build. The old king, at the sight of his son, threw open his arms, and Frederick, kneeling before him, buried his face in his fathers lap, and they wept together. The affecting scene forced tears into the eyes of all the by-standers. Frederick William, upon recovering from a fainting-fit, had insisted that he would not die, and had compelled his attendants to dress him and conduct him to the open air.

As he arrived in Potsdam and rounded the corner of the palace, he noticed a small crowd gathered around something not far away; to his utter shock, he saw his father, dressed and in his wheelchair, outside, directing the laying of the foundations for a house he was going to build. The old king, upon seeing his son, opened his arms wide, and Frederick, kneeling before him, buried his face in his father's lap, and they both cried together. The touching scene brought tears to the eyes of everyone nearby. Frederick William, after coming out of a fainting spell, had insisted that he wouldn’t die and had forced his attendants to dress him and take him outside.

But the exertion, and the emotion occasioned by the interview with his son, prostrated him again. He was taken back into his palace and to his bed more dead than alive. Reviving a little in the afternoon, he dictated to Frederick all the arrangements he wished to have adopted in reference to his funeral. This curious document is characteristic, in every line, of the strange man. His coffin, which was of massive oak carpentry, had been made for some time, and was in the king’s chamber awaiting its occupant. He not unfrequently, with affected or real complacency, fixed his eyes upon it, saying, “I shall sleep right well there.” In the minute directions to his son as to his burial, he said,

But the effort and the emotions from the meeting with his son exhausted him again. He was taken back to his palace and to his bed feeling more dead than alive. After recovering a bit in the afternoon, he dictated to Frederick all the details he wanted for his funeral. This unusual document reflects the strange man in every line. His coffin, made of solid oak, had been prepared for some time and was in the king’s chamber waiting for him. He often looked at it, either with a show of satisfaction or genuine contentment, saying, “I’ll sleep really well there.” In the detailed instructions to his son about his burial, he said,

“As soon as I am dead, my body must be washed, a white shirt must be placed upon it, and it must be stretched out upon a table. They must then shave and wash me, and cover me with a sheet. After four hours my body must be opened. The surgeons of the regiments in town will examine into the malady which has caused my death. They will then dress me in my best clothes, with all my decorations. Then I am to be placed in my coffin, and thus left all night.

“As soon as I die, my body needs to be washed, a white shirt put on it, and laid out on a table. They will then shave and wash me, and cover me with a sheet. After four hours, my body will be opened. The surgeons in town will examine the illness that caused my death. Then I will be dressed in my best clothes, with all my medals. Finally, I will be placed in my coffin and left there all night.”

186 “The next day the battalions will be formed in complete order, each grenadier with three cartridges. Crape will be placed about the colors, the drums, the fifes, and hautboys. Every officer will have crape on his hat, around his arm, and on the hilt of his sword. The funeral car will be placed near the green staircase, with the heads of the horses toward the river. Eight captains of my regiment will carry me toward the funeral car. These eight captains will also take me out of the car, and carry me into the church.

186 “The next day, the battalions will be lined up perfectly, each grenadier with three rounds. Black fabric will be draped around the flags, the drums, the flutes, and oboes. Every officer will wear black on his hat, around his arm, and on the handle of his sword. The funeral carriage will be placed near the green staircase, with the horses facing the river. Eight captains from my regiment will carry me to the funeral carriage. These eight captains will also take me out of the carriage and carry me into the church.

“As soon as the car shall begin to move, the drums shall beat the dead march, and the hautboys shall play the well-known anthem, ‘O blessed head, covered with blood and wounds!’ The car will stop at the iron gate. The regiment will defile before it. My two sons, Augustus William and Henry, will remain with the regiment. You, as my eldest son, with little Ferdinand, my youngest son, will walk in uniform behind the car.

“As soon as the car starts moving, the drums will play the dead march, and the oboes will perform the familiar anthem, ‘O blessed head, covered with blood and wounds!’ The car will stop at the iron gate. The regiment will march past it. My two sons, Augustus William and Henry, will stay with the regiment. You, as my eldest son, along with little Ferdinand, my youngest son, will walk in uniform behind the car.”

“When the body has been carried into the church, there shall be placed upon the coffin my handsomest sword, my best scarf, a pair of gilt spurs, and a gilt helmet. There shall be brought from Berlin twenty-four six-pounders, which shall make twelve discharges singly. Then the battalions will fire.

“When the body is brought into the church, my finest sword, my best scarf, a pair of gold spurs, and a gold helmet will be placed on the coffin. Twenty-four six-pound cannons will be brought from Berlin, which will fire twelve shots individually. Then the battalions will shoot.”

“I forbid any funeral sermon to be preached over me. In the evening a festival will be given in the great room in the garden. The cask of hock which I have in my cellar must be opened. At this repast good wine alone shall be drank.

“I do not want any funeral sermon preached for me. In the evening, there will be a celebration in the big room in the garden. The cask of hock I have in my cellar should be opened. At this meal, we will drink only good wine."

“A fortnight after a funeral sermon shall be preached for me in all the churches. The text shall be, ‘I have fought a good fight; I have finished my course; I have kept the faith.’ They shall not speak any thing of my life, of my actions, nor any thing personal of me. But they shall tell the people that I confessed my sins, and that I died in full confidence of the goodness of God and of my Savior.”

“Two weeks after my funeral sermon is preached in all the churches, the message will be, ‘I have fought a good fight; I have finished my course; I have kept the faith.’ They won’t talk about my life, my actions, or anything personal about me. Instead, they will tell everyone that I confessed my sins and that I died believing in the goodness of God and my Savior.”

During the next three days the king suffered much from weakness and a violent cough. He was often heard murmuring prayers, and would say to those around him, “Pray for me; pray for me.” Several times he pathetically exclaimed, “Lord, enter not into judgment with thy servant, for in thy sight shall no man living be justified.” A favorite hymn was often sung to him containing the words, “Naked came I into the world, and naked187 shall I go out of it.” At this passage he repeatedly exclaimed, with much vivacity, as though it were an admirable joke, “No, not quite naked; I shall have my uniform on.”

For the next three days, the king experienced a lot of weakness and a severe cough. People often heard him murmuring prayers, and he would say to those around him, “Pray for me; pray for me.” Several times, he sadly exclaimed, “Lord, don’t judge your servant, for no one living is justified in your sight.” A favorite hymn was frequently sung to him, with the words, “Naked came I into the world, and naked187 shall I go out of it.” At this line, he frequently responded with much energy, as if it were a great joke, “No, not quite naked; I’ll still be wearing my uniform.”

At one o’clock in the morning of May 31 he sent for a clergyman, M. Cochius, and seemed to be in great distress both of body and of mind. “I fear,” said he, “that I have a great deal of pain yet to suffer. I can remember nothing. I can not pray. I have forgotten all my prayers.” M. Cochius endeavored to console him. At the close of the interview the king said, sadly, “Fare thee well. We shall most probably never meet again in this world.” He was then rolled, in his wheel-chair, into the chamber of the queen.

At one o’clock in the morning on May 31, he called for a clergyman, M. Cochius, and appeared to be in significant distress both physically and mentally. “I’m afraid,” he said, “that I have a lot of pain still to endure. I can’t remember anything. I can’t pray. I’ve forgotten all my prayers.” M. Cochius tried to comfort him. At the end of the meeting, the king said sadly, “Goodbye. We most likely will never meet again in this world.” He was then wheeled into the queen’s chamber.

“Oh, Phiekin, my Phiekin!” said he, “thou must rise and help me what thou canst. This day I am going to die. Thou must be with me this day.”

“Oh, Phiekin, my Phiekin!” he said, “you must get up and help me however you can. Today I’m going to die. You need to be with me today.”

The dying king strangely decided, at that late hour, to abdicate. All the officials were hurriedly summoned to his chamber. The poor old man, bandaged, with his night-cap on, and a mantle thrown over him, was wheeled into the anteroom where the company was assembled. As he saw Pöllnitz he exclaimed, sadly, “It is all over.” Noticing one in tears, he said to him, kindly, “Nay, my friend, this is a debt we all have to pay.” The king then solemnly abdicated in favor of his “good son Frederick.” The deed was made out, signed, and sealed. But scarcely was it executed ere the king fainted, and was carried to his bed. Still the expiring lamp of life flickered in its socket. About eleven o’clock the clergyman, M. Cochius, was sent for. The king was in his bed, apparently speechless. He, however, revived a little, and was in great pain, often exclaiming, “Pray for me; pray for me; my trust is in the Savior.” He called for a mirror, and carefully examined his face for some moments, saying at intervals, “Not so worn out as I thought.” “An ugly face.” “As good as dead already.”31

The dying king oddly chose, at that late hour, to abdicate. All the officials were quickly summoned to his room. The poor old man, bandaged, wearing his nightcap, and draped in a robe, was wheeled into the anteroom where everyone had gathered. When he saw Pöllnitz, he said sadly, “It’s all over.” Noticing one person in tears, he gently told him, “No, my friend, this is a debt we all have to pay.” The king then formally abdicated in favor of his “good son Frederick.” The document was prepared, signed, and sealed. But barely was it done before the king fainted and was taken back to bed. Yet the flickering light of life remained. Around eleven o’clock, the clergyman, M. Cochius, was called. The king lay in bed, seemingly unable to speak. He did, however, regain some strength and was in a lot of pain, often crying out, “Pray for me; pray for me; my trust is in the Savior.” He asked for a mirror and carefully looked at his face for a few moments, commenting at times, “Not as worn out as I thought.” “An ugly face.” “Almost dead already.”31

188 He then summoned his physician, M. Pitsch, and said, “Feel my pulse. Tell me how long this will last.”

188 He then called for his doctor, M. Pitsch, and said, “Check my pulse. How long will this last?”

The physician replied, “Alas! not long.”

The doctor responded, “Unfortunately, not for long.”

“Say not alas,” added the king. “But how do you know?”

“Don’t say alas,” the king added. “But how do you know?”

“The pulse is gone,” the physician said, sadly.

"The pulse is gone," the doctor said, sadly.

The king seemed surprised, raised his hand, opening and shutting the fingers, and then said, “It is impossible. How could I move my fingers so if the pulse were gone?”

The king looked surprised, raised his hand, opened and closed his fingers, and then said, “That's impossible. How could I move my fingers like this if the pulse were gone?”

M. Pitsch made no reply. The king, probably feeling at the moment some physical monition of approaching death, cried out, “Lord Jesus, to thee I live. Lord Jesus, to thee I die. In life and in death thou art my gain.”

M. Pitsch didn't respond. The king, likely sensing some physical sign of impending death, shouted, “Lord Jesus, I live for you. Lord Jesus, I die for you. In life and in death, you are my gain.”

These were his last words. He fainted, and, after a few gasps, died. It was about two o’clock in the afternoon of Tuesday, the 31st of May, 1740. Thus the soul of Frederick William passed to the spirit land, in the fifty-first year of its sojourn here on earth.

These were his last words. He collapsed, and after a few gasps, he died. It was around two o’clock in the afternoon on Tuesday, May 31, 1740. Thus, the soul of Frederick William departed for the spirit world, in the fifty-first year of its time here on earth.

The king having breathed his last, Frederick, in tears, retired to a private room, there to reflect upon the sad receding past, and upon the opening future, with the vast responsibilities thus suddenly thrown upon him. He was now King of Prussia; and not only absolute master of himself, but absolute monarch over a realm containing two millions two hundred and forty thousand souls. He was restrained by no Parliament, no Constitution, no customs or laws superior to his own resolves. He could take advice of others, and call energetic men to his aid, but his will alone was sovereign.

After the king passed away, Frederick, in tears, went to a private room to think about the sorrowful past and the uncertain future, burdened by the huge responsibilities suddenly placed on him. He was now King of Prussia; not only was he completely in control of himself, but he was also the absolute ruler of a kingdom with two million two hundred and forty thousand people. He wasn’t limited by any Parliament, Constitution, or laws that were greater than his own decisions. He could seek advice from others and enlist capable people to assist him, but his will alone was supreme.

The Prussian kingdom, which thus fell to Frederick by “divine right,” consisted of an assemblage of duchies, marquisates, principalities, and lordships, comprising an area of nearly fifty-seven thousand square miles, being about the size of the State of Michigan, and very similarly situated as to climate and soil. It was unfortunately not a compact country, as several of the states could only be reached by passing through the territories of other powers. The annual revenue amounted to a little over six million dollars. There was also in the treasury a sum, which Frederick William had saved, of about seven million dollars. The army consisted of seventy-six thousand men, in the highest state of discipline, and abundantly furnished with all the materiel of war.

The Prussian kingdom, which Frederick inherited by "divine right," was made up of a collection of duchies, marquisates, principalities, and lordships, covering an area of nearly fifty-seven thousand square miles, about the size of the State of Michigan, with a similar climate and soil. Unfortunately, it was not a unified country, as several of the states could only be accessed by going through the territories of other powers. The annual revenue was just over six million dollars. Additionally, there was about seven million dollars in the treasury that Frederick William had saved. The army had seventy-six thousand men, highly disciplined, and well-equipped with all the materiel of war.

189 Quite an entire change seemed immediately to take place in the character of the young king. M. Bielfeld was the first who was introduced to his apartment after the death of Frederick William. Frederick was in tears, and seemed much affected.

189 A complete transformation appeared to happen right away in the young king's character. M. Bielfeld was the first person allowed into his room after Frederick William's death. Frederick was in tears and clearly very moved.

“You do not know,” said he to M. Bielfeld, “what I have lost in losing my father.”

"You have no idea," he told M. Bielfeld, "what I've lost by losing my father."

“It is true, sire,” Bielfeld replied, “but I know very well what you have gained in getting a kingdom. Your loss is great, but your motives for consolation are very powerful.”

“It’s true, your majesty,” Bielfeld replied, “but I understand very well what you’ve gained by acquiring a kingdom. Your loss is significant, but your reasons for finding comfort are quite strong.”

The king smiled, and immediately entered very vigorously upon business. It was not possible, under these circumstances, for him deeply to mourn over the death of so tyrannical a father. Frederick was twenty-eight years of age. He is described as a handsome young man, five feet seven inches in stature, and of graceful presence. The funeral ceremonies of the deceased monarch were conducted essentially according to the programme already given. The body of the king mouldered to dust in the sepulchre of his fathers. His spirit returned to the God who gave it.

The king smiled and quickly got to work. Given the situation, he couldn’t really mourn the death of such a tyrannical father. Frederick was twenty-eight years old. He was described as a handsome young man, standing five feet seven inches tall, with a graceful presence. The funeral for the deceased monarch followed the planned program. The king's body decayed in the tomb of his ancestors. His spirit returned to the God who gave it.

“The mind is its own space, and within itself
"Can turn a hell into heaven, and a heaven into hell."

If these words are true, which Milton places in the lips of the apostate fiend, it is appalling to think of the ungoverned and ungovernable spirit with which the king entered the unseen world. We know not that there is any power in the alembic of death to transform the character; and certain it is that if Frederick William carried with him to the abode of spirits the same character which he cherished in this world, there are but few who could be rendered happy by his society. But we must leave him with his God, and return to the stormy scenes upon which his son now entered.

If these words are true, which Milton puts into the mouth of the fallen angel, it’s frightening to think about the wild and uncontrollable spirit with which the king stepped into the unseen world. We don’t know if death has the power to change a person’s character; and it’s clear that if Frederick William brought the same character he had in this world to the spirit realm, very few would find joy in his company. But we must leave him with his God and return to the turbulent events that his son is now facing.

The young sovereign commenced his reign with the utterance of very noble sentiments. The day after his accession he assembled the chief officers of his father to administer to them the oath of allegiance. He urged them to be humane in the exercise of all authority which might be delegated to them.

The young ruler began his reign with some really noble words. The day after taking the throne, he gathered his father’s top officials to have them swear their loyalty. He encouraged them to be kind in the way they used any power given to them.

“Our grand care,” said he, “will be to further the country’s well-being, and to make every one of our subjects contented and happy. If it ever chance that my particular interest and the190 general good of my country should seem to conflict, it is my wish that the latter should always be preferred.”

“Our main priority,” he said, “will be to promote the country's well-being and ensure that every one of our citizens is content and happy. If it ever happens that my personal interests and the overall good of my country seem to clash, I want the latter to always take precedence.”

FREDERICK MEETING HIS MINISTERS.

191

191

CHAPTER X.
THE ACCESSION OF FREDERICK II.

Establishment of the Berlin Academy of Sciences.—Religious Toleration.—A Free Press.—Sternness of the young King.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Provision for the Queen-mother.—Absolutism of the King.—Journey to Strasbourg.—First Interview with Voltaire.

Founding of the Berlin Academy of Sciences.—Religious Freedom.—An Independent Press.—The strictness of the young King.—The King’s home life.—Support for the Queen Mother.—The King’s absolute rule.—Visit to Strasbourg.—First encounter with Voltaire.

The conduct of Frederick the Second, upon his accession to the throne, was in accordance with his professions. The winter had been intensely cold. The spring was late and wet. There was almost a famine in the land. The public granaries, which the foresight of his father had established, contained large stores of grain, which were distributed to the poor at very low prices. A thousand aged and destitute women in Berlin were provided with rooms, well warmed, where they spun in the service of the king, with good wages, and in their grateful hearts ever thanking their benefactor. He abolished the use of torture in criminal trials, not forgetting that he himself had come very near having his limbs stretched upon the rack. This important decree, which was hailed with joy all over Prussia, was issued the third day after his accession.

The actions of Frederick the Second when he took the throne matched his promises. The winter had been extremely cold, and spring arrived late and rainy. The country was on the brink of famine. The public granaries, set up by his father’s foresight, held large supplies of grain, which were given to the poor at very low prices. A thousand elderly and needy women in Berlin were given warm rooms where they could spin in service of the king, earning good wages, and they were always grateful to their benefactor. He put an end to the use of torture in criminal trials, remembering that he himself had nearly been subjected to it. This significant decree, celebrated throughout Prussia, was issued three days after he took the throne.

Very vigorous measures were immediately adopted to establish an Academy of Sciences. The celebrated French philosopher Maupertuis, who had just obtained great renown from measuring a degree of the meridian at the polar circle, was invited to organize this very important institute. The letter to the philosopher, written by the king but a few days after his accession, was as follows:

Very strong actions were quickly taken to set up an Academy of Sciences. The famous French philosopher Maupertuis, who had recently gained much recognition for measuring a degree of the meridian at the polar circle, was invited to organize this important institute. The letter to the philosopher, written by the king just a few days after his accession, was as follows:

“My heart and my inclination excited in me, from the moment I mounted the throne, the desire of having you here, that you might put our Berlin Academy in the shape you alone are capable of giving it. Come then, come, and insert into this wild crab-tree the sciences, that it may bear fruit. You have shown the figure of the earth to mankind; show also to a king how sweet it is to possess such a man as you.

“Ever since I took the throne, my heart and feelings have been stirred by the desire to have you here to shape our Berlin Academy in the unique way that only you can. So please, come and bring the sciences to this wild crabapple tree, so it can bear fruit. You’ve shown humanity the shape of the earth; now show a king how wonderful it is to have someone like you.”

“Monsieur De Maupertuis, your very affectionate
Frederick.”

“Mr. De Maupertuis, your very dear
Frederick.”

192 On the 22d of June a complaint was made to the king that the Roman Catholic schools were perverted to seducing Protestants to become Catholics. Frederick returned the complaint with the following words written upon the margin:

192 On June 22nd, a complaint was brought to the king that the Roman Catholic schools were being used to lure Protestants into converting to Catholicism. Frederick responded to the complaint with the following notes written in the margin:

“All religions must be tolerated, and the king’s solicitor must have an eye that none of them make unjust encroachments on the other; for in this country every man must get to heaven his own way.”

“All religions must be accepted, and the king’s lawyer should ensure that none of them make unfair intrusions on each other; because in this country, everyone must find their own path to heaven.”

It is a fact worthy of mention, as illustrative of the neglect with which the king had regarded his own German language in his devotion to the French tongue, that in these three lines there were eleven words wrongly spelled.

It’s worth noting, as an illustration of how little the king cared about his own German language while being devoted to French, that in these three lines, there were eleven misspelled words.

But the good sense of the utterance, so rare in those dark days, electrified thousands of minds. It drew the attention of Europe to Frederick, and gave him wide-spread renown.

But the wisdom of those words, so uncommon in those dark times, energized thousands of minds. It caught the attention of Europe towards Frederick and made him widely known.

Under Frederick William the newspaper press in Berlin amounted to nothing. The capital had not a single daily paper. Speedy destruction would crush any writer who, in journal, pamphlet, or book, should publish any thing displeasing to the king. Frederick proclaimed freedom of the press. Two newspapers were established in Berlin, one in French and one in German. Distinguished men were selected to edit them. One was a noted writer from Hamburg. Frederick, in his absolutism, had adopted the resolve not to interfere with the freedom of the press unless there were some gross violation of what he deemed proper. He allowed very bitter satires to be circulated in Berlin against himself, simply replying to the remonstrances of his ministers, “The press is free.”

Under Frederick William, the newspaper scene in Berlin was virtually nonexistent. The capital didn’t have a single daily newspaper. Any writer who dared to publish something the king found displeasing in a journal, pamphlet, or book would face swift destruction. Frederick proclaimed freedom of the press. Two newspapers were launched in Berlin, one in French and the other in German. Notable figures were chosen to edit them, including a well-known writer from Hamburg. In his absolutism, Frederick decided not to interfere with press freedom unless there was a serious breach of what he considered acceptable. He even allowed harsh satirical pieces about himself to be spread in Berlin, simply responding to his ministers' concerns with, “The press is free.”

Such were the measures adopted during the first week of Frederick’s reign. He soon abolished the enormously expensive regiment of giants, and organized, instead of them, four regiments composed of men of the usual stature.32 Within a few months he added sixteen thousand men to his already large army, thus193 raising the number of the standing army of his little realm to over ninety thousand men. He compelled his old associates to feel, and some of them very keenly, that he was no longer their comrade, but their king. One of the veteran and most honored officers of Frederick William, in his expressions of condolence and congratulation, ventured to suggest the hope that he and his sons might continue to “occupy the same posts and retain the same authority as in the last reign.”

These were the actions taken in the first week of Frederick’s reign. He quickly got rid of the very expensive regiment of giants and instead formed four regiments made up of average-sized men. Within a few months, he added sixteen thousand soldiers to his already large army, bringing the total number of his standing army to over ninety thousand men. He made his old associates realize—some quite painfully—that he was no longer their equal, but their king. One of the veteran and most respected officers from Frederick William, while offering his condolences and congratulations, dared to express the hope that he and his sons would continue to “hold the same positions and have the same authority as in the previous reign.”

“You will retain your posts,” said the king, severely. “I have no thought of making any change. But as to authority, I know of none there can be but what resides in the king that is sovereign.”

“You will keep your posts,” said the king, sternly. “I have no intention of making any changes. But regarding authority, I know of no one who holds it except for the sovereign king.”

The Marquis of Schwedt advanced to meet the new-made sovereign, his face beaming jovially, and with outstretched hands, as in the days of their old companionship. Frederick, fixing his cold eye steadfastly upon him, almost floored him with the rebuff, “My cousin, I am now king.”

The Marquis of Schwedt stepped forward to greet the newly crowned king, his face shining cheerfully, with arms open wide, just like during their old friendship. Frederick, maintaining a cold, steady gaze on him, nearly stunned him with his response, “My cousin, I am now king.”

General Schulenburg, trembling in memory of the fact that he had once, in court-martial, given his vote in favor of beheading the Crown Prince, hastened from his post at Landsberg to congratulate the prince upon his accession to the throne. To his extreme chagrin and indignation, he was repelled by the words, “An officer should not quit his post without order. Return immediately to Landsberg.”

General Schulenburg, shaking at the memory of having once voted for the beheading of the Crown Prince during a court-martial, rushed from his post at Landsberg to congratulate the prince on his ascension to the throne. To his utter frustration and anger, he was met with the words, “An officer should not leave his post without orders. Return to Landsberg immediately.”

As an administrative officer the young sovereign was inexorable and heartless in the extreme. Those who had befriended him in the days of his adversity were not remembered with any profusion of thanks or favors. Those who had been in sympathy with his father in his persecution of the Crown Prince encountered no spirit of revenge. Apparently dead to affection, and oblivious of the past, the young sovereign only sought for those agents who could best assist him in the work to which he now consecrated all his energies—the endeavor to aggrandize the kingdom of Prussia. Poor Doris Ritter received but a trivial pension for her terrible wrongs. Lieutenant Keith, his friend and confederate in his contemplated flight, who had barely escaped with his life from Wesel, after ten years of exile hastened home, hoping that his faithful services and sufferings would meet with a reward. The king appointed him merely lieutenant colonel,194 with scarcely sufficient income to keep him from absolute want. Perhaps the king judged that the young man was not capable of filling, to the advantage of the state, a higher station, and he had no idea of sacrificing his interests to gratitude.

As an administrative officer, the young ruler was relentless and extremely cold-hearted. Those who had supported him during his difficult times were not remembered with any real gratitude or kindness. Those who had sympathized with his father during the persecution of the Crown Prince faced no vengeance. Seemingly numb to affection and unaware of the past, the young ruler only sought out those who could best help him in his mission to dedicate all his efforts to expanding the kingdom of Prussia. Poor Doris Ritter received only a meager pension for her considerable suffering. Lieutenant Keith, his friend and partner in his planned escape, barely managed to survive his time in Wesel and rushed home after ten years in exile, hoping his loyal service and pain would be rewarded. The king appointed him only as lieutenant colonel,194 with barely enough income to keep him from total poverty. Perhaps the king felt that the young man was not capable of handling a higher position that would benefit the state, and he had no intention of sacrificing his own interests for the sake of gratitude.

Ten years later the king made poor Keith a present of a purse of gold, containing about seven thousand dollars, under circumstances which reflected much credit upon the donor. In the following quaint style Carlyle records the incident:

Ten years later, the king gave poor Keith a gift of a purse filled with gold, containing about seven thousand dollars, in a way that showed great generosity on the part of the king. In his unique style, Carlyle writes about the event:

“The king did a beautiful thing to Lieutenant Keith the other day—that poor Keith who was nailed to the gallows, in effigy, for him at Wesel, long ago, and got far less than he expected. The other day there had been a grand review, part of it extending into Madame Knyphausen’s grounds, who is Keith’s mother-in-law.

“The king did something really nice for Lieutenant Keith the other day—that poor Keith who was hung in effigy for him at Wesel, a long time ago, and got way less than he anticipated. Recently, there was a big military review, part of which spilled over into Madame Knyphausen's grounds, who happens to be Keith's mother-in-law.”

“‘Monsieur Keith,’ said the king to him, ‘I am sorry we had to spoil Madame’s fine shrubbery by our manœuvres; have the goodness to give her that, with my apologies,’ and handed him a pretty casket with key to it, and in the interior 10,000 crowns.

“‘Mr. Keith,’ the king said to him, ‘I’m sorry we had to ruin Madame’s beautiful garden with our actions; please give her this, along with my apologies,’ and handed him a nice box with a key, and inside were 10,000 crowns.”

“Not a shrub of Madame’s had been cut or injured. But the king, you see, would count it £1500 of damage done, and here is acknowledgment for it, which please accept. Is not that a gracious little touch?”

“Not a single plant of Madame’s has been cut or harmed. But the king, you know, would consider it £1500 worth of damage, and here’s a statement for it, which I hope you’ll accept. Isn’t that a nice little gesture?”

One wretched man, who had been the guilty accomplice of the Crown Prince in former scenes of guilt and shame, was so troubled by the neglect with which he was treated that he hanged himself.

One miserable man, who had been the guilty partner of the Crown Prince in past acts of wrongdoing and disgrace, was so distressed by the neglect he faced that he took his own life.

Frederick, as Crown Prince, had been quite methodical in the distribution of his time, and had cultivated rigid habits of industry. Now, fully conscious of the immense duties and cares which would devolve upon him as king, he entered into a very systematic arrangement of the employments of each hour, to which he rigidly adhered during nearly the whole of his reign of forty-six years. He ordered his servants to wake him at four o’clock every morning. Being naturally inclined to sleep, he found it hard to shake off his lethargy. The attendants were therefore directed, every morning, to place upon his forehead a towel dipped in cold water. He thus continued to rise at four o’clock, summer and winter, until an advanced age.

Frederick, as Crown Prince, was very organized with how he spent his time and had developed strict work habits. Fully aware of the significant responsibilities and challenges that would come with being king, he set up a detailed schedule for every hour of his day, which he consistently followed for almost his entire forty-six-year reign. He instructed his servants to wake him at 4:00 AM every morning. Since he naturally liked to sleep, it was tough for him to shake off his drowsiness. Therefore, his attendants were told to put a cold, wet towel on his forehead each morning. He kept this routine of getting up at 4:00 AM, both summer and winter, well into his later years.

A single servant lighted his fire, shaved him, and dressed his195 hair. He always wore the uniform of his guards, and allowed only fifteen minutes for his morning toilet. He did not indulge in the luxury of slippers or dressing-gown, though occasionally, when ill, he put on a sort of linen wrapper, but even then he wore his military boots. Only on one day in the year did he appear in silk stockings, and that was on the birthday of his neglected wife, when he formally called upon her with his congratulations.

A single servant lit his fire, shaved him, and styled his hair. He always wore the uniform of his guards and only took fifteen minutes for his morning routine. He didn’t indulge in the luxury of slippers or a bathrobe, although occasionally, when he was sick, he put on a kind of linen wrap, but even then he wore his military boots. He only wore silk stockings one day a year, which was on the birthday of his neglected wife, when he officially visited her to extend his congratulations.

The ordinary routine of the day, when not absent on travels or campaigns, was as follows: As soon as dressed, one of his pages brought the packet of letters. The number was usually very large. He employed himself in reading these letters till eight o’clock. By a particular style of folding, he designated those to which no reply was to be returned, those to which there was to be an immediate reply, and those which required further consideration. At eight o’clock one of the four secretaries of the cabinet entered, took the three parcels, and, while the king was breakfasting, received from him very briefly the character of the response to be made.

The daily routine, when he wasn't away on trips or campaigns, was as follows: As soon as he got dressed, one of his pages would bring him a bundle of letters. There were usually a lot of them. He spent his time reading these letters until eight o'clock. By using a specific way of folding, he marked which letters didn't need a response, which needed an immediate reply, and which required more thought. At eight o'clock, one of the four cabinet secretaries would come in, take the three parcels, and while the king was having breakfast, he briefly got the instructions for how to respond.

At nine o’clock Frederick received one of the general officers, and arranged with him all the military affairs of the day, usually dismissing him loaded with business. At ten o’clock he reviewed some one of the regiments; and then, after attending parade, devoted himself to literary pursuits or private correspondence until dinner-time. This was the portion of the day he usually appropriated to authorship. He was accustomed to compose, both in prose and verse, while slowly traversing the graveled walks of his garden.

At nine o’clock, Frederick met with one of the general officers and discussed all the military matters of the day, often sending him off with a full agenda. By ten o’clock, he reviewed one of the regiments, and after attending the parade, he focused on writing or personal correspondence until dinner. This was the part of the day he typically dedicated to writing. He was used to composing, both in prose and poetry, while leisurely walking along the gravel paths of his garden.

He was particularly fond of dogs of the graceful greyhound breed, and might often be seen with book and pencil in his hand, in the shady walks, with three or four Italian greyhounds gamboling around him, apparently entirely absorbed in deep meditation. A page usually followed at a short distance behind, to attend his call. At twelve o’clock he dined with invited guests. As quite a number of distinguished men always met at his table, and the king was very fond of good living, as well as of the “feast of reason and the flow of soul,” the repast was frequently prolonged until nearly three o’clock. At dinner he was very social, priding himself not a little upon his conversational powers.

He really loved graceful greyhounds and could often be spotted in the shady paths, book and pencil in hand, with three or four Italian greyhounds playing around him, seemingly lost in deep thought. A page usually trailed close behind to respond to his needs. At noon, he would have lunch with invited guests. Since a good number of distinguished men often gathered at his table, and the king really enjoyed fine dining as well as stimulating conversation, meals often lasted until nearly three o'clock. During dinner, he was very sociable and took a lot of pride in his conversational skills.

196

196

FREDERICK IN THE GARDEN.

In pleasant weather he took a long walk after dinner, and generally at so rapid a pace that it was difficult for most persons to keep up with him. At four o’clock the secretaries brought to him the answers to the letters which they had received from him in the morning. He glanced them over, examining some with care. Then, until six o’clock, he devoted himself to reading, to literary compositions, and to the affairs of the Academy, in which he took a very deep interest. At six o’clock he had a private musical concert, at which he performed himself upon the flute. He was passionately fond of this instrument, and continued to play upon it until, in old age, his teeth decaying, he was unable to produce the sounds he wished.

In nice weather, he took long walks after dinner, usually at such a quick pace that most people found it hard to keep up with him. At four o’clock, the secretaries brought him the replies to the letters he had sent out in the morning. He skimmed through them, carefully reviewing some. Then, until six o’clock, he focused on reading, writing, and the activities of the Academy, which he was very passionate about. At six o’clock, he held a private music concert, where he played the flute himself. He loved this instrument and continued to play it until, in old age, his decaying teeth made it difficult for him to create the sounds he wanted.

After the concert, which usually continued an hour, he engaged197 in conversation until ten o’clock. He then took supper with a few friends, and at eleven retired to his bed.

After the concert, which usually lasted an hour, he chatted until ten o’clock. He then had supper with a few friends and went to bed at eleven.

To his mother he was very considerate in all his manifestations of filial affection, while, at the same time, he caused her very distinctly to understand that she was to take no share whatever in the affairs of government. When she addressed him, upon his accession to the throne, as “Your Majesty,” he replied, “Call me son. That is the title of all others most agreeable to me.” He decreed to her the title of “Her Majesty the Queen-mother.” The palace of Monbijou was assigned her, where she was surrounded with every luxury, treated with the most distinguished attention, and her court was the acknowledged centre of fashionable society.

To his mother, he was very thoughtful in all his expressions of love, while also making it clear that she was not to be involved in government matters. When she addressed him as “Your Majesty” after he became king, he responded, “Just call me son. That’s the title I prefer most.” He granted her the title of “Her Majesty the Queen-mother.” The palace of Monbijou was designated for her, where she enjoyed every luxury, received the highest level of attention, and her court became the known center of fashionable society.

He seems ever to have treated his nominal wife, Queen Elizabeth, politely. For some months after the accession he was quite prominent in his public attentions to her. But these intervals of association grew gradually more rare, until after three or four years they ceased almost entirely.

He always treated his so-called wife, Queen Elizabeth, politely. For a few months after he became king, he was really noticeable in how he publicly paid attention to her. But these times they spent together slowly became less common, until after three or four years, they nearly stopped altogether.

Frederick, under the tutelage of his stern father, had not enjoyed the privileges of foreign travel. While other princes of far humbler expectations were taking the grand tour of Europe, the Crown Prince was virtually imprisoned in the barracks, day after day, engaged in the dull routine of drilling the giant guard. After the death of his father he did not condescend to be crowned, proudly assuming, in contradiction to some of his earlier teachings, that the crown was already placed upon his brow by divine power. He, however, exacted from the people throughout his realms oaths of allegiance, and in person visited several of the principal cities to administer those oaths with much pomp of ceremony. The Danish envoy, writing home to his government respecting the administration of Frederick, says,

Frederick, under the strict guidance of his demanding father, had missed out on the benefits of traveling abroad. While other princes with much lower expectations were enjoying a grand tour of Europe, the Crown Prince was essentially trapped in the barracks, day after day, stuck in the boring routine of drilling the enormous guard. After his father's death, he didn’t bother getting crowned, proudly believing, despite some of his earlier teachings, that the divine had already placed the crown on his head. However, he did require the people in his realms to take oaths of loyalty, and he personally visited several major cities to administer those oaths with great ceremony. The Danish envoy, reporting back to his government about Frederick’s reign, says,

“I must observe that hitherto the King of Prussia does, as it were, every thing himself; and that, excepting the finance minister, who preaches frugality, and finds for that doctrine uncommon acceptance, his majesty allows no counseling from any minister; so that the minister for foreign affairs has nothing to do but to expedite the orders he receives, his advice not being asked upon any matter. And so it is with the other ministers.”

“I’ve noticed that up until now, the King of Prussia pretty much does everything himself; and aside from the finance minister, who promotes frugality and has found that idea quite popular, his majesty doesn’t take advice from any minister. This means that the foreign affairs minister only has to carry out the orders he gets, without being asked for his opinion on anything. It’s the same with the other ministers.”

On the 12th of June, but a fortnight after his accession, Frederick198 wrote from Charlottenburg to Voltaire, who was then at Brussels, as follows:

On June 12th, just two weeks after he took the throne, Frederick198 wrote from Charlottenburg to Voltaire, who was in Brussels at the time, as follows:

My dear Voltaire,—Resist no longer the eagerness I have to see you. Do, in my favor, whatever your humanity allows. In the end of August I go to Wesel, and perhaps farther. Promise that you will come and join me, for I could not live happy nor die tranquil without having embraced you. Thousand compliments to the Marquise” (Madame Du Châtelet, the divine Emilie). “I am busy with both hands—working at the army with one hand, at the people and the fine arts with the other.”

My dear Voltaire,—Please don’t hold back my excitement to see you any longer. Do whatever you can to make it happen. I’m going to Wesel at the end of August, and possibly even further. Promise me you’ll come and meet me because I can't be happy or feel at ease without hugging you. Sending a thousand compliments to the Marquise” (Madame Du Châtelet, the divine Emilie). “I’m busy juggling two things—working on the army with one hand and focusing on the people and the fine arts with the other.”

It would seem that Frederick was not very willing to receive, as his guest, the divine Emilie, who occupied so questionable a position in the household of Voltaire; for he wrote again, on the 5th of August, in reply to a letter from Voltaire, saying,

It seems that Frederick was not very keen on having the divine Emilie, who held such a questionable role in Voltaire's household, as his guest; he wrote again on August 5th, in response to a letter from Voltaire, saying,

“I will write to Madame Du Châtelet in compliance with your wish. To speak to you frankly concerning her journey, it is Voltaire, it is you, it is my friend that I desire to see. I can not say whether I shall travel or not travel. Adieu, dear friend, sublime spirit, first-born of thinking beings. Love me always sincerely, and be persuaded that none can love and esteem you more than I.”

“I will write to Madame Du Châtelet as you requested. To be honest about her journey, I really want to see you, Voltaire, and my friend. I can’t say for sure if I’ll travel or not. Goodbye, dear friend, brilliant spirit, first among thinkers. Always love me sincerely, and know that no one can love and respect you more than I do.”

Again the next day he wrote:

Again the next day he wrote:

“You will have received a letter from me dated yesterday. This is the second I write to you from Berlin. I refer you to what was in the other. If it must be that Emilie accompany Apollo, I consent. But if I could see you alone, that is what I should prefer. I should be too much dazzled. I could not stand so much splendor all at once. It would overpower me. I should need the veil of Moses to temper the united radiance of your two divinities.”

“You should have received a letter from me dated yesterday. This is the second one I’m writing to you from Berlin. Please refer to what I said in the other letter. If Emilie has to go with Apollo, I agree. But if I could see you alone, that’s what I would prefer. I would be too dazzled. I couldn’t handle so much brilliance all at once. It would overwhelm me. I would need Moses’ veil to soften the combined glow of your two divine beings.”

In return, Voltaire compliments the king very profusely. Speaking of the book of the royal author, the Anti-Machiavel, he writes:

In return, Voltaire praises the king with great enthusiasm. Talking about the book by the royal author, the Anti-Machiavel, he writes:

“It is a monument for the latest posterity; the only book worthy of a king for these fifteen hundred years.”33

“It is a monument for future generations; the only book worthy of a king for the last fifteen hundred years.”33

199 Frederick was very desirous of visiting France, whose literature, science, and distinguished men he so greatly admired. Early Monday morning, the 15th of August, the king left Potsdam to visit his sister Wilhelmina, intending then to continue his journey incognito into France, and, if circumstances favored, as far as Paris. The king assumed the name of the Count Dufour. His next younger brother, William, eighteen years of age, accompanied him, also under an assumed name. William was now Crown Prince, to inherit the throne should Frederick leave no children. Six other gentlemen composed the party. They traveled in two coaches, with but few attendants, and avoided all unnecessary display.

199 Frederick really wanted to visit France, whose literature, science, and notable figures he admired so much. Early Monday morning, August 15, the king left Potsdam to see his sister Wilhelmina, planning to then continue his journey incognito into France, and, if things went well, as far as Paris. The king took on the name Count Dufour. His younger brother, William, who was eighteen, joined him, also under a fake name. William was now Crown Prince, set to inherit the throne if Frederick had no children. Six other gentlemen made up the group. They traveled in two coaches with only a few attendants, steering clear of any unnecessary showiness.

Frederick spent three days with his sister at Baireuth. Wilhelmina was disappointed in his appearance. The brotherly affection she looked for was not found. He was cold, stately, disposed to banter her, and his conversation seemed “set on stilts.” Leaving Baireuth, the king continued his journey very rapidly toward Strasbourg. When they reached Kehl, on the eastern banks of the Rhine, they were informed that they could not cross the river without passports. One of the gentlemen drew up the necessary document, which the king signed and sealed with his signet-ring. The curiosity of the landlord had been excited, and he watched his guests from a closet. Seeing what was done, he said to Frederstorf, the king’s valet, “Count Dufour is the King of Prussia, sir; I saw him sign his name.” He was bribed to keep the secret.

Frederick spent three days with his sister in Baireuth. Wilhelmina was let down by his appearance. The brotherly love she hoped for wasn’t there. He was distant, formal, inclined to tease her, and his conversation felt "stilted." After leaving Baireuth, the king quickly continued his journey toward Strasbourg. When they reached Kehl, on the eastern shore of the Rhine, they were told that they couldn’t cross the river without passports. One of the men prepared the required document, which the king signed and sealed with his signet ring. The landlord's curiosity was piqued, and he watched his guests from a cupboard. Seeing what happened, he told Frederstorf, the king’s valet, “Count Dufour is the King of Prussia, sir; I saw him sign his name.” He was paid to keep it a secret.

When they reached Strasbourg they provided themselves with French dresses. The king and his brother put up at different inns, that they might be less liable to suspicion. Frederick,200 with several of his party, took lodgings at the Raven Hotel. He sent the landlord out to invite several army officers to sup with a foreign gentleman, Count Dufour, from Bohemia, who was an entire stranger in the place. Some of the officers very peremptorily declined the invitation, considering it an imposition. Three, however, allured by the singularity of the summons, repaired to the inn. The assumed count received them with great courtesy, apologized for the liberty he had taken, thanked them for their kindness, and assured them that, being a stranger, he was very happy to make the acquaintance of so many brave officers, whose society he valued above that of all others.

When they arrived in Strasbourg, they got themselves some French outfits. The king and his brother stayed at different inns to avoid drawing attention. Frederick, along with several members of his group, booked rooms at the Raven Hotel. He sent the landlord out to invite a few army officers to join him for dinner with a foreign gentleman, Count Dufour, from Bohemia, who was new to the area. Some of the officers flat out refused the invitation, thinking it was a trick. However, three were intrigued by the unusual invitation and went to the inn. The faux count welcomed them warmly, apologized for being so forward, thanked them for their hospitality, and expressed how pleased he was to meet such brave officers, saying he valued their company more than anyone else's.

The companions of the king were well-bred men, of engaging manners, commanding intelligence, and accustomed to authority. The entertainment was superb, with an abundance of the richest wines. The conversation took a wide range, and was interesting and exciting to a high degree. The French officers were quite bewildered by the scene. The count was perfect master of the French language, was very brilliant in his sallies, and seemed perfectly familiar with all military affairs. He was treated with remarkable deference by his companions, some of whom were far his superiors in years.

The king's companions were well-mannered, charming, smart individuals who were used to being in charge. The gathering was fantastic, filled with the finest wines. The conversation covered a broad range of topics and was extremely engaging and lively. The French officers were quite taken aback by the whole scene. The count spoke French fluently, was very witty in his remarks, and appeared to know a lot about military matters. His companions, some of whom were much older, showed him a lot of respect.

The entertainment was prolonged until a late hour of the night. The delighted guests, as they retired, urged their host to attend parade with them in the morning, offering to come in person to conduct him to the ground. The count, with pleasure, accepted the invitation. In the morning he was escorted to the parade-ground. His fame spread rapidly. Friends multiplied. He was invited to sup with the officers in the evening, and accepted the invitation. Marshal Broglio, a very stately gentleman of seventy years, was military governor at Strasbourg. The count and one of his companions, the distinguished philosopher Count Algarotti, were invited to dine with the marshal. The supper given in the evening by the officers was brilliant. They then repaired to the opera. A poor little girl came to the box with a couple of lottery tickets for sale. Frederick gave her four ducats ($25), and tore up the tickets.

The entertainment went on until late into the night. The happy guests, as they left, encouraged their host to join them for the parade in the morning, even offering to come by and take him there. The count happily accepted the invitation. In the morning, he was taken to the parade ground. His reputation spread quickly. Friends increased in number. He was invited to have dinner with the officers that evening and accepted. Marshal Broglio, a very dignified gentleman of seventy, was the military governor in Strasbourg. The count and one of his friends, the notable philosopher Count Algarotti, were invited to have lunch with the marshal. The dinner hosted by the officers that evening was impressive. Afterward, they went to the opera. A poor little girl came to the box selling a couple of lottery tickets. Frederick gave her four ducats ($25) and tore up the tickets.

Strasbourg began to echo with the fame of this foreign count. But the next morning, Thursday, August 25, as Marshal Broglio was walking on the Esplanade, a soldier, who had formerly201 been in the regiment of the Crown Prince at Potsdam, and who knew the Crown Prince perfectly, having seen him hundreds of times, but who had deserted and entered the French service, came to the marshal, with much bowing and embarrassment, and assured him that Count Dufour was no less than the King of Prussia.

Strasbourg started buzzing with the fame of this foreign count. But the next morning, Thursday, August 25, as Marshal Broglio was strolling along the Esplanade, a soldier who had previously been in the Crown Prince's regiment at Potsdam, and who knew the Crown Prince perfectly from having seen him hundreds of times, but who had deserted to join the French service, approached the marshal, bowing and feeling quite awkward. He assured him that Count Dufour was none other than the King of Prussia.

The secret was now out. The tidings flew in all directions that the King of Prussia was in Strasbourg incognito. The king, not yet aware of the detection, called upon the marshal. A crowd of officers gathered eagerly around. The marshal was much embarrassed in his desire to respect the incognito, and also to manifest the consideration due to a sovereign. No one yet ventured to address him as king, though there were many indications that his rank was beginning to be known. Frederick therefore decided to get out of the city as soon as possible. To conceal his design, he made arrangements to attend the theatre with the marshal in the evening. The marshal went to the theatre with all his officers. The building was crowded with the multitude hoping to see the king. Bonfires began to blaze in the streets, and shouts were heard of “Long live the King of Prussia.” Frederick hastily collected his companions, paid his enormous bill at the Raven, “shot off like lightning,” and was seen in Strasbourg no more.

The secret was now out. News spread quickly that the King of Prussia was in Strasbourg incognito. The king, still unaware that he had been discovered, visited the marshal. A crowd of officers eagerly gathered around him. The marshal was quite embarrassed as he tried to respect the king’s anonymity while also showing the proper regard due to a sovereign. No one dared to address him as king yet, though there were many signs that his identity was starting to leak out. Frederick decided to leave the city as soon as possible. To hide his plans, he arranged to go to the theater with the marshal in the evening. The marshal attended the theater with all his officers. The building was packed with people hoping to see the king. Bonfires began to light up the streets, and cheers of “Long live the King of Prussia” could be heard. Frederick quickly gathered his companions, paid his huge bill at the Raven, “shot off like lightning,” and was never seen in Strasbourg again.

Voltaire was at this time in Brussels. Frederick wrote him from Wesel, under date of 2d September, 1740, giving a narrative of his adventures, partly in prose, partly in verse. It was a long communication, the rhyme very much like that which a bright school-girl would write upon the gallop. The following specimen of this singular production will give the reader a sufficient idea of the whole:

Voltaire was in Brussels at this time. Frederick wrote to him from Wesel on September 2nd, 1740, sharing stories of his adventures, blending prose and verse. It was a lengthy message, and the rhyme resembled what a clever schoolgirl might write in a hurry. The following excerpt from this unusual piece will give the reader a good sense of the entire work:

My dear Voltaire,—You wish to know what I have been about since leaving Berlin. Annexed you will find a description of it.

My dear Voltaire,—You want to know what I've been up to since I left Berlin. I've attached a description of it.”

“I have just finished a journey intermingled with singular adventures, sometimes pleasant, sometimes the reverse. You know I had set out for Baireuth to see a sister whom I love no less than esteem. On the road Algarotti and I consulted the map to settle our route for returning by Wesel. Frankfort-on-the-202Main comes always as a principal stage. Strasbourg was no great roundabout. We chose that route in preference. The incognito was decided, names pitched upon, story we were to tell. In fine, all was arranged as well as possible. We fancied we should get to Strasbourg in three days.

“I just completed a trip full of unique adventures, some enjoyable and others not so much. You know I headed to Baireuth to visit a sister whom I love as much as I respect. On the way, Algarotti and I looked at the map to finalize our route back through Wesel. Frankfort-on-the-202Main is always a key stop. Strasbourg wasn’t too much of a detour, so we chose that path instead. The incognito was decided, names were chosen, and the story we would tell was prepared. In short, everything was organized as best as possible. We thought we could reach Strasbourg in three days."

“Mais le ciel, qui de tout dispose,
Régla différemment la chose.
Avec de coursiers efflanqués,
Et des paysans en postillons masqués,
Butors de race impertinente,
Notre carrosse en cent lieux accroché,
Nous allions gravement d’une allure indolente,
Gravitant contre les rochers,
L’airs émus par le bruyant tonnere.
Les torrents d’eau répandus sur la terre
Du dernier jour menaçaient les humains.
Et malgré notre impatience,
Quatre bons jours en pénitence
Sont pour jamais perdus dans les charrains.”

“Yet the sky, which controls everything,
Had a different plan for us.
With skinny horses,
And peasants posing as drivers,
Bumbling fools by nature,
Our carriage got stuck in countless spots,
We moved along at a slow pace,
Struggling against the rocks,
The air stirred by the loud thunder.
Torrents of water spread across the land
As the last day threatened humanity.
And despite our impatience,
Four long days in penance
Are forever lost in the mud.”

(But Heaven, which of all disposes,
Regulated differently the thing.
With coursers lank-sided,
And peasants as postillions disguised,
Blockheads of race impertinent,
Our carriages in a hundred places sticking,
We went gravely at a slow pace,
Knocking against the rocks,
The air agitated by loud thunder.
Torrents of water spread over the earth
With the last day threatened mankind.
And notwithstanding our impatience,
Four good days in penance
Are forever lost in these jumbles.)

(But Heaven, which controls everything,
Regulated things differently.
With skinny horses,
And farmers posing as drivers,
Stubborn fools,
Our carriages stuck in countless spots,
We moved slowly and seriously,
Bumping against the rocks,
The air shaken by loud thunder.
Torrents of water flooded the earth
As the last day threatened humanity.
And despite our impatience,
Four long days of penance
Are forever wasted in this chaos.)

“Had all our fatalities been limited to stoppages of speed on the journey, we should have taken patience. But after frightful roads we found lodgings still more frightful.”

“If all our losses had just been delays in our journey, we could have managed that. But after dealing with terrible roads, we found even worse accommodations.”

Then came another strain of verse. Thus the prose and the doggerel were interspersed through the long narrative. Though very truthful in character, it was a school-boy performance—a very singular document indeed to be sent to the most brilliant genius of that age, by one who soon proved himself to be the ablest sovereign in Europe.

Then came another type of verse. The prose and the doggerel were mixed throughout the long story. Although it was very truthful in nature, it felt like a schoolboy's effort—a truly unique document to be sent to the most brilliant genius of that time, by someone who would soon show himself to be the most capable ruler in Europe.

At Wesel the king met Maupertuis, to whom we have already alluded, who was then one of the greatest of European celebrities. His discovery of the flattening of the earth at the poles had given him such renown that the kings of Russia, France, and Prussia were all lavishing honors upon him. It was a great gratification to Frederick that he had secured his services in organizing the Berlin Academy. While at Wesel the king was seized by a fever, which shut him up for a time in the small chateau of Moyland. He had never yet met Voltaire, and being very anxious to see him, wrote to him as follows, under date of September 6th, 1740:

At Wesel, the king met Maupertuis, whom we’ve already mentioned, and who was one of the biggest names in Europe at that time. His discovery of the earth’s flattening at the poles had brought him such fame that the kings of Russia, France, and Prussia were all showering him with honors. Frederick was very pleased to have secured his help in organizing the Berlin Academy. While at Wesel, the king was struck by a fever, which kept him in the small chateau of Moyland for a while. He had never met Voltaire and, eager to see him, wrote to him as follows on September 6th, 1740:

203

203

My dear Voltaire,—In spite of myself, I have to yield to the quartan fever, which is more tenacious than a Jansenist. And whatever desire I had of going to Antwerp and Brussels, I find myself not in a condition to undertake such a journey without risk. I would ask of you, then, if the road from Brussels to Cleves would not to you seem too long for a meeting? It is the one means of seeing you which remains to me. Confess that I am unlucky; for now, when I could dispose of my person, and nothing hinders me from seeing you, the fever gets its hand into the business, and seems to intend disputing me that satisfaction.

My dear Voltaire,—Despite my best efforts, I have to surrender to this quartan fever, which is more stubborn than a Jansenist. Even though I wanted to go to Antwerp and Brussels, I realize I’m not in a condition to make that trip without risking my health. So I ask you, do you think the journey from Brussels to Cleves would seem too long for us to meet? It's the only way left for me to see you. Honestly, I'm quite unfortunate; just when I'm ready to see you, and there’s nothing holding me back, this fever shows up and seems determined to take that away from me.

“Let us deceive the fever, my dear Voltaire, and let me have at least the pleasure of embracing you. Make my best excuses to Madame the Marquise that I can not have the satisfaction of seeing her at Brussels. All that are about me know the intention I was in, which certainly nothing but the fever could make me change.

“Let’s outsmart the fever, my dear Voltaire, and let me at least enjoy the pleasure of hugging you. Please send my sincere apologies to Madame the Marquise for not being able to see her in Brussels. Everyone around me knows why I came here, and only this fever could change my plans.”

“Sunday next I shall be at a little place near Cleves, where I shall be able to possess you at my ease. If the sight of you don’t cure me, I will send for a confessor at once. Adieu. You know my sentiments and my heart.

“Next Sunday, I’ll be at a small place near Cleves, where I can have you to myself. If seeing you doesn’t heal me, I’ll call for a priest right away. Goodbye. You know how I feel and what’s in my heart.

Frederick.

Frederick.

In accordance with this request, Voltaire repaired to Cleves to visit the king. Many years afterward, having quarreled with Frederick, and being disposed to represent him in the most unfavorable light, he gave the following account of this interview in his Vie Privée:

In response to this request, Voltaire went to Cleves to visit the king. Many years later, after having a falling out with Frederick and wanting to portray him in a negative way, he described this meeting in his Vie Privée:

“The king said that he would come and see me incognito at Brussels. But having fallen ill a couple of leagues from Cleves, he wrote me that he expected I would make the advances. I went accordingly to present my profound homages. I found at the gate of the court-yard a single soldier on guard. The privy councilor Rambonet, Minister of State, was walking about the court, blowing on his fingers to warm them. He had on great ruffles of dirty linen, a hat with holes in it, and an old periwig, one end of which hung down into one of his pockets, while the other hardly covered his shoulder.

“The king said he would come and see me incognito in Brussels. But after falling ill a couple of leagues from Cleves, he wrote to me that he expected I would make the first move. So, I went to present my deepest respects. At the gate of the courtyard, I found just one soldier on guard. The privy councilor Rambonet, Minister of State, was walking around the courtyard, blowing on his fingers to keep warm. He was wearing large ruffles of dirty linen, a hat with holes in it, and an old wig, one end of which hung down into one of his pockets, while the other barely covered his shoulder.”

“I was conducted into his majesty’s apartment, where there was nothing but the bare walls. I perceived in a closet, lit by a single wax candle, a small bed, two feet and a half wide, on204 which lay a little man wrapped up in a cloak of coarse blue cloth. It was the king, who perspired and shivered, under a miserable coverlet, in a violent access of fever. I made my bow, and began the acquaintance by feeling his pulse, as if I had been his first physician. When the fit was passed he dressed himself and came to supper. Algarotti, Keyserling, Maupertuis, and the king’s embassador to the States General made up the party. We talked learnedly respecting the immortality of the soul, liberty, and the Androgynes of Plato, and other small topics of that nature.”

“I was led into the king’s room, which had nothing but bare walls. In a closet, illuminated by a single wax candle, I saw a small bed, two and a half feet wide, where a little man was bundled up in a coarse blue cloak. It was the king, who was sweating and shivering under a thin blanket, suffering from a severe fever. I bowed and began my introduction by checking his pulse, as if I were his personal doctor. Once the fit was over, he got dressed and joined us for dinner. The group included Algarotti, Keyserling, Maupertuis, and the king’s ambassador to the States General. We engaged in a deep discussion about the immortality of the soul, liberty, Plato’s Androgynes, and other similar topics.”

FREDERICK’S FIRST INTERVIEW WITH VOLTAIRE.

Frederick, who was then in the zenith of his admiration for Voltaire, describes as follows, in a letter to his friend M. Jordan, his impressions of the interview:

Frederick, who was then at the height of his admiration for Voltaire, describes his impressions of the interview in a letter to his friend M. Jordan as follows:

“I have at length seen Voltaire, whom I was so anxious to205 know. But, alas! I saw him when under the influence of my fever, and when my mind and my body were equally languid. With persons like him one ought not to be sick. On the contrary, one ought to be specially well. He has the eloquence of Cicero, the mildness of Pliny, and the wisdom of Agrippa. He unites, in a word, all the collected virtues and talents of the three greatest men of antiquity. His intellect is always at work. Every drop of ink that falls from his pen is transformed at once into wit. He declaimed his Mahomet to us, an admirable tragedy which he has composed. I could only admire in silence.”

“I finally met Voltaire, whom I was so eager to know. But, unfortunately! I saw him while I was sick with fever, and both my mind and body were weak. When meeting someone like him, you shouldn’t be unwell. Instead, you should be feeling great. He has the eloquence of Cicero, the gentleness of Pliny, and the wisdom of Agrippa. In short, he combines all the virtues and talents of the three greatest figures from ancient times. His mind is always working. Every drop of ink that comes from his pen turns into wit immediately. He recited his Mahomet to us, an amazing tragedy he wrote. I could only admire him in silence.”

Indeed, it would seem that, at the time, Voltaire must have been very favorably impressed by the appearance of his royal host. The account he then gave of the interview was very different from that which, in his exasperation, he wrote twenty years afterward. In a letter to a friend, M. De Cideville, dated October 18th, 1740, Voltaire wrote:

Indeed, it seems that, at the time, Voltaire must have been very positively impressed by the appearance of his royal host. The account he provided of the meeting was very different from what he wrote in frustration twenty years later. In a letter to a friend, M. De Cideville, dated October 18th, 1740, Voltaire wrote:

“When you sent me, inclosed in your letter, those verses for our Marcus Aurelius of the North, I fully intended to pay my court to him with them. He was at that time to have come to Brussels incognito. But the quartan fever, which unhappily he still has, deranged all his projects. He has sent me a courier to Brussels, and so I set out to find him in the neighborhood of Cleves.

“When you sent me those verses for our Marcus Aurelius of the North, included in your letter, I fully intended to present them to him. He was supposed to come to Brussels incognito at that time. But the quartan fever, which unfortunately he still has, messed up all his plans. He sent me a messenger to Brussels, so I’m heading out to find him near Cleves.”

“It was there that I saw one of the most amiable men in the world, who forms the charm of society, who would be every where sought after if he were not a king; a philosopher without austerity, full of sweetness, complaisance, and obliging ways—not remembering that he is king when he meets his friends; indeed, so completely forgetting it that he made me too almost forget it, and I needed an effort of memory to recollect that I here saw, sitting at the foot of my bed, a sovereign who had an army of a hundred thousand men.”

“It was there that I met one of the nicest guys in the world, someone who adds charm to social gatherings, someone who would be sought after everywhere if he weren’t a king; a philosopher who isn’t stiff, full of kindness, politeness, and helpfulness—he doesn’t act like a king when he meets up with friends; in fact, he forgets it so completely that I almost forgot too, and it took a real effort to remember that I was sitting at the foot of my bed with a king who commands an army of a hundred thousand men.”


206

206

CHAPTER XI.
Political scheming.

The Herstal Affair.—The Summons.—Voltaire’s Manifesto.—George II. visits Hanover.—The Visit of Wilhelmina to Berlin.—Unpopularity of the King.—Death of the Emperor Charles VI.

The Herstal Affair.—The Summons.—Voltaire’s Manifesto.—George II's trip to Hanover.—Wilhelmina's visit to Berlin.—The King’s unpopularity.—Death of Emperor Charles VI.

On the River Maas, a few miles north of the present city of Liege, there was a celebrated castle called Herstal. For many generations feudal lords had there displayed their pomp and power; and it had been the theatre not only of princely revelry, but of many scenes of violence and blood. A surrounding territory of a few thousand acres, cultivated by serfs, who were virtually slaves, was the hereditary domain of the petty lords of the castle. A few miles south of the castle there was a monastery called Liege, which was a dependency of the lords of Herstal.

On the River Maas, just a few miles north of what is now the city of Liège, there was a famous castle called Herstal. For many generations, feudal lords showcased their wealth and power there; it was the setting not only for lavish celebrations but also for numerous acts of violence and bloodshed. A surrounding area of a few thousand acres, farmed by serfs who were essentially slaves, was the inherited land of the minor lords of the castle. A few miles south of the castle stood a monastery called Liège, which was under the authority of the lords of Herstal.

Amid the vicissitudes of the revolving centuries the rollicking lords grew poor, and the frugal monks grew rich. A thrifty city rose around the monastery, and its bishop wielded a power, temporal and spiritual, more potent than had ever issued from the walls of the now crumbling and dilapidated castle. In some of the perplexing diplomatic arrangements of those days, the castle of Herstal, with its surrounding district, was transferred to Frederick William of Prussia. The peasants, who had heard of the military rigor of Prussia, where almost every able-bodied man was crowded into the army, were exceedingly troubled by this transfer, and refused to take the oath of allegiance to their new sovereign, who had thus succeeded to the ownership of themselves, their flocks, and their herds. The gleaming sabres of Frederick William’s dragoons soon, however, brought them to terms. Thus compelled to submission, they remained unreconciled and irritated. Upon the withdrawal of the Prussian troops, the authority of Frederick William over the Herstal people also disappeared, for they greatly preferred the milder rule of the Bishop of Liege.

Amid the ups and downs of changing centuries, the once carefree lords grew poor, while the thrifty monks became wealthy. A bustling city developed around the monastery, and its bishop held a power—both political and spiritual—that was stronger than anything that had ever come from the now crumbling castle. In some of the confusing diplomatic maneuvers of that time, the castle of Herstal and its surrounding area were handed over to Frederick William of Prussia. The peasants, who were aware of Prussia's harsh military discipline, where almost every able-bodied man was drafted into the army, were extremely worried about this transfer and refused to pledge allegiance to their new ruler, who had effectively claimed ownership of them, their livestock, and their herds. However, the shining sabers of Frederick William’s dragoons quickly forced them to comply. Once coerced into submission, they remained discontented and resentful. When the Prussian troops left, Frederick William’s control over the people of Herstal vanished as well, since they much preferred the kinder rule of the Bishop of Liege.

The bishop denied that Frederick William had any claim to207 Herstal. He brought forward a prior claim of his own in behalf of the Church. The Duke of Lorraine, when proprietor of the castle and its dependencies, had pawned it to the bishop for a considerable sum of money. This money, the bishop averred, had never been repaid. Consequently he claimed the property as still in his possession.

The bishop rejected Frederick William's claim to207 Herstal. He presented a prior claim of his own for the Church. The Duke of Lorraine, when he owned the castle and its lands, had given it as collateral to the bishop for a significant amount of money. The bishop argued that this money had never been paid back. Therefore, he asserted that the property was still rightfully his.

George Ludwig, Count of Berg, who at this time was Bishop of Liege, was a feeble old man, tottering beneath the infirmities of eighty-two years. He did not venture upon physical resistance to the power of Prussia, but confined himself to protests, remonstrances, and to the continued exercise of his own governmental authority. As Herstal was many leagues distant from Berlin, was of comparatively little value, and could only be reached by traversing foreign states, Frederick William offered to sell all his claims to it for about eighty thousand dollars. The proposal not being either accepted or rejected by the bishop, the king, anxious to settle the question before his death, sent an embassador to Liege, with full powers to arrange the difficulty by treaty. For three days the embassador endeavored in vain to obtain an audience. He then returned indignantly to Berlin. The king, of course, regarded this treatment as an insult. The bishop subsequently averred that the audience was prevented by his own sickness. Such was the posture of affairs when Frederick William died.

George Ludwig, Count of Berg, who was also the Bishop of Liege at that time, was a frail old man, struggling with the weaknesses of his eighty-two years. He didn’t challenge Prussia’s power physically, but stuck to making protests, expressing objections, and continuing to exercise his own governmental authority. Since Herstal was many leagues away from Berlin, had relatively little value, and could only be accessed through other states, Frederick William offered to sell all his claims to it for about eighty thousand dollars. The bishop didn’t accept or reject the proposal, so the king, eager to resolve the issue before his death, sent an ambassador to Liege with full authority to negotiate a treaty. For three days, the ambassador tried unsuccessfully to secure a meeting. He then returned to Berlin in anger. The king, of course, saw this treatment as an insult. The bishop later claimed that he was unable to meet due to his illness. This was the situation when Frederick William died.

Upon the accession of Frederick the Second, as officers were dispatched through the realm to exact oaths of allegiance, the Herstal people, encouraged by the bishop, refused to acknowledge fealty to the new king. Frederick was now in the district of Cleve, in the near vicinity of Herstal. He sent the following very decisive summons to the “Prince Bishop of Liege,” dated Wesel, September 4, 1740:

Upon Frederick the Second's rise to power, officers were sent throughout the kingdom to collect oaths of loyalty. The people of Herstal, motivated by the bishop, refused to pledge allegiance to the new king. Frederick was in the Cleve area, close to Herstal. He issued a strong summons to the "Prince Bishop of Liege," dated Wesel, September 4, 1740:

My Cousin,—Knowing all the assaults made by you upon my indisputable rights over my free barony of Herstal, and how the seditious ringleaders there, for several years past, have been countenanced by you in their detestable acts of disobedience against me, I have commanded my privy counselor, Rambonet, to repair to your presence, and in my name to require from you, within two days, a distinct and categorical answer to this question:

My Cousin,—Given all the attacks you've made on my undeniable rights to my free barony of Herstal, and the support you've provided to the rebellious leaders there in their terrible defiance against me for several years, I've sent my advisor, Rambonet, to meet with you and demand, on my behalf, a clear and direct answer to this question within two days:

208 “Whether you are still minded to assert your pretended sovereignty over Herstal, and whether you will protect the rebels at Herstal in their disorders and abominable disobedience?

208 “Are you still intending to assert your false authority over Herstal, and will you continue to support the rebels in their chaos and blatant defiance?

“In case you refuse, or delay beyond the term, the answer which I hereby of right demand, you will render yourself alone responsible, before the world, for the consequences which infallibly will follow. I am, with much consideration, my cousin, your very affectionate cousin,

“If you refuse or delay beyond the deadline, the answer I’m entitled to will hold you solely responsible, in the eyes of the world, for the consequences that will inevitably follow. I am, with much respect, my cousin, your very affectionate cousin,

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

Rambonet presented the peremptory missive, and waited forty-eight hours for the answer. He then returned to Wesel without any satisfactory reply. Frederick immediately issued a manifesto, declaring the reasons for his action, and ordered two thousand men, horse and foot, who were all ready for the emergence, to advance immediately to Maaseyk, one of the principal towns of the bishop, take possession of it and of the surrounding region, quarter themselves upon the people, enforce liberal contributions, and remain there until the bishop should come to terms.34

Rambonet delivered the urgent letter and waited forty-eight hours for a response. He then went back to Wesel without any satisfactory answer. Frederick quickly released a statement explaining his actions and commanded two thousand soldiers, both cavalry and infantry, who were all set to move, to head to Maaseyk, one of the bishop's main towns. They were to take control of it and the surrounding area, settle among the locals, impose substantial contributions, and stay there until the bishop agreed to terms.34

The solid, compact army, with infantry, artillery, and cavalry in the best possible condition, advanced at the double-quick. Arriving at the gates of Maaseyk, not a moment was spent in parleying. “Open the gates instantly,” was the summons, “or we shall open them with the petard.”

The well-prepared army, consisting of infantry, artillery, and cavalry in top shape, rushed forward. When they reached the gates of Maaseyk, they didn’t waste a second talking. “Open the gates right now,” they demanded, “or we’ll blow them open with the petard.”

With great courtesy of words, but pitiless energy of action, General Borck, who was in command, fulfilled his commission. A contribution was exacted of fifteen thousand dollars, to be paid within three days; sufficient rations were to be furnished daily for the troops, or the general, it was stated, would be under the painful necessity of collecting them for himself. Two hundred and fifty dollars a day were to be provided for the general’s private expenses. Remonstrances were of no avail. Resistance was not to be thought of.

With polite language but relentless determination, General Borck, who was in charge, carried out his orders. A payment of fifteen thousand dollars was required, to be made within three days; adequate food supplies were to be provided daily for the troops, or the general was said to have no choice but to gather them himself. Two hundred fifty dollars a day were to be allocated for the general’s personal expenses. Protests were useless. Resistance was not an option.

209 The poor old bishop called loudly upon the Emperor of Germany for help. The territory of the Bishop of Liege was under the protection of the empire. The Emperor Charles VI. immediately issued a decree ordering Frederick to withdraw his troops, to restore the money which he had extorted, and to settle the question by arbitration, or by an appeal to the laws of the empire. This was the last decree issued by Charles VI. Two weeks after he died.

209 The poor old bishop called out loudly to the Emperor of Germany for help. The territory of the Bishop of Liege was under the empire's protection. Emperor Charles VI immediately issued a decree ordering Frederick to pull back his troops, return the money he had taken, and resolve the issue through arbitration or by appealing to the laws of the empire. This was the last decree issued by Charles VI. He died two weeks later.

Frederick paid no regard to the remonstrance of the emperor. The bishop, in his distress, applied to the French for aid, and then to the Dutch, but all in vain. He then sent an embassy to Berlin, proposing to purchase Herstal. The king consented to sell upon the same terms his father had offered, adding to the sum the expenses of his military expedition and other little items, bringing the amount up to one hundred and eighty thousand dollars. The money was paid, and the Herstal difficulty was settled. This was Frederick’s first act of foreign diplomacy. Many severely censured him for the violent course he pursued with a power incapable of resistance. All admitted the energy and sagacity which he had developed in the affair.

Frederick ignored the emperor's objections. The bishop, in his desperation, reached out to the French for help, and then to the Dutch, but it was pointless. He then sent a delegation to Berlin, offering to buy Herstal. The king agreed to sell it for the same price his father had proposed, adding the costs of his military campaign and some minor expenses, totaling one hundred eighty thousand dollars. The payment was made, and the Herstal issue was resolved. This was Frederick’s first move in foreign diplomacy. Many harshly criticized him for taking such a forceful approach against a power that couldn't fight back. Still, everyone recognized the energy and cleverness he showed in handling the situation.

Voltaire, in his Memoirs, says that he drew up the manifesto for Frederick upon this occasion. “The pretext,” he writes, “for this fine expedition was certain rights which his majesty pretended to have over a part of the suburbs. It was to me he committed the task of drawing up the manifesto, which I performed as well as the nature of the case would let me, never suspecting that a king, with whom I supped, and who called me his friend, could possibly be in the wrong. The affair was soon brought to a conclusion by the payment of a million of livres, which he exacted in good hard ducats, and which served to defray the expenses of his tour to Strasbourg, concerning which he complained so loudly in his poetic prose epistle.

Voltaire, in his Memoirs, says that he wrote the manifesto for Frederick during this time. “The excuse,” he writes, “for this grand adventure was certain rights that his majesty claimed over part of the suburbs. It was to me that he entrusted the task of writing the manifesto, which I did as well as I could, never imagining that a king, with whom I had dinner and who called me his friend, could be in the wrong. The situation was quickly resolved with the payment of a million livres, which he demanded in solid ducats, and which covered the costs of his trip to Strasbourg, something he complained about so much in his poetic prose letter.”

“I represented to him that perhaps it was not altogether prudent to print his Anti-Machiavel just at the time that the world might reproach him with having violated the principles he taught. He permitted me to stop the impression. I accordingly took a journey into Holland purposely to do him this trifling service. But the bookseller demanded so much money that his majesty, who was not in the bottom of his heart vexed to see210 himself in print, was better pleased to be so for nothing, than to pay for not being so. I could not avoid feeling some remorse at being concerned in printing this Anti-Machiavelian book at the very moment that the King of Prussia, who had a hundred millions in his coffers, was robbing the poor people of Liege of another, by the hand of the privy counselor Rambonet.”35

“I suggested to him that it might not be wise to publish his Anti-Machiavel just when the world could blame him for going against the principles he taught. He allowed me to stop the printing. So, I took a trip to Holland specifically to do him this small favor. But the bookseller asked for so much money that his majesty, who deep down was not pleased to see himself in print, preferred to avoid the cost rather than pay to not be in it. I couldn’t help but feel some guilt for being involved in publishing this Anti-Machiavelian book at the same time that the King of Prussia, who had a hundred million in his coffers, was robbing the poor people of Liege, with the help of the privy counselor Rambonet.”35

It must be borne in mind that these words were written after Voltaire had quarreled with Frederick, and when it seems to have been his desire to represent all the acts of the king in as unfavorable a light as possible. Frederick himself, about eight years after the settlement of the Herstal difficulty, gave the following as his version of the affair:

It’s important to remember that these words were written after Voltaire had a fallout with Frederick, and it seems he wanted to portray all of the king's actions in the worst possible way. Frederick himself, about eight years after the Herstal issue was resolved, shared his version of the incident:

“A miserable Bishop of Liege thought it a proud thing to insult the late king. Some subjects of Herstal, which belongs to Prussia, had revolted. The bishop gave them his protection. Colonel Kreutzen was sent to Liege to compose the thing by treaty, with credentials and full power. Imagine it; the bishop would not receive him! Three days, day after day, he saw this envoy apply at his palace, and always denied him entrance. These things had grown past endurance.”

“A miserable Bishop of Liege thought it was a big deal to insult the late king. Some subjects of Herstal, which is part of Prussia, had revolted. The bishop offered them his protection. Colonel Kreutzen was sent to Liege to settle the matter through negotiation, with credentials and full authority. Can you believe it? The bishop wouldn't meet with him! For three days, day after day, he watched this envoy try to enter his palace, but he was always turned away. This situation had become unbearable.”

Frederick returned to Berlin by a circuitous route, which occupied ten days. His uncle, King George II. of England, whom he exceedingly disliked, was then on a visit to his Hanoverian possessions. Frederick passed within a few miles of his Britannic majesty without deigning to call upon him. The slight caused much comment in the English papers. It was regarded as of national moment, for it implied that in the complicated policy which then agitated the courts of Europe the sympathies of Prussia would not be with England.

Frederick took a roundabout way back to Berlin, which took him ten days. His uncle, King George II of England, whom he really disliked, was visiting his properties in Hanover at the time. Frederick traveled just a few miles from his British uncle without bothering to stop by. This snub created a lot of buzz in the English newspapers. It was seen as a big deal nationally because it suggested that Prussia’s interests wouldn’t align with England in the complex political situation that was unfolding in Europe.

Soon after this, Frederick’s next younger brother, Augustus William, who was heir-presumptive to the throne in default of a son by Frederick, was betrothed to Louisa Amelia of Brunswick, younger sister of Frederick’s bride.

Soon after this, Frederick’s next younger brother, Augustus William, who was next in line for the throne if Frederick didn’t have a son, got engaged to Louisa Amelia of Brunswick, the younger sister of Frederick’s wife.

About the middle of October Wilhelmina came to Berlin to see her brothers again. Nine years had passed since her marriage, and seven since her last sad visit to the home of her childhood, in which inauspicious visit the wretchedness of her early years had been renewed by the cruelty of her reception. In211 Wilhelmina’s journal we find the following allusion to this her second return to Berlin:

About the middle of October, Wilhelmina arrived in Berlin to see her brothers again. Nine years had gone by since her marriage, and seven since her last unfortunate visit to her childhood home, where the suffering of her early years was brought back by the harshness of her welcome. In211 Wilhelmina’s journal, we find the following mention of her second trip back to Berlin:

“We arrived at Berlin the end of October. My younger brothers, followed by the princes of the blood and by all the court, received us at the bottom of the stairs. I was led to my apartment, where I found the reigning queen, my sisters, and the princesses. I learned, with much chagrin, that the king was ill of tertian ague. He sent me word that, being in his fit, he could not see me, but that he depended on having that pleasure to-morrow. The queen-mother, to whom I went without delay, was in a dark condition. Her rooms were all hung in their lugubrious drapery. Every thing was as yet in the depth of mourning for my father. What a scene for me! Nature has her rights. I can say with truth I have almost never in my life been so moved as on this occasion. My interview with my mother was very touching.”

“We arrived in Berlin at the end of October. My younger brothers, followed by the princes and all the court, welcomed us at the bottom of the stairs. I was taken to my room, where I found the reigning queen, my sisters, and the princesses. I learned, to my dismay, that the king was suffering from a recurring fever. He sent me a message saying that, due to his illness, he couldn’t see me, but he hoped to tomorrow. The queen mother, whom I visited right away, was in a dark state. Her rooms were draped in somber fabric. Everything was still deep in mourning for my father. What a scene for me! Nature has its needs. I can honestly say I've rarely been as moved as I was at that moment. My meeting with my mother was very emotional.”

The next morning Frederick hastened to greet his sister. Wilhelmina was not pleased with his appearance. The cares of his new reign entirely engrossed his mind. The dignity of an absolute king did not sit gracefully upon him. Though ostentatiously demonstrative in his greeting, the delicate instincts of Wilhelmina taught her that her brother’s caresses were heartless. He was just recovering from a fit of the ague, and looked emaciate and sallow. The court was in mourning. During those funereal days no festivities could be indulged in. The queen-mother was decorously melancholy; she seems to have been not only disappointed, but excessively chagrined, to find that she was excluded by her son from the slightest influence in public affairs. The distant, arrogant, and assuming airs of the young king soon rendered him unpopular.

The next morning, Frederick rushed to greet his sister. Wilhelmina was not happy with how he looked. The worries of his new reign completely occupied his mind. The role of an absolute king didn’t suit him well. Although he greeted her with exaggerated enthusiasm, Wilhelmina could sense that her brother’s affection was insincere. He was just recovering from a bout of fever and looked thin and pale. The court was in mourning. During those somber days, no celebrations could take place. The queen mother was properly sad; she seemed not only disappointed but also very upset to find that her son had shut her out of any influence in public affairs. The young king's distant, arrogant, and overbearing attitude quickly made him unpopular.

“A general discontent,” writes Wilhelmina, “reigned in the country. The love of his subjects was pretty much gone. People spoke of him in no measured terms. Some accused him of caring nothing about those who helped him as Prince Royal. Others complained of his avarice as surpassing that of the late king. He was accused of violence of temper, of a suspicious disposition, of distrust, haughtiness, dissimulation. I would have spoken to him about these had not my brother Augustus William and the queen regnant dissuaded me.”

“A general discontent,” writes Wilhelmina, “was widespread in the country. The love of his subjects had pretty much vanished. People talked about him openly and harshly. Some accused him of being indifferent to those who had supported him as Prince Royal. Others claimed his greed was worse than that of the late king. He was criticized for his explosive temper, his suspicious nature, his distrust, arrogance, and deceit. I would have confronted him about these issues if my brother Augustus William and the queen regnant hadn’t advised against it.”

212 Frederick invited his sister to visit him at Reinsberg, to which place either business or pleasure immediately called him. After the lapse of two days, Wilhelmina, with the neglected Queen Elizabeth, repaired to the enchanting chateau, hoping to find, amid its rural scenes, that enjoyment which she never yet had been able to find in the sombre halls of the Berlin palace. Here quite a gay company was assembled. Frederick was very laboriously occupied during the day in affairs of state. But in the evening he appeared in the social circles, attracting the attention of all by his conversational brilliance, and by the apparent heartiness with which he entered into the amusements of the court. He took an active part in some private theatricals, and none were aware of the profound schemes of ambition which, cloaked by this external gayety, were engrossing his thoughts.

212 Frederick invited his sister to visit him at Reinsberg, where he had been called by either work or leisure. After two days had passed, Wilhelmina, along with the overlooked Queen Elizabeth, made their way to the beautiful chateau, hoping to find enjoyment in its countryside that she had never experienced in the gloomy halls of the Berlin palace. A lively group had gathered there. During the day, Frederick was deeply focused on state affairs. However, in the evening, he mingled in social circles, drawing everyone's attention with his engaging conversation and the genuine enthusiasm he showed for the court's entertainments. He actively participated in some private plays, and none suspected the ambitious plans that were consuming his thoughts, hidden beneath his cheerful exterior.

On the 25th of October a courier arrived, direct from Vienna, with the startling intelligence that the Emperor Charles VI. had died five days before. The king was at the time suffering from a severe attack of chills and fever. There was quite a long deliberation in the court whether it were safe to communicate the agitating intelligence to his majesty while he was so sick. They delayed for an hour, and then cautiously informed the king of the great event. Frederick listened in silence; uttered not a word; made no sign.36 Subsequent events proved that his soul must have been agitated by the tidings to its profoundest depths. The death of the emperor, at that time, was unexpected. But it is pretty evident that Frederick had, in the sombre recesses of his mind, resolved upon a course of action when the emperor should die which he knew would be fraught with the most momentous results. In fact, this action proved the occasion of wars and woes from which, could the king have foreseen them, he would doubtless have shrunk back appalled.

On October 25th, a courier arrived straight from Vienna with the shocking news that Emperor Charles VI had died five days earlier. The king was suffering from a severe case of chills and fever at that time. The court debated for a long time about whether it was safe to share this distressing news with him while he was so ill. They hesitated for an hour, then cautiously informed the king about the significant event. Frederick listened in silence; he didn't say a word or make any sign. Subsequent events showed that he must have been deeply impacted by the news. The emperor's death was unexpected. However, it's clear that Frederick had already thought about a plan of action for when the emperor died, which he knew would have major consequences. In fact, this action led to wars and suffering that, had the king anticipated them, he would surely have been horrified.

The Emperor Charles VI. left no son. He therefore promulgated a new law of succession in a decree known throughout213 Europe as the “Pragmatic Sanction.” By the custom of the realm the sceptre could descend only to male heirs. But by this decree the king declared that the crown of the house of Hapsburg should be transmitted to his daughter, Maria Theresa. This law had been ratified by the estates of all the kingdoms and principalities which composed the Austrian monarchy. All the leading powers of Europe—England, France, Spain, Prussia, Russia, Poland, Sweden, Denmark, and the Germanic body—had bound themselves by treaty to maintain the “Pragmatic Sanction.” It was a peaceable and wise arrangement, acceptable to the people of Austria and to the dynasties of Europe as a means of averting a war of succession, which might involve all the nations of the Continent in the conflict.

The Emperor Charles VI did not have a son. So, he established a new law of succession in a decree known throughout213 Europe as the “Pragmatic Sanction.” Traditionally, the throne could only pass to male heirs. However, with this decree, he declared that the crown of the Hapsburg family would go to his daughter, Maria Theresa. This law was approved by the estates of all the kingdoms and principalities that made up the Austrian monarchy. All the major powers in Europe—England, France, Spain, Prussia, Russia, Poland, Sweden, Denmark, and the Germanic states—had committed by treaty to uphold the “Pragmatic Sanction.” It was a peaceful and sensible solution that was accepted by the people of Austria and the European dynasties as a way to prevent a succession war that could drag all the nations of the Continent into conflict.

The death-scene of the emperor was an event which must interest every reader. Upon his return from a hunting excursion into Hungary, he was attacked, on Thursday evening, October 16th, by slight indisposition, which was supposed to have been caused by eating imprudently of mushrooms. His sickness, baffling the skill of the doctors, increased, and by Saturday night became alarming. On Tuesday it was thought that he was dying. The pope’s nuncio administered to him the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper. His majesty manifested great composure in view of the sublime change before him, and said to one who was weeping at his bedside,

The emperor's death scene is something that should captivate every reader. After returning from a hunting trip in Hungary, he fell ill on the evening of Thursday, October 16th, which was thought to be due to carelessly eating mushrooms. Despite the doctors' efforts, his condition worsened, and by Saturday night it became serious. By Tuesday, it seemed like he was nearing death. The pope's representative brought him the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper. His majesty showed remarkable calmness in light of the profound transition ahead of him and said to someone crying at his bedside,

“I am not afraid in contemplating the dread tribunal before which I must now so soon appear. I am certain of my cause. Look at me! A man that is certain of his cause can enter on such a journey with good courage and a composed mind.”

“I’m not afraid of facing the terrifying court that I have to appear before so soon. I know I’m in the right. Look at me! A person who is confident in their cause can approach such a journey with courage and a calm mind.”

To his physicians, who were doubtful respecting the nature of his disease, he said, “If Doctor Gazelli were here you would soon know what is my complaint. As it is, you will only learn after you have dissected me.”

To his doctors, who were unsure about the nature of his illness, he said, “If Doctor Gazelli were here, you would quickly know what my problem is. As it stands, you'll only find out after you've dissected me.”

He then requested to be shown the cup in which his heart would be placed after that operation. His daughter, Maria Theresa, who had married the Grand-duke Francis, was in a delicate state of health. The death of her father would place the weighty crown upon her youthful brow. Grief and agitation threw her helpless upon her bed. So important was her life to the world that the emperor was unwilling that, in her214 then condition, she should enter the death-chamber. “Tell my Theresa,” said he, in faint and dying accents, “that I bless her, notwithstanding her absence.”

He then asked to see the cup where his heart would be placed after the operation. His daughter, Maria Theresa, who had married Grand-Duke Francis, was in fragile health. Her father's death would lay the heavy crown on her young head. Grief and distress left her powerless in bed. Her life was so important to the world that the emperor didn’t want her to enter the death chamber in her current state. “Tell my Theresa,” he said in faint, dying words, “that I bless her, even though she’s not here.”

The empress had fainted away at the bedside, and had been borne, in the arms of the attendants, into her daughter Maria Theresa’s chamber. She was now summoned, with the younger children, for the final adieu. As the empress, almost delirious with grief, re-entered the apartment, she threw herself upon the bed of her dying husband, and exclaimed, in frenzied tones, “Do not leave me! Do not leave me!”

The empress had fainted at the bedside and was carried by the attendants into her daughter Maria Theresa’s room. She was now called in, along with the younger children, for the final goodbye. As the empress, nearly out of her mind with grief, came back into the room, she threw herself onto the bed of her dying husband and cried out in desperation, “Don’t leave me! Don’t leave me!”

During all the day of Wednesday weeping friends stood around the bed, as the lamp of life flickered in its socket. Every moment it was expected that the emperor would breathe his last. At two o’clock the next morning the spirit took its flight, and the lifeless clay alone remained. The grief-stricken empress closed the eyes of her departed husband, kissed his hands, and “was carried out more dead than alive.” Thus ended the male line of the house of Hapsburg, after five centuries of royal sway. The emperor died on the 20th of October 1740, in the fifty-sixth year of his age.

Throughout Wednesday, weeping friends gathered around the bed as the light of life flickered in its socket. Every moment, it was expected that the emperor would take his last breath. At two o'clock the next morning, his spirit departed, leaving only his lifeless body behind. The grief-stricken empress closed her late husband's eyes, kissed his hands, and “was carried out more dead than alive.” Thus ended the male line of the House of Habsburg, after five centuries of royal rule. The emperor died on October 20, 1740, at the age of fifty-six.

As Frederick received the tidings of this death, he rose, dressed himself, and his ague disappeared, to return no more. A courier was immediately dispatched, at the top of his speed, to summon to his presence General Schwerin and M. Podewils, his chief minister. Two days must elapse before they could reach him. In the mean time, the king, taking counsel of no one, was maturing his plans, and making quiet but vigorous preparations for their execution. He wrote the next day to Voltaire, in allusion to the emperor’s death,

As Frederick heard about the death, he got up, got dressed, and his shivers vanished, never to return. A courier was quickly sent at full speed to call General Schwerin and M. Podewils, his chief minister, to see him. It would take two days for them to arrive. In the meantime, the king, not consulting anyone, was shaping his plans and making quiet but strong preparations for them. He wrote to Voltaire the next day, referencing the emperor’s death,

“I believe that there will, by June next, be more talk of cannon, soldiers, trenches, than of actresses and dancers for the ballet. This small event changes the entire system of Europe. It is the little stone which Nebuchadnezzar saw in his dream, loosening itself and rolling down on the image made of four metals, which it shivers to ruin.”

“I believe that by next June, there will be more discussions about cannons, soldiers, and trenches than about actresses and ballet dancers. This small event is going to change the whole system of Europe. It’s like the little stone that Nebuchadnezzar saw in his dream, breaking loose and rolling down on the statue made of four metals, shattering it to pieces.”

On the southeast frontier of Prussia, between that kingdom, and Poland, and Hungary, there was an Austrian realm called Silesia. The country embraced a territory of twenty thousand square miles, being about twice as large as the State of Vermont.215 The population was about two millions. For more than a century Silesia had been a portion of the Austrian kingdom. Time, and the assent of Europe, had sanctioned the title.

On the southeast border of Prussia, between that kingdom, Poland, and Hungary, there was an Austrian region called Silesia. The area covered about twenty thousand square miles, roughly twice the size of the State of Vermont.215 The population was around two million. For over a century, Silesia had been part of the Austrian kingdom. Time, along with the approval of Europe, had legitimized the claim.

THE DEATH-SCENE OF THE EMPEROR.

But the young King Frederick was very ambitious of enlarging the borders of his Liliputian realm, and of thus attaining a higher position among the proud and powerful monarchs who surrounded him. Maria Theresa, who had inherited the crown of Austria, was a remarkably beautiful, graceful, and accomplished216 young lady, in the twenty-fourth year of her age. She was a young wife, having married Francis, Duke of Lorraine. Her health, as we have mentioned, was at that time delicate. Frederick thought the opportunity a favorable one for wresting Silesia from Austria, and annexing it to his own kingdom. The queen was entirely inexperienced, and could not prove a very formidable military antagonist. Her army was in no respect, either in number, discipline, or materiel, prepared for war. Her treasury was deplorably empty. There was also reason for Frederick to hope that several claimants would rise in opposition to her, disputing the succession.

But the young King Frederick was very eager to expand the borders of his tiny kingdom and, in doing so, elevate his status among the proud and powerful monarchs around him. Maria Theresa, who had inherited the crown of Austria, was a remarkably beautiful, graceful, and accomplished216 young woman, in her twenty-fourth year. She was a newlywed, having married Francis, Duke of Lorraine. Her health, as we mentioned, was quite delicate at that time. Frederick thought this was a good opportunity to take Silesia from Austria and add it to his own kingdom. The queen was completely inexperienced and couldn’t be a very strong military opponent. Her army was not ready for war in terms of size, discipline, or materiel. Her treasury was sadly empty as well. Frederick also had reasons to believe that several claimants would rise up against her, challenging the succession.

On the other hand, Frederick himself was in the very prime of manhood. He was ambitious of military renown. He had a compact army of one hundred thousand men, in better drill and more amply provided with all the apparatus of war than any other troops in Europe. The frugality of his father had left him with a treasury full to overflowing. To take military possession of Silesia would be a very easy thing. There was nothing to obstruct the rush of his troops across the frontiers. There were no strongly garrisoned fortresses, and not above three thousand soldiers in the whole realm. No one even suspected that Frederick would lay any claim to the territory, or that there was the slightest danger of invasion. The complicated claim which he finally presented, in official manifestoes, was founded upon transactions which had taken place a hundred years before. In conversation with his friends he did not lay much stress upon any legitimate title he had to the territory. He frankly admitted, to quote his own words, that “ambition, interest, the desire of making people talk about me, carried the day, and I decided for war.”37

On the other hand, Frederick was in the prime of his life. He was eager for military glory. He had a well-trained army of one hundred thousand men, better equipped and more organized than any other troops in Europe. His father's frugality had left him with a treasury overflowing with funds. Taking military control of Silesia would be very easy. There was nothing to stop his troops from crossing the borders. There were no heavily fortified bases, and only about three thousand soldiers in the entire region. No one even suspected that Frederick would claim the land or that there was any risk of invasion. The complicated claim he eventually presented in official statements was based on events that happened a hundred years earlier. In discussions with his friends, he didn’t emphasize any legal right he had to the land. He openly admitted, in his own words, that “ambition, interest, and the desire to make people talk about me won out, and I chose war.”37

The general voice of history has severely condemned the Prussian king for this invasion of Silesia. Frederick probably217 owed his life to the interposition of the father of Maria Theresa, when the young prince was threatened with the scaffold by his own father. Prussia was bound by the most solemn guarantees to respect the integrity of the Austrian states. There was seemingly a great want of magnanimity in taking advantage of the extreme youth, inexperience, and delicate health of the young queen, who was also embarrassed by an empty treasury and a weakened and undisciplined army. Frederick had also made, in his Anti-Machiavel, loud protestations of his love of justice and magnanimity. Mr. Carlyle, while honestly stating these facts, still does not blame Frederick for seizing the opportunity which the death of the emperor presented for him to enlarge his dominions by plundering the domain of Maria Theresa.

The general consensus of history has harshly criticized the Prussian king for his invasion of Silesia. Frederick likely owed his life to the intervention of Maria Theresa's father when the young prince faced execution at the hands of his own father. Prussia had the most serious commitments to honor the integrity of the Austrian states. It seemed lacking in generosity to take advantage of the young queen's extreme youth, inexperience, and poor health, especially when she was also dealing with an empty treasury and a weakened, undisciplined army. Frederick had also made loud declarations of his love for justice and nobility in his Anti-Machiavel. Mr. Carlyle, while honestly presenting these facts, still does not hold Frederick accountable for seizing the chance that the emperor's death provided him to expand his territories at Maria Theresa's expense.

MAP OF SILESIA.

“It is almost touching,” Mr. Carlyle writes, “to reflect how unexpectedly, like a bolt out of the blue, all this had come upon Frederick, and how it overset his fine programme for the winter at Reinsberg, and for his life generally. Not the Peaceable magnanimities, but the Warlike, are the thing appointed Frederick this winter, and mainly henceforth. Those ‘golden or soft radiances’ which we saw in him, admirable to Voltaire and to Frederick, and to an esurient philanthropic world, it is not218 those, it is the ‘steel bright or stellar kind’ that are to become predominant in Frederick’s existence; grim hail-storms, thunders, and tornado for an existence to him instead of the opulent genialities and halcyon weather anticipated by himself and others.

“It is almost touching,” Mr. Carlyle writes, “to think about how unexpectedly, like a bolt from the blue, all this hit Frederick, and how it completely disrupted his wonderful plans for the winter at Reinsberg and for his life in general. Not the peaceful grand gestures, but the aggressive challenges are what Frederick is set to face this winter and largely from now on. Those ‘golden or soft radiances’ that we admired in him, which were appealing to Voltaire and Frederick himself as well as to a hungry philanthropic world, will not be the focus; instead, it will be the ‘steel bright or stellar kind’ that will dominate Frederick’s life. It will be a harsh reality filled with storms, thunder, and tornadoes instead of the rich warmth and calm weather he and others had expected.”

“Indisputably enough to us, if not yet to Frederick, ‘Reinsberg and Life to the Muses’ are done. On a sudden, from the opposite side of the horizon, see miraculous Opportunity rushing hitherward; swift, terrible, clothed with lightning like a courser of the gods; dare you clutch him by the thunder-mane, and fling yourself upon him, and make for the Empyrean by that course rather? Be immediate about it, then; the time is now or never! No fair judge can blame the young man that he laid hold of the flaming Opportunity in this manner, and obeyed the new omen. To seize such an Opportunity and perilously mount upon it was the part of a young, magnanimous king, less sensible to the perils and more to the other considerations than one older would have been.”38

“Clearly enough for us, if not yet for Frederick, ‘Reinsberg and Life to the Muses’ are finished. Suddenly, from the opposite side of the horizon, see miraculous Opportunity rushing this way; swift, terrifying, cloaked in lightning like a godly steed; will you dare to grab it by the thunderous mane, throw yourself on it, and head for the heavens by that route instead? You need to act now; the time is now or never! No fair judge could blame the young man for seizing this blazing Opportunity like this and following the new sign. To grab such an Opportunity and take the risk of riding it was the act of a young, bold king, more focused on the possibilities than an older person would have been.”38


CHAPTER XII.
THE SILESIA INVASION.

Deceptive Measures of Frederick.—Plans for the Invasion of Silesia.—Avowed Reasons for the Invasion.—The Ball in Berlin.—The March of the Army.—Hardships and Successes.—Letter to Voltaire.—Capture of Glogau.—Capture of Brieg.—Bombardment of Neisse.

Deceptive Strategies of Frederick.—Plans to Invade Silesia.—Reasons Given for the Invasion.—The Ball in Berlin.—The Army's Advance.—Struggles and Victories.—Letter to Voltaire.—Capture of Glogau.—Capture of Brieg.—Bombardment of Neisse.

With the utmost secrecy Frederick matured his plans. It could not be concealed that he was about to embark in some important military enterprise. The embassadors from other courts exerted all their ingenuity, but in vain, to ascertain in what direction the army was to march. Though the French had an embassador at Berlin, still it would seem that Voltaire was sent as a spy, under the guise of friendship, to attempt to ferret out the designs of the king. These men, who did not profess any regard to the principles of religion, seem also to have trampled219 under feet all the instincts of honor. Voltaire endeavored to conceal his treachery beneath smiles and flattery, writing even love verses to the king. The king kept his own secret. Voltaire was not a little chagrined by his want of success. In his billet of leave he wrote:

With complete secrecy, Frederick developed his plans. It was clear he was about to launch some significant military operation. The ambassadors from other courts used all their cleverness, but it was useless in trying to determine where the army would go. Although the French had an ambassador in Berlin, it seems Voltaire was sent as a spy, pretending to be a friend, in an attempt to uncover the king’s intentions. These men, who didn’t claim to uphold any values of religion, also seemed to have disregarded all instincts of honor. Voltaire tried to hide his betrayal with smiles and flattery, even writing love poems to the king. The king kept his own secrets. Voltaire was quite frustrated by his lack of success. In his leave note, he wrote:

“No, despite your virtues, no despite your charms,
My soul is not satisfied:
No, you’re just a flirt, "Who conquers hearts, and does not give themselves."__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

Frederick, while equally complimentary, while lavishing gifts and smiles upon his guest, to whom he had written that as there “could be but one God, so there could be but one Voltaire,” wrote from Ruppin to M. Jordan, on the 28th of November, just before Voltaire took his leave.

Frederick, while being just as flattering and showering his guest with gifts and smiles, had written to him that since there "could only be one God, there could only be one Voltaire." He wrote from Ruppin to M. Jordan on November 28th, just before Voltaire departed.

“Thy miser” (Voltaire) “shall drink to the lees of his insatiable desire to enrich himself. He shall have the three thousand thalers [$2250]. He was with me six days. That will be at the rate of five hundred thalers [$375] a day. That is paying dearly for a fool. Never had court fool such wages before.”

“Your miser” (Voltaire) “will drink to the bottom of his endless desire to get richer. He will receive three thousand thalers [$2250]. He spent six days with me. That works out to five hundred thalers [$375] a day. That's paying a lot for a fool. No court jester has ever earned such wages before.”

The Austrian envoy expressed to his court a suspicion that Silesia might be threatened. The reply which came back was that the Austrian court would not, and could not, believe that a prince who was under such obligations to the father of Maria Theresa, and who had made such loud professions of integrity and philanthropy, could be guilty of such an outrage.

The Austrian envoy told his government that he suspected Silesia might be in danger. The response he received was that the Austrian court would not, and could not, believe that a prince who owed so much to Maria Theresa's father, and who had made such strong claims of honesty and concern for others, could commit such a shocking act.

Frederick did what he could to divert the attention of the court at Reinsberg by multiplying gayeties of every kind. There was feasting, and music, and dancing, and theatric exhibitions, often continuing until four o’clock in the morning. In the mean time couriers were coming and going. Troops were moving. Provisions and the materiel of war were accumulating. Anxious embassadors watched every movement of the king’s hand, weighed every word which escaped his lips, and tried every adroit measure to elicit from him his secret. The Danish minister, Prätorius, wrote to his court from Berlin:

Frederick did everything he could to keep the court at Reinsberg entertained by throwing all kinds of parties. There were feasts, music, dancing, and theatrical performances, often lasting until four in the morning. Meanwhile, couriers were coming and going. Troops were on the move. Supplies and military equipment were piling up. Nervous ambassadors watched every gesture of the king, analyzed every word that came out of his mouth, and tried various clever tactics to uncover his secrets. The Danish minister, Prätorius, wrote to his court from Berlin:

220 “From all persons who return from Reinsberg the unanimous report is that the king works the whole day through with an assiduity which is unique, and then, in the evening, gives himself to the pleasures of society with a vivacity of mirth and sprightly humor, which makes those evening parties charming.”

220 “Everyone who comes back from Reinsberg says the same thing: the king works diligently all day long, in a way that’s truly extraordinary, and then in the evening, he enjoys social gatherings with a lively spirit and cheerful humor, making those evening parties delightful.”

The Marquis of Botta, the Austrian envoy, endeavoring to penetrate the plans of Frederick, descanted upon the horrible condition of the roads in Silesia, which province he had traversed in coming to Berlin. The king listened with a quiet smile, and then, with much apparent indifference, replied,

The Marquis of Botta, the Austrian envoy, trying to figure out Frederick's plans, talked about the terrible state of the roads in Silesia, which he had crossed to get to Berlin. The king listened with a slight smile and then, seeming quite indifferent, responded,

“The worst which can happen to those who wish to travel in Silesia is to get spattered with the mud.”

“The worst thing that can happen to those who want to travel in Silesia is to get splashed with mud.”

The English envoy, Sir Guy Dickens, being utterly baffled in all his endeavors to discover the enterprise upon which the king was about to embark, wrote to his court:

The English envoy, Sir Guy Dickens, completely confused in all his attempts to find out the mission the king was about to undertake, wrote to his court:

“Nobody here, great or small, dares make any representation to this young prince against the measures he is pursuing, though all are sensible of the confusion which must follow. A prince who had the least regard to honor, truth, and justice, could not act the part he is going to do. But it is plain his only view is to deceive us all, and conceal for a while his ambitious and mischievous designs.”

“Nobody here, whether important or not, dares to challenge this young prince about the actions he's taking, even though everyone knows the chaos that will inevitably result. A prince with even a slight sense of honor, truth, and justice wouldn't take the path he's about to choose. It's clear that his only aim is to deceive us all and keep his ambitious and harmful plans hidden for a time.”

Dickens at length ventured to ask the king directly, “What shall I write to England?”

Dickens finally mustered the courage to ask the king directly, “What should I tell England?”

Frederick angrily replied, “You can have no instructions to ask that question. And if you had, I have an answer ready for you. England has no right to inquire into my designs. Your great sea armaments, did I ask you any question about them? No! I was, and am, silent on that head.”40

Frederick replied angrily, “You have no authority to ask that question. And even if you did, I’m prepared with an answer. England has no right to question my intentions. Did I ever ask you about your massive naval forces? No! I remained silent on that matter.”40

221 By the 10th of December, within a fortnight of the time that the king received the tidings of the death of the emperor, he had collected such a force on the frontiers of Silesia that there could be no question that the invasion of that province was intended. As not the slightest preparation had been made on the part of Austria to meet such an event, the king could with perfect ease overrun the province and seize all its fortresses. But Austria was, in territory, resources, and military power, vastly stronger than Prussia. It was therefore scarcely possible that Frederick could hold the province, after he had seized it, unless he could encourage others to dispute the succession of Maria Theresa, and thus involve Europe in a general war. Frederick, having made all his arrangements for prompt and vigorous action, sent to Maria Theresa a message which could be regarded only as an insult:

221 By December 10th, just two weeks after the king learned about the emperor's death, he had gathered enough forces at the Silesian border to clearly signal his intention to invade the province. Since Austria made no preparations to counter this move, the king could easily take over the province and capture all its fortresses. However, Austria was far stronger than Prussia in terms of land, resources, and military strength. This made it unlikely that Frederick could keep the province once he took it, unless he could incite others to challenge Maria Theresa’s claim to the throne, which would drag Europe into a full-scale war. Frederick, after setting up all his plans for swift and decisive action, sent Maria Theresa a message that could only be seen as an insult:

“Surrender to me peaceably,” was the substance of this demand, “the province of Silesia, and I will be the ally of your majesty in maintaining your right to the throne, and in defending the integrity of all the rest of your realms. I will exert my influence to have the Grand-duke Francis41 chosen Emperor of Germany, and will also immediately pay one million of dollars into the Austrian treasury.”

“Give me Silesia peacefully,” was the gist of this demand, “and I will support you in keeping your throne and protecting all your other lands. I will use my influence to have Grand Duke Francis41 selected as Emperor of Germany, and I will also transfer one million dollars into the Austrian treasury right away.”

An embassador, Count De Gotter, was sent to Vienna to present this demand to Maria Theresa. He was authorized, in case these terms were not accepted, to declare war. But in the mean time, before the count could possibly reach Vienna, consequently before there was any declaration of war, or even any demand presented, Frederick, at the head of his troops, had entered Silesia, and was seizing its defenseless fortresses.42

An ambassador, Count De Gotter, was sent to Vienna to deliver this demand to Maria Theresa. He was authorized, if these terms weren’t accepted, to declare war. But in the meantime, before the count could possibly reach Vienna, and therefore before there was any declaration of war, or even any demand made, Frederick, leading his troops, had entered Silesia, and was taking over its defenseless fortresses.42

As the king was about to embark upon this enterprise, it was proposed to place upon the banners the words “For God and our Country.” But Frederick struck out the words “For God,” saying that it was improper to introduce the name of the Deity into the quarrels of men, and that he was embarking in war to gain a province, not for religion.43 In a brief speech to his soldiers he said,

As the king was about to start this mission, it was suggested to put the words “For God and our Country” on the banners. But Frederick removed the words “For God,” stating that it was inappropriate to bring the name of God into human conflicts and that he was going to war to acquire a territory, not for religious reasons.43 In a short speech to his soldiers, he said,

“Gentlemen, I do not look upon you as my subjects, but as my friends. The troops of Brandenburg have always signalized222 themselves by their courage, and given, on different occasions, the fullest evidences of their bravery. I shall be an eye-witness to all your exploits. You will always fight in my presence. I will recompense those who shall distinguish themselves for their zeal in my service rather as a father than as a sovereign.”

“Gentlemen, I don’t see you as my subjects, but as my friends. The troops of Brandenburg have always stood out for their courage and have shown their bravery on many occasions. I will be right there to witness all your achievements. You will always fight in my presence. I will reward those who excel for their dedication to my service more as a father than as a ruler.”

In reference to this campaign the king subsequently wrote: “At the death of the emperor there were but two Austrian regiments in Silesia. Being determined to assert my right to that duchy, I was obliged to make war during the winter, that I might make the banks of the Neisse the scene of action. Had I waited till the spring, what we gained by one single march would certainly have cost us three or four difficult campaigns.”44

In relation to this campaign, the king later wrote: “When the emperor died, there were only two Austrian regiments in Silesia. Determined to claim my right to that duchy, I had to fight during the winter so that the banks of the Neisse could be our battlefield. If I had waited until spring, what we achieved in one quick move would have definitely taken us three or four challenging campaigns.”44

To the summons which Frederick sent to Maria Theresa, demanding the surrender of Silesia, no response could be returned, consistent with the dignity of the crown, but a peremptory refusal. The reply was unanswerable in its logic. Though it was, in general, couched in courteous terms, one sentence crept into it of rather scornful defiance.

To the request that Frederick sent to Maria Theresa, demanding the handover of Silesia, there was no reply that could match the dignity of the crown other than a firm refusal. The response was undeniable in its reasoning. Although it was mostly phrased politely, one sentence slipped in that carried a tone of scornful defiance.

“It seems strange,” said the Austrian minister of war, “that his Prussian majesty, whose official post in Germany, as chamberlain of the emperor, is to present the basin and towel to the house of Austria, should now presume to prescribe rules to it.”

“It seems odd,” said the Austrian minister of war, “that his Prussian majesty, whose official role in Germany, as the emperor's chamberlain, is to present the basin and towel to the house of Austria, should now have the audacity to lay down rules for it.”

On Tuesday night, the 12th of December, 1740, there was a very splendid masked ball in Berlin. The king and queen were both present. The mind of the king was evidently preoccupied, though he endeavored to assume an air of gayety. Privately quitting the ball at a late hour, he set out, early in the morning, to place himself at the head of forty thousand troops whom he had assembled near the Silesian frontier. A small escort only accompanied him. It was a cold winter’s day. Driving rapidly, they reached Frankfort that night, sixty miles distant. In the dawn of the next day the king was again upon the road, and, after a drive of forty miles, reached Crossen, a border town, where he established his head-quarters.

On Tuesday night, December 12, 1740, there was a grand masked ball in Berlin. The king and queen both attended. The king seemed to be distracted, even though he tried to act cheerful. Sneaking out of the ball late at night, he set off early the next morning to lead forty thousand troops he had gathered near the Silesian border. He had only a small escort with him. It was a chilly winter day. They drove quickly and reached Frankfort that night, which was sixty miles away. At dawn the next day, the king was back on the road and, after a forty-mile drive, arrived in Crossen, a border town, where he set up his headquarters.

Two Silesian barons called upon him, and presented a protest from the authorities they represented against his meditated invasion, the design of which was now manifest to all. The king received them very courteously, tossed the protest to a secretary223 to file away or to cast into the waste-paper basket, and invited the two gentlemen to dine with him.

Two Silesian barons visited him and presented a protest from the authorities they represented against his planned invasion, which was now clear to everyone. The king welcomed them warmly, tossed the protest to a secretary223 to either file or throw in the trash, and invited the two gentlemen to join him for dinner.

The next day the Prussian army, in two divisions, occupying a space about ten miles long and ten broad in the lines of march, crossed the frontiers, and entered the Silesian territory.45 Frederick issued a proclamation declaring that he had come as a friend; that no one would be molested in person, property, or religious privileges; and that every thing used by the army would be amply paid for.

The next day, the Prussian army, divided into two groups and occupying an area about ten miles long and ten miles wide in their march, crossed the border and entered Silesia. 45 Frederick issued a proclamation stating that he came as a friend; that no one would be harmed regarding their person, property, or religious rights; and that everything used by the army would be fully compensated.

In very rapid march, the troops advanced through Grünberg toward Glogau, about forty miles in the interior. Here there was a fortified town, which was considered the key of Northern Silesia. It was but feebly garrisoned, and was entirely unprepared for resistance. By great exertions, the Austrian governor of the province, Count Wallis, and his second in command, General Browne, succeeded in placing behind the works a little garrison of one thousand men. The whole population was summoned to work upon the ramparts. Count Wallis remained in Glogau. General Browne took command of the troops and garrisons abroad. But there was a division of sentiment within the walls. Quite a large portion of the population was Protestant, and would be glad to come under the protection of Protestant Prussia. The Catholics were zealous for the continued reign of Austria.

In a swift march, the troops moved through Grünberg toward Glogau, which was about forty miles inland. This was a fortified town considered the key to Northern Silesia. It had a weak garrison and was completely unprepared to defend itself. With great effort, the Austrian governor of the province, Count Wallis, and his deputy, General Browne, managed to assemble a small garrison of one thousand men behind the fortifications. The entire population was called to work on the ramparts. Count Wallis stayed in Glogau while General Browne took command of the troops and garrisons outside the town. However, there was a division of opinion within the walls. A significant portion of the population was Protestant and would be pleased to come under the protection of Protestant Prussia. The Catholics were eager for Austria to remain in power.

The Prussian troops, meeting with no opposition, spread over the country, and a strong division reached Weichau on Saturday, the 17th. There they spent Sunday in rest. Frederick was anxious to win to his cause the Protestant population. He consequently favored their religious institutions, and ordered that Protestant worship should be held in the villages which he occupied, and where there was no Protestant church edifice, one part of the day in the Catholic churches. This plan he continued through the campaign, much to the gratification of the chaplains of his regiments and the Protestant community in Silesia. Though the Austrian government had not been particularly oppressive to the Protestants, still it leaned decidedly against what224 it deemed heresy. The Jesuits, favored by the governmental officials, were unwearied in their endeavors to promote the interests of their Church. Frederick, by allowing the impression to be spread abroad that he was the champion of Protestantism, was enabled to secure the sympathies of quite a strong party in Silesia in his favor. It is said that two thirds of the inhabitants of Silesia were Protestants, and therefore favorable to Frederick.

The Prussian troops, facing no resistance, spread across the country, and a large division arrived in Weichau on Saturday, the 17th. They took the following Sunday to rest. Frederick wanted to win over the Protestant population to his side. He therefore supported their religious practices and mandated that Protestant services be held in the villages he occupied, and where there was no Protestant church, one part of the day in the Catholic churches. He continued this approach throughout the campaign, much to the delight of the chaplains in his regiments and the Protestant community in Silesia. Although the Austrian government hadn't been particularly harsh on Protestants, it was clearly biased against what it considered heresy. The Jesuits, supported by government officials, tirelessly worked to advance their Church's interests. By allowing the perception to grow that he was the defender of Protestantism, Frederick was able to gain the support of a significant number of people in Silesia. It's said that two-thirds of Silesia's residents were Protestants, and therefore sympathetic to Frederick.

THE MARCH INTO SILESIA.

In the suburbs of Glogau there was a Protestant church which Count Wallis deemed it a military necessity to order to be burned down, lest it should protect the Prussians in their attack. “The Prussians,” said Wallis, “will make a block-house of it.” The Protestants pleaded earnestly for a brief respite, and sent a delegation to Frederick to intercede for the safety of their church. The king very courteously, and with shrewd policy, replied,

In the suburbs of Glogau, there was a Protestant church that Count Wallis considered a military necessity to burn down so it wouldn’t provide shelter for the Prussians during their attack. “The Prussians,” Wallis said, “will turn it into a blockhouse.” The Protestants earnestly requested a short delay and sent a delegation to Frederick to advocate for the safety of their church. The king responded very courteously and with intelligent strategy,

“You are the first who have asked any favor of me on Silesian ground. Your request shall be granted.”

“You're the first person to ask me for a favor regarding Silesia. Your request will be granted.”

Immediately he sent a polite note to Count Wallis, assuring him that the attack, if attack were necessary, should be made on the other side of the city, so that no military advantage could be taken of the church. This popular act resounded widely not225 only through the Protestant community of Silesia, but throughout Europe.

Immediately, he sent a courteous note to Count Wallis, assuring him that if an attack was necessary, it should be launched on the other side of the city, ensuring that no military advantage could be gained from the church. This popular move resonated widely not 225 only within the Protestant community of Silesia but also throughout Europe.

Monday morning, December 19th, the army was again on the move, now spread out into a length of nearly fifteen miles, and even more than that in breadth. Concentration was unnecessary, as there was no foe to be encountered. The occupation of this wide area enabled Frederick to take advantage of good roads, and also to obtain abundance of supplies. Their advance led them in a southerly direction, up the western banks of the Oder, which stream here runs nearly north.

Monday morning, December 19th, the army was on the move again, now stretched out over nearly fifteen miles in length and even more in width. There was no need to concentrate, as there was no enemy to confront. Occupying this large area allowed Frederick to utilize the good roads and also to gather plenty of supplies. Their advance took them south along the western banks of the Oder, which flows nearly north at this point.

It seems to be ever the doom of an army to encounter mud and rain. It was cold, gloomy, December weather. The troops were drenched and chilled by the floods continually falling from the clouds. The advance of the army was over a flat country where the water stood in pools. All day long, Monday and Tuesday, the rain continued to fall without intermission. But the Prussian army, under its impetuous leader, paid no regard to the antagonistic elements.

It seems like an army always has to deal with mud and rain. The weather was cold and gloomy in December. The troops were soaked and freezing from the constant downpour. The army was moving through a flat landscape where water was pooling everywhere. The rain kept falling nonstop all day on Monday and Tuesday. But the Prussian army, led by its passionate leader, didn’t pay any attention to the challenging conditions.

“Waters all out, bridges down,” writes Carlyle; “the country one wide lake of eddying mud; up to the knee for many miles together; up to the middle for long spaces; sometimes even to the chin or deeper, where your bridge was washed away. The Prussians marched through it as if they had been slate or iron. Rank and file—nobody quitted his rank, nobody looked sour in the face—they took the pouring of the skies and the red seas of terrestrial liquid as matters that must be; cheered one another with jocosities, with choral snatches, and swashed unweariedly forward. Ten hours some of them were out, their march being twenty or twenty-five miles.”

“Waters everywhere, bridges down,” writes Carlyle; “the country is one big lake of swirling mud; knee-deep for many miles straight; waist-deep for long stretches; sometimes even up to the chin or deeper, where your bridge got washed away. The Prussians marched through it as if they were made of slate or iron. In rank and file—no one left their position, no one looked upset—they treated the pouring rain and the flooded fields as something that had to happen; they encouraged each other with jokes, singing bits of songs, and pushed forward tirelessly. Some of them were out for ten hours, covering a march of twenty or twenty-five miles.”

They reached Milkau Tuesday night, the 20th. Here they were allowed one day of rest, and Frederick gave each soldier a gratuity of about fifteen cents. On Thursday the march was resumed, and the advance-guard of the army was rapidly gathered around Glogau, behind whose walls Count Wallis had posted his intrepid little garrison of a thousand men. Here Frederick encountered his first opposition. The works were found too strong to be carried by immediate assault, and Frederick had not yet brought forward his siege cannon. The following extracts from the correspondence which Frederick carried on at226 this time develop the state of public sentiment, and the views and character of the king. His friend Jordan, who had been left in Berlin, wrote to him as follows, under date of December 14, 1740, the day after the king left to place himself at the head of his army:

They arrived in Milkau on Tuesday night, the 20th. Here, they were given a day to rest, and Frederick gave each soldier a tip of about fifteen cents. On Thursday, they resumed the march, and the army’s advance guard quickly gathered around Glogau, where Count Wallis had stationed his brave little garrison of a thousand men. This was Frederick's first encounter with opposition. The fortifications were too strong to take in an immediate assault, and Frederick had not yet brought up his siege cannons. The following excerpts from the correspondence that Frederick had at226 this time reveal the public mood and the king's perspectives and character. His friend Jordan, who had stayed in Berlin, wrote to him as follows on December 14, 1740, the day after the king left to lead his army:

“Every body here is on tiptoe for the event, of which both origin and end are a riddle to most. Those who, in the style of theologians, consider themselves entitled to be certain, maintain that your majesty is expected with religious impatience by the Protestants; and that the Catholics hope to see themselves delivered from a multitude of imposts, which cruelly tear up the beautiful bosom of their Church. You can not but succeed in your valiant and stoical enterprise, since both religion and worldly interest rank themselves under your flag. Wallis, they say, has punished a Silesian heretic, of enthusiastic turn, as blasphemer, for announcing that a new Messiah is just coming. I have a taste for that kind of martyrdom. Critical persons consider the present step as directly opposed to certain maxims in the Anti-Machiavel.”

“Everyone here is on edge for the event, which remains a mystery to most regarding its origin and conclusion. Those who, like theologians, believe they have certainty argue that your majesty is eagerly awaited by the Protestants; meanwhile, the Catholics are hoping to be freed from various burdens that are harshly straining the Church. You can't help but succeed in your brave and stoic mission, as both religious and worldly interests align under your banner. They say Wallis has punished a Silesian heretic, who is quite passionate, as a blasphemer for claiming that a new Messiah is on the way. I have a fondness for that kind of martyrdom. Critical observers see the current action as directly contradicting certain principles in the Anti-Machiavel.”

Again M. Jordan wrote, a week later, on the 20th of December:

Again M. Jordan wrote a week later, on December 20th:

“The day before yesterday, in all churches, was prayer to Heaven for success to your majesty’s arms, interest of the Protestant religion being one cause of the war, or the only one assigned by the reverend gentleman. At the sound of these words the zeal of the people kindles. ‘Bless God for raising such a defender! Who dared suspect our king’s indifference to Protestantism?’”

“The day before yesterday, in all churches, people prayed to Heaven for success for your majesty’s army, with the interest of the Protestant religion being one reason for the war, or the only one mentioned by the reverend gentleman. At the sound of these words, the zeal of the people ignited. ‘Thank God for raising such a defender! Who would dare to think our king is indifferent to Protestantism?’”

On the 19th of December the king wrote, from the vicinity of Glogau, to M. Jordan. Perhaps he would not so frankly have revealed his ambition and his want of principle had he supposed that the private letter would be exposed to the perusal of the whole civilized world.

On December 19th, the king wrote from near Glogau to M. Jordan. Maybe he wouldn't have so openly shared his ambitions and lack of principles if he had known that the private letter would be read by the entire civilized world.

“Seigneur Jordan,” the king writes, “thy letter has given me a great deal of pleasure in regard to all these talkings thou reportest. To-morrow I arrive at our last station this side of Glogau, which place I hope to get in a few days. All things favor my designs; and I hope to return to Berlin, after executing them, gloriously, and in a way to be content with. Let the ignorant227 and the envious talk. It is not they who shall ever serve as load-star to my designs; not they, but glory. With the love of that I am penetrated more than ever. My troops have their hearts big with it, and I answer to thee for success. Adieu! dear Jordan. Write me all the ill the public says of thy friend, and be persuaded that I love and will esteem thee always.”

“Lord Jordan,” the king writes, “your letter has brought me a lot of joy regarding all these discussions you mention. Tomorrow I will arrive at our last stop before Glogau, which I hope to reach in a few days. Everything is in my favor; and I hope to return to Berlin after accomplishing my plans, feeling proud and satisfied. Let the ignorant227 and the envious gossip. They will never be the guiding light for my ambitions; it is glory that drives me. I feel more determined than ever by that. My troops are inspired by it, and I promise you success. Goodbye, dear Jordan. Let me know everything negative the public says about your friend, and know that I will always love and respect you.”

To Voltaire the king wrote, in a very similar strain, four days later, on the 23d of December:

To Voltaire, the king wrote, in a very similar tone, four days later, on December 23rd:

My dear Voltaire,—I have received two of your letters, but could not answer sooner. I am like Charles Twelfth’s chess king, who was always on the move. For a fortnight past we have been kept continually afoot and under way in such weather as you never saw.

My dear Voltaire,—I’ve received two of your letters, but I couldn’t reply sooner. I’m like the chess king of Charles XII, always on the move. For the past two weeks, we’ve been constantly on the go in weather you’ve never experienced.”

“I am too tired to reply to your delightful verses, and shivering too much with cold to taste all the charm of them. But that will come round again. Do not ask poetry from a man who is actually doing the work of a wagoner, and sometimes even of a wagoner stuck in the mud. Would you like to know my way of life? We march from seven in the morning till four in the afternoon. I dine then; afterward I work—I receive tiresome visits; with these comes a detail of insipid matters of business. ’Tis wrong-headed men, punctiliously difficult, who are to be set right; heads too hot which must be restrained, idle fellows that must be urged, impatient men that must be rendered docile, plunderers to be restrained within the bounds of equity, babblers to hear babbling, dumb people to keep in talk; in fine, one has to drink with those that like it, to eat with those who are hungry; one has to become a Jew with Jews, a pagan with pagans. Such are my occupations, which I would willingly make over to another if the phantom they call glory did not rise on me too often. In truth, it is a great folly, but a folly difficult to cast away when once you are smitten by it.

“I’m too tired to respond to your beautiful poems, and I’m too cold to fully appreciate them. But that will come around again. Don’t expect poetry from someone who’s really working as a wagon driver, and sometimes even stuck in the mud. Do you want to know how I live? We march from seven in the morning until four in the afternoon. After that, I have lunch; then I work—I get tedious visits; along with those come a bunch of dull business matters. There are stubborn people who need correcting; hot-headed folks who need to be calmed down, lazy people who need encouragement, impatient ones who need to be made more patient, thieves who have to be kept within fair limits, talkers who need to listen, quiet ones who need to be engaged in conversation; basically, I have to drink with those who enjoy it and eat with those who are hungry; I’ve got to adapt to different situations with different people. These are my tasks, which I would gladly pass on to someone else if the thought of glory didn’t haunt me so often. Honestly, it’s a big mistake, but it’s a mistake that’s hard to shake off once you’re caught up in it.”

“Adieu, my dear Voltaire! May Heaven preserve from misfortune the man I should so like to sup with at night after fighting in the morning. Do not forget the absent who love you.

“Goodbye, my dear Voltaire! May Heaven keep safe the man I would love to share a meal with at night after battling all morning. Don’t forget those who are not here but care for you.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

As we have mentioned, the army advanced mainly in two columns.228 While the left was briefly delayed at Glogau, the right, under the command of General Schwerin, was pushed rapidly forward a few leagues, to Liegnitz. They reached the city, unexpectedly to its inhabitants, just at the dawn of a drear, chill winter’s morning, the rain having changed to freezing cold. It was Wednesday, December 28. The Prussian grenadiers stole softly upon the slumbering sentinels, seized them, and locked them in the guard-house. Then the whole column marched into the heart of the city silently, without music, but with a tramp which aroused all the sleepers in the streets through which they passed—many of whom, in their night-caps, peered curiously out of their chamber windows. Having reached the central square, or market-place, the forces were concentrated, and the drums and bugles pealed forth notes of triumph. The Prussian flag rose promptly from rampart and tower. Liegnitz was essentially a Protestant town. The inhabitants, who had received but few favors from the Catholic Austrian government, welcomed their invaders with cautious demonstrations of joy.

As we mentioned, the army advanced mainly in two columns.228 While the left was briefly delayed at Glogau, the right, led by General Schwerin, quickly moved forward a few leagues to Liegnitz. They arrived in the city, surprising its residents, just at the break of a dreary, cold winter morning, as the rain turned to freezing temperatures. It was Wednesday, December 28. The Prussian grenadiers quietly approached the sleeping sentinels, captured them, and locked them in the guardhouse. Then the entire column marched silently into the heart of the city, without music, but with a sound that woke everyone in the streets they passed—many of whom, in their nightcaps, peeked curiously out of their windows. Once they reached the central square, or marketplace, the troops gathered, and the drums and bugles sounded triumphant notes. The Prussian flag was promptly raised from the ramparts and towers. Liegnitz was predominantly a Protestant town. The residents, who had received very little support from the Catholic Austrian government, welcomed their invaders with cautious expressions of joy.

Frederick, having completed the investment of Glogau, cutting off all its supplies, left a sufficient detachment there to starve the city into submission. There were about seven thousand inhabitants within the walls—“a much-enduring, frugal, pious, and very desirable people.” As it was probable that the feeble garrison, after a brief show of resistance, would surrender, Frederick hastened in person, with all his remaining available troops, toward Breslau, the capital of Silesia. On the 27th he wrote to M. Jordan:

Frederick, having finished surrounding Glogau and cutting off all its supplies, left a sufficient group there to force the city into submission through starvation. There were about seven thousand residents inside the walls—“a resilient, thrifty, devout, and very admirable people.” Since it was likely that the weak garrison would surrender after a short display of resistance, Frederick rushed in person, with all his remaining available troops, toward Breslau, the capital of Silesia. On the 27th he wrote to M. Jordan:

“I march to-morrow for Breslau, and shall be there in four days. You Berliners have a spirit of prophecy which goes beyond me. In fine, I go my road; and you will shortly see Silesia ranked in the list of our provinces. Adieu! this is all I have time to tell you. Religion and our brave soldiers will do the rest.”

“I’m heading to Breslau tomorrow and I’ll be there in four days. You Berliners have a knack for predicting the future that I can’t match. Anyway, I'm on my path; soon you’ll see Silesia added to our provinces. Goodbye! That’s all I have time to say. Faith and our courageous soldiers will take care of the rest.”

With almost unprecedented rapidity Frederick pressed his troops along, accomplishing “in three marches near upon seventy miles.” The course of the Oder here is, in its general direction, northwest. The army marched along its southwestern banks. On Saturday evening, the last day of the year, the advance-guard took possession of the southern and western suburbs of Breslau.229 The city, of one hundred thousand inhabitants, was spread out over both banks of the stream. Frederick established his headquarters at the palace of Pilsnitz, about five miles from the city. There were many Protestants in Breslau, who rejoiced in the idea of exchanging a Catholic for a Protestant government. It is said that some of the sentinels on the walls would watch their opportunity and present arms to the Prussian soldiers, and even at times exclaim, “Welcome, dear sirs!”

With almost unprecedented speed, Frederick moved his troops forward, covering “nearly seventy miles in three marches.” The Oder River here generally flows northwest, and the army marched along its southwestern banks. On Saturday evening, the last day of the year, the advance guard took control of the southern and western suburbs of Breslau.229 The city, with a population of one hundred thousand, extended over both sides of the river. Frederick set up his headquarters at the Pilsnitz Palace, about five miles from the city. Many Protestants in Breslau were excited about the prospect of swapping a Catholic government for a Protestant one. It's said that some of the sentinels on the walls would look for a chance to salute the Prussian soldiers and occasionally shout, “Welcome, dear sirs!”

Before sunrise Sunday morning the Prussians had seized upon many important posts. About seven o’clock a flag of truce, or rather a trumpeter, approached one of the gates, demanding admittance to communicate to the chief magistrate of the city the intentions and requisitions of the Prussian king. After some delay, two colonels were admitted. They demanded the entire surrender of the city, and that the authority of Frederick, the King of Prussia, should be recognized instead of that of Maria Theresa, Queen of Austria. All their local laws and customs were to be respected, and they were to be protected in all their rights and privileges. Their own garrison should guard the city. No Prussian soldier should enter the gates with other than side-arms. The king himself, in taking possession of the city, should be accompanied by a body-guard of but thirty men. The city council was assembled to consider this summons, and thirty hours were spent in anxious deliberation.

Before sunrise on Sunday morning, the Prussians had taken control of several key positions. At around seven o’clock, a flag of truce, or more accurately, a trumpeter, approached one of the gates, asking for entry to inform the chief magistrate of the city about the Prussian king's intentions and demands. After some delays, two colonels were granted access. They insisted on the complete surrender of the city and that the authority of Frederick, the King of Prussia, should be recognized in place of Maria Theresa, Queen of Austria. All local laws and customs would be respected, and the residents would be protected in all their rights and privileges. Their own garrison would be responsible for safeguarding the city. No Prussian soldier would enter the gates armed beyond side-arms. The king himself, in taking possession of the city, would be accompanied by only thirty men. The city council convened to discuss this ultimatum, spending thirty hours in tense deliberation.

In the mean time Frederick took positions which commanded the three gates on his, the southern, side of the river; constructed a bridge of boats; and sent four hundred men across the stream, and made preparations to force an entrance. At four o’clock in the afternoon of Monday, not a gun having yet been fired, a messenger brought the intelligence that the town would be surrendered. At eight o’clock the next morning, Tuesday, 3d of January, 1741, the city authorities came in their coaches, with much parade, to welcome their new sovereign. It was a bitter cold morning. The king had ridden away to reconnoitre the walls in their whole circuit. It was not until near noon that he was prepared to accompany the officials to the palace which was made ready for him. He then, on horseback, attended by his principal officers, and followed by an imposing retinue, in a grand entrance, proudly took possession of his easy conquest.230 He rode a very magnificent gray charger, and wore his usual cocked hat and a blue cloak, both of which were somewhat the worse for wear. Four footmen, gorgeously dressed in scarlet, trimmed with silver lace, walked by the side of his horse. The streets through which he passed were thronged, and the windows and balconies were crowded with spectators of both sexes. Though Frederick did not meet with an enthusiastic reception, he was very gracious, bowing to the people on each side of the street, and saluting with much courtesy those who seemed to be people of note.

In the meantime, Frederick took positions that overlooked the three gates on his side of the river to the south; built a bridge of boats; and sent four hundred men across the water, making plans to force an entrance. At four o’clock in the afternoon on Monday, with no gunshots fired yet, a messenger arrived with the news that the town was going to surrender. By eight o’clock the next morning, Tuesday, January 3, 1741, the city officials arrived in their coaches, with much ceremony, to welcome their new ruler. It was a bitterly cold morning. The king had ridden off to survey the walls around the city. It wasn’t until near noon that he was ready to accompany the officials to the palace prepared for him. He then rode on horseback, attended by his main officers and followed by a grand procession, proudly taking possession of his easy victory. He rode a magnificent gray horse and wore his usual cocked hat and a blue cloak, both of which were showing signs of wear. Four footmen, beautifully dressed in scarlet trimmed with silver lace, walked beside his horse. The streets he passed through were crowded, and the windows and balconies were filled with spectators of both genders. Although Frederick didn’t receive an enthusiastic welcome, he was very gracious, bowing to the people on each side of the street and saluting courteously to those who appeared to be notable figures.230

On the evening of the 5th his Prussian majesty gave a grand ball. All the nobility, high and low, were invited. The provident king arranged that the expenses, which he was to defray, should not exceed half a guinea for each guest. Early hours were fashionable in those days. Frederick entered the assembly-rooms at six o’clock, and opened the ball with a Silesian lady. He was very complaisant, and walked through the rooms with a smile upon his countenance, conversing freely with the most distinguished of his guests. About ten o’clock he silently withdrew, but the dancing and feasting continued until a late hour.

On the evening of the 5th, the Prussian king hosted a grand ball. All the nobles, both high and low, were invited. The thoughtful king made sure that the costs he would cover wouldn’t exceed half a guinea for each guest. Early events were popular back then. Frederick arrived at the assembly rooms at six o’clock and kicked off the ball with a Silesian lady. He was very friendly and walked through the rooms with a smile, chatting easily with the most distinguished guests. Around ten o’clock, he quietly left, but the dancing and feasting went on for a while longer.

The king exerted all his powers of fascination to gain the affections of the people. Though he dismissed all the Austrian public functionaries, and supplied their places by his own friends, he continued to the Catholics their ancient privileges, and paid marked attention to the bishop and his clergy. At the same time, he encouraged the Protestants with the expectation that he would prove their especial friend. At the assemblies which he gave each evening that he was in the city, he lavished his smiles upon the ladies who were distinguished either for exalted rank or for beauty. But there is no evidence that, during this campaign, he wrote one line to his absent, neglected wife, or that he expended one thought upon her.

The king used all his charm to win the people's love. Even though he sent away all the Austrian officials and replaced them with his own friends, he still allowed the Catholics to keep their traditional privileges and showed special attention to the bishop and his clergy. At the same time, he encouraged the Protestants by suggesting that he would be their loyal supporter. During the gatherings he hosted every evening while in the city, he showered his smiles on the women who were notable for either their high status or beauty. However, there's no evidence that during this time, he wrote even a single letter to his absent, neglected wife, or that he gave her any thought at all.

About thirty miles southeast of Breslau is the pleasant little town of Ohlau, situated in the delta formed by the junction of the Ohlau River with the Oder. It was a place of some strength, and the Austrian authorities had thrown into it a garrison of three hundred men. Frederick appeared before its gates on the morning of January the 9th. He immediately sent in the following summons to the garrison:

About thirty miles southeast of Breslau is the charming little town of Ohlau, located in the delta created by the merging of the Ohlau River with the Oder. It was a place of some importance, and the Austrian authorities had stationed a garrison of three hundred men there. Frederick arrived at its gates on the morning of January 9th. He quickly sent the following message to the garrison:

231 “If you make any resistance, you shall be treated as prisoners of war. If you make no resistance, and promise not to serve against us, you may march out of the city unmolested, with your arms.”

231 “If you put up any fight, you’ll be treated as prisoners of war. If you don’t fight back and promise not to go against us, you can leave the city without any trouble, with your weapons.”

The surrender was made. Fifteen miles nearly east from Ohlau, on the southern banks of the Oder, is the little town of Brieg. Frederick approached it with divisions of his army on both sides of the river. The country was flat and densely wooded. On the southern side, where Frederick marched with the major part of his troops, it was traversed by an admirably paved road. This was constructed one hundred and fifty-six years before by one of the dukes of that realm. It was a broad highway, paved with massive flat stones, climbing the mountains, threading the valleys, traversing the plains—a road such as those which the Romans constructed, and over which the legions of the Cæsars tramped in their tireless conquests. This duke, in consequence of his religious character, was called “George the Pious.” His devotional spirit may be inferred from the following inscription, in Latin, which he had engraved on a very massive monument, constructed in commemoration of the achievement:

The surrender happened. About fifteen miles east of Ohlau, on the southern banks of the Oder, is the small town of Brieg. Frederick approached it with divisions of his army on both sides of the river. The land was flat and heavily wooded. On the southern side, where Frederick marched with most of his troops, there was an excellently paved road. This road was built one hundred fifty-six years earlier by one of the dukes of that region. It was a wide highway, paved with large flat stones, going up the mountains, through the valleys, and across the plains—a road similar to those the Romans built, which the legions of the Cæsars marched on during their relentless conquests. This duke, known for his religious convictions, was called “George the Pious.” His devout nature can be inferred from the following inscription in Latin, which he had engraved on a very large monument created to honor this achievement:

"Others have built roads for us. We create them for future generations.
"But Christ has paved a way for all of us to reach heaven.”__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

On the 11th, Brieg was summoned to surrender. The prompt and resolute response was “No.” The place was found unexpectedly strong, and a gallant little garrison of sixteen hundred men had been assembled behind its walls. Frederick was much annoyed by the delay thus occasioned. He promptly invested the city so as to cut off all supplies, and dispatched an order to Glogau to have the field artillery sent, as speedily as possible, up the Oder to Brieg.

On the 11th, Brieg was ordered to surrender. The quick and firm response was “No.” The location turned out to be unexpectedly strong, and a brave little garrison of sixteen hundred men had gathered behind its walls. Frederick was very frustrated by the resulting delay. He immediately besieged the city to cut off all supplies and sent an order to Glogau to have the field artillery moved up the Oder to Brieg as fast as possible.

Two days before Frederick reached Brieg, a column of his army, under General Schwerin, which had advanced by a line parallel to the Oder, but several miles to the west, encountering no opposition, reached Ottmachau, a considerable town with a strong castle on the River Neisse. This was near the extreme southern border of Silesia. The Austrian commander, General Browne, had placed here also a garrison of sixteen hundred men,232 with orders not to yield upon any terms, for that re-enforcements should be speedily sent to them. A slight conflict ensued. Twelve of the Prussians were killed. This was the first blood which was shed. A delay of three days took place, when four cannon were brought up, and the gates, both of the town and of the castle, were blown open. The garrison offered to withdraw upon the terms proposed in the summons to surrender. The king was sent for to obtain his decision. He rebuked the garrison sternly, and held all as prisoners of war. The officers were sent to Cüstrin, the common soldiers to Berlin.

Two days before Frederick arrived in Brieg, a unit of his army, led by General Schwerin, had advanced along a line parallel to the Oder, a few miles to the west, and faced no opposition as they reached Ottmachau, a significant town with a strong castle on the River Neisse. This was near the southern edge of Silesia. The Austrian commander, General Browne, had stationed a garrison of sixteen hundred men here, with orders not to surrender under any circumstances, as reinforcements would be sent to them soon. A minor skirmish broke out, resulting in the deaths of twelve Prussians. This was the first blood that was shed. After a delay of three days, four cannons were brought in, and both the town and castle gates were blown open. The garrison agreed to withdraw according to the terms proposed in the surrender summons. The king was called to make the final decision. He reprimanded the garrison harshly and held everyone as prisoners of war. The officers were sent to Cüstrin, while the common soldiers were sent to Berlin.

Preparations were now made for the capture of Neisse. This was an opulent, attractive, well-fortified town of about seven thousand inhabitants. It then occupied only the left or north bank of the stream, which runs from the west to the east. The region around, being highly cultivated, presented a beautiful aspect of rich meadows, orchards, and vineyards. It was the chief fortress of Southern Silesia, and, being very near the frontier of Austria proper, was a position of great importance. Frederick, having encountered so little opposition thus far, was highly elated, expecting that Neisse would also immediately fall into his hands. From Ottmachau he wrote, on the 14th of January, to M. Jordan as follows:

Preparations were underway to capture Neisse. This was a wealthy, attractive, and well-fortified town with about seven thousand residents. At that time, it only occupied the left or northern bank of the stream that flows from west to east. The surrounding area, being highly cultivated, had a beautiful landscape of rich meadows, orchards, and vineyards. It was the main fortress of Southern Silesia and, being very close to the Austrian border, was a crucial position. Frederick, having faced minimal opposition so far, was quite pleased, expecting that Neisse would also quickly fall into his hands. From Ottmachau, he wrote on January 14th to M. Jordan as follows:

“My dear Monsieur Jordan, my sweet Monsieur Jordan, my quiet Monsieur Jordan, my good, my benign, my pacific, my most humane Monsieur Jordan,—I announce to thy serenity the conquest of Silesia. I warn thee of the bombardment of Neisse, and I prepare thee for still more projects, and instruct thee of the happiest successes that the womb of fortune ever bore.”47

“My dear Monsieur Jordan, my sweet Monsieur Jordan, my calm Monsieur Jordan, my kind, my gentle, my peaceful, my most humane Monsieur Jordan—I’m here to announce the victory in Silesia. I want to inform you about the bombardment of Neisse, prepare you for even more plans, and share with you the greatest successes that fortune has ever brought forth.”47

Three days after, on the 17th, the king wrote again to M. Jordan:

Three days later, on the 17th, the king wrote again to M. Jordan:

“I have the honor to inform your humanity that we are Christianly preparing to bombard Neisse; and that, if the place will not surrender of good-will, needs must that it be beaten to powder. For the rest, our affairs go the best in the world; and soon233 thou wilt hear nothing more of us, for in ten days it will all be over, and I shall have the pleasure of seeing you and hearing you in about a fortnight.

“I’m honored to let you know that we are preparing to bomb Neisse; and if the town doesn't surrender willingly, it will have to be destroyed. Otherwise, everything is going really well for us; soon233 you won’t hear anything more from us, because in ten days it will all be done, and I look forward to seeing you and hearing from you in about two weeks.”

“I have seen neither my brother48 nor Keyserling.49 I left them at Breslau, not to expose them to the dangers of war. They perhaps will be a little angry, but what can I do? the rather as, on this occasion, one can not share in the glory unless one is a mortar!

“I haven't seen either my brother48 or Keyserling.49 I left them in Breslau to keep them safe from the dangers of war. They might be a bit upset, but what can I do? Besides, in this case, you can't share in the glory unless you're a part of the action!”

“Adieu; go and amuse yourself with Horace, study Pausanias, and be gay over Anacreon. As to me, who for amusement have nothing but merlons, fascines, and gabions, I pray God to grant me soon a pleasanter and peacefuler occupation, and you health, satisfaction, and whatever your heart desires.”

“Goodbye; go and enjoy yourself with Horace, study Pausanias, and have fun with Anacreon. As for me, who only has ramparts, bundles of sticks, and wire baskets for entertainment, I pray that God gives me a more pleasant and peaceful job soon, and I wish you health, happiness, and everything your heart desires.”

A letter of the same date as the above, addressed to Count Algarotti,50 contains the following expressions:

A letter from the same date as the one above, addressed to Count Algarotti, 50 contains the following statements:

“I have begun to settle the figure of Prussia. The outline will be altogether regular; for the whole of Silesia is taken in except one miserable hamlet, which perhaps I shall have to keep blockaded until next spring. Up to this time the whole conquest has cost me only twenty men and two officers.

“I have started to finalize the boundaries of Prussia. The shape will be entirely uniform; all of Silesia is included except for one poor little village, which I might have to keep surrounded until next spring. So far, the entire conquest has only cost me twenty men and two officers.

“You are greatly wanting to me here. In all these three hundred miles I have found no human creature comparable to the Swan of Padua. I would willingly give ten cubic leagues of ground for a genius similar to yours. But I perceive I was about entreating you to return fast, and join me again, while you are not yet arrived where your errand was. Make haste to arrive then, to execute your commission, and fly back to me. I wish you had a Fortunatus hat; it is the only thing defective in your outfit.

"I really miss you here. In all these three hundred miles, I haven't found anyone close to the Swan of Padua. I would gladly give up a huge amount of land for a talent like yours. But I realize I was about to ask you to hurry back and be with me again, even though you haven't finished your task yet. So, please hurry to complete your mission and come back to me. I wish you had a Fortunatus hat; it's the only thing missing from your ensemble."

234 “Adieu, dear Swan of Padua. Think, I pray, sometimes of those who are getting themselves cut in slices for the sake of glory here; and, above all, do not forget your friends who think a thousand times of you.”

234 “Goodbye, dear Swan of Padua. Please remember, from time to time, those who are sacrificing themselves for glory here; and, most importantly, don’t forget your friends who think of you constantly.”

The River Neisse is quite narrow. In preparation for the bombardment, Frederick planted his batteries on the south side of the stream, and also approached the city from the north. It will be remembered that Frederick had an army in Silesia at his command of about forty thousand men, abundantly provided with all the munitions of war. The little Austrian garrison hurriedly thrown into Neisse consisted of but sixteen hundred men, but poorly prepared either for battle or for siege. The Austrian commandant, General Roth, determined upon a heroic resistance. To deprive the assailants of shelter, the torch was applied to all the beautiful suburbs. In a few hours the cruel flames destroyed the labor of ages. Many once happy families were impoverished and rendered homeless. Ashes, blackened walls, and smouldering ruins took the place of gardens, villas, and comfortable homes.

The River Neisse is fairly narrow. To get ready for the bombardment, Frederick set up his artillery on the south side of the river and also approached the city from the north. It’s important to note that Frederick had about forty thousand troops in Silesia, well-stocked with all the weapons of war. The small Austrian garrison hastily placed in Neisse had only sixteen hundred men, and they were poorly equipped for either battle or siege. The Austrian commander, General Roth, decided to put up a bold fight. To prevent the attackers from finding shelter, he ordered the beautiful suburbs to be burned. In just a few hours, the ruthless flames obliterated years of hard work. Many once-thriving families were left destitute and homeless. Ashes, charred walls, and smoldering ruins replaced gardens, villas, and cozy homes.

On Sunday morning, January 15th, the deadly, concentric fire of shot and shell was opened upon the crowded city, where women and children, torn by war’s merciless missiles, ran to and fro frantic with terror. The dreadful storm continued to rage, with but few intermissions, until Wednesday. Still there were no signs of surrender. The king, though his head-quarters were a few miles distant, at Ottmachau, was almost constantly on the ground superintending every thing. As he felt sure of the entire conquest of Silesia, the whole province being now in his possession except three small towns, he looked anxiously upon the destruction which his own balls and bombs were effecting. He was destroying his own property.

On Sunday morning, January 15th, a deadly barrage of gunfire and artillery was unleashed on the crowded city, where women and children, caught in the chaos of war's brutal weapons, ran around in a panic. The horrifying assault continued to rage with few breaks until Wednesday. Still, there were no signs of surrender. The king, although his headquarters were a few miles away in Ottmachau, was almost always on the ground overseeing everything. Confident of fully conquering Silesia, with only three small towns remaining outside his control, he looked anxiously at the devastation caused by his own cannon fire and bombs. He was destroying his own property.

On Wednesday morning General Borck was sent toward the gates of the city, accompanied by a trumpeter, who, with bugle blasts, was to summon General Roth to a parley. General Borck was instructed to inform the Austrian commander that if he surrendered immediately he should be treated with great leniency, but that if he persisted in his defense the most terrible severity should be his doom. To the people of Neisse it was a matter of but very little moment whether they were under Austrian or235 Prussian domination. They would gladly accede to any terms which would deliver them from the dreadful bombardment. General Roth, therefore, would not allow what we should call the flag of truce to approach the gates. He opened fire upon General Borck so as not to wound him, but as a warning that he must approach no nearer. The king was greatly angered by this result.

On Wednesday morning, General Borck was sent to the city gates, accompanied by a trumpeter, who was to use bugle blasts to summon General Roth for a meeting. General Borck was told to inform the Austrian commander that if he surrendered immediately, he would be treated leniently, but if he continued to resist, he would face severe consequences. For the people of Neisse, it didn’t really matter whether they were under Austrian or Prussian control. They would gladly accept any terms that would free them from the horrific bombardment. Therefore, General Roth would not let what we would call the flag of truce get near the gates. He opened fire on General Borck—not to injure him, but as a warning to keep his distance. The king was very angry about this outcome.

ATTACK UPON NEISSE.

In burning the suburbs, one of the mansions of the bishop, a few miles from Neisse, had escaped the general conflagration. The Prussians had taken possession of this large and commodious structure, with its ample supply of winter fuel. General Roth employed a resolute butcher, who, under the pretense of supplying the Prussians with beef, visited the bishop’s mansion, and secretly applied the torch. It was a cold winter’s night. The high wind fanned the flames. Scarcely an hour passed ere the whole structure, with all its supplies, was in ashes. The Prussian officers who had found a warm home were driven into the icy fields.

While burning the suburbs, one of the bishop's mansions, a few miles from Neisse, had managed to escape the widespread fire. The Prussians took over this large and comfortable building, which had plenty of winter fuel. General Roth hired a determined butcher who, under the guise of providing beef to the Prussians, visited the bishop’s mansion and secretly set it on fire. It was a cold winter night, and the strong wind spread the flames quickly. Before an hour had passed, the entire structure, along with all its supplies, was reduced to ashes. The Prussian officers who had found a warm refuge were forced out into the freezing fields.

These two events so exasperated his Prussian majesty that the next morning, at an early hour, he reopened upon the doomed236 city with renewed vigor his fire of bombshells and red-hot shot. Fire companies were organized throughout the city, to rush with their engines wherever the glowing balls descended, and thus the flames which frequently burst out were soon extinguished. All day Thursday, Thursday night, Friday, and until nine in the morning of Saturday, the tempest of battle, with occasional lulls, hurled its bolts and uttered its thunders. There was then a short rest until four o’clock on Sunday afternoon, when the batteries again opened their action more vigorously than ever, nine bombs being often in the air at the same time.

These two events frustrated the Prussian king so much that the next morning, early on, he restarted his bombardment of the doomed236 city with even more intensity. Fire crews were organized throughout the city to rush with their engines wherever the burning projectiles landed, quickly putting out the flames that frequently broke out. All day Thursday, Thursday night, Friday, and until nine in the morning on Saturday, the storm of battle, with occasional breaks, unleashed its fury and roared its sounds. There was then a brief pause until four o’clock on Sunday afternoon, when the cannons resumed fire more forcefully than ever, with nine bombs often in the air at once.

Frederick, not willing utterly to destroy the city, which he wished to preserve for himself, and perhaps, though no word of his indicates it, influenced by some sympathy for the seven thousand unoffending inhabitants of the place, men, women, and children, very many of whom were Protestants, who were suffering far more from the missiles of war than the Austrian garrison, arrested the fire of his batteries, and decided to convert the siege into a blockade. His own troops were suffering much in the bleak fields swept by the gales of winter. The whole of Silesia was in his hands excepting the small towns of Brieg, Glogau, and Neisse. These were so closely invested that neither food nor re-enforcements could be introduced to them. Should they hold out until spring, Frederick could easily then, aided by the warm weather, break open their gates.

Frederick, not wanting to completely destroy the city, which he aimed to keep for himself, and perhaps, although he never stated it, feeling some sympathy for the seven thousand innocent residents—men, women, and children—many of whom were Protestants and suffering far more from the impacts of war than the Austrian soldiers, halted the firing of his cannons and chose to turn the siege into a blockade. His own troops were struggling in the harsh fields battered by winter winds. He controlled all of Silesia except for the small towns of Brieg, Glogau, and Neisse. These towns were so tightly surrounded that no food or reinforcements could get to them. If they could hold out until spring, Frederick could easily, with the help of warmer weather, force open their gates.

He therefore spread his troops abroad in winter quarters, levying contributions upon the unhappy inhabitants of Silesia for their support. The king, ever prompt in his movements, having on Monday, the 23d of January, converted the siege into a blockade, on Wednesday, the 25th, set out for home. Visiting one or two important posts by the way, he reached Berlin the latter part of the week. Here he was received with great acclamations as a conquering hero. In six weeks he had overrun Silesia, and had virtually annexed it to his own realms. Whether Austria would quietly submit to this robbery, and whether Frederick would be able to retain his conquest, were questions yet to be decided.

He spread his troops out for winter quarters, collecting support from the suffering people of Silesia. The king, always quick to act, turned the siege into a blockade on Monday, January 23rd, and then headed home on Wednesday, January 25th. He visited a couple of key posts along the way and arrived in Berlin later that week. There, he was welcomed as a victorious hero. In just six weeks, he had taken control of Silesia, essentially adding it to his own territory. Whether Austria would accept this theft and whether Frederick could hold onto his gain were questions still to be answered.


237

237

CHAPTER XIII.
The Mollwitz Campaign.

Embarrassments of Frederick.—Attempts a Compromise.—New Invasion of Silesia.—Intrigues for the Imperial Crown.—Rivalry between England and France.—Death of Anne of Russia.—Energy of Austria.—Narrow Escape of Frederick.—Frederick’s Antipathy to Christianity.—Capture of Glogau.—Peril of Frederick.—The Siege of Neisse.

Frederick's Embarrassments.—Attempts at a Compromise.—New Invasion of Silesia.—Intrigues for the Imperial Crown.—Rivalry between England and France.—Death of Anne of Russia.—Austria's Energy.—Frederick's Narrow Escape.—Frederick’s Aversion to Christianity.—Capture of Glogau.—Frederick's Danger.—The Siege of Neisse.

Frederick, returning to Berlin from his six weeks’ campaign in Silesia, remained at home but three weeks. He had recklessly let loose the dogs of war, and must already have begun to be appalled in view of the possible results. His embassadors at the various courts had utterly failed to secure for him any alliance. England and some of the other powers were manifestly unfriendly to him. Like Frederick himself, they were all disposed to consult merely their own individual interests. Thus influenced, they looked calmly on to see how Frederick, who had thrown into the face of the young Queen of Austria the gage of battle, would meet the forces which she, with great energy, was marshaling in defense of her realms. Frederick was manifestly and outrageously in the wrong.

Freddie, returning to Berlin after his six-week campaign in Silesia, stayed home for only three weeks. He had foolishly unleashed the chaos of war and must have already begun to feel alarmed about the potential consequences. His ambassadors at various courts completely failed to secure any alliances for him. England and several other powers were clearly against him. Like Frederick, they were only looking out for their own interests. Influenced by this, they watched calmly to see how Frederick, who had openly challenged the young Queen of Austria, would face the forces she was energetically gathering to defend her territories. Frederick was clearly and outrageously in the wrong.

The chivalry of Europe was in sympathy with the young and beautiful queen, who, inexperienced, afflicted by the death of her father, and about to pass through the perils of maternity, had been thus suddenly and rudely assailed by one who should have protected her with almost a brother’s love and care. Every court in Europe was familiar with the fact that the father of Maria Theresa had not only humanely interceded, in the most earnest terms, for the life of Frederick, but had interposed his imperial authority’ to rescue him from the scaffold, with which he was threatened by his unnatural parent. Frederick found that he stood quite alone, and that he had nothing to depend upon but his own energies and those of his compact, well-disciplined army.

The nobility of Europe sympathized with the young and beautiful queen, who, inexperienced and grieving her father's death, was about to face the challenges of motherhood and had been suddenly and harshly attacked by someone who should have cared for her like a protective brother. Every court in Europe knew that Maria Theresa's father had not only compassionately pleaded, in the strongest terms, for Frederick's life but had also used his imperial power to save him from the executioner, whom his cruel parent threatened. Frederick realized that he was completely alone and had only his own abilities and those of his tightly-knit, well-trained army to rely on.

It would seem that Frederick was now disposed to compromise. He authorized the suggestion to be made to the court at Vienna by his minister, Count Gotter, that he was ready to withdraw238 from his enterprise, and to enter into alliance with Austria, if the queen would surrender to him the duchy of Glogau only, which was but a small part of Silesia. But to these terms the heroic young queen would not listen. She justly regarded them but as the proposition of the highway robber, who offers to leave one his watch if he will peaceably surrender his purse. Whatever regrets Frederick might have felt in view of the difficulties in which he found himself involved, not the slightest indication of them is to be seen in his correspondence. He had passed the Rubicon. And now he summoned all his energies—such energies as the world has seldom, if ever, witnessed before, to carry out the enterprise upon which he had so recklessly entered, and from which he could not without humiliation withdraw.

It seems that Frederick was now willing to compromise. He authorized his minister, Count Gotter, to suggest to the court in Vienna that he was ready to withdraw from his campaign and ally with Austria if the queen would give him the duchy of Glogau, which was just a small part of Silesia. But the brave young queen refused to consider these terms. She rightly viewed them as the offer of a highway robber who promises to leave you your watch if you peacefully hand over your wallet. Whatever regrets Frederick may have felt about the difficulties he found himself in, there’s no sign of them in his letters. He had crossed the point of no return. Now, he summoned all his energy—an intensity seldom, if ever, seen before—to pursue the campaign he had so rashly started, from which he could not withdraw without feeling humiliated.

On the 19th of February, 1741, Frederick, having been at home but three weeks, again left Berlin with re-enforcements, increasing his army of invasion to sixty thousand men, to complete the conquest of Silesia by the capture of the three fortresses which still held out against him. On the 21st he reached Glogau. After carefully reconnoitring the works, he left directions with Prince Leopold of Dessau, who commanded the Prussian troops there, to press the siege with all possible vigor. He was fearful that Austrian troops might soon arrive to the relief of the place.

On February 19, 1741, Frederick, having been home for only three weeks, left Berlin again with reinforcements, boosting his invading army to sixty thousand men to finish conquering Silesia by capturing the three fortresses that still resisted him. On the 21st, he arrived at Glogau. After thoroughly surveying the fortifications, he instructed Prince Leopold of Dessau, who was in charge of the Prussian troops there, to intensify the siege as much as possible. He was worried that Austrian troops might arrive soon to relieve the fortress.

The king then hastened on to Schweidnitz, a few miles west from Breslau. This was a small town, strongly fortified, about equally distant from the three beleaguered fortresses—Neisse, Brieg, and Glogau. The young monarch was daily becoming more aware that he had embarked in an enterprise which threatened him with fearful peril. He had not only failed to secure a single ally, but there were indications that England and other powers were in secret deliberation to join against him. He soon learned that England had sent a gift or loan of a million of dollars—a large sum in those days—to replenish the exhausted treasury of Maria Theresa. His minister in Russia also transmitted to him an appalling rumor that a project was in contemplation by the King of England, the King of Poland, Anne, regent of Russia, and Maria Theresa, to unite, and so partition the Prussian kingdom as to render the ambitious Frederick powerless to disturb the peace of Europe. The general motives which239 influenced the great monarchies in the stupendous war which was soon evolved are sufficiently manifest. But these motives led to a complication of intrigues which it would be alike tedious and unprofitable to attempt to unravel.

The king quickly made his way to Schweidnitz, a small, well-fortified town just a few miles west of Breslau. It was roughly equidistant from the three besieged fortresses—Neisse, Brieg, and Glogau. The young ruler was becoming increasingly aware that he had taken on a venture that posed significant risks. Not only had he failed to gain a single ally, but there were signs that England and other powers were secretly planning to unite against him. He soon discovered that England had sent a gift or loan of a million dollars—a considerable amount back then—to help replenish Maria Theresa's depleted treasury. His minister in Russia also relayed a disturbing rumor that the King of England, the King of Poland, Anne, the regent of Russia, and Maria Theresa were planning to collaborate and divide the Prussian kingdom, effectively preventing the ambitious Frederick from upsetting the peace in Europe. The general reasons driving the major monarchies in the enormous war that was about to unfold are pretty clear. However, these reasons led to a tangled web of intrigues that would be both tedious and unproductive to try to untangle.

Frederick wished to enlarge his Liliputian realms, and become one of the powers of Europe. This he could only do by taking advantage of the apparent momentary weakness of Austria, and seizing a portion of the territory of the young queen. In order to accomplish this, it was for his interest to oppose the election of Maria Theresa’s husband, the Grand-duke Francis, as emperor. The imperial crown placed upon the brow of Francis would invest Austria with almost resistless power. Still, Frederick was ready to promise his earnest concurrence in this arrangement if Maria Theresa would surrender to him Silesia. He had even moderated his terms, as we have mentioned, to a portion of the province.

Frederick wanted to expand his small territories and become one of the powers in Europe. He could only achieve this by taking advantage of Austria's apparent momentary weakness and seizing part of the young queen's territory. To make this happen, it was in his interest to oppose the election of Maria Theresa’s husband, Grand-duke Francis, as emperor. If Francis were crowned, Austria would gain almost unstoppable power. However, Frederick was willing to promise his full support for this arrangement if Maria Theresa would give him Silesia. He had even softened his demands, as mentioned, to just a portion of the province.

France had no fear of Prussia. Even with the addition of Silesia, it would be comparatively a feeble realm. But France did fear the supremacy of Austria over Europe. It was for the apparent interest of the court of Versailles that Austria should be weakened, and, consequently, that the husband of the queen should not be chosen Emperor of Germany. Therefore France was coming into sympathy with Frederick, and was disposed to aid him in his warfare against Austria.

France wasn't afraid of Prussia. Even with Silesia added in, it was still a relatively weak power. However, France did fear Austria's dominance in Europe. It was in the best interest of the court in Versailles to see Austria weakened, which meant that the queen's husband shouldn't be made Emperor of Germany. As a result, France was starting to align with Frederick and was willing to support him in his fight against Austria.

England was the hereditary foe of France. It was one of the leading objects in her diplomacy to circumvent that power. “Our great-grandfathers,” writes Carlyle, “lived in perpetual terror that they would be devoured by France; that French ambition would overset the Celestial Balance, and proceed next to eat the British nation.” Strengthening Austria was weakening France. Therefore the sympathies of England were strongly with Austria. In addition to this, personal feelings came in. The puerile little king, George II., hated implacably his nephew, Frederick of Prussia, which hatred Frederick returned with interest.

England was the long-time enemy of France. One of its main goals in diplomacy was to outmaneuver that power. “Our great-grandfathers,” writes Carlyle, “lived in constant fear of being consumed by France; that French ambition would disrupt the balance of power and then go on to threaten the British nation.” Strengthening Austria meant weakening France. Thus, England's sympathies were firmly with Austria. On top of that, personal animosities played a role. The childish King George II. had a deep-seated hatred for his nephew, Frederick of Prussia, and Frederick returned that hatred with equal intensity.

Spain was at war with England, and was ready to enter into an alliance with any power which would aid her in her struggle with that formidable despot of the seas.

Spain was at war with England and was prepared to form an alliance with any power that would support her in her fight against that powerful ruler of the seas.

The Czarina, Anne of Russia, died the 28th of October, 1740,240 just eight days after the death of the emperor. She left, in the cradle, the infant Czar Iwan, her nephew, two months old. The father of this child was a brother of Frederick’s neglected wife Elizabeth. The mother was the Russian Princess Catharine of Mecklenburg, now called Princess Anne, whom Frederick had at one time thought of applying for as his wife. Russia was a semi-barbaric realm just emerging into consideration, and no one could tell by what influences it would be swayed. The minor powers could be controlled by the greater—constrained by terror or led by bribes. Such, in general, was the state of Europe at this time.

The Czarina, Anne of Russia, died on October 28, 1740,240 just eight days after the emperor's death. She left behind her two-month-old nephew, the infant Czar Iwan, in the cradle. The child's father was a brother of Frederick’s overlooked wife, Elizabeth. His mother was the Russian Princess Catharine of Mecklenburg, now known as Princess Anne, whom Frederick had once considered marrying. Russia was a semi-barbaric land just beginning to gain recognition, and no one knew which influences would shape it. The smaller powers could be controlled by the larger ones—either through fear or by bribes. This was the general state of Europe at the time.

Austria was rapidly marshaling her hosts, and pouring them through the defiles of the mountains to regain Silesia. Her troops still held three important fortresses—Neisse, Brieg, and Glogau. These places were, however, closely blockaded by the Prussians. Though it was midwinter, bands of Austrian horsemen were soon sweeping in all directions, like local war tempests borne on the wings of the wind. Wherever there was an unprotected baggage-train, or a weakly-defended post, they came swooping down to seize their prey, and vanished as suddenly as they had appeared. Their numbers seemed to be continually increasing. All the roads were swept by these swarms of irregulars, who carefully avoided any serious engagement, while they awaited the approach of the Austrian army, which was gathering its strength to throw down to Frederick the gauntlet on an open field of battle.

Austria was quickly mobilizing her troops and sending them through the mountain passes to take back Silesia. Her soldiers still held three key fortresses—Neisse, Brieg, and Glogau. However, these locations were under tight blockade by the Prussians. Even though it was the middle of winter, groups of Austrian cavalry were soon moving in all directions, like local tempests carried by the wind. Wherever there was an unguarded supply train or a poorly defended position, they swooped in to grab their target and disappeared just as fast. Their numbers seemed to keep growing. All the roads were filled with these bands of irregulars, who skillfully avoided any serious confrontations while waiting for the Austrian army to gather its strength to challenge Frederick on an open battlefield.

Much to Frederick’s chagrin, he soon learned that a body of three hundred foot and three hundred horse, cautiously approaching through by-paths in the mountains, had thrown itself into Neisse, to strengthen the garrison there. This was on the 5th of March. But six days before a still more alarming event had occurred. On the 27th of February, Frederick, with a small escort, not dreaming of danger, set out to visit two small posts in the vicinity of Neisse. He stopped to dine with a few of his officers in the little village of Wartha, while the principal part of the detachment which accompanied him continued its movement to Baumgarten.

Much to Frederick’s disappointment, he soon found out that a group of three hundred infantry and three hundred cavalry, carefully making their way through backroads in the mountains, had arrived in Neisse to reinforce the garrison there. This was on March 5th. But six days earlier, a more alarming event had taken place. On February 27th, Frederick, accompanied by a small escort and unaware of any danger, set out to visit two small outposts near Neisse. He stopped to have lunch with a few of his officers in the little village of Wartha, while the main part of the detachment that was with him continued on to Baumgarten.

241

241

FREDERICK ON THE FIELD OF BAUMGARTEN.

The leader of an Austrian band of five hundred dragoons was on the watch. As the detachment of one hundred and fifty horse approached Baumgarten, the Austrians, from their ambuscade, plunged upon them. There was a short, sharp conflict, when the Prussians fled, leaving ten dead, sixteen prisoners, one standard, and two kettle-drums in the hands of the victors. The king had just sat down at the dinner-table, when he heard, at the distance of a few miles, the tumult of the musketry. He sprang from the table, hurriedly mustered a small force of forty hussars and fifty foot, and hastened toward the scene. Arriving at the field, he found it silent and deserted, and the ten men lying242 dead upon it. The victorious Austrians, disappointed in not finding the king, bore their spoils in triumph to Vienna. It was a very narrow escape for Frederick. Had he then been captured it might have changed the history of Europe, and no one can tell the amount of blood and woe which would have been averted.

The leader of an Austrian group of five hundred dragoons was on alert. As a detachment of one hundred and fifty horsemen approached Baumgarten, the Austrians jumped out from their hiding spot and attacked. There was a brief, intense conflict, after which the Prussians retreated, leaving ten dead, sixteen prisoners, one flag, and two kettledrums in the victors' hands. The king had just sat down at the dinner table when he heard the sounds of gunfire a few miles away. He quickly got up, gathered a small force of forty hussars and fifty infantry, and rushed to the scene. When he arrived at the battlefield, he found it quiet and empty, with the ten dead soldiers lying there. The victorious Austrians, disappointed not to find the king, proudly took their spoils back to Vienna. Frederick had a very close call. If he had been captured then, it could have changed the course of European history, and no one knows how much bloodshed and suffering could have been prevented.

It is perhaps not strange that Frederick should have imbibed a strong feeling of antipathy to Christianity. In his father’s life he had witnessed only its most repulsive caricature. While making the loudest protestations of piety, Frederick William, in his daily conduct, had manifested mainly only every thing that is hateful and of bad report. Still, it is quite evident that Frederick was not blind to the distinction between the principles of Christianity as taught by Jesus and developed in his life, and the conduct of those who, professing his name, trampled those principles beneath their feet. In one of his letters to Voltaire, dated Cirey, August 26, 1736, Frederick wrote:

It’s not surprising that Frederick developed a strong dislike for Christianity. During his father's life, he only saw its most unpleasant sides. While his father often made a big show of being religious, in his everyday behavior, he mainly displayed everything that is considered vile and disgraceful. Still, it’s clear that Frederick wasn’t oblivious to the difference between the teachings of Christianity as Jesus lived them and the actions of those who, in his name, completely disregarded those teachings. In one of his letters to Voltaire, dated Cirey, August 26, 1736, Frederick wrote:

“May you never be disgusted with the sciences by the quarrels of their cultivators; a race of men no better than courtiers; often enough as greedy, intriguing, false, and cruel as these.

“May you never be turned off by the sciences because of the arguments of those who study them; a group of people no better than courtiers; often just as greedy, deceitful, false, and cruel as they are.”

“And how sad for mankind that the very interpreters of Heaven’s commandments—the theologians, I mean—are sometimes the most dangerous of all! professed messengers of the Divinity, yet men sometimes of obscure ideas and pernicious behavior, their soul blown out with mere darkness, full of gall and pride in proportion as it is empty of truths. Every thinking being who is not of their opinion is an atheist; and every king who does not favor them will be damned. Dangerous to the very throne, and yet intrinsically insignificant.

“And how sad for humanity that the very interpreters of Heaven’s commandments—the theologians, I mean—are sometimes the most dangerous of all! They claim to be messengers of the Divine, yet they can be filled with confusing ideas and harmful behaviors, their souls consumed by darkness, brimming with bitterness and arrogance in direct proportion to how empty they are of truth. Every thinking person who disagrees with them is labeled an atheist; and any king who doesn’t support them will be condemned. They pose a threat to the very throne, yet they remain fundamentally insignificant.”

“I respect metaphysical ideas. Rays of lightning they are in the midst of deep night. More, I think, is not to be hoped from metaphysics. It does not seem likely that the first principles of things will ever be known. The mice that nestle in some little holes of an immense building know not whether it is eternal, or who the architect, or why he built it. Such mice are we. And the divine architect has never, that I know of, told his secret to one of us.”

“I respect metaphysical ideas. They’re like flashes of lightning in the deep night. I don't think we can expect much more from metaphysics. It doesn’t seem likely that we will ever truly understand the fundamental principles of existence. The mice that nest in tiny holes of a massive building have no idea whether it’s eternal, who the architect is, or why it was built. We are just like those mice. And as far as I know, the divine architect has never revealed his secret to any of us.”

Notwithstanding these sentiments, the king sent throughout Silesia a supply of sixty Protestant preachers, ordained especially243 for the work. Though Frederick himself did not wish to live in accordance with the teachings of Jesus Christ, it is very evident that he did not fear the influence of that Gospel upon his Silesian subjects. Very wisely the Protestant preachers were directed carefully to avoid giving any offense to the Catholics. They were to preach in barns and town-halls in places where there was no Protestant church. The salary of each was one hundred and fifty dollars a year, probably with rations. They were all placed under the general superintendence of one of the army chaplains.

Despite these feelings, the king sent out a supply of sixty Protestant preachers throughout Silesia, specifically ordained for this mission. Although Frederick didn't want to live according to the teachings of Jesus Christ, it's clear that he wasn't worried about the impact of that Gospel on his Silesian subjects. The Protestant preachers were wisely instructed to avoid offending Catholics. They were to preach in barns and town halls in areas where there were no Protestant churches. Each preacher's salary was one hundred and fifty dollars a year, likely with meals included. They were all supervised by one of the army chaplains.

Every day it became more clear that Maria Theresa was resolved not to part with one inch of her territory, and that the Austrian court was thoroughly roused in its determination to drive the intrusive Prussians out of Silesia. Though Frederick had no scruples of conscience to prevent him from seizing a portion of the domains of Maria Theresa, his astonishment and indignation were alike aroused by the rumor that England, Poland, and Russia were contemplating the dismemberment of his realms. An army of thirty-six thousand men, under the old Duke Leopold of Dessau,51 was immediately dispatched by Frederick to Götten, on the frontiers of Hanover, to seize upon that Continental possession of the King of England upon the slightest indication of a hostile movement. George II. was greatly alarmed by this menace.

Every day, it became clearer that Maria Theresa was determined not to give up any of her land, and that the Austrian court was fully committed to driving out the invading Prussians from Silesia. Even though Frederick had no moral objections to taking a part of Maria Theresa’s territory, he was both astonished and outraged by the rumor that England, Poland, and Russia were considering splitting up his lands. Frederick quickly sent an army of thirty-six thousand men, led by the old Duke Leopold of Dessau, to Götten, on the borders of Hanover, to take control of that part of the King of England’s territory at the first sign of aggression. George II was greatly alarmed by this threat.

Frederick found himself plunged into the midst of difficulties and perils which exacted to the utmost his energies both of body and of mind. Every moment was occupied in strengthening his posts, collecting magazines, recruiting his forces, and planning to circumvent the foe. From the calm of Reinsberg he found himself suddenly tossed by the surges of one of the most terrible tempests of conflict which a mortal ever encountered. Through night and storm, almost without sleep and without food, drenched and chilled, he was galloping over the hills and through the valleys,244 climbing the steeples, fording the streams, wading the morasses, involved in a struggle which now threatened even the crown which he had so recently placed upon his brow. Had Frederick alone suffered, but few tears of sympathy would have been shed in his behalf; but his ambition had stirred up a conflict which was soon to fill all Europe with the groans of the dying, the tears of the widow, the wailings of the orphan.

Frederick found himself thrown into the middle of challenges and dangers that demanded the absolute limits of his physical and mental strength. Every moment was spent reinforcing his positions, gathering supplies, recruiting his troops, and strategizing to outsmart the enemy. From the tranquility of Reinsberg, he was suddenly caught in the waves of one of the fiercest storms of battle that anyone has ever faced. Through night and rain, nearly without sleep and food, soaked and cold, he was racing over hills and across valleys, climbing towers, crossing streams, wading through swamps, caught up in a struggle that now even threatened the crown he had recently placed on his head. If Frederick had suffered alone, only a few would have shed tears for him; but his ambition had ignited a conflict that would soon echo throughout all of Europe with the cries of the dying, the tears of widows, and the lamentations of orphans.

Frederick deemed it of great importance to gain immediate possession of Glogau. It was bravely defended by the Austrian commander, Count Wallis, and there was hourly danger that an Austrian army might appear for its relief. Frederick, in the intensity of his anxiety, as he hurried from post to post, wrote from every stopping-place to young Leopold, whom he had left in command of the siege, urging him immediately to open the trenches, concentrate the fire of his batteries, and to carry the place by storm. “I have clear intelligence,” he wrote, “that troops are actually on the way for the rescue of Glogau.” Each note was more imperative than the succeeding one. On the 6th of March he wrote from Ohlau:

Frederick considered it crucial to take control of Glogau immediately. The Austrian commander, Count Wallis, was defending it valiantly, and there was a constant threat that an Austrian army could arrive to support it at any moment. In his intense worry, Frederick rushed from one position to another and wrote to young Leopold, whom he had left in charge of the siege, from every place he stopped, urging him to open the trenches right away, focus the fire of his batteries, and storm the city. “I have reliable information,” he wrote, “that troops are currently on their way to rescue Glogau.” Each message was more urgent than the last. On March 6th, he wrote from Ohlau:

“I am certainly informed that the enemy will make some attempt. I hereby, with all distinctness, command that, so soon as the petards are come, you attack Glogau. And you must make your dispositions for more than one attack, so that if one fail the other shall certainly succeed. I hope you will put off no longer. Otherwise the blame of all the mischief that might arise out of longer delay must lie on you alone.”

“I’ve definitely been told that the enemy is going to try something. Therefore, I clearly order you to attack Glogau as soon as the explosives arrive. You need to plan for multiple attacks, so if one fails, the others will definitely succeed. I hope you don’t wait any longer. If you do, all the blame for any problems that come from further delays will fall on you.”

On the 8th of March Leopold summoned all his generals at noon, and informed them that Glogau, at all hazards, must be taken that very night. The most minute directions were given to each one. There were to be three attacks—one up the river on its left bank, one down the river on its right bank, and one on the land side perpendicular to the other two. The moment the clock on the big steeple in Glogau should give the first stroke of midnight, the three columns were to start. Before the last stroke should be given they were all to be upon the silent, rapid advance.

On March 8th, Leopold called all his generals together at noon and told them that Glogau must be captured that very night, no matter what. He provided detailed instructions to everyone. There would be three attacks—one upstream on the left bank, one downstream on the right bank, and one from land that would intersect the other two. At the first strike of midnight from the big clock in Glogau, the three groups were to move out. They were all expected to be advancing silently and quickly before the last stroke was sounded.

Count Wallis, who was intrusted with the defense of the place, had a garrison of about a thousand men, with fifty-eight heavy guns and several mortars, and a large amount of ammunition. Glogau was in the latitude of fifty-two, nearly six degrees north245 of Quebec. It was a cold wintry night. The ground was covered with snow. Water had been thrown upon the glacis, so that it was slippery with ice. Prince Leopold in person led one of the columns. The sentinels upon the walls were not alarmed until three impetuous columns, like concentrating tornadoes, were sweeping down upon them. They shouted “To arms!” The soldiers, roused from sleep, rushed to their guns. Their lightning flashes were instantly followed by war’s deepest thunders, as discharge followed discharge in rapid succession.

Count Wallis, who was responsible for defending the area, had a garrison of about a thousand men, with fifty-eight heavy guns, several mortars, and a large supply of ammunition. Glogau was located at fifty-two degrees latitude, nearly six degrees north of Quebec. It was a cold winter night. The ground was covered in snow. Water had been sprayed on the glacis, making it slippery with ice. Prince Leopold himself led one of the columns. The sentinels on the walls weren’t alerted until three aggressive columns, like converging tornadoes, rushed toward them. They shouted “To arms!” Soldiers, awakened from their sleep, dashed to their guns. Their flashes of light were quickly followed by the deep rumbles of war, as shots rang out in rapid succession.

But the assailants were already so near the walls that the shot passed harmlessly over their heads. Without firing a gun or uttering a sound, these well-drilled soldiers of Frederick William hewed down the palisades, tore out the chevaux-de-frise, and clambered over the glacis. With axe and petard they burst open the gates and surged into the city.

But the attackers were already so close to the walls that the shot went harmlessly over their heads. Without firing a weapon or making a sound, these well-trained soldiers of Frederick William chopped down the barriers, ripped out the chevaux-de-frise, and climbed over the slope. With axes and explosives, they broke open the gates and rushed into the city.

In one short hour the gallant deed was done. But ten of the assailants were killed and forty-eight wounded. The loss of the Austrians was more severe. The whole garrison, one thousand sixty-five in number, and their materiel of war, consisting of fifty brass cannons, a large amount of ammunition, and the military chest, containing thirty-two thousand florins, fell into the hands of the victors. To the inhabitants of Glogau it was a matter of very little moment whether the Austrian or the Prussian banner floated over their citadel. Neither party paid much more regard to the rights of the people than they did to those of the mules and the horses.

In just one hour, the brave act was complete. Ten of the attackers were killed and forty-eight were injured. The Austrians suffered even greater losses. The entire garrison, totaling one thousand sixty-five soldiers, along with their war supplies, which included fifty brass cannons, a substantial amount of ammunition, and the military funds containing thirty-two thousand florins, fell into the hands of the winners. For the residents of Glogau, it hardly mattered whether the Austrian or Prussian flag flew over their fortress. Neither side cared much more about the rights of the people than they did about the rights of the mules and horses.

But to Frederick the importance of the achievement was very great. The exploit was justly ascribed to his general direction. Thus he obtained a taste of that military renown which he had so greatly coveted. The king was, at this time, at his head-quarters at Schweidnitz, about one hundred and twenty miles from Glogau. A courier, dispatched immediately from the captured town, communicated to him, at five o’clock in the afternoon, the glad tidings of the brilliant victory.

But for Frederick, the significance of the achievement was immense. The success was rightly attributed to his overall leadership. This gave him a taste of the military fame he had long desired. At that time, the king was at his headquarters in Schweidnitz, roughly one hundred and twenty miles from Glogau. A courier, sent right away from the captured town, informed him at five o’clock in the afternoon of the exciting news of the impressive victory.

Frederick was overjoyed. In the exuberance of his satisfaction, he sent Prince Leopold a present of ten thousand dollars. To each private soldier he gave half a guinea, and to the officers sums in proportion. To the old Duke of Dessauer, father of the young Prince Leopold, he wrote:

Frederick was thrilled. In his excitement, he sent Prince Leopold a gift of ten thousand dollars. He gave each private soldier half a guinea, and the officers received amounts according to their rank. To the old Duke of Dessauer, father of the young Prince Leopold, he wrote:

246

246

THE ASSAULT ON GLOGAU.

“The more I think of the Glogau business the more important I find it. Prince Leopold has achieved the prettiest military stroke that has been done in this century. From my heart I congratulate you on having such a son. In boldness of resolution, in plan, in execution, it is alike admirable, and quite gives a turn to my affairs.”

“The more I think about the Glogau situation, the more significant it seems. Prince Leopold has pulled off one of the best military moves of this century. I genuinely congratulate you on having such a son. In terms of boldness, planning, and execution, it's truly impressive and completely changes my situation.”

Leaving a sufficient force to garrison Glogau, the king ordered247 all the remaining regiments to be distributed among the other important posts; while Prince Leopold, in high favor, joined the king at Schweidnitz, to assist in the siege of Neisse. Frederick rapidly concentrated his forces for the capture of Neisse before the Austrian army should march for its relief. He thought that the Austrians would not be able to take the field before the snow should disappear and the new spring grass should come, affording forage for their horses.

Leaving enough troops to secure Glogau, the king ordered247 all the remaining regiments to be spread out among the other key locations; meanwhile, Prince Leopold, who was in the king's good graces, joined him at Schweidnitz to help with the siege of Neisse. Frederick quickly gathered his forces to capture Neisse before the Austrian army could come to its rescue. He believed that the Austrians wouldn’t be able to mobilize until the snow melted and the new spring grass grew, providing fodder for their horses.

MAP ILLUSTRATING THE MOLLWITZ CAMPAIGN.

But General Neipperg, the Austrian commander-in-chief, proved as watchful, enterprising, and energetic as Frederick.248 His scouting bands swarmed in all directions. The Prussian foraging parties were cut off, their reconnoitrers were driven back, and all the movements of the main body of the Austrian army were veiled from their view. General Neipperg, hearing of the fall of Glogau, decided, notwithstanding the inclemency of the weather and the snow, to march immediately, with thirty thousand men, to the relief of Neisse. His path led through mountain defiles, over whose steep and icy roads his heavy guns and lumbering ammunition-wagons were with difficulty drawn.

But General Neipperg, the Austrian commander-in-chief, was as alert, resourceful, and energetic as Frederick.248 His scouting teams were everywhere. The Prussian supply groups were cut off, their scouts were pushed back, and all the movements of the main Austrian army were hidden from their sight. After hearing about the fall of Glogau, General Neipperg decided, despite the harsh weather and the snow, to march immediately with thirty thousand men to help Neisse. His route went through mountain passes, where his heavy artillery and cumbersome supply wagons were hard to maneuver over the steep, icy roads.

At the same time, Frederick, unaware of the movement of the Austrians, prepared to push the siege of Neisse with the utmost vigor. Leaving some of his ablest generals to conduct the operations there, Frederick himself marched, with strong re-enforcements, to strengthen General Schwerin, who was stationed among the Jagerndorf hills, on the southern frontier of Silesia, to prevent the Austrians from getting across the mountains. Marching from Ottmachau, the king met General Schwerin at Neustadt, half way to Jagerndorf, and they returned together to that place. But the swarming horsemen of General Neipperg were so bold and watchful that no information could be obtained of the situation or movements of the Austrian army. Frederick, seeing no indications that General Neipperg was attempting to force his way through the snow-encumbered defiles of the mountains, prepared to return, and, with his concentrated force, press with all vigor the siege of Neisse.

At the same time, Frederick, unaware of the movement of the Austrians, prepared to intensify the siege of Neisse with everything he had. He left some of his best generals to handle operations there while he marched with strong reinforcements to support General Schwerin, who was positioned in the Jagerndorf hills, along the southern border of Silesia, to stop the Austrians from crossing the mountains. Traveling from Ottmachau, the king met General Schwerin at Neustadt, halfway to Jagerndorf, and they returned to that location together. However, General Neipperg's many horsemen were so bold and alert that no information could be gathered about the Austrian army's situation or movements. Seeing no signs that General Neipperg was trying to push through the snow-covered passes of the mountains, Frederick decided to head back and, with his combined forces, press with all his might on the siege of Neisse.

As he was upon the point of setting off, seven Austrian deserters came in and reported that General Neipperg’s full army was advancing at but a few miles’ distance. Even as they were giving their report, sounds of musketry and cannon announced that the Prussian outposts were assailed by the advance-guard of the foe. The peril of Frederick was great. Had Neipperg known the prize within his reach, the escape of the Prussian king would have been almost impossible. Frederick had but three or four thousand men with him at Jagerndorf, and only three pieces of artillery, with forty rounds of ammunition. Bands of Austrian cavalry on fleet horses were swarming all around him. Seldom, in the whole course of his life, had Frederick been placed in a more critical position.

As he was about to leave, seven Austrian deserters arrived and reported that General Neipperg’s entire army was advancing just a few miles away. While they were giving their report, the sounds of gunfire and cannon fire indicated that the Prussian outposts were under attack from the enemy's vanguard. Frederick was in serious danger. If Neipperg had realized the opportunity he had, escaping from the Prussian king would have been nearly impossible. Frederick had only three or four thousand men with him in Jagerndorf, along with just three pieces of artillery and forty rounds of ammunition. Groups of Austrian cavalry on fast horses were swarming all around him. Rarely in his life had Frederick found himself in such a critical situation.

It was soon ascertained that the main body of the Austrian249 army was fifteen miles to the southwest, at Freudenthal, pressing on toward Neisse. General Neipperg, without the slightest suspicion that Frederick was any where in his vicinity, had sent aside a reconnoitring party of skirmishers to ascertain if there were any Prussians at Jagerndorf. General Neipperg, at Freudenthal, was as near Neisse as Frederick was at Jagerndorf.

It was soon confirmed that the main part of the Austrian army was fifteen miles to the southwest, at Freudenthal, moving toward Neisse. General Neipperg, completely unaware that Frederick was anywhere nearby, had sent a team of skirmishers to check if there were any Prussians at Jagerndorf. General Neipperg, at Freudenthal, was as close to Neisse as Frederick was to Jagerndorf.

There was not a moment to be lost. General Neipperg was moving resolutely forward with a cloud of skirmishers in the advance and on his wings. With the utmost exertions Frederick immediately rendezvoused all his remote posts, destroying such stores as could not hastily be removed, and by a forced march of twenty-five miles in one day reached Neustadt. General Neipperg was marching by a parallel road about twenty miles west of that which the Prussians traversed. At Neustadt the king was still twenty miles from Neisse. With the delay of but a few hours, that he might assemble all the Prussian bands from the posts in that neighborhood, the king again resumed his march. He had no longer any hope of continuing the siege of Neisse. His only aim was to concentrate all his scattered forces, which had been spread over an area of nearly two thousand square miles, and, upon some well-selected field, to trust to the uncertain issues of a general battle. There was no choice left for him between this course and an ignominious retreat.

There was no time to waste. General Neipperg was moving decisively forward with a group of skirmishers in the front and on his flanks. Frederick quickly gathered all his distant posts, destroying supplies that couldn't be moved in time, and after a forced march of twenty-five miles in a single day, he reached Neustadt. General Neipperg was marching on a parallel route about twenty miles to the west of where the Prussians were traveling. At Neustadt, the king was still twenty miles away from Neisse. After just a few hours' delay to bring together all the Prussian units from the nearby posts, the king continued his march. He no longer hoped to keep up the siege of Neisse. His only goal was to consolidate all his scattered forces, which had covered almost two thousand square miles, and on a well-chosen battlefield, to rely on the uncertain outcome of a general battle. He had no option left but to take this path or face a shameful retreat.

Therefore, instead of marching upon Neisse, the king directed his course to Steinau, twenty miles east of Neisse. The siege was abandoned, and the whole Prussian army, so far as was possible, was gathered around the king. On the 5th of April Frederick established his head-quarters at Steinau. On that same day, General Neipperg, with the advanced corps of his army, triumphantly entered Neisse. Apprehensive of an immediate attack, Frederick made all his arrangements for a battle. In the confusion of those hours, during which the whole Prussian army, with all its vast accumulation of artillery and baggage-wagons, was surging like an inundation through the streets of Steinau, the village took fire and was burned to ashes. With great difficulty the artillery and powder were saved, being entangled in the narrow streets while the adjoining houses were enveloped in flames. The night was intensely cold. The Prussian army bivouacked in the open frozen fields.

Therefore, instead of marching on Neisse, the king changed his route to Steinau, twenty miles east of Neisse. The siege was called off, and the entire Prussian army, as much as possible, rallied around the king. On April 5th, Frederick set up his headquarters at Steinau. On that same day, General Neipperg, leading the forefront of his army, triumphantly entered Neisse. Fearing an immediate attack, Frederick made all necessary preparations for battle. In the chaos of those hours, as the entire Prussian army, with its massive artillery and supply wagons, surged through the streets of Steinau like a flood, the village caught fire and was reduced to ashes. It was a struggle to save the artillery and gunpowder, which were caught in the narrow streets while the nearby houses were engulfed in flames. The night was extremely cold. The Prussian army camped in the open, frozen fields.

250 General Neipperg, as his men were weary with their long march, did not make an attack, but allowed his troops a short season of repose in the enjoyment of the comforts of Neisse. The next morning, the 6th, Frederick continued his retreat to Friedland, ten miles farther north. He was anxious to get between the Austrians and Ohlau. He had many pieces of artillery there, and large stores of ammunition, which would prove a rich prize to the Austrians. It was Frederick’s intention to cross the River Neisse at a bridge at Sorgau, eight miles from Friedland; but the officer in charge there had been compelled to destroy the bridge, to protect himself from the Austrian horsemen, who in large numbers had appeared upon the opposite banks. Prince Leopold was sent with the artillery and a strong force to reconstruct the bridge and force the passage, but the Austrian dragoons were encountered in such numbers that the enterprise was found impossible.

250 General Neipperg, seeing that his men were tired from their long march, decided not to attack and instead allowed his troops a short break to enjoy the comforts of Neisse. The next morning, on the 6th, Frederick continued his retreat to Friedland, ten miles further north. He was eager to position himself between the Austrians and Ohlau. There, he had many pieces of artillery and large stocks of ammunition that would be a significant prize for the Austrians. Frederick planned to cross the River Neisse at a bridge in Sorgau, eight miles from Friedland; however, the officer in charge had to destroy the bridge to protect himself from the Austrian cavalry, which had appeared in large numbers on the opposite bank. Prince Leopold was sent with the artillery and a strong force to rebuild the bridge and force the crossing, but they encountered the Austrian dragoons in such numbers that the mission proved impossible.

Frederick therefore decided to march down the river twenty miles farther, to Lowen, where there was a good bridge. To favor the operation, Prince Leopold, with large divisions of the army and much of the baggage, was to cross the Neisse on pontoons at Michelau, a few miles above Lowen. Both passages were successfully accomplished, and the two columns effected a junction on the west side of the river on the 8th of April. The blockade of Brieg was abandoned, and its blockading force united with the general army.

Frederick decided to march twenty miles downriver to Lowen, where there was a solid bridge. To support this movement, Prince Leopold, along with large divisions of the army and a lot of the baggage, was supposed to cross the Neisse on pontoons at Michelau, just a few miles above Lowen. Both crossings were completed successfully, and the two groups came together on the west side of the river on April 8th. The blockade of Brieg was called off, and its forces joined the main army.

General Neipperg had now left Neisse; but he kept himself so surrounded by clouds of skirmishers as to render his march entirely invisible. Frederick, anxious to unite with him his troops under the Prince of Holstein Beck, advanced toward Grottkau to meet that division, which had been ordered to join him. The prince had been stationed at Frankenstein, with a force of about eight thousand, horse and foot; but the Austrian scouts so occupied all the roads that the king had not been able to obtain any tidings from him whatever.

General Neipperg had now left Neisse, but he kept himself surrounded by waves of skirmishers to make his march completely invisible. Frederick, eager to join his troops led by the Prince of Holstein Beck, moved toward Grottkau to meet that division, which had been instructed to join him. The prince had been stationed at Frankenstein with a force of about eight thousand troops, both cavalry and infantry; however, the Austrian scouts had blocked all the roads so effectively that the king was unable to get any updates from him at all.

It was Saturday, the 8th of April. A blinding, smothering storm of snow swept over the bleak plains. Breasting the gale, and wading through the drifts, the Prussian troops tramped along, unable to see scarcely a rod before them. At a little hamlet called Leipe the vanguard encountered a band of Austrian251 hussars. They took several captives. From them they learned, much to their chagrin and not a little to their alarm, that the Austrian army was already in possession of Grottkau.

It was Saturday, April 8th. A blinding, suffocating snowstorm swept across the desolate plains. Battling the wind and slogging through the snowdrifts, the Prussian troops trudged forward, barely able to see a few feet ahead. At a small village called Leipe, the advance party ran into a group of Austrian hussars. They captured several of them. From these captives, they learned—much to their dismay and a bit of their fear—that the Austrian army had already taken control of Grottkau.

THE NIGHT BEFORE MOLLWITZ.

Instantly the Prussian troops were ordered to the right about. Rapidly retracing their steps through the streets of Leipe, much to the surprise of its inhabitants, they pressed on seven miles farther toward Ohlau, and encamped for the night. The anxiety of Frederick in these hours when he was retiring before the foe, and when there was every probability of his incurring disgrace instead of gaining honor, must have been dreadful. There was no sleep for him that night. The Prussians were almost surrounded by the Austrians, and it was quite certain that the morrow would usher in a battle. Oppressed by the peril of his position, the king, during the night, wrote to his brother Augustus252 William, who was at Breslau, as follows. The letter was dated at the little village of Pogerell, where the king had taken shelter.

Immediately, the Prussian troops were ordered to change direction. Quickly retracing their steps through the streets of Leipzig, much to the surprise of the locals, they continued on for seven miles toward Ohlau and set up camp for the night. Frederick's anxiety during these hours, as he retreated before the enemy and faced the possibility of disgrace instead of honor, must have been intense. He couldn’t sleep that night. The Prussians were nearly surrounded by the Austrians, and it was certain that the next day would bring a battle. Overwhelmed by the danger of his situation, the king wrote to his brother Augustus William, who was in Breslau, during the night. The letter was dated from the small village of Pogerell, where the king had found refuge.

My dearest Brother,—The enemy has just got into Silesia. We are not more than a mile from them. To-morrow must decide our fortune. If I die, do not forget a brother who has always loved you most tenderly. I recommend to you my most dear mother, my domestics, and my first battalion. Eichel and Schuhmacher are informed of all my testamentary wishes.

My dearest Brother,—The enemy has just entered Silesia, and we are only about a mile away from them. Tomorrow will decide our fate. If I die, please remember a brother who has always loved you dearly. I trust you with my beloved mother, my household, and my first battalion. Eichel and Schuhmacher know all my wishes regarding my will.

“Remember me always, but console yourself for my death. The glory of the Prussian arms and the honor of the house have set me in action, and will guide me to my last moment. You are my sole heir. I recommend to you, in dying, those whom I have the most loved during my life—Keyserling, Jordan, Wartensleben, Hacke, who is a very honest man, Fredersdorf, and Eichel, in whom you may place entire confidence.

“Always remember me, but find comfort in my passing. The glory of the Prussian army and the honor of our family have motivated me and will see me through to the end. You are my only heir. As I approach death, I commend to you those I have loved most in my life—Keyserling, Jordan, Wartensleben, Hacke, who is a very honest man, Fredersdorf, and Eichel, in whom you can place your complete trust.

“I bequeath eight thousand crowns ($6000) to my domestics. All that I have elsewhere depends on you. To each of my brothers and sisters make a present in my name; a thousand affectionate regards to my sister at Baireuth. You know what I think on their score; and you know, better than I can tell you, the tenderness and all the sentiments of most inviolable friendship with which I am, dearest brother, your faithful brother and servant till death,

“I leave eight thousand crowns ($6000) to my household staff. Everything else I have relies on you. Give a gift in my name to each of my brothers and sisters; send a thousand affectionate regards to my sister in Baireuth. You know how I feel about them, and you understand better than I can express the tenderness and strong friendship I have for you, dear brother. I am your loyal brother and servant until death,

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

To his friend Jordan, who was also in Breslau, he wrote:

To his friend Jordan, who was also in Breslau, he wrote:

My dear Jordan,—We are going to fight to-morrow. Thou knowest the chances of war. The life of kings is not more regarded than that of private people. I know not what will happen to me.

My dear Jordan,—We're going to fight tomorrow. You know how unpredictable war can be. The lives of kings are valued just like those of regular people. I don't know what will happen to me.

“If my destiny is finished, remember a friend who loves thee always tenderly. If Heaven prolong my days, I will write to thee after to-morrow, and thou shalt hear of our victory. Adieu, dear friend; I shall love thee till death.

“If my fate is decided, remember a friend who always loves you dearly. If Heaven lets me live longer, I'll write to you the day after tomorrow, and you'll hear about our victory. Goodbye, dear friend; I will love you until death."

Frederick.

Frederick.

It is worthy of notice that there is no indication that the king sent any word of affectionate remembrance to his neglected wife. It is a remarkable feature in the character of the Emperor Napoleon253 I. that in his busiest campaigns rarely did a day pass in which he did not write to Josephine. He often wrote to her twice a day.

It’s worth noting that there’s no sign that the king sent any messages of love to his overlooked wife. A striking aspect of Emperor Napoleon I’s character is that during his busiest campaigns, hardly a day went by without him writing to Josephine. He often wrote to her twice a day.

Sunday morning, the 9th, dawned luridly. The storm raged unabated. The air was so filled with the falling snow that one could not see the distance of twenty paces, and the gale was piling up large drifts on the frozen plains. Neither army could move. Neipperg was in advance of Frederick, and had established his head-quarters at the village of Mollwitz, a few miles northwest of Pogerell. He had therefore got fairly between the Prussians and Ohlau. But Frederick knew not where the Austrian army was. For six-and-thirty hours the wild storm drove both Prussians and Austrians to such shelter as could be obtained in the several hamlets which were scattered over the extended plain.

Sunday morning, the 9th, started ominously. The storm kept raging. The air was so thick with falling snow that you couldn’t see even twenty steps ahead, and the wind was creating huge drifts across the frozen plains. Neither army could move. Neipperg was ahead of Frederick and had set up his headquarters in the village of Mollwitz, a few miles northwest of Pogerell. He had effectively positioned himself between the Prussians and Ohlau. But Frederick had no idea where the Austrian army was. For thirty-six hours, the fierce storm forced both the Prussians and Austrians to find whatever shelter they could in the scattered hamlets across the vast plain.

Frederick dispatched messengers to Ohlau to summon the force there to his aid; the messengers were all captured. The Prussians were now in a deplorable condition. The roads were encumbered and rendered almost impassable by the drifted snow. The army was cut off from its supplies, and had provisions on hand but for a single day. Both parties alike plundered the poor inhabitants of their cattle, sheep, and grain. Every thing that could burn was seized for their camp-fires. We speak of the carnage of the battle-field, and often forget the misery which is almost invariably brought upon the helpless inhabitants of the region through which the armies move. The schoolmaster of Mollwitz, a kind, simple-hearted, accurate old gentleman, wrote an account of the scenes he witnessed. Under date of Mollwitz, Sunday, April 9, he writes:

Frederick sent messengers to Ohlau to call for help, but they were all captured. The Prussians were now in terrible shape. The roads were blocked and nearly impossible to navigate due to the snow. The army was cut off from supplies and had enough food for only one more day. Both sides looted the local people of their cattle, sheep, and grain. Anything that could burn was taken for their campfires. We often talk about the bloodshed on the battlefield, but we frequently overlook the suffering inflicted on the defenseless residents in the areas where armies pass through. The schoolmaster of Mollwitz, a kind-hearted and straightforward old man, wrote down what he witnessed. Dated at Mollwitz, Sunday, April 9, he wrote:

“Country, for two days back, was in new alarm by the Austrian garrison of Brieg, now left at liberty, who sallied out upon the villages about, and plundered black cattle, sheep, grain, and whatever they could come at. But this day in Mollwitz the whole Austrian army was upon us. First there went three hundred hussars through the village to Grüningen, who quartered themselves there, and rushed hither and thither into houses, robbing and plundering. From one they took his best horses; from another they took linen, clothes, and other furnitures and victual.

The country, two days ago, was in a new state of alarm because the Austrian garrison from Brieg, now free, rode out into the nearby villages and looted black cattle, sheep, grain, and anything else they could find. But today in Mollwitz, the entire Austrian army came against us. First, three hundred hussars passed through the village to Grüningen, where they settled in and ran around raiding houses, stealing and plundering. From one place, they seized the best horses; from another, they took linens, clothes, and various furniture and food.

“General Neipperg halted here at Mollwitz with the whole254 army before the village, in mind to quarter. And quarter was settled, so that a plow-farmer got four to five companies to lodge, and a spade-farmer two or three hundred cavalry. The houses were full of officers, and the fields full of horsemen and baggage; and all around you saw nothing but fires burning. The wooden railings were instantly torn down for firewood. The hay, straw, barley were eaten away, and brought to nothing. Every thing from the barns was carried out. As the whole army could not lodge itself with us, eleven hundred infantry quartered at Laugwitz. Bärzdorf got four hundred cavalry; and this day nobody knew what would come of it.”

“General Neipperg stopped here at Mollwitz with the entire254 army in front of the village, planning to set up camp. It was arranged that a plow farmer would host four to five companies, while a spade farmer would accommodate two or three hundred cavalry. The houses filled up with officers, and the fields overflowed with horsemen and supplies; all around, you could see nothing but fires burning. The wooden fences were quickly taken down for firewood. The hay, straw, and barley were consumed, leaving nothing behind. Everything from the barns was cleared out. Since the entire army couldn't stay with us, eleven hundred infantry camped at Laugwitz. Bärzdorf hosted four hundred cavalry; and that day, no one knew what would happen next.”


CHAPTER XIV.
THE DEFEAT AND ESCAPE OF FREDERICK.

Preparing for the Battle.—The Surprise.—The Snow-encumbered Plain.—Horror of the Scene.—Flight of Frederick.—His Shame and Despair.—Unexpected Victory of the Prussians.—Letters of Frederick.—Adventures of Maupertuis.

Getting Ready for the Battle.—The Shock.—The Snowy Landscape.—The Terrifying Scene.—Frederick's Escape.—His Shame and Despair.—The Prussians' Unexpected Victory.—Frederick's Letters.—Maupertuis' Adventures.

Monday morning the storm ceased. There was a perfect calm. For leagues the spotless snow, nearly two feet deep, covered all the extended plains. The anxiety of Frederick had been so great that for two nights he had not been able to get any sleep. He had plunged into this war with the full assurance that he was to gain victory and glory. It now seemed inevitable that he was to encounter but defeat and shame.

Monday morning, the storm stopped. There was a complete calm. For miles, the untouched snow, almost two feet deep, blanketed the wide plains. Frederick had been so anxious that he hadn’t slept for two nights. He had jumped into this war fully convinced he would achieve victory and glory. Now, it seemed unavoidable that he was facing only defeat and disgrace.

At the earliest dawn the whole army was in motion. Ranked in four columns, they cautiously advanced toward Ohlau, ready to deploy instantly into line of battle should the enemy appear. Scouts were sent out in all directions. But, toiling painfully through the drifts, they could obtain no reliable information. The spy-glass revealed nothing but the winding-sheet of crisp and sparkling snow, with scarcely a shrub or a tree to break the dreary view. There were no fences to be seen—nothing but a smooth, white plain, spreading for miles around. The hamlet of Mollwitz, where General Neipperg had established his head-quarters, was about seven miles north from Pogerell, from which point Frederick was marching. At the distance of a few miles from each other there were several wretched little255 hamlets, consisting of a few low, thatched, clay farm-houses clustered together.

At the first light of day, the entire army was on the move. Arranged in four columns, they cautiously made their way toward Ohlau, prepared to form a battle line at a moment's notice if the enemy showed up. Scouts were deployed in every direction. However, struggling through the snowdrifts, they couldn't gather any reliable intelligence. The spyglass showed nothing but a blanket of crisp, sparkling snow, with hardly a shrub or tree to break the bleak landscape. There were no fences in sight—just a smooth, white expanse stretching for miles. The village of Mollwitz, where General Neipperg had set up his headquarters, was about seven miles north of Pogerell, from where Frederick was marching. A few miles apart, there were several miserable little hamlets made up of a handful of low, thatched clay farmhouses clustered together.

General Neipperg was not attempting to move in the deep snow. He, however, sent out a reconnoitring party of mounted hussars under General Rothenburg. About two miles from Mollwitz this party encountered the advance-guard of the Prussians. The hussars, after a momentary conflict, in which several fell, retreated and gave the alarm. General Neipperg was just sitting down to dinner. The Prussian advance waited for the rear columns to come up, and then deployed into line. As the Austrian hussars dashed into the village of Mollwitz with the announcement that the Prussians were on the march, had attacked them, and killed forty of their number, General Neipperg dropped knife and fork, sprang from the table, and dispatched couriers in all directions, galloping for life, to concentrate his troops. His force was mainly distributed about in three villages, two or three miles apart. The clangor of trumpets and drums resounded; and by the greatest exertions the Austrian troops were collected from their scattered encampments, and formed in two parallel lines, about two miles in length, facing the Prussians, who were slowly advancing in the same order, wading through the snow. Each army was formed with the infantry in the centre and the cavalry on the wings. Frederick was then but an inexperienced soldier. He subsequently condemned the want of military ability which he displayed upon this occasion.

General Neipperg wasn’t trying to navigate through the deep snow. However, he sent out a scouting party of mounted hussars led by General Rothenburg. About two miles from Mollwitz, this party came across the Prussian advance guard. The hussars, after a brief skirmish that resulted in several casualties, retreated and raised the alarm. General Neipperg had just sat down to dinner. The Prussian advance held back to wait for the rear columns to catch up, then formed into line. As the Austrian hussars rushed into the village of Mollwitz to report that the Prussians were on the move, had attacked them, and had killed forty of their soldiers, General Neipperg dropped his knife and fork, jumped up from the table, and dispatched couriers in every direction, racing to concentrate his troops. His forces were mainly spread out across three villages, two or three miles apart. The sound of trumpets and drums echoed; with great effort, the Austrian troops gathered from their scattered camps and formed into two parallel lines, about two miles long, facing the Prussians, who were slowly advancing in the same formation, trudging through the snow. Each army arranged its infantry in the center and cavalry on the flanks. Frederick was still an inexperienced soldier at that time. He later criticized the lack of military skill he showed on this occasion.

“We approached,” he writes, “Marshal Neipperg’s army without being discovered by any one man living. His troops were then cantoned in three villages. But at that time I had not sufficient experience to know how to avail myself of such an opportunity. I ought immediately to have ordered two of my columns to surround the village of Mollwitz, and then to have attacked it. I ought at the same instant to have detached my dragoons with orders to have attacked the other two villages, which contained the Austrian cavalry. The infantry, which should have followed, would have prevented them from mounting. If I had proceeded in this way I am convinced that I should have totally destroyed the Austrian army.”52

“We approached,” he writes, “Marshal Neipperg’s army without being spotted by a single person. His troops were then stationed in three villages. But at that time, I didn’t have enough experience to take advantage of such an opportunity. I should have immediately ordered two of my columns to surround the village of Mollwitz and then attacked it. At the same time, I should have sent my dragoons to attack the other two villages, which were holding the Austrian cavalry. The infantry following them would have prevented the cavalry from mounting. If I had done that, I’m convinced I would have completely destroyed the Austrian army.”52

256 It was now about noon. The sun shone brightly on the glistening snow. There was no wind. Twenty thousand peasants, armed and drilled as soldiers, were facing each other upon either side, to engage in mutual slaughter, with no animosity between them—no cause of quarrel. It is one of the unrevealed mysteries of Providence that any one man should thus have it in his power to create such wide-spread death and misery. The Austrians had a splendid body of cavalry, eight thousand six hundred in number. Frederick had but about half as many horsemen. The Prussians had sixty pieces of artillery, the Austrians but eighteen.

256 It was around noon. The sun shone brightly on the shimmering snow. There was no wind. Twenty thousand peasants, equipped and trained like soldiers, stood facing each other on both sides, ready to kill one another, without any hatred between them—no reason to fight. It's one of the unexplained mysteries of fate that one person can wield the power to cause such widespread death and suffering. The Austrians had a fantastic cavalry force, numbering eight thousand six hundred. Frederick had only about half that amount of horsemen. The Prussians had sixty cannons, while the Austrians had just eighteen.

The battle soon began, with its tumult, its thunder-roar of artillery and musketry, its gushing blood, its cries of agony, its death convulsions. Both parties fought with the reckless courage, the desperation with which trained soldiers, of whatever nationality, almost always fight.

The battle quickly started, filled with chaos, the booming sounds of artillery and gunfire, the spilling of blood, the screams of pain, and the throes of death. Both sides fought with the same fearless determination and desperation that trained soldiers, no matter their nationality, typically show.

The Prussians advanced in their long double line, trampling the deep snow beneath their feet. All their banners were waving. All their bands of music were pealing forth their most martial airs. Their sixty pieces of artillery, well in front, opened a rapid and deadly fire. The thoroughly-drilled Prussian artillerymen discharged their guns with unerring aim, breaking gaps in the Austrian ranks, and with such wonderful rapidity that the unintermitted roar of the cannons drowned the sound of drums and trumpets.

The Prussians moved forward in their long double line, crushing the deep snow under their feet. All their flags were flying. Their bands were playing their most heroic tunes. Their sixty cannons, positioned at the front, unleashed a quick and deadly barrage. The highly trained Prussian artillerymen fired their guns with perfect accuracy, creating gaps in the Austrian lines, and with such incredible speed that the continuous roar of the cannons drowned out the sound of drums and trumpets.

The Austrian cavalry made an impetuous charge upon the weaker Prussian cavalry on the right of the Prussian line. Frederick commanded here in person. The Prussian right wing was speedily routed, and driven in wild retreat over the plain. The king lost his presence of mind and fled ingloriously with the fugitives. General Schulenberg endeavored, in vain, to rally the disordered masses. He received a sabre slash across his face. Drenched in blood, he still struggled, unavailingly, to arrest the torrent, when a bullet struck him dead. The battle was now raging fiercely all along the lines.

The Austrian cavalry launched a reckless charge against the weaker Prussian cavalry on the right side of their line. Frederick led this part of the battle himself. The Prussian right wing was quickly defeated and sent into a chaotic retreat across the plain. The king lost his composure and fled shamefully with the others running away. General Schulenberg tried, without success, to rally the disorganized troops. He was slashed with a saber across his face. Soaked in blood, he continued to fight in vain to stop the chaos, until a bullet shot him dead. The battle was now raging intensely along the entire lines.

General Römer, in command of the Austrian cavalry, had crushed the right wing of the Prussians. Resolutely he followed up his victory, hotly chasing the fugitives in the wildest disorder far away to the rear, capturing nine of their guns. Who257 can imagine the scene? There were three or four thousand horsemen put to utter rout, clattering over the plain, impetuously pursued by six or seven thousand of the finest cavalry in the world, discharging pistol-shots into their flying ranks, and raining down upon them sabre-blows.

General Römer, leading the Austrian cavalry, had defeated the right flank of the Prussians. Determined, he pressed on after his victory, chasing the fleeing soldiers in complete chaos far back, capturing nine of their cannons. Who can picture the scene? There were three or four thousand horsemen in total disarray, racing across the plain, hotly pursued by six or seven thousand of the best cavalry in the world, firing pistols into their retreating lines and striking them with sabre blows.

The young king, all unaccustomed to those horrors of war which he had evoked, was swept along with the inundation. The danger of his falling in the midst of the general carnage, or of his capture, which was, perhaps, still more to be dreaded, was imminent. His friends entreated him to escape for his life. Even Marshal Schwerin, the veteran soldier, assured him that the battle was lost, and that he probably could escape capture only by a precipitate flight.

The young king, inexperienced with the horrors of war he had unleashed, was caught up in the chaos. The risk of him being killed in the widespread carnage, or worse, being captured, was very real. His friends urged him to flee for his life. Even Marshal Schwerin, the seasoned soldier, told him that the battle was lost and that he could likely avoid capture only by making a quick getaway.

FLIGHT OF FREDERICK.

Frederick, thus urged, leaving the main body of his army, as258 he supposed, in utter rout, with a small escort, put spurs to his steed in the attempt to escape. The king was well mounted on a very splendid bay horse. A rapid ride of fifteen miles in a southerly direction brought him to the River Neisse, which he crossed by a bridge at the little town of Lowen. Immediately after his departure Prince Leopold dispatched a squadron of dragoons to accompany the king as his body-guard. But Frederick fled so rapidly that they could not overtake him, and in the darkness, for night soon approached, they lost his track. Even several of the few who accompanied him, not so well mounted as the king, dropped off by the way, their horses not being able to keep up with his swift pace.

Frederick, feeling the pressure, left the main part of his army, which he thought was in complete disarray, with just a small escort, and urged his horse to escape. The king was riding a magnificent bay horse. A fast ride of fifteen miles south took him to the River Neisse, which he crossed via a bridge at the small town of Lowen. Right after he left, Prince Leopold sent a squadron of dragoons to follow the king as his bodyguard. But Frederick rode away so quickly that they couldn’t catch up to him, and as night fell, they lost track of him in the darkness. Even some of the few who followed him, not having horses as fast as the king’s, fell behind because their horses couldn’t keep up with his speed.

It was Frederick’s aim to reach Oppeln, a small town upon the River Oder, about thirty miles from the field of battle. He supposed that one of his regiments still held that place. But this regiment had hurriedly vacated the post, and had repaired, with all its baggage, to Pampitz, in the vicinity of Mollwitz. Upon the retirement of this garrison a wandering party of sixty Austrian hussars had taken possession of the town.

It was Frederick's goal to get to Oppeln, a small town by the River Oder, about thirty miles from the battlefield. He thought that one of his regiments was still there. However, that regiment had quickly left the post and moved, along with all its gear, to Pampitz, near Mollwitz. After this garrison's departure, a roaming group of sixty Austrian hussars took over the town.

Frederick, unaware that Oppeln was in the hands of the enemy, arrived, with the few of his suite who had been able to keep up with him, about midnight before the closed gates of the town. “Who are you?” the Austrian sentinels inquired. “We are Prussians,” was the reply, “accompanying a courier from the king.” The Austrians, unconscious of the prize within their grasp, and not knowing how numerous the Prussian party might be, instantly opened a musketry fire upon them through the iron gratings of the gate. Had they but thrown open the gate and thus let the king enter the trap, the whole history of Europe might have been changed. Upon apparently such trivial chances the destinies of empires and of the world depend. Fortunately, in the darkness and the confusion, none were struck by the bullets.

Frederick, unaware that Oppeln was under enemy control, arrived with the few members of his group who had managed to keep up with him, around midnight at the closed gates of the town. “Who are you?” the Austrian sentinels asked. “We are Prussians,” came the reply, “accompanying a courier from the king.” The Austrians, oblivious to the prize they held and unaware of how many Prussians were with him, immediately opened fire on them through the iron grates of the gate. If they had just opened the gate and let the king walk into the trap, the course of European history could have changed completely. Entire empires and the fate of the world can hinge on seemingly small decisions. Luckily, in the darkness and chaos, none were hit by the bullets.

At Oppeln there was a bridge across the Oder by which the king hoped to escape with his regiment to the free country beyond. There he intended to summon to his aid the army of thirty-six thousand men which he had sent to Götten under the “Old Dessauer.” The discharge of the musketry of the Austrians blasted even this dismal hope. It seemed as though Frederick259 were doomed to drain the cup of misery to its dregs; and his anguish must have been intensified by the consciousness that he deserved it all. But a few leagues behind him, the bleak, snow-clad plains, swept by the night-winds, were strewed with the bodies of eight or nine thousand men, the dying and the dead, innocent peasant-boys torn from their homes, whose butchery had been caused by his own selfish ambition.

At Oppeln, there was a bridge over the Oder that the king hoped to use to escape with his regiment to the free land beyond. He planned to call for help from the thirty-six thousand men he had sent to Götten under the “Old Dessauer.” The sound of gunfire from the Austrians shattered even this bleak hope. It felt as if Frederick259 was destined to suffer deeply; his pain must have been worsened by the awareness that he deserved it all. Just a few leagues behind him, the cold, snow-covered plains, swept by the night winds, were scattered with the bodies of eight or nine thousand men—the dying and the dead—innocent peasant boys ripped from their homes, their slaughter caused by his own selfish ambition.

The king, in utter exhaustion from hunger, sleeplessness, anxiety, and misery, for a moment lost all self-control. As with his little band of fugitives he vanished into the gloom of the night, not knowing where to go, he exclaimed, in the bitterness of his despair, “O my God, my God, this is too much!”

The king, completely worn out from hunger, lack of sleep, worry, and anguish, momentarily lost all self-control. As he disappeared into the darkness of the night with his small group of escapees, unsure of where to go, he cried out in the depth of his despair, “O my God, my God, I can't take this anymore!”

Retracing his steps in the darkness some fifteen miles, he returned to Lowen, where, by a bridge, a few hours before, he had crossed the Neisse. Taught caution by the misadventure at Oppeln, he reined up his horse, before the morning dawned, at the mill of Hilbersdorf, about a mile and a half from the town. The king, upon his high-blooded charger, had outridden nearly all his escort; but one or two were now with him. One of these attendants he sent into the town to ascertain if it were still held by the Prussians. Almost alone, he waited under the shelter of the mill the return of his courier. It was still night, dark and cold. The wind, sweeping over the snow-clad plains, caused the exhausted, half-famished monarch to shiver in his saddle.

Retracing his steps in the dark for about fifteen miles, he returned to Lowen, where, by a bridge, he had crossed the Neisse just a few hours earlier. Learning caution from the mishap at Oppeln, he stopped his horse at the mill of Hilbersdorf, about a mile and a half from the town, before dawn. The king, mounted on his high-spirited horse, had outpaced most of his escort, but a couple were still with him. He sent one of these attendants into the town to find out if it was still occupied by the Prussians. Almost alone, he waited under the shelter of the mill for his courier to return. It was still night, dark and cold. The wind, sweeping over the snow-covered plains, made the tired, half-starved monarch shiver in his saddle.

There is a gloom of the soul far deeper than any gloom with which nature can ever be shrouded. It is not easy to conceive of a mortal placed in circumstances of greater mental suffering than was the proud, ambitious young monarch during the hour in which he waited, in terror and disgrace, by the side of the mill, for the return of his courier. At length the clatter of hoofs was heard, and the messenger came back, accompanied by an adjutant, to announce to the king that the Prussians still held Lowen, and that the Prussian army had gained a signal victory at Mollwitz.

There’s a type of sadness in the soul that’s much deeper than anything nature can create. It's hard to imagine someone experiencing more mental anguish than the proud, ambitious young king did while he waited, terrified and ashamed, by the mill for his messenger to return. Finally, the sound of hooves echoed, and the messenger arrived back, accompanied by an adjutant, to tell the king that the Prussians still controlled Lowen, and that the Prussian army had won a significant victory at Mollwitz.

Who can imagine the conflicting emotions of joy and wretchedness, of triumph and shame, of relief and chagrin, with which the heart of Frederick must have been rent! The army of Prussia had triumphed, under the leadership of his generals, while he, its young and ambitious sovereign, who had unjustly provoked260 war that he might obtain military glory, a fugitive from the field, was scampering like a coward over the plains at midnight, seeking his own safety. Never, perhaps, was there a more signal instance of a retributive providence. Frederick knew full well that the derision of Europe would be excited by caricatures and lampoons of the chivalric fugitive. Nor was he deceived in his anticipations. There was no end to the ridicule which was heaped upon Frederick, galloping, for dear life, from the battle-field in one direction, while his solid columns were advancing to victory in the other. His sarcastic foes were ungenerous and unjust. But when do foes, wielding the weapons of ridicule, ever pretend even to be just and generous?

Who can imagine the mixed emotions of joy and misery, triumph and shame, relief and disappointment that must have torn at Frederick's heart! The Prussian army had won, led by his generals, while he, its young and ambitious ruler, who had unfairly started a war to gain military fame, was fleeing the battlefield like a coward in the dead of night, just trying to save himself. Perhaps there has never been a clearer example of karmic justice. Frederick knew all too well that Europe would mock him with caricatures and satirical poems of the chivalrous fugitive. And he was right in his predictions. The ridicule he faced was endless, as he galloped away for his life from the battlefield in one direction while his formidable troops advanced towards victory in the other. His sarcastic enemies were cruel and unfair. But when have enemies, armed with the weapons of mockery, ever claimed to be fair and generous?

FREDERICK AT THE MILL.

The king, upon receiving these strange and unexpected tidings, immediately rode into Lowen. It was an early hour in the261 morning. He entered the place, not as a king and a conqueror, but as a starving fugitive, exhausted with fatigue, anxiety, and sleeplessness. It is said that his hunger was so great that he stopped at a little shop on the corner of the market-place, where “widow Panzern” served him with a cup of coffee and a cold roast fowl. Thus slightly refreshed, the intensely humiliated young king galloped back to his victorious army at Mollwitz, having been absent from it, in his terror-stricken flight, for sixteen hours.

The king, upon hearing these strange and unexpected news, quickly rode into Lowen. It was early in the morning. He entered the place not as a king and a conqueror, but as a starving fugitive, worn out from fatigue, anxiety, and lack of sleep. It's said that his hunger was so intense that he stopped at a little shop in the market where "widow Panzern" served him a cup of coffee and some cold roast chicken. Feeling slightly refreshed, the deeply embarrassed young king rode back to his victorious army at Mollwitz, having been away from them for sixteen hours during his terrified escape.

The chagrin of Frederick in view of this adventure may be inferred from the fact that, during the whole remainder of his life, he was never known to make any allusion to it whatever.

Frederick's embarrassment about this adventure is evident from the fact that, for the rest of his life, he never mentioned it at all.

After the king, swept away in the wreck of his right wing of cavalry, had left the field, and was spurring his horse in his impetuous flight, his generals in the centre and on the left, in command of infantry so highly disciplined that every man would stand at his post until he died, resolutely maintained the battle. Frederick William had drilled these men for twenty years as men were never drilled before or since, converting them into mere machines. They were wielded by their officers as they themselves handled their muskets. Five successive cavalry charges these cast-iron men resisted. They stood like rocks dashing aside the torrent. The assailing columns melted before their terrible fire—they discharging five shots to the Austrians’ two.

After the king, caught up in the chaos of his right wing of cavalry, had left the battlefield and was pushing his horse in a wild escape, his generals in the center and on the left, leading infantry so well-trained that every soldier would stay at his post until death, fiercely held the line. Frederick William had drilled these men for twenty years like no one else before or since, turning them into almost mechanical soldiers. They were directed by their officers just as they managed their muskets. These tough soldiers withstood five consecutive cavalry charges. They stood firm like rocks, pushing back the oncoming waves. The attacking columns fell apart in front of their devastating fire—they fired five shots for every two the Austrians managed.

BATTLE OF
MOLLWITZ,
April 10, 1741.

BATTLE OF
MOLLWITZ,
April 10, 1741.

a. Advance of Prussians.
b. Where Rothenburg met the Hussars.
c. Prussian Infantry.
dd. Prussian Cavalry.
e. Austrian Infantry.
fff. Austrian Cavalry.
gg. Retreat of Austrians.

After the fifth charge, the Austrians, dispirited, and leaving the snow plain crimsoned with the blood and covered with the bodies of their slain, withdrew out of ball range. Torn and exhausted, they could not be driven by their officers forward to another assault. The battle had now lasted for five hours.262 Night was at hand, for the sun had already set. The repulsed Austrians were collected in scattered and confused bands. The experienced eye of General Schwerin saw that the hour for decisive action had come. He closed up his ranks, ordered every band to play its most spirited air, and gave the order “Forward.” An Austrian officer, writing the next week, describes the scene.

After the fifth charge, the Austrians, disheartened and leaving the snow-covered ground stained with blood and filled with the bodies of their fallen, retreated out of gun range. Torn and exhausted, they couldn't be pushed by their officers to make another attack. The battle had been ongoing for five hours.262 Night was approaching, as the sun had already set. The defeated Austrians were gathered in scattered and disorganized groups. General Schwerin, with his experienced eye, recognized that the time for decisive action had arrived. He tightened his ranks, instructed every group to play their most energetic tune, and gave the command “Forward.” An Austrian officer, writing the following week, described the scene.

“I can well say,” he writes, “that I never in my life saw any thing more beautiful. They marched with the greatest steadiness, arrow straight and their front like a line, as if they had been upon parade. The glitter of their clear arms shone strangely in the setting sun, and the fire from them went on no otherwise than a continued peal of thunder. The spirits of our army sank altogether, the foot plainly giving way, the horse refusing to come forward—all things wavering toward dissolution.”

“I can honestly say,” he writes, “that I’ve never seen anything more beautiful in my life. They marched with incredible steadiness, perfectly straight and their front lined up like they were on parade. The shine of their bright weapons sparkled strangely in the setting sun, and the sounds from them were just like a constant rumble of thunder. The morale of our army plummeted, the foot soldiers clearly giving way, and the cavalry refusing to advance—all things teetering on the edge of collapse.”

The Austrians had already lost, in killed, wounded, and missing, four thousand four hundred and ten men. And though the Prussians had lost four thousand six hundred and thirteen, still their infantry lines had never for a moment wavered; and now, with floating banners and peals of music, they were advancing with the strides of conquerors.

The Austrians had already lost a total of four thousand four hundred and ten men, including those killed, wounded, and missing. Although the Prussians had lost four thousand six hundred and thirteen men, their infantry lines never wavered for even a moment; now, with waving flags and sounds of music, they were advancing like conquerors.

Thus circumstanced, General Neipperg gave the order to retreat. At the double quick, the Austrians retired back through the street of Mollwitz, hurried across the River Laugwitz by a bridge, and, turning short to the south, continued their retreat toward Grottkau. They left behind them nine of their own guns, and eight of those which they had captured from the Prussians. The Prussians, exhausted by the long battle, their cavalry mostly dispersed and darkness already enveloping them, did not attempt any vigorous pursuit. They bivouacked on the grounds, or quartered themselves in the villages from which the Austrians had fled.

Given the situation, General Neipperg ordered a retreat. Quickly, the Austrians pulled back through the street of Mollwitz, rushed over the River Laugwitz via a bridge, and turned south, continuing their retreat toward Grottkau. They left behind nine of their own cannons and eight that they had taken from the Prussians. The Prussians, worn out from the lengthy battle, with most of their cavalry scattered and darkness closing in, did not make any active pursuit. They set up camp on the grounds or took shelter in the villages the Austrians had abandoned.

On Wednesday, April 12, two days after the battle, Frederick wrote to his sister Wilhelmina from Ohlau as follows:

On Wednesday, April 12, two days after the battle, Frederick wrote to his sister Wilhelmina from Ohlau as follows:

My dearest Sister,—I have the satisfaction to inform you that we have yesterday53 totally beaten the Austrians. They263 have lost more than five thousand men in killed, wounded, and prisoners. We have lost Prince Frederick, brother of Margraf Karl; General Schulenberg, Wartensleben of the Carabineers, and many other officers. Our troops did miracles, and the result shows as much. It was one of the rudest battles fought within the memory of man.

My dearest Sister,—I’m happy to let you know that we totally defeated the Austrians yesterday. They263 lost over five thousand men, including those killed, injured, and captured. We lost Prince Frederick, the brother of Margraf Karl; General Schulenberg, Wartensleben of the Carabineers, and many other officers. Our troops performed amazingly well, and the result shows that. It was one of the toughest battles in recent memory.”

“I am sure you will take part in this happiness, and that you will not doubt the tenderness with which I am, dearest sister, yours wholly,

“I know you will share in this joy, and you will understand the love with which I am, dear sister, completely yours,

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

The king’s intimate friend, Jordan, had accompanied him as far as Breslau. There he remained, anxiously awaiting the issue of the conflict. On the 11th, the day succeeding the battle, he wrote from Breslau to the king as follows:

The king’s close friend, Jordan, had traveled with him to Breslau. He stayed there, nervously waiting for the outcome of the conflict. On the 11th, the day after the battle, he wrote to the king from Breslau as follows:

Sire,—Yesterday I was in terrible alarms. The sound of the cannon heard, the smoke of powder visible from the steeple-tops here, all led us to suspect that there was a battle going on. Glorious confirmation of it this morning. Nothing but rejoicing among all the Protestant inhabitants, who had begun to be in apprehension from the rumors which the other party took pleasure in spreading. Persons who were in the battle can not enough celebrate the coolness and bravery of your majesty. For myself, I am at the overflowing point. I have run about all day announcing this glorious news to the Berliners who are here. In my life I have never felt a more perfect satisfaction. One finds at the corner of every street an orator of the people celebrating the warlike feats of your majesty’s troops. I have often, in my idleness, assisted at these discourses; not artistic eloquence, it must be owned, but gushing full from the heart.”

Man,—Yesterday I was in a state of panic. The sound of cannon fire, the smoke visible from the church steeples here, all led us to suspect that a battle was happening. This morning brought glorious confirmation. There’s nothing but celebration among all the Protestant residents, who had started to worry due to the rumors that the other side was delighting in spreading. People who were in the battle can't stop praising your majesty's composure and bravery. As for me, I’m overflowing with joy. I've spent the day spreading this exciting news to the people of Berlin who are here. I've never felt such complete satisfaction in my life. At every street corner, there’s an impromptu speaker celebrating the military achievements of your majesty’s troops. I’ve often, in my free time, listened to these speeches; it’s not artistic eloquence, I must admit, but it comes straight from the heart.”

Frederick immediately sent an announcement of the victory to his friend Voltaire. It does not appear that he alluded to his own adventures. Voltaire received the note when in the theatre at Lisle, while listening to the first performance of his tragedy of Mahomet. He read the account to the audience between the acts. It was received with great applause. “You will see,” said Voltaire, “that this piece of Mollwitz will secure the success of mine.” Vous verrez que cette piece de Mollwitz fera réussir la miene.

Frederick immediately sent news of the victory to his friend Voltaire. It doesn’t seem like he mentioned his own experiences. Voltaire received the note while at the theater in Lisle, listening to the first performance of his tragedy Mahomet. He read the announcement to the audience between acts, which was met with great applause. “You’ll see,” said Voltaire, “that this victory at Mollwitz will guarantee my success.” Vous verrez que cette piece de Mollwitz fera réussir la miene.

The distinguished philosopher Maupertuis accompanied Frederick264 on this campaign. Following the king to the vicinity of the field of battle, he took a post of observation at a safe distance, that he might witness the spectacle. Carlyle, in his peculiar style of word-painting, describes the issue as follows:

The notable philosopher Maupertuis joined Frederick264 on this campaign. He followed the king to near the battlefield, taking a spot to safely observe the events from a distance, so he could witness the scene. Carlyle, in his unique descriptive style, captures the outcome like this:

“The sage Maupertuis, for example, had climbed some tree, or place of impregnability, hoping to see the battle there. And he did see it much too clearly at last! In such a tide of charging and chasing on that Right Wing, and round all the field in the Prussian rear; in such wide bickering and boiling of Horse-currents, which fling out round all the Prussian rear-quarters such a spray of Austrian Hussars for one element, Maupertuis, I have no doubt, wishes much he were at home doing his sines and tangents. An Austrian Hussar party gets sight of him on his tree or other stand-point (Voltaire says elsewhere he was mounted on an ass, the malicious spirit!)—too certain the Austrian Hussars got sight of him; his purse, gold watch, all he has of movable, is given frankly; all will not do. There are frills about the man, fine laces, cloth; a goodish yellow wig on him for one thing. Their Slavonic dialect, too fatally intelligible by the pantomime accompanying it, forces sage Maupertuis from his tree or stand-point; the big red face flurried into scarlet, I can fancy, or scarlet and ashy-white mixed; and—Let us draw a veil over it. He is next seen shirtless, the once very haughty, blustery, and now much humiliated man; still conscious of supreme acumen, insight, and pure science; and, though an Austrian prisoner and a monster of rags, struggling to believe that he is a genius, and the Trismegistus of mankind. What a pickle!”

“The wise Maupertuis, for instance, had climbed a tree or some high spot, hoping to catch a glimpse of the battle. And in the end, he saw it all too clearly! With the chaos of charging and chasing on the Right Wing, and all around the Prussian rear; in the midst of the wide and tumultuous currents of horsemen, which sent a spray of Austrian Hussars flying about the Prussian rear, I’m sure Maupertuis wishes he had stayed at home doing his sines and tangents. An Austrian Hussar group spots him in his tree or on whatever perch he had (Voltaire mentions elsewhere that he was riding an ass, the cheeky spirit!)—it’s clear the Austrian Hussars saw him; he hands over his purse, gold watch, and everything else he has, but that doesn’t help. The man’s dressed nicely, with frills, fine lace, and good cloth; he’s even sporting a decent yellow wig. Their Slavonic dialect, unfortunately too clear with the accompanying gestures, forces wise Maupertuis out of his tree or position; I can imagine his large red face turning a mix of scarlet and ashy-white; and—let’s just leave it at that. He’s next seen without his shirt, once very proud and brash, now much humiliated; still aware of his sharp intellect, insight, and pure science; and even as an Austrian prisoner in rags, he struggles to maintain his belief that he is a genius and the greatest among men. What a mess!”

While in this deplorable condition, Maupertuis was found by the Prince of Lichtenstein, an Austrian officer who had met him in Paris. The prince rescued him from his brutal captors and supplied him with clothing. He was, however, taken to Vienna as a prisoner of war, where he was placed on parole. Voltaire, whose unamiable nature was pervaded by a very marked vein of malignity, made himself very merry over the misfortunes of the philosopher. As Maupertuis glided about the streets of Vienna for a time in obscurity, the newspapers began to speak of his scientific celebrity. He was thus brought into notice. The queen treated him with distinction. The Grand-duke Francis drew his own watch from his pocket, and presented it to Maupertuis265 in recompense for the one he had lost. Eventually he was released, and, loaded with many presents, was sent to Brittany.

While in this terrible situation, Maupertuis was found by the Prince of Lichtenstein, an Austrian officer who had met him in Paris. The prince rescued him from his harsh captors and gave him some clothes. However, he was taken to Vienna as a prisoner of war, where he was placed on parole. Voltaire, whose unfriendly nature was marked by a noticeable streak of malice, found amusement in the philosopher's misfortunes. As Maupertuis moved around the streets of Vienna in obscurity for a while, the newspapers started to mention his scientific fame. This brought him into the spotlight. The queen treated him with respect. The Grand-duke Francis took out his own watch from his pocket and gave it to Maupertuis as compensation for the one he had lost. Eventually, he was released and, burdened with many gifts, was sent to Brittany.

In the account which Frederick gave, some years after, of this campaign, in his Histoire de Mons Temps, he wrote:

In the account that Frederick shared a few years later about this campaign, in his Histoire de Mons Temps, he wrote:

“The contest between General Neipperg and myself seemed to be which should commit the most faults. Mollwitz was the school of the king and his troops. That prince reflected profoundly upon all the faults and errors he had fallen into, and tried to correct them for the future.”

“The competition between General Neipperg and me appeared to be who could make the most mistakes. Mollwitz was the training ground for the king and his army. That prince thought deeply about all the mistakes and errors he had made and worked on correcting them for the future.”


CHAPTER XV.
THE WAR IN SILESIA.

The Encampment at Brieg.—Bombardment.—Diplomatic Intrigues.—Luxury of the Spanish Minister.—Rising Greatness of Frederick.—Frederick’s Interview with Lord Hyndford.—Plans of France.—Desperate Prospects of Maria Theresa.—Anecdote of Frederick.—Joint Action of England and Holland.—Heroic Character of Maria Theresa.—Coronation of the Queen of Hungary.

The Camp at Brieg.—Bombardment.—Political Plans.—Luxury of the Spanish Minister.—Frederick's Increasing Power.—Frederick's Meeting with Lord Hyndford.—France's Tactics.—Maria Theresa’s Critical Situation.—Anecdote about Frederick.—Collaboration Between England and Holland.—Maria Theresa’s Courageous Spirit.—Coronation of the Queen of Hungary.

After the battle of Mollwitz, General Neipperg withdrew the defeated Austrian army to the vicinity of Neisse, where he strongly intrenched himself. Frederick encamped his troops around Brieg, and made vigorous preparations to carry the place by storm. With great energy he pushed forward his works, and in less than three weeks was ready for the assault. On the night of April 26 there was a tempest of extraordinary violence, which was followed, the next night, by a dead calm, a cloudless sky, and a brilliant moon. On both sides of the River Oder, upon which Brieg was situated, there was an open champaign country. Several bridges crossed the river. At a fixed moment two thousand diggers were collected, at appointed stations, divided into twelve equal parties. With the utmost exactness they were equipped with all the necessary implements. These diggers, with spade and pickaxe, and yet thoroughly armed, were preceded a few yards by covering battalions, who, having stealthily and silently obtained the position assigned to them, were to lie flat upon the ground. Not a gun was to be fired; not a word was to be spoken save in a whisper; not even a pipe was to be lighted. Some engineers were to mark out with a straw266 rope, just in the rear of the covering party, the line of the first parallel. Every imaginable contingency was provided for, and each man was to attend to his individual duty with the precision of clock-work.

After the battle of Mollwitz, General Neipperg pulled back the defeated Austrian army to the area near Neisse, where he set up strong defenses. Frederick set up camp for his troops around Brieg and made intense preparations to take the city by force. With great determination, he advanced his works, and in less than three weeks, he was ready for the attack. On the night of April 26, there was an incredibly violent storm, followed the next night by a stillness, a clear sky, and a bright moon. On both sides of the River Oder, where Brieg was located, there was open countryside. Several bridges crossed the river. At a designated time, two thousand workers gathered at their assigned spots, divided into twelve equal groups. They were carefully equipped with all the necessary tools. These workers, armed with shovels and pickaxes, were closely followed by covering battalions, who had quietly and silently taken their positions and were instructed to lie flat on the ground. Not a single shot was to be fired; no words were to be spoken except in whispers; no pipes were to be lit. Some engineers were to mark the line of the first parallel with a straw rope just behind the covering party. Every possible scenario was accounted for, and each person was expected to perform their individual tasks with clockwork precision.

Precisely at midnight all were in silent, rapid motion. The march of half an hour brought them to their appointed stations. The soft and sandy soil was easily shoveled. Every man plied pick and spade with intensest energy. As the town clock of Brieg struck one, they had so far dug themselves in as to be quite sheltered from the fire of the hostile batteries, should the guns open upon them. Before the dawn of day they had two batteries, of twenty-five guns each, in position, and several mortars ready for action.

Exactly at midnight, everyone moved quickly and quietly. After half an hour of marching, they reached their designated spots. The soft, sandy ground was easy to dig. Each man worked hard with his pick and shovel. As the town clock in Brieg struck one, they had managed to dig in enough to be well protected from enemy fire if the guns were to start firing. Before dawn, they set up two batteries, each with twenty-five guns, and had several mortars ready for action.

Thus far the enemy had no suspicion of the movement. But now the sun was rising, and, almost simultaneously on both sides, the roar of battle commenced. The positions had been so adroitly taken as to bring three Prussian guns to bear upon each gun of the Austrians. The Prussian gunners, drilled to the utmost possible accuracy and precision of fire, poured into the city a terrific tempest of shot and shells. Every thing had been so carefully arranged that, for six days and nights, with scarcely a moment’s intermission, the doomed city was assailed with such a tornado of cannonading and bombardment as earth had seldom, if ever, witnessed before.

So far, the enemy had no clue about the movement. But now the sun was coming up, and almost at the same time on both sides, the sound of battle began. The positions had been skillfully taken to allow three Prussian guns to target each Austrian gun. The Prussian gunners, trained for maximum accuracy and precision, unleashed a devastating storm of shots and shells into the city. Everything had been arranged so meticulously that, for six days and nights, with hardly a moment's break, the city was subjected to a bombardment of cannon fire that the world had rarely, if ever, seen before.

The city took fire in many places; magazines were consumed; the ducal palace was wrapped in flames. Nearly fifteen thousand cannon-balls, and over two thousand bombs, were hurled crashing through the thronged dwellings. Many of the Austrian guns were silenced. General Piccolomini, who was intrusted with the defense of the place, could stand it no longer. On the 4th of May he raised above the walls the white flag of surrender. The gallant general was treated magnanimously. He was invited to dine with Frederick, and, with the garrison, was permitted to retire to Neisse, pledged not to serve against the Prussians for two years. The town had been nearly demolished by the war-tempest which had beat so fiercely upon it. Frederick immediately commenced repairing the ruins and strengthening the fortifications.

The city caught fire in several spots; stores of ammunition were destroyed; the ducal palace was engulfed in flames. Almost fifteen thousand cannonballs and over two thousand bombs crashed through the crowded homes. Many of the Austrian cannons were silenced. General Piccolomini, who was in charge of defending the city, could no longer hold out. On May 4th, he raised the white flag of surrender above the walls. The brave general was treated generously. He was invited to dine with Frederick and, along with the garrison, was allowed to retreat to Neisse, promising not to fight against the Prussians for two years. The town had been almost completely destroyed by the fierce onslaught of war. Frederick immediately began to repair the ruins and strengthen the fortifications.

All Europe was thrown into commotion by this bold and successful267 invasion of Silesia. France was delighted, for Prussia was weakening Austria. England was alarmed. The weakening of Austria was strengthening France, England’s dreaded rival. And Hanover was menaced by the Prussian army at Götten, under the Old Dessauer. The British Parliament voted an additional subsidy of £300,000 to Maria Theresa. Two hundred thousand had already been granted her. This, in all, amounted to the sum of two million five hundred thousand dollars. Envoys from all the nations of Europe were sent to Frederick’s encampment at Strehlen, in the vicinity of Brieg. Some were sent seeking his alliance, some with terms of compromise, and all to watch his proceedings. The young king was not only acquiring the territory which he sought, but seemed to be gaining that renown which he had so eagerly coveted. He did not feel strong enough to make an immediate attack upon the Austrian army, which General Neipperg held, in an almost impregnable position, behind the ramparts of Neisse. For two months he remained at Strehlen, making vigorous preparations for future movements, and his mind much engrossed with diplomatic intrigues. Strehlen is a pretty little town, nestled among the hills, about twenty-five miles west of Brieg, and thirty northwest of Neisse. The troops were mainly encamped in tents on the fields around. The embassadors from the great monarchies of Europe were generally sumptuously lodged in Strehlen, or in Breslau, which was a beautiful city about thirty miles north of Strehlen. Baron Bielfeld in the following terms describes the luxury in which the Spanish minister indulged:

All of Europe was thrown into chaos by this bold and successful 267 invasion of Silesia. France was pleased because Prussia was weakening Austria. England was worried. Austria's decline was making France stronger, which was England's feared rival. And Hanover was threatened by the Prussian army at Götten, led by the Old Dessauer. The British Parliament approved an additional subsidy of £300,000 for Maria Theresa. Two hundred thousand had already been granted to her. This added up to a total of two million five hundred thousand dollars. Envoys from all the nations of Europe were sent to Frederick’s camp at Strehlen, near Brieg. Some sought his alliance, some came with terms for compromise, and all were there to observe his actions. The young king was not only acquiring the land he wanted, but also seemed to be gaining the fame he had long desired. He didn’t feel strong enough to launch an immediate attack on the Austrian army, which General Neipperg held in a nearly impregnable position behind the walls of Neisse. For two months he stayed at Strehlen, making vigorous preparations for future actions and heavily focused on diplomatic intrigues. Strehlen is a charming little town, nestled among the hills, about twenty-five miles west of Brieg and thirty miles northwest of Neisse. The troops were mainly camped in tents in the fields around. The ambassadors from the great monarchies of Europe were generally lavishly housed in Strehlen or in Breslau, a beautiful city about thirty miles north of Strehlen. Baron Bielfeld describes the luxury in which the Spanish minister indulged as follows:

“Each of these ministers makes a most brilliant figure, and never have I seen one travel with more ease and convenience, more elegance and grandeur, than does the Marquis of Montijo. Wherever he stops to dine or sup, he finds a room hung with the richest tapestry, and the floor covered with Turkey carpets, with velvet chairs, and every other kind of convenience; a table sumptuously served, the choicest wines, and a dessert of fruit and confectionery that Paris itself could not excel. This kind of enchantment, this real miracle in Germany, is performed by means of three baggage-wagons, of which two always go before the embassador, and carry with them every thing necessary for his reception. When they arrive in some poor village, the domestics268 that accompany each wagon immediately clear and clean some chamber, fix the tapestry by rings to the walls, cover the floor with carpets, and furnish the kitchen and cellar with every kind of necessary.”54

“Each of these ministers looks quite impressive, and I’ve never seen anyone travel with more ease and style, more elegance and grandeur, than the Marquis of Montijo. Wherever he stops to have a meal, he finds a room adorned with the finest tapestries, and the floor covered with Turkish carpets, with velvet chairs and every other kind of comfort; a table lavishly set, the best wines, and a dessert of fruits and sweets that even Paris couldn’t surpass. This kind of magic, this real wonder in Germany, is made possible by three luggage wagons, of which two always travel ahead of the ambassador, carrying everything needed for his reception. When they reach a humble village, the servants that accompany each wagon quickly tidy up a room, hang the tapestries on the walls, lay down the carpets, and stock the kitchen and cellar with all sorts of essentials.”54

Speaking of Frederick at this time, Bielfeld says: “Notwithstanding all the fatigues of war, the king is in perfect health, and more gay and pleasant than ever. All who approach his majesty meet with a most gracious reception. In the midst of his camp, and at the head of sixty thousand Prussians, our monarch appears to me with a new and superior air of greatness.”

Speaking of Frederick at this time, Bielfeld says: “Despite all the stresses of war, the king is in great health and is more cheerful and personable than ever. Everyone who meets his majesty receives a very warm welcome. In the midst of his camp, and at the lead of sixty thousand Prussians, our monarch seems to me to have an enhanced and impressive presence.”

Circumstances had already rendered Frederick one of the most important personages in Europe. He could ally himself with France, and humble Austria; or he could ally himself with England and Austria, and crush France. All the lesser lights in the Continental firmament circulated around these central luminaries. Consequently Frederick was enabled to take a conspicuous part in all the diplomatic intrigues which were then agitating the courts of Europe.

Circumstances had already made Frederick one of the most significant figures in Europe. He could team up with France to bring down Austria, or he could join forces with England and Austria to defeat France. All the lesser figures in the European realm revolved around these key players. As a result, Frederick was able to play a prominent role in all the diplomatic schemes that were stirring up the courts of Europe.

On the 7th of May, three days after the capture of Brieg, Lord Hyndford, the English embassador, arrived at the camp of Frederick, and obtained an audience with his majesty. It was eleven o’clock in the forenoon. He gave his government a very minute narrative of the interview. The following particulars, gleaned from that narrative, will interest the reader. It will be remembered that Frederick cherished a strong antipathy against his uncle, George II. of England.

On May 7th, three days after the capture of Brieg, Lord Hyndford, the English ambassador, arrived at Frederick's camp and met with His Majesty. It was 11 AM. He provided his government with a detailed account of the meeting. The following details, taken from that account, will interest the reader. It's worth noting that Frederick had a deep dislike for his uncle, George II of England.

Lord Hyndford commenced his communication by assuring his majesty of the friendly feelings and good wishes of the English government. Frederick listened with much impatience, and soon interrupted him, exclaiming passionately,

Lord Hyndford started his message by assuring the king of the friendly sentiments and good wishes of the English government. Frederick listened with considerable impatience and quickly interrupted him, exclaiming passionately,

“How is it possible, my lord, to believe things so contradictory? It is mighty fine, all this that you now tell me, on the part of the King of England. But how does it correspond with his last speech in Parliament, and with the doings of his ministers at Petersburg and at the Hague, to stir up allies against me? I have reason to doubt the sincerity of the King of England. Perhaps he means to amuse me. But” (with an oath55)269 “he is mistaken. I will risk every thing rather than abate the least of my pretensions.”

“How can you, my lord, believe such contradictory things? Everything you're saying now sounds great coming from the King of England. But how does it match up with his last speech in Parliament and the actions of his ministers in Petersburg and The Hague, trying to rally allies against me? I have reason to doubt the King of England's sincerity. Maybe he's just trying to play games with me. But” (with an oath55)269 “he's got it wrong. I would rather risk everything than give up even a little of my claims.”

Lord Hyndford, evidently embarrassed, for the facts were strongly against him, endeavored, in some additional remarks, to assume ignorance of any unfriendly action on the part of the British government. The king again, in a loud and angry tone, replied,

Lord Hyndford, clearly embarrassed since the facts were heavily stacked against him, tried to make some extra comments to pretend he was unaware of any hostile actions by the British government. The king responded again, loudly and angrily,

“My lord, there seems to be a contradiction in all this. The King of England, in his letter, tells me you are instructed as to every thing, and yet you pretend ignorance. But I am perfectly informed of all. And I should not be surprised if, after all these fine words, you should receive some strong letter or resolution for me.” Then, turning to his secretary, he added, sarcastically, “Write down that my lord would be surprised to receive such instruction.”

“My lord, there seems to be a contradiction in all of this. The King of England, in his letter, tells me that you are fully briefed on everything, and yet you act like you have no idea. But I am completely informed. I wouldn’t be surprised if, after all this talk, you end up getting a strong letter or decision from me.” Then, turning to his secretary, he added, sarcastically, “Write down that my lord would be surprised to receive such instructions.”

Lord Hyndford, who says that by this rude assailment he was put extremely upon his guard, rejoined:

Lord Hyndford, who stated that this harsh attack made him very cautious, replied:

“Europe is under the necessity of taking some speedy resolution, things are in such a state of crisis. Like a fever in a human body, got to such a height that quinquina becomes necessary. Shall we apply to Vienna, your majesty?”

“Europe needs to make a quick decision; things are in a serious crisis. It's like a fever in the human body that has reached a point where quinine is essential. Should we reach out to Vienna, Your Majesty?”

A transient smile flitted across the king’s countenance. Then, looking cold again, he added, “Follow your own will in that.”

A fleeting smile crossed the king's face. Then, looking cold again, he added, “Do what you want with that.”

“Would your majesty,” Lord Hyndford replied, “engage to stand by his excellency Gotter’s original offer at Vienna on your part? That is, would you agree, in consideration of the surrender to you of Lower Silesia and Breslau, to assist the Queen of Austria, with all your troops, for the maintenance of the Pragmatic Sanction, and to vote for the Grand-duke Francis as emperor?”

“Would Your Majesty,” Lord Hyndford replied, “be willing to support His Excellency Gotter's original offer in Vienna? In other words, would you agree that in exchange for the surrender of Lower Silesia and Breslau, you would assist the Queen of Austria with all your troops in upholding the Pragmatic Sanction and vote for Grand Duke Francis as emperor?”

“Yes,” was the monosyllabic reply.

"Yes," was the short reply.

“What was the sum of money your majesty then offered the Queen of Austria?” Lord Hyndford inquired.

“What amount of money did you offer the Queen of Austria, your majesty?” Lord Hyndford asked.

The king hesitated, as though he had forgotten. But his secretary answered, “Three million florins ($1,500,000).”

The king hesitated, as if he had forgotten. But his secretary replied, “Three million florins ($1,500,000).”

“I should not value the money,” the king added. “If money would content her I would give more.”

"I shouldn't care about the money," the king added. "If money would make her happy, I'd give her more."

After a long pause Lord Hyndford inquired, “Would your majesty consent to an armistice?”

After a long pause, Lord Hyndford asked, “Would Your Majesty agree to a truce?”

270 “Yes,” Frederick replied; “but for not less than six months” (counting on his fingers from May to December)—“till December 1. The season then would be so far gone that they could do nothing.”

270 “Yes,” Frederick replied; “but for at least six months” (counting on his fingers from May to December)—“until December 1. By then the season would be so far along that they couldn’t do anything.”

As the secretary, Podewils, had been taking notes, Lord Hyndford requested permission to look at them, that he might see that no mistake had been made. The king assented, and then Lord Hyndford bowed himself out. Thus ended the audience.

As the secretary, Podewils, was taking notes, Lord Hyndford asked to see them to ensure that no mistakes had been made. The king agreed, and then Lord Hyndford took his leave. The audience concluded there.

A few days after this interview, the Dutch embassador, General Ginckel, arrived with the Resolution from the English and Dutch courts, demanding that the king should evacuate Silesia. Lord Hyndford was much embarrassed, apprehending that the presentation of the summons at that time would work only mischief. He persuaded General Ginckel to delay the presentation until he could send a courier to England for instructions. In a fortnight the courier returned with the order that the Resolution was immediately to be presented to his Prussian majesty.

A few days after this meeting, the Dutch ambassador, General Ginckel, arrived with the resolution from the English and Dutch courts, insisting that the king evacuate Silesia. Lord Hyndford felt quite uncomfortable, fearing that delivering the summons at that moment would only cause trouble. He convinced General Ginckel to hold off on presenting it until he could send a courier to England for guidance. Two weeks later, the courier returned with the directive that the resolution was to be presented to his Prussian majesty immediately.

In the mean time, Frederick, who kept himself thoroughly informed of all these events, signed secretly, on the 5th of June, a treaty of intimate alliance with France. Though he had not yet received the Joint Resolution of the English and Dutch courts, he was well aware of its existence, and the next day sent to his envoy, M. Räsfeld, at the Hague, the following dispatch:

In the meantime, Frederick, who stayed completely up to date on all these events, secretly signed a close alliance treaty with France on June 5th. Although he hadn't yet received the Joint Resolution from the English and Dutch courts, he was fully aware of it, and the next day he sent the following message to his envoy, M. Räsfeld, in The Hague:

“You will beforehand inform the high mightinesses in regard to that Advice of April 24th, which they determined on giving me, through his excellency General Ginckel, along with his excellency Lord Hyndford, that such advice can be considered by me only as a blind complaisance to the court of Vienna’s improper urgencies. That for certain I will not quit Silesia till my claims be satisfied. And the longer I am forced to continue warring for them here, the higher they will rise.”

“You will inform the high authorities in advance about the advice given to me on April 24th, through his excellency General Ginckel and his excellency Lord Hyndford. That advice can only be seen as a mere compliance to the inappropriate demands from the court of Vienna. I want to make it clear that I will not leave Silesia until my claims are met. And the longer I am compelled to fight for them here, the more they will increase.”

The plan of France, as conceived and pushed resolutely forward by the Count of Belleisle, the renowned minister of Louis XV., was to divide Germany into four small kingdoms of about equal power, Bavaria, Saxony, Prussia, and Austria. The King of Bavaria, as one of the protégés of France, was to be chosen Emperor of Germany. To accomplish this, Austria was to be reduced to a second-rate power by despoiling the young queen, Maria Theresa, of large portions of her territory, and annexing271 the provinces wrested from her to the petty states of Prussia, Bavaria, and Saxony, thus sinking Austria to an equality with them. France, the grand nation, would then be indisputably the leading power in Europe. By bribery, intimidation, and inciting one kingdom against another, the court of Versailles could control the policy of the whole Continent. Magnificent as was this plan, many circumstances seemed then combining to render it feasible. The King of Prussia, inspired simply by the desire of enlarging his kingdom by making war against Austria, and striving to wrest Silesia from the realms of Maria Theresa, was co-operating, in the most effectual way possible, to further the designs of France. And it had now also become a matter of great moment to Frederick that he should secure the alliance of the court of Versailles.

The plan for France, as developed and aggressively promoted by the Count of Belleisle, the well-known minister of Louis XV, was to split Germany into four small kingdoms of roughly equal power: Bavaria, Saxony, Prussia, and Austria. The King of Bavaria, as one of France's allies, was to be selected as Emperor of Germany. To achieve this, Austria was to be weakened into a second-rate power by taking significant portions of its territory from the young queen, Maria Theresa, and adding the provinces taken from her to the smaller states of Prussia, Bavaria, and Saxony, which would level Austria with them. France, the great nation, would then clearly be the dominant power in Europe. Through bribery, intimidation, and stirring conflict among the kingdoms, the court of Versailles could control the entire continent's policies. Although this plan was grand, many factors seemed to be aligning to make it possible. The King of Prussia, motivated solely by the desire to expand his kingdom by waging war against Austria and trying to seize Silesia from Maria Theresa's rule, was effectively working to advance France's objectives. It had also become very important for Frederick to secure the alliance of the court of Versailles.

All the courts of Europe were involved in these intrigues, which led to minor complications which it would be in vain to attempt to unravel. In the secret treaty into which Frederick entered with France on the 5th of June, 1741, the Count of Belleisle engaged, in behalf of his master, Louis XV., to incite Sweden to declare war against Russia, that the semi-barbaric power of the North, just beginning to emerge into greatness, might be so occupied as not to be able to render any assistance to Austria. France also agreed to guarantee Lower Silesia, with Breslau, to Frederick, and to send two armies, of forty thousand men each, one across the Upper and the other across the Lower Rhine, to co-operate with his Prussian majesty. The forty thousand men on the Upper Rhine were to take position in the vicinity of the Electorate of Hanover, which belonged to George II. of England, prepared to act immediately in concert with the Prussian army at Götten under the “Old Dessauer,” in seizing Hanover resistlessly, should England make the slightest move toward sending troops to the aid of Maria Theresa.

All the courts of Europe were tangled up in these plots, leading to minor complications that it would be pointless to try to untangle. In the secret treaty Frederick made with France on June 5, 1741, the Count of Belleisle promised, on behalf of his master, Louis XV., to urge Sweden to declare war on Russia, so that the semi-barbaric power of the North, just starting to rise in prominence, would be too preoccupied to help Austria. France also agreed to guarantee Lower Silesia, including Breslau, to Frederick and to send two armies of forty thousand men each—one across the Upper Rhine and the other across the Lower Rhine—to support his Prussian majesty. The forty thousand men on the Upper Rhine were to position themselves near the Electorate of Hanover, which belonged to George II of England, ready to act immediately in coordination with the Prussian army at Götten under the “Old Dessauer,” to seize Hanover without resistance, should England make even the slightest move to send troops to assist Maria Theresa.

The prospects of Maria Theresa seemed now quite desperate. We know not that history records a more inglorious act than that Europe should have thus combined to take advantage of the youth and inexperience of this young queen, weeping over the grave of her father, and trembling in view of her own approaching hour of anguish, by wresting from her the inheritance which had descended to her from her ancestors. France and272 Germany, inspired by the most intense motives of selfish ambition, were to fall upon her, while the most effectual precautions were adopted to prevent Russia and England from coming to her aid.

The situation for Maria Theresa now looked pretty hopeless. There's little in history that's as shameful as how Europe banded together to exploit the youth and inexperience of this young queen, who was grieving her father's death and dreading her own coming suffering, by stealing the inheritance she had received from her forebears. France and272 Germany, driven by stark self-interest, prepared to attack her while taking strong measures to block any support from Russia and England.

FREDERICK’S INTERVIEW WITH VALORI.

In carrying forward these intrigues at the camp of Frederick, the Count of Belleisle had an associate minister in the embassy, M. De Valori. A slight incident occurred in connection with this minister which would indicate, in the view of most persons, that Frederick did not cherish a very high sense of honor. M. Valori was admitted to an audience with his Prussian majesty. During the interview, as the French minister drew his hand from his pocket, he accidentally dropped a note upon the floor. Frederick, perceiving it, slyly placed his foot upon it. As soon as the minister had bowed himself out, Frederick eagerly seized the273 note and read it. It contained some secret instructions to M. Valori from the French court, directing him not to give Glatz to his Prussian majesty if it could possibly be avoided. Frederick did not perceive any thing ignoble in this act of his, for he records it himself;56 neither does Mr. Carlyle condemn him.57 Most readers will probably regard it as highly dishonorable.

In carrying out these schemes at Frederick's camp, Count of Belleisle had a fellow minister in the embassy, M. De Valori. A minor incident involving this minister suggests to most people that Frederick didn't have a strong sense of honor. M. Valori was granted an audience with his Prussian majesty. During their meeting, as the French minister took his hand out of his pocket, he accidentally dropped a note on the floor. Frederick, noticing this, slyly placed his foot on it. Once the minister had bowed and left, Frederick quickly picked up the note and read it. It contained secret instructions from the French court telling M. Valori not to give Glatz to the Prussian majesty if it could be avoided. Frederick didn't see anything wrong with his actions, as he noted it himself; 56 nor does Mr. Carlyle criticize him.57 Most readers will likely view it as very dishonorable.

On the 8th of June the English and Dutch ministers, not yet aware of the alliance into which Frederick had entered with France, presented the joint resolution of their two courts, exhorting Frederick to withdraw his army from Silesia. Lord Hyndford, who was somewhat annoyed by the apparent impolicy of the measure just at that time, solicited and obtained a private audience with the king, hoping by apologies and explanations to make the summons a little less unpalatable to his majesty. In the brief interview which ensued Lord Hyndford appealed to the magnanimity of the king, declaring that it would be generous and noble for him to accept moderate terms from Austria. The king angrily interrupted him, saying,

On June 8th, the English and Dutch ministers, unaware of the alliance Frederick had formed with France, delivered a joint decree from their two courts, urging Frederick to pull his army out of Silesia. Lord Hyndford, a bit frustrated by what seemed like a poor decision at that moment, requested and got a private meeting with the king, hoping that with some apologies and explanations he could make the request less offensive to His Majesty. During the short conversation that followed, Lord Hyndford appealed to the king’s generosity, stating that it would be noble and magnanimous for him to accept moderate terms from Austria. The king angrily interrupted him, saying,

“My lord, do not talk to me of magnanimity. A prince ought, in the first place, to consult his interest. I am not opposed to peace. But I expect to have four duchies given me.”

“My lord, don’t talk to me about generosity. A ruler should, above all, look out for his own interests. I’m not against peace. But I expect to be given four duchies.”

Maria Theresa was much encouraged by the subsidy she had received from England. She was not yet informed of the formidable alliance into which France, with a portion of Germany, had entered for her destruction. About the 20th of June she left Vienna for Presburg, in Hungary, a drive of about fifty miles. Here, on the 25th of June, 1741, she was crowned Queen of Hungary. She was a very beautiful woman in person, devout in spirit, and those who admire manly developments in the female character must regard her as presenting the highest type of womanhood. She merits the following beautiful tribute to her worth from the pen of Carlyle:

Maria Theresa was greatly encouraged by the financial support she received from England. She was still unaware of the powerful alliance that France, along with part of Germany, had formed to bring about her downfall. Around June 20th, she left Vienna for Presburg in Hungary, which is about fifty miles away. Here, on June 25th, 1741, she was crowned Queen of Hungary. She was an incredibly beautiful woman, devoted in spirit, and those who appreciate strong qualities in women must see her as an exemplary figure of womanhood. She deserves the following beautiful tribute to her worth from the pen of Carlyle:

“As to the brave young Queen of Hungary, my admiration goes with that of all the world. Not in the language of flattery, but of evident fact, the royal qualities abound in that high274 young lady. Had they left the world, and grown to mere costume elsewhere, you might find certain of them again here. Most brave, high and pious minded; beautiful too, and radiant with good-nature, though of temper that will easily catch fire; there is, perhaps, no nobler woman then living. And she fronts the roaring elements in a truly grand, feminine manner, as if Heaven itself and the voice of Duty called her. ‘The inheritances which my fathers left me, we will not part with these. Death if it so must be, but not dishonor.’

As for the brave young Queen of Hungary, my admiration matches that of the entire world. It's not just flattery, but an obvious truth that she possesses all the royal qualities. Even if those qualities faded away elsewhere, you'd still see them in her. She is courageous, noble, and virtuous; beautiful too, radiating kindness, although her temper can flare up easily. There may be no nobler woman alive today. She faces the challenges head-on in a truly magnificent, feminine way, as if Heaven itself and the call of Duty are guiding her. ‘The legacies left to me by my ancestors will not be abandoned. If I must face death, so be it, but I will not accept dishonor.’

“This, for the present, is her method of looking at the matter; this magnanimous, heroic, and occasionally somewhat female one. Her husband, the grand-duke, an inert but good-tempered, well-conditioned duke, after his sort, goes with her. Now, as always, he follows loyally his wife’s lead, never she his. Wife being intrinsically as well as extrinsically the better man, what other can he do?”

“This, for now, is how she sees things; this generous, brave, and sometimes a bit feminine approach. Her husband, the grand-duke, who is calm but easygoing and well-adjusted in his own way, goes along with her. Just like always, he loyal supports his wife's decisions, never the other way around. Since she is inherently and visibly the stronger person, what else can he do?”

The ceremony of coronation was attended, near Presburg, on the 25th of June, with much semi-barbaric splendor, as the Iron Crown58 of St. Stephen was placed upon the pale, beautiful brow of the young wife and mother. All the renowned chivalry of Hungary were assembled upon that field. They came in gorgeous costume, with embroidered banners, and accompanied by imposing retinues. At the close of the ceremonies, the queen, who was distinguished as a bold rider, mounted a swift charger, and, followed by a long retinue of Magyar warriors, galloped to the top of a small eminence artificially constructed for the occasion, called the Königsburg, or King’s Hill, where she drew her sword, and, flourishing it toward the four quarters of the heavens, bade defiance to any adversary who should venture to question her claims. The knightly warriors who crowded the plain flashed their swords in the sunlight, as with one accord, with chivalric devotion, they vowed fidelity to their queen.

The coronation ceremony took place near Presburg on June 25th, with a lot of semi-barbaric splendor, as the Iron Crown of St. Stephen was placed on the pale, beautiful head of the young wife and mother. All the famous knights of Hungary gathered in that field. They came in elaborate costumes, with embroidered banners, and accompanied by impressive entourages. At the end of the ceremonies, the queen, known for being a skilled rider, mounted a fast horse and, followed by a long line of Magyar warriors, raced to the top of a small hill specially built for the occasion, called the Königsburg, or King’s Hill, where she drew her sword and, waving it towards the four corners of the sky, challenged any opponent who dared to question her claims. The knightly warriors crowding the plain flashed their swords in the sunlight as they unitedly vowed loyalty to their queen.


275

275

CHAPTER XVI.
THE CONQUEST OF SILESIA.

An extraordinary Interview.—Carlyle’s Sympathy.—Trifling Demeanor of Frederick.—Conspiracy in Breslau.—Guile of Frederick.—The successful Stratagem.—Crossing the Neisse.—The Co-operation of France.—Anguish of Maria Theresa.—Inflexible Will of Frederick.—Duplicity of the King.—The Surrender of Neisse.

An amazing interview.—Carlyle's understanding.—Frederick's laid-back approach.—Conspiracy in Breslau.—Frederick's cleverness.—The smart plan that succeeded.—Crossing the Neisse.—France's role.—Maria Theresa's anguish.—Frederick's relentless resolve.—The King's trickery.—The surrender of Neisse.

Gradually the secret treaty which allied France, Bavaria, and Prussia, and it was not known how many other minor powers, against Austria, came to light. Two French armies of fifty thousand men each were on the march to act in co-operation with Frederick. England, trembling from fear of the loss of Hanover, dared not move. The Aulic Council at Vienna, in a panic, “fell back into their chairs like dead men.” The ruin of Maria Theresa and the fatal dismemberment of Austria seemed inevitable.

Gradually the secret treaty that aligned France, Bavaria, and Prussia, along with an unknown number of other smaller powers, against Austria, was revealed. Two French armies of fifty thousand troops each were heading out to support Frederick. England, scared of losing Hanover, didn't dare to act. The Aulic Council in Vienna, in a state of panic, “slumped back into their chairs like lifeless figures.” The downfall of Maria Theresa and the devastating breakup of Austria seemed unavoidable.

Under these circumstances, the young queen, urged by her council and by the English court, very reluctantly consented to propose terms of compromise to Frederick. Sir Thomas Robinson, subsequently Earl of Grantham, was sent from Vienna to Breslau to confer with the British minister there, Lord Hyndford, and with him to visit Frederick, at his camp at Strehlen, in the attempt to adjust the difficulties. The curious interview which ensued has been minutely described by Sir Thomas Robinson. It took place under the royal canvas tent of his Prussian majesty at 11 o’clock A.M. of the 7th of August, 1741.

Under these circumstances, the young queen, pressured by her council and the English court, reluctantly agreed to propose terms of compromise to Frederick. Sir Thomas Robinson, who later became the Earl of Grantham, was sent from Vienna to Breslau to meet with the British minister there, Lord Hyndford, and together they visited Frederick at his camp in Strehlen, trying to resolve the issues. The interesting meeting that followed has been detailed by Sir Thomas Robinson. It took place under the royal canvas tent of his Prussian majesty at 11 A.M. on August 7, 1741.

The two English gentlemen, stout, burly, florid men, were dressed in the gorgeous court costume of those days. Each wore a large, frizzled, powdered wig. Their shirts were heavily ruffled in the bosoms and at the wrists. Their coats, of antique cut, were covered with embroidery of gold lace. Their waistcoats hung down in deep flaps, and large buckles adorned their shoes.

The two English gentlemen, thick-set and cheerful-looking, were dressed in the splendid court attire of their time. Each wore a big, frizzy, powdered wig. Their shirts had elaborate ruffles at the neck and wrists. Their coats, styled from a bygone era, were embellished with gold lace embroidery. Their waistcoats had long flaps, and their shoes were decorated with large buckles.

Frederick was a trig, slender young man of twenty-nine years. He was dressed in a closely-fitting blue coat, with buff breeches and high cavalry boots. He wore a plumed hat, which he courteously raised as the embassadors entered his tent. The scene276 which ensued was substantially as follows, omitting those passages which were of no permanent interest. After sundry preliminary remarks, Sir Thomas Robinson said,

Frederick was a smart, slim young man of twenty-nine. He wore a fitted blue coat, buff breeches, and high cavalry boots. He had a plumed hat that he politely lifted as the ambassadors entered his tent. The scene276 that followed was mostly like this, leaving out parts that weren't of lasting interest. After some introductory comments, Sir Thomas Robinson said,

“I am authorized to offer your majesty two million guilders [$1,000,000] if your majesty will consent to relinquish this enterprise and retire from Silesia.”

“I have the authority to offer your majesty two million guilders [$1,000,000] if your majesty agrees to give up this venture and withdraw from Silesia.”

FREDERICK AND THE BRITISH MINISTERS.

“Retire from Silesia!” exclaimed the king, vehemently. “And277 for money? Do you take me for a beggar? Retire from Silesia, in the conquest of which I have expended so much blood and treasure! No, sir, no. That is not to be thought of. If you have no better proposals to suggest, it is not worth while talking.”

“Get out of Silesia!” the king shouted passionately. “And for money? Do you think I’m a beggar? Leave Silesia, where I’ve poured so much blood and treasure into winning it! No way, sir, no. That’s not even an option. If you don’t have better suggestions to make, then this conversation isn’t worth having.”

Sir Thomas, somewhat discomposed, apologetically intimated that that was not all he had to offer.

Sir Thomas, feeling a bit unsettled, apologetically hinted that he had more to offer.

“Very well,” said the king, impatiently; “let us see, then, what there is more.”

"Alright," the king said, impatiently. "Let's see what else there is."

“I am permitted,” the embassador said, “to offer your majesty the whole of Austrian Guelderland. It lies contiguous to your majesty’s possessions in the Rhine country. It will be a very important addition to those possessions. I am permitted to say the whole of Austrian Guelderland.”

“I have the authorization,” the ambassador said, “to offer your majesty all of Austrian Guelderland. It borders your majesty’s lands in the Rhine region. It will be a significant addition to those lands. I am authorized to say all of Austrian Guelderland.”

“What do you mean?” exclaimed the king, with an air of real or affected surprise. Then, turning to his secretary, M. Podewils, he inquired, “How much of Guelderland is theirs, and not ours already?”

“What do you mean?” exclaimed the king, sounding genuinely or pretendedly surprised. Then, turning to his secretary, M. Podewils, he asked, “How much of Guelderland do they own, and how much is still ours?”

“Almost none,” M. Podewils replied.

“Almost none,” M. Podewils said.

Here the king quite lost his temper. In a loud tone and with angry gesticulation he exclaimed, “Do you offer me such rags and rubbish, such paltry scrapings, for all my just claims in Silesia?” And so he ran on for quite a length of time, with ever-increasing violence, fanning himself into a flame of indignation.

Here the king completely lost his temper. In a loud voice and with angry gestures, he shouted, “Are you really giving me such rags and garbage, such worthless scraps, for all my rightful claims in Silesia?” And he kept going on like this for quite a while, growing more and more furious, stirring himself into a rage of indignation.

“His contempt,” writes Sir Thomas in his narrative, “was so great, and was expressed in such violent terms, that now, if ever, was the time to make the last effort. A moment longer was not to be lost, to hinder the king from dismissing us.”

“His contempt,” writes Sir Thomas in his narrative, “was so intense, and was expressed in such strong terms, that now, if ever, was the time to make one last effort. We couldn’t afford to waste another moment to prevent the king from dismissing us.”

“I am also permitted, sire,” said Sir Thomas, “to add the Duchy of Limburg. It is a duchy of great wealth and resources, so valuable that the Elector Palatine was willing to give in exchange for it the whole Duchy of Berg.”

“I’m also allowed, sir,” Sir Thomas said, “to include the Duchy of Limburg. It’s a duchy with immense wealth and resources, so valuable that the Elector Palatine was ready to trade the entire Duchy of Berg for it.”

“It is inconceivable to me,” Frederick replied, “how Austria should dare to think of such a proposal. Limburg! Are there not solemn engagements upon Austria which render every inch of ground in the Netherlands inalienable?”

“It’s unimaginable to me,” Frederick replied, “how Austria could even consider such a proposal. Limburg! Aren’t there serious commitments on Austria that make every piece of land in the Netherlands untouchable?”

“These engagements,” said Sir Thomas, “are good as against the French, your majesty. But the Barrier treaty, confirmed at Utrecht, was for our benefit and that of Holland.”

“These engagements,” Sir Thomas said, “are good for countering the French, your majesty. But the Barrier treaty, confirmed at Utrecht, was for our benefit and that of Holland.”

278 “That is your interpretation,” said Frederick. “But the French assert that it was an arrangement made in their favor.”

278 “That’s your take,” said Frederick. “But the French claim it was an agreement that benefited them.”

“Your majesty,” Sir Thomas rejoined, “by a little engineering art, could render Limburg impregnable to the French or any others.”

“Your majesty,” Sir Thomas replied, “with some clever engineering, you could make Limburg impossible to conquer by the French or anyone else.”

“I have not the least desire,” the king replied, “to aggrandize myself in those parts, or to spend money in fortifying there. It would be useless to me. Am I not fortifying Brieg and Glogau? These are enough for one who wishes to live well with his neighbors. Neither the Dutch nor the French have offended me, nor will I offend them by acquisitions in the Netherlands. Besides, who would guarantee them?”

“I have no desire,” the king replied, “to build up my power in those areas, or to spend money on fortifying them. It would be pointless for me. Am I not strengthening Brieg and Glogau? That’s enough for someone who wants to get along well with their neighbors. Neither the Dutch nor the French have wronged me, and I won’t wrong them by taking land in the Netherlands. Besides, who would assure that?”

“The proposal,” Sir Thomas replied, “is to give guarantees at once.”

"The proposal," Sir Thomas replied, "is to provide guarantees right away."

“Guarantees!” exclaimed the king, scornfully. “Who minds or keeps guarantees in this age? Has not France guaranteed the Pragmatic Sanction? Has not England? Why do you not all fly to the queen’s succor?”

“Guarantees!” the king scoffed. “Who cares about guarantees in this day and age? Hasn’t France guaranteed the Pragmatic Sanction? Hasn’t England? Why doesn’t everyone rush to help the queen?”

Sir Thomas, who was not aware of the engagement into which the allies had entered to keep Russia busy by a war with Sweden, intimated that there were powers which might yet come to the rescue of the queen, and mentioned Russia as one.

Sir Thomas, who didn't know about the agreement the allies had made to keep Russia occupied by starting a war with Sweden, suggested that there were countries that might still come to the queen's aid, mentioning Russia as one of them.

The king, with a very complaisant smile, said, “Russia, my good sir—It is not proper for me to explain myself, but I have means to keep the Russians employed.”

The king, with a very pleasant smile, said, “Russia, my good sir—It's not right for me to elaborate, but I have ways to keep the Russians busy.”

“Russia,” added Sir Thomas, with some stateliness of utterance, “is not the only power which has engagements with Austria, and which must keep them too; so that, however averse to a breach—”

“Russia,” added Sir Thomas, with a bit of formality, “is not the only country that has commitments with Austria, and it must honor them as well; so that, no matter how reluctant to cause a conflict—”

Here the king interrupted him, and with scornful gesture, “laying his finger on his nose,” and in loud tones, exclaimed,

Here the king interrupted him, and with a disdainful gesture, “pointing at his nose,” he shouted,

“No threats, sir, if you please, no threats.”

“No threats, sir, please, no threats.”

Lord Hyndford here came to the rescue of his colleague, and said, meekly,

Lord Hyndford stepped in to help his colleague and said, softly,

“I am sure his excellency had no such meaning, sire. His excellency will advance nothing so very contrary to his instructions.”

“I’m sure his excellency didn’t mean that, sire. He wouldn’t say anything so completely against his orders.”

Sir Thomas Robinson added, “Sire, I am not talking of what this power or that means to do, but of what will come of itself.279 To prophesy is not to threaten, sire. It is my zeal for the public good which brought me here, and—”

Sir Thomas Robinson added, “Your Majesty, I’m not discussing what this power or that intends to do, but rather what will happen on its own.279 To predict isn’t to make a threat, Your Majesty. It is my passion for the public good that brought me here, and—”

Again the king interrupted him, saying, “The public will be much obliged to you, sir! But hear me. With respect to Russia, you know how matters stand. From the King of Poland I have nothing to fear. As for the King of England, he is my relation. If he do not attack me, I shall not him. If he do attack me, the Prince of Anhalt, with my army at Götten, will take care of him.”

Again the king interrupted him, saying, “The public will be very grateful to you, sir! But listen to me. Regarding Russia, you know how things are. I have nothing to worry about with the King of Poland. As for the King of England, he is my relative. If he doesn’t attack me, I won’t attack him. If he does attack me, the Prince of Anhalt, along with my army at Götten, will handle him.”

“It is the common rumor now,” Sir Thomas replied, “that your majesty, after the 12th of August, will join the French. Sire, I venture to hope not. Austria prefers your friendship; but if your majesty disdain Austria’s advances, what is it to do? Austria must throw itself entirely into the hands of France, and endeavor to outbid your majesty.”

“It’s the popular chatter now,” Sir Thomas replied, “that after August 12th, you will team up with the French. Sire, I really hope that's not the case. Austria values your friendship; but if you disregard Austria’s overtures, what can it do? Austria will have to completely align itself with France and try to offer you a better deal.”

This was a very serious suggestion. None of these sovereigns professed to be influenced by any other considerations than their own interests. And it was manifest that Austria could easily outbid Prussia, if determined to purchase the French alliance. For a moment the king was silent, apparently somewhat perplexed. He then said,

This was a very serious suggestion. None of these rulers claimed to be swayed by anything other than their own interests. It was clear that Austria could easily offer more than Prussia if it decided to secure the French alliance. For a moment, the king was silent, seemingly a bit confused. He then said,

“I am at the head of an army which has already vanquished the enemy, and which is ready to meet the enemy again. The country which alone I desire is already conquered and securely held. This is all I want. I now have it. I will and must keep it. Shall I be bought out of this country? Never! I will sooner perish in it with all my troops. With what face shall I meet my ancestors if I abandon my right which they have transmitted to me? My first enterprise, and to be given up lightly?

“I lead an army that has already defeated the enemy and is prepared to do so again. The country I want is already conquered and firmly in our hands. That's all I want. I have it now. I will and must keep it. Am I to be driven out of this country? Never! I would rather die here with all my troops. How could I face my ancestors if I give up the right they passed down to me? My first mission, just to give it up easily?”

“Have I need of peace? Let those who need it give me what I want, or let them fight me again and be beaten again. Have they not given whole kingdoms to Spain? And to me they can not spare a few trifling principalities. If the queen do not now grant me all I require, I shall, in four weeks, demand four principalities more. I now demand the whole of Lower Silesia, Breslau included. With that answer you can return to Vienna.”

“Do I need peace? Let those who need it give me what I want, or let them fight me again and lose again. Haven't they given entire kingdoms to Spain? And they can't spare a few insignificant principalities for me. If the queen doesn’t grant me everything I need now, I’ll ask for four more principalities in four weeks. Right now, I demand all of Lower Silesia, including Breslau. You can take that answer back to Vienna.”

“With that answer!” Sir Thomas replied, in tones of surprise. “Is your majesty serious? Is that your majesty’s deliberate answer?”

“Really?” Sir Thomas responded, sounding surprised. “Are you serious, Your Majesty? Is that really your answer?”

280 “Yes, I say,” the king rejoined. “That is my answer, and I will never give any other.”

280 “Yes, I say,” the king replied. “That’s my answer, and I will never give a different one.”

Both of the English ministers, in much agitation, spoke together. The king, impatiently interrupting them, said,

Both English ministers, quite agitated, spoke at the same time. The king, interrupting them impatiently, said,

“Gentlemen, gentlemen, it is of no use to think about it.”

“Guys, guys, there's no point in thinking about it.”

Taking off his hat, he slightly saluted them, and retired behind the curtain into the interior tent.

Taking off his hat, he gave them a slight nod and stepped behind the curtain into the inner tent.

A brief account of this interview has been given by Frederick,59 and also a very minute narrative by Sir Thomas Robinson, in his official report to his government. There is no essential discrepancy between the two statements. Frederick alludes rather contemptuously to the pompous airs of Sir Thomas, saying that “he negotiated in a wordy, high, droning way, as if he were speaking in Parliament.” Mr. Carlyle seems to be entirely in sympathy with Frederick in his invasion of Silesia. The reader will peruse with interest his graphic, characteristic comments upon this interview:

A brief account of this interview has been given by Frederick,59 and also a very detailed narrative by Sir Thomas Robinson in his official report to his government. There is no significant difference between the two statements. Frederick refers somewhat disdainfully to Sir Thomas's pompous demeanor, saying that "he negotiated in a long-winded, grandstanding way, as if he were speaking in Parliament." Mr. Carlyle appears to completely agree with Frederick regarding his invasion of Silesia. Readers will find his vivid, distinctive comments about this interview quite interesting:

“The unsuccessfulest negotiation well imaginable by a public man. Strehlen, Monday, 7th August, 1741—Frederick has vanished into the interior of his tent, and the two diplomatic gentlemen, the wind struck out of them in this manner, remain gazing at one another. Here, truly, is a young, royal gentleman that knows his own mind, while so many do not. Unspeakable imbroglio of negotiations, mostly insane, welters over all the earth; the Belleisles, the Aulic Councils, the British Georges, heaping coil upon coil; and here, notably in that now so extremely sordid murk of wiggeries, inane diplomacies, and solemn deliriums, dark now and obsolete to all creatures, steps forth one little human figure, with something of sanity in it, like a star, like a gleam of steel, sheering asunder your big balloons, and letting out their diplomatic hydrogen. Salutes with his hat, ‘Gentlemen, gentlemen, it is of no use!’ and vanishes into the interior of his tent.”

“The most unsuccessful negotiation imaginable by a public figure. Strehlen, Monday, August 7, 1741—Frederick has retreated into his tent, and the two diplomats, completely taken aback, stare at each other. Here is a young royal who knows what he wants, unlike so many others. An unspeakable mess of negotiations, mostly crazy, unfolds across the globe; the Belleisles, the Aulic Councils, the British Georges, piling confusion upon confusion; and here, especially in that now extremely grim situation of absurd politics, meaningless diplomacy, and serious delusions, dark and outdated for everyone, emerges one small human figure, radiating a hint of sanity, like a star, like a flash of steel, cutting through your large balloons and releasing their diplomatic hydrogen. He tips his hat and says, ‘Gentlemen, gentlemen, it's pointless!’ before disappearing into his tent.”

The next day the two British ministers dined with Frederick. The king was in reality, or assumed to be, in exultant spirits. He joked and bantered his guests even upon those great issues which were threatening to deluge Europe in blood. As they took leave, intending to return to Vienna through Neisse, which281 was held by the Austrian army, the king said to Sir Thomas Robinson, derisively,

The next day, the two British ministers had dinner with Frederick. The king was genuinely, or pretended to be, in high spirits. He joked and teased his guests even about the major issues that were about to flood Europe with blood. As they were leaving, planning to head back to Vienna via Neisse, which281 was occupied by the Austrian army, the king said to Sir Thomas Robinson, mockingly,

“As you pass through Neisse, please present my compliments to Marshal Neipperg; and you can say, your excellency, that I hope to have the pleasure of calling upon him one of these days.”

“As you go through Neisse, please give my regards to Marshal Neipperg; and you can tell him, your excellency, that I look forward to the pleasure of visiting him one of these days.”

It seemed to be the policy of Frederick to assume a very trifling, care-for-nothing air, as though he were engaged in very harmless child’s play. He threw out jokes, and wrote ludicrous letters to M. Jordan and M. Algarotti. But behind this exterior disguise it is manifest that all the energies of his soul were aroused, and that, with sleepless vigilance, he was watching every event, and providing for every possible emergence.

Frederick seemed to adopt a casual, carefree attitude, as if he was just playing around without a care in the world. He made jokes and wrote silly letters to M. Jordan and M. Algarotti. But underneath this playful façade, it was clear that all his energy was focused, and he was watching every event with keen attention, preparing for any situation that might arise.

It will be remembered that Breslau, whose inhabitants were mainly Protestant, and which was one of the so-called free cities of Germany, was surrendered to Frederick under peculiar conditions. It was to remain, in its internal government, in all respects exactly as it had been, with the simple exception that it was to recognize the sovereignty of Prussia instead of that of Austria. Its strict neutrality was to be respected. It was to be protected by its own garrison. No Prussian soldier could enter with any weapons but side-arms. The king himself, in entering the city, could be accompanied only by thirty guards.

It’s important to note that Breslau, primarily a Protestant city and one of the so-called free cities of Germany, was handed over to Frederick under specific conditions. It was to keep its internal government exactly as it was, except that it would acknowledge Prussia's sovereignty instead of Austria's. Its strict neutrality was to be maintained, and it would be protected by its own troops. No Prussian soldier could enter with anything other than side-arms. The king himself could only enter the city with thirty guards.

When under the sovereignty of Austria, though the Protestants were not persecuted, very decided favor was shown to the Catholics. But the influence of Protestant Prussia was to place both parties on a perfect equality. This greatly annoyed the Catholics. Certain Catholic ladies of rank, with a few leading citizens, entered into a secret society, and kept the court of Vienna informed of every thing which transpired in Breslau. They also entered into intimate communication with General Neipperg, entreating him to come to their rescue. They assured him that if he would suddenly appear before their gates with his army, or with a strong detachment, the conspiring Catholics would open the gates, and he could rush in and take possession of the city.

When Austria was in charge, the Protestants weren’t persecuted, but there was clear favoritism towards the Catholics. However, the influence of Protestant Prussia aimed to put both groups on equal footing, which really upset the Catholics. A group of high-ranking Catholic women, along with some prominent citizens, formed a secret society and kept the court in Vienna updated on everything happening in Breslau. They also made close contact with General Neipperg, pleading with him to come to their aid. They promised him that if he suddenly showed up at their gates with his army or a strong detachment, the conspiring Catholics would open the gates, allowing him to rush in and seize the city.

But the ever-vigilant Frederick had smuggled a “false sister” into the society of the Catholic ladies, who kept him informed of every measure that was proposed. At the very hour when Frederick was dining with the two English ministers, and making282 himself so merry with jests and banter, he was aware that General Neipperg, with the whole Austrian army, was crossing the River Neisse, on the march, by a route thirty miles west of his encampment, to take Breslau by surprise. But he had already adopted effectual measures to thwart their plans.

But the ever-watchful Frederick had sneaked a “false sister” into the circle of Catholic ladies, who kept him updated on every proposal. At the exact moment Frederick was having dinner with the two English ministers and enjoying himself with jokes and banter, he knew that General Neipperg, along with the entire Austrian army, was crossing the River Neisse, marching by a route thirty miles west of his camp, to catch Breslau off guard. However, he had already taken effective steps to counter their plans.

On the 10th of August there was a magnificent review of the Prussian army on the plain of Strehlin, to which all the foreign embassadors were invited. During the night of the 9th, General Schwerin and Prince Leopold, with eight thousand Prussian troops, horse and foot, arrived in the southwestern suburbs of Breslau, and, at six o’clock in the morning, demanded simply a passage through the city for their regiments and baggage, on the march to attack a marauding band of the Austrians on the other side of the Oder.

On August 10th, there was an impressive review of the Prussian army on the Strehlin plain, which all the foreign ambassadors were invited to attend. During the night of the 9th, General Schwerin and Prince Leopold, with eight thousand Prussian troops, both cavalry and infantry, arrived in the southwestern suburbs of Breslau. At six in the morning, they requested a straightforward passage through the city for their regiments and supplies as they advanced to confront a group of marauding Austrians on the other side of the Oder.

The rule, in such cases, was that a certain number of companies were to be admitted at a time. The gate was then to be closed until they had marched through the city and out at the opposite gate. After this another detachment was to be admitted, and so on, until all had passed through. But General Schwerin so contrived it, by stratagem, as to crowd in a whole regiment at once. Instead of marching through Breslau, to the surprise of the inhabitants, he directed his steps to the market-place, where he encamped and took possession of the city, admitting the remainder of his regiments. In an hour and a half the whole thing was done, and the streets were strongly garrisoned by Prussian troops. The majority of the inhabitants, being Protestant, were well pleased, and received the achievement with laughter. Many cheers resounded through the streets, with shouts of “Frederick and Silesia forever.” All the foreign ministers in Breslau, and the magistrates of the city, had been lured to Strehlin to witness the grand review.

The rule in these situations was that a certain number of companies would be allowed in at a time. The gate would then close until they marched through the city and exited at the opposite gate. After that, another group would be let in, and so on, until everyone had passed through. However, General Schwerin cleverly managed to squeeze an entire regiment in at once. Instead of marching through Breslau, to the surprise of the residents, he headed directly to the market square, where he set up camp and took control of the city, allowing the rest of his regiments to enter. In just an hour and a half, it was all done, and the streets were heavily garrisoned with Prussian troops. Most of the residents, being Protestant, were quite happy and greeted the event with laughter. Cheers echoed through the streets, with shouts of “Frederick and Silesia forever.” All the foreign ministers in Breslau, as well as the city officials, had been lured to Strehlin to see the grand review.

Frederick had caused signal cannon to be placed at suitable points between Breslau and Strehlin, which, by transmitting reports, should give him as early intelligence as possible of the success of the enterprise. About noon, in the midst of the grand manœuvrings on the parade-ground, one distant cannon-shot was heard, to the great satisfaction of Frederick, who alone understood its significance.

Frederick had arranged for signal cannons to be set up at key locations between Breslau and Strehlin, which would send reports to give him the earliest possible updates on how the mission was going. Around noon, right in the middle of the big maneuvers on the parade ground, a single distant cannon shot rang out, much to Frederick's delight, as he was the only one who understood what it meant.

General Neipperg had advanced as far as Baumgarten when283 he heard of this entire circumvention of his plans. Exasperated by the discomfiture, he pushed boldly forward to seize Schweidnitz, where Frederick had a large magazine, which was supposed not to be very strongly protected. But the vigilant Frederick here again thwarted the Austrian general. Either anticipating the movement, or receiving immediate information of it, he had thrown out some strong columns to Reichenbach, where they so effectually intrenched themselves as to bar, beyond all hope of passage, the road to Schweidnitz. General Neipperg had advanced but half a day’s march from Baumgarten when he heard of this. He ordered a halt, and retraced his steps as far as Frankenstein, where he had a very strongly intrenched camp.

General Neipperg had advanced as far as Baumgarten when283 he learned about the complete disruption of his plans. Frustrated by this setback, he pushed ahead to capture Schweidnitz, where Frederick had a large supply depot that was thought to be poorly defended. However, the alert Frederick once again outmaneuvered the Austrian general. Either anticipating the move or getting immediate intel, he deployed strong forces to Reichenbach, where they effectively fortified themselves, blocking any chance of access to Schweidnitz. General Neipperg had only covered half a day’s march from Baumgarten when he got this news. He ordered a stop and turned back to Frankenstein, where he had a well-fortified camp.

Frederick soon followed the Austrians with his whole army, hoping to bring them to a decisive battle. But General Neipperg was conscious that he was unable to cope with the Prussian army in the open field. For a week there was manœuvring and counter-manœuvring with great skill on both sides, General Neipperg baffling all the endeavors of Frederick to bring him to a general action.

Frederick quickly pursued the Austrians with his entire army, aiming to engage them in a decisive battle. However, General Neipperg realized he couldn't match the Prussian army in open combat. For a week, both sides maneuvered skillfully against each other, with General Neipperg thwarting all of Frederick's attempts to force a general engagement.

At length Frederick, weary of these unavailing efforts, dashed off in rapid march toward the River Neisse, and with his vanguard, on the 11th of September, crossed the river at the little town of Woitz, a few miles above the city. The river was speedily spanned with his pontoon bridges. As the whole army hurried forward to effect the passage, Frederick, to his surprise, found the Austrian army directly before him, occupying a position from which it could not be forced, and where it could not be turned. For two days Frederick very earnestly surveyed the region, and then, recrossing the river and gathering in his pontoons, passed rapidly down the stream on the left or northern bank, and, after a brief encampment of a few days, crossed the river fifteen miles below the city. He then threw his army into the rear of Neipperg’s, so as to cut off his communications and his daily convoys of food. He thus got possession again of Oppeln, of the strong castle of Friedland, and of the country generally between the Oder and the Neisse rivers.

Eventually, Frederick, tired of these ineffective attempts, quickly marched towards the River Neisse and, with his vanguard, crossed the river at the small town of Woitz on September 11, just a few miles upstream from the city. He quickly set up pontoon bridges across the river. As the entire army rushed to cross, Frederick was surprised to find the Austrian army directly in front of him, holding a position that couldn’t be forced or outmaneuvered. For two days, Frederick thoroughly examined the area, and then, after recrossing the river and gathering his pontoons, he swiftly moved downstream along the left or northern bank. After a brief camp lasting a few days, he crossed the river fifteen miles below the city. He then positioned his army behind Neipperg’s forces to cut off their supplies and daily food convoys. In doing so, he regained control of Oppeln, the strong castle of Friedland, and the surrounding area between the Oder and Neisse rivers.

General Neipperg cautiously advanced toward him, and encamped in the vicinity of Steinau—the same Steinau which but a few weeks before had been laid in ashes as the Prussian troops284 passed through it. The two armies were now separated from each other but by an interval of about five miles. The country was flat, and it was not probable that the contest which Frederick so eagerly sought could long be avoided.

General Neipperg carefully moved closer to him and set up camp near Steinau—the same Steinau that had recently been burned to the ground by the Prussian troops as they passed through. The two armies were now about five miles apart. The land was flat, and it was unlikely that the battle Frederick was so eager for could be postponed for much longer.

Affairs were now assuming throughout Europe a very threatening aspect. The two French armies, of forty thousand each, had already crossed the Rhine to join their German allies in the war against Austria. One of these armies, to be commanded by Belleisle, had crossed the river about thirty miles below Strasbourg to unite with the Elector of Bavaria’s troops and march upon Vienna. The other army, under Maillebois, had crossed the Lower Rhine a few miles below Düsseldorf. Its mission was, as we have mentioned, to encamp upon the frontiers of Hanover, prepared to invade that province, in co-operation with the Prussian troops in the camp at Göttin, should the King of England venture to raise a hand in behalf of Austria. It was also in position to attack and overwhelm Holland, England’s only ally, should that power manifest the slightest opposition to the designs of Prussia and France. At the same time, Sweden, on the 4th of August, had declared war against Russia, so that no help could come to Austria from that quarter. Great diplomatic ability had been displayed in guarding every point in these complicated measures. The French minister, Belleisle, was probably the prominent agent in these wide-spread combinations.60

Affairs in Europe were becoming very concerning. The two French armies, each with forty thousand troops, had already crossed the Rhine to team up with their German allies in the fight against Austria. One of these armies, led by Belleisle, had crossed the river about thirty miles south of Strasbourg to join forces with the Elector of Bavaria’s soldiers and march towards Vienna. The other army, under Maillebois, had crossed the Lower Rhine a few miles south of Düsseldorf. Its mission was, as we mentioned, to camp on the borders of Hanover, ready to invade that province alongside the Prussian troops stationed at Göttin, if the King of England dared to intervene on Austria's behalf. It was also positioned to attack and overpower Holland, England’s only ally, if that country showed even the slightest resistance to Prussia and France's plans. At the same time, Sweden declared war on Russia on August 4th, meaning that Austria wouldn't receive any assistance from that direction. Great diplomatic skill had been shown in addressing every aspect of these intricate strategies. The French minister, Belleisle, was likely the key player in these widespread efforts.60

The queen, Maria Theresa, still remained at Presburg, in her Hungarian kingdom. The Aulic Council was with her. On the 15th of August Sir Thomas Robinson had returned to Presburg with the intelligence of his unsuccessful mission, and of the unrelenting determination of Frederick to prosecute the war with the utmost vigor unless Silesia were surrendered to him.

The queen, Maria Theresa, was still in Presburg, in her Hungarian kingdom. The Aulic Council was with her. On August 15th, Sir Thomas Robinson came back to Presburg with news of his unsuccessful mission and Frederick's unwavering decision to continue the war fiercely unless Silesia was handed over to him.

These tidings struck the Austrian council with consternation. The French armies were declared to be the finest that had ever taken the field. The Prussian army, in stolid bravery and perfection285 of discipline, had never been surpassed. Germany was to be cut into four equal parts, and France was to be the sovereign power on the Continent.

These news hit the Austrian council with shock. The French armies were said to be the best that had ever been assembled. The Prussian army, known for its unwavering bravery and top-notch discipline, had never been equaled. Germany was set to be divided into four equal parts, with France becoming the dominant power in Europe.

In this terrible emergence, the queen, resolute as she was, was almost compelled, by the importunity of her counselors, to permit Sir Thomas Robinson, who was acting for England far more than for Austria, to go back to Frederick with the offer so humiliating to her, that she would surrender to him one half of Silesia if he would withdraw his armies and enter into an alliance with her against the French. The high-spirited queen wrung her hands in anguish as she assented to this decision, exclaiming passionately,

In this awful situation, the queen, as determined as she was, was nearly forced, by the persistence of her advisors, to allow Sir Thomas Robinson, who was actually representing England more than Austria, to return to Frederick with an offer so humiliating for her that she would give up half of Silesia if he would pull back his armies and join her in an alliance against the French. The proud queen clasped her hands in distress as she agreed to this decision, exclaiming passionately,

“If these terms are not accepted within a fortnight, I will not be bound by them.”

"If these terms aren't accepted within two weeks, I won't be obligated to them."

Sir Thomas hastened back to Breslau, and anxiously entered into communication with Lord Hyndford. The British minister entreated the king to admit Sir Thomas to another interview, assuring him that he came with new and more liberal propositions for a compromise. The king replied, in substance, with his customary brusqueness,

Sir Thomas rushed back to Breslau and eagerly connected with Lord Hyndford. The British minister urged the king to allow Sir Thomas another meeting, assuring him that he had new and more flexible proposals for a compromise. The king responded, basically, with his usual bluntness,

“I will not see him. I wish to listen to no more of his offers. The sooner he takes himself away the better.”

“I don’t want to see him. I don’t want to hear any more of his offers. The sooner he leaves, the better.”

Sir Thomas, deeply chagrined, hastened back to Presburg. Acting in behalf of the English cabinet, he trembled in view of the preponderance of the French court and of the loss of Hanover. With the most impassioned earnestness he entreated the queen to yield to the demands of Frederick, and thus secure his alliance.

Sir Thomas, feeling very upset, rushed back to Presburg. Representing the English cabinet, he was worried about the power of the French court and the potential loss of Hanover. With heartfelt urgency, he pleaded with the queen to agree to Frederick's demands to secure his alliance.

“High madam,” he said, fervently, “at this crisis, alliance with Frederick is salvation to Austria. His continued hostility is utter ruin. England can not help your majesty. The slightest endeavor would cause the loss of Hanover.”

“High lady,” he said passionately, “right now, teaming up with Frederick is the only way Austria can be saved. His ongoing hostility leads to complete disaster. England can’t support your majesty. Even the smallest attempt would result in the loss of Hanover.”

Thus pressed by England, and with equal earnestness by her own Aulic Council, the queen again yielded, though almost frantic with grief, and consented to surrender the whole of Lower Silesia to Frederick if he would become her ally. As Frederick had offered these terms, it was supposed, of course, that he would accept them. Sir Thomas was again dispatched, at the top of his speed, to convey them to the camp of Frederick. But the286 repulse of the king was peremptory and decisive. To Lord Hyndford, soliciting an audience for the envoy, he replied,

Thus pressured by England, and just as urgently by her own Aulic Council, the queen reluctantly agreed, nearly distraught with grief, to hand over all of Lower Silesia to Frederick if he would become her ally. Since Frederick had proposed these terms, it was assumed that he would accept them. Sir Thomas was dispatched again, as fast as possible, to deliver them to Frederick's camp. However, the king's rejection was firm and final. To Lord Hyndford, who was seeking a meeting for the envoy, he replied,

“I will not see him. There was a time when I would have listened to a compromise. That time has passed. I have now entered into arrangements with France. Talk to me no more.”

"I won't see him. There was a time when I would have considered a compromise. That time is over. I've now made agreements with France. Don't talk to me anymore."

Sir Thomas hastened back to Presburg in despair. Feeling the “game was up,” and that there was no more hope, he asked permission to return home. The British cabinet was in a state of consternation. France, the dreaded rival of England, was attaining almost sovereign power over the Continent of Europe. Frederick himself was uneasy. He had sufficient penetration to be fully aware that he was aiding to create a resistless power, which might, by-and-by, crush him. Sir Thomas, in a state of great agitation, which was manifest in his disordered style, wrote from Presburg to Lord Hyndford at Breslau as follows. The letter was dated September 8, 1741.

Sir Thomas rushed back to Presburg in despair. Feeling that “the game was up” and that there was no more hope, he asked for permission to go home. The British cabinet was in a state of shock. France, England's feared rival, was gaining almost complete control over the continent of Europe. Frederick himself was uneasy. He was smart enough to realize that he was helping to create a powerful force that could eventually crush him. Sir Thomas, in a state of great agitation evident in his messy writing, wrote from Presburg to Lord Hyndford at Breslau as follows. The letter was dated September 8, 1741.

“My lord, I could desire your lordship to summon up, if it were necessary, the spirit of all your lordship’s instructions, and the sense of the king, of the Parliament, and of the whole British nation. It is upon this great moment that depends the fate, not of the house of Austria, not of the empire, but of the house of Brunswick, of Great Britain, of all Europe. I verily believe the King of Prussia himself does not know the extent of the present danger. With whatever motive he may act, there is not one, not that of the wildest resentment, that can blind him to this degree—of himself perishing in the ruin he is bringing upon others. With his concurrence, the French will, in less than six weeks, be masters of the German empire. The weak Elector of Bavaria is but their instrument. Prague and Vienna may, and probably will, be taken in that short time. Will even the King of Prussia himself be reserved to the last?”

"My lord, I would urge you to summon up, if necessary, the essence of all your instructions, and the views of the king, the Parliament, and the entire British nation. The fate at stake here is not just that of the house of Austria or the empire, but also that of the house of Brunswick, of Great Britain, and of all Europe. I truly believe that the King of Prussia himself may not fully grasp the extent of the current danger. No matter his motives, not even the greatest resentment could blind him to the point of facing his own destruction while causing ruin to others. With his support, the French will become masters of the German empire in less than six weeks. The weak Elector of Bavaria is merely their pawn. Prague and Vienna could likely be captured in that brief time. Will even the King of Prussia remain unscathed until the end?"

These considerations probably weighed heavily upon the mind of Frederick; for, after having so peremptorily repulsed the queen’s messenger, he sent, on the 9th of September, Colonel Goltz with a proposition to Lord Hyndford, which was substantially the same which the queen in her anguish had consented to make. The strictest secrecy was enjoined upon Colonel Goltz. The proposition was read from a paper without signature, and was probably in the king’s handwriting, for Lord Hyndford was287 not permitted to see the paper. He took a copy from dictation, which was as follows:

These thoughts were likely on Frederick's mind because, after firmly turning away the queen’s messenger, he sent Colonel Goltz on September 9th with a proposal to Lord Hyndford that was basically the same one the queen had reluctantly agreed to make. Colonel Goltz was instructed to keep everything secret. The proposal was read from an unsigned paper, which was probably in the king’s handwriting since Lord Hyndford wasn’t allowed to see the document. He took a dictation copy, which was as follows:

“The whole of Lower Silesia; the River Neisse for the boundary; the city of Neisse for us, as also Glutz; on the other side of the Oder, the ancient boundary between the Duchies of Brieg and Oppeln. Namslau for us. The affairs of religion in statu quo. No dependence upon Bohemia. Cession eternal. In exchange we will go no farther. We will besiege Neisse for form. The commandant shall surrender and depart. We will quietly go into winter quarters; and they (the Austrians) can take their army where they will. Let all be finished in twelve days.”

“The entire region of Lower Silesia; the Neisse River as the boundary; the city of Neisse is ours, along with Glutz; across the Oder is the historic boundary between the Duchies of Brieg and Oppeln. Namslau is ours too. The religious matters stay as they are. We have no ties to Bohemia. This transfer is permanent. In return, we won't push any further. We'll pretend to besiege Neisse for show. The commander will surrender and leave. We’ll settle in for the winter, and they (the Austrians) can take their army wherever they want. Let’s wrap this up in twelve days.”

But Frederick did not seem to think himself at all bound by his treaty obligations with France to refrain from entering into secret arrangements with the foe which would promote his interests, however antagonistic those arrangements might be to his assumed obligations. He was the ally of France in the attempt to wrest territory from the young Queen of Austria, and to weaken her power. His armies and those of France were acting in co-operation. Frederick now proposed to the common enemy that, if Silesia were surrendered to him, he would no longer act in co-operation with his ally; but, that France might not discover his perfidy, he would still pretend to make war. The Austrians were to amuse themselves in defending Neisse from a sham siege until the pleasant weeks of autumn were gone, and then they were to march, with all their guns and ammunition, south to Vienna, there to fight the French. Frederick, still assuming that he was the ally of France, was to avail himself of the excuse that the season of ice and snow was at hand, and withdraw into winter quarters. Such, in general, were the terms which Frederick authorized his minister, Goltz, to propose to Lord Hyndford, as the agent of England and Austria.

But Frederick didn't seem to think he was at all obligated by his treaty with France to avoid making secret deals with the enemy that would benefit him, no matter how much those deals went against his supposed obligations. He was working with France to take land from the young Queen of Austria and weaken her power. His armies and those of France were cooperating. Frederick now suggested to the common enemy that if he was given Silesia, he would stop cooperating with his ally; but to keep France from discovering his betrayal, he would still pretend to be at war. The Austrians were to keep busy defending Neisse from a fake siege until the nice weeks of autumn were over, and then they would march south to Vienna with all their guns and ammo to fight the French. Frederick, still claiming to be France's ally, would use the excuse of the coming ice and snow to withdraw into winter quarters. These were, generally speaking, the terms Frederick instructed his minister, Goltz, to propose to Lord Hyndford, the representative of England and Austria.

Most of our readers will pronounce this to be as unwarrantable an act of perfidy as history has recorded. But, in justice to Frederick, we ought to state that there are those who, while admitting all these facts, do not condemn him for his course. It is surprising to see how different are the opinions which intelligent men can form upon the same actions. Mr. Carlyle writes, in reference to these events:

Most of our readers will consider this to be a completely unjustifiable act of betrayal as history has recorded. However, to be fair to Frederick, we should mention that some people, while acknowledging all these facts, do not blame him for his actions. It’s interesting to see how differently smart people can interpret the same events. Mr. Carlyle writes, in reference to these events:

“Magnanimous I can by no means call Frederick to his allies288 and neighbors, nor even superstitiously veracious in this business; but he thoroughly understands, he alone, what just thing he wants out of it, and what an enormous wigged mendacity it is he has got to deal with. For the rest, he is at the gaming-table with these sharpers, their dice all cogged, and he knows it, and ought to profit by his knowledge of it, and, in short, to win his stake out of that foul, weltering melley, and go home safe with it if he can.”

I can't really call Frederick generous towards his allies and neighbors, nor can I say he's overly honest in this situation; but he completely gets what he wants from it, and he knows he's dealing with a huge amount of deceit. Besides that, he's sitting at the gambling table with these con artists, their dice all rigged, and he knows it. He should use that knowledge to his advantage and, in short, come out on top from this messy situation and get home safely with his winnings if he can.

While these scenes of war and intrigue were transpiring, no one knowing what alarming developments any day might present, Vienna was thrown into a state of terror in apprehension of the immediate approach of a French army to open upon it all the horrors of a bombardment. The citizens were called out en masse to work upon the fortifications. The court fled to Presburg, in Hungary. The national archives were hurried off to Grätz. The royal family was dispersed. There were but six thousand troops in the city. General Neipperg, with nearly the whole Austrian army, was a hundred and fifty miles distant to the north, on the banks of the Neisse. The queen, on the 10th of September, assembled at Presburg the Hungarian Parliament, consisting almost exclusively of chivalric nobles renowned in war. The queen appeared before them with her husband, the Grand-duke Francis, by her side, and with a nurse attending, holding her infant son and heir. Addressing them in Latin, in a brief, pathetic speech, she said:

While all of this war and intrigue was happening, with no one knowing what shocking developments could occur any day, Vienna fell into a state of panic, fearing the imminent arrival of a French army that could unleash the horrors of a bombardment. The citizens were called out en masse to work on the fortifications. The court fled to Presburg, Hungary. The national archives were rushed to Grätz. The royal family was scattered. There were only six thousand troops in the city. General Neipperg, along with nearly the entire Austrian army, was a hundred and fifty miles north on the banks of the Neisse. On September 10th, the queen gathered the Hungarian Parliament in Presburg, made up mostly of noble warriors. She appeared before them with her husband, Grand-duke Francis, by her side, and a nurse holding her infant son and heir. Addressing them in Latin, she delivered a brief, heartfelt speech, saying:

“I am abandoned by all. Hostile invasion threatens the kingdom of Hungary, our person, our children, our crown. I have no resource but in your fidelity and valor. I invoke the ancient Hungarian virtue to rise swiftly and save me.”

“I feel completely abandoned. A hostile invasion is threatening the kingdom of Hungary, our lives, our children, our crown. I have no resources except for your loyalty and courage. I call upon the ancient Hungarian spirit to rise up quickly and save me.”

The queen was radiantly beautiful in form and features. Her eyes were filled with tears. The scene and the words roused the zeal of these wild Magyar warriors to the highest pitch. They drew their sabres, flourished them over their heads, and with united voice shouted Moriamur pro nostro rege, Maria Theresa—“Let us die for our king, Maria Theresa.” “They always,” writes Voltaire, “give the title of king to their queen. In fact, no princess ever better deserved that title.”

The queen was stunningly beautiful in both appearance and features. Her eyes were filled with tears. The scene and the words ignited the passion of these fierce Magyar warriors to the highest level. They drew their sabres, waved them over their heads, and shouted together, Moriamur pro nostro rege, Maria Theresa—“Let us die for our king, Maria Theresa.” “They always,” writes Voltaire, “give the title of king to their queen. In fact, no princess has ever deserved that title more.”

289

289

THE QUEEN’S APPEAL TO THE HUNGARIAN NOBLES.

Between the two camps of the Austrians and Prussians, south of the River Neisse, there was a castle called Little Schnellendorf, belonging to Count Von Steinberg. It was a very retired retreat, far from observation. Arrangements were made for a secret meeting there between Frederick and General Neipperg, to adjust the details of their plot. It was of the utmost importance that the perfidious measure should be concealed from France. The French minister, Valori, was in the Prussian camp, watching every movement with an eagle eye. “Frederick,” writes Carlyle, “knows that the French are false to him. He by no means290 intends to be romantically true to them, and that they also know.”

Between the two camps of the Austrians and Prussians, south of the River Neisse, there was a castle called Little Schnellendorf, owned by Count Von Steinberg. It was a secluded getaway, far from view. Arrangements were made for a secret meeting there between Frederick and General Neipperg to finalize the details of their scheme. It was extremely important that the treacherous plan be kept hidden from France. The French minister, Valori, was in the Prussian camp, watching every move closely. “Frederick,” writes Carlyle, “knows that the French are untrustworthy. He definitely doesn’t intend to be faithfully loyal to them, and they know that too.”

On Monday morning, the 9th of October, 1741, the British minister, Lord Hyndford, accompanied by General Neipperg and General Lentulus from the Austrian camp, repaired to this castle, ostensibly to fix some cartel for the exchange of prisoners. Frederick rode out that morning with General Goltz, assuming that he was going to visit some of his outposts. In leaving, he said to the French minister Valori, “I am afraid that I shall not be home to dinner.” At the same time, to occupy the attention of M. Valori, he was invited to dine with Prince Leopold. By circuitous and unfrequented paths, the king and his companion hied to the castle.

On the morning of Monday, October 9, 1741, the British minister, Lord Hyndford, along with General Neipperg and General Lentulus from the Austrian camp, went to this castle, supposedly to arrange a deal for the exchange of prisoners. Frederick set out that morning with General Goltz, thinking they were visiting some of his outposts. As he left, he told the French minister Valori, “I’m afraid I won’t be home for dinner.” At the same time, to keep M. Valori occupied, he was invited to dine with Prince Leopold. By winding and less traveled paths, the king and his companion made their way to the castle.

THE KING APPROACHING SCHNELLENDORF.

Frederick cautiously refused to sign his name to any paper. Verbally, he agreed that in one week from that time, on the 16th, General Neipperg should have liberty to retire to the south through the mountains, unmolested save by sham attacks in his rear. A small garrison was to be left in Neisse. After maintaining a sham siege for a fortnight, they were to surrender the291 city. Sham hostilities, to deceive the French, were to be continued until the year was out, and then a treaty was to be signed and ratified.

Frederick carefully declined to put his name on any documents. Instead, he verbally agreed that in a week, on the 16th, General Neipperg would be free to move south through the mountains, unharmed except for fake attacks in his rear. A small garrison was to stay in Neisse. After pretending to lay siege for two weeks, they would surrender the291 city. These fake hostilities, meant to mislead the French, would continue until the end of the year, and then a treaty would be signed and ratified.

His majesty pledged his word of honor that he would fulfill these obligations, but declared that, should the slightest intimation of the agreement leak out, so that the French should discover it, he would deny the whole thing, and refuse in any way to be bound by it. This was assented to.

His majesty promised on his word of honor that he would meet these obligations, but stated that if even a hint of the agreement got out and the French found out about it, he would deny everything and refuse to be held to it in any way. This was agreed to.

At the close of the business, the king, who had been exceedingly courteous during the whole interview, took General Neipperg aside, and, beckoning Lord Hyndford to join them, said, addressing Lord Hyndford,

At the end of the meeting, the king, who had been very polite throughout the whole discussion, pulled General Neipperg aside and signaled for Lord Hyndford to join them. He said, speaking to Lord Hyndford,

“I wish you too, my lord, to hear every word I speak to General Neipperg. His Britannic majesty knows, or should know, my intentions never were to do him hurt, but only to take care of myself. And pray inform him that I have ordered my army in Brandenburg to go into winter quarters, and break up that camp at Göttin.”

“I want you to hear everything I say to General Neipperg as well, my lord. His Britannic Majesty knows, or should know, that I never intended to harm him, but only to look after myself. Please let him know that I’ve ordered my army in Brandenburg to go into winter quarters and disband the camp at Göttin.”

The reader will bear in mind that the camp at Göttin, menacing Hanover, was acting in co-operation with Frederick’s ally, France, and that forty thousand men had been sent from France to the aid of those Prussian troops. Frederick now, entering into secret treaty with the enemy, while still feigning to be true to his ally, was perfidiously withdrawing his troops so as to leave the French unsupported. His treachery went even farther than this. In the presence of Lord Hyndford, the representative of England, he informed the Austrian general minutely how he could, to the greatest advantage, attack the French.

The reader should remember that the camp at Göttin, threatening Hanover, was working with Frederick’s ally, France, and that forty thousand troops had been sent from France to support those Prussian forces. Frederick, meanwhile, was secretly negotiating with the enemy while pretending to stay loyal to his ally, deceitfully pulling back his troops to leave the French unsupported. His betrayal went even further. In front of Lord Hyndford, the representative of England, he detailed to the Austrian general how he could effectively attack the French.

“Join,” said he, “the Austrian force under Prince Lobkowitz in Bohemia. Fall immediately and impetuously upon the French, before they can combine their forces to resist you. If you succeed in this, perhaps I will by-and-by join you; if you fail—well, you know every one must look out for himself.”

“Join,” he said, “the Austrian forces led by Prince Lobkowitz in Bohemia. Attack the French immediately and fiercely, before they can gather their forces to fight back. If you succeed in this, maybe I’ll join you later; if you fail—well, you know everyone has to look out for themselves.”

The audacious duplicity of this ambitious young king was still more conspicuously developed by his entering into a secret correspondence with the court of Austria, through certain generals in the Austrian army. And that he might the more effectually disguise his treachery from his allies, the French, he requested Lord Hyndford to write dispatches to various courts—292to Presburg, to England, to Dresden—complaining that Frederick was deaf to all proposals; that nothing could influence him to enter into terms of reconciliation with Austria. It was to be so arranged that the couriers carrying these dispatches of falsehood should be captured by the French, so that these documents should be carried to the French court.

The bold deceit of this ambitious young king was even more clearly shown by his secret communication with the court of Austria, through certain generals in the Austrian army. To better hide his betrayal from his French allies, he asked Lord Hyndford to write dispatches to various courts—292to Presburg, to England, to Dresden—complaining that Frederick was unresponsive to any offers; that nothing could persuade him to make peace with Austria. It was planned that the couriers carrying these lies would be captured by the French, so that these documents would reach the French court.

And, in addition to all this, the more effectually to hoodwink the eagle eyes of the French minister in the Prussian camp, M. Valori, the following stratagem was arranged. The king was to invite M. Valori to dine with him. While at the table, merry over their wine, a courier was to arrive, and with trumpet blast announce dispatches for the king. They were to be delivered to the king at the table. He was to open them before Valori, to find that they consisted of a bitter complaint and remonstrance, on the part of the British minister, that the king was inflexible in repelling all advances toward an amicable adjustment of their difficulties, that unrelentingly he persisted in co-operating with France in her warfare against Austria. All this farce took place according to the programme. M. Valori was effectually deceived.

And, on top of everything else, to better deceive the keen eyes of the French minister in the Prussian camp, M. Valori, the following plan was set in motion. The king was to invite M. Valori to dinner. While they were enjoying their meal and drinks, a courier was supposed to arrive and announce with a trumpet that there were dispatches for the king. These would be delivered to the king at the table. He would open them in front of Valori and discover that they contained a strong complaint from the British minister, stating that the king was refusing to consider any attempts to reach a peaceful solution to their issues, and that he was stubbornly continuing to support France in its war against Austria. Everything went according to plan. M. Valori was completely fooled.

Some of our readers may think that the above narrative is quite incredible; that a young sovereign, who had just written the Anti-Machiavel, and who knew that the eyes of the world were upon him, could not be guilty of such perfidy. But, unhappily, there is no possible room for doubt. The documentary evidence is ample. There is no contradictory testimony.

Some of our readers might find the story above unbelievable; that a young ruler, who had just written the Anti-Machiavel, and who knew the world was watching him, couldn’t possibly be guilty of such betrayal. But unfortunately, there’s no room for doubt. The documentary evidence is extensive. There is no contradictory testimony.

General Neipperg, in his account of the interview, writes, in reference to Frederick: “He is a very spirited young king. He will not stand contradiction; but a great deal may be made of him if you seem to adopt his ideas, and honor him in a delicate, dexterous way. He did not in the least hide his engagements with France, Bavaria, Saxony. But he would really, so far as I could judge, prefer friendship with Austria on the given terms. He seems to have a kind of pique at Saxony, and manifests no favor for the French and their plans.”

General Neipperg, in his account of the interview, writes about Frederick: “He is a very spirited young king. He won’t tolerate disagreement; but you can achieve a lot with him if you act like you support his ideas and treat him with subtlety and skill. He didn’t hide his connections with France, Bavaria, and Saxony at all. However, from what I could tell, he would actually prefer to be friends with Austria under the current conditions. He seems to have a bit of a grudge against Saxony and shows no support for the French and their plans.”

Mr. Carlyle, who, with wonderful accuracy, and with impartiality which no one will call in question, has recorded the facts in Frederick’s career, gives the story as it is here told. In the following terms Mr. Carlyle comments upon these events:

Mr. Carlyle, who has recorded the facts of Frederick’s career with remarkable accuracy and an impartiality that no one can dispute, presents the story as it is described here. In the following terms, Mr. Carlyle comments on these events:

293 “Of the political morality of this game of fast-and-loose what have we to say, except that the dice on both sides seem to be loaded; that logic might be chopped upon it forever; that a candid mind will settle what degree of wisdom (which is always essential veracity) and what of folly (which is always falsity) there was in Frederick and the others; whether, or to what degree, there was a better course open to Frederick in the circumstances; and, in fine, it will have to be granted that you can not work in pitch and keep hands evidently clean. Frederick has got into the enchanted wilderness populous with devils and their work, alas! It will be long before he get out of it again; his life waning toward night before he get victoriously out, and bequeath his conquest to luckier successors!”

293 “What can we say about the political ethics of this game of deceit, except that both sides seem to be cheating? Logic could be debated endlessly on this matter. A clear-headed person will assess how much wisdom (which is always grounded in truth) and how much foolishness (which is always based on lies) was present in Frederick and the others; whether, or how much, Frederick had a better option given the situation; and ultimately, we have to accept that you can’t get involved in dirty tactics and come out clean. Frederick has entered a cursed wilderness filled with demons and their chaos, unfortunately! It will be a while before he makes his way out; with his life fading into the evening before he can triumphantly escape and pass his victory on to luckier successors!”

On the 16th of November General Neipperg broke up his camp at Neisse, according to the arrangement and, leaving a small garrison in the city to encounter the sham siege, defiled through the mountains on the south into Moravia. The Prussians, pretending to pursue, hung upon his rear for a short distance, making as much noise and inflicting as little harm as possible. General Neipperg pressed rapidly on to Vienna, where he was exultingly welcomed to aid in defending the city menaced by the French.

On November 16th, General Neipperg broke camp at Neisse as planned, leaving a small garrison in the city to deal with the fake siege, and moved through the mountains to the south into Moravia. The Prussians pretended to chase him, staying back at a distance, making a lot of noise but causing very little damage. General Neipperg quickly continued on to Vienna, where he was enthusiastically welcomed to help defend the city threatened by the French.

Frederick on the 17th, the day after the departure of the Austrian army, invested Neisse. He had an embarrassing part to play. He was to conduct a sham siege in the presence of M. Valori, who was not only a man of ability, but who possessed much military intelligence. Feigning the utmost zeal, Frederick opened his trenches, and ostentatiously manœuvred his troops. He sent the young Prince Leopold, with fifteen thousand horse and foot, into the Glatz country, many leagues to the east, to guard against surprise from an enemy, where no enemy was to be found. He marked out his parallels, sent imperious summonses for surrender, and dispatched reconnoitring parties abroad. M. Valori began to be surprised—amazed. “What does all this mean?” he said to himself. “They have great need of some good engineers here.”

Frederick, on the 17th, the day after the Austrian army left, laid siege to Neisse. He had a tricky role to play. He needed to carry out a fake siege in front of M. Valori, who was not only skilled but also had considerable military knowledge. Pretending to be fully engaged, Frederick started digging his trenches and conspicuously maneuvered his troops. He sent the young Prince Leopold, along with fifteen thousand soldiers, into the Glatz region, many miles to the east, to prevent any surprises from an enemy that wasn’t even there. He laid out his attack lines, sent strong demands for surrender, and sent out scouting parties. M. Valori began to feel puzzled—astonished. “What’s going on here?” he thought to himself. “They really need some good engineers around.”

With that vigilant eye upon him, Frederick was compelled to some vigor of action. On the night of October 17th he commenced the bombardment. The noise was terrific. It could not294 be prevented but that the shot and shell should do some harm. Some buildings were burned; several lives were lost. M. Valori, who knew that the result could not be doubtful, was induced to go to Breslau and await the surrender. After the garrison had made apparently a gallant resistance, and Frederick had achieved apparent prodigies of valor, the city was surrendered on the 31st of October. Most of the garrison immediately enlisted in the Prussian service.

With that watchful gaze on him, Frederick felt he had to take decisive action. On the night of October 17th, he started the bombardment. The noise was overwhelming. There was no way to avoid the damage caused by the cannon fire. Some buildings were destroyed; several lives were lost. M. Valori, who realized the outcome was inevitable, decided to go to Breslau and wait for the surrender. After the garrison put up what seemed like a brave fight, and Frederick performed what looked like incredible feats of bravery, the city surrendered on October 31st. Most of the garrison quickly signed up for the Prussian army.

Thus the last fortress in Silesia fell into the hands of Frederick. There was no longer any foe left in the province to dispute his acquisition. He took possession of Neisse on the 1st of November, celebrating his victory with illuminations and all the approved demonstrations of public rejoicing.

Thus, the last fortress in Silesia fell into Frederick's hands. There was no longer an enemy left in the province to challenge his claim. He took possession of Neisse on November 1st, celebrating his victory with fireworks and all the traditional signs of public celebration.

MAP OF THE SECOND SILESIAN CAMPAIGN.

On the 4th of November he returned to Breslau, entering the city with great military display. Seated in a splendid carriage, he was drawn through the streets by eight cream-colored horses. Taking his seat upon the ancient ducal throne, he was crowned, with great ceremonial pomp, Sovereign Duke of Lower Silesia. Four hundred of the notables of the dukedom, in gala dresses, and taking oaths of homage, contributed to the imposing effect of the spectacle. Illuminations, balls, and popular festivities, in great variety, closed the triumph.

On November 4th, he returned to Breslau, entering the city with a grand military display. Sitting in a magnificent carriage, he was pulled through the streets by eight cream-colored horses. Taking his place on the historic ducal throne, he was crowned, with elaborate ceremony, Sovereign Duke of Lower Silesia. Four hundred prominent figures from the dukedom, dressed in formal attire and pledging their loyalty, added to the impressive nature of the event. Fireworks, parties, and various public festivities wrapped up the celebration.

On the morning of the 9th of November Frederick set out for Berlin, visiting Glogau by the way. On the 11th he entered Berlin, where he was received by the whole population with enthusiastic demonstrations of joy. For a short time he probably thought that through guile he had triumphed, and that his troubles were now at an end. But such victories, under the providence of God, are always of short duration. Frederick soon found that his troubles had but just begun. He had entered295 upon a career of toil, care, and peril, from which he was to have no escape until he was ready to sink into his grave.

On the morning of November 9th, Frederick set out for Berlin, stopping in Glogau along the way. He arrived in Berlin on the 11th, where the entire population welcomed him with enthusiastic celebrations. For a brief moment, he probably thought he had succeeded through cleverness and that his struggles were finally over. But such victories, under God's guidance, are always short-lived. Frederick quickly realized that his challenges had only just begun. He had embarked on a journey of hard work, worry, and danger, from which he would not escape until he was ready to face his end.

But a few days after his return, Lord Hyndford, who had followed the king to Berlin, met his majesty in one of the apartments of the palace. Frederick, struggling to conceal the emotions with which he was agitated, said to him,

But a few days after he returned, Lord Hyndford, who had followed the king to Berlin, met his majesty in one of the palace rooms. Frederick, trying to hide the emotions he was feeling, said to him,

“My lord, the court of Vienna has entirely divulged our secret. The Dowager Empress has acquainted the court of Bavaria with it. Wasner, the Austrian minister at Paris, has communicated it to the French minister, Fleury. The Austrian minister at St. Petersburg, M. Linzendorf, has told the court of Russia of it. Sir Thomas Robinson has divulged it to the court of Dresden. Several members of the British government have talked about it publicly.”

“My lord, the court in Vienna has completely revealed our secret. The Dowager Empress has informed the Bavarian court about it. Wasner, the Austrian minister in Paris, has shared it with the French minister, Fleury. The Austrian minister in St. Petersburg, M. Linzendorf, has told the Russian court. Sir Thomas Robinson has disclosed it to the court in Dresden. Several members of the British government have discussed it openly.”

Frederick immediately and publicly denied that he had ever entered into any such arrangement with Austria, and declared the whole story to be a mere fabrication. Having by the stratagem obtained Neisse, and delivered Silesia from the presence of the Austrian army, he assured the French of his unchanging fidelity to their interests, and with renewed vigor commenced co-operating with them in the furtherance of some new ambitious plans.

Frederick immediately and publicly denied that he had ever made any arrangement with Austria, calling the entire story a complete fabrication. After cleverly taking Neisse and driving the Austrian army out of Silesia, he assured the French of his unwavering loyalty to their interests and eagerly began working with them on some new ambitious plans.


CHAPTER XVII.
THE MORAVIA CAMPAIGN.

Frederick’s Motives for the War.—Marriage of William Augustus.—Testimony of Lord Macaulay.—Frederick and his Allies.—Visit to Dresden.—Military Energy.—Charles Albert chosen Emperor.—The Coronation.—Effeminacy of the Saxon Princes.—Disappointment and Vexation of Frederick.—He withdraws in Chagrin.—The Cantonment on the Elbe.—Winter Campaigning.—The Concentration at Chrudim.

Frederick's Reasons for the War.—The Marriage of William Augustus.—Insights from Lord Macaulay.—Frederick and His Allies.—Trip to Dresden.—Military Operations.—Charles Albert Becomes Emperor.—The Coronation Ceremony.—Weakness of the Saxon Princes.—Frederick's Disappointment and Frustration.—He Withdraws in Anger.—The Camp on the Elbe.—Winter Campaigning.—The Gathering at Chrudim.

It was on the 11th of November, 1741, that Frederick, elated with his conquest of Silesia, had returned to Berlin. In commencing the enterprise he had said, “Ambition, interest, and the desire to make the world speak of me, vanquished all, and war was determined on.” He had, indeed, succeeded in making the “world speak” of him. He had suddenly become the most prominent man in Europe. Some extolled his exploits. Some expressed amazement at his perfidy. Many, recognizing his sagacity296 and his tremendous energy, sought his alliance. Embassadors from the various courts of Europe crowded his capital. Fourteen sovereign princes, with many foreigners of the highest rank, were counted among the number. The king was in high spirits. While studiously maturing his plans for the future, he assumed the air of a thoughtless man of fashion, and dazzled the eyes and bewildered the minds of his guests with feasts and pageants.

It was on November 11, 1741, that Frederick, thrilled by his victory in Silesia, returned to Berlin. In starting the campaign, he had stated, “Ambition, personal gain, and the desire to make a name for myself outweighed everything, and war was unavoidable.” He had, in fact, made the “world notice” him. He had quickly become the most notable figure in Europe. Some praised his achievements. Others were shocked by his treachery. Many, recognizing his wisdom and incredible energy, sought to partner with him. Ambassadors from various European courts filled his capital. Fourteen sovereign princes, along with numerous high-ranking foreigners, were among them. The king was in great spirits. While carefully planning for the future, he acted like a carefree socialite, dazzling the eyes and confusing the minds of his guests with lavish feasts and grand celebrations.

FREDERICK THE GREAT. ÆT. 30

On the 7th of January, 1742, Frederick’s eldest brother, William Augustus, was married to Louisa Amelia, a younger sister of the king’s neglected wife, Elizabeth. The king himself graced297 the festival, in gorgeous attire, and very successfully plied all his wonderful arts of fascination. “He appeared,” says Bielfeld, “so young, so gay, so graceful, that I could not have refrained from loving him, even if he had been a stranger.”

On January 7, 1742, Frederick’s older brother, William Augustus, married Louisa Amelia, a younger sister of the king's overlooked wife, Elizabeth. The king himself attended the celebration, dressed in elegant clothing, and effortlessly showcased his charm. “He looked,” says Bielfeld, “so youthful, so cheerful, so charming, that I couldn’t help but love him, even if he had been a complete stranger.”

But, in the midst of these scenes of gayety, the king was contemplating the most complicated combinations of diplomacy. Europe was apparently thrown into a state of chaos. It was Frederick’s one predominant thought to see what advantages he could secure to Prussia from the general wreck and ruin. Lord Macaulay, speaking of these scenes, says:

But, in the middle of all this celebration, the king was focused on the most complex diplomatic strategies. Europe seemed to be in complete disarray. Frederick’s main concern was figuring out what benefits he could gain for Prussia from the overall disaster. Lord Macaulay, discussing these events, says:

“The selfish rapacity of the King of Prussia gave the signal to his neighbors. His example quieted their sense of shame. The whole world sprang to arms. On the head of Frederick is all the blood which was shed in a war which raged during many years, and in every quarter of the globe—the blood of the column of Fontenoy, the blood of the brave mountaineers who were slaughtered at Culloden. The evils produced by this wickedness were felt in lands where the name of Prussia was unknown. In order that he might rob a neighbor whom he had promised to defend, black men fought on the coast of Coromandel, and red men scalped each other by the great lakes of North America.”

"The greedy selfishness of the King of Prussia triggered a response from his neighbors. His actions removed their shame. The entire world went to war. Frederick is responsible for all the blood spilled in a conflict that lasted for many years and spread across the globe—the blood of the troops at Fontenoy, the blood of the brave soldiers who were killed at Culloden. The consequences of this wrongdoing were felt in lands where the name Prussia was unknown. In order to steal from a neighbor he had vowed to protect, Black people fought on the coast of Coromandel, and Native Americans scalped each other around the great lakes of North America."

As we have stated, Frederick had declared that if any rumor should be spread abroad of the fact that he had entered into a secret treaty with Austria, he would deny it, and would no longer pay any regard to its stipulations. He had adopted the precaution not to affix his signature to any paper. By this ignoble stratagem he had obtained Neisse and Silesia. The rumor of the secret treaty had gone abroad. He had denied it. And now, in accordance with the principles of his peculiar code of honor, he felt himself at liberty to pursue any course which policy might dictate.

As we've mentioned, Frederick had said that if any rumors spread about him making a secret deal with Austria, he would deny it and no longer follow its terms. He took the precaution of not signing any documents. With this underhanded tactic, he secured Neisse and Silesia. The rumor about the secret deal spread. He denied it. Now, according to his unique code of honor, he felt free to take any actions that seemed politically wise.

Frederick, in his Histoire de mon Temps, states that, in the negotiations which at this time took place in Berlin, France pressed the king to bring forward his armies into vigorous co-operation; that England exhorted him to make peace with Austria; that Spain solicited his alliance in her warfare against England; that Denmark implored his counsel as to the course it was wise for that kingdom to pursue; that Sweden entreated his aid against Russia; that Russia besought his good offices to make298 peace with the court at Stockholm; and that the German empire, anxious for peace, entreated him to put an end to those troubles which were convulsing all Europe.

Frederick, in his Histoire de mon Temps, notes that during the negotiations happening in Berlin at this time, France urged the king to actively mobilize his armies; England encouraged him to make peace with Austria; Spain requested his alliance in its war against England; Denmark sought his advice on the best path for the kingdom to take; Sweden asked for his support against Russia; Russia appealed for his assistance in negotiating peace with the court in Stockholm; and the German empire, eager for peace, pleaded with him to resolve the conflicts that were shaking all of Europe.

The probable object of the Austrian court in revealing the secret treaty of Schnellendorf was to set Frederick and France at variance. Frederick, much exasperated, not only denied the treaty, but professed increased devotion to the interests of Louis XV. The allies, consisting of France, Prussia, Bavaria, and Saxony, now combined to wrest Moravia from Maria Theresa, and annex it to Saxony. This province, governed by a marquis, was a third larger than the State of Massachusetts, and contained a population of about a million and a half. Moravia bounded Silesia on the south. Frederick made a special treaty with the King of Saxony, that the southern boundary of Silesia should be a full German mile, which was between four and five English miles, beyond the line of the River Neisse. With Frederick’s usual promptitude, he insisted that commissioners should be immediately sent to put down the boundary stones. France was surprised that the King of Saxony should have consented to the surrender of so important a strip of his territory.

The likely goal of the Austrian court in disclosing the secret treaty of Schnellendorf was to create conflict between Frederick and France. Frederick, feeling very frustrated, not only denied the treaty but also claimed to be even more committed to the interests of Louis XV. The allies, which included France, Prussia, Bavaria, and Saxony, united to take Moravia from Maria Theresa and add it to Saxony. This province, ruled by a marquis, was a third larger than the state of Massachusetts and had a population of about one and a half million. Moravia bordered Silesia to the south. Frederick made a special agreement with the King of Saxony that the southern boundary of Silesia would be a full German mile, which is between four and five English miles, beyond the line of the River Neisse. With his usual speed, Frederick insisted that commissioners should be sent immediately to put up boundary stones. France was taken aback that the King of Saxony would agree to give up such an important part of his territory.

Frederick paid but little regard to his allies save as he could make them subservient to the accomplishment of his purposes. He pushed his troops forward many leagues south into Moravia, and occupied the important posts of Troppau, Friedenthal, and Olmütz. These places were seized the latter part of December. The king hoped thus to be able, early in the spring, to carry the war to the gates of Vienna.

Frederick hardly paid attention to his allies unless he could use them to achieve his goals. He advanced his troops many miles south into Moravia and took control of the crucial sites of Troppau, Friedenthal, and Olmütz. These locations were captured in late December. The king hoped that this would allow him to bring the war to the gates of Vienna early in the spring.

On the 18th of January, 1742, Frederick visited Dresden, to confer with Augustus III., King of Poland, who was also Elector of Saxony, and whose realms were to be increased by the annexation of Moravia. His Polish majesty was a weak man, entirely devoted to pleasure. His irresolute mind, subjected to the dominant energies of the Prussian king, was as clay in the hands of the potter.

On January 18, 1742, Frederick visited Dresden to meet with Augustus III, the King of Poland, who was also the Elector of Saxony, and whose territories were set to expand with the annexation of Moravia. The Polish king was a weak individual, completely focused on enjoyment. His indecisive mind, easily influenced by the strong will of the Prussian king, was like clay in a potter's hands.

“You are now,” said Frederick, “by consent of the allies, King of Moravia. Now is the time, now or never, to become so in fact. Push forward your Saxon troops. The Austrian forces are weak in that country. At Iglau, just over the border from Austria, there is a large magazine of military stores, which can299 easily be seized. Urge forward your troops. The French will contribute strong divisions. I will join you with twenty thousand men. We can at once take possession of Moravia, and perhaps march directly on to Vienna.”

“You are now,” said Frederick, “by agreement with the allies, King of Moravia. This is the moment, now or never, to make it a reality. Advance your Saxon troops. The Austrian forces are weak in that area. At Iglau, just over the border from Austria, there's a large stockpile of military supplies that can299 be easily taken. Push your troops forward. The French will send strong divisions. I will join you with twenty thousand men. We can immediately take control of Moravia and possibly march straight to Vienna.”

Frederick, in describing this interview, writes: “Augustus answered yes to every thing, with an air of being convinced, joined to a look of great ennui. Count Brühl,61 whom this interview displeased, interrupted it by announcing to his majesty that the Opera was about to commence. Ten kingdoms to conquer would not have kept the King of Poland a minute longer. He went, therefore, to the Opera; and the King of Prussia obtained at once, in spite of those who opposed it, a final decision.”62

Frederick, in describing this interview, writes: “Augustus said yes to everything, seeming convinced but with a look of great ennui. Count Brühl,61 who was annoyed by this interview, interrupted by informing his majesty that the Opera was about to begin. Not even ten kingdoms to conquer would have kept the King of Poland a minute longer. So, he went to the Opera; and the King of Prussia got a final decision right away, despite those who opposed it.”62

The next morning, in the intense cold of midwinter, Frederick set out several hours before daylight for the city of Prague, which the French and Bavarians had captured on the 25th of November. Declining all polite attentions, for business was urgent, he eagerly sought M. De Séchelles, the renowned head of the commissariat department, and made arrangements with him to perform the extremely difficult task of supplying the army with food in a winter’s campaign.

The next morning, in the biting cold of midwinter, Frederick left for the city of Prague several hours before dawn. The French and Bavarians had taken it on November 25th. Ignoring all polite overtures because he had urgent business, he quickly looked for M. De Séchelles, the well-known head of the commissariat department, and made plans with him to tackle the very challenging job of providing food for the army during a winter campaign.

The next morning, at an early hour, he again dashed off to the east, toward Glatz, a hundred miles distant, where a portion of the Prussian troops were in cantonments, under the young Prince Leopold. Within a week he had ridden over seven hundred miles, commencing his journey every morning as early as four o’clock, and doing a vast amount of business by the way.

The next morning, bright and early, he took off again to the east, heading toward Glatz, a hundred miles away, where some of the Prussian troops were stationed under the young Prince Leopold. In just a week, he had traveled over seven hundred miles, starting his journey every morning as early as four o'clock and taking care of a lot of business along the way.

It will be remembered that, in the note which M. Valori accidentally dropped, and which Frederick furtively obtained, the minister was instructed by the French court not to give up Glatz to the Prussian king if he could possibly avoid it. But Frederick had now seized the city, and the region around, by force300 of arms, and held them with a gripe not to be relaxed. Glatz was a Catholic town. In the convent there was an image of the Virgin, whose tawdry robes had become threadbare and faded. The wife of the Austrian commandant had promised the Virgin a new dress if she would keep the Prussians out of the city. Frederick heard of this. As he took possession of the city, with grim humor he assured the Virgin that she should not lose in consequence of the favor she had shown the Prussians. New and costly garments were immediately provided for her at the expense of the Prussian king.

It should be noted that in the note that M. Valori accidentally dropped, which Frederick secretly obtained, the minister received instructions from the French court not to hand over Glatz to the Prussian king if he could help it. However, Frederick had now taken the city and the surrounding area by force and held them firmly. Glatz was a Catholic town. In the convent, there was a statue of the Virgin, whose shabby robes had become worn and faded. The wife of the Austrian commandant had promised the Virgin a new dress if she would keep the Prussians out of the city. Frederick learned of this. As he took control of the city, he mockingly assured the Virgin that she wouldn’t miss out because of the favor she showed to the Prussians. New and expensive garments were quickly provided for her at the expense of the Prussian king.

On the 26th of January Frederick set out from Glatz, with a strong cortége, for Olmütz, far away to the southeast. This place his troops had occupied for a month past. His route led through a chain of mountains, whose bleak and dreary defiles were clogged with drifted snow, and swept by freezing gales. It was a dreadful march, accompanied by many disasters and much suffering.

On January 26th, Frederick left Glatz with a large entourage heading to Olmütz, located far to the southeast. His troops had been stationed there for a month. His journey took him through a range of mountains, where the harsh and gloomy passes were filled with blown snow and buffeted by freezing winds. It was a grueling march, filled with numerous challenges and significant hardship.

General Stille, one of the aids of Frederick on this expedition, says that the king, with his retinue, mounted and in carriages, pushed forward the first day to Landskron. “It was,” he writes, “such a march as I never witnessed before. Through the ice and through the snow, which covered that dreadful chain of mountains between Böhmen and Mähren, we did not arrive till very late. Many of our carriages were broken down, and others were overturned more than once.”63

General Stille, one of Frederick's aides on this expedition, says that the king, along with his entourage, traveled on horseback and in carriages, moving on the first day towards Landskron. “It was,” he writes, “a march unlike anything I had ever seen before. We trudged through the ice and snow that blanketed the terrible mountain range between Bohemia and Moravia, and we didn't arrive until quite late. Many of our carriages broke down, and some were tipped over more than once.”63

Frederick, ever regardless of fatigue and exposure for himself, never spared his followers. It was after midnight of the 28th when the weary column, frostbitten, hungry, and exhausted, reached Olmütz. The king was hospitably entertained in the fine palace of the Catholic bishop, “a little, gouty man,” writes Stille, “about fifty-two years of age, with a countenance open and full of candor.”

Frederick, always indifferent to his own fatigue and hardships, never held back for his followers. It was after midnight on the 28th when the tired group, frostbitten, hungry, and worn out, finally arrived in Olmütz. The king was warmly welcomed in the impressive palace of the Catholic bishop, “a small, gouty man,” writes Stille, “about fifty-two years old, with an open face full of honesty.”

Orders had been issued for all the Prussian troops to be rendezvoused by the 5th of February at Wischau. They were then to march immediately about seventy-five miles west, to Trebitsch, which was but a few miles south of Iglau, the point of attack. Here they were to join the French and Saxon troops. The force thus concentrated would amount to twenty-four thousand Prussian301 troops, twenty thousand Saxons, and five thousand French horsemen. With this army—forty-nine thousand strong—Frederick was to advance, by one short day’s march, upon Iglau, where the Austrian garrison amounted to but ten thousand men.

Orders had been given for all Prussian troops to gather by February 5th at Wischau. They were then to march right away about seventy-five miles west to Trebitsch, which was just a few miles south of Iglau, the target location. There, they were to unite with the French and Saxon troops. The combined force would total twenty-four thousand Prussian troops, twenty thousand Saxons, and five thousand French cavalry. With this army—forty-nine thousand strong—Frederick was set to advance, in just one short day’s march, towards Iglau, where the Austrian garrison only consisted of ten thousand men.

In the mean time, on the 24th of January, Charles Albert, King of Bavaria, through the intrigues of the French minister and the diplomacy of Frederick, was chosen Emperor of Germany. This election Frederick regarded as a great triumph on his part. It was the signal defeat of Austria. Very few of the sons of Adam have passed a more joyless and dreary earthly pilgrimage than was the fortune of Charles Albert. At the time of his election he was forty-five years of age, of moderate stature, polished manners, and merely ordinary abilities. He was suffering from a complication of the most painful disorders. His previous life had been but a series of misfortunes, and during all the rest of his days he was assailed by the storms of adversity. In death alone he found refuge from a life almost without a joy.

In the meantime, on January 24th, Charles Albert, King of Bavaria, was elected Emperor of Germany due to the maneuvers of the French minister and Frederick's diplomacy. Frederick saw this election as a significant victory for himself. It marked a major defeat for Austria. Very few people have had a more joyless and gloomy life than Charles Albert. At the time of his election, he was forty-five years old, of average height, with refined manners and just ordinary abilities. He was dealing with a mix of extremely painful health issues. His life had been nothing but a series of misfortunes, and for the rest of his days, he was battered by the storms of hardship. Only in death did he find peace from a life that seemed devoid of joy.

Charles Albert, who took the title of “the Emperor Charles VII.,” was the son of Maximilian, King of Bavaria, who was ruined at Blenheim, and who, being placed under the ban of the empire, lived for many years a pensioner upon the charity of Louis XIV. Charles was then but seven years of age, a prince by birth, yet homeless, friendless, and in poverty. With varying fortunes, he subsequently married a daughter of the Emperor Joseph. She was a cousin of Maria Theresa. Upon the death of his father in 1726, Charles Albert became King of Bavaria; but he was involved in debt beyond all hope of extrication. The intrigues of Frederick placed upon his wan and wasted brow the imperial crown of Germany. The coronation festivities took place at Frankfort, with great splendor, on the 12th of February, 1742.

Charles Albert, who became known as “Emperor Charles VII,” was the son of Maximilian, the King of Bavaria, who was defeated at Blenheim. After that defeat, he was banned from the empire and lived for many years dependent on the charity of Louis XIV. At that time, Charles was only seven years old—born a prince but homeless, friendless, and in poverty. Over the years, he married a daughter of Emperor Joseph, who was a cousin of Maria Theresa. When his father died in 1726, Charles Albert became King of Bavaria, but he was deeply in debt with no hope of getting out. The scheming of Frederick led to him wearing the imperial crown of Germany, which was ceremoniously bestowed during lavish coronation celebrations in Frankfort on February 12, 1742.

Wilhelmina, who was present, gives a graphic account, with her vivacious pen, of many of the scenes, both tragic and comic, which ensued.

Wilhelmina, who was there, provides a vivid description, with her lively writing, of many of the events, both tragic and funny, that followed.

“Of the coronation itself,” she writes, “though it was truly grand, I will say nothing. The poor emperor could not enjoy it much. He was dying of gout and other painful diseases, and could scarcely stand upon his feet. He spends most of his time302 in bed, courting all manner of German princes. He has managed to lead my margraf into a foolish bargain about raising men for him, which bargain I, on fairly getting sight of it, persuade my margraf to back out of; and, in the end, he does so. The emperor had fallen so ill he was considered even in danger of his life. Poor prince! What a lot he had achieved for himself!”

“About the coronation itself,” she writes, “even though it was truly impressive, I won’t say much. The poor emperor could barely enjoy it. He was suffering from gout and other painful illnesses and could hardly stand. He spends most of his time302 in bed, mingling with all kinds of German princes. He got my margrave into a silly deal about raising troops for him, but when I finally saw it, I convinced my margrave to back out, and, in the end, he did. The emperor had become so ill that he was even thought to be in danger of his life. Poor prince! Look at all he’s accomplished for himself!”

While these coronation splendors were transpiring, Frederick was striving, with all his characteristic enthusiasm, to push forward his Moravian campaign to a successful issue. Inspired by as tireless energies as ever roused a human heart, he was annoyed beyond measure by the want of efficient co-operation on the part of his less zealous allies. Neither the Saxons nor the French could keep pace with his impetuosity. The princes who led the Saxon troops, the petted sons of kings and nobles, were loth to abandon the luxurious indulgences to which they had been accustomed. When they arrived at a capacious castle where they found warm fires, an abundant larder, and sparkling wines, they would linger there many days, decidedly preferring those comforts to campaigning through the blinding, smothering snowstorm, and bivouacking on the bleak and icy plains, swept by the gales of a northern winter. The French were equally averse to these terrible marches, far more to be dreaded than the battle-field.

While these coronation festivities were happening, Frederick was doing his best, with all his usual enthusiasm, to make his Moravian campaign a success. Driven by an unyielding energy that had always inspired humanity, he was incredibly frustrated by the lack of effective cooperation from his less motivated allies. Neither the Saxons nor the French could keep up with his urgency. The princes who led the Saxon troops, pampered sons of kings and nobles, were hesitant to give up the luxurious comforts they were used to. When they arrived at a spacious castle with warm fires, plenty of food, and fine wines, they would stay there for days, clearly preferring those comforts to trudging through the blinding, suffocating snowstorm and camping on the bleak, icy plains battered by the northern winter winds. The French were equally reluctant to endure those grueling marches, far more daunting than the battlefield.

Frederick remonstrated, argued, implored, but all in vain. He was not disposed to allow considerations of humanity, regard for suffering or life, to stand in the way of his ambitious plans. For two months, from February 5th, when Frederick rendezvoused the Prussians at Wischau, until April 5th, he found himself, to his excessive chagrin, unable to accomplish any thing of moment, in consequence of the lukewarmness of his allies. He was annoyed almost beyond endurance. It was indeed important, in a military point of view, that there should be an immediate march upon Iglau. It was certain that the Austrians, forewarned, would soon remove their magazines or destroy them. The utmost expedition was essential to the success of the enterprise.

Frederick protested, argued, and pleaded, but it was all pointless. He wasn't willing to let feelings of humanity or concern for suffering or life interfere with his ambitious plans. For two months, from February 5th, when Frederick met up with the Prussians at Wischau, until April 5th, he found himself, to his great frustration, unable to achieve anything significant because of his allies' lack of enthusiasm. He was irritated almost beyond tolerance. From a military perspective, it was crucial that there be a swift advance on Iglau. It was clear that the Austrians, having been warned, would soon either relocate or destroy their supplies. Speed was vital for the success of the operation.

The young officers in the Saxon army, having disposed their troops in comfortable barracks, had established their own head-quarters in the magnificent castle of Budischau, in the vicinity303 of Trebitsch. “Nothing like this superb mansion,” writes Stille, “is to be seen except in theatres, on the drop-scene of the enchanted castle.” Here these young lords made themselves very comfortable. They had food in abundance, luxuriously served, with the choicest wines. Roaring fires in huge stoves converted, within the walls, winter into genial summer. Here these pleasure-loving nobles, with song, and wine, and such favorites, male and female, as they carried with them, loved to linger.

The young officers in the Saxon army, having set up their troops in cozy barracks, made their headquarters in the stunning castle of Budischau, near Trebitsch. “You won't find anything like this amazing mansion,” writes Stille, “except in theaters, on the backdrop of an enchanted castle.” Here, these young nobles made themselves quite comfortable. They enjoyed plenty of food, served lavishly, along with the finest wines. Roaring fires in large stoves transformed the winter inside those walls into a delightful summer. These pleasure-seeking nobles loved to hang out here, singing, drinking, and entertaining with their favorite companions, both male and female, whom they brought along.

THE YOUNG LORDS OF SAXONY ON A WINTER CAMPAIGN.

At length, however, Frederick succeeded in pushing forward a detachment of his army to seize the magazines and the post he so greatly coveted. The troops marched all night. Toward morning, almost perishing with cold, they built enormous fires.304 Having warmed their numbed and freezing limbs, they pressed on to Iglau, to find it abandoned by the garrison. The Austrian general Lobkowitz had carried away every thing which could be removed, and then had reduced to ashes seventeen magazines, filled with military and commissary stores. The king was exceedingly chagrined by this barren conquest. He was anxious to advance in all directions, to take full possession of Moravia, before the Austrians could send re-enforcements to garrison its fortresses; but the Saxon lords refused to march any farther in this severe winter campaign. Frederick complained to the Saxon king. His Polish majesty sent an angry order to his troops to go forward. Sullenly they obeyed, interposing every obstacle in their power. Some of the leaders threw up their commissions and went home. Frederick, with his impetuous Prussians and his unwilling Saxons, spread over Moravia, levying contributions and seizing the strong places.

Eventually, Frederick managed to push a part of his army forward to take control of the supplies and the position he so desperately wanted. The troops marched through the night. By morning, nearly frozen, they built huge fires.304 After warming their stiff, cold bodies, they continued on to Iglau, only to find it abandoned by the garrison. The Austrian general Lobkowitz had taken away everything he could and had burned down seventeen warehouses filled with military and supply goods. The king was extremely disappointed by this empty victory. He wanted to advance in all directions and fully take over Moravia before the Austrians could send reinforcements to occupy its forts; however, the Saxon lords refused to march any further in this harsh winter campaign. Frederick complained to the Saxon king. His Polish majesty sent an angry order to his troops to move forward. Reluctantly, they complied, putting up every hindrance they could. Some of the leaders resigned their commissions and went home. Frederick, along with his eager Prussians and reluctant Saxons, spread across Moravia, collecting supplies and taking strongholds.

The Saxons, much irritated, were rather more disposed to thwart his plans than to co-operate in them. The Austrian horsemen were vigilant, pouncing upon every unprotected detachment. Frederick marched for the capture of Brünn, the strongest fortress in Moravia. It had a garrison of seven thousand men, under the valiant leader Roth. To arrest the march of Frederick, and leave him shelterless on the plains, the Austrian general laid sixteen villages in ashes. The poor peasants—men, women, and children—foodless and shelterless, were thus cast loose upon the drifted fields. Who can gauge such woes?

The Saxons, quite annoyed, were more inclined to sabotage his plans than to help with them. The Austrian cavalry was alert, attacking every exposed group. Frederick was marching to capture Brünn, the strongest fortress in Moravia. It was defended by seven thousand men, led by the brave Roth. To stop Frederick's advance and leave him exposed on the plains, the Austrian general burned down sixteen villages. The unfortunate peasants—men, women, and children—were left without food or shelter, forced out into the desolate fields. Who can measure such suffering?

Frederick, finding that he could not rely upon the Saxons, sent to Silesia for re-enforcements of his own troops. Brünn could not be taken without siege artillery. He was capturing Moravia for the King of Poland. Frederick dispatched a courier to his Polish majesty at Dresden, requesting him immediately to forward the siege guns. The reply of the king, who was voluptuously lounging in his palaces, was, “I can not meet the expense of the carriage.” Frederick contemptuously remarked, “He has just purchased a green diamond which would have carried them thither and back again.” The Prussian king sent for siege artillery of his own, drew his lines close around Brünn, and urged Chevalier De Saxe, general of the Saxon horse, to co-operate with him energetically in battering the city into a surrender.305 The chevalier interposed one obstacle, and another, and another. At last he replied, showing his dispatches, “I have orders to retire from this business altogether, and join the French at Prague.”

Frederick, realizing he couldn't depend on the Saxons, called for reinforcements from Silesia. He needed siege artillery to capture Brünn. He was taking Moravia for the King of Poland. Frederick sent a messenger to his Polish majesty in Dresden, asking him to send the siege equipment right away. The king, who was enjoying his luxurious life in his palaces, replied, “I can’t afford the shipping costs.” Frederick disdainfully noted, “He just bought a green diamond that could have covered the cost for the trip there and back.” The Prussian king requested his own siege artillery, tightened his encirclement around Brünn, and urged Chevalier De Saxe, the general of the Saxon cavalry, to work with him to pressure the city into surrender. The chevalier kept throwing up one obstacle after another. Finally, he responded, showing his orders, “I’ve been instructed to completely pull back from this and join the French at Prague.”305

Frederick declares, in his history, that never were tidings more welcome to him than these. He had embarked in the enterprise for the conquest of Moravia with the allies. He could not, without humiliation, withdraw. But, now that the ally, in whose behalf he assumed to be fighting, had abandoned him, he could, without dishonor, relinquish the field. Leaving the Saxons to themselves, with many bitter words of reproach, he countermanded his order for Silesian re-enforcements, assembled his troops at Wischau, and then, by a rapid march through Olmütz, returned to his strong fortresses in the north.

Frederick states in his history that he had never received more welcome news than this. He had joined the effort to conquer Moravia alongside his allies. He couldn't back down without feeling humiliated. However, now that the ally he was supposed to be fighting for had abandoned him, he could step back from the battlefield without losing honor. After leaving the Saxons to fend for themselves, along with many harsh words of blame, he canceled his request for reinforcements from Silesia, gathered his troops at Wischau, and quickly marched through Olmütz to return to his strongholds in the north.

The Saxons were compelled to a precipitate retreat. Their march was long, harassing, and full of suffering, from the severe cold of those latitudes, and from the assaults of the fierce Pandours, every where swarming around. Villages were burned, and maddened men wreaked direful vengeance on each other. Scarcely eight thousand of their number, a frostbitten, starving, emaciate band, reached the borders of Saxony. Curses loud and deep were heaped upon the name of Frederick. His Polish majesty, though naturally good-natured, was greatly exasperated in view of the conduct of the Prussian king in forcing the troops into the severities of such a campaign. Frederick himself was also equally indignant with Augustus for his want of co-operation. The French minister, Valori, met him on his return from these disasters. He says that his look was ferocious and dark; that his laugh was bitter and sardonic; that a vein of suppressed rage, mockery, and contempt pervaded every word he uttered.

The Saxons were forced into a hasty retreat. Their march was long, exhausting, and full of suffering from the biting cold of that region and from the relentless attacks of the fierce Pandours, who swarmed all around them. Villages were set on fire, and enraged men unleashed terrible vengeance on each other. Only about eight thousand of them, a frostbitten, starving, and emaciated group, made it to the borders of Saxony. They hurled loud and deep curses at the name of Frederick. His Polish majesty, despite being naturally good-natured, was extremely angry about the Prussian king's actions in pushing the troops into such a harsh campaign. Frederick himself was equally furious with Augustus for his lack of cooperation. The French minister, Valori, encountered him on his return from these disasters. He noted that Frederick's expression was ferocious and dark; his laugh was bitter and sardonic; and that a vein of suppressed rage, mockery, and contempt ran through every word he spoke.

Frederick withdrew his troops into strong cantonments in the valley of the upper Elbe. This beautiful river takes its rise in romantic chasms, among the ridges and spurs of the Giant Mountains, on the southeastern borders of Silesia. Here the Prussian army was distributed in small towns along a line following the windings of the stream, about forty miles in length. All the troops could be concentrated in forty-eight hours. The encampments faced the south, with the Elbe behind them. At some little distance north of the river, safe from surprise, the magazines were stationed. The mountains of Bohemia rose sublimely306 in the distant background. In a letter to M. Jordan, under date of Chrudim, May 5th, 1742, Frederick expresses his views of this profitless campaign in the following terms:

Frederick pulled his troops back into secure camps in the valley of the upper Elbe. This lovely river starts in scenic gorges among the ridges and spurs of the Giant Mountains, on the southeastern edge of Silesia. Here, the Prussian army was spread out in small towns along a line that followed the twists of the stream, about forty miles long. All the troops could be gathered in forty-eight hours. The camps faced south, with the Elbe behind them. A bit north of the river, safe from surprise attacks, the supply depots were set up. The mountains of Bohemia rose majestically in the distant background. In a letter to M. Jordan, dated Chrudim, May 5th, 1742, Frederick shared his thoughts on this unproductive campaign:

MAP ILLUSTRATING THE CAMPAIGN IN MORAVIA.

“Moravia, which is a very bad country, could not be held, owing to want of provisions. The town of Brünn could not be taken because the Saxons had no cannon. When you wish to enter a town, you must first make a hole to get in by. Besides, the country has been reduced to such a state that the enemy can not subsist in it, and you will soon see him leave it. There is your little military lesson. I would not have you at a loss what to think of our operations, or what to say, should other people talk of them in your presence.”

“Moravia, which is not a great place, couldn’t be held because there wasn’t enough food. The city of Brünn couldn’t be captured because the Saxons didn’t have any cannons. When you want to enter a city, you have to create an opening first. Besides, the area has been worn down so badly that the enemy can’t survive here, and you’ll soon see them leave. There’s your little military lesson. I don’t want you to be confused about what to think of our actions or what to say if others discuss them in front of you.”

307 Elsewhere, Frederick, speaking of these two winter campaigns, says: “Winter campaigns are bad, and should always be avoided, except in cases of necessity. The best army in the world is liable to be ruined by them. I myself have made more winter campaigns than any general of this age. But there were reasons. In 1740 there were hardly above two Austrian regiments in Silesia, at the death of the Emperor Charles VI. Being determined to assert my right to that duchy, I had to try it at once, in winter, and carry the war, if possible, to the banks of the Neisse. Had I waited till spring, we must have begun the war between Crossen and Glogau. What was now to be gained by one march would then have cost us three or four campaigns. A sufficient reason, this, for campaigning in winter. If I did not succeed in the winter campaigns of 1742, a campaign which I made to deliver Moravia, then overrun by Austrians, it was because the French acted like fools, and the Saxons like traitors.”64

307 Elsewhere, Frederick discusses these two winter campaigns, saying: “Winter campaigns are tough and should always be avoided unless absolutely necessary. Even the best army can be destroyed by them. I myself have conducted more winter campaigns than any general of my time. But there were reasons. In 1740, there were barely two Austrian regiments in Silesia at the time of Emperor Charles VI's death. I was determined to assert my claim to that duchy, so I had to act quickly, in winter, and try to move the war to the banks of the Neisse. If I had waited until spring, we would have had to start the war between Crossen and Glogau. What could be achieved with one march now would have taken us three or four campaigns then. That’s a good reason for winter campaigning. If I didn’t succeed in the winter campaigns of 1742, which I undertook to free Moravia from the Austrians, it was because the French acted foolishly and the Saxons betrayed us.”64

Frederick, establishing his head-quarters at Chrudim, did not suppose the Austrians would think of moving upon him until the middle of June. Not till then would the grass in that cold region afford forage. But Maria Theresa was inspired by energies fully equal to those of her renowned assailant. Undismayed by the powerful coalition against her, she sent Prince Charles, her brother-in-law, early in May, at the head of an army thirty thousand strong, to advance by a secret, rapid flank march, and seize the Prussian magazines beyond the Elbe.

Frederick, setting up his headquarters in Chrudim, believed the Austrians wouldn’t consider moving against him until mid-June. It wouldn’t be until then that the grass in that cold area would provide grazing for their troops. However, Maria Theresa was energized and motivated, matching the determination of her famous opponent. Undeterred by the powerful coalition against her, she sent Prince Charles, her brother-in-law, at the beginning of May with an army of thirty thousand to make a quick, secret flank maneuver and capture the Prussian supply depots beyond the Elbe.

The ever-wakeful eye of Frederick detected the movement. His beautiful encampment at Chrudim had lasted but two days. Instantly couriers were dispatched in all directions to rendezvous the Prussian troops on a vast plain in the vicinity of Chrudim. But a few hours elapsed ere every available man in the Prussian ranks was on the march. This movement rendered it necessary for Prince Charles to concentrate the Austrian army also. The field upon which these hosts were gathering for battle was an undulating prairie, almost treeless, with here and there a few hamlets of clustered peasant cottages scattered around.

The ever-watchful eye of Frederick noticed the movement. His beautiful camp at Chrudim had only lasted two days. Immediately, messengers were sent out in all directions to gather the Prussian troops on a large plain near Chrudim. It took just a few hours before every available soldier in the Prussian ranks was on the move. This action made it necessary for Prince Charles to gather the Austrian army as well. The area where these forces were assembling for battle was a rolling prairie, almost bare of trees, with a few clusters of peasant cottages scattered here and there.

308

308

FREDERICK CONCENTRATING HIS ARMY AT CHRUDIM.

It was a serene, cloudless May morning when Frederick rode upon a small eminence to view the approach of his troops, and to form them in battle array. General Stille, who was an eye-witness of the scene, describes the spectacle as one of the most beautiful and magnificent which was ever beheld. The transparent atmosphere, the balmy air, transmitting with wonderful accuracy the most distant sounds, the smooth, wide-spreading prairie, the hamlets, to which distance lent enchantment, surmounted by the towers or spires of the churches, the winding columns of infantry and cavalry, their polished weapons flashing309 in the sunlight, the waving of silken and gilded banners, while bugle peals and bursts of military airs floated now faintly, and now loudly, upon the ear, the whole scene being bathed in the rays of the most brilliant of spring mornings—all together presented war in its brightest hues, divested of every thing revolting.65

It was a calm, clear May morning when Frederick rode up a small hill to watch his troops approach and get them ready for battle. General Stille, who witnessed the scene, described it as one of the most beautiful and magnificent sights ever seen. The clear atmosphere and refreshing air carried distant sounds clearly, the smooth, expansive prairie, the charming hamlets that distance made seem magical, topped with church towers and spires, the flowing lines of infantry and cavalry, their shiny weapons glinting in the sunlight, the fluttering silken and gilded banners, while bugle calls and bursts of military music floated softly and then loudly in the air, all under the radiant light of a brilliant spring morning—together, they presented war in its most glorious form, stripped of everything horrifying.

There were nearly thirty thousand men, infantry and cavalry, thus assembling under the banners of Frederick for battle. They were in as perfect state of drill as troops have ever attained, and were armed with the most potent implements of war which that age could furnish. The king was visibly affected by the spectacle. Whether humane considerations touched his heart, or merely poetic emotion moved him, we can not tell. But he was well aware that within a few hours not merely hundreds, but thousands of those men, torn by shot and shell, would be prostrate in their blood upon the plain; and he could not but know that for all the carnage and the suffering, he, above all others, would be responsible at the bar of God.

There were nearly thirty thousand men, both infantry and cavalry, gathered under Frederick's banners for battle. They were in as perfect a state of training as troops have ever achieved and were equipped with the most powerful weapons of war that era could provide. The king was visibly moved by the sight. Whether his feelings were driven by compassion or just a sense of poetic emotion, we can't be sure. But he was fully aware that within a few hours, not just hundreds, but thousands of those men, injured by bullets and explosions, would be lying in their blood on the ground; and he knew that for all the bloodshed and suffering, he alone would be held accountable before God.

“The king,” writes Stille, “though fatigued, would not rest satisfied with reports or distant view. Personally he made the tour of the whole camp, to see that every thing was right, and posted the pickets himself before retiring.”

“The king,” writes Stille, “even though tired, wouldn’t settle for just hearing reports or seeing things from afar. He personally toured the entire camp to make sure everything was in order and set up the pickets himself before going to bed.”


CHAPTER XVIII.
Frederick Victorious.

The Battle of Chotusitz.—Letter to Jordan.—Results of the Battle.—Secret Negotiations.—The Treaty of Breslau.—Entrance into Frankfort.—Treachery of Louis XV.—Results of the Silesian Campaigns.—Panegyrics of Voltaire.—Imperial Character of Maria Theresa.—Her Grief over the Loss of Silesia.—Anecdote of Senora Barbarina.—Duplicity of both Frederick and Voltaire.—Gayety in Berlin.—Straitened Circumstances.—Unamiability of Frederick.

The Battle of Chotusitz.—Letter to Jordan.—Results of the Battle.—Secret Negotiations.—The Treaty of Breslau.—Entering Frankfurt.—Betrayal by Louis XV.—Outcomes of the Silesian Campaigns.—Praise from Voltaire.—The Imperial Nature of Maria Theresa.—Her Sadness Over Losing Silesia.—Anecdote of Senora Barbarina.—Deceitfulness of both Frederick and Voltaire.—Joyfulness in Berlin.—Financial Difficulties.—Unfriendliness of Frederick.

It was the aim of Prince Charles to get between Frederick’s encampment at Chrudim and his French allies, under Marshal Broglio, at Prague. When discovered by Frederick, the Austrian army was on the rapid march along a line about fifteen miles nearly southwest of Chrudim. It thus threatened to cut Frederick’s communication with Prague, which was on the Moldau, about sixty miles west of the Prussian encampment. The310 forces now gathering for a decisive battle were nearly equal. The reader would not be interested in the description of the strategic and tactical movements of the next two days. The leaders of both parties, with great military sagacity, were accumulating and concentrating their forces for a conflict, which, under the circumstances, would doubtless prove ruinous to the one or the other. A battle upon that open plain, with equal forces, was of the nature of a duel, in which one or the other of the combatants must fall.

It was Prince Charles's goal to position himself between Frederick’s camp at Chrudim and his French allies, led by Marshal Broglio, in Prague. When Frederick became aware of this, the Austrian army was rapidly marching along a route about fifteen miles nearly southwest of Chrudim. This maneuver threatened to sever Frederick’s communication with Prague, which was located on the Moldau, about sixty miles west of the Prussian camp. The310 forces gathering for a decisive battle were almost equal. Readers wouldn’t be interested in the details of the strategic and tactical movements over the next two days. The leaders of both sides, with keen military insight, were building up and concentrating their forces for a confrontation that, given the situation, would likely be disastrous for one side or the other. A battle on that open plain, with evenly matched forces, resembled a duel where one of the fighters would inevitably fall.

On the morning of the 17th of May Frederick’s army was drawn out in battle array, facing south, near the village of Chotusitz, about fifteen miles west of Chrudim. Almost within cannon-shot of him, upon the same plain, near the village of Czaslau, facing north, was the army of Prince Charles. The field was like a rolling western prairie, with one or two sluggish streams running through it; and here and there marshes, which neither infantry nor cavalry could traverse. The accompanying map will give the reader an idea of the nature of the ground and the position of the hostile forces.

On the morning of May 17th, Frederick’s army was lined up for battle, facing south, close to the village of Chotusitz, about fifteen miles west of Chrudim. Almost within cannon range, on the same plain near the village of Czaslau, the army of Prince Charles faced north. The field resembled a rolling western prairie, with one or two slow-moving streams running through it, and occasional marshes that neither infantry nor cavalry could cross. The accompanying map will help the reader understand the terrain and the positions of the opposing forces.

BATTLE OF CHOTUSITZ.

BATTLE OF CHOTUSITZ.

a. Prussian Camp. b b. Prussian Infantry. c c. Prussian Cavalry. d. Position of Buddenbrock. e e. Austrian Infantry. f f. Austrian Cavalry. g. Austrian Hussars.

a. Prussian Camp. b. Prussian Infantry. c. Prussian Cavalry. d. Position of Buddenbrock. e. Austrian Infantry. f. Austrian Cavalry. g. Austrian Hussars.

The sun rose clear and cloudless over the plain, soon to be crimsoned with blood and darkened by the smoke of battle. The Prussians took position in accordance with very minute directions given to the young Prince Leopold by Frederick. It was manifest to the most unskilled observer that the storm of311 battle would rage over many miles, as the infantry charged to and fro; as squadrons of strongly-mounted cavalry swept the field; as bullets, balls, and shells were hurled in all directions from the potent enginery of war.

The sun rose bright and clear over the plain, soon to be stained with blood and filled with the smoke of battle. The Prussians took their positions according to the detailed instructions given to young Prince Leopold by Frederick. It was obvious to even the most inexperienced observer that the battle would span many miles, with infantry charging back and forth, squadrons of powerful cavalry sweeping across the field, and bullets, cannonballs, and shells flying in all directions from the formidable machines of war.

About seven o’clock in the morning the king ascended an eminence, and carefully scanned the field, where sixty thousand men were facing each other, soon to engage in mutual slaughter. There were two spectacles which arrested his attention. The one was the pomp, and pageantry, and panoply of war, with its serried ranks, its prancing steeds, its flashing armor, its waving banners, its inspiriting bugle-peals—a scene in itself beautiful and sublime in the highest conceivable degree.

About seven o’clock in the morning, the king climbed a hill and looked over the battlefield, where sixty thousand men stood ready to fight each other. Two sights caught his eye. One was the grandeur, show, and gear of war, with its tight ranks, prancing horses, shining armor, waving banners, and inspiring bugle calls—a scene that was beautiful and awe-inspiring to the highest degree.

But there was another picture which met the eye of the king very different in its aspect. We know not whether it at all touched his heart. It was that of the poor peasants, with their mothers, their wives, their children, hurrying from their hamlets in all directions, in the utmost dismay. Grandmothers tottered beneath the burden of infant children. Fathers and mothers struggled on with the household goods they were striving to rescue from impending ruin. The cry of maidens and children reached the ear as they fled from the tramp of the war-horse and the approaching carnage of the death-dealing artillery.

But there was another scene that caught the king's eye, and it looked very different. We don't know if it touched his heart at all. It was the sight of the poor peasants, along with their mothers, wives, and children, rushing from their villages in every direction, filled with panic. Grandmothers struggled to carry infants. Fathers and mothers fought to carry whatever belongings they could salvage from the looming disaster. The cries of young women and children filled the air as they ran from the thunder of the war-horses and the impending destruction of the deadly artillery.

Frederick, having carefully scanned the Austrian lines for an instant or two, gave the signal, and all his batteries opened their thunders. Under cover of that storm of iron, several thousand of the cavalry, led by the veteran General Bredow, deployed from behind some eminences, and first at a gentle trot, and then upon the most impetuous run, with flashing sabres, hurled themselves upon the left wing of the Austrian lines. The ground was dry and sandy, and a prodigious cloud of dust enveloped them. For a moment the tornado, vital with human energies, swept on, apparently unobstructed. The first line of the Austrian horse was met, crushed, annihilated. But the second stood as the rock breasts the waves, horse against horse, rider against rider, sabre against sabre. Nothing met the eye but one vast eddying whirlpool of dust, as if writhing in volcanic energies, while here and there the flash of fire and the gleam of steel flickered madly through it.

Frederick, having carefully scanned the Austrian lines for a moment, gave the signal, and all his batteries opened fire. Amid that storm of iron, several thousand cavalry, led by the experienced General Bredow, emerged from behind some hills, initially at a gentle trot and then charging forward at full speed with glinting sabers, launching themselves at the left wing of the Austrian lines. The ground was dry and sandy, creating a massive cloud of dust around them. For a brief moment, the whirlwind, energized by human spirit, surged forward, seemingly unstoppable. The first line of Austrian cavalry was met, crushed, obliterated. But the second line stood firm like a rock against the waves, horse against horse, rider against rider, saber against saber. All that could be seen was a vast swirling whirlpool of dust, twisting with volcanic energy, while here and there, flashes of fire and the gleam of steel flickered wildly through it.

The battle, thus commenced, continued to rage for four long312 hours, with all its demon energies, its blood, its wounds, its oaths, its shrieks, its death; on the right wing, on the left wing, in the centre; till some ten or twelve thousand, some accounts say more, of these poor peasant soldiers lay prostrate upon the plain, crushed by the hoof, torn by the bullet, gashed by the sabre. Many were dead. Many were dying. Many had received wounds which would cripple them until they should totter into their graves. At the close of these four hours of almost superhuman effort, the villages all around in flames, the Austrians slowly, sullenly retired from the contest. Prince Charles, having lost nearly seven thousand men, with his remaining forces breathless, exhausted, bleeding, retired through Czaslau, and vanished over the horizon to the southwest. Frederick, with his forces almost equally breathless, exhausted, and bleeding, and counting five thousand of his soldiers strewn over the plain, in death or wounds, remained master of the field. Such was the famous battle of Chotusitz.

The battle, once kicked off, raged for four long312 hours, full of its chaotic energy, blood, wounds, vows, screams, and death; on the right wing, on the left wing, in the center; until about ten or twelve thousand, with some reports saying more, of these poor peasant soldiers lay fallen on the ground, crushed by hooves, hit by bullets, slashed by sabers. Many were dead. Many were dying. Many had injuries that would haunt them until they shuffled into their graves. After these four hours of almost superhuman effort, with the villages all around in flames, the Austrians slowly, grudgingly pulled back from the fight. Prince Charles, having lost nearly seven thousand men, with his remaining troops breathless, exhausted, and bleeding, retreated through Czaslau and disappeared over the horizon to the southwest. Frederick, with his forces almost just as breathless, exhausted, and bleeding, and counting five thousand of his soldiers scattered across the field, either dead or wounded, remained the victor of the battlefield. Such was the famous battle of Chotusitz.

In the following terms, Frederick, the moment the battle was over, announced his victory, not to his wife, but to his friend Jordan:

In these terms, Frederick, as soon as the battle ended, proclaimed his victory, not to his wife, but to his friend Jordan:

“From the Field of Battle of Chotusitz, May 17, 1742.

“From the Battlefield of Chotusitz, May 17, 1742.

Dear Jordan,—I must tell you, as gayly as I can, that we have beaten the enemy soundly, and that we are all pretty well after it. Poor Rothenburg is wounded in the breast and in the arm, but, as it is hoped, without danger. Adieu. You will be happy, I think, at the good news I send you. My compliments to Cæsarion.”66

Dear Jordan,—I’m happy to let you know, as cheerfully as possible, that we’ve defeated the enemy decisively, and we’re all doing pretty well afterward. Unfortunately, Rothenburg has been injured in the chest and arm, but it’s hoped that he will recover. Goodbye. I think you’ll be glad to hear this good news. Please send my regards to Cæsarion. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

Frederick did not pursue the Austrians after this victory. Nine acres of ground were required to bury the dead. He rented this land from the proprietor for twenty-five years. His alienation from his allies was such that, without regard to them, he was disposed to make peace with Austria upon the best terms he could for himself. England also, alarmed in view of the increasing supremacy of France, was so anxious to detach Frederick, with his invincible troops, from the French alliance, that the British cabinet urged Maria Theresa to make any sacrifice whatever that might be necessary to secure peace with Prussia. Frederick,313 influenced by such considerations, buried the illustrious Austrian dead with the highest marks of military honor, and treated with marked consideration his distinguished prisoners of war.

Frederick didn’t chase the Austrians after this victory. He needed nine acres of land to bury the dead and rented it from the owner for twenty-five years. His distance from his allies was so great that he was inclined to make peace with Austria on the best terms he could negotiate for himself. England, concerned about the growing power of France, was eager to pull Frederick and his unbeatable troops away from the French alliance. The British government urged Maria Theresa to make any sacrifice necessary to secure peace with Prussia. Influenced by these factors, Frederick buried the distinguished Austrian dead with the utmost military honor and treated his notable prisoners of war with great respect.313

Secret negotiations were immediately opened at Breslau, in Silesia, between England, Austria, and Prussia. Maria Theresa, harassed by the entreaties of her cabinet and by the importunities of the British court, consented to all that Frederick demanded.

Secret talks quickly began in Breslau, Silesia, among England, Austria, and Prussia. Maria Theresa, pressured by her advisors and the constant requests from the British court, agreed to everything Frederick asked for.

The French, who, through their shrewd embassador, kept themselves informed of all that was transpiring, were quite alarmed in view of the approaching accommodation between Prussia and Austria. It is said that Frederick, on the 6th of June, in reply to the earnest remonstrances of the French minister, Marshal Belleisle, against his withdrawal from the alliance, frankly said to him,

The French, who, through their savvy ambassador, stayed updated on everything happening, were quite worried about the upcoming agreement between Prussia and Austria. It’s reported that Frederick, on June 6th, in response to the French minister Marshal Belleisle’s strong objections to his departure from the alliance, openly told him,

“All that I ever wanted, more than I ever demanded, Austria now offers me. Can any one blame me that I close such an alliance as ours all along has been, when such terms are presented to me as Austria now proposes?”

“All that I ever wanted, even more than I ever asked for, Austria now offers me. Can anyone blame me for sealing our alliance, which has always existed, when such terms are being presented to me by Austria now?”

On the 15th of June Frederick gave a grand dinner to his generals at his head-quarters. In an after-dinner speech he said to them,

On June 15th, Frederick hosted a lavish dinner for his generals at his headquarters. During an after-dinner speech, he addressed them,

“Gentlemen, I announce to you that, as I never wished to oppress the Queen of Hungary, I have formed the resolution of agreeing with that princess, and accepting the proposals she has made me, in satisfaction of my rights.”

“Gentlemen, I want to let you know that, since I never intended to oppress the Queen of Hungary, I have decided to reach an agreement with her and accept the proposals she has put forth to address my rights.”

Toasts were then drank with great enthusiasm to the health of “Maria Theresa, Queen of Hungary,” to “the queen’s consort, Francis, Grand-duke of Lorraine;” and universal and cordial was the response of applause when the toast was proposed “to the brave Prince Charles.”

Toasts were then raised with great enthusiasm to the health of “Maria Theresa, Queen of Hungary,” to “the queen’s consort, Francis, Grand Duke of Lorraine,” and everyone responded with loud applause when the toast was made “to the brave Prince Charles.”

The treaty of Breslau was signed on the 11th of June, and ratified at Berlin on the 28th of July. By this treaty, Silesia, Lower and Upper, was ceded to “Frederick and his heirs for evermore,” while Frederick withdrew from the French alliance, and entered into friendly relations with her Hungarian majesty. Immediately after the settlement of this question, Frederick, cantoning his troops in Silesia, returned to Berlin. Elate with victory314 and accompanied by a magnificent suite, the young conqueror hastened home, over green fields and beneath a summer’s sun. Keenly he enjoyed his triumph, greeted with the enthusiastic acclaim of the people in all the towns and villages through which he passed.67 At Frankfort-on-the-Oder, where a fair was in operation, the king stopped for a few hours. Vast crowds, which had been drawn to the place by the fair, lined the highway for a long distance on both sides, eager to see the victor who had aggrandized Prussia by adding a large province to its realms.

The Treaty of Breslau was signed on June 11th and ratified in Berlin on July 28th. This treaty granted Lower and Upper Silesia to “Frederick and his heirs forever,” while Frederick stepped away from the French alliance and began friendly relations with her Hungarian majesty. Once this issue was settled, Frederick stationed his troops in Silesia and returned to Berlin. Filled with joy from his victory and accompanied by a grand entourage, the young conqueror hurried home across lush fields under the summer sun. He relished his triumph, welcomed by the enthusiastic cheers of the people in all the towns and villages he passed through. At Frankfort-on-the-Oder, where a fair was taking place, the king paused for a few hours. Huge crowds, drawn to the fair, lined the road for a long stretch on both sides, eager to catch a glimpse of the victor who had expanded Prussia by adding a large province to its territory.314

“His majesty’s entrance into Frankfort,” writes M. Bielfeld, who accompanied him, “although very triumphant, was far from ostentatious. We passed like lightning before the eyes of the spectators, and were so covered with dust that it was difficult to distinguish the color of our coats and the features of our faces. We made some purchases at Frankfort, and the next day arrived safely in Berlin, where the king was received with the acclamations of his people.”68

“His majesty’s arrival in Frankfurt,” writes M. Bielfeld, who was with him, “was very impressive, but not showy at all. We rushed by like a flash in front of the spectators, and we were so covered in dust that it was hard to see the color of our coats and the details of our faces. We did some shopping in Frankfurt, and the next day we got to Berlin safely, where the king was welcomed with cheers from his people.”68

If we can rely upon the testimony of Frederick, an incident occurred at this time which showed that the French court was as intriguing and unprincipled as was his Prussian majesty. It is quite evident that the Austrian court also was not animated by a very high sense of honor.

If we can trust Frederick's account, there was an incident around this time that revealed the French court was just as scheming and unscrupulous as his Prussian majesty. It's clear that the Austrian court also wasn't motivated by a strong sense of honor.

After the battle of Chotusitz, Frederick called upon General Pallant, an Austrian officer, who was wounded and a prisoner. In the course of the conversation, General Pallant stated that France was ready at any moment to betray his Prussian majesty, and that, if he would give him six days’ time, he would furnish him with documentary proof. A courier was instantly dispatched to Vienna. He soon returned with a letter from Cardinal Fleury, the prime minister of Louis XV., addressed to Maria Theresa, informing her that, if she would give up Bohemia to the emperor, France would guarantee to her Silesia. Frederick, though guilty of precisely the same treachery himself, read the document with indignation, and assumed to be as much amazed at the perfidy as he could have been had he been an honest man.

After the battle of Chotusitz, Frederick summoned General Pallant, an Austrian officer who had been wounded and captured. During their conversation, General Pallant mentioned that France was ready to betray his Prussian majesty at any moment, and that if he was given six days, he could provide proof. A courier was immediately sent to Vienna. He quickly returned with a letter from Cardinal Fleury, the prime minister of Louis XV., addressed to Maria Theresa, informing her that if she surrendered Bohemia to the emperor, France would guarantee Silesia to her. Frederick, despite being guilty of the same betrayal himself, read the document with outrage and pretended to be as shocked by the treachery as if he were an honest man.

315 “The cardinal,” he said, “takes me for a fool. He wishes to betray me. I will try and prevent him.”

315 “The cardinal,” he said, “thinks I’m an idiot. He wants to betray me. I’ll do my best to stop him.”

The French marshal, Belleisle, alarmed by the report that Frederick was entering into a treaty of peace with Austria, hastened to the Prussian camp to ascertain the truth or falsehood of the rumor. Frederick, emboldened by the document he had in his pocket, was very frank.

The French marshal, Belleisle, worried by the news that Frederick was negotiating a peace treaty with Austria, rushed to the Prussian camp to find out whether the rumor was true or false. Frederick, feeling confident with the document he had on him, was very open.

“I have prescribed,” he said, “the conditions of peace to the Queen of Hungary. She accepts them. Having, therefore, all that I want, I make peace. All the world in my situation would do the same.”

“I’ve laid out the terms for peace to the Queen of Hungary. She agrees to them. So, since I have everything I need, I’m making peace. Anyone in my position would do the same.”

“Is it possible, sire,” Marshal Belleisle replied, “that you can dare to abandon the best of your allies, and to deceive so illustrious a monarch as the King of France?”

“Is it possible, sir,” Marshal Belleisle replied, “that you would actually abandon your best allies and deceive such a distinguished monarch as the King of France?”

“And you, sir,” responded the king, with an air of great disdain, at the same time placing in his hand the cardinal’s letter, “do you dare to talk to me in this manner?”

“And you, sir,” the king replied, looking at him with great disdain, while handing him the cardinal’s letter, “do you really think you can speak to me like this?”

The marshal glanced his eye over the document, and retired, overwhelmed with confusion. Thus ended the alliance between Prussia and France. “Each party,” writes Frederick, “wished to be more cunning than the other.”69

The marshal looked over the document and stepped back, feeling completely confused. This was the end of the alliance between Prussia and France. “Each side,” Frederick writes, “wanted to outsmart the other.”69

In the following terms, Frederick correctly sums up the incidents of the two Silesian campaigns:

In the following terms, Frederick accurately summarizes the events of the two Silesian campaigns:

“Thus was Silesia reunited to the dominions of Prussia. Two years of war sufficed for the conquest of this important province. The treasure which the late king had left was nearly exhausted. But it is a cheap purchase, where whole provinces are bought for seven or eight millions of crowns. The union of circumstances at the moment peculiarly favored this enterprise. It was necessary for it that France should allow itself to be drawn into the war; that Russia should be attacked by Sweden; that, from timidity, the Hanoverians and Saxons should remain inactive; that the successes of the Prussians should be uninterrupted; and that the King of England, the enemy of Prussia, should become, in spite of himself, the instrument of its aggrandizement. What, however, contributed the most to this conquest was an army which had been formed for twenty-two years, by means of a discipline admirable in itself, and superior to the troops of the316 rest of Europe. Generals, also, who were true patriots, wise and incorruptible ministers, and, finally, a certain good fortune which often accompanies youth, and often deserts a more advanced age.”70

“Thus, Silesia was reunited with Prussia's territories. Two years of war were enough to conquer this important region. The treasure left by the late king was nearly gone. But it’s a small price to pay when entire provinces can be bought for seven or eight million crowns. The circumstances at that moment were particularly favorable for this venture. It required France to be drawn into the war, Sweden to attack Russia, the Hanoverians and Saxons to remain inactive out of fear, the Prussians to achieve uninterrupted successes, and the King of England, Prussia’s enemy, to unwittingly become a tool for its expansion. What contributed most to this conquest was an army that had been built up over twenty-two years, featuring a discipline that was impressive in its own right and superior to the soldiers of the rest of Europe. There were also generals who were true patriots, wise and incorruptible ministers, and finally, a certain good fortune that often accompanies youth and often abandons those who are older.”70

There was no end to the panegyrics which Voltaire, in his correspondence with Frederick, now lavished upon him. He greeted him with the title of Frederick the Great.

There was no end to the praise that Voltaire, in his letters to Frederick, now showered upon him. He referred to him as Frederick the Great.

“How glorious,” he exclaimed, “is my king, the youngest of kings, and the grandest! A king who carries in the one hand an all-conquering sword, but in the other a blessed olive-branch, and is the arbiter of Europe for peace or war.”

“How glorious,” he exclaimed, “is my king, the youngest of kings, and the greatest! A king who holds in one hand a conquering sword, but in the other a blessed olive branch, and is the judge of Europe for peace or war.”

Frederick, having obtained all that, for the present, he could hope to obtain, deemed it for his interest to attempt to promote the peace of Europe. His realms needed consolidating, his army recruiting, his treasury replenishing. But he found it much easier to stir up the elements of strife than to allay them.

Frederick, having gotten everything he could for now, thought it would be in his best interest to try to promote peace in Europe. His territories needed to be united, his army needed to be strengthened, and his treasury needed to be filled. However, he found it much easier to ignite conflict than to calm it down.

His withdrawal from the French alliance removed the menace from the English Hanoverian possession. George II. eagerly sent an army of sixty thousand men to the aid of Maria Theresa against France, and freely opened to her his purse. The French were defeated every where. They were driven from Prague in one of the most disastrous wintry retreats of blood and misery over which the demon of war ever gloated. The powerless, penniless emperor, the creature of France, who had neither purse nor army, was driven, a fugitive and a vagabond, from his petty realm of Bavaria, and was exposed to humiliation, want, and insult.

His withdrawal from the French alliance removed the threat from the English Hanoverian territory. George II eagerly sent an army of sixty thousand men to help Maria Theresa against France and generously offered her financial support. The French were defeated everywhere. They were forced out of Prague in one of the most disastrous winter retreats filled with blood and suffering that the horrors of war ever reveled in. The powerless, broke emperor, a puppet of France, who had neither money nor army, was chased away, a refugee and wanderer, from his small kingdom of Bavaria, facing humiliation, hunger, and insult.

Maria Theresa was developing character which attracted the admiration of Europe. She seriously contemplated taking command of her armies herself. She loved Duke Francis, her husband, treated him very tenderly, and was anxious to confer upon him honor; but by nature vastly his superior, instinctively she assumed the command. She led; he followed. She was a magnificent rider. Her form was the perfection of grace. Her beautiful, pensive, thoughtful face was tanned by the weather. All hearts throbbed as, on a spirited charger, she sometimes swept before the ranks of the army, with her gorgeous retinue, appearing and disappearing like a meteor. She was as devout as she317 was brave, winning the homage of all Catholic hearts. We know not where, in the long list of sovereigns, to point to man or woman of more imperial energies, of more exalted worth.

Maria Theresa was developing a character that drew admiration from all over Europe. She seriously considered taking command of her armies herself. She loved her husband, Duke Francis, treated him very affectionately, and wanted to give him honor; but by nature, she was far superior to him, and she instinctively took charge. She led, and he followed. She was an excellent rider. Her posture was the epitome of grace. Her beautiful, thoughtful face was weathered by the sun. Everyone’s heart raced as she galloped before the ranks of the army on her spirited horse, surrounded by her stunning entourage, appearing and disappearing like a meteor. She was as devout as she was courageous, earning the respect of all the Catholic faithful. We cannot identify anyone in the long line of rulers, man or woman, with more imperial energy or greater worth.

MARIA THERESA AT THE HEAD OF HER ARMY.

The loss of Silesia she regarded as an act of pure highway robbery. It rankled in her noble heart as the great humiliation and disgrace of her reign. Frederick was to her but as a hated and successful bandit, who had wrenched from her crown one of318 its brightest jewels. To the last day of her life she never ceased to deplore the loss. It is said that if any stranger, obtaining an audience, was announced as from Silesia, the eyes of the queen would instantly flood with tears. But the fortunes of war had now triumphantly turned in her favor. Aided by the armies and the gold of England, she was on the high career of conquest. Her troops had overrun Bohemia and Bavaria. She was disposed to hold those territories in compensation for Silesia, which she had lost.

She viewed the loss of Silesia as nothing less than outright theft. It stayed with her as a deep humiliation and disgrace throughout her reign. To her, Frederick was just a despised and victorious thief who had snatched one of the crown's most brilliant jewels. Until her last day, she never stopped mourning that loss. It's said that when any visitor, announced as being from Silesia, was brought in to see her, her eyes would immediately fill with tears. But now, the tides of war had turned triumphantly in her favor. With the support of England's armies and their money, she was on a path of conquest. Her troops had invaded Bohemia and Bavaria. She was ready to keep those territories as compensation for the Silesia she had lost.

In the mean time, during the two years in which Maria Theresa was making these conquests, Frederick, alarmed by the aggrandizement of Austria and the weakening of France, while unavailingly striving to promote peace, was busily employed in the administration of his internal affairs. He encouraged letters; devoted much attention to the Academy of Arts and Sciences; reared the most beautiful opera-house in Europe; devoted large sums to secure the finest musicians and the most exquisite ballet-dancers which Europe could afford. He sought to make his capital attractive to all those throughout Europe who were inspired by a thirst for knowledge, or who were in the pursuit of pleasure.

In the meantime, during the two years that Maria Theresa was gaining these victories, Frederick, worried about Austria's growth and France's decline, was working hard on his own domestic affairs, despite his unsuccessful efforts to promote peace. He supported the arts, paid a lot of attention to the Academy of Arts and Sciences, built the most beautiful opera house in Europe, and spent a lot of money to attract the best musicians and the most talented ballet dancers Europe had to offer. He aimed to make his capital appealing to everyone across Europe who was eager for knowledge or looking for enjoyment.

One incident in this connection, illustrative of the man and of the times, merits brief notice. His agent at Venice reported a female dancer there of rare attainments, Señora Barberina. She was marvelously beautiful, and a perfect fairy in figure and grace, and as fascinating in her vivacity and sparkling intelligence as she was lovely in person. Frederick immediately ordered her to be engaged for his opera-house at Berlin, at a salary of nearly four thousand dollars, and sundry perquisites.

One incident related to this, which illustrates the man and the times, deserves a brief mention. His agent in Venice reported on a female dancer with exceptional talent, Señora Barberina. She was incredibly beautiful, and a true fairy in figure and grace, as captivating in her liveliness and sparkling intelligence as she was in her looks. Frederick quickly ordered her to be hired for his opera house in Berlin, with a salary of nearly four thousand dollars and various additional perks.

But it so happened that the beautiful dancer had in the train of her impassioned admirers a young English gentleman, a younger brother of the Earl of Bute. He was opposed to Barberina’s going to Prussia, and induced her to throw up the engagement. Frederick was angry, and demanded the execution of the contract. The pretty Barberina, safe in Venice, made herself merry with the complaints of the Prussian monarch. Frederick, not accustomed to be thwarted, applied to the doge and the Senate of Venice to compel Barberina to fulfill her contract. They replied with great politeness, but did nothing. Barberina319 remained with her lover under the sunny skies of Italy, charming with her graceful pirouettes admiring audiences in the Venetian theatres.

But it just so happened that the beautiful dancer had a young English gentleman among her passionate admirers, a younger brother of the Earl of Bute. He didn’t want Barberina to go to Prussia and convinced her to cancel the engagement. Frederick was upset and demanded that she fulfill the contract. The lovely Barberina, feeling secure in Venice, found amusement in the complaints of the Prussian king. Frederick, not used to being rejected, reached out to the doge and the Senate of Venice to force Barberina to honor her contract. They responded very politely but didn’t take any action. Barberina319 stayed with her lover under the sunny skies of Italy, enchanting audiences in the Venetian theaters with her graceful pirouettes.

In the mean time a Venetian embassador, on his way to one of the northern courts, passed a night at a hotel in Berlin. He was immediately arrested, with his luggage, by a royal order. A dispatch was transmitted to Venice, stating that the embassador would be held as a hostage till Barberina was sent to Prussia. “A bargain,” says Frederick, in his emphatic utterance, “is a bargain. A state should have law courts to enforce contracts entered into in their territories.”

In the meantime, a Venetian ambassador, while traveling to one of the northern courts, spent a night at a hotel in Berlin. He was quickly arrested, along with his luggage, by a royal order. A message was sent to Venice, stating that the ambassador would be kept as a hostage until Barberina was sent to Prussia. “A deal,” Frederick stated emphatically, “is a deal. A country should have courts to enforce contracts made within its borders.”

The doge and senate were brought to terms. They seized the beautiful Barberina, placed her carefully in a post-chaise, and, under an escort of armed men, sent her, from stage to stage, over mountain and valley, till she arrived at Berlin. The Venetian embassador was then discharged. The young English gentleman, James Mackenzie, a grandson of the celebrated advocate, Sir George Mackenzie, eagerly followed his captured inamorata, and reached Berlin two hours after Barberina. The rumor was circulated that he was about to marry her.

The doge and senate reached an agreement. They took the lovely Barberina, placed her carefully in a carriage, and, with a group of armed men escorting her, sent her from stop to stop, across mountains and valleys, until she arrived in Berlin. The Venetian ambassador was then released. The young Englishman, James Mackenzie, a grandson of the famous lawyer, Sir George Mackenzie, eagerly followed his captured love and arrived in Berlin two hours after Barberina. There were rumors that he was going to marry her.

It is said that Frederick, determined not to lose his dancer in that manner, immediately informed the young gentleman’s friends that he was about to form a mesalliance with an opera girl. The impassioned lover was peremptorily summoned home. Hatred for Frederick consequently rankled in young Mackenzie’s heart. This hatred he communicated to his brother, Lord Bute, which subsequently had no little influence in affairs of national diplomacy.

It is said that Frederick, determined not to lose his dancer like that, immediately let the young man's friends know that he was about to make a mesalliance with an opera girl. The passionate lover was urgently called back home. As a result, young Mackenzie felt a deep resentment toward Frederick. He shared this resentment with his brother, Lord Bute, which later had quite an impact on matters of national diplomacy.

The king himself became much fascinated with the personal loveliness and the sparkling intelligence of the young dancer. He even condescended to take tea with her, in company with others. Not long after her arrival in Berlin she made a conquest of a young gentleman of one of the first Prussian families, M. Cocceji, son of the celebrated chancellor, and was privately married to him. For a time Barberina continued upon the stage. At length, in the enjoyment of ample wealth, she purchased a splendid mansion, and, publicly announcing her marriage, retired with her husband to private life. But the mother of Cocceji, and other proud family friends, scorned the lowly alliance. A320 divorce was the result. Soon after, Barberina was married to a nobleman of high rank, and we hear of her no more.

The king himself became quite captivated by the charm and sparkling intelligence of the young dancer. He even lowered himself to have tea with her, along with others. Shortly after her arrival in Berlin, she won over a young man from one of the top Prussian families, M. Cocceji, the son of the renowned chancellor, and they got married in private. For a while, Barberina continued performing on stage. Eventually, enjoying her newfound wealth, she bought an impressive mansion and publicly announced her marriage, retreating with her husband into private life. However, Cocceji's mother and other proud family friends looked down upon the humble alliance. A

320
divorce followed. Shortly after, Barberina married a high-ranking nobleman, and we don’t hear from her again.

Though Frederick, in his private correspondence, often spoke very contemptuously of Voltaire, it would seem, if any reliance can be placed on the testimony of Voltaire himself, that Frederick sedulously courted the author, whose pen was then so potential in Europe. By express invitation, Voltaire spent a week with Frederick at Aix la Chapelle early in September, 1742. He writes to a friend from Brussels under date of December 10:

Though Frederick often spoke very disrespectfully of Voltaire in his private letters, it seems, if we can trust Voltaire's own words, that Frederick actively sought the favor of the author, whose influence was significant in Europe at the time. By special invitation, Voltaire spent a week with Frederick at Aix la Chapelle in early September 1742. He wrote to a friend from Brussels on December 10:

“I have been to see the King of Prussia. I have courageously resisted his fine proposals. He offers me a beautiful house in Berlin, a pretty estate, but I prefer my second floor in Madame Du Châtelet’s here. He assures me of his favor, of the perfect freedom I should have; and I am running to Paris, to my slavery and persecution. I could fancy myself a small Athenian refusing the bounties of the King of Persia; with this difference, however, one had liberty at Athens.”

“I’ve been to see the King of Prussia. I’ve bravely turned down his generous offers. He’s proposing a beautiful house in Berlin and a nice estate, but I prefer my second-floor room here at Madame Du Châtelet’s. He promises me his support and the total freedom I’d have, yet I'm heading back to Paris, to my oppression and hardship. I can picture myself as a little Athenian turning down the gifts of the King of Persia; the only difference is that in Athens, you had freedom.”

Again he writes, under the same date, to the Marquis D’Argenson:

Again he writes, on the same date, to the Marquis D’Argenson:

“I have just been to see the King of Prussia. I have seen him as one seldom sees kings, much at my ease, in my own room, in the chimney-corner, whither the same man who has gained two battles would come and talk familiarly, as Scipio did with Terence. You will tell me I am not Terence. True; but neither is he altogether Scipio.”

“I just visited the King of Prussia. I saw him in a way that you rarely see kings, feeling quite at ease, in my own room, by the fireplace, where the same guy who has won two battles came to chat casually, like Scipio did with Terence. You might say I’m not Terence. That’s true, but he’s not entirely Scipio either.”

Again he writes, under the same date, to Cardinal De Fleury, then the most prominent member of the cabinet of Louis XV.:

Again he writes, on the same date, to Cardinal De Fleury, who was then the most prominent member of Louis XV's cabinet:

Monseigneur,—I am bound to give your excellency some account of my journey to Aix la Chapelle. I could not leave Brussels until the second of this month. On the road I met a courier from the King of Prussia, coming to reiterate his master’s orders on me. The king had me lodged in quarters near his own apartment. He passed, for two consecutive days, four hours at a time in my room, with all that goodness and familiarity which form, as you know, part of his character, and which does not lower the king’s dignity, because one is duly careful not to abuse it. I had abundant time to speak with a great deal of freedom on what your excellency had prescribed to me, and the king spoke to me with an equal frankness.

Your Honor,—I must update you on my trip to Aix la Chapelle. I couldn't leave Brussels until the second of this month. On the way, I met a courier from the King of Prussia, who was coming to reinforce his master's orders regarding me. The king arranged for me to stay near his own quarters. For two consecutive days, he spent four hours at a time in my room, showing all the kindness and familiarity that are part of his character, which doesn't diminish the king’s dignity as long as it’s handled respectfully. I had plenty of time to discuss what you had instructed me about, and the king spoke to me with the same openness.”

321 “First he asked me ‘if it were true that the French nation were so angered against him, if the king was, and if you were.’ I answered ‘that there was nothing permanent.’ He then condescended to speak fully upon the reasons which induced him to make peace. These reasons were so remarkable that I dare not trust them to this paper. All that I dare say is, that it seems to me easy to lead back the mind of this sovereign, whom the situation of his territories, his interest, and his taste would appear to mark as the natural ally of France. He said, moreover, ‘that he earnestly desired to see Bohemia in the emperor’s hands, that he renounced all claim on Berg and Jülick, and that he thought only of keeping Silesia.’ He said ‘that he knew well enough that the house of Austria would one day wish to recover that fine province, but that he trusted he could keep his conquest. That he had at that time a hundred and thirty thousand soldiers perfectly prepared for war; that he would make of Neisse, Glogau, and Brieg fortresses as strong as Wesel; that he was well informed that the Queen of Hungary owed eighty million German crowns ($60,000,000); that her provinces, exhausted and wide apart, would not be able to make long efforts; and that the Austrians for a long time to come could not of themselves be formidable.’”71

321 "First, he asked me if it was true that the French nation was so angry with him, if the king was, and if you were. I replied that nothing lasts forever. He then took the time to explain his reasons for wanting peace. These reasons were so significant that I hesitate to trust them to paper. All I can say is that it seems easy to sway the mind of this ruler, whose circumstances, interests, and preferences appear to position him as a natural ally of France. He also mentioned that he deeply wanted to see Bohemia in the emperor’s hands, that he had given up all claims on Berg and Jülick, and that he was focused solely on holding onto Silesia. He acknowledged that he was aware that the House of Austria would eventually want to reclaim that beautiful province, but he believed he could maintain his conquest. He had at that moment one hundred thirty thousand soldiers fully prepared for battle and planned to turn Neisse, Glogau, and Brieg into fortresses as strong as Wesel. He was well aware that the Queen of Hungary owed eighty million German crowns ($60,000,000); that her provinces, exhausted and spread out, couldn't sustain extensive efforts; and that the Austrians would not be a significant threat for a long time."71

Frederick was accustomed to cover his deep designs of diplomacy322 by the promotion of the utmost gayety in his capital. Never did Berlin exhibit such spectacles of festivity and pleasure as during the winter of 1742 and 1743. There was a continued succession of operas, balls, fêtes, and sleigh-parties. Frederick’s two younger sisters were at that time brilliant ornaments of his court. They were both remarkably beautiful and vivacious. The Princess Louise Ulrique was in her twenty-third year. The following letter to Frederick from these two princesses will be keenly appreciated by many of our young lady readers whose expenses have exceeded their allowance. It shows very conclusively that there may be the same pecuniary annoyances in the palaces of kings as in more humble homes.

Frederick was used to disguising his intricate diplomatic plans by promoting an atmosphere of joy in his capital. Never before had Berlin showcased such extravagant celebrations and entertainment as during the winter of 1742 and 1743. There was a constant stream of operas, balls, parties, and sleigh rides. Frederick’s two younger sisters were shining stars at his court, both strikingly beautiful and full of life. Princess Louise Ulrique was 23 years old at the time. The following letter from these two princesses will resonate with many of our young female readers whose expenses have gone over their budget. It clearly demonstrates that financial troubles can occur in royal palaces just as they do in more modest homes.

“Berlin, 1st of March, 1743.

“Berlin, March 1, 1743.

My dearest Brother,—I know not if it is not too bold to trouble your majesty on private affairs. But the great confidence my sister and I have in your kindness encourages us to lay before you a sincere avowal of our little finances, which are a good deal deranged just now. The revenues, having for two years and a half past been rather small, amounting to only four hundred crowns ($300) a year, could not be made to cover all the little expenses required in the adjustment of ladies. This circumstance, added to our card-playing, though small, which we could not dispense with, has led us into debt. Mine amounts to fifteen hundred crowns ($1125); my sister’s, to eighteen hundred crowns ($1350). We have not spoken of it to the queen-mother, though we are sure she would have tried to assist us. But as that could not have been done without some inconvenience to her, and as she would have retrenched in some of her own little entertainments, I thought we should do better to apply directly to your majesty. We were persuaded you would have taken it amiss had we deprived the queen of her smallest pleasure, and especially as we consider you, my dear brother, the father of the family, and hope you will be so gracious as to help us. We shall never forget the kind acts of your majesty. We beg you to be persuaded of the perfect and tender attachment with which we are proud to be, all our lives, your majesty’s most humble sisters and servants,

My dearest Brother,—I hope it’s not too forward of me to burden you with personal matters. But the strong trust my sister and I have in your kindness gives us the courage to share an honest update about our finances, which are quite troubled right now. Our income has been very low for the past two and a half years, only about four hundred crowns ($300) a year, which hasn’t been enough to cover all the little expenses that come with being ladies. This situation, combined with our modest card-playing habits that we can’t seem to give up, has led us into debt. I owe fifteen hundred crowns ($1125); my sister owes eighteen hundred crowns ($1350). We haven’t mentioned this to the queen-mother, even though we’re sure she would have tried to help us. However, that help might have caused her some difficulties, as she would need to reduce her own little pleasures. So, I thought it would be better to come to you directly. We worried you might be upset if we affected even the slightest enjoyment of the queen, especially since we see you, dear brother, as the head of the family and hope you’ll be kind enough to assist us. We will always remember your generosity. Please know that we are deeply and affectionately connected to you and take pride in being, for all our lives, your majesty’s most humble sisters and servants.

Louise Ulrique,
Anne Amelia.

Louise Ulrique,
Anne Amelia.

“P.S.—I most humbly beg your majesty not to speak of this323 to the queen-mother, as perhaps she would not approve of the step we are now taking.

“P.S.—I kindly ask your majesty not to mention this323 to the queen-mother, as she might not support the action we’re about to take.

Ann Amelia.72

Ann Amelia.”__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

About this time Frederick was somewhat alarmed by a statement issued by the court of Austria, that the emperor, Charles Albert, was no legitimate emperor at all; that the election was not valid; and that Austria, which had the emperor’s kingdom of Bavaria by the throat, insisted upon compensation for the Silesia she had lost. It was evident that Maria Theresa, whose armies were every where successful, was determined that her husband, Duke Francis, should be decorated with the imperial crown. It now seemed probable that she would be able to accomplish her design. Frederick was alarmed, and deemed it necessary to strengthen himself by matrimonial alliances.

Around this time, Frederick became somewhat worried about a statement released by the Austrian court, claiming that Emperor Charles Albert was not a legitimate emperor; that the election was invalid; and that Austria, which had a firm grip on the emperor’s kingdom of Bavaria, demanded compensation for the Silesia it had lost. It was clear that Maria Theresa, whose armies were consistently winning, was determined to see her husband, Duke Francis, crowned as emperor. It now appeared likely that she would succeed in her goal. Frederick was concerned and felt it necessary to bolster his position through marriage alliances.

The heir to the Russian throne was an orphan boy, Peter Federowitz. The Russian court was looking around to obtain for him a suitable wife. Frederick’s commandant at Stettin, a man of renowned lineage, had a beautiful daughter of fourteen. She was a buxom girl, full of life as she frolicked upon the ramparts of the fortress with her young companions. Frederick succeeded in obtaining her betrothal to the young Prince of Russia. She was solemnly transferred from the Protestant to the Greek religion; her name was changed to Catharine; and she was eventually married, greatly to the satisfaction of Frederick, to the young Russian czar.

The heir to the Russian throne was an orphan boy named Peter Federowitz. The Russian court was searching for a suitable wife for him. Frederick’s commander at Stettin, a man from a well-respected family, had a beautiful fourteen-year-old daughter. She was a lively girl, full of energy, as she played on the fortress walls with her friends. Frederick managed to arrange her engagement to the young Prince of Russia. She was formally converted from Protestantism to the Greek Orthodox faith; her name was changed to Catharine; and she was eventually married, much to Frederick’s delight, to the young Russian czar.

Adolph Frederick was the heir to the throne of Sweden. Successful diplomacy brought a magnificent embassy from Stockholm to Berlin, to demand Princess Ulrique as the bride of Sweden’s future king. The course of love, whether true or false, certainly did in this case run smooth. The marriage ceremony was attended in Berlin with such splendor as the Prussian capital had never witnessed before. The beautiful Ulrique was very much beloved. She was married by proxy, her brother Augustus William standing in the place of the bridegroom.

Adolph Frederick was the heir to the Swedish throne. Successful diplomacy led to a magnificent delegation from Stockholm to Berlin to request Princess Ulrique as the bride of Sweden’s future king. The path of love, whether genuine or not, certainly ran smoothly in this case. The wedding ceremony in Berlin was celebrated with a level of splendor that the Prussian capital had never seen before. The lovely Ulrike was dearly loved. She was married by proxy, with her brother Augustus William standing in for the groom.

All eyes were dimmed with tears as, after a week of brilliant festivities, she prepared for her departure. The carriages were at the door to convey her, with her accompanying suite of lords and ladies, to Stralsund, where the Swedish senate and nobles324 were to receive her. The princess entered the royal apartment to take leave of her friends, dressed in a rose-colored riding-habit trimmed with silver. The vest which encircled her slender waist was of sea-green, with lappets and collar of the same. She wore a small English bonnet of black velvet with a white plume. Her flowing hair hung in ringlets over her shoulders, bound with rose-colored ribbon.

All eyes were filled with tears as, after a week of amazing celebrations, she got ready to leave. The carriages were waiting at the door to take her, along with her entourage of lords and ladies, to Stralsund, where the Swedish senate and nobles324 would receive her. The princess entered the royal apartment to say goodbye to her friends, dressed in a light pink riding outfit trimmed with silver. The vest that hugged her slim waist was sea-green, with matching lappets and collar. She wore a small English bonnet made of black velvet with a white feather. Her long hair flowed in curls over her shoulders, tied back with a pink ribbon.

The king, who was devotedly attached to his sister, and who was very fond, on all occasions, of composing rhymes which he called poetry, wrote a very tender ode, bidding her adieu. It commenced with the words

The king, who was deeply devoted to his sister and loved to write rhymes, which he referred to as poetry, penned a heartfelt ode to say goodbye to her. It began with the words

“Go, my sister, go; Sweden is waiting for you, Sweden vous désire.
Go, sis, go; Sweden is waiting for you, Sweden
wishes you well.

“His majesty gave it to her at the moment when she was about to take leave of the two queens. The princess threw her eyes on it and fell into a faint. The king had almost done the like. His tears flowed abundantly. The princes and princesses were overcome with sorrow. At last Gotter judged it time to put an end to this tragic scene. He entered the hall almost like Boreas in the ballet of “The Rose”—that is to say, with a crash. He made one or two whirlwinds, clove the press, and snatched away the princess from the arms of the queen-mother, took her in his own, and whisked her out of the hall. All the world followed. The carriages were waiting in the court, and the princess in a moment found herself in hers.

"His majesty handed it to her just as she was about to say goodbye to the two queens. The princess looked at it and fainted. The king was nearly overcome as well, with tears streaming down his face. The princes and princesses were filled with grief. Finally, Gotter decided it was time to put an end to this heartbreaking scene. He entered the hall almost like Boreas in the ballet of “The Rose”—that is, with a bang. He created a couple of whirlwinds, parted the crowd, and pulled the princess from the arms of the queen-mother, taking her in his own and whisking her out of the hall. Everyone followed. The carriages were waiting in the courtyard, and in no time, the princess found herself in hers."

“I was in such a state I know not how we got down stairs. I remember only that it was in a concert of lamentable sobbings. Madame, the Marchioness of Schwedt, who had been named to attend the princess to Stralsund, on the Swedish frontier, this high lady, and the two dames D’Atours, who were for Sweden itself, having sprung into the same carriage, the door of it was shut with a slam, the postillions cracked, the carriage shot away, and disappeared from our eyes. In a moment the king and court lost sight of the beloved Ulrique forever.”73

“I was in such a state I don’t even know how we got downstairs. All I remember is that it felt like a chorus of sad sobs. Madame, the Marchioness of Schwedt, who was assigned to escort the princess to Stralsund on the Swedish border, this high lady, along with the two Dames D’Atours, who were headed for Sweden itself, jumped into the same carriage. The door slammed shut, the postillions cracked their whips, the carriage took off, and soon vanished from our sight. In that moment, the king and court lost sight of the beloved Ulrique forever.”73

Frederick was far from being an amiable man. He would325 often cruelly banter his companions, knowing that it was impossible for them to indulge in any retort. Baron Pöllnitz was a very weak old man, who had several times changed his religion to subserve his private interests. He had been rather a petted courtier during three reigns. Now, in extreme old age, and weary of the world, he wished to renounce Protestantism, and to enter the cloisters of the convent in preparation for death. He applied to the king for permission to do so. Frederick furnished him with the following sarcastic parting testimony. It was widely circulated through many of the journals of that day, exciting peals of laughter as a capital royal joke:

Frederick was anything but a friendly guy. He would often make cruel jokes at the expense of his companions, knowing they had no way to retaliate. Baron Pöllnitz was a very frail old man who had switched his religion multiple times to benefit his own interests. He had been a favored courtier during three reigns. Now, in his old age and tired of life, he wanted to leave Protestantism behind and join a convent to prepare for death. He asked the king for permission to do so. Frederick provided him with the following sarcastic farewell statement. It was widely shared in many of the newspapers of that time, causing fits of laughter as a great royal joke:

“Whereas the Baron De Pöllnitz, born of honest parents, so far as we know, having served our grandfather as gentleman of the chamber, Madame D’Orleans in the same rank, the King of Spain as colonel, the deceased Emperor Charles VI. as captain of horse, the pope as chamberlain, the Duke of Brunswick as chamberlain, the Duke of Weimar as ensign, our father as chamberlain, and, in fine, us as grand master of ceremonies, has, notwithstanding such accumulation of honors, become disgusted with the world, and requests of us a parting testimony;

“Whereas Baron De Pöllnitz, who comes from respectable parents, as far as we know, has served our grandfather as a gentleman of the chamber, Madame D’Orleans in the same role, the King of Spain as a colonel, the late Emperor Charles VI. as a cavalry captain, the pope as chamberlain, the Duke of Brunswick as chamberlain, the Duke of Weimar as ensign, our father as chamberlain, and finally, us as grand master of ceremonies, has, despite this impressive list of accomplishments, become disillusioned with the world and is requesting a farewell acknowledgment;

“We, remembering his important services to our house in diverting for nine years long the late king our father, and doing the honors of our court through the now reign, can not refuse such request. We do hereby certify that the said Baron Pöllnitz has never assassinated, robbed on the highway, poisoned, forcibly cut purses, or done other atrocity or legal crime at our court; but that he has always maintained gentlemanly behavior, making not more than honest use of the industry and talents he has been endowed with at birth; imitating the object of the drama—that is, correcting mankind by gentle quizzing—following in the matter of sobriety Boerhaave’s counsels, pushing Christian charity so far as often to make the rich understand that it is more blessed to give than to receive; possessing perfectly the anecdotes of our various mansions, especially of our worn-out furnitures, rendering himself by his merits necessary to those who know him, and, with a very bad head, having a very good heart.

“We, recognizing his significant contributions to our family in providing entertainment for our late father, the king, for nine long years and graciously serving at our court during this reign, cannot deny such a request. We hereby confirm that Baron Pöllnitz has never committed murder, robbery, poisoning, pickpocketing, or any other crime or offense at our court; rather, he has consistently displayed gentlemanly conduct, making only honest use of the skills and talents he was born with; emulating the purpose of drama—correcting humanity through gentle teasing—observing sobriety as advised by Boerhaave, and promoting Christian charity to the extent that he often reminds the wealthy that it is more blessed to give than to receive; he knows all the stories of our various homes, especially about our worn-out furniture, making himself indispensable to those who know him, and despite having a very poor head, he possesses a very good heart.”

“Our anger the said Baron Pöllnitz never kindled but once.74326 But as the loveliest countries have their barren spots, the most beautiful forms their imperfections, pictures by the greatest masters their faults, we are willing to cover with the veil of oblivion those of the said baron. We do hereby grant him, with regret, the leave of absence he requires, and abolish his office altogether, that it may be blotted from the memory of man, not judging that any one, after the said baron, can be worthy to fill it.

“Our anger was only sparked by Baron Pöllnitz once.__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__326 But just as the most beautiful countries have their dry spots, the prettiest forms have their flaws, and even masterpieces have their defects, we choose to cover the baron’s shortcomings with the veil of forgetfulness. With regret, we grant him the leave of absence he needs and eliminate his position entirely, so it can be erased from people’s memories, believing that no one after him could ever be worthy of it.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

“Potsdam, April 1, 1744.”

“Potsdam, April 1, 1744.”

No man of kindly sympathies could have thus wantonly wounded the feelings of a poor old man who had, according to his capacity, served himself, his father, and his grandfather, and who was just dropping into the grave. A generous heart would have forgotten the foibles, and, remembering only the virtues, would have spoken words of cheer to the world-weary heart, seeking a sad refuge in the glooms of the cloister. It must be confessed that Frederick often manifested one of the worst traits in human nature. He took pleasure in inflicting pain upon others.

No kind-hearted person would have so thoughtlessly hurt the feelings of an elderly man who had, in his own way, served himself, his father, and his grandfather, and who was nearing the end of his life. A generous person would have overlooked the flaws and only remembered the good qualities, offering words of comfort to a weary heart seeking solace in the darkness of the monastery. It must be admitted that Frederick often displayed one of the worst traits of human nature. He found joy in causing pain to others.


CHAPTER XIX.
THE BOHEMIAN INVASION.

Correspondence between Frederick and Voltaire.—Voltaire’s Visit to Frederick.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Unavailing Diplomacy of Voltaire.—The New Alliance.—The Renewal of War.—The Siege of Prague.—The Advance upon Vienna.—Darkening Prospects.—The Pandours.—Divisions in Council.—Sickness of Louis XV.—Energy of Frederick.—Distress of the Army.

Letters between Frederick and Voltaire.—Voltaire’s Trip to Frederick.—King's Home Life.—Voltaire's Unsuccessful Diplomacy.—The New Alliance.—War Resumes.—The Siege of Prague.—The Approach to Vienna.—Somber Prospects.—The Pandours.—Council Disagreements.—Louis XV's Illness.—Frederick's Resolve.—Army Struggles.

The correspondence carried on between Frederick and Voltaire, and their mutual comments, very clearly reveal the relations existing between these remarkable men. Frederick was well aware that the eloquent pen of the great dramatist and historian could give him celebrity throughout Europe. Voltaire was keenly alive to the consideration that the friendship of a monarch could secure to him position and opulence. And yet each privately spoke of the other very contemptuously, while in the correspondence which passed between them they professed for each other the highest esteem and affection. Frederick wrote from Berlin as follows to Voltaire:

The correspondence between Frederick and Voltaire, along with their mutual comments, clearly shows the relationship between these extraordinary men. Frederick knew that the talented pen of the famous dramatist and historian could bring him fame across Europe. Voltaire was very aware that being friends with a king could bring him status and wealth. Yet, both spoke about each other with disdain in private, while in their letters, they expressed the utmost respect and affection for one another. Frederick wrote from Berlin as follows to Voltaire:

327

327

“October 7, 1743.

“October 7, 1743.

My dear Voltaire,—France has been considered thus far as the asylum of unfortunate monarchs. I wish that my capital should become the temple of great men. Come to it, then, my dear Voltaire, and give whatever orders can tend to render a residence in it agreeable to you. My wish is to please you, and wishing this, my intention is to enter entirely into your views.

My dear Voltaire,—France has been known as a refuge for unfortunate kings. I want my city to become a place for remarkable people. So come here, my dear Voltaire, and let me know how I can make your stay enjoyable. I want to please you, and in doing so, my goal is to fully embrace your ideas.

“Choose whatever apartment in our house you like. Regulate yourself all that you want, either for comfort or luxury. Make your arrangements in such a way as that you may be happy and comfortable, and leave it to me to provide for the rest. You will be always entirely free, and master to choose your own way of life. My only pretension is to enchain you by friendship and kindness.

“Choose any room in our house that you want. Furnish it however you like, whether for comfort or luxury. Arrange everything in a way that makes you happy and comfortable, and I’ll handle the rest. You will always be completely free and in control of your own life. My only aim is to connect with you through friendship and kindness.”

“You will have passports for the post-horses, and whatever else you may ask. I hope to see you on Wednesday. I shall then profit by the few moments of leisure which remain to me, to enlighten myself by the blaze of your powerful genius. I entreat you to believe I shall always be the same toward you. Adieu.”

“You’ll have passports for the post-horses and anything else you need. I hope to see you on Wednesday. I'll take advantage of the little free time I have left to learn from your brilliant mind. Please believe that my feelings for you will always remain the same. Goodbye.”

Voltaire has given a detailed account of the incidents connected with this visit to his Prussian majesty. It is a humiliating exhibition of the intrigues and insincerity which animated the prominent actors in those scenes.

Voltaire has provided a thorough description of the events related to his visit with the Prussian king. It reveals a shameful display of the plotting and dishonesty that motivated the key players in those situations.

“The public affairs in France,” writes Voltaire, “continued in as bad a state after the death of Cardinal De Fleury as during the last two years of his administration. The house of Austria rose again from its ashes. France was cruelly pressed upon by that power and by England. No other resource remained to us but the chance of regaining the King of Prussia, who, having drawn us into the war, had abandoned us as soon as it was convenient to himself so to do. It was thought advisable, under these circumstances, that I should be sent to that monarch to sound his intentions, and, if possible, persuade him to avert the storm which, after it had first fallen on us, would be sure, sooner or later, to fall from Vienna upon him. We also wished to secure from him the loan of a hundred thousand men, with the assurance that he could thus better secure to himself Silesia.

"The public affairs in France," Voltaire writes, "remained just as troubled after Cardinal De Fleury's death as they were during the last two years of his leadership. The House of Austria rose again from its ruins. France was harshly pressured by that power and by England. We had no other option left but to hope we could win back the King of Prussia, who had drawn us into the war but had abandoned us as soon as it suited him. Given these circumstances, it seemed wise for me to be sent to that king to gauge his intentions and, if possible, convince him to prevent the storm that, after first hitting us, would inevitably come from Vienna toward him. We also wanted to secure a loan of a hundred thousand men from him, assuring him that this would help him better hold onto Silesia."

328 “The minister for foreign affairs was charged to hasten my departure. A pretext, however, was necessary. I took that of my quarrel with the Bishop Mirepoix. I wrote accordingly to the King of Prussia that I could no longer endure the persecutions of this monk, and that I should take refuge under the protection of a philosophical sovereign, far from the disputes of this bigot. When I arrived at Berlin the king lodged me in his palace, as he had done in my former journeys. He then led the same sort of life which he had always done since he came to the throne. He rose at five in summer and six in winter.75 A single servant came to light his fire, to dress and shave him. Indeed, he dressed himself almost without any assistance. His bedroom was a handsome one. A rich and highly ornamented balustrade of silver inclosed apparently a bed hung with curtains, but behind the curtains, instead of a bed, there was a library. As for the royal couch, it was a wretched truckle-bed, with a thin mattress, behind a screen, in one corner of the room. Marcus Aurelius and Julian, his favorite heroes, and the greatest men among the Stoics, were not worse lodged.”

328 "The foreign affairs minister was tasked with speeding up my departure. However, I needed a reason to leave. I used my disagreement with Bishop Mirepoix as my excuse. I wrote to the King of Prussia, saying I could no longer tolerate this monk's harassment and that I planned to seek refuge under the protection of a philosophical ruler, away from the arguments of this bigot. When I arrived in Berlin, the king accommodated me in his palace, just like he did on my previous visits. He continued his usual routine since ascending the throne—getting up at five in the summer and six in the winter. A single servant would come to light his fire, dress him, and shave him. In fact, he almost dressed himself entirely without help. His bedroom was quite elegant. A rich, beautifully decorated silver balustrade surrounded what seemed to be a bed draped with curtains, but behind those curtains was actually a library. As for the royal bed, it was a shabby cot with a thin mattress, tucked behind a screen in one corner of the room. Marcus Aurelius and Julian, his favorite heroes and some of the greatest Stoics, weren’t housed any better."

The king devoted himself very energetically to business during the morning, and reviewed his troops at eleven o’clock. He dined at twelve.

The king worked diligently on business in the morning and reviewed his troops at eleven o’clock. He had lunch at noon.

“After dinner,” writes Voltaire, “the king retired alone into his cabinet, and made verses till five or six o’clock. A concert commenced at seven, in which the king performed on the flute as well as the best musician. The pieces of music executed were also often of the king’s composition. On the days of public ceremonies he exhibited great magnificence. It was a fine spectacle to see him at table, surrounded by twenty princes of the empire, served on the most beautiful gold plate in Europe, and attended by thirty handsome pages, and as many young heyducs, superbly dressed, and carrying great dishes of massive gold. After these banquets the court attended the opera in the great theatre, three hundred feet long. The most admirable singers and the best dancers were at this time in the pay of the King of Prussia.”

“After dinner,” writes Voltaire, “the king went alone to his study and wrote poetry until five or six in the morning. A concert started at seven, where the king played the flute just as well as the best musicians. Many of the pieces performed were also composed by the king himself. On days of public ceremonies, he displayed great grandeur. It was a wonderful sight to see him at the table, surrounded by twenty princes of the empire, served on the most exquisite gold plate in Europe, and attended by thirty handsome pages and just as many young heyducs, elegantly dressed and carrying large dishes made of solid gold. After these feasts, the court attended the opera in the grand theater, which was three hundred feet long. The finest singers and the best dancers were at that time on the King of Prussia's payroll.”

Voltaire seems to have formed a very different estimate of his329 own diplomatic abilities from those expressed by the King of Prussia. Voltaire writes:

Voltaire appears to have a much different opinion of his329 own diplomatic skills compared to what was shared by the King of Prussia. Voltaire writes:

“In the midst of fêtes, operas, and suppers, my secret negotiation advanced. The king allowed me to speak to him on all subjects. I often intermingled questions respecting France and Austria in conversations relating to the Æneid and Livy. The discussion was sometimes very animated. At length the king said to me, ‘Let France declare war against England, and I will march.’ This was all I desired. I returned as quickly as possible to the court of France. I gave them the same hopes which I had myself been led to entertain at Berlin, and which did not prove delusive.”

“Amid parties, operas, and dinners, my secret negotiations were making progress. The king let me talk to him about anything. I often mixed in questions about France and Austria while discussing the Æneid and Livy. Our conversations sometimes got quite lively. Eventually, the king said to me, ‘Let France declare war against England, and I will join the fight.’ That was all I wanted. I rushed back to the French court. I shared the same hopes I had been given in Berlin, and they turned out to be accurate.”

The fact was, that the diplomacy of Voltaire had probably not the slightest influence in guiding the action of the king. Frederick had become alarmed in view of the signal successes of the armies of Maria Theresa, under her brother-in-law, Prince Charles of Lorraine. Several Austrian generals, conspicuous among whom was Marshal Traun, were developing great military ability. The armies of Austria had conquered Bohemia and Bavaria. The French troops, discomfited in many battles, had been compelled to retreat to the western banks of the Rhine, vigorously pursued by Prince Charles. The impotent emperor Charles Albert, upon whom France had placed the imperial crown of Germany, was driven from his hereditary realm, and the heart-broken man, in poverty and powerlessness, was an emperor but in name. It was evident that Maria Theresa was gathering her strength to reconquer Silesia. She had issued a decree that the Elector of Bavaria was not legitimately chosen emperor. It was very manifest that her rapidly increasing influence would soon enable her to dethrone the unfortunate Charles Albert, and to place the imperial crown upon the brow of her husband.

The reality was that Voltaire's diplomacy likely had no real impact on the king's decisions. Frederick had grown concerned about the significant successes of Maria Theresa's armies, particularly those led by her brother-in-law, Prince Charles of Lorraine. Several Austrian generals, especially Marshal Traun, were showing impressive military skills. The Austrian forces had taken over Bohemia and Bavaria. The French troops, defeated in multiple battles, were forced to retreat to the western banks of the Rhine, with Prince Charles chasing them down. The ineffective Emperor Charles Albert, whom France had installed as the emperor of Germany, was driven from his ancestral lands, and the despairing man, living in poverty and unable to exert power, was an emperor only in title. It was clear that Maria Theresa was building her strength to reclaim Silesia. She had issued a decree declaring that the Elector of Bavaria was not the legitimate emperor. It was apparent that her rapidly growing influence would soon allow her to depose the unfortunate Charles Albert and place the imperial crown on her husband's head.

Under these circumstances, it was evidently impossible for Frederick to retain Silesia unless he could again rally France and other powers to his aid. It was always easy to rouse France against England, its hereditary foe. Thus influenced, Frederick, early in the spring of 1744, entered into a new alliance with France and the Emperor Charles Albert against Maria Theresa. The two marriages which he had so adroitly consummated constrained330 Russia and Sweden to neutrality. While France, by the new treaty, was engaged to assail with the utmost energy, under the leadership of Louis XV. himself, the triumphant Austrian columns upon the Rhine, Frederick, at the head of one hundred thousand troops, was to drive the Austrians out of Bohemia, and reseat Charles Albert upon his hereditary throne. For this service Frederick was to receive from the Bohemian king three important principalities, with their central fortresses near upon the borders of Silesia.

Given the circumstances, it was clearly impossible for Frederick to keep Silesia unless he could rally France and other powers to help him again. It was always easy to get France fired up against England, its long-time enemy. With this in mind, Frederick, early in the spring of 1744, formed a new alliance with France and Emperor Charles Albert against Maria Theresa. The two marriages he skillfully arranged ensured that Russia and Sweden remained neutral. Under the new treaty, France was committed to vigorously attack the victorious Austrian forces along the Rhine, led by Louis XV himself, while Frederick, commanding one hundred thousand troops, was tasked with driving the Austrians out of Bohemia and reinstating Charles Albert on his rightful throne. In return for this support, Frederick was promised three significant principalities from the Bohemian king, along with their central fortresses located near the borders of Silesia.

The shrewd foresight of Frederick, and his rapidly developing military ability, had kept his army in the highest state of discipline, while his magazines were abundantly stored with all needful supplies. It was written at the time:

The sharp insight of Frederick and his quickly growing military skills had kept his army in top-notch discipline, while his supplies were well-stocked with everything necessary. It was noted at the time:

“Some countries take six months, some twelve, to get in motion for war. But in three weeks Prussia can be across the frontiers and upon the throats of its enemy. Some countries have a longer sword than Prussia, but none can unsheath it so soon.”

“Some countries take six months, some a year, to get ready for war. But in just three weeks, Prussia can cross the borders and be at its enemy's throat. Some countries have a longer sword than Prussia, but none can draw it as quickly.”

Public opinion was then much less potent than now; still it was a power. Frederick had two objects in view in again drawing the sword. One was to maintain possession of Silesia, which was seriously menaced; the other was to enlarge his territory, and thus to strengthen his hold upon his new conquest, by adding to Prussia the three important Bohemian principalities of Königgratz, Bunzlau, and Leitmeritz. By a secret treaty, he had secured the surrender of these provinces in payment for the assistance his armies might furnish the allies; but policy required that he should not avow his real motives. He therefore issued a manifesto, in which he falsely stated,

Public opinion was much less influential back then than it is now; still, it was a force to be reckoned with. Frederick had two goals in mind when he decided to take up arms again. One was to keep control of Silesia, which was under serious threat; the other was to expand his territory and strengthen his grip on this new acquisition by adding the three significant Bohemian principalities of Königgratz, Bunzlau, and Leitmeritz to Prussia. Through a secret treaty, he had secured the surrender of these provinces as payment for the support his armies might provide to the allies; however, he needed to keep his true intentions hidden. He therefore issued a manifesto in which he falsely stated,

“His Prussian majesty requires nothing for himself. He has taken up arms simply and solely with the view of restoring to the empire its freedom, to the emperor his imperial crown, and to all Europe the peace which is so desirable.”

“His Prussian majesty wants nothing for himself. He has taken up arms solely to restore freedom to the empire, the imperial crown to the emperor, and peace, which is so desired, to all of Europe.”

Frederick published his manifesto on the 10th of August, 1744. Early in the morning of the 15th he set out from Potsdam upon this new military expedition. His two eldest brothers, Augustus William, Prince of Prussia, and Prince Henry, accompanied him. The army entered Bohemia in three columns, whose concentrated force amounted to nearly one hundred thousand men. Frederick in person led the first column, the old331 Prince Leopold the second, and Marshal Schwerin the third. Marching by different routes, they swept all opposition before them. On the 4th of September the combined army appeared before the walls of Prague. Here, as in every act of Frederick’s life, his marvelous energy was conspicuous.

Frederick published his manifesto on August 10, 1744. Early in the morning on the 15th, he set out from Potsdam on this new military campaign. His two oldest brothers, Augustus William, Prince of Prussia, and Prince Henry, joined him. The army entered Bohemia in three columns, with a combined strength of nearly one hundred thousand men. Frederick himself led the first column, the old Prince Leopold commanded the second, and Marshal Schwerin led the third. Marching through different routes, they overcame all opposition. On September 4, the united army appeared before the walls of Prague. Here, as in every action of Frederick’s life, his incredible energy was evident.

The works were pushed with the utmost vigor. On the 8th the siege cannon arrived; late in the night of Wednesday, the 9th, they were in position. Immediately they opened their rapid, well-aimed, deadly fire of solid shot and shell from three quarters—the north, the west, and the east. Frederick, watching the bombardment from an eminence, was much exposed to the return fire of the Austrians. He called upon others to take care of themselves, but seemed regardless of his own personal safety. His cousin, Prince William, and a page, were both struck down at his side by a cannon-ball.

The work was pushed forward with complete determination. On the 8th, the siege cannon arrived; late on the night of Wednesday, the 9th, they were set up. They immediately opened rapid, accurate, deadly fire with solid shot and shells from three sides—the north, the west, and the east. Frederick, watching the bombardment from a high point, was quite vulnerable to the returning fire from the Austrians. He urged others to look after their own safety, but he seemed to ignore his own. His cousin, Prince William, and a page were both struck down beside him by a cannonball.

On the 16th the battered, smouldering, blood-stained city was surrendered, with its garrison of sixteen thousand men. The prisoners of war were marched off to Frederick’s strong places in the north. Prague was compelled to take the oath of allegiance to the emperor, and to pay a ransom of a million of dollars. Abundant stores of provision and ammunition were found in the city. It was a brilliant opening of the campaign.

On the 16th, the damaged, smoldering, blood-stained city was surrendered, along with its garrison of sixteen thousand men. The prisoners of war were marched off to Frederick’s strongholds in the north. Prague was forced to pledge allegiance to the emperor and pay a ransom of a million dollars. Plenty of supplies and ammunition were discovered in the city. It was an impressive start to the campaign.

The impetuous Frederick made no delay at Prague. The day after the capture, leaving five thousand men, under General Einsiedel, to garrison the city, he put his troops in motion, ascending the right bank of the Moldau. It would seem that he was about to march boldly upon Vienna. Wagons of meal, drawn by oxen, followed the army. The heavy artillery was left behind. The troops were forced along as rapidly as possible. They advanced in two columns. One was led by Frederick, and the other by young Leopold. The country through which they passed was dreary, desolate, barren in the extreme—a wild waste of precipitous rocks, and bogs, and tangled forest. The roads were wretched. No forage could be obtained. The starved oxen were continually dropping, exhausted, by the way; the path of the army was marked by their carcasses.

The impetuous Frederick didn’t waste any time in Prague. The day after the capture, he left five thousand men, led by General Einsiedel, to garrison the city and moved his troops up the right bank of the Moldau. It seemed he was about to march boldly towards Vienna. Wagons of flour, pulled by oxen, followed the army. The heavy artillery was left behind. The troops were pushed forward as quickly as possible. They advanced in two columns—one led by Frederick, and the other by young Leopold. The area they passed through was bleak and desolate, extremely barren—a wild expanse of steep rocks, swamps, and tangled forests. The roads were terrible. There was no forage to be found. The starving oxen continually collapsed from exhaustion along the way, marking the army's path with their bodies.

It was but sixty miles from Prague to Tabor. The march of Frederick’s division led through Kunraditz, across the Sazawa River, through Bistritz and Miltchin. It was not until the ninth332 day of their toilsome march that the steeples of Tabor were descried, in the distant horizon, on its high, scarped rock. Here both columns united. Half of the draught cattle had perished by the way, and half of the wagons had been abandoned.

It was only sixty miles from Prague to Tabor. Frederick's division marched through Kunraditz, across the Sazawa River, through Bistritz and Miltchin. It wasn't until the ninth332 day of their exhausting march that they spotted the steeples of Tabor in the distance, perched on its steep rock. Here, both columns came together. Half of the draft animals had died along the way, and half of the wagons had been left behind.

THE PANDOURS.

The prospects of Frederick were now gloomy. The bright morning of the campaign had darkened into a stormy day. The barren region around afforded no supplies. The inhabitants were all Catholics; they hated the heretics. Inspired by their priests, they fled from their dwellings, taking with them or destroying every thing which could aid the Prussian army. But most annoying of all, the bold, sagacious chieftain, General Bathyani, with hordes of Pandours which could not be counted—horsemen who seemed to have the vitality and endurance of centaurs—was making deadly assaults upon every exposed point.

The outlook for Frederick was now bleak. The bright morning of the campaign had turned into a stormy day. The barren area around offered no supplies. The residents were all Catholics; they despised the heretics. Encouraged by their priests, they fled from their homes, taking with them or destroying everything that could help the Prussian army. But most frustrating of all, the brave and clever leader, General Bathyani, with countless Pandours—horsemen who seemed to have the stamina and resilience of centaurs—was launching fierce attacks on every vulnerable point.

333 “Such a swarm of hornets as darkens the very daylight!” writes Carlyle. “Vain to scourge them down, to burn them off by blaze of gunpowder; they fly fast, but are straightway back again. They lurk in these bushy wildernesses, scraggy woods; no foraging possible unless whole regiments are sent out to do it; you can not get a letter safely carried for them.”

333 "Such a swarm of hornets that darkens the very daylight!" writes Carlyle. "It's pointless to try to get rid of them, to blast them away with gunpowder; they fly quickly, but they're right back again. They hide in these overgrown wildernesses, scraggly woods; you can't gather anything without sending out whole groups to do it; you can't get a letter delivered safely because of them."

Thus Frederick found himself in a barren, hostile country, with a starving army, incessantly assailed by a determined foe, groping his way in absolute darkness, and with the greatest difficulty communicating even with his own divisions, at the distance of but a few leagues. He knew not from what direction to anticipate attack, or how formidable might be his assailants. He knew not whether the French, on the other side of the Rhine, had abandoned him to his own resources, or were marching to his rescue. He knew that they were as supremely devoted to their own interests as he was to his, and that they would do nothing to aid him, unless by so doing they could efficiently benefit themselves.

Frederick found himself in a desolate, hostile land, leading a starving army, constantly attacked by a determined enemy, trying to navigate in complete darkness, and struggling to even communicate with his own divisions just a few leagues away. He had no clue where the next attack might come from or how strong his attackers might be. He didn't know if the French across the Rhine had abandoned him to fend for himself or were on their way to help him. He understood that they were just as committed to their own interests as he was to his, and they wouldn't do anything to assist him unless it also benefited them.

As is usual under such circumstances, a quarrel arose among his officers. Young Leopold proposed one plan, Marshal Schwerin another. They were both bold, determined men. Frederick found it difficult to keep the peace between them. It was now October. Winter, with its piercing gales, and ice, and snow, was fast approaching. It was necessary to seek winter quarters. Frederick, with the main body of his army, took possession of Budweis, on the Upper Moldau. A detachment was stationed at Neuhaus, about thirty miles northeast of Budweis.

As often happens in these situations, a disagreement broke out among his officers. Young Leopold suggested one plan, while Marshal Schwerin had another. Both were brave, strong-willed men. Frederick struggled to keep the peace between them. It was now October, and winter, with its biting winds, ice, and snow, was quickly approaching. It was essential to find winter quarters. Frederick, along with the main part of his army, took control of Budweis, located on the Upper Moldau. A smaller group was set up at Neuhaus, roughly thirty miles northeast of Budweis.

It will be remembered that Prince Charles was at the head of a strong Austrian army, on the western banks of the Rhine. It numbered over fifty thousand combatants. The King of France had pledged himself to press them closely, so that they could not recross the Rhine and rush into Bohemia to thwart the operations of Frederick; but, unfortunately, Louis XV. was seized with a malignant fever, which brought him near to the grave. Taking advantage of this, Prince Charles, on the night of the 23d of August, crossed the Rhine with his whole army. It was bright moonlight, so that every movement was as visible as if it had been made by day. But the French officers, glad thus to be rid of the Austrian army, preferring much that Frederick334 should encounter it in Bohemia than that they should struggle against it on the Rhine, went quietly to their beds, even forbidding the more zealous subalterns from harassing Prince Charles in his passage of the river. It was then the great object of the French to take Freyburg. The withdrawal of Prince Charles, with his fifty thousand men, was a great relief to them.

It’s worth noting that Prince Charles was leading a strong Austrian army on the western banks of the Rhine, with over fifty thousand troops. The King of France had committed to keeping a close watch on them so they couldn’t cross back over the Rhine and invade Bohemia to disrupt Frederick’s plans; however, Louis XV. unfortunately fell seriously ill with a dangerous fever that nearly led him to death. Taking advantage of this situation, Prince Charles crossed the Rhine with his entire army on the night of August 23rd. It was a clear, moonlit night, making their movements as visible as if it were daytime. The French officers, pleased to be rid of the Austrian army, preferred that Frederick deal with them in Bohemia rather than face them at the Rhine, so they simply went to bed, even telling their more eager junior officers not to disturb Prince Charles during his river crossing. The main goal for the French at that time was to capture Freyburg. Prince Charles’s withdrawal, along with his fifty thousand troops, was a significant relief for them.

While Frederick was involved in all these difficulties, he was cheered by the hope that the French would soon come to his rescue. Unutterable was his chagrin when he learned, early in October, that the French had done exactly as he would have done in their circumstances. Appalling, indeed, were the tidings soon brought to him, that Prince Charles, with his army, had marched unmolested into Bohemia; that he had already effected a junction with General Bathyani and his countless swarm of Pandours; and, moreover, that a Saxon army, twenty thousand strong, in alliance with the Queen of Hungary, was on the way to join his already overwhelming foes. It was reported, at the same time, that Prince Charles was advancing upon Budweis, and that his advance-guard had been seen, but a few miles off, on the western side of the Moldau.

While Frederick was dealing with all these troubles, he found hope in the idea that the French would soon come to help him. His disappointment was indescribable when he learned, early in October, that the French had taken the exact actions he would have taken in their position. The news that soon reached him was truly alarming: Prince Charles, along with his army, had marched peacefully into Bohemia; he had already joined forces with General Bathyani and his countless troops of Pandours; and, to make matters worse, a Saxon army of twenty thousand, allied with the Queen of Hungary, was on its way to join his already overwhelming enemies. At the same time, it was reported that Prince Charles was moving toward Budweis and that his advance guard had been spotted just a few miles away on the western side of the Moldau.

The exigency demanded the most decisive action. Frederick promptly gathered his army, and dashed across the Moldau, resolved, with the energies of despair, to smite down the troops of Prince Charles; but no foe could be found. For four days he sought for them in vain. He then learned that the Austrian army had crossed the Moldau several miles north of him, thus cutting off his communications with Prague.

The urgency called for immediate action. Frederick quickly assembled his army and rushed across the Moldau, determined, fueled by desperation, to strike down Prince Charles' troops; but no enemy could be found. For four days, he searched for them without success. He then discovered that the Austrian army had crossed the Moldau several miles north of him, effectively severing his communications with Prague.

Though Prince Charles was nominally commander-in-chief of the Austrian forces, Marshal Traun, as we have mentioned, was its military head. He was, at that time, far Frederick’s superior in the art of war. Frederick had sufficient intelligence and candor to recognize that superiority. When he heard of this adroit movement of his foes, he exclaimed, “Old Traun understands his trade.”

Though Prince Charles was officially in charge of the Austrian forces, Marshal Traun, as we mentioned, was the actual military leader. At that time, he was much better than Frederick in terms of military strategy. Frederick was smart enough and honest enough to acknowledge that fact. When he heard about this clever maneuver by his enemies, he said, “Old Traun knows what he’s doing.”

Prince Charles was now forming magazines at Beneschau, just south of the Sazawa River, about seventy miles north of Frederick’s encampment at Budweis. Frederick hastily recrossed the Moldau, and, marching through Bechin, concentrated nearly all his forces at Tabor. He hoped by forced marches to take the335 Austrians by surprise, and capture their magazines at Beneschau. Thousands, rumor said fourteen thousand, of the wild Pandours, riding furiously, hovered around his line of march. They were in his front, on his rear, and upon his flanks. Ever refusing battle, they attacked every exposed point with the utmost ferocity. The Prussian king thus found himself cut off from Prague, with exhausted magazines, and forage impossible. He had three hundred sick in his hospitals. He could not think of abandoning them, and yet he had no means for their transportation.

Prince Charles was now setting up supply depots at Beneschau, just south of the Sazawa River, about seventy miles north of Frederick’s camp at Budweis. Frederick quickly crossed back over the Moldau and, marching through Bechin, gathered nearly all his forces at Tabor. He hoped that by pushing his troops hard, he could surprise the Austrians and capture their supplies at Beneschau. Thousands of wild Pandours, rumored to be around fourteen thousand, rode fiercely around his route. They were in front of him, behind him, and on his sides. Always avoiding a direct fight, they attacked every vulnerable spot with extreme ferocity. The Prussian king found himself cut off from Prague, with exhausted supplies and no way to gather more. He had three hundred sick soldiers in his hospitals. He couldn't think of leaving them behind, but he had no way to transport them.

The salvation of the army seemed to depend upon capturing the Austrian magazines at Beneschau. Marshal Schwerin was sent forward with all speed, at the head of a strong detachment, and was so lucky as to take Beneschau. Here he intrenched himself. Frederick, upon hearing the glad tidings, immediately started from Tabor to join him. His sick were at Fraunberg, Budweis, and Neuhaus, some dozen miles south of Tabor. Garrisons, amounting to three thousand men, had been left to protect them from the Pandours. As Frederick was about to abandon that whole region, it was manifest that these garrisons could not maintain themselves. He dispatched eight messengers in succession to summon the troops immediately to join him. The sick were to be left to their fate. It was one of the cruel necessities of war. But not one of these messengers escaped capture by the Pandours. Frederick commenced his march without these garrisons. The three thousand fighting men, with the three hundred sick, all fell into the hands of the Pandours.

The army's survival seemed to rely on taking the Austrian supplies at Beneschau. Marshal Schwerin was quickly sent forward with a strong detachment and was fortunate enough to capture Beneschau. There, he set up defenses. Upon hearing the good news, Frederick immediately left Tabor to join him. His sick troops were at Fraunberg, Budweis, and Neuhaus, about a dozen miles south of Tabor. There were three thousand men left behind as garrisons to protect them from the Pandours. As Frederick prepared to abandon the entire area, it was clear that these garrisons wouldn't be able to hold out. He sent eight messengers one after another to call the troops to join him right away. The sick would be left to their fate. It was one of the harsh realities of war. But not one of those messengers managed to escape capture by the Pandours. Frederick began his march without these garrisons. The three thousand soldiers, along with the three hundred sick, all fell into the hands of the Pandours.


CHAPTER XX.
The Retreat.

The Retreat ordered.—Awful Suffering.—Narrow Escape of the King.—The Flight from Prague.—Military Mistakes of the King.—Frederick returns to Berlin.—His wonderful administrative Ability.—Poland joins Austria.—The Austrians enter Silesia.—Unreasonable Demands of Frederick.—Humiliation of the King.—Prince Charles and his Bride.—Character of Leopold.—Death of the Emperor.—Bavaria turns against Frederick.—Anecdotes of Prince Leopold.—Peril of Frederick.—Battle of Hohenfriedberg.—Signal Victory of Frederick.

The Retreat was ordered. Terrible suffering followed. The King narrowly escaped. The flight from Prague occurred. The King made military errors. Frederick returned to Berlin. His impressive administrative skills were clear. Poland allied with Austria. The Austrians entered Silesia. Frederick made unreasonable demands. The King faced humiliation. Prince Charles and his bride were prominent figures. Leopold's character stood out. The Emperor died. Bavaria turned against Frederick. There were stories about Prince Leopold. Frederick was in danger. The Battle of Hohenfriedberg took place. Frederick scored a major victory.

Frederick concentrated his army at Konopischt, very near Beneschau. He could bring into the field sixty thousand men. Prince Charles was at the head of seventy thousand. In vain336 the Prussian king strove to bring his foes to a pitched battle. Adroitly Prince Charles avoided any decisive engagement. Frederick was fifty miles from Prague. The roads were quagmires. November gales swept his camp. A foe, superior in numbers, equal in bravery, surrounded him on all sides. The hostile army was led by a general whose greater military ability Frederick acknowledged.

Freddie gathered his army at Konopischt, very close to Beneschau. He had sixty thousand men available. Prince Charles commanded seventy thousand. The Prussian king tried in vain to force his enemies into a decisive battle. Skillfully, Prince Charles avoided any major confrontation. Frederick was fifty miles away from Prague. The roads were muddy messes. November winds battered his camp. An opponent, outnumbering him but equal in courage, surrounded him on all sides. The enemy army was led by a general whose superior military skills Frederick recognized.

A council of war was held. It was decided to commence an immediate and rapid retreat to Silesia. Prague, with its garrison of five thousand men, and its siege artillery, was to be abandoned to its fate. Word was sent to General Einsiedel to spike his guns, blow up his bastions, throw his ammunition into the river, and to escape, if possible, down the valley of the Moldau, to Leitmeritz.

A war council was convened. They decided to start an immediate and quick retreat to Silesia. Prague, along with its garrison of five thousand soldiers and its siege artillery, was to be left to its own devices. A message was sent to General Einsiedel to disable his guns, blow up his fortifications, dump his ammunition into the river, and escape, if possible, down the Moldau Valley to Leitmeritz.

Frederick divided his retreating army into two columns. One, led by the young Leopold, was to retire through Glatz. The other, led by Frederick, traversed a road a few leagues to the west, passing through Königgratz. It was an awful retreat for both these divisions—through snow, and sleet, and mud, hungry, weary, freezing, with swarms of Pandours hanging upon their rear. Thousands perished by the way. The horrors of such a retreat no pen can describe. Their very guides deserted them, and became spies, to report their movements to the foe.

Frederick split his retreating army into two groups. One, led by the young Leopold, was to pull back through Glatz. The other, led by Frederick, moved along a road a few leagues to the west, passing through Königgratz. It was a terrible retreat for both divisions—through snow, sleet, and mud, hungry, exhausted, freezing, with hordes of Pandours trailing behind them. Thousands died along the way. The horrors of such a retreat can't be captured in words. Their very guides abandoned them and turned into spies, reporting their movements to the enemy.

On one occasion the king himself narrowly escaped being taken prisoner. One of his officers, General Trenck, gives the following graphic narrative of the incident:

On one occasion, the king himself barely escaped being captured. One of his officers, General Trenck, provides the following vivid account of the event:

“One day the king entered the town of Collin, with his horse and foot guard and the whole of the baggage. We had but four small field-pieces with us. The squadron to which I belonged was placed in the suburb. In the evening our advanced posts were driven back into the town, and the huzzas of the enemy followed them pell-mell. All the country around was covered with the light troops of the Austrians. My commandant sent me to the king to take his orders.

“One day the king rode into the town of Collin, accompanied by his cavalry, infantry guard, and all the supplies. We only had four small cannons with us. The squadron I was part of was stationed in the suburb. In the evening, our outposts were pushed back into the town, and the cheers of the enemy followed closely behind. The surrounding area was filled with light troops of the Austrians. My commander sent me to the king to get his orders.”

“After a long search, I at length found him in a tower of a church, with a telescope in his hand. Never had I seen him in so much perplexity and anxiety as at this moment. The order he gave me was, ‘You must get out of this scrape as well as you can.’ I had hardly got back to my post when his adjutant337 followed me with a new order to cross the town, and to remain on horseback with my squadron in the opposite suburb.

“After a long search, I finally found him in a church tower, holding a telescope. I had never seen him looking so troubled and anxious as he did then. He told me, ‘You need to get out of this situation as best as you can.’ I had barely made it back to my post when his adjutant337 came after me with a new order to cross the town and stay on horseback with my squadron in the opposite suburb.”

THE KING IN THE TOWER AT COLLIN.

“We had just arrived there when it began to rain heavily, and the night became exceedingly dark. About nine o’clock one of the Austrian generals approached us with his light troops, and set fire to the houses close to which we were posted. By the blaze of the conflagration he soon discovered us, and began firing at us from the windows. The town was so full that it was impossible for us to find a place in it. Besides, the gate was barricaded, and from the top they were firing at us with our small field-pieces, which they had captured.

“We had just gotten there when it started to rain heavily, and the night turned extremely dark. Around nine o'clock, one of the Austrian generals came over to us with his light troops and set fire to the houses near where we were stationed. By the light of the fire, he quickly spotted us and began shooting at us from the windows. The town was so crowded that we couldn’t find a spot in it. Plus, the gate was blocked, and from the top, they were firing at us with our small field guns that they had taken.”

“In the mean time the Austrians had turned in upon us a rivulet, and by midnight we found our horses in the water up to their bellies. We were really incapable of defending ourselves.”

“In the meantime, the Austrians had directed a stream toward us, and by midnight we found our horses in water up to their bellies. We were truly unable to defend ourselves.”

338 Just at that time, when all hope seemed lost, it so happened that a cannon-ball crushed the foot of the Austrian commander. This disaster, together with the darkness and the torrents of rain, caused the fire of the enemy to cease. The next morning some Prussian re-enforcements came to the rescue of the king, and he escaped.

338 Just when all hope seemed gone, a cannonball hit the foot of the Austrian commander. This disaster, along with the darkness and heavy rain, caused the enemy's fire to stop. The next morning, some Prussian reinforcements arrived to help the king, allowing him to escape.

It was on the night of the 25th of November, cold and dreary, that General Einsiedel commenced his retreat from Prague. He pushed his wagon trains out before him, and followed with his horse and foot. The Austrians were on the alert. Their light horsemen came clattering into the city ere the rear-guard had left. The Catholic populace of the city, being in sympathy with the Austrians, immediately joined the Pandours in a fierce attack upon the Prussians. The retreating columns were torn by a terrific fire from the windows of the houses, from bridges, from boats, from every point whence a bullet could reach them. But the well-drilled Prussians met the shock with the stern composure of machines, leaving their path strewn with the dying and the dead.

It was on the night of November 25th, cold and gloomy, that General Einsiedel began his retreat from Prague. He sent his wagon trains ahead and followed with his troops. The Austrians were on high alert. Their cavalry charged into the city before the rear guard had even left. The Catholic residents of the city, sympathetic to the Austrians, quickly joined the Pandours in a fierce attack on the Prussians. The retreating troops were caught in a brutal crossfire from windows, bridges, boats, and any place where bullets could strike them. But the well-trained Prussians responded to the assault with the unflinching calmness of machines, leaving a trail of the dying and the dead in their wake.

The heroic General Einsiedel struggled along through the snow and over the pathless hills, pursued and pelted every hour by the indomitable foe. He was often compelled to abandon baggage-wagons and ambulances containing the sick, while the wounded and the exhausted sank freezing by the way. At one time he was so crowded by the enemy that he was compelled to continue his march through the long hours of a wintry night, by the light of pitch-pine torches. After this awful retreat of twenty days, an emaciate, ragged, frostbitten band crossed the frontier into Silesia, near Friedland. They were soon united with the other columns of the discomfited and almost ruined army.

The brave General Einsiedel fought his way through the snow and over the unmarked hills, constantly chased and attacked by the relentless enemy. He often had to leave behind supply wagons and ambulances carrying the sick, while the wounded and exhausted collapsed in the freezing cold. At one point, he was so surrounded by the enemy that he had to keep moving through the long hours of a wintry night, using pitch-pine torches for light. After this terrible retreat lasting twenty days, a thin, ragged, frostbitten group crossed the border into Silesia, near Friedland. They quickly joined the other sections of the defeated and nearly destroyed army.

It will generally be admitted by military men that Frederick did not display much ability of generalship in this campaign. He was fearless, indomitable in energy, and tireless in the endurance of fatigue, but in generalship he was entirely eclipsed by his formidable rival. Indeed, Frederick could not be blind to this, and he had sufficient candor to confess it. Subsequently, giving an account of these transactions in his “Works,” he writes:

It’s generally accepted by military experts that Frederick didn’t show much skill in leadership during this campaign. He was brave, relentless in his energy, and tireless in handling fatigue, but when it came to strategy, he was completely outshone by his powerful opponent. In fact, Frederick wasn’t oblivious to this and had enough honesty to admit it. Later, when recounting these events in his “Works,” he writes:

339 “No general has committed more faults than did the king in this campaign. The conduct of Marshal Traun is a model of perfection, which every soldier who loves his business ought to study, and try to imitate if he have the talent. The king has admitted that he himself regarded this campaign as his school in the art of war, and Marshal Traun as his teacher.”

339 “No general has made more mistakes than the king did in this campaign. The way Marshal Traun conducted himself is a perfect example that every soldier who is passionate about their work should study and try to emulate if they have the skill. The king has acknowledged that he viewed this campaign as his learning experience in the art of war, with Marshal Traun serving as his mentor.”

He then adds the philosophical reflection: “Bad is often better for princes than good. Instead of intoxicating them with presumption, it renders them circumspect and modest.”76

He then adds the philosophical thought: “Bad is often better for leaders than good. Instead of filling them with overconfidence, it makes them careful and humble.”76

Frederick, leaving his army safe for a short time, quartered, as he supposed, for the winter, in his strong fortresses of Silesia, returned hastily to Berlin. It was necessary for him to make immediate preparation for another campaign. “From December 13, 1744,” writes Carlyle, “when he hastened home to Berlin, under such aspects, to June 4, 1745, when aspects suddenly changed, are probably the worst six months Frederick had yet had in the world.”77

Frederick, having left his army secure for a while, intended to spend the winter in his strong fortresses in Silesia, but quickly returned to Berlin. He needed to get ready for another campaign right away. “From December 13, 1744,” writes Carlyle, “when he rushed back to Berlin under such circumstances, to June 4, 1745, when things suddenly changed, are probably the worst six months Frederick had experienced in his life.”77

His wintry ride, a defeated monarch leaving a shattered army behind him, must have been dark and dreary. He had already exhausted nearly all the resources which his father, Frederick William, had accumulated. His army was demoralized, weakened, and his materiel of war greatly impaired. His subjects were already heavily taxed. Though practicing the most rigid economy, with his eye upon every expenditure, his disastrous Bohemian campaign had cost him three hundred and fifty thousand dollars a month. The least sum with which he could commence a new campaign for the protection of Silesia was four million five hundred thousand dollars. He had already melted up the sumptuous plate, and the massive silver balustrades and balconies where his father had deposited so much solid treasure.

His cold journey, a defeated king leaving a broken army behind, must have been bleak and gloomy. He had already used up almost all the resources his father, Frederick William, had built up. His army was disheartened, weakened, and his war supplies were significantly reduced. His people were already heavily taxed. Even though he was practicing strict budgeting, keeping a close eye on every expense, his disastrous campaign in Bohemia had cost him three hundred fifty thousand dollars a month. The least amount he needed to start a new campaign to protect Silesia was four million five hundred thousand dollars. He had already melted down the lavish silverware and the heavy silver railings and balconies where his father had stored so much valuable treasure.

“It was in these hours of apparently insurmountable difficulty that the marvelous administrative genius of Frederick was displayed. No modern reader can imagine the difficulties of Frederick at this time as they already lay disclosed, and kept gradually disclosing themselves, for months coming; nor will ever know what perspicacity, what patience of scanning, sharpness of340 discernment, dexterity of management, were required at Frederick’s hands; and under what imminency of peril too—victorious deliverance or ruin and annihilation, wavering fearfully in the balance, for him more than once, or rather all along.”78

“It was during these hours of seemingly impossible challenges that Frederick’s incredible talent for administration shone through. No modern reader can truly grasp the difficulties Frederick faced at this time, which had already begun to unfold and would continue to reveal themselves for months to come; nor will anyone ever fully understand the insight, the patience to observe, the clarity of judgment, and the skillful management that Frederick had to demonstrate; and under what imminent danger too—whether he would achieve a victorious escape or face ruin and destruction, which was precariously balanced for him time and again, or rather throughout the entire period.”340

To add to the embarrassments of Frederick, the King of Poland, entirely under the control of his minister Brühl, who hated Frederick, entered into an alliance with Maria Theresa, and engaged to furnish her with thirty thousand troops, who were to be supported by the sea powers England and Holland, who were also in close alliance with Austria.

To make matters worse for Frederick, the King of Poland, who was completely controlled by his minister Brühl—who despised Frederick—formed an alliance with Maria Theresa and promised to provide her with thirty thousand troops, supported by the naval powers England and Holland, which were also closely allied with Austria.

Maria Theresa, greatly elated by her success in driving the Prussians out of Bohemia, resolved immediately, notwithstanding the severity of the season, to push her armies through the “Giant Mountains” for the reconquering of Silesia. She ordered her generals to press on with the utmost energy and overrun the whole country. At the same time she issued a manifesto, declaring that the treaty of Breslau was a treaty no longer; that the Silesians were absolved from all oaths of allegiance to the King of Prussia, and that they were to hold themselves in readiness to take the oath anew to the Queen of Hungary.

Maria Theresa, very excited about her success in driving the Prussians out of Bohemia, immediately decided, despite the harsh weather, to move her armies through the “Giant Mountains” to reclaim Silesia. She instructed her generals to push forward with all their energy and take over the entire region. At the same time, she issued a manifesto declaring that the treaty of Breslau was no longer valid; that the Silesians were free from all oaths of loyalty to the King of Prussia, and that they should be prepared to take an oath of loyalty to the Queen of Hungary instead.

On the 18th of December a strong Austrian army entered Silesia and took possession of the country of Glatz. The Prussian troops were withdrawn in good order to their strong fortresses on the Oder. The old Prince Leopold, the cast-iron man, called the Old Dessauer, the most inflexible of mortals, was left in command of the Prussian troops. He was, however, quite seriously alienated from Frederick. A veteran soldier, having spent his lifetime on fields of blood, and having served the monarchs of Prussia when Frederick was but a child, and who had been the military instructor of the young prince, he deemed himself entitled to consideration which an inexperienced officer might not command. In one of the marches to which we have referred, Leopold ventured to take a route different from that which Frederick had prescribed to him. In the following terms the Prussian king reprimanded him for his disobedience:

On December 18th, a powerful Austrian army entered Silesia and seized control of the Glatz region. The Prussian troops withdrew in an orderly fashion to their strongholds along the Oder. The old Prince Leopold, known as the Old Dessauer, the most steadfast of men, was left in charge of the Prussian forces. However, he had become quite distant from Frederick. A seasoned soldier who had spent his life on battlefields and had served the Prussian monarchs when Frederick was still a child, and who had been a military mentor to the young prince, he felt he deserved respect that an inexperienced officer might not receive. During one of the marches we mentioned earlier, Leopold chose a different route than the one Frederick had instructed him to take. The Prussian king reprimanded him for his disobedience in the following terms:

“I am greatly surprised that your excellency does not more accurately follow my orders. If you were more skillful than Cæsar, and did not with strict fidelity obey my directions, all341 else were of no help to me. I hope this notice, once for all, will be enough, and that in future you will give no cause for complaint.”

“I’m really surprised that you aren’t following my orders more closely. Even if you were more skilled than Cæsar, not strictly obeying my directions would be of no use to me. I hope this message will be clear enough, and that you won’t give me any reason to complain in the future.”

Prince Leopold was keenly wounded by this reproof. Though he uttered not a word in self-defense, he was ever after, in the presence of his majesty, very silent, distant, and reserved. Though scrupulously faithful in every duty, he compelled the king to feel that an impassable wall of separation had risen up between them. He was seeking for an honorable pretext to withdraw from his majesty’s service.

Prince Leopold was deeply hurt by this criticism. Although he didn't say anything in his defense, he became very quiet, distant, and reserved whenever he was around the king from that point on. Even though he was diligent in all his responsibilities, he made the king feel as if an impenetrable barrier had come between them. He was looking for a respectable reason to leave the king’s service.

Frederick had hardly reached Berlin ere he was astonished to learn, from dispatches from the Old Dessauer, that the Austrians, not content with driving him out of Bohemia, had actually invaded Silesia. Amazed, or affecting amazement, at such audacity, he sent reiterated and impatient orders to his veteran general to fall immediately upon the insolent foe and crush him.

Frederick had barely arrived in Berlin when he was shocked to hear, from messages from the Old Dessauer, that the Austrians, not satisfied with pushing him out of Bohemia, had actually invaded Silesia. Surprised, or pretending to be surprised, by such boldness, he sent multiple impatient orders to his experienced general to immediately attack the arrogant enemy and defeat him.

“Hurl them out,” he wrote. “Gather twenty, thirty thousand men, if need be. Let there be no delay. I will as soon be pitched out of Brandenburg as out of Silesia.”

“Throw them out,” he wrote. “Gather twenty, thirty thousand men, if necessary. There should be no delay. I’d just as soon be kicked out of Brandenburg as out of Silesia.”

But it was much easier for Frederick to issue these orders than for Leopold to execute them. As Leopold could not, in a day, gather sufficient force to warrant an attack upon the Austrians, the king was greatly irritated, and allowed himself to write to Leopold in a strain of which he must afterward have been much ashamed. On the 19th he addressed a note to the veteran officer couched in the following terms:

But it was much easier for Frederick to give these orders than for Leopold to carry them out. Since Leopold couldn’t gather enough troops in a day to justify an attack on the Austrians, the king was very frustrated and wrote to Leopold in a way that he must have regretted later. On the 19th, he sent a note to the veteran officer with the following message:

“On the 21st I leave Berlin, and mean to be at Neisse on the 24th at least. Your excellency will, in the mean time, make out the order of battle for the regiments which have come in. For I will, on the 25th, without delay, cross the Neisse, and attack those people, cost what it may, and chase them out of Silesia, and follow them as far as possible. You will, therefore, take measure and provide every thing, that the project may be executed the moment I arrive.”

“On the 21st, I’m leaving Berlin and plan to be in Neisse by the 24th at the latest. In the meantime, Your Excellency will prepare the order of battle for the regiments that have arrived. On the 25th, I will cross the Neisse immediately and attack them, no matter the cost, chasing them out of Silesia and following them as far as I can. Therefore, please make arrangements and ensure everything is ready so we can execute the plan as soon as I arrive.”

In this fiery humor, the king leaped upon his horse and galloped to Schweidnitz. Here he met the Old Dessauer. He must have been not a little mortified to learn that his veteran general was right, and he utterly in the wrong. Prince Charles had returned home. Marshal Traun was in command of the Austrians.342 He had a compact army of 20,000 men, flushed with victory and surrounded by countless thousands of Pandours, who veiled every movement from view. He had established himself in an impregnable position on the south side of the Neisse, where he could not be assailed, with any prospect of success, by the force which Leopold could then summon to his aid.

In this fiery mood, the king jumped on his horse and rode to Schweidnitz. There, he met the Old Dessauer. He must have been quite embarrassed to discover that his seasoned general was right, and he was completely wrong. Prince Charles had gone back home. Marshal Traun was leading the Austrians. He had a solid army of 20,000 men, riding high on victory and surrounded by countless Pandours, who hid every movement from sight. He had positioned himself in an unassailable spot on the south side of the Neisse, where he couldn't be attacked with any chance of success by the forces that Leopold could then gather to help him.342

Frederick was silenced, humiliated. He returned to Berlin, having accomplished nothing, and having lost four days in his fruitless adventure. Leopold was left to accumulate his resources as rapidly as he could, and to attack the Austrians at his discretion.

Frederick was left speechless and embarrassed. He went back to Berlin, having achieved nothing and wasting four days on his useless quest. Leopold was free to gather his resources as quickly as possible and to go on the offensive against the Austrians whenever he chose.

Prince Charles had married the only sister of Maria Theresa. She was young, beautiful, and amiable. While the prince was conducting his arduous campaign on the Moldau, his wife, grief-stricken, consigned her new-born babe to the tomb. The little stranger, born in the absence of his father, had but opened his eyes upon this sad world when he closed them forever. The princess sank rapidly into a decline.

Prince Charles had married Maria Theresa's only sister. She was young, beautiful, and kind. While the prince was fighting a tough campaign on the Moldau, his wife, overwhelmed with grief, buried their newborn baby. The little one, born while his father was away, had just opened his eyes to this sad world when he closed them forever. The princess quickly fell into a decline.

Charles, feeling keenly the bereavement, and alarmed for the health of his wife, whom he loved most tenderly, hastened to his home in Brussels. The prince and princess were vice-regents, or “joint governors” of the Netherlands. The decline of the princess was very rapid. On the 16th of December, the young prince, with flooded eyes, a broken-hearted man, followed the remains of his beloved companion to their burial. Charles never recovered from the blow. He had been the happiest of husbands. He sank into a state of deep despondency, and could never be induced to wed again. Though in April he resumed, for a time, the command of the army, his energies were wilted, his spirit saddened, and he soon passed into oblivion. This is but one among the countless millions of the unwritten tragedies of human life.

Charles, deeply feeling the loss and worried about the health of his beloved wife, rushed home to Brussels. The prince and princess were vice-regents, or "joint governors" of the Netherlands. The princess’s health declined quickly. On December 16th, the young prince, with tear-filled eyes and a broken heart, accompanied the remains of his cherished partner to her burial. Charles never fully recovered from this loss. He had been the happiest husband. He fell into a deep sadness and never agreed to marry again. Although he took command of the army again for a time in April, his energy was gone, his spirit was dampened, and he soon faded into obscurity. This is just one of the countless unwritten tragedies of human life.

On the 9th of January, Leopold, having gathered a well-furnished army of 25,000 men, crossed the Neisse to attack Marshal Traun. The marshal did not deem it prudent to hazard a battle. Large bodies of troops were soon to be sent to re-enforce him. He therefore retired by night toward the south, breaking the bridges behind him. Though Silesia was thus delivered from the main body of the Austrian army, the fleet-footed Pandours343 remained, scouring the country on their shaggy horses, plundering and destroying. The energetic, tireless Old Dessauer could seldom get a shot at them. But they harassed his army, keeping the troops constantly on the march amidst the storms and the freezing cold.

On January 9th, Leopold, having assembled a well-equipped army of 25,000 men, crossed the Neisse to confront Marshal Traun. The marshal decided it was unwise to risk a battle. Large reinforcements were soon on the way to support him. As a result, he withdrew south at night, destroying the bridges behind him. While Silesia was now free from the main force of the Austrian army, the swift Pandours343 remained, roaming the countryside on their rugged horses, looting and wreaking havoc. The energetic, relentless Old Dessauer rarely managed to take a shot at them. However, they constantly troubled his army, forcing his troops to march under harsh conditions in the storms and freezing cold.

“The old serene highness himself, face the color of gunpowder, and bluer in the winter frost, went rushing far and wide in an open vehicle which he called his ‘cart,’ pushing out his detachments; supervising every thing; wheeling hither and thither as needful; sweeping out the Pandour world, and keeping it out; not much fighting needed, but ‘a great deal of marching,’ murmurs Frederick, ‘which in winter is as bad, and wears down the force of battalions.’”79

“The calm old prince himself, with a face like gunpowder and even bluer in the winter frost, rushed around in an open vehicle he called his ‘cart,’ sending out his troops; overseeing everything; moving this way and that as needed; clearing out the Pandour territory and keeping them away; not much fighting was necessary, but ‘a lot of marching,’ Frederick mutters, ‘which in winter is just as tough and wears down the strength of the battalions.’”79

PRINCE LEOPOLD INSPECTING THE ARMY IN HIS “CART.”

We seldom hear from Frederick any recognition of God. But on this occasion, perhaps out of regard to the feelings of his subjects, he ordered the Te Deum to be sung in the churches of Berlin “for the deliverance of Silesia from invasion.”

We rarely hear Frederick acknowledge God. But on this occasion, maybe to respect the feelings of his subjects, he ordered the Te Deum to be sung in the churches of Berlin "for the deliverance of Silesia from invasion."

On the 20th of January, 1745, Charles Albert, the unhappy344 and ever-unfortunate Emperor of Germany, died at Munich, in the forty-eighth year of his age. Tortured by a complication of the most painful disorders, he had seldom, for weary years, enjoyed an hour of freedom from acute pain. An incessant series of disasters crushed all his hopes. He was inextricably involved in debt. Triumphant foes drove him from his realms. He wandered a fugitive in foreign courts, exposed to humiliation and the most cutting indignities. Thus the victim of bodily and mental anguish, it is said that one day some new tidings of disaster prostrated him upon the bed of death. He was patient and mild, but the saddest of mortals. Gladly he sought refuge in the tomb from the storms of his drear and joyless life. An eye-witness writes, “Charles Albert’s pious and affectionate demeanor drew tears from all eyes. The manner in which he took leave of his empress would have melted a heart of stone.”

On January 20, 1745, Charles Albert, the unfortunate and ever-unlucky Emperor of Germany, died in Munich at the age of forty-eight. Tormented by a painful mix of disorders, he had rarely enjoyed an hour free from severe pain for many years. A constant stream of disasters crushed all his hopes. He was deeply in debt. Triumphant enemies drove him from his lands. He roamed as a fugitive in foreign courts, facing humiliation and the harshest indignities. A victim of both physical and emotional suffering, it's said that one day some new bad news knocked him down to his deathbed. He was patient and gentle, but the saddest of humans. He gladly sought refuge in the grave from the storms of his dreary and joyless life. An eyewitness writes, “Charles Albert’s pious and affectionate demeanor drew tears from everyone. The way he said goodbye to his empress would have melted a heart of stone.”

“The death of the emperor,” says Frederick, “was the only event wanting to complete the confusion and embroilment which already existed in the political relations of the European powers.”

“The death of the emperor,” Frederick says, “was the only thing missing to add to the chaos and mess that already existed in the political relationships of the European powers.”

Maximilian Joseph, son of the emperor, was at the time of his father’s death but seventeen years of age. He was titular Elector of Bavaria; but Austrian armies had overrun the electorate, and he was a fugitive from his dominions. At the entreaty of his mother, he entered into a treaty of alliance with the Queen of Hungary. She agreed to restore to him his realms, and to recognize his mother as empress dowager. He, on the other hand, agreed to support the Pragmatic Sanction, and to give his vote for the Grand-duke Francis as Emperor of Germany.

Maximilian Joseph, the emperor's son, was only seventeen when his father died. He held the title of Elector of Bavaria, but Austrian armies had taken over the electorate, leaving him a fugitive from his lands. At his mother’s request, he made an alliance with the Queen of Hungary. She promised to return his realms to him and acknowledge his mother as empress dowager. In return, he agreed to back the Pragmatic Sanction and support the Grand-Duke Francis as Emperor of Germany.

Thus Bavaria turned against Frederick. It was manifest to all that Maria Theresa, aided by the alliances into which she had entered, and sustained by the gold which the English cabinet so generously lavished upon her, would be able to place the imperial crown upon her husband’s brow. It was equally evident that the sceptre of power, of which that crown was the emblem, would be entirely in her own hands.

Thus, Bavaria turned against Frederick. It was clear to everyone that Maria Theresa, supported by the alliances she had formed and backed by the wealth that the English government generously provided, would be able to place the imperial crown on her husband's head. It was also obvious that the power represented by that crown would be entirely in her hands.

Frederick had now France only for an ally. But France was seeking her own private interests on the Rhine, as Frederick was aiming at the aggrandizement of Prussia on his Austrian frontiers. Neither party was disposed to make any sacrifice for the benefit of the other. Frederick, thus thrown mainly upon his345 own resources, with an impoverished treasury, and a weakened and baffled army, made indirect application to both England and Austria for peace. But both of these courts, flushed with success, were indisposed to listen to any terms which Frederick would propose.

Frederick now had France as his only ally. However, France was focused on pursuing its own interests along the Rhine, just as Frederick was trying to expand Prussia's influence against Austria. Neither side was willing to make any sacrifices for the other's benefit. With limited resources, a struggling treasury, and a weakened army, Frederick turned to both England and Austria indirectly to request peace. But both countries, feeling confident after their successes, were unwilling to accept any terms Frederick suggested.

There was nothing left for his Prussian majesty but to abandon Silesia, and retire within his own original borders, defeated and humiliated, the object of the contempt and ridicule of Europe, or to press forward in the conflict, summoning to his aid all the energies of despair.

There was nothing left for his Prussian majesty but to give up Silesia and retreat within his original borders, defeated and humiliated, the target of Europe's contempt and ridicule, or to push forward in the fight, calling upon all the desperate energies he could muster.

Old Prince Leopold of Dessau, whom he had left in command of the army in Silesia, was one of the most extraordinary men of any age. He invented the iron ramrod, and also all modern military tactics. “The soldiery of every civilized country still receives from this man, on the parade-fields and battle-fields, its word of command. Out of his rough head proceeded the essential of all that the innumerable drill-sergeants in various languages repeat and enforce.”80

Old Prince Leopold of Dessau, whom he had left in charge of the army in Silesia, was one of the most remarkable individuals of any era. He created the iron ramrod and developed all modern military tactics. “The soldiers of every civilized country still receive their commands from this man, both on parade grounds and battlefields. From his tough mind came the core principles that countless drill sergeants in different languages repeat and implement.”80

Dessau was a little independent principality embracing a few square miles, about eighty miles southwest of Prussia. The prince had a Liliputian army, and a revenue of about fifty thousand dollars. Leopold’s mother was the sister of the great Elector of Brandenburg’s first wife. The little principality was thus, by matrimonial alliance as well as location, in affinity with Prussia.

Dessau was a small independent principality covering a few square miles, located about eighty miles southwest of Prussia. The prince had a tiny army and an income of around fifty thousand dollars. Leopold’s mother was the sister of the first wife of the great Elector of Brandenburg. The little principality was therefore connected to Prussia through both marriage ties and its location.

Leopold, in early youth, fell deeply in love with a beautiful young lady, Mademoiselle Fos. She was the daughter of an apothecary. His aristocratic friends were shocked at the idea of so unequal a marriage. The sturdy will of Leopold was unyielding. They sent him away, under a French tutor, to take the grand tour of Europe. After an absence of fourteen months he returned. The first thing he did was to call upon Mademoiselle Fos. After that, he called upon his widowed mother. It was in vain to resist the will of such a man. In 1698 he married her, and soon, by his splendid military services, so ennobled his bride that all were ready to do her homage. For half a century she was his loved and honored spouse, attending him in all his campaigns.

Leopold, when he was young, fell deeply in love with a beautiful young woman, Mademoiselle Fos. She was the daughter of a pharmacist. His aristocratic friends were shocked at the thought of such an unequal match. Leopold’s strong will wouldn’t budge. They sent him away, with a French tutor, to travel around Europe. After being away for fourteen months, he returned. The first thing he did was visit Mademoiselle Fos. After that, he visited his widowed mother. It was futile to oppose the will of such a man. In 1698, he married her, and soon, through his impressive military service, he elevated his bride’s status so that everyone acknowledged her. For fifty years, she was his beloved and respected wife, joining him in all his campaigns.

346 With a tender heart, Leopold was one of the most stern and rugged of men. Spending his whole life amidst the storms of battle, he seemed ever insensible to fatigue, and regardless of all physical comforts. And yet there was a vein of truly feminine gentleness and tenderness in his heart, which made him one of the most loving of husbands and fathers.

346 With a gentle heart, Leopold was one of the toughest and most rugged men. Spending his whole life in the midst of battle, he always seemed unaffected by fatigue and indifferent to physical comforts. Yet, there was a genuinely feminine softness and kindness in his heart that made him one of the most caring husbands and fathers.

His young daughter Louisa, bride of Victor Leopold, reigning Prince of Anhalt-Bernburg, lay dying of a decline. A few days before her death she said, “I wish I could see my father at the head of his regiment once again before I die.” The remark was reported to Leopold. He was then with his regiment at Halle, thirty miles distant. Immediately the troops were called out, and marched at rapid pace to Bernburg. With banners flying, music playing, and all customary display of military pomp, they entered the court-yard of the palace. The dying daughter, pale and emaciate, sat at the window. The war-worn father rose in his stirrups to salute his child, and then put his regiment through all its most interesting manœuvrings. The soldiers were then marched to the orphan-house, where the common men were treated with bread and beer, all the officers dining at the prince’s table. “All the officers except Leopold alone, who stole away out of the crowd, sat himself upon the Saale bridge, and wept into the river.”

His young daughter Louisa, the bride of Victor Leopold, the reigning Prince of Anhalt-Bernburg, was dying from a decline. A few days before her death, she said, “I wish I could see my father at the head of his regiment one more time before I die.” Leopold heard this remark while with his regiment in Halle, thirty miles away. He immediately called out the troops and they marched quickly to Bernburg. With banners waving, music playing, and all the usual military fanfare, they came into the palace courtyard. The dying daughter, pale and thin, sat at the window. The war-worn father rose in his stirrups to salute his child, then showed off all the regiment's most interesting maneuvers. The soldiers were then led to the orphanage, where the ordinary soldiers were served bread and beer, while all the officers dined at the prince’s table. “All the officers except Leopold, who quietly slipped away from the crowd, sat on the Saale bridge and wept into the river.”

Leopold was now seventy years of age. On the 5th of February his much-loved wife died at Dessau. Leopold, infirm in health, and broken with grief, entreated the king to allow him to go home. He could not, of course, be immediately spared.

Leopold was now seventy years old. On February 5th, his beloved wife passed away in Dessau. Leopold, in poor health and overwhelmed with grief, asked the king for permission to return home. He couldn't, of course, be released right away.

On the 15th of March Frederick left Berlin for Silesia. Stopping to examine some of his works at Glogau and Breslau, he reached Neisse on the 23d. On the 29th he dismissed the Old Dessauer, with many expressions of kindness and sympathy, to go home to recover his health.

On March 15th, Frederick left Berlin for Silesia. After stopping to check on some of his projects in Glogau and Breslau, he arrived in Neisse on the 23rd. On the 29th, he kindly let the Old Dessauer go home to focus on recovering his health.

“Old Leopold is hardly at home at Dessau,” writes Carlyle, “when the new Pandour tempests, tides of ravaging war, again come beating against the Giant Mountains, pouring through all passes, huge influx of wild riding hordes, each with some support of Austrian grenadiers, cannoniers, threatening to submerge Silesia. Precursors, Frederick need not doubt, of a strenuous, regular attempt that way. Hungarian majesty’s fixed intention,347 hope, and determination is to expel him straightway from Silesia.”81

“Old Leopold is barely home in Dessau,” writes Carlyle, “when the new Pandour storms, waves of destructive war, come crashing against the Giant Mountains, flooding through all the passes, a massive surge of wild riding hordes, each backed by some Austrian grenadiers and artillerymen, threatening to overwhelm Silesia. Frederick can have no doubt that this is a strong and deliberate attempt in that direction. The Hungarian king’s firm intention, hope, and resolve is to drive him out of Silesia immediately.”34781

The latter part of April Prince Charles had gathered a large force of Austrian regulars at Olmütz, with the manifest intention of again invading Silesia. The King of Poland had entered into cordial alliance with Austria, and was sending a large army of Saxon troops to co-operate in the enterprise. Frederick’s indignation was great, and his peril still greater. Encamped in the valley of the Neisse, assailed on every side, and menaced with still more formidable foes, he dispatched orders to the Old Dessauer immediately to establish an army of observation (thirty thousand strong) upon the frontiers of Saxony. He was to be prepared instantly, upon the Saxon troops leaving Saxony, to ravage the country with the most merciless plunderings of war.

In the later part of April, Prince Charles had assembled a large contingent of Austrian regulars at Olmütz, clearly planning to invade Silesia again. The King of Poland had formed a friendly alliance with Austria and was sending a significant number of Saxon troops to support the effort. Frederick was extremely angry, and his situation was even more dangerous. Stationed in the Neisse valley, surrounded on all sides and threatened by even more powerful enemies, he sent orders to the Old Dessauer to quickly set up an army of observation (thirty thousand strong) along the Saxony border. He was to be ready to devastate the land with brutal warfare as soon as the Saxon troops left Saxony.

The Queen of Hungary had purchased the co-operation of the Polish king by offering to surrender to him a generous portion of Silesia after the province should have been reconquered. Indeed, there was a great cause of apprehension that the allied army would make a rush upon Berlin itself. The aspect of his Prussian majesty’s affairs was now gloomy in the extreme.

The Queen of Hungary secured the support of the Polish king by promising to give him a significant part of Silesia once the province was reclaimed. In fact, there was considerable concern that the allied army would advance straight toward Berlin. The situation for his Prussian majesty looked incredibly bleak.

Frederick wrote to his minister Podewils in Berlin, under date of Neisse, March 29, 1745, as follows: “We find ourselves in a great crisis. If we don’t by mediation of England get peace, our enemies from different sides will come plunging in against me. Peace I can not force them to. But if we must have war, we will either beat them, or none of us will ever see Berlin again.”

Frederick wrote to his minister Podewils in Berlin on March 29, 1745, from Neisse, saying: “We are in a serious crisis. If we don't get peace through England's mediation, our enemies will come at me from all sides. I can’t force them to make peace. But if we must go to war, we will either defeat them, or none of us will ever see Berlin again.”

On the 17th of April again he wrote, still from Neisse: “I toil day and night to improve our situation. The soldiers will do their duty. There is none among us who will not rather have his back-bone broken than give up one foot-breadth of ground. They must either grant us a good peace, or we will surpass ourselves by miracles of daring, and force the enemy to accept it from us.”

On April 17th, he wrote again, still from Neisse: “I work day and night to improve our situation. The soldiers will do their part. There's not one of us who would rather have their back broken than give up an inch of ground. They must either give us a decent peace, or we'll go above and beyond with acts of bravery and make the enemy accept it from us.”

On the 20th of April he wrote: “Our situation is disagreeable, but my determination is taken. If we needs must fight, we will do it like men driven desperate. Never was there a greater peril than that I am now in. Time, at its own pleasure, will untie this knot, or destiny, if there is one, determine the event. The348 game I play is so high, one can not contemplate the issue with cold blood. Pray for the return of my good luck.”

On April 20th, he wrote: “Our situation is tough, but I’ve made up my mind. If we have to fight, we’ll do it like men pushed to the brink. Never have I faced a greater danger than what I’m in now. Time, at its own pace, will solve this problem, or fate, if it exists, will decide the outcome. The348 stakes I’m dealing with are so high that I can’t think about the result calmly. Please pray for my luck to come back.”

The alarm in Berlin was very great. The citizens were awake to the consciousness that there was danger; that the city itself would be assaulted. Great was the consternation in the capital when minute directions came from Frederick respecting the course to be pursued in the event of such a calamity, and the places of refuge to which the royal family should retreat.

The alarm in Berlin was very high. The citizens were aware that there was danger; that the city itself would be attacked. There was great panic in the capital when detailed instructions came from Frederick regarding the actions to take in the event of such a disaster, and the safe places where the royal family should go.

On the 26th of April Frederick again wrote to M. Podewils: “I can understand how you are getting uneasy at Berlin. I have the most to lose of you all, but I am quiet and prepared for events. If the Saxons take part in the invasion of Silesia, and we beat them, I am determined to plunge into Saxony. For great maladies there need great remedies. Either I will maintain my all or else lose my all. To me remains only to possess myself in patience. If all alliances, resources, and negotiations fail, and all conjunctures go against me, I prefer to perish with honor rather than lead an inglorious life, deprived of all dignity. My ambition whispers me that I have done more than another to the building up of my house, and have played a distinguished part among the crowned heads of Europe. To maintain myself there has become, as it were, a personal duty, which I will fulfill at the expense of my happiness and my life. I have no choice left. I will maintain my power, or it may go to ruin, and the Prussian name be buried under it. If the enemy attempt any thing upon us, we will either beat them, or will all be hewed to pieces for the sake of our country and the renown of Brandenburg. No other counsel can I listen to. Perform faithfully the given work on your side, as I on mine. For the rest, let what you call Providence decide as it likes. I prepare myself for every event. Fortune may be kind or be unkind, it shall neither dishearten me nor uplift me. If I am to perish, let it be with honor, and sword in hand.”

On April 26th, Frederick wrote to M. Podewils again: "I can see why you're feeling uneasy in Berlin. I have the most at stake of all of us, but I'm calm and ready for whatever happens. If the Saxons join in the invasion of Silesia, and we defeat them, I'm set on pushing into Saxony. Big problems need big solutions. It's all or nothing for me. All I can do now is stay patient. If every alliance, resource, and negotiation fails, and everything goes against me, I'd rather die with honor than live a life stripped of dignity. My ambition tells me that I've contributed more than others to building my house and have played a significant role among Europe's royals. Staying in that position has become a personal duty for me, one I'll fulfill even if it costs my happiness and my life. I have no other choice. I'll either keep my power, or it will fall apart, and the Prussian name will be buried with it. If the enemy makes a move against us, we'll either defeat them, or we'll all fight bravely for our country and the reputation of Brandenburg. I won't listen to any other advice. Do your part on your end, as I will on mine. As for everything else, let what you call Providence decide as it will. I'm getting ready for whatever may come. Fortune may smile or frown, but it won't discourage or uplift me. If I'm meant to die, let it be with honor, sword in hand."

Frederick was, with great energy, gathering all his resources for a decisive conflict in his fortresses along the banks of the Neisse. By almost superhuman exertions he had collected an army there of about seventy thousand men. The united army of Austria and Saxony marching upon him amounted to one hundred thousand regulars, together with uncounted swarms of349 Pandours sweeping around him in all directions, interrupting his communications and cutting off his supplies.

Frederick was gathering all his resources with great energy for a decisive battle in his fortresses along the banks of the Neisse. Through almost superhuman effort, he had assembled an army of around seventy thousand men. The combined forces of Austria and Saxony marching toward him totaled one hundred thousand regulars, along with countless Pandours sweeping around him in every direction, disrupting his communications and cutting off his supplies.

The mountain range upon the south, which separated Silesia from the realms of the Queen of Hungary, was three or four hundred miles long, with some twenty defiles practicable for the passage of troops. The French minister Valori urged Frederick to guard these passes. This was impossible; and the self-confidence of the Prussian king is revealed in his reply: “My friend, if you wish to catch the mouse, you must not shut the trap, but leave it open.”

The mountain range to the south, which separated Silesia from the lands of the Queen of Hungary, stretched three to four hundred miles long, with about twenty paths suitable for troop movements. The French minister Valori encouraged Frederick to secure these routes. This was not feasible; the Prussian king’s confidence is shown in his response: “My friend, if you want to catch the mouse, you shouldn’t close the trap, but leave it open.”

The latter part of May, Frederick, in his head-quarters at Frankenstein, learned that an Austrian army under Prince Charles, and a Saxon army under the Duke of Weissenfels, in columns, by strict count seventy-five thousand strong, had defiled through the passes of the Giant Mountains, and entered Silesia near Landshut. Day after day he ascended an eminence, and, with his glass, anxiously scanned the horizon, to detect signs of the approach of the foe. On Thursday morning, June 3, an immense cloud of dust in the distance indicated that the decisive hour was at hand.

In late May, Frederick, from his headquarters in Frankenstein, found out that an Austrian army led by Prince Charles and a Saxon army under the Duke of Weissenfels, totaling a strict count of seventy-five thousand, had moved through the passes of the Giant Mountains and entered Silesia near Landshut. Day after day, he climbed a hill and, with his telescope, nervously scanned the horizon for any signs of the enemy’s approach. On Thursday morning, June 3, a huge cloud of dust in the distance signaled that the crucial moment was near.

As this magnificent army entered upon the smooth and beautiful fields of Southern Silesia they shook out their banners, and with peals of music gave expression to their confidence of victory. The Austrian officers pitched their tents on a hill near Hohenfriedberg, where they feasted and drank their wine, while, during the long and beautiful June afternoon, they watched the onward sweep of their glittering host. “The Austrian and Saxon army,” writes an eye-witness, “streamed out all the afternoon, each regiment or division taking the place appointed it; all the afternoon, till late in the night, submerging the country as in a deluge.”

As this incredible army moved onto the smooth, beautiful fields of Southern Silesia, they unfurled their banners and expressed their confidence in victory with bursts of music. The Austrian officers set up camp on a hill near Hohenfriedberg, where they feasted and enjoyed their wine while, throughout the long and lovely June afternoon, they watched the steady advance of their shining troops. “The Austrian and Saxon army,” one eyewitness recounts, “poured out all afternoon, with each regiment or division taking its designated place; all afternoon, until late into the night, flooding the land like a deluge.”

Far away in the east the Austrian officers discerned a Prussian column of observation, consisting of about twelve thousand horse and foot, wending along from hollow to height, their polished weapons flashing back the rays of the afternoon sun. Frederick, carefully examining the ground, immediately made arrangements to bring forward his troops under curtain of the night for a decisive battle. His orderlies were silently dispatched in all directions. At eight o’clock the whole army was in350 motion. His troops were so concentrated that the farthest divisions had a march of only nine miles. Silently, not a word being spoken, not a pipe being lighted, and all the baggage being left behind, they crossed the bridge of the Striegau River, and, deploying to the right and the left, took position in front of the slumbering allied troops.

Far to the east, the Austrian officers spotted a Prussian observation column made up of about twelve thousand soldiers and cavalry moving from dip to rise, their shiny weapons reflecting the afternoon sun. Frederick took a close look at the terrain and quickly organized his troops to advance under the cover of night for a decisive battle. His aides were quietly sent off in all directions. By eight o'clock, the entire army was in motion. The troops were so well concentrated that the farthest divisions had only a nine-mile march. Without a sound—no words spoken, no pipes lit, and all the baggage left behind—they crossed the Striegau River bridge and spread out to the right and left, positioning themselves in front of the sleeping allied forces.

BATTLE OF HOHENFRIEDBERG, JUNE 4, 1745.

BATTLE OF HOHENFRIEDBERG, JUNE 4, 1745.

a a. Austrian Army. b. Prince Weissenfels. c c. Prussian Army. d. Dumoulin. e. Gesler’s Dragoons.

a a. Austrian Army. b. Prince Weissenfels. c c. Prussian Army. d. Dumoulin. e. Gesler’s Dragoons.

With the first dawn of the morning, the two armies, in close contact, rushed furiously upon each other. There were seventy351 thousand on the one side, seventy-five thousand on the other. They faced each other in lines over an undulating plain nearly ten miles in extent. It is in vain to attempt to give the reader an adequate idea of the terrible battle which ensued. With musketry, artillery, gleaming sabres, and rushing horsemen, the infuriate hosts dashed upon each other. For fifteen hours the blood-red surges of battle swept to and fro over the plain. At length Prince Charles, having lost nine thousand in dead and wounded, seven thousand prisoners, sixteen thousand in all, sixty-six cannon, seventy-three flags and standards, beat a retreat. Rapidly his bleeding and exhausted troops marched back through Hohenfriedberg, entered the mountain defiles, and sought refuge, a thoroughly beaten army, among the fortresses of Bohemia. Frederick remained the undisputed victor of the field. Five thousand of his brave soldiers lay dead or wounded upon the plain. Even his stoical heart was moved by the greatness of the victory. As he first caught sight of M. Valori after the battle, he threw his arms around him, exclaiming, “My friend, God has helped me wonderfully this day.”

With the first light of morning, the two armies, in close proximity, charged fiercely at each other. One side had seventy thousand troops, while the other had seventy-five thousand. They faced off in lines across an undulating plain that stretched nearly ten miles. It's impossible to convey to the reader the full extent of the horrific battle that followed. With gunfire, cannons, gleaming swords, and galloping horsemen, the enraged forces collided. For fifteen hours, the blood-soaked waves of battle surged back and forth across the plain. Eventually, Prince Charles, having lost nine thousand in dead and wounded, seven thousand prisoners—sixteen thousand in total—along with sixty-six cannons and seventy-three flags and standards, retreated. His battered and weary troops quickly marched back through Hohenfriedberg, entered the mountain passes, and sought safety as a thoroughly defeated army among the fortresses of Bohemia. Frederick stood as the clear victor of the battlefield. Five thousand of his brave soldiers lay dead or wounded on the ground. Even his stoic heart was touched by the magnitude of the victory. When he first spotted M. Valori after the battle, he embraced him, exclaiming, “My friend, God has helped me tremendously today.”

“There was, after all,” says Valori, “at times a kind of devout feeling in this prince, who possessed such a combination of qualities, good and bad, that I know not which preponderates.”

“There was, after all,” says Valori, “sometimes a sort of genuine feeling in this prince, who had such a mix of traits, both good and bad, that I can't tell which one stands out more.”

The Prussian army was so exhausted by its midnight march and its long day of battle that his majesty did not deem it wise to attempt to pursue the retreating foe. For this he has been severely, we think unjustly, censured by some military men. He immediately, that evening, wrote to his mother, saying, “So decisive a defeat has not been since Blenheim,” and assuring her that the two princes, her sons, who had accompanied him to the battle, were safe. Such was the battle of Hohenfriedberg, once of world-wide renown, now almost forgotten.

The Prussian army was so worn out from its midnight march and the long day of fighting that the king didn’t think it was wise to chase after the retreating enemy. For this, he has been harshly criticized, we believe unfairly, by some military officials. That evening, he immediately wrote to his mother, saying, “We haven’t seen such a decisive defeat since Blenheim,” and reassuring her that the two princes, her sons, who had gone with him to the battle, were safe. This was the battle of Hohenfriedberg, once famous around the world, now almost forgotten.


352

352

CHAPTER XXI.
Battles and victories.

Battle of Hohenfriedberg.—Religious Antagonism.—Anecdote of the King.—Retreat of the Austrians.—Horrors of War.—“A slight Pleasantry.”—Sufferings of the Prussian Army.—The Victory of Fontenoy.—Frederick’s Pecuniary Embarrassments.—Executive Abilities of Maria Theresa.—Inflexibility of the Austrian Queen.—The Retreat to Silesia.—The Surprise at Sohr.—Military Genius of Frederick.—Great Victory of Sohr.

Battle of Hohenfriedberg.—Religious Conflict.—Story about the King.—Austrian Retreat.—War's Atrocities.—“A little joke.”—Prussian Army's Struggles.—Victory at Fontenoy.—Frederick’s Financial Problems.—Maria Theresa's Leadership Skills.—Austrian Queen's Stubbornness.—The Retreat to Silesia.—The Ambush at Sohr.—Frederick's Military Genius.—Significant Victory at Sohr.

The decisive battle of Hohenfriedberg, by which victory Frederick probably escaped utter destruction, was fought on the 4th of June, 1745. From early dawn to the evening twilight of the long summer’s day the dreadful work of slaughter had continued without a moment’s intermission. As the Austrians, having lost nearly one fourth of their number, retreated, the Prussians, in utter exhaustion, threw themselves upon the ground for sleep. The field around them was covered with fourteen thousand of the wounded, the dying, and the dead.

The decisive battle of Hohenfriedberg, which likely saved Frederick from total destruction, took place on June 4, 1745. From early dawn until evening twilight of that long summer day, the horrific slaughter continued without a moment's pause. As the Austrians, having lost nearly a quarter of their troops, retreated, the exhausted Prussians collapsed on the ground to sleep. The area around them was littered with fourteen thousand wounded, dying, and dead soldiers.

Early the next morning Frederick commenced the vigorous pursuit of the retiring foe. A storm arose. For twelve hours the rain fell in torrents. But the Prussian army was impelled onward, through the mud, and through the swollen streams, inspired by the almost supernatural energy which glowed in the bosom of its king. It seemed as if no hardships, sufferings, or perils could induce those iron men, who by discipline had been converted into mere machines, to wander from the ranks or to falter on the way. As we have mentioned, there were throughout all this region two religious parties, the Catholics and the Protestants. They were strongly antagonistic to each other. Under the Austrian sway, the Catholics, having the support of the government, had enjoyed unquestioned supremacy. They had often very cruelly persecuted the Protestants, robbing them of their churches, and, in their zeal to defend what they deemed the orthodox faith, depriving them of their children, and placing them under the care of the Catholic priests to be educated.

Early the next morning, Frederick began the intense chase of the retreating enemy. A storm broke out. For twelve hours, rain poured down in torrents. Yet, the Prussian army pressed on, through the mud and swollen streams, fueled by the almost supernatural energy that radiated from their king. It seemed that no amount of hardship, suffering, or danger could cause those determined men, who had been trained into disciplined machines, to stray from the ranks or hesitate along the way. As we mentioned, there were two religious groups in this area: Catholics and Protestants. They were strongly opposed to each other. Under Austrian rule, the Catholics, supported by the government, had held unquestioned power. They had often persecuted the Protestants severely, seizing their churches and, in their zeal to protect what they believed was the true faith, taking their children away to educate them under Catholic priests.

“While the battle of Hohenfriedberg was raging,” writes an eye-witness, “as far as the cannon was heard all around, the353 Protestants fell on their knees praying for victory for the Prussians.” Indescribable was the exultation when the bugle peals of the Prussian trumpeters announced to them a Protestant victory. When Frederick approached, in his pursuit, the important town of Landshut, the following incident occurred, as described by the pen of his Prussian majesty:

“While the battle of Hohenfriedberg was going on,” writes an eyewitness, “wherever the sound of the cannon reached, the Protestants dropped to their knees, praying for victory for the Prussians.” The thrill was beyond words when the bugle calls of the Prussian trumpeters declared a Protestant victory. As Frederick moved closer in his pursuit of the important town of Landshut, an incident happened, as recorded by his Prussian majesty:

“Upon reaching the neighborhood of Landshut, the king was surrounded by a troop of two thousand Protestant peasants. They begged permission of him to massacre the Catholics of those parts, and clear the country of them altogether. This animosity arose from the persecutions which the Protestants had suffered during the Austrian domination.

“Upon arriving in the Landshut area, the king was surrounded by a group of two thousand Protestant peasants. They begged him for permission to kill the local Catholics and rid the area of them completely. This hostility stemmed from the persecutions that the Protestants had endured under Austrian rule.”

“The king was very far from granting so barbarous a permission. He told them they ought rather to conform to the precepts of Scripture, and to ‘bless those that curse them, and pray for those that despitefully use them.’ Such, the king assured them, was the way to gain the kingdom of heaven. The peasants, after a little reflection, declared that his majesty was right, and desisted from their cruel intention.”82

“The king was definitely not going to allow such a cruel request. He told them they should instead follow the teachings of the Bible and ‘bless those who curse them, and pray for those who mistreat them.’ The king assured them that this was the way to reach the kingdom of heaven. After thinking it over for a bit, the peasants agreed that his majesty was right and gave up their harsh plan.”82

For several weeks the Austrians slowly and sullenly retired. Their retreat was conducted in two immense columns, by parallel roads at some distance from each other. Their wings of foragers and skirmishers were widely extended, so that the hungry army swept with desolation a breadth of country reaching out many leagues. Though the Austrian army was traversing the friendly territory of Bohemia, still Prince Charles was anxious to leave behind him no resources for Frederick to glean. Frederick, with his army, pressed along, following the wide-spread trail of his foes. The Austrians, with great skill, selected every commanding position on which to erect their batteries, and hurl back a storm of shot and shell into the bosoms of their pursuers. But Frederick allowed them no rest by day or by night. His solid columns so unremittingly and so impetuously pressed with shot, bullets, bayonet, and sabre-blows upon the rear ranks of the foe that there was almost an incessant battle, continuing for several weeks, crimsoning a path thirty miles wide and more than a hundred miles in length with the blood of the wounded and the slain.

For several weeks, the Austrians slowly and reluctantly retreated. They moved in two large columns, using parallel roads that were spaced apart. Their scouts and skirmishers were spread out widely, causing the starving army to leave devastation across a large area. Even though the Austrian army was passing through the friendly land of Bohemia, Prince Charles was determined to leave no resources behind for Frederick to take. Frederick and his army followed closely, tracing the wide path of their enemies. The Austrians skillfully chose high ground to set up their artillery and launched a barrage of shots and shells at their pursuers. But Frederick wouldn’t let them rest, day or night. His strong columns relentlessly pushed with gunfire, bullets, bayonets, and saber strikes on the enemy’s rear ranks, resulting in almost continuous battles that lasted for several weeks, staining a path thirty miles wide and over a hundred miles long with the blood of the wounded and the dead.

354

354

THE RETREAT OF THE AUSTRIANS.

The region through which this retreat and pursuit were conducted was much of the way along the southern slope of the Giant Mountains. It was a wild country of precipitous rocks, quagmires, and gloomy forests. At length Prince Charles, with his defeated and dispirited army, took refuge at Königsgraft, a compact town between the Elbe and the Adler, protected by one stream on the west, and by the other on the south. Here, in an impregnable position, he intrenched his troops. Frederick, finding them unassailable, encamped his forces in a position almost equally impregnable, a few miles west of the Elbe, in the vicinity of a little village called Chlum. Thus the two hostile armies, almost within sound of each other’s bugles, defiantly stood in battle array, each watching an opportunity to strike a blow.

The area where this retreat and pursuit took place was mostly along the southern slope of the Giant Mountains. It was a wild region filled with steep rocks, swamps, and dark forests. Eventually, Prince Charles, along with his defeated and demoralized army, sought refuge in Königsgraft, a compact town located between the Elbe and the Adler, protected by one river on the west and another on the south. Here, in a stronghold position, he fortified his troops. Frederick, finding them impossible to attack, set up his forces in a similarly strong position a few miles west of the Elbe, near a small village called Chlum. Thus, the two opposing armies, almost within hearing distance of each other’s bugles, stood ready for battle, each waiting for a chance to strike.

355 “War is cruelty,” said General Sherman; “and you can not refine it.” “No man of refined Christian sensibilities,” said the Duke of Wellington, “should undertake the profession of a soldier.” The exigencies of war often require things to be done from which humanity revolts. “War,” said Napoleon I., “is the science of barbarians.” One of the principal objects of Frederick in this pursuit of the Austrians through Bohemia was to lay waste the country so utterly, destroying its roads and consuming its provisions, that no Austrian army could again pass through it for the invasion of Silesia. Who can imagine the amount of woe thus inflicted upon the innocent peasants of Bohemia? Both armies were reduced to the necessity of living mainly upon the resources of the country in which they were encamped. Their foraging parties were scattered in all directions. There were frequent attacks of outposts and bloody skirmishes, in which many were slain and many were crippled for life. Each death, each wound, sent tears, and often life-long woe, to some humble cottage.

355 “War is brutal,” said General Sherman; “and you can’t soften it.” “No one with refined Christian values,” said the Duke of Wellington, “should take on the role of a soldier.” The demands of war often force actions that go against our sense of humanity. “War,” said Napoleon I., “is the art of savages.” One of Frederick's main goals in pursuing the Austrians through Bohemia was to devastate the land completely, destroying its roads and using up its resources so that no Austrian army could pass through again to invade Silesia. Who can imagine the suffering caused to the innocent peasants of Bohemia? Both armies had to rely mostly on the resources available in the area where they were stationed. Their scouting parties were spread out in all directions. There were frequent clashes and bloody skirmishes, resulting in many deaths and many injuries that left some people permanently disabled. Each death and each injury brought grief and often lifelong sorrow to some humble home.

There are sometimes great and glorious objects to be attained—objects which elevate and ennoble a nation or a race—which warrant the expenditure of almost any amount of temporary suffering. It is not the duty of the millions to suffer the proud and haughty hundreds to consign them to ignorance and trample them in the dust. In this wicked world, where kings and nobles have ever been so ready to doom the masses of the people to ignorance, servitude, and want, human rights have almost never made any advances but through the energies of the sword. Many illustrious generals, who, with saddened hearts, have led their armies over fields of blood, have been among the most devoted friends and ornaments of humanity. Their names have been enshrined in the affections of grateful millions.

Sometimes there are great and noble goals to pursue—goals that uplift and honor a nation or a people—goals that justify enduring significant temporary hardship. It's not the responsibility of the many to suffer while the proud and arrogant few push them into ignorance and crush them. In this unjust world, where kings and nobles have always been quick to condemn the masses to ignorance, servitude, and poverty, human rights have rarely progressed without the force of arms. Many distinguished generals, who have led their troops into bloody battles with heavy hearts, have been some of humanity's most devoted allies and advocates. Their names have been celebrated and remembered by grateful millions.

But this war, into which the Prussian king had so recklessly plunged all Europe, was purely a war of personal ambition. Even Frederick did not pretend that it involved any question of human rights. Unblushingly he avowed that he drew his sword and led his hundred thousand peasant-boys upon their dreadful career of carnage and misery simply that he might enlarge his territories, gain renown as a conqueror, and make the world talk about him. It must be a fearful thing to go to the356 judgment seat of Christ with such a crime weighing upon the soul.

But this war, which the Prussian king had recklessly thrown all of Europe into, was just a war of personal ambition. Even Frederick didn’t pretend that it was about any issue of human rights. Without shame, he admitted that he took up his sword and led his hundred thousand peasant boys into their terrible path of destruction and suffering just to expand his land, gain fame as a conqueror, and get the world talking about him. It must be a terrifying thing to face the judgment seat of Christ with such a crime weighing on the soul.

War has its jokes and merriment, but the comedies of war are often more dreadful than the tragedies of peace. Frederick, in his works, records the following incident, which he narrates as “slight pleasantry, to relieve the reader’s mind:”83

War has its jokes and fun, but the comedies of war are often worse than the tragedies of peace. Frederick, in his works, recounts the following incident, which he describes as “a little amusement to lighten the reader’s mood:”83

The Prussians had a detached post at Smirzitz. The little garrison there was much harassed by lurking bands of Austrians, who shot their sentries, cut off their supplies, and rendered it almost certain death to any one who ventured to emerge from the ramparts. Some inventive genius among the Prussians constructed a straw man, very like life, representing a sentinel with his shouldered musket. By a series of ropes this effigy was made to move from right to left, as if walking his beat. A well-armed band of Prussians then hid in a thicket near by.

The Prussians had a separate outpost at Smirzitz. The small garrison there was constantly troubled by hidden groups of Austrians, who killed their sentries, cut off their supplies, and made it almost certain death for anyone who dared to leave the safety of the walls. Some clever individual among the Prussians created a lifelike straw man to stand as a sentry with a shouldered musket. Through a system of ropes, this dummy was made to move side to side, mimicking a soldier on patrol. A well-armed group of Prussians then concealed themselves in a nearby thicket.

Ere long a company of Austrian scouts approached. From a distance they eyed the sentinel, moving to and fro as he guarded his post. A sharp-shooter crept near, and, taking deliberate aim at his supposed victim, fired. A twitch upon the rope caused the image to fall flat. The whole band of Austrians, with a shout, rushed to the spot. The Prussians, from their ambuscade, opened upon them a deadly fire of bullets. Then, as the ground was covered with the mutilated and the dead, the Prussians, causing the welkin to ring with their peals of laughter, rushed with fixed bayonets upon their entrapped foes. Not a single Austrian had escaped being struck by a bullet. Those who were not killed outright were wounded, and were taken captive. This is one of the “slight pleasantries” of war.

Soon, a group of Austrian scouts came close. From a distance, they watched the sentinel pacing as he guarded his post. A sharpshooter crept up, took careful aim at his intended target, and fired. A twitch in the rope caused the figure to fall flat. The entire group of Austrians shouted and rushed to the spot. The Prussians, hidden in their ambush, opened fire with deadly bullets. As the ground filled with the injured and the dead, the Prussians, laughing loudly, charged with fixed bayonets at their trapped enemies. Not a single Austrian escaped being hit by a bullet. Those who weren’t killed immediately were wounded and taken prisoner. This is one of the “minor pleasures” of war.

Frederick’s army was now in a state of great destitution. The region around was so stripped of its resources that it could afford his foragers no more supplies. It was difficult for him to fill his baggage-trains even in Silesia, so much had that country been devastated by war; and wherever any of his supply wagons appeared, swarms of Austrian dragoons hovered around, attacking and destroying them. To add to the embarrassments of the Prussian king, his purse was empty. His subjects could endure no heavier taxation. All the plate which Frederick William had accumulated had been converted into coin and expended.357 Even the massive silver balustrades, which were reserved until a time of need, were melted and gone. He knew not where to look for a loan. All the nations were involved in ruinous war. All wished to borrow. None but England had money to lend; and England was fighting Frederick, and furnishing supplies for his foes.

Frederick’s army was now in a terrible state. The area around them had been so stripped of resources that his foragers couldn’t find any more supplies. It was hard for him to fill his baggage trains even in Silesia, as the country had suffered greatly from war; and wherever any of his supply wagons showed up, groups of Austrian cavalry would swarm in, attacking and destroying them. To make matters worse for the Prussian king, he was broke. His subjects couldn’t handle any more taxes. All the silver that Frederick William had saved up had been turned into cash and spent. Even the large silver balustrades that were meant for emergencies had been melted down and used up. He didn’t know where to turn for a loan. All the nations were caught up in devastating wars. Everyone wanted to borrow money. Only England had cash to lend, and England was fighting against Frederick and supplying his enemies.

A SLIGHT PLEASANTRY.

The expenses of the war were enormous. Frederick made a careful estimate, and found that he required at least three hundred and seventy-five thousand dollars a month. He could not carry on another campaign with less than four million five hundred thousand dollars. He had been expecting that Louis XV., who in person was in command of the French army on the Rhine, would send him a re-enforcement of sixty thousand troops to enable him to crush the forces of Prince Charles. But week after358 week passed, and no re-enforcements came. The French, intent upon their conquest, were as selfishly pursuing their own interests on the Rhine as Frederick was pursuing his in Silesia.

The costs of the war were staggering. Frederick carefully calculated and found he needed at least three hundred seventy-five thousand dollars a month. He couldn’t launch another campaign with less than four million five hundred thousand dollars. He had been hoping that Louis XV., who was personally in charge of the French army on the Rhine, would send him an extra sixty thousand troops to help him defeat Prince Charles's forces. But week after week went by, and no reinforcements arrived. The French, focused on their conquest, were just as selfishly chasing their own goals on the Rhine as Frederick was in Silesia.

The great victory of Fontenoy, gained by the French on the Rhine, caused boundless exultation throughout France. “The French,” writes Carlyle, “made immense explosions of rejoicing over this victory; Voltaire celebrating it in prose and verse to an amazing degree; the whole nation blazing out over it into illuminations, arcs of triumph, and universal three times three; in short, I think nearly the heartiest national huzza, loud, deep, long-drawn, that the nation ever gave in like case.”

The huge victory at Fontenoy, won by the French on the Rhine, sparked limitless joy across France. “The French,” writes Carlyle, “celebrated this victory with incredible enthusiasm; Voltaire honored it in prose and verse to an extraordinary extent; the entire nation lit up in celebrations, with illuminations, triumphal arches, and a collective cheer of three times three; in short, I think it was one of the most enthusiastic national cheers, loud, deep, and prolonged, that the nation ever expressed in such a situation.”

But this victory on the Rhine was of no avail to Frederick in Bohemia. It did not diminish the hosts which Prince Charles was gathering against him. It did not add a soldier to his diminished columns, or supply his exhausted magazines, or replenish his empty treasury. Louis XV. was so delighted with the victory that he supposed Frederick would be in sympathy with him. He immediately dispatched a courier to the Prussian king with the glad tidings. But Frederick, disappointed, embarrassed, chagrined, instead of being gratified, was irritated by the news. He sent back the scornful reply “that a victory upon the Scamander,84 or in the heart of China, would have been just as important to him.”

But this win on the Rhine didn't help Frederick in Bohemia. It didn’t reduce the forces that Prince Charles was gathering against him. It didn’t add a single soldier to his dwindling troops, supply his exhausted stores, or refill his empty treasury. Louis XV. was so thrilled with the victory that he thought Frederick would feel the same way. He quickly sent a courier to the Prussian king with the good news. But Frederick, disappointed, embarrassed, and irritated, was not pleased by the news. He sent back a scornful reply saying that a victory on the Scamander, 84 or in the heart of China would have been just as important to him.

Louis XV. felt insulted by this message, and responded in a similar strain of irritation. Thus the two monarchs were alienated from each other. Indeed, Frederick had almost as much cause to be dissatisfied with the French as they had to be dissatisfied with him. Each of the monarchs was ready to sacrifice the other if any thing was to be gained thereby.

Louis XV felt insulted by this message and replied with equal irritation. As a result, the two monarchs became estranged. In fact, Frederick had nearly as much reason to be unhappy with the French as they had to be unhappy with him. Each monarch was prepared to sacrifice the other if it meant gaining something.

Frederick was now in such deep pecuniary embarrassment that he was compelled to humble himself so far as to apply to the King of France for money. “If your majesty,” he wrote, “can not furnish me with any re-enforcements, you must, at least, send me funds to raise additional troops. The smallest possible sum which will enable me to maintain my position here is three million dollars.”

Frederick was now in such deep financial trouble that he had to humble himself by asking the King of France for money. “If your majesty,” he wrote, “cannot provide me with any reinforcements, you must at least send me funds to raise additional troops. The smallest amount I need to maintain my position here is three million dollars.”

Louis XV. wrote a very unsatisfactory letter in reply. He stated, with many apologies, that his funds were terribly low,359 that he was exceedingly embarrassed, that it was impossible to send the sum required, but that he would try to furnish him with a hundred thousand dollars a month.

Louis XV wrote a very unsatisfactory letter in response. He apologized a lot and said that his finances were really low,359 that he was extremely embarrassed, that he couldn't send the amount needed, but he would try to provide him with a hundred thousand dollars a month.

Frederick was indignant. Scornfully he rejected the proposal, saying, “Such a paltry sum might with propriety, perhaps, be offered to a petty duke of Hesse-Darmstadt, but it is not suitable to make such a proposition to the King of Prussia.”

Frederick was furious. He scornfully dismissed the proposal, saying, “Such a small amount might be appropriate to offer a minor duke of Hesse-Darmstadt, but it’s not right to make such an offer to the King of Prussia.”

Poor Valori, the French embassador, was placed in a very embarrassing situation. The anger of the Prussian king vented itself upon him. He was in complete disgrace. It was his duty daily to wait upon Frederick. But the king would seldom speak to him, or even look upon him; and if he did favor him with a glance, it was with an expression of scorn.

Poor Valori, the French ambassador, found himself in a really awkward situation. The Prussian king's anger was directed at him. He was totally out of favor. Every day, it was his duty to attend to Frederick. But the king rarely spoke to him or even acknowledged him; and if he did happen to glance in his direction, it was with a look of disdain.

Frederick was rapidly awaking to the consciousness that Maria Theresa, whom he had despised as a woman, and a young wife and mother, and whose territory he thought he could dismember with impunity, was fully his equal, not only in ability to raise and direct armies, but also in diplomatic intrigue. About the middle of August he perceived from his camp in Chlum that Prince Charles was receiving large re-enforcements from the south. At the same time, he saw that corps after corps, principally of Saxon troops, were defiling away by circuitous roads to the north. It was soon evident that the heroic Maria Theresa was preparing to send an army into the very heart of Prussia to attack its capital. This was, indeed, changing the aspect of the war.

Frederick was quickly realizing that Maria Theresa, whom he had looked down on as a woman, a young wife, and a mother, was actually his equal—not just in her ability to raise and command armies, but also in her skill at diplomatic maneuvering. Around mid-August, he noticed from his camp in Chlum that Prince Charles was getting significant reinforcements from the south. At the same time, he observed that corps after corps, mostly made up of Saxon troops, were taking roundabout routes to the north. It soon became clear that the determined Maria Theresa was preparing to send an army straight into the heart of Prussia to attack its capital. This was truly a game-changer in the war.

Berlin was almost defenseless. All Saxony was rising in arms behind Frederick. The invader of Silesia was in danger of having his own realms invaded and his own capital sacked. Frederick was thoroughly roused. But he never allowed himself to appear agitated or anxious. He ordered Leopold, the Old Dessauer, to march immediately, with all the troops he could rally, to the frontiers of Saxony. He even found it necessary to detach to the aid of Leopold some corps from his own enfeebled forces, now menaced by an Austrian army twice as large as he could oppose to them.

Berlin was nearly defenseless. All of Saxony was rising up in arms behind Frederick. The invader of Silesia was at risk of having his own territories invaded and his own capital looted. Frederick was completely awake to the situation. But he never let himself show any signs of agitation or anxiety. He ordered Leopold, the Old Dessauer, to march immediately with all the troops he could gather to the Saxony border. He even found it necessary to send some troops from his own weakened forces, which were now threatened by an Austrian army twice the size of what he could muster against them.

While affairs were in this posture, the English, eager to crush their hereditary rivals, the French, were very anxious to detach the Prussians from the French alliance. The only way to do360 this was to induce Maria Theresa to offer terms of peace such as Frederick would accept. They sent Sir Thomas Robinson to Schönbrunn to endeavor to accomplish this purpose. He had an interview with her Hungarian majesty on the 2d of August, 1745. The queen was very dignified and reticent. Silently she listened to the proposals of Sir Thomas. She then said, with firmness which left no room for further argument,

While things were in this state, the English, eager to defeat their long-standing rivals, the French, were very keen to pull the Prussians away from their alliance with France. The only way to achieve this was to convince Maria Theresa to offer peace terms that Frederick would accept. They sent Sir Thomas Robinson to Schönbrunn to try to accomplish this goal. He had a meeting with her Hungarian majesty on August 2nd, 1745. The queen was very dignified and reserved. She listened silently to Sir Thomas's proposals. She then spoke with a firmness that allowed no room for further discussion,

“It would be easier for me to make peace with France than with Prussia. What good could possibly result now from peace with Prussia? I must have Silesia again. Without Silesia the imperial sceptre would be but a bauble. Would you have us sway that sceptre under the guardianship of Prussia? Prince Charles is now in a condition to fight the Prussians again. Until after another battle, do not speak to me of peace. You say that if we make peace with Prussia, Frederick will give his vote for the grand-duke as emperor. The grand-duke is not so ambitious of an empty honor as to engage in it under the tutelage of Prussia. Consider, moreover, is the imperial dignity consistent with the loss of Silesia? One more battle I demand. Were I compelled to agree with Frederick to-morrow, I would try him in a battle to-night.”85

“It would be easier for me to make peace with France than with Prussia. What good would come from making peace with Prussia now? I need to get Silesia back. Without Silesia, the imperial scepter would just be a decorative item. Would you have us hold that scepter under Prussia’s control? Prince Charles is ready to fight the Prussians again. Don’t mention peace to me until after another battle. You say that if we make peace with Prussia, Frederick will support the grand-duke for emperor. The grand-duke isn’t so eager for an empty title that he would accept it while Prussia is in charge. Also, is the imperial dignity compatible with losing Silesia? I demand one more battle. If I had to agree with Frederick tomorrow, I would challenge him to a battle tonight.”85

On the 13th of September the German Diet met at Frankfort for the election of emperor. Frederick had determined that the Grand-duke Francis, husband of the Hungarian queen, should not be elected. Maria Theresa had outgeneraled him. Francis was elected. He had seven out of nine of the electoral votes. Frederick, thus baffled, could only protest. Maria Theresa was conscious of her triumph. Though the imperial crown was placed upon the brow of Francis, all Europe knew that the sceptre was in the hands of his far more able and efficient wife. Maria Theresa was at Frankfort at the time of the election. She could not conceal her exultation. She seemed very willing to have it understood that her amiable husband was but the instrument of her will. She took the title of empress queen, and assumed a very lofty carriage toward the princes of the empire. Alluding to Frederick, she said, in a very imperial tone, for she deemed him now virtually vanquished,

On September 13th, the German Diet met in Frankfurt to elect an emperor. Frederick had decided that Grand Duke Francis, husband of the Hungarian queen, should not be elected. However, Maria Theresa outsmarted him. Francis was elected, receiving seven out of nine electoral votes. Frederick, caught off guard, could only protest. Maria Theresa was aware of her victory. Even though the imperial crown was placed on Francis's head, all of Europe knew that the real power was in the hands of his much more capable and effective wife. Maria Theresa was in Frankfurt during the election, unable to hide her joy. She made it clear that her nice husband was merely a tool for her ambitions. She took on the title of empress queen and held herself with a very grand demeanor towards the princes of the empire. Referring to Frederick, she spoke in an imperial tone, believing that he was now practically defeated.

“His Prussian majesty has unquestionably talent, but what361 a character! He is frivolous in the extreme, and sadly a heretic in his religious views. He is a dishonorable man, and what a neighbor he has been! As to Silesia, I would as soon part with my last garment as part with it.”

“His Prussian majesty definitely has talent, but what a character! He is extremely frivolous and unfortunately holds heretical views on religion. He is an dishonorable man, and what a neighbor he has been! As for Silesia, I would prefer to part with my last piece of clothing than give it up.”

Her majesty now wrote to Prince Charles, urging him to engage immediately in a fight with Frederick. She sent two of the highest dignitaries of the court to Königgrätz to press forward immediate action. There was an eminence near by, which the Austrian officers daily ascended, and from which they could look directly into the Prussian camp and observe all that was transpiring there.

Her Majesty now wrote to Prince Charles, urging him to immediately engage in a battle with Frederick. She sent two of the highest-ranking officials from the court to Königgrätz to push for immediate action. There was a hill nearby that the Austrian officers climbed daily, from which they could look directly into the Prussian camp and see everything happening there.

The position of Frederick became daily more embarrassing. His forces were continually decreasing. Re-enforcements were swelling the ranks of the Austrians. Elated in becoming the Imperial Army, they grew more bold and annoying, assailing the Prussian outposts and cutting off their supplies.

Frederick's position was becoming more and more awkward every day. His forces were steadily shrinking. Meanwhile, reinforcements were boosting the numbers of the Austrians. Excited to be the Imperial Army, they grew more daring and troublesome, attacking the Prussian outposts and cutting off their supplies.

On the 18th of September, when the rejoicing Austrians at Königgrätz were firing salutes, drinking wine, and feasting in honor of the election of the grand-duke to the imperial dignity, Frederick, availing himself of the carousal in the camp of his foes, crossed the Elbe with his whole army, a few miles above Königgrätz, and commenced his retreat to Silesia. His path led through a wild, sparsely inhabited country, of precipitous rocks, hills, mountain torrents, and quagmires. One vast forest spread along the banks of the Elbe, covering with its gloom an extent of sixty square miles. A few miserable hamlets were scattered over this desolate region. The poor inhabitants lived mainly upon the rye which they raised and the swine which ranged the forest.

On September 18th, while the celebrating Austrians in Königgrätz were firing salutes, drinking wine, and feasting to celebrate the grand-duke's election to imperial status, Frederick took advantage of the festivities in his enemies' camp. He crossed the Elbe with his entire army a few miles above Königgrätz and began his retreat to Silesia. His route went through a wild, sparsely populated area of steep rocks, hills, mountain streams, and marshy ground. A vast forest stretched along the banks of the Elbe, casting a shadow over an area of sixty square miles. A few poor villages were scattered throughout this bleak landscape. The struggling inhabitants mostly lived off the rye they grew and the pigs that roamed the forest.

Along the eastern edge of this vast wilderness the army of Frederick marched for two days. But Hungarian Pandours in swarms, savage men on their fleet and shaggy horses, were continually emerging from the paths of the forest, with gleaming sabres and shrill war-cries, assailing the flank of the Prussian line wherever there was the slightest exposure. In the vicinity of the little village of Sohr the king encamped for two days. The halt seemed necessary to refresh his horses, and to send out foraging parties to replenish his stores. But the light horsemen of the foe were so thick around him, so vigilant, and so bold,362 that no baggage train could enter his camp unless protected by eight thousand foot and three thousand horse.

Along the eastern edge of this vast wilderness, Frederick's army marched for two days. However, Hungarian Pandours, fierce men on their speedy, shaggy horses, kept emerging from the forest paths, with shining sabers and loud battle cries, attacking the side of the Prussian line whenever there was even the slightest vulnerability. Near the small village of Sohr, the king set up camp for two days. This stop seemed necessary to rest his horses and to send out foraging parties to restock his supplies. But the enemy’s light cavalry was so dense around him, so watchful and so daring, that no supply train could enter his camp without the protection of eight thousand infantry and three thousand cavalry.

Just at the break of day of Thursday morning, September 30, as the king was in his tent, busy with his generals, examining maps in preparation for the immediate resumption of the march, an orderly came, in breathless haste, to inform the king that the Austrians were advancing rapidly upon him, and in great force. While he was yet speaking another messenger arrived, confirming the tidings, and stating that, apparently, the whole Austrian army, in battle array, was coming down upon him.

Just as dawn broke on Thursday morning, September 30, while the king was in his tent, working with his generals and examining maps to get ready for the march to resume, an orderly rushed in, out of breath, to inform the king that the Austrians were quickly advancing toward him and in large numbers. Before he could finish speaking, another messenger arrived, confirming the news and stating that it seemed the entire Austrian army, prepared for battle, was heading his way.

It was a cold, dreary autumnal morning. The Austrian army, according to Frederick’s statement, amounted to sixty thousand men.86 But it was widely dispersed. Many of the cavalry were scouring the country in all directions, in foraging parties and as skirmishers. Large bodies had been sent by circuitous roads to occupy every avenue of retreat. The consolidated army, under Prince Charles, now advancing to the attack, amounted to thirty-six thousand men. Frederick had but twenty-six thousand.87

It was a cold, gloomy autumn morning. The Austrian army, according to Frederick, had around sixty thousand men. But they were spread out. Many of the cavalry were searching the area in all directions, in groups for supplies and as scouts. Large groups had taken roundabout paths to block every escape route. The combined army, led by Prince Charles, was now moving to attack and numbered thirty-six thousand men. Frederick had only twenty-six thousand.

In this hour of peril the genius of the Prussian monarch was remarkably developed. He manifested not the slightest agitation or alarm. His plan was immediately formed. Indeed, there was no time for a moment’s delay. The Austrians had moved rapidly and silently, concealing their approach by a thick veil of hussars. They were already in solid columns, confident of victory, advancing upon the Prussian camp. Frederick was compelled to form his line of battle under fire of the Austrian batteries. The discipline of the Prussians was such that this was done with a recklessness of danger, rapidity, and mechanical precision which seemed almost miraculous, and which elicited the admiration of every one who beheld it.

In this moment of danger, the brilliance of the Prussian king was clearly shown. He showed no signs of worry or fear. He quickly made a plan. There was absolutely no time to waste. The Austrians had moved quickly and quietly, hiding their approach behind a thick screen of hussars. They were already in tight formations, confident of winning, marching toward the Prussian camp. Frederick had to arrange his troops while under fire from the Austrian cannons. The discipline of the Prussians was so strong that they did this with a boldness in the face of danger, speed, and precision that seemed almost magical, earning the admiration of everyone who witnessed it.

The reader would not be interested in the details of the battle which ensued. It lasted for five hours. It was, as is every battle, an indescribable scene of tumult, uproar, and confusion. The result was long doubtful. Defeat to Frederick would have been utter ruin. It is wonderful how one determined man can infuse his spirit into a whole host. Every Prussian seemed to363 have the same desperate valor, and determination to conquer or to die, which animated his king.

The reader wouldn't care about the details of the battle that followed. It went on for five hours. Like every battle, it was a chaotic scene of noise and confusion. The outcome was uncertain for a long time. A loss for Frederick would have meant complete disaster. It’s amazing how one determined person can inspire an entire group. Every Prussian seemed to have the same desperate courage and determination to win or die that motivated their king.

The sun had just risen above the horizon when the conflict commenced. It reached its meridian. Still the storm of battle swept the plains and reverberated over the hills. Heights had been taken and retaken; charges had been made and repelled; the surges of victory had rolled to and fro; over many leagues the thunderbolts of battle were thickly flying; bugle peals, cries of onset, shrieks of the wounded crushed beneath artillery wheels, blended with the rattle of musketry and the roar of artillery; riderless horses were flying in all directions; the extended plain was covered with the wreck and ruin of battle, and every moment was multiplying the victims of war’s horrid butchery.

The sun had just risen above the horizon when the fight began. It reached its peak. Still, the chaos of battle swept across the plains and echoed over the hills. Heights had been taken and lost; charges had been launched and repelled; waves of victory surged back and forth; over many miles, the thunder of battle filled the air; the sound of bugles, cries of attack, and the screams of the wounded crushed under artillery wheels mixed with the rattle of gunfire and the roar of cannons; riderless horses were charging in all directions; the wide plain was covered with the wreckage of battle, and every moment added to the victims of war’s horrific carnage.

At length the Austrians were routed—utterly routed—broken, dispersed, and driven in wild confusion into the glooms of the forest. The victory of Frederick was complete. As a warrior, he was winning the title he so greatly coveted, of Frederick the Great.

At last, the Austrians were defeated—totally defeated—shattered, scattered, and driven in a frenzy into the shadows of the forest. Frederick’s victory was total. As a warrior, he was earning the title he desired so much, that of Frederick the Great.

It was a glorious victory. What was the price? Five thousand six hundred Prussian young men lay in their blood upon the field, dead or wounded. Six thousand seven hundred young men from Austrian homes lay by their side, silent in death, or groaning in anguish, lacerated by the missiles of war.88

It was a glorious victory. But what was the cost? Five thousand six hundred young Prussian men lay in their blood on the field, dead or wounded. Six thousand seven hundred young men from Austrian homes lay beside them, silent in death or groaning in pain, torn apart by the weapons of war.88

Frederick was elated with his victory. He had taken three thousand three hundred prisoners, twenty-one cannon, and twenty-two standards. He had added to the renown of his name, and strengthened his hold upon Silesia.

Frederick was thrilled with his victory. He had captured three thousand three hundred prisoners, twenty-one cannons, and twenty-two standards. He had enhanced his reputation and solidified his control over Silesia.

Prince Charles, as he was leading the main body of his army to the assault, sent a squadron of his fleet-footed cavalry to burn the Prussian camp, and to assail the foe in their rear. But the troops found the camp so rich in treasure that they could not resist the temptation of stopping to plunder. Thus they did not make the attack which had been ordered, and which would probably have resulted in the destruction of the Prussian army. It is said that when Frederick, in the heat of the battle, was informed that the Pandours were sacking his camp, he coolly replied, “So much the better; they will not then interrupt us.”89

Prince Charles, while leading the main part of his army into battle, sent a squadron of his fast cavalry to burn the Prussian camp and attack the enemy from the rear. However, the troops found the camp filled with so much treasure that they couldn’t resist the temptation to stop and loot it. As a result, they failed to launch the attack that was ordered, which likely would have led to the destruction of the Prussian army. It's said that when Frederick was told during the heat of battle that the Pandours were plundering his camp, he calmly replied, “So much the better; they will not then interrupt us.”89


364

364

CHAPTER XXII.
THE PEACE OF DRESDEN.

Sufferings of the Peasantry.—Renown and Peril of Frederick.—New Plan of Maria Theresa.—Despondency of Frederick.—Surprise and Rout of the Austrians.—The “Old Dessauer” enters Saxony.—Battle of Kesseldorf.—Singular Prayer of the Old Dessauer.—Signal Victory of the Prussians.—Elation of Frederick.—The Peace of Dresden.—Death of M. Duhan.

Struggles of the Peasants.—The Fame and Risks of Frederick.—Maria Theresa's New Strategy.—Frederick's Despair.—The Shock and Defeat of the Austrians.—The Arrival of the "Old Dessauer" in Saxony.—Battle of Kesseldorf.—The Unique Prayer of the Old Dessauer.—Major Victory for the Prussians.—Frederick's Joy.—The Peace of Dresden.—Death of M. Duhan.

After the retreat of the Austrians, Frederick returned to his camp to find it plundered and burned. The semi-barbarian assailants had also consigned to the flames eight or ten sick Prussians whom they found there, and several women whom they caught. “We found the limbs of these poor men and women lying about,” writes General Lehwald.

After the Austrians retreated, Frederick came back to his camp to discover it had been ransacked and set on fire. The semi-barbaric attackers had also burned eight or ten sick Prussians they found there, along with several women they captured. “We found the bodies of these poor men and women scattered around,” writes General Lehwald.

The camp was so utterly destroyed that Frederick could not even obtain pen and ink. He was obliged to write with a pencil. Not a loaf of bread nor a cup of wine was left for the exhausted king. The hungry soldiers, after a conflict of five hours, having had neither breakfast nor dinner, found no refreshments awaiting them; yet, without a murmur, they smoked their pipes, drank some spring water, and rejoiced in their great victory.

The camp was completely ruined, and Frederick couldn’t even find pen and ink. He had no choice but to write with a pencil. There wasn't a loaf of bread or a cup of wine left for the weary king. The hungry soldiers, after fighting for five hours without breakfast or dinner, found no food waiting for them; still, without complaining, they smoked their pipes, drank some spring water, and celebrated their big victory.

“Never mind,” said the king; “it is a cheap price to pay for escaping an attack from Pandours in the rear, while such a battle was raging in front.”

“Never mind,” said the king; “it’s a small price to pay for avoiding an attack from the Pandours behind us, while such a battle is going on in front.”

Frederick remained at Sohr five days. The country was scoured in all directions to obtain food for his army. It was necessary that the troops should be fed, even if the poor inhabitants starved miserably. No tongue can tell the sufferings which consequently fell upon the peasantry for leagues around. Prince Charles, with his shattered army, fell back to Königgrätz, remorselessly plundering the people by the way. Frederick, ordering his army to retire to Silesia, returned to Berlin.

Frederick stayed at Sohr for five days. The area was searched in every direction to find food for his army. It was essential to feed the troops, even if it meant the local people had to suffer. No words can describe the hardships that fell on the farmers for miles around. Prince Charles, with his broken army, retreated to Königgrätz, ruthlessly looting the locals along the way. Frederick, ordering his army to go back to Silesia, returned to Berlin.

The victory of Sohr filled Europe with the renown of Frederick. Still his peril was great, and the difficulties before him apparently insurmountable. His treasury was exhausted. His only ally, France, would furnish him with no money, had no confidence365 in him, and was in heart exasperated against him. Not a single court in Europe expressed any friendship for Frederick. On the contrary, nearly all would have rejoiced at his downfall. There seemed to be no end to the campaigns which were opening before him. Yet Frederick knew not where to obtain the money to meet the expense even of a single campaign.

The victory of Sohr made Frederick famous across Europe. Still, he faced huge dangers and seemingly impossible challenges. His treasury was empty. His only ally, France, wouldn’t provide him with any money, had no confidence in him, and was actually quite angry with him. No court in Europe showed any support for Frederick. On the contrary, almost all would have been happy to see him fail. There seemed to be no limit to the campaigns ahead of him. Yet Frederick had no idea where to find the money to pay for even a single campaign.

Under these circumstances, Frederick made indirect but vigorous exertions to bring the war to a close. “I am ready and desirous now,” he said, “as at all times, for peace. I will immediately sheathe the sword if I can be guaranteed the possession of Silesia.”

Under these circumstances, Frederick made indirect but strong efforts to end the war. “I am ready and eager now,” he said, “as I have always been, for peace. I will immediately put down my sword if I can be assured of keeping Silesia.”

“I, too, am anxious for peace,” Maria Theresa replied, “and will joyfully withdraw my armies if Silesia, of which I have been robbed, is restored to me.”

“I, too, want peace,” Maria Theresa replied, “and I will gladly pull back my armies if Silesia, which has been taken from me, is returned.”

Thus his Prussian majesty and the Queen of Hungary met each other like two icebergs in a stormy sea. The allies were exasperated, not conquered, by the defeat of Sohr. Maria Theresa, notwithstanding the severity of winter’s cold, resolved immediately to send three armies to invade Prussia, and storm Berlin itself. She hoped to keep the design profoundly secret, so that Frederick might be taken at unawares. The Swedish envoy at Dresden spied out the plan, and gave the king warning. Marshal Grüne was to advance from the Rhine, and enter Brandenburg from the west. Prince Charles, skirting Western Silesia, was to march upon Brandenburg from the south. General Rutowski was to spring upon the Old Dessauer, who was encamped upon the frontiers of Saxony, overwhelm and crush his army with superior numbers, and then, forming a junction with Marshal Brüne, with their united force rush upon Berlin.

So, the Prussian king and the Queen of Hungary met like two icebergs in a stormy sea. The allies were frustrated, but not defeated, by the loss at Sohr. Despite the harsh winter cold, Maria Theresa decided to immediately send three armies to invade Prussia and attack Berlin itself. She hoped to keep the plan completely secret so Frederick would be caught off guard. The Swedish envoy in Dresden discovered the plan and warned the king. Marshal Grüne was set to advance from the Rhine and enter Brandenburg from the west. Prince Charles, moving around Western Silesia, was to march on Brandenburg from the south. General Rutowski was supposed to surprise the Old Dessauer, who was camped on the Saxony border, overwhelm him with superior numbers, and then join forces with Marshal Grüne to make a combined push on Berlin.

Frederick was astounded, alarmed, for a moment overwhelmed, as these tidings were clearly made known to him. He had brought all this upon himself. “And yet,” the wretched man exclaimed, “what a life I lead! This is not living; this is being killed a thousand times a day!”

Frederick was shocked and alarmed, momentarily overwhelmed as the news became clear to him. He had brought all this on himself. “And yet,” the miserable man exclaimed, “what a life I lead! This isn’t living; this is dying a thousand times a day!”

This despondency lasted, however, but a moment. Concealing his emotions, he smoothed his furrowed brow, dressed his face in smiles, and wrote doggerel verses and jocose letters as if he were merely a fashionable man of pleasure. At the same time he rallied all his marvelous energies, and prepared to meet the exigency366 with sagacity and intrepidity rarely surpassed. Orders were immediately dispatched to the Old Dessauer to marshal an army to oppose Grüne and Rutowski, while the king hastened to Silesia to attack Prince Charles. Leopold, though he had nearly numbered his threescore years and ten, according to Frederick, was very glad to fight once again before he died. The veteran general ventured to make some suggestions in reference to the orders he had received. The king sternly replied,

This feeling of despair only lasted a moment, though. Hiding his emotions, he smoothed out his worried brow, put on a smile, and wrote silly verses and lighthearted letters as if he were just a trendy man enjoying life. At the same time, he gathered all his impressive energy and got ready to face the challenge with wisdom and courage that was rarely matched. Orders were quickly sent to the Old Dessauer to assemble an army to confront Grüne and Rutowski, while the king rushed to Silesia to take on Prince Charles. Leopold, despite being nearly seventy years old, according to Frederick, was eager to fight once more before his time was up. The veteran general dared to make a few suggestions regarding the orders he had received. The king responded sternly,

“When your highness gets armies of your own, you will order them according to your mind. At present, it must be according to mine.”

“When you have your own armies, you can command them as you wish. For now, it has to be according to my plans.”

Frederick had an army of thirty-five thousand men at Liegnitz, in Silesia, under the command of young Leopold. Every man was a thoroughly trained soldier. The army was in the best possible condition. At seven o’clock in the morning of November 15, 1745, the king left Berlin at full speed for Liegnitz. He arrived there the next day, and at once took the command. “There is great velocity in this young king,” writes Carlyle; “a panther-like suddenness of spring in him; cunning too, as any felis of them; and with claws as the felis leo on occasion.”

Frederick had an army of thirty-five thousand men at Liegnitz, in Silesia, under the command of young Leopold. Every soldier was well-trained and the army was in top shape. At seven o’clock in the morning on November 15, 1745, the king rushed out of Berlin to head for Liegnitz. He arrived the next day and immediately took command. “There is great speed in this young king,” writes Carlyle; “a panther-like quickness in him; clever too, like any feline; and with claws like the lion when needed.”

Prince Charles was en route for Berlin—a winter’s march of a hundred and fifty miles. He was not aware that the King of Prussia was near him, or that the king was conscious of his bold design. On Saturday night, November 20, the army of Prince Charles, forty thousand strong, on its line of march, suspecting no foe near, was encamped in villages, extending for twenty miles along the banks of the Queiss, one of the tributaries of the Oder. Four marches would bring them into Brandenburg. It was the design of Frederick to fall with his whole force upon the centre of this line, cut it in two, and then to annihilate the extremities. Early in the morning of Sunday, the 21st, Frederick put his troops in motion. He marched rapidly all that day, and Monday, and Tuesday. In the twilight of Tuesday evening, a dense fog enveloping the landscape, Frederick, with his concentrated force, fell impetuously upon a division of the Austrian army encamped in the village of Hennersdorf.

Prince Charles was en route to Berlin—a winter march of one hundred and fifty miles. He didn’t know that the King of Prussia was nearby or that the king was aware of his daring plan. On Saturday night, November 20, Prince Charles's army, consisting of forty thousand troops, was on the move, camped in villages stretching twenty miles along the banks of the Queiss, a tributary of the Oder, unaware of any enemy nearby. Just four more marches would take them into Brandenburg. Frederick planned to strike with his full force at the center of this line, splitting it in two and then destroying the ends. Early on Sunday, the 21st, Frederick set his troops in motion. He marched quickly throughout that day, as well as Monday and Tuesday. As twilight fell on Tuesday evening, surrounded by a thick fog, Frederick launched a sudden attack with his concentrated force on a division of the Austrian army camped in the village of Hennersdorf.

The assault was as sudden and resistless as the sweep of the avalanche. The Austrian division was annihilated. Scarcely a man escaped. This achievement was deemed a very brilliant367 passage of war. It cut the Austrian army in twain and secured its ruin.

The attack was as fast and unstoppable as an avalanche. The Austrian division was completely destroyed. Hardly anyone got away. This victory was seen as a remarkable moment in the war. It split the Austrian army in half and guaranteed its downfall.

The next morning the Prussian troops, led by their indomitable king, were early on the march, groping through the thick mist to find more of the foe. But the blow already given was decisive. The Austrian army was shattered, demoralized, ruined. The king could find nothing but broken tumbrils, abandoned wagons, and the débris of an utterly routed army. Prince Charles, bewildered by the disaster, had wheeled his columns around, and fled through the passes of the mountains back to Bohemia. Five thousand of his troops he left behind in killed or prisoners.

The next morning, the Prussian troops, led by their unstoppable king, set out early, navigating through the thick fog to find more of the enemy. But the blow they had already dealt was decisive. The Austrian army was shattered, demoralized, and destroyed. The king found nothing but broken supply carts, abandoned wagons, and the remnants of a completely defeated army. Prince Charles, confused by the disaster, turned his troops around and escaped through the mountain passes back to Bohemia. He left behind five thousand of his soldiers, either dead or captured.

Frederick was not unduly elated with his victory. He was still terribly harassed for money. There were campaigns opening before him, in an unending series, requiring enormous expenditure. Even many such victories as he had just gained would only conduct him to irretrievable ruin, unless he could succeed in conquering a peace. In these dark hours the will of this extraordinary man remained inflexible. He would not listen to any propositions for peace which did not guarantee to him Silesia. Maria Theresa would listen to no terms which did not restore to her the lost province.

Frederick wasn't overly excited about his victory. He was still under a lot of pressure for money. Campaigns loomed ahead of him in an endless sequence, demanding huge spending. Even several victories like the one he had just secured would only lead him to inevitable ruin unless he could manage to achieve peace. In these tough times, this remarkable man remained steadfast. He refused to consider any peace proposals that didn't assure him of Silesia. Maria Theresa wouldn't entertain any terms that didn't return the lost province to her.

Frederick, in this great emergence, condescended again to write imploringly to France for pecuniary aid. He received a sarcastic reply, which exasperated him, and which was couched in such polite terms that he could not openly resent it. Marshal Grüne, who was advancing rapidly from the Rhine to Berlin, hearing of the defeat of his confederates at Hennersdorf, and of the retreat of Prince Charles, wheeled his columns south for Saxony. Here he effected a junction with General Rutowski, near Dresden. Their combined troops intrenched themselves, and stood on the defensive.

Frederick, during this major upheaval, reluctantly wrote to France once more, asking for financial help. He got a sarcastic response that frustrated him, and it was so politely worded that he couldn't respond openly. Marshal Grüne, who was quickly moving from the Rhine to Berlin, learned about the defeat of his allies at Hennersdorf and the retreat of Prince Charles, so he shifted his troops south toward Saxony. There, he linked up with General Rutowski near Dresden. Their united forces established defensive positions and prepared to hold their ground.

On the 29th of December, the Old Dessauer, with thirty-five thousand men, crossed the frontiers and entered Saxony. He marched rapidly upon Leipsic, and seized the town, from which a division of Rutowski’s army precipitately fled. Leopold found here quite a supply of commissary and ordnance stores. He also replenished his empty army-chest by levying a contribution of two hundred and fifty thousand dollars upon the inhabitants.368 Then, by a rapid march northeast to Torgo, on the Elbe, he captured another imperial magazine. Turning south, he pressed his troops along up the river to Myssen, which was within two days’ easy march of Dresden. Here there was a bridge across the Oder. Frederick was pushing his troops, by forced marches, from Hennersdorf, to effect a junction with Leopold at Myssen. Unitedly they were to fall upon Grüne and Rutowski at Dresden. In the mean time, also, Prince Charles, a despondent man, crushed by domestic woe and humiliating defeats, was moving, by not very energetic steps, to re-enforce the allied troops at Dresden.

On December 29th, the Old Dessauer, leading thirty-five thousand men, crossed the border and entered Saxony. He quickly marched to Leipsic and took the town, where a division of Rutowski’s army fled in a panic. Leopold found a good supply of food and ammunition stores there. He also refilled his empty army funds by demanding a contribution of two hundred and fifty thousand dollars from the local people.368 Then, with a swift march northeast to Torgo, by the Elbe, he captured another imperial supply depot. Heading south, he moved his troops up the river to Myssen, which was just a couple of days' easy march from Dresden. There was a bridge across the Oder here. Frederick was hastily moving his troops from Hennersdorf to unite with Leopold at Myssen. Together, they planned to attack Grüne and Rutowski in Dresden. Meanwhile, Prince Charles, feeling defeated and burdened by personal troubles and humiliating losses, was sluggishly making his way to reinforce the allied troops in Dresden.

It was two o’clock in the afternoon of Sunday, December 12, when the banners of the Old Dessauer appeared before Myssen. The Saxon commander there broke down the bridge, and in the darkness of the night stole away with his garrison to Dresden. Leopold vigorously but cautiously pursued. As the allied army was near, and in greater force than Leopold’s command, it was necessary for him to move with much discretion. His march was along the west bank of the river. The ground was frozen and white with snow.

It was two o’clock in the afternoon on Sunday, December 12, when the flags of the Old Dessauer showed up in front of Myssen. The Saxon commander there destroyed the bridge and, under the cover of night, quietly retreated with his troops to Dresden. Leopold pursued them aggressively yet carefully. Since the allied army was nearby and outnumbered Leopold’s troops, he needed to proceed with caution. He marched along the west bank of the river. The ground was frozen and covered in snow.

On Wednesday morning, December 15, the advance-guard of the Prussians saw before them the allied army, thirty-five thousand strong, occupying a very formidable position. Marshal Grüne and General Rutowski had advanced a few miles north from Dresden to meet the Prussians. Their troops were drawn up in battle array, extending from the River Elbe on the east, to the village of Kesselsdorf on the west. A small stream, with a craggy or broken gully or dell, extended along their whole front. The southern ridge, facing the advancing Prussians, bristled with artillery. Some of the pieces were of heavy calibre. Leopold had only light field-pieces.

On Wednesday morning, December 15, the vanguard of the Prussians saw the allied army ahead of them, which numbered thirty-five thousand and occupied a strong position. Marshal Grüne and General Rutowski had moved a few miles north from Dresden to meet the Prussians. Their troops were lined up for battle, stretching from the River Elbe in the east to the village of Kesselsdorf in the west. A small stream, along with a rocky gully, ran the entire length of their front. The southern ridge, facing the advancing Prussians, was packed with artillery, some of which were heavy cannons. Leopold had only light field guns.

In the cold of the winter morning the Old Dessauer carefully reconnoitred the position of his foes. Their batteries seemed innumerable, protected by earth-works, and frowning along a cliff which could only be reached by plunging into a gully and wading through a half-frozen bog. There was, however, no alternative but to advance or retreat. He decided to advance.

In the cold of the winter morning, the Old Dessauer carefully surveyed the position of his enemies. Their artillery appeared countless, fortified by earthworks, and looming along a cliff that could only be accessed by descending into a gully and wading through a half-frozen swamp. However, there was no choice but to move forward or fall back. He chose to move forward.

Forming his army in two parallel lines, nearly five miles long, facing the foe, he prepared to open the battle along the whole369 extent of the field. While thus engrossing the attention of the enemy, his main attempt was to be directed against the village of Kesselsdorf, which his practiced eye saw to be the key of the position. It was two o’clock in the afternoon ere all his arrangements were completed. The Old Dessauer was a devout man—in his peculiar style a religious man, a man of prayer. He never went into battle without imploring God’s aid. On this occasion, all things being arranged, he reverently uncovered his head, and in presence of the troops offered, it is said, the following prayer:

Forming his army in two parallel lines, nearly five miles long, facing the enemy, he got ready to start the battle across the entire369 field. While keeping the enemy's attention occupied, his main focus was on the village of Kesselsdorf, which he recognized as the key position. It was two o’clock in the afternoon when he finished all his preparations. The Old Dessauer was a devout man—in his own unique way, a religious person, a man of prayer. He never went into battle without seeking God’s help. On this occasion, once everything was in place, he respectfully removed his hat and, in front of the troops, offered, it is said, the following prayer:

“O my God, help me yet this once. Let me not be disgraced in my old days. But if Thou wilt not help me, don’t help those scoundrels, but leave us to try it out ourselves.”

“O my God, help me one more time. Don't let me be embarrassed in my old age. But if You won't help me, don't help those scoundrels, just let us figure it out on our own.”

Having uttered this prayer, he waved his hat to his troops, and shouted, “On, in God’s name!”

Having said this prayer, he waved his hat to his troops and shouted, “On, in God’s name!”

“The Prussians,” writes Carlyle, “tramp on with the usual grim-browed resolution, foot in front, horse in rear. But they have a terrible problem at that Kesselsdorf, with its retrenched batteries and numerous grenadiers fighting under cover. The very ground is sore against them; up-hill, and the trampled snow wearing into a slide, so that you sprawl and stagger sadly. Thirty-one big guns, and near nine thousand small, pouring out mere death on you from that knoll-head. The Prussians stagger; can not stand; bend to rightward to get out of shot range; can not manage it this bout. Rally, re-enforced; try it again. Again with a will; but again there is not a way. The Prussians are again repulsed; fall back down this slippery course in more disorder than the first time. Had the Saxons stood still, steadily handling arms, how, on such terms, could the Prussians have ever managed it?”90

“The Prussians,” writes Carlyle, “march on with their usual grim determination, foot in front, horse in back. But they face a tough problem at Kesselsdorf, with its fortified batteries and many grenadiers hiding for cover. The very ground is against them; it’s uphill, and the trampled snow has turned into a slide, making them stumble and stagger. Thirty-one big guns and almost nine thousand smaller ones are pouring out death on them from that hilltop. The Prussians falter; they can’t hold their ground; they lean right to escape the range of fire; they can’t manage it this time. They regroup, reinforced; they try again. Once more with determination; but once again, there’s no way. The Prussians are pushed back again, sliding down this treacherous path in more chaos than before. If the Saxons had just held their ground, steadily firing their weapons, how could the Prussians ever have succeeded under such conditions?”90

At the second repulse, the Saxon grenadiers, greatly elated, gave a shout of “victory,” and rushed from their works to pursue the retreating Prussians. This was their ruin.

At the second setback, the Saxon grenadiers, feeling very excited, shouted "victory" and charged out of their positions to chase the retreating Prussians. This was their downfall.

“Old Leopold, quick as thought, noticing the thing, hurls cavalry on these victorious, down-plunging grenadiers; slashes them asunder into mere recoiling whirlpools of ruin, so that few of them got back unwounded; and the Prussians, storming in along with them, aided by ever new Prussians, the place was at length carried.”91

“Old Leopold, as fast as a thought, noticed what was happening and sent cavalry against the victorious, charging grenadiers, cutting them down into chaotic whirlpools of ruin, so that only a few managed to escape uninjured. With the Prussians storming in alongside them, supported by fresh reinforcements, the place was finally taken.”91

370 And now the Prussians from the centre press the foe with new vigor. Leopold, at the head of his victorious division, charged the allied troops in flank, pouring in upon them his resistless horsemen. Whole regiments were made prisoners. Ere nightfall of the short December day, the whole allied army, broken and disordered, was on the retreat back to Dresden. The night alone protected them from utter ruin. They had lost six thousand prisoners, and three thousand in killed and wounded.92

370 And now the Prussians from the center are attacking the enemy with renewed energy. Leopold, leading his victorious division, flanked the allied troops, unleashing his unstoppable cavalry on them. Entire regiments were taken prisoner. Before night fell on that short December day, the entire allied army, broken and disorganized, was retreating back to Dresden. The night was their only protection from total defeat. They had lost six thousand prisoners and three thousand in killed and wounded.92

Prince Charles had arrived in Dresden the night before. He heard the roar of the cannonade all the day, but, for some unexplained reason, did not advance to the support of his friends. The very unsatisfactory excuse offered was, that his troops were exhausted by their long march; and that, having been recently twice beaten by the Prussians, his army would be utterly demoralized if led to another defeat.

Prince Charles arrived in Dresden the night before. He heard the sound of cannon fire all day, but for some unknown reason, he didn’t go to support his friends. The very unsatisfactory excuse given was that his troops were worn out from their long march, and that having been recently defeated twice by the Prussians, his army would be completely demoralized if they faced another loss.

On the evening of Tuesday, the 14th, Frederick, with his advanced guard, reached Myssen. All the next day, Wednesday, he was hurrying up his troops from the rear. In the afternoon he heard the deep booming of the cannon far up the Elbe. In the evening the sky was ablaze with the glare of the watch-fires of Leopold’s victorious troops. The next morning Frederick pressed forward with all haste to join Leopold. Couriers on the way informed him of the great victory. At Wilsdruf, a few miles from the field of battle, he met Leopold, who had advanced in person to meet his king. Frederick dismounted, uncovered his head, and threw his arms around the Old Dessauer in a grateful embrace.

On the evening of Tuesday, the 14th, Frederick, along with his advance guard, arrived in Myssen. The following day, Wednesday, he rushed to move his troops up from the rear. In the afternoon, he heard the loud sound of cannon fire far up the Elbe. That evening, the sky lit up with the glow of the watch-fires from Leopold's victorious troops. The next morning, Frederick quickly pushed forward to join Leopold. Couriers along the way informed him about the significant victory. At Wilsdruf, just a few miles from the battlefield, he met Leopold, who had come personally to greet his king. Frederick got off his horse, took off his hat, and embraced the Old Dessauer gratefully.

Together the king and his sturdy general returned to Kesselsdorf, and rode over the field of battle, which was still strewn with the ghastly wrecks of war. Large numbers of the citizens of Dresden were on the field searching for their lost ones among the wounded or the dead. The Queen of Poland and her children remained in the city. Frederick treated them with marked politeness, and appointed them guards of honor. The King371 of Poland, who, it will be remembered, was also Elector of Saxony, applied for peace. Frederick replied:

Together, the king and his strong general returned to Kesselsdorf and rode across the battlefield, which was still littered with the horrific aftermath of war. Many citizens of Dresden were on the field looking for their missing loved ones among the injured or deceased. The Queen of Poland and her children stayed in the city. Frederick treated them with notable courtesy and assigned them guards of honor. The King of Poland, who was also the Elector of Saxony, requested peace. Frederick replied:

“Guarantee me the possession of Silesia, and pay me seven hundred and fifty thousand dollars for the expenses of this campaign, and I will withdraw my army.”

“Guarantee me the control of Silesia, and pay me seven hundred fifty thousand dollars for the costs of this campaign, and I will pull back my army.”

FREDERICK AND THE OLD DESSAUER.

M. D’Arget, private secretary of the French minister Valori, gives an interesting account of an interview he held with Frederick at this time. M. D’Arget was quite a favorite of the king, who conversed with him with unusual frankness.

M. D’Arget, the private secretary of the French minister Valori, shares an interesting story about an interview he had with Frederick during this time. M. D’Arget was a favorite of the king, who spoke with him unusually openly.

“These kind condescensions of his majesty,” writes M. D’Arget, “emboldened me to represent to him the brilliant position he now held, and how noble it would be, after being the hero of Germany, to become the pacificator of Europe.”

“His majesty’s kind gestures,” writes M. D’Arget, “gave me the confidence to point out the impressive position he currently held, and how noble it would be, after being the hero of Germany, to become the peacemaker of Europe.”

“I grant it, my dear D’Arget,” said the king, “but it is too372 dangerous a part to play. A reverse brings me to the edge of ruin. I know too well the mood of mind I was in the last time I left Berlin ever to expose myself to it again. If luck had been against me there, I saw myself a monarch without a throne. A bad game that. In fine, I wish to be at peace.”

“I understand, my dear D’Arget,” said the king, “but it's too372 risky to play that role. A setback could push me to the brink of disaster. I remember all too clearly how I felt the last time I left Berlin, and I won't put myself in that position again. If fate had turned against me there, I would have found myself a king without a kingdom. Not a good situation. In short, I want to be at peace.”

“I represented to him,” continues M. D’Arget, “that the house of Austria would never, with a tranquil eye, see his house in possession of Silesia.”

“I pointed out to him,” continues M. D’Arget, “that the house of Austria would never, calmly, accept his house having control over Silesia.”

“Those that come after me,” said the king, “will do as they like. The future is beyond man’s reach. I have acquired; it is theirs to preserve. I am not in alarm about the Austrians. They dread my armies—the luck that I have. I am sure of their sitting quiet for the dozen years or so which may remain to me of life. There is more for me in the true greatness of laboring for the happiness of my subjects than in the repose of Europe. I have put Saxony out of a condition to hurt me. She now owes me twelve million five hundred thousand dollars. By the defensive alliance which I form with her, I provide myself a help against Austria. I would not, henceforth, attack a cat, except to defend myself. Glory and my interests were the occasion of my first campaigns. The late emperor’s situation, and my zeal for France, gave rise to the second. Always since, I have been fighting for my own hearths—for my very existence. I know the state I have got into. If I now saw Prince Charles at the gates of Paris, I would not stir.”

“Those who come after me,” the king said, “will do what they want. The future is out of man's control. I have achieved; it’s up to them to maintain it. I'm not worried about the Austrians. They fear my armies—the luck I have. I'm confident they'll stay quiet for the dozen years or so that I have left to live. There’s more for me in truly working for the happiness of my people than in the peace of Europe. I've put Saxony in a position where she can’t harm me. She now owes me twelve million five hundred thousand dollars. With the defensive alliance I’m forming with her, I’m securing support against Austria. From now on, I wouldn’t attack even a cat unless I had to defend myself. Glory and my interests prompted my first campaigns. The late emperor’s situation and my dedication to France led to the second. Since then, I’ve been fighting for my own home—for my very survival. I know the position I’m in. If I saw Prince Charles at the gates of Paris now, I wouldn’t move.”

“And would you regard with the same indifference,” M. D’Arget rejoined, “seeing us at the gates of Vienna?”

“And would you feel the same indifference,” M. D’Arget replied, “if you saw us at the gates of Vienna?”

“Yes,” the king replied. “I swear it to you, D’Arget. In a word, I want to have some good of my life. What are we, poor human atoms, to get up projects that cost so much blood!”

“Yeah,” the king said. “I promise you this, D’Arget. Basically, I want to enjoy my life a little. What are we, just frail humans, to come up with plans that cost so much blood!”

On the 25th of December, 1745, the peace of Dresden was signed. The demands of Frederick were acceded to. Augustus III. of Saxony, Maria Theresa of Austria, and George II. of England became parties to the treaty. The next day Frederick attended sermon in the Protestant church. Monday morning his army, by slow marches, commenced its return to Brandenburg. Frederick, highly elated by the wonderful and almost miraculous change in his affairs, entered his carriage in company with his two brothers, and drove rapidly toward Berlin. The next day,373 at two o’clock in the afternoon, they reached the heath of Britz, five miles out from the city. Here the king found an immense concourse of the citizens, who had come on horseback and in carriages to escort him to his palace. Frederick sat in an open phaeton, accompanied by the Prince of Prussia and Prince Henry. The throng was so great that the horses could only proceed at the slowest pace. The air resounded with shouts of “Long live Frederick the Great.” The king was especially gracious, saying to those who eagerly crowded around his carriage wheels,

On December 25, 1745, the peace of Dresden was signed. Frederick's demands were accepted. Augustus III of Saxony, Maria Theresa of Austria, and George II of England all became part of the treaty. The following day, Frederick went to sermon at the Protestant church. On Monday morning, his army started its return to Brandenburg at a slow pace. Frederick, thrilled by the amazing and nearly miraculous change in his situation, got into his carriage with his two brothers and rushed toward Berlin. The next day, 373 at 2 p.m., they arrived at the heath of Britz, five miles outside the city. Here, the king found a large crowd of citizens who had come on horseback and in carriages to escort him to his palace. Frederick rode in an open phaeton, joined by the Prince of Prussia and Prince Henry. The crowd was so massive that the horses could only move at a crawl. The air was filled with shouts of "Long live Frederick the Great." The king was particularly gracious, speaking to those who eagerly surrounded his carriage wheels,

“Do not press each other, my children. Take care of yourselves that the horses may not trample upon you, and that no accident may happen.”

“Don’t crowd each other, my kids. Watch out for yourselves so the horses don’t step on you and that nothing bad happens.”

It was remarked that the whole behavior of the king upon this occasion exhibited the utmost mildness, gentleness, and affability. He seemed to be influenced by the most tender regard for the welfare of the people.

It was noted that the king's behavior during this occasion showed the greatest mildness, kindness, and approachability. He appeared to be deeply concerned about the well-being of the people.

Upon reaching the palace, he stood for a moment upon the grand stairway, and, surveying the thronging thousands, took off his hat and saluted them. This gave rise to a burst of applause louder and heartier than Berlin had ever heard before. The king disappeared within the palace. Where the poor neglected queen was at this time we are not informed. There are no indications that he gave her even a thought.

Upon arriving at the palace, he paused for a moment on the grand staircase, and, looking over the cheering crowd, removed his hat and acknowledged them. This sparked a round of applause louder and more enthusiastic than Berlin had ever experienced before. The king went inside the palace. We aren't told where the overlooked queen was at that moment. There is no evidence that he even considered her.

At six o’clock in the evening the whole city was illuminated. Frederick entered his carriage, and, attended by his two brothers, the Prince of Prussia and Prince Henry, rode out to take the circuit of the streets. But the king had received information that one of his former preceptors, M. Duhan, lay at the point of death. He ordered his carriage to be at once driven to the residence of the dying man. The house of M. Duhan was situated in a court, blazing with the glow of thousands of lamps.

At six o’clock in the evening, the entire city was lit up. Frederick got into his carriage, and, accompanied by his two brothers, the Prince of Prussia and Prince Henry, drove out to tour the streets. However, the king had been informed that one of his former teachers, M. Duhan, was on his deathbed. He ordered his carriage to be taken immediately to the house of the dying man. M. Duhan's home was located in a courtyard, glowing with the light of thousands of lamps.

“It was an affecting sight,” says M. Bielfeld, “to see a dying man in the midst of a brilliant illumination, surrounded by princes, and visited by a triumphant monarch, who, in the midst of the incessant clamor of exultation, sought only to alleviate the sick man’s pangs, participating in his distress, and reflecting upon the vanity of all human grandeur.”

“It was a moving sight,” says M. Bielfeld, “to see a dying man in the middle of a spectacular celebration, surrounded by princes, and visited by a triumphant king, who, amid the constant noise of joy, only wanted to ease the sick man’s pain, sharing in his suffering, and contemplating the emptiness of all human greatness.”

The king having taken a tender adieu of M. Duhan, who died374 the next morning, traversed the brilliant streets of the rejoicing city, and returned to the palace about ten that evening.

The king said a heartfelt goodbye to M. Duhan, who passed away the next morning, then walked through the lively streets of the celebrating city and returned to the palace around ten that evening.374

Frederick now entered upon a period of ten years of peace.

Frederick now entered a decade of peace.

FREDERICK AT THE DEATH-BED OF M. DUHAN.

375

375

SANS SOUCI.

CHAPTER XXIII.
FREDERICK THE GREAT AT SANS SOUCI.

Days of Peace and Prosperity.—The Palace of Sans Souci.—Letter from Marshal Keith.—Domestic Habits of the King.—Frederick’s Snuff-boxes.—Anecdotes.—Severe Discipline of the Army.—Testimony of Baron Trenck.—The Review.—Death of the “Divine Emilie.”—The King’s Revenge.—Anecdote of the Poor Schoolmaster.—The Berlin Carousal.—Appearance of his Majesty.—Honors conferred upon Voltaire.

Days of Peace and Prosperity.—The Palace of Sans Souci.—Letter from Marshal Keith.—King's Home Life.—Frederick’s Snuff-boxes.—Stories and Anecdotes.—Strict Discipline in the Army.—Baron Trenck’s Testimony.—The Review.—Death of the “Divine Emilie.”—The King’s Revenge.—Story of the Poor Schoolmaster.—The Berlin Carousal.—The Majesty's Appearance.—Honors Given to Voltaire.

“Happy the people,” says Montesquieu, “whose annals are blank in history books.” The annals of the nations are mainly composed of wars, tumult, and woe. For ten years Prussia enjoyed peace. During this happy period, when the days and the years glided by in tranquillity, there is little left for the historian to record. Frederick engaged vigorously in repairing the ruins left by the war. The burned Silesian villages were rebuilt; debts were paid; agriculture and commerce encouraged; the laws revised and reformed. A decree was issued that all lawsuits should be brought to a decision within a year after their beginning.

"Feeling good" are the people,” says Montesquieu, “whose histories are unwritten.” The histories of nations are mostly filled with wars, chaos, and suffering. For ten years, Prussia experienced peace. During this fortunate time, when days and years passed by peacefully, there is not much for historians to document. Frederick actively worked on repairing the damage caused by the war. The burned villages in Silesia were rebuilt; debts were settled; agriculture and trade were promoted; and laws were revised and improved. A decree was issued stating that all lawsuits must be resolved within a year of being filed.

The king, weary of the life of turmoil, constructed for himself376 a beautiful villa, which he named Sans Souci (“Free from Care”), which Carlyle characteristically translates “No bother.” It was situated on a pleasant hill-top near Potsdam, in great retirement, yet commanding an enchanting view of land and water.

The king, tired of the chaotic life, built himself376 a beautiful villa, which he named Sans Souci (“Free from Care”), which Carlyle translates as “No bother.” It was located on a lovely hilltop near Potsdam, in great seclusion, yet offered a charming view of the land and water.

On the first of May, 1747, Frederick took formal possession of this beautiful chateau. The occasion was celebrated by quite a magnificent dinner of two hundred covers. Here, for the next forty years, he spent most of his leisure time. He had three other palaces, far surpassing Sans Souci in splendor, which he occasionally visited on days of royal festivities. Berlin and Charlottenburg were about twenty miles distant. The New Palace, so called, at Potsdam, was but about a mile from Sans Souci. He had also his palace at Rheinsberg, some thirty miles north of Berlin, where he had spent many of his early days.

On May 1, 1747, Frederick officially took ownership of this beautiful chateau. The event was celebrated with an impressive dinner for two hundred guests. For the next forty years, he spent most of his free time here. He had three other palaces that were far more extravagant than Sans Souci, which he would occasionally visit during royal celebrations. Berlin and Charlottenburg were about twenty miles away. The New Palace, as it was called, was just about a mile from Sans Souci. He also had a palace in Rheinsberg, roughly thirty miles north of Berlin, where he had spent many of his early years.

THE NEW PALACE AT POTSDAM.

It is said that one day, as Frederick was contemplating the royal burying-ground, not far from the spot which he had selected for his rural villa, he said to a companion by his side, in reference to his own burial, “Oui, alors je serais sans souci.” Yes, then I shall be free from care. From that remark the villa took its name. Frederick adopted it, and inscribed it in golden letters on the lintel. He appropriated to his private use three apartments—an audience-room, a library, and a small alcove for a bedroom. In this alcove, scarcely larger than a closet, he slept, in soldier style, upon an iron bed, without curtains. An old slouched hat, softened by wear, served him for a night-cap. His library was a beautiful room, very richly furnished. There were377 terrible war-clouds still sweeping over various parts of Europe, but their lightning flashes and their thunder roar disturbed not the repose of Frederick in his elevated retreat.

One day, as Frederick was looking out over the royal burial ground near where he had chosen to build his country villa, he said to a friend beside him, referring to his own burial, “Yes, then I shall be free from care.” From that comment, the villa got its name. Frederick liked it and had it inscribed in gold letters on the doorframe. He set aside three rooms for his personal use—a reception room, a library, and a small alcove for a bedroom. In this alcove, which was barely bigger than a closet, he slept like a soldier on an iron bed without curtains. An old, worn-out hat served as his nightcap. His library was a beautiful room, richly furnished. There were still terrible war clouds looming over various parts of Europe, but their lightning and thunder didn’t disturb Frederick’s peace in his high retreat.

In the month of October, 1747, Field-marshal Keith visited his Prussian majesty at Sans Souci. In a letter to his brother he thus describes the results of his observations:

In October 1747, Field Marshal Keith visited his Prussian majesty at Sans Souci. In a letter to his brother, he describes the outcomes of his observations:

“I have now the honor, and, what is still more, the pleasure of being with the king at Potsdam. I have the honor to dine and sup with him almost every day. He has more wit than I have wit to tell you; speaks solidly and knowingly on all kinds of subjects; and I am much mistaken if, with the experience of four campaigns, he is not the best officer of his army. He has several persons with whom he lives with almost the familiarity of a friend, but he has no favorite. He shows a natural politeness for every body who is about him. For one who has been four days about his person, you will say, I pretend to know a great deal about his character. But what I tell you you may depend upon. With more time I shall know as much of him as he will let me know, and no one of his ministry knows any more.”

"I am now honored, and even more pleased, to be with the king at Potsdam. I get to have dinner and supper with him almost every day. He has more wit than I can express; he speaks thoughtfully and knowledgeably on all kinds of topics; and I would be surprised if, after four campaigns, he isn’t the best officer in his army. He has several people he interacts with almost like friends, but he has no favorite. He shows genuine politeness to everyone around him. You might think that after being around him for four days, I claim to know a lot about his character. But you can trust what I’m telling you. Given more time, I’ll learn as much about him as he is willing to share, and no one in his ministry knows any more."

The king was a very busy man. In addition to carrying on quite an extensive literary correspondence, he was vigorously engaged in writing his memoirs. He was also with great energy developing the wealth of his realms. In the exercise of absolute power, his government was entirely personal. He had no constitution to restrain him. Under his single control were concentrated all legislative, judicial, and executive powers. There was no senate or legislative corps to co-operate in framing laws. His ministers were merely servants to do his bidding. The courts had no powers whatever but such as he intrusted to them. He could at any time reverse their decrees, and flog the judges with his cane, or hang them.

The king was a very busy guy. Besides managing a pretty extensive literary correspondence, he was actively working on his memoirs. He was also energetically building the wealth of his kingdoms. Exercising absolute power, his rule was completely personal. He had no constitution to limit him. All legislative, judicial, and executive powers were concentrated under his control. There was no senate or legislative body to help create laws. His ministers were just there to carry out his orders. The courts had no authority except what he granted them. He could change their decisions at any time and could punish the judges however he liked, even whip them with his cane or execute them.

Frederick was a great snuff-taker. He always carried two large snuff-boxes in his pocket. Several others stood upon tables around in his rooms, always ready for use. The cheapest of these boxes cost fifteen hundred dollars. He had some richly studded with gems, which cost seven thousand five hundred dollars. At his death one hundred and thirty snuff-boxes appeared in the inventory of his jewels.

Frederick was a huge fan of snuff. He always carried two large snuff boxes in his pocket. Several others were on tables around his rooms, always ready for use. The cheapest of these boxes cost fifteen hundred dollars. He had some that were richly inlaid with gems, which cost seven thousand five hundred dollars. When he died, one hundred and thirty snuff boxes were listed in the inventory of his jewels.

Many anecdotes are related illustrative of the kind feelings of378 the king toward the peasants. He was much interested in ameliorating their condition, and said to the Bishop of Varmia, “Believe me, if I knew every thing—if I could read every thing myself—all my subjects should be happy. But alas! I am but a man.”

Many stories show the king's kind feelings toward the peasants. He was very interested in improving their situation and told the Bishop of Varmia, “Believe me, if I knew everything—if I could read everything myself—all my subjects would be happy. But alas! I am only a man.”

In the ranks all of the army were equally entitled to distinction. Promotion was conferred upon merit, not upon the accident of birth. This principle, which was entirely ignored in the other European despotisms, probably contributed to the success of Frederick’s armies. A Hanoverian count wrote to him, soliciting a high position in the army for his son, in favor of his exalted birth. Frederick dictated the following reply:

In the army, everyone had the same right to recognition. Promotions were based on merit, not on one's family background. This principle, which was completely overlooked in other European autocracies, likely played a role in the success of Frederick’s forces. A Hanoverian count wrote to him, asking for a high rank in the army for his son because of his noble lineage. Frederick wrote the following reply:

“I am obliged to tell you that I have long forbid counts to be received, as such, into my army; for when they have served one or two years they retire, and merely make their short military career a subject of vain boasting. If your son wishes to serve, the title of count can be of no use to him. But he will be promoted if he learn his profession well.”

“I have to let you know that I've long banned counts from joining my army; after serving one or two years, they leave and just use their brief military experience to brag. If your son wants to serve, being a count won't help him. But he will get promoted if he learns his job well.”

The king then took the pen himself, and added with his own hand:

The king then picked up the pen himself and added with his own hand:

“Young counts who have learned nothing are the most ignorant people in all countries. In England the king’s son begins by being a sailor on board a ship, in order to learn the manœuvres belonging to that service. If it should miraculously happen that a count could be good for any thing, it must be by banishing all thoughts about his titles and his birth, for these are only follies. Every thing depends upon personal merit.

“Young nobles who haven’t learned anything are the most clueless people around. In England, the king’s son begins as a sailor on a ship to learn the skills of that profession. If a noble were to somehow become truly useful, it would require them to forget about their titles and background, because those are simply nonsense. Everything depends on personal merit.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

The severity of discipline in the Prussian army was dreadful. The slightest misdemeanor was punished mercilessly. The drill, exposure, and hardships in the camp made life to the soldier a scene of constant martyrdom. Desertion was almost impossible. The only avenue of escape was suicide. In the little garrison at Potsdam, in ten years, over three hundred, by self-inflicted death, escaped their miseries. Dr. Zimmerman states that it not unfrequently happened that a soldier murdered a child, and then came and gave himself up to justice. They thought that if they committed379 suicide they would be subject to eternal punishment. But the murdered infant was sure to go to heaven, and the murderer would have time to repent and make his peace with God.

The strictness of discipline in the Prussian army was harsh. Even the smallest offense was punished severely. The training, exposure, and hardships in the camp made life for soldiers a continuous struggle. Desertion was nearly impossible. The only way out was suicide. In the small garrison at Potsdam, over three hundred soldiers chose to end their own lives in ten years to escape their suffering. Dr. Zimmerman notes that it often happened that a soldier would take the life of a child and then turn himself in to the authorities. They believed that by committing suicide, they would face eternal punishment. However, they thought that the murdered child would definitely go to heaven, and the murderer would have time to repent and reconcile with God.

Baron Trenck, in his memoir, gives an appalling account of these hardships in the body-guards to which he belonged. In time of peace there was scarcely an hour which he could command. The morning drill commenced at four o’clock. The most complicated and perilous manœuvres were performed. Frederick considered this the best school for cavalry in the world. They were compelled to leap trenches, which were continually widened till many fell in and broke their legs or arms. They were also compelled to leap hedges, and continue to charge at the highest possible speed for miles together. Almost daily some were either killed or wounded. At midday they took fresh horses, and repeated these toilsome and dangerous labors. Frequently they would be called from their beds two or three times in one night, to keep them on the alert. But eight minutes were allowed the guardsman to present himself on horseback, in his place, fully equipped. “In one year of peace,” he says, “the body-guards lost more men and horses than they had in two battles during the war.”

Baron Trenck, in his memoir, shares a shocking account of the hardships faced by the bodyguards he served with. During peacetime, he barely had an hour to himself. Morning drills started at four a.m., featuring the most complex and dangerous maneuvers. Frederick believed this was the best cavalry training in the world. They had to jump over trenches that were constantly being widened, leading many to fall and break their legs or arms. They were also required to leap over hedges and maintain full-speed charges for miles on end. Almost every day, someone was killed or injured. At noon, they would get new horses and repeat these exhausting and risky tasks. Often, they were woken from their beds two or three times in one night to keep them alert. Guardsmen were given only eight minutes to mount their horses and be fully equipped in their designated spots. “In one year of peace,” he says, “the bodyguards lost more men and horses than they did in two battles during the war.”

In 1747 Marshal Saxe visited Potsdam. He witnessed a review of the guards. In the account of this review given by Algarotti, he says, “The squadron of guards, which at one time, drawn up close, exhibited the appearance of a rock, at another resembled a cloud scattered along the plain. In the charge on full gallop one horse’s head was not a foot beyond another. The line was so exactly straight that Euclid himself could not have found fault with it.”

In 1747, Marshal Saxe visited Potsdam and watched a review of the guards. In Algarotti's account of this review, he states, “The squadron of guards, at one moment appearing like a rock when lined up closely, and at another like a cloud spread across the plain. During the charge at full gallop, one horse's head was no more than a foot ahead of another. The line was so perfectly straight that even Euclid himself wouldn't have criticized it.”

In September, 1749, Madame Du Châtelet, the “divine Emilie” of Voltaire, suddenly died. The infidel philosopher seemed much grieved for a time. Frederick, who never fancied Madame Du Châtelet, was the more eager, now that she was out of the way, that Voltaire should come to Sans Souci, and aid him in his literary labors. A trivial incident occurred at this time worthy of record, as illustrative of the character of the king. At the close of the year 1749 there had been a review of Austrian troops at Mähren. It was not a very important affair, neither the empress queen nor her husband being present. Three380 Prussian officers made their appearance. It was said that they had come to inveigle soldiers to desert, and enlist under the banners of Prussia. They were peremptorily ordered by the Austrian authorities to leave the ground. Frederick, when he heard of it, said nothing, but treasured it up.

In September 1749, Madame Du Châtelet, Voltaire's "divine Emilie," suddenly passed away. The skeptical philosopher appeared quite upset for a while. Frederick, who never had much regard for Madame Du Châtelet, was eager now that she was gone for Voltaire to come to Sans Souci and help him with his writing. A minor incident during this time is worth noting as a reflection of the king's character. At the end of 1749, there was a review of Austrian troops in Mähren. It wasn’t a significant event, as neither the empress queen nor her husband attended. Three Prussian officers showed up. It was rumored they were there to try to persuade soldiers to desert and join the Prussian army. The Austrian authorities firmly ordered them to leave the area. When Frederick heard about it, he said nothing but kept it in mind.

A few months after, in May, 1750, there was a grand review at Berlin. An Austrian officer who chanced to be there was invited by his friend, a Prussian officer, Lieutenant Colonel Chasot, to attend. The Austrian was not willing to ride upon the parade-ground without the permission of the king. Colonel Chasot called upon Frederick and informed him that an Austrian officer would be happy, with his majesty’s permission, to be present at the review.

A few months later, in May 1750, there was a big review in Berlin. An Austrian officer who happened to be there was invited by his friend, a Prussian officer, Lieutenant Colonel Chasot, to join. The Austrian didn’t want to ride on the parade ground without the king's approval. Colonel Chasot visited Frederick and let him know that an Austrian officer would be glad to attend the review, with his majesty's permission.

“Certainly, certainly,” exclaimed the king.

"Sure, sure," exclaimed the king.

This was on the evening before the review. On the morrow the Austrian accordingly rode upon the field. He had hardly arrived there when, just as the manœuvres were commencing, one of the aids-de-camp of Frederick galloped up to him and said, “By the king’s command, sir, you are ordered instantly to retire from this field.”

This was the evening before the review. The next day, the Austrian rode onto the field. He had barely arrived when, just as the maneuvers were starting, one of Frederick's aides-de-camp rode up to him and said, “By the king’s command, sir, you’re ordered to leave this field immediately.”

Colonel Chasot, exceedingly chagrined, rode directly to the king, and inquired, “Did not your majesty grant me permission to invite my friend to the review?”

Colonel Chasot, very upset, rode straight to the king and asked, “Didn’t your majesty allow me to invite my friend to the review?”

“Certainly,” replied the king, in his most courteous tones; “and if he had not come, how could I have paid back the Mähren business of last year?”

“Of course,” the king said, in his politest voice; “and if he hadn’t shown up, how could I have settled the Mähren issue from last year?”

It is pleasant to record another incident more creditable to Frederick. In the year 1750 there was a poor and aged schoolmaster, by the name of Linsenbarth, a very worthy man, a veritable Dominie Sampson, residing in the obscure village of Hemmleben. He had been educated as a clergyman, had considerable book learning, was then out of employment, and was in extreme destitution. The pastor of the village church died, leaving a vacant pulpit, and a salary amounting to about one hundred dollars a year. The great man of the place, a feudal lord named Von Werthern, offered the situation to Linsenbarth upon condition that he would marry his lady’s termagant waiting-maid. Linsenbarth, who had no fancy for the haughty shrew, declined the offer. The lord and lady were much offended, and in various381 ways rendered the situation of the poor schoolmaster so uncomfortable that he gathered up his slender means, amounting to about three hundred dollars, all in the deteriorated coin of the province, and went to Berlin. His money was in a bag containing nearly nine thousand very small pieces of coin, called batzen.

It's nice to recount another incident that reflects well on Frederick. In 1750, there was a poor, elderly schoolmaster named Linsenbarth, a truly decent man, much like Dominie Sampson, living in the remote village of Hemmleben. He had been trained as a clergyman, was well-read, but was out of work and facing extreme poverty. When the village pastor died, his pulpit became vacant, offering a salary of about one hundred dollars a year. The local influential figure, a feudal lord named Von Werthern, offered the position to Linsenbarth on the condition that he marry his lady’s aggressive waiting-maid. Linsenbarth, who had no interest in the proud shrew, turned down the offer. The lord and lady were quite offended and made the poor schoolmaster’s life so uncomfortable in various ways that he decided to gather his meager savings—about three hundred dollars, all in the worn-out currency of the province—and moved to Berlin. His money was in a bag containing nearly nine thousand very small coins known as batzen.

At the custom-house the poor man’s coin was seized as contraband. He was informed that the king, had forbidden the circulation of that kind of money in Berlin. The heartless officials laughed at the poor man’s distress, paid no regard to his remonstrances and pleadings, and locked up his confiscated coin.

At the customs house, the poor man's money was taken as illegal. He was told that the king had banned that type of currency in Berlin. The unfeeling officials laughed at the poor man's misery, ignored his protests and pleas, and locked up his seized money.

Poor Linsenbarth had a feather bed, a small chest of clothes, and a bag of books. He went to a humble inn, called the “White Swan,” utterly penniless. The landlord, seeing that he could levy upon his luggage in case of need, gave him food and a small room in the garret to sleep in. Here he remained in a state verging upon despair for eight weeks. Some of the simple neighbors advised him to go directly to the king, as every poor man could do at certain hours in the day. He wrote a brief statement of the facts, and started on foot for Potsdam. We give the result in the words of Linsenbarth:

Poor Linsenbarth had a feather mattress, a small trunk of clothes, and a bag of books. He went to a modest inn called the “White Swan,” completely broke. The landlord, noticing that he could take his belongings if necessary, offered him food and a small room in the attic to sleep in. He stayed there, nearing despair, for eight weeks. Some kind locals suggested he go directly to the king, as any poor person could do at certain times of the day. He wrote a short summary of his situation and set off on foot for Potsdam. We share the outcome in Linsenbarth's own words:

“At Potsdam I was lucky enough to see the king. He was on the esplanade drilling his troops. When the drill was over he went into the garden, and the soldiers dispersed. Four officers remained lounging on the esplanade. For fright, I knew not what to do; I drew the papers from my pocket. These were my memorial, two certificates of character, and a Thuringian pass. The officers, noticing this, came directly to me and said, ‘What letters have you there?’ I thankfully imparted the whole. When the officers had read them, they said, ‘We will give you good advice. The king is extra gracious to-day, and is gone alone into the garden. Follow him straight. You will have luck.’

“At Potsdam, I was fortunate enough to see the king. He was on the esplanade drilling his troops. When the drill was over, he headed into the garden, and the soldiers scattered. Four officers stayed behind, lounging on the esplanade. Out of fear, I didn't know what to do; I pulled out the papers from my pocket. These were my memorial, two letters of recommendation, and a Thuringian pass. The officers, noticing this, came over to me and asked, ‘What letters do you have there?’ I thankfully shared everything. After reading them, the officers said, ‘We have some good advice for you. The king is especially gracious today and has gone alone into the garden. Follow him immediately. You’ll have good luck.’”

“This I would not do; my awe was too great. They thereupon laid hands upon me. One took me by the right arm, another by the left, and led me to the garden. Having got me there, they looked out for the king. He was among the gardeners examining some rare plant, and had his back to us. Here I had to halt. The officers began in an under tone to put me382 through my drill. ‘Take your hat under your left arm; put your right foot foremost; breast well forward; hold your head up; hold your papers aloft in your right hand; there, so—steady—steady!’

“I couldn’t do that; I was too in awe. They then grabbed me. One took my right arm, another my left, and they led me to the garden. Once there, they looked for the king. He was among the gardeners, checking out some rare plant, with his back to us. I had to stop there. The officers started quietly running me through my drill. ‘Hold your hat under your left arm; put your right foot forward; chest out; keep your head up; hold your papers high in your right hand; there, like that—steady—steady!’”

FREDERICK AND LINSENBARTH.

“They then went away, often looking around to see if I kept my posture. I perceived well enough that they were making game of me; but I stood all the same like a wall, being full of fear. When the king turned round he gave a look at me like a flash of sunbeams glancing through you. He sent one of the gardeners to bring my papers. Taking them, he disappeared in one of the garden walks. In a few minutes he came back with my papers open in his hand, and waved with them for me to come nearer. I plucked up heart and went directly to him. Oh, how graciously this great monarch deigned to speak to me!

“They walked away, often glancing back to see if I was still standing straight. I could tell they were making fun of me, but I stood there like a solid wall, completely afraid. When the king turned around, he gave me a look that felt like sunlight streaming through. He sent one of the gardeners to fetch my papers. After taking them, he walked into one of the garden paths. A few minutes later, he returned with my papers open in his hand and waved them for me to come closer. I gathered my courage and went straight to him. Oh, how graciously this great king spoke to me!

383 “‘My good Thuringian,’ said the king, ‘you came to Berlin seeking to earn your bread by the industrious teaching of children, and here at the custom-house they have taken your money from you. True, the batzen are not legal here. They should have said to you, “You are a stranger and did not know of the prohibition. We will seal up the bag of batzen. You can send it back to Thuringia and get it changed for other coin.” Be of good heart, however. You shall have your money again, and interest too. But, my poor man, in Berlin they do not give any thing gratis. You are a stranger. Before you are known and get to teaching, your bit of money will be all gone. What then?’

383 “‘My good Thuringian,’ said the king, ‘you came to Berlin looking to earn a living by teaching children, and here at the customs office, they've taken your money. It's true that the batzen aren't legal currency here. They should have told you, “You’re a visitor and didn’t know about the ban. We’ll seal up your bag of batzen. You can send it back to Thuringia and exchange it for other coins.” But don’t lose hope. You’ll get your money back, plus interest. However, my poor man, in Berlin, nothing is given for free. You’re an outsider. Before you’re recognized and start teaching, your little bit of money will be all gone. What then?’

“I understood the speech perfectly well, but my awe was too great to allow me to say, ‘Your majesty will have the grace to allow me something.’ But as I was so simple, and asked for nothing, he did not offer any thing. And so he turned away. But he had gone scarcely six or eight steps when he looked around and gave me a sign to walk by his side.”

“I understood the speech perfectly well, but my admiration was too strong for me to say, ‘Your majesty, please grant me something.’ Since I was so innocent and asked for nothing, he didn’t offer me anything. So he turned away. But he had barely taken six or eight steps when he looked back and motioned for me to walk beside him.”

The king then questioned him very closely respecting the place where he had studied, during what years, under what teachers, and to what branches he had devoted special attention. While thus conversing the clock struck twelve. This was the dinner-hour of his majesty. “Now I must go,” said the king. “They wait for their soup.”

The king then asked him in detail about where he had studied, during which years, under which teachers, and which subjects he had focused on. As they were talking, the clock struck twelve. This was the king's dinner hour. “I have to go now,” said the king. “They’re waiting for their soup.”

Linsenbarth, thus left alone, sauntered from the garden back to the esplanade. There he stood quite bewildered. He had walked that day twenty miles beneath a July sun and over the burning sands. He had eaten nothing. He had not a farthing in his pocket.

Linsenbarth, now left alone, wandered from the garden back to the esplanade. There he stood, feeling completely lost. He had walked twenty miles that day under the July sun and across the scorching sand. He hadn't eaten anything. He didn’t have a penny in his pocket.

“In this tremor of my heart,” writes Linsenbarth, “there came a valet out of the palace and asked, ‘Where is the man that was with my king in the garden?’ I answered, ‘Here.’ He led me into the palace to a large room, where pages, lackeys, and soldier valets were about. My valet took me to a little table excellently furnished with soup, beef; likewise carp, dressed with garden salad; likewise game, with cucumber salad; bread, knife, fork, plate, spoon were all there. My valet set me a chair, and said,

“In this tremor of my heart,” writes Linsenbarth, “a servant came out of the palace and asked, ‘Where is the man who was with my king in the garden?’ I replied, ‘Here.’ He took me into the palace to a large room filled with pages, servants, and soldier attendants. My valet led me to a small table beautifully set with soup, beef; also carp, served with garden salad; also game, with cucumber salad; bread, knife, fork, plate, and spoon were all there. My valet pulled out a chair for me and said,

“‘This that is on the table the king has ordered to be served for you. You are to eat your fill and mind nobody. I am to serve.’

“‘This that’s on the table has been ordered by the king for you. You can eat as much as you want and ignore everyone else. I’ll take care of serving.’”

384 “I was greatly astonished, and knew not what to do; least of all could it come into my head that the king’s valet who waited on his majesty should wait on me. I pressed him to sit by me; but, as he refused, I did as bidden.

384 “I was really shocked and didn’t know what to do; it never crossed my mind that the king’s valet, who served his majesty, would serve me. I urged him to sit next to me, but when he declined, I did as I was told.”

“The valet took the beef from the table and set it on the charcoal dish until wanted. He did the like with the fish and roast game, and poured me out wine and beer. I ate and drank till I had abundantly enough. Dessert, confectionery, what I could. A plate of big black cherries and a plateful of pears my waiting-man wrapped in paper, and stuffed them into my pockets to be a refreshment on the way home. And so I rose from the royal table, and thanked God and the king in my heart that I had so gloriously dined. At that moment a secretary came, brought me a sealed order for the custom-house at Berlin, with my certificates and the pass; told down on the table five tail-ducats and a gold Friedrich under them, saying, ‘The king sent me this to take me home to Berlin.’93

“The valet took the beef off the table and placed it on the charcoal dish until it was needed. He did the same with the fish and roast game, and poured me some wine and beer. I ate and drank until I was completely satisfied. Dessert, sweets, whatever I could. A plate of large black cherries and a plate of pears my server wrapped in paper and stuffed into my pockets to snack on for the journey home. And so I got up from the royal table, thanking God and the king in my heart for such a splendid meal. At that moment, a secretary arrived, handed me a sealed order for the customs office in Berlin, along with my certificates and the pass; he laid five tail-ducats and a gold Friedrich on the table, saying, ‘The king sent me with this to take me back to Berlin.’93

“And if the hussar took me into the palace, it was now the secretary took me out again. And there, yoked with six horses, stood a royal wagon, which, having led me to, the secretary said, ‘You people, the king has given order that you are to take this stranger to Berlin, and you are to accept no drink-money from him.’ I again testified my thankfulness for the royal kindness, took my place, and rolled away.

“And if the hussar brought me into the palace, it was now the secretary who took me out again. There, hitched to six horses, stood a royal carriage. After leading me to it, the secretary said, ‘You all, the king has ordered that you take this stranger to Berlin, and you are not to accept any tip from him.’ I again expressed my gratitude for the king's kindness, took my seat, and we drove away.”

“On reaching Berlin I went at once to the custom-house, and handed them my royal order. The head man opened the seal. In reading, he changed color—went from pale to red; said nothing, and gave it to the second man to read. The second put on his spectacles, read, and gave it to the third. However, the head man rallied himself at last. I was to come forward and be so good as to write a receipt that I had received for my four hundred thalers, all in batzen, the same sum in Brandenburg coin, ready down, without the least deduction. My cash was at once accurately paid, and thereupon the steward was ordered to go with me to the ‘White Swan,’ and pay what I owed there, whatever my score was. That was what the king had meant when he said ‘you shall have your money back, and interest too.’”

“Upon arriving in Berlin, I went straight to the customs office and handed them my royal order. The head official broke the seal. As he read it, his face changed color—going from pale to red; he didn’t say anything and passed it to the second man. The second man put on his glasses, read it, and then handed it to the third. Eventually, the head man composed himself. He asked me to step forward and kindly write a receipt stating that I had received my four hundred thalers, all in batzen, the same amount in Brandenburg coins, paid in full without any deductions. My cash was immediately handed over, and then the steward was instructed to accompany me to the ‘White Swan’ to settle my bill, no matter how much it was. That’s what the king meant when he said ‘you will get your money back, plus interest.’”

385 This good old man died in Berlin on the 24th of August, 1777, eighty-eight years of age.

385 This kind old man passed away in Berlin on August 24, 1777, at the age of eighty-eight.

In the autumn of 1750 Frederick held a famous Berlin carousal, the celebrity of which filled all Europe. Distinguished guests flocked to the city from all the adjoining realms. Wilhelmina came to share in the festivities. Voltaire was also present, “the observed of all observers.” An English gentleman, Sir Jonas Hanway, in the following terms describes the appearance of Frederick at this time:

In the fall of 1750, Frederick threw a famous party in Berlin that everyone in Europe was talking about. Notable guests came to the city from all surrounding countries. Wilhelmina joined in the celebrations. Voltaire was there too, "the center of attention." An Englishman, Sir Jonas Hanway, described Frederick's appearance at that time in these words:

“His Prussian majesty rides much about, often at a rapid rate, with a pleasant business aspect—humane, though imperative; handsome to look upon, though with a face perceptibly reddish. His age, now thirty-eight gone; a set appearance, as if already got into his forties; complexion florid; figure muscular, almost tending to be plump.”

“His Prussian majesty rides a lot, often quickly, with a friendly but commanding presence; he’s good-looking, though his face is noticeably reddish. He is now thirty-eight years old, with a look that suggests he's already in his forties; he has a rosy complexion and a muscular build that’s almost a bit plump.”

The carousal presented a very splendid spectacle. It took place by night, and the spacious arena was lighted by thirty thousand torches. The esplanade of the palace, which presented an ample parallelogram, was surrounded by an amphitheatre of rising seats, crowded with the beauties and dignitaries of Europe. At one end of the parallelogram was a royal box, tapestried with the richest hangings. The king sat there; his sister, the Princess Amelia, was by his side, as queen of the festival. Where the neglected wife of Frederick was is not recorded. The entrance for the cavaliers was opposite the throne. The jousting parties consisted of four bands, representing Romans, Persians, Carthaginians, and Greeks. They were decorated with splendid equipments of jewelry, silver helmets, sashes, and housings, and were mounted on the most spirited battle-steeds which Europe could furnish. The scene was enlivened by exhilarating music, and by the most gorgeous decorations and picturesque costumes which the taste and art of the times could create. The festivities were closed by a ball in the vast saloons of the palace, and by a supper, where the tables were loaded with every delicacy.

The carousel was quite the spectacular sight. It took place at night, and the large arena was illuminated by thirty thousand torches. The palace esplanade, which formed a wide rectangle, was surrounded by an amphitheater of raised seats packed with the beautiful and influential people of Europe. At one end of the rectangle was a royal box adorned with the finest drapes. The king sat there, with his sister, Princess Amelia, beside him as the queen of the festival. There’s no record of where Frederick's neglected wife was. The entrance for the knights was directly across from the throne. The jousting teams consisted of four groups representing Romans, Persians, Carthaginians, and Greeks. They were decked out in elaborate jewelry, silver helmets, sashes, and ornate horse trappings, riding the most spirited warhorses that Europe could provide. The atmosphere was lively with upbeat music and the most extravagant decorations and colorful costumes that the art and style of the time could produce. The celebrations concluded with a ball in the grand halls of the palace and a feast where the tables were piled high with every kind of delicacy.

Voltaire was received on this occasion with very distinguished honor. The king, in inviting him to the court, had sent him a sum amounting to three thousand dollars to pay the expenses of his journey. He had also conferred upon him the cross of the order of Merit, and a pension of about four thousand dollars a year.

Voltaire was welcomed this time with great honor. The king, when inviting him to court, had given him a sum of three thousand dollars to cover his travel expenses. He had also awarded him the cross of the Order of Merit and a pension of around four thousand dollars a year.

386

386

TOURNAMENT AT BERLIN IN HONOR OF FREDERICK.

For a time Frederick and Voltaire seem to have lived very pleasantly together. Voltaire writes: “I was lodged under the king’s apartment, and never left my room except for supper. The king composed, above stairs, works of philosophy, history, poetry; and his favorite, below stairs, cultivated the same arts and the same talents. They communicated to one another their respective works. The Prussian monarch composed, at this time,387 his ‘History of Brandenburg;’ and the French author wrote his ‘Age of Louis XIV.,’ having brought with him all his materials.94 His days thus passed happily in a repose which was only animated by agreeable occupations. Nothing, indeed, could be more delightful than this way of life, or more honorable to philosophy and literature.”

For a while, Frederick and Voltaire seemed to get along really well. Voltaire wrote: “I was staying just below the king's apartment and only left my room for dinner. The king worked upstairs on philosophy, history, and poetry; meanwhile, his favorite, down below, pursued the same arts and talents. They shared their respective works with each other. At that time, the Prussian king was writing his ‘History of Brandenburg,’ while the French author was working on his ‘Age of Louis XIV.,’ having brought all his materials with him. His days were spent happily in a calm that was only energized by enjoyable activities. Honestly, nothing could be more delightful than this lifestyle, or more honorable for philosophy and literature.”


CHAPTER XXIV.
THE ARGUMENT.

Voltaire and the Jew.—Letter from Frederick to D’Arget.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—Caustic Letters to Voltaire.—Partial Reconciliation.—Frederick’s brilliant Conversational Powers.—His Neglect of his Wife.—All Females excluded from his Court.—Maupertuis and the Academy.—Voltaire’s Malignity.—Frederick’s Anger.—Correspondence between Voltaire and Maupertuis.—Menaces of War.—Catt and the King.

Voltaire and the Jew.—Letter from Frederick to D’Arget.—Letter to Wilhelmina.—Tense Letters to Voltaire.—Somewhat Mended Relationships.—Frederick’s impressive Conversation Skills.—His Indifference to his Wife.—All Women Excluded from his Court.—Maupertuis and the Academy.—Voltaire’s Vindictiveness.—Frederick’s Fury.—Exchange of Letters between Voltaire and Maupertuis.—War Threats.—Catt and the King.

The king and Voltaire soon became involved in a very serious quarrel. Voltaire had employed a Jew, by the name of Hirsch, to engage fraudulently in speculating in the funds. The transaction was so complicated that few of our readers would have the patience to follow an attempt at its disentanglement. Voltaire and his agent quarreled. The contention rang through all the court circles, as other conspicuous names were involved in the meshes of the intrigue. A lawsuit ensued, which created excitement almost inconceivable. The recent law reform caused the process to be pushed very rapidly to its conclusion. Voltaire emerged from the suit with his character sadly maimed. He was clearly convicted of both falsehood and forgery. The king, annoyed by the clamor, retired from Berlin to Sans Souci. Voltaire was not invited to accompany him, but was left in the Berlin palace. In a letter which Frederick wrote to D’Arget, dated April, 1752, he says:

The king and Voltaire soon got into a serious argument. Voltaire had hired a Jew named Hirsch to engage in fraudulent financial speculation. The situation was so complicated that most readers would struggle to keep up with the details. Voltaire and his agent ended up in a fight. Their dispute echoed throughout all the court circles, as other notable names got caught up in the intrigue. A lawsuit followed, creating an almost unimaginable stir. The recent legal reforms sped up the process to its conclusion. Voltaire came out of the lawsuit with his reputation seriously damaged. He was clearly found guilty of both lying and forgery. Annoyed by the uproar, the king left Berlin for Sans Souci. Voltaire was not invited to join him and was left behind in the Berlin palace. In a letter that Frederick wrote to D’Arget, dated April 1752, he states:

“Voltaire has conducted himself like a blackguard and a consummate rascal. I have talked to him as he deserved. He is a sad fellow. I am quite ashamed for human abilities that a man who has so much of them should be so full of wickedness. I am not surprised that people talk at Paris of the quarrel of our beaux esprits. Voltaire is the most mischievous madman I ever knew. He is only good to read. It is impossible for you to388 imagine the duplicities, the impositions, the infamies he practiced here. I am quite indignant that so much talent and acquirement do not make men better. I took the part of Maupertuis because he is a good sort of man, and the other had determined upon ruining him. A little too much vanity had rendered him too sensitive to the manœuvres of this monkey, whom he ought to have despised after having castigated him.”95

“Voltaire has acted like a scoundrel and a total rascal. I’ve spoken to him as he deserves. He’s a pitiful guy. I’m really embarrassed for humanity that someone so talented can be so wicked. I’m not surprised that people in Paris are talking about the feud between our beaux esprits. Voltaire is the most mischievous madman I’ve ever known. He’s only worth reading. You can’t begin to imagine the deceit, the trickery, the scandals he pulls here. I’m truly appalled that so much talent and knowledge don’t make people better. I stood up for Maupertuis because he’s a good guy, and the other was set on ruining him. A bit too much vanity made him too sensitive to the antics of this monkey, whom he should have looked down on after having criticized him.”95

Frederick wrote to Wilhelmina: “Voltaire picks Jews’ pockets, but he will get out of it by some somersault.”

Frederick wrote to Wilhelmina: “Voltaire is taking advantage of the Jews, but he'll manage to twist his way out of it somehow.”

Voltaire fell sick. He had already quarreled with many persons, and had constrained the king in many cases, very reluctantly, to take his part. He now wrote to Frederick, begging permission to join him in the quietude of Sans Souci. The following extracts from the reply of his majesty will be read with interest:

Voltaire got sick. He had already argued with a lot of people and had repeatedly forced the king to take his side, even though he didn't want to. He then wrote to Frederick, asking for permission to join him in the peace of Sans Souci. The following excerpts from the king's reply will be of interest:

“Potsdam, February 24, 1751.

“Potsdam, February 24, 1751.

“I was glad to receive you in my house. I esteemed your genius, your talents, and your acquirements. I had reason to think that a man of your age, weary of fencing against authors, and exposing himself to the storm, came hither to take refuge, as in a safe harbor.”

“I was glad to have you in my home. I appreciated your intelligence, your talents, and your knowledge. I thought that a man of your age, worn out from the struggles with writers and exposing yourself to the chaos, came here to seek refuge, like a safe harbor.”

After briefly alluding to the many quarrels in which Voltaire had been involved, the king adds:

After briefly mentioning the numerous disputes Voltaire had been part of, the king adds:

“You have had the most villainous affair with a Jew. It has made a frightful scandal all over town. For my own part, I have preserved peace in my house until your arrival; and I warn you that, if you have the passion of intriguing and cabaling, you have applied to the wrong person. I like peaceable, quiet people, who do not put into their conduct the violent passions of tragedy. In case you can resolve to live like a philosopher, I shall be glad to see you. But if you abandon yourself to all the violence of your passions, and get into quarrels with all the world, you will do me no good by coming hither, and you may as well stay in Berlin.”

“You’ve had the most scandalous affair with a Jew, and it’s created a huge stir around town. As for me, I’ve kept the peace in my home until you arrived, and I want to warn you that if you’re looking to stir up trouble and scheme, you’ve come to the wrong person. I prefer peaceful, calm people who don’t let intense emotions lead them into drama. If you can manage to live like a philosopher, I’d be happy to see you. But if you give in to your passions and start fights with everyone, coming here won’t benefit me at all, and you might as well stay in Berlin.”

Four days after this Frederick wrote again, in answer to additional applications from Voltaire.

Four days later, Frederick wrote again in response to more requests from Voltaire.

“If you wish to come hither you can. I hear nothing of lawsuits, not even of yours. Since you have gained it I congratulate389 you, and I am glad that this scurvy affair is done.96 I hope you will have no more quarrels, either with the Old or the New Testament. Such contentions leave their mark upon a man. Even with the talents of the finest genius in France, you will not cover the stains which this conduct will fasten on your reputation in the long run. I write this letter with the rough common sense of a German, without employing equivocal terms which disfigure the truth. It is for you to profit by it.”

“If you want to come here, you can. I haven't heard anything about lawsuits, not even yours. Since you've won, I congratulate you, and I'm glad this messy situation is over. I hope you won't have any more arguments, whether with the Old or the New Testament. Such disputes take their toll on a person. Even with the talents of the greatest genius in France, you won't erase the stains this behavior will leave on your reputation over time. I'm writing this letter with straightforward German common sense, without using ambiguous language that distorts the truth. It's up to you to take this advice.”

Voltaire’s visit lasted about thirty-two months. He was, however, during all this time, fast losing favor with the king. Instead of being received as an inmate at Sans Souci, he was assigned to a small country house in the vicinity, called the Marquisat. His wants were, however, all abundantly provided for at the expense of the king. It is evident from his letters that he was a very unhappy man. He was infirm in health, irascible, discontented, crabbed; suspecting every one of being his enemy, jealous of his companions, and with a diseased mind, crowded with superstitious fears.

Voltaire's visit lasted around thirty-two months. However, during that time, he was steadily losing the king's favor. Instead of being welcomed as a resident at Sans Souci, he was given a small country house nearby called the Marquisat. His needs were fully met at the king's expense. His letters make it clear that he was very unhappy. He was in poor health, irritable, dissatisfied, and bitter; he suspected everyone of being his enemy, felt jealous of his companions, and had a troubled mind filled with superstitious fears.

On one occasion, when the king had sent him a manuscript to revise, he sarcastically exclaimed to the royal messenger, “When will his majesty be done with sending me his dirty linen to wash?” This speech was repeated to the king. He did not lose his revenge.

On one occasion, when the king sent him a manuscript to revise, he sarcastically said to the royal messenger, “When will his majesty stop sending me his dirty laundry to clean?” This comment was reported back to the king. He didn't let go of the opportunity for revenge.

Frederick was endowed with brilliant powers of conversation. He was fond of society, where he could exercise and display these gifts and accomplishments. Frequent suppers were given at Sans Souci, which lasted from half past eight till midnight. Gentlemen only—learned men—were invited to these entertainments. Frederick was not an amiable man. He took pleasure in inflicting the keenest pain possible with his satirical tongue. No friend was spared. The more deeply he could strike the lash into the quivering nerves of sensibility, the better he seemed pleased with himself.

Frederick had a talent for engaging conversations. He enjoyed being social, where he could showcase these skills and talents. Frequent dinners were hosted at Sans Souci, running from 8:30 PM until midnight. Only men—educated men—were invited to these gatherings. Frederick wasn't an easygoing person. He found joy in delivering sharp insults with his sarcastic remarks. No friend was safe from his barbs. The more he could dig into others' sensitive spots, the more satisfied he felt.

He could not but respect his wife. Her character was beyond all possible reproach. She never uttered a complaint, was cheerful and faithful in every duty. She had rooms assigned her on the second floor of the Berlin palace, where she was comfortably390 lodged and fed, and had modest receptions every Thursday, which were always closed at nine o’clock. A gentleman writes from Berlin at this time:

He couldn’t help but respect his wife. Her character was beyond any criticism. She never complained, was cheerful, and was dedicated to every duty. She had rooms on the second floor of the Berlin palace, where she was comfortably housed and fed, and held modest gatherings every Thursday, which always ended by nine o’clock. A gentleman writes from Berlin at this time:

“The king esteems his wife, and can not endure her. It was but a few days ago she handed him a letter petitioning for some things of which she had the most pressing want. Frederick took the letter with that most smiling, gracious air, which he assumes at pleasure, and, without breaking the seal, tore it up before her face, made her a profound bow, and turned his back on her.”

“The king values his wife, but he can't stand her. Just a few days ago, she gave him a letter asking for some things she really needed. Frederick took the letter with his usual charming smile, but instead of opening it, he tore it up right in front of her, bowed deeply, and turned away.”

“The king respects his mother,” the same writer adds. “She is the only female to whom he pays any sort of attention. She is a good, fat woman, who moves about in her own way.”

“The king respects his mother,” the same writer adds. “She is the only woman he pays any attention to. She is a kind, plump woman who goes about in her own way.”

It was a peculiarity quite inexplicable which led Frederick to exclude females from his court. His favorites were all men—men of some peculiar intellectual ability. He sought their society only. With the exception of his sister, and occasionally some foreign princess, ladies were seldom admitted to companionship with him. He was a cold, solitary man, so self-reliant that he seldom asked or took advice.

It was a strange and inexplicable quirk that caused Frederick to keep women out of his court. His favorites were all men—men with unique intellectual talent. He only sought their company. Aside from his sister and occasionally some foreign princess, women were rarely allowed to associate with him. He was a distant, solitary man, so independent that he hardly ever asked for or accepted advice.

Voltaire hated M. Maupertuis. He was the president of the Berlin Academy, and was regarded by Voltaire as a formidable rival. This hatred gave rise to a quarrel between Frederick and Voltaire, which was so virulent that Europe was filled with the noise of their bickerings. M. Maupertuis had published a pamphlet, in which he assumed to have made some important discovery upon the law of action. M. König, a member of the Academy, reviewed the pamphlet, asserting not only that the proclaimed law was false, but that it had been promulgated half a century before. In support of his position he quoted from a letter of Leibnitz. The original of the letter could not be produced. M. König was accused of having forged the extract. M. Maupertuis, a very jealous, irritable man, by his powerful influence as president, caused M. König to be expelled from the Academy.

Voltaire despised M. Maupertuis. He was the head of the Berlin Academy, and Voltaire saw him as a serious rival. This animosity sparked a conflict between Frederick and Voltaire, which became so intense that it echoed throughout Europe. M. Maupertuis released a pamphlet claiming to have made an important discovery about the law of action. M. König, a member of the Academy, reviewed the pamphlet and argued not only that the claimed law was incorrect but that it had been announced half a century earlier. To back up his claims, he cited a letter from Leibnitz. The original letter could not be presented. M. König faced accusations of forging the excerpt. M. Maupertuis, a very jealous and irritable man, used his considerable influence as president to have M. König expelled from the Academy.

Frederick regarded the Academy as his pet institution, and was very jealous of the illustrious philosopher, whom he had invited to Berlin to preside over its deliberations. Voltaire, knowing this very well, and fully aware that to strike the Academy391 in the person of its president was to strike Frederick, wrote an anonymous communication to a review published in Paris, in which he accused M. Maupertuis—first, of plagiarism, in appropriating to himself a discovery made by another; secondly, of a ridiculous blunder in assuming that said discovery was a philosophical principle, and not an absurdity; and thirdly, that he had abused his position as president of the Academy in suppressing free discussion, by expelling from the institution a member merely for not agreeing with him in opinion. These statements were probably true, and on that account the more damaging.

Frederick saw the Academy as his favorite project and was quite protective of the prominent philosopher he had invited to Berlin to lead its discussions. Voltaire, well aware of this dynamic, understood that attacking the Academy's president would be attacking Frederick himself. He therefore wrote an anonymous piece for a review published in Paris, where he accused M. Maupertuis of three things: first, of stealing someone else's discovery; second, of making a foolish mistake by claiming that this discovery was a philosophical principle rather than a nonsense idea; and third, of misusing his role as president of the Academy by shutting down open debate, specifically by kicking out a member simply for disagreeing with him. These accusations were likely true, which made them even more harmful.

The authorship of the article could not be concealed. Frederick was indignant. He angrily seized his pen, and wrote a reply, which, though anonymous, was known by all to have been written by the king. In this reply he accused the writer of the article, whom he well knew to be Voltaire, of being a “manifest retailer of lies,” “a concocter of stupid libels,” and as “guilty of conduct more malicious, more dastardly, more infamous” than he had ever known before.

The authorship of the article couldn't be hidden. Frederick was furious. He grabbed his pen in anger and wrote a reply that, while anonymous, everyone knew was written by the king. In this response, he accused the writer of the article, whom he clearly recognized as Voltaire, of being a “blatant spreader of lies,” “a creator of ridiculous slanders,” and “guilty of behavior more malicious, more cowardly, and more shameful” than he had ever seen before.

This roused Voltaire. He did not venture to attack the king, but he assailed M. Maupertuis again, anonymously, but with greatly increased venom. A brief pamphlet appeared, entitled, “The Diatribe of Doctor Akakia, Physician to the Pope.” It was a merciless satire against M. Maupertuis. Voltaire was entirely unscrupulous, and was perfect master of the language of sarcasm. No moral principle restrained him from exaggerating, misrepresenting, or fabricating any falsehoods which would subserve his purpose. M. Maupertuis was utterly overwhelmed with ridicule. The satire was so keen that few could read it without roars of laughter. Voltaire, the king’s guest, was thus exposing to the contempt of all Europe the president of the Berlin Academy, the reputation of which Academy was dear to the king above almost every thing else. An edition of the pamphlet was printed in Holland, and copies were scattered all over Berlin. Another edition was published in Paris, where thirty thousand copies were eagerly purchased.

This got Voltaire fired up. He didn't dare to go after the king, but he lashed out at M. Maupertuis again, anonymously and with much more intensity. A short pamphlet was released, titled, “The Diatribe of Doctor Akakia, Physician to the Pope.” It was a ruthless satire aimed at M. Maupertuis. Voltaire was completely unscrupulous and a master of sarcasm. No moral principle stopped him from exaggerating, misrepresenting, or making up any falsehoods that would support his cause. M. Maupertuis was completely inundated with ridicule. The satire was so sharp that few could read it without bursting into laughter. Voltaire, the king’s guest, was thus exposing the president of the Berlin Academy to the ridicule of all Europe, an academy whose reputation was more precious to the king than almost anything else. An edition of the pamphlet was printed in Holland, and copies were spread all over Berlin. Another edition was published in Paris, where thirty thousand copies flew off the shelves.

Frederick was in a towering passion. Voltaire was alarmed at the commotion he had created. He wrote a letter to the king, in which he declared most solemnly that he had not intended to392 have the pamphlet published; that a copy had been obtained by treachery, and had been printed without his consent or knowledge. But the king wrote back:

Frederick was extremely angry. Voltaire was worried about the trouble he had caused. He wrote a letter to the king, in which he stated very seriously that he never meant for the pamphlet to be published; that a copy had been gotten through betrayal and printed without his permission or knowledge. But the king replied:

“Your effrontery astonishes me. What you have done is clear as the day; and yet, instead of confessing your culpability, you persist in denying it. Do you think you can make people believe that black is white? All shall be made public. Then it will be seen whether, if your words deserve statues, your conduct does not deserve chains.”

“Your audacity amazes me. What you’ve done is as obvious as day; and yet, instead of admitting your guilt, you keep denying it. Do you really think you can convince people that black is white? Everything will come to light. Then we’ll see if your words deserve honor while your actions deserve punishment.”

The king, in his anger, ordered all the pamphlets in Berlin to be collected and burned by the common hangman, in front of Voltaire’s windows. Three months passed away, during which the parties remained in this deplorable state of antagonism. Voltaire was wretched, often confined to his bed, and looked like a skeleton. He was anxious to leave Berlin, but feared that the king would not grant him leave. He wrote to Frederick, stating that he was very sick, and wished to retire to the springs of Plombières for his health. The king curtly replied,

The king, in his anger, ordered all the pamphlets in Berlin to be gathered and burned by the local hangman, right in front of Voltaire's windows. Three months went by, during which the two sides remained in this terrible state of conflict. Voltaire was miserable, often stuck in bed, and looked like a skeleton. He wanted to leave Berlin but was afraid that the king wouldn't let him. He wrote to Frederick, saying that he was very sick and wanted to go to the springs of Plombières for his health. The king responded abruptly,

“There was no need of that pretext about the waters of Plombières in demanding your leave. You can quit my service when you like. But, before going, be so good as to return me the key, the cross, and the volume of verses which I confided to you.

“There was no need for that excuse about the waters of Plombières to ask for your leave. You can leave my service whenever you want. But before you go, please be kind enough to return the key, the cross, and the book of poems that I entrusted to you.”

“I wish that my works, and only they, had been what König attacked. I could sacrifice them with a great deal of willingness to persons who think of increasing their own reputation by lessening that of others. I have not the folly nor vanity of certain authors. The cabals of literary people seem to me the disgrace of literature. I do not the less esteem the honorable cultivators of literature. It is the cabalers and their leaders that are degraded in my eyes.”

“I wish that my works, and only them, had been what König went after. I would gladly give them up to those who try to boost their own reputation by tearing down others. I don’t have the foolishness or vanity of some authors. The cliques of writers seem to me a shame for literature. I still have great respect for the honorable people dedicated to literature. It’s the schemers and their leaders that I look down on.”

For some unexplained reason, soon after this, the king partially relented, and invited Voltaire to Potsdam. He allowed him to retain his cross and key, and said nothing about the return of the volume of poetry. This was a volume of which twelve copies only had been printed. On the 25th of March, 1753, Voltaire left Potsdam for Dresden.

For some unknown reason, shortly after this, the king eased up a bit and invited Voltaire to Potsdam. He let him keep his cross and key, and didn’t say anything about getting the volume of poetry back. Only twelve copies of that volume had been printed. On March 25, 1753, Voltaire left Potsdam for Dresden.

In the following terms Thiebault describes their parting: The final interview between Frederick and Voltaire took place on the parade at Potsdam, where the king was then occupied with393 his soldiers. One of the attendants announced Voltaire to his majesty with these words:

In the following terms, Thiebault describes their farewell: The last meeting between Frederick and Voltaire happened on the parade grounds at Potsdam, where the king was busy with393 his soldiers. One of the attendants introduced Voltaire to his majesty with these words:

“Sire, here is Monsieur De Voltaire, who is come to receive the orders of your majesty.”

“Sir, here is Monsieur De Voltaire, who has come to receive your majesty's orders.”

Frederick turned to Voltaire and said, “Monsieur De Voltaire, are you still determined upon going?”

Frederick turned to Voltaire and said, “Mr. Voltaire, are you still set on leaving?”

“Sire, affairs which I can not neglect, and, above all, the state of my health, oblige me to it.”

“Sire, I have matters I can't ignore, and most importantly, my health, that force me to do this.”

“In that case, sir,” replied the king, “I wish you a good journey.”

“In that case, sir,” replied the king, “I wish you a safe trip.”

Thus parted these remarkable men, who were never destined to meet again.

Thus parted these remarkable men, who were never meant to meet again.

Voltaire, being safe out of Prussia, in the territory of the King of Poland, instead of hastening to Plombières, tarried in Dresden, and then in Leipsic. From those places he began shooting, through magazines, newspapers, and various other instrumentalities, his poisoned darts at M. Maupertuis. Though these malignant assaults, rapidly following each other, were anonymous, no one could doubt their authorship. M. Maupertuis, exasperated, wrote to him from Berlin on the 7th of April:

Voltaire, feeling safe outside Prussia in the territory of the King of Poland, didn't rush to Plombières but instead lingered in Dresden and then in Leipzig. From there, he started launching his vicious attacks on M. Maupertuis through magazines, newspapers, and other channels. Although these malicious attacks came one after another anonymously, no one could doubt who was behind them. M. Maupertuis, infuriated, wrote to him from Berlin on April 7th:

“If it be true that you design to attack me again, I declare to you that I have still health enough to find you, wherever you are, and to take the most signal vengeance upon you. Thank the respect and obedience which have hitherto restrained my arm, and saved you from the worst adventure you have ever had.

“If it's really true that you intend to attack me again, I want you to know that I’m still fit enough to track you down, no matter where you go, and to get serious revenge on you. I owe my restraint and the respect I’ve shown for you for stopping me from taking action, which has saved you from the worst situation you've ever been in.”

Maupertuis.

Maupertuis.

Voltaire replied from Leipsic:

Voltaire replied from Leipzig:

M. le President,—I have had the honor to receive your letter. You inform me that you are well, and that, if I publish La Beaumelle’s letter,97 you will come and assassinate me. What ingratitude to your poor Doctor Akakia! If you exalt your soul so as to discern futurity, you will see that, if you come on that errand to Leipsic, where you are no better liked than in other places, you will run some risk of being hanged. Poor me, indeed, you will find in bed. But, as soon as I have gained a little strength, I will have my pistols charged, and, multiplying the394 mass by the square of velocity, so as to reduce the action and you to zero, I will put some lead into your head. It appears that you have need of it. Adieu, my president.

Mr. President,—I was pleased to receive your letter. You mentioned that you’re doing well and that if I publish La Beaumelle’s letter, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, you'll come and kill me. What a lack of gratitude towards your poor Doctor Akakia! If you think about the future, you’ll see that if you come to Leipsic on that mission, where you’re not very popular, you might risk getting hanged. Poor me, you’ll find in bed. But as soon as I have some strength back, I will load my pistols and, by multiplying the394 mass by the square of velocity to nullify your actions, I’ll put some lead in your head. It seems you could use it. Goodbye, my president.”

Akakia.

Akakia.

There were some gross vulgarities in Voltaire’s letter which we refrain from quoting. Both of these communications were printed and widely circulated, exciting throughout Europe contempt and derision. Voltaire had still the copy of the king’s private poems. Frederick, quite irritated, and not knowing what infamous use Voltaire might make of the volume, which contained some very severe satires against prominent persons, and particularly against his uncle, the King of England, determined, at all hazards, to recover the book. He knew it would be of no avail to write to Voltaire to return it.

There were some really disgusting things in Voltaire’s letter that we won’t quote. Both of these letters were published and widely shared, provoking scorn and mockery all over Europe. Voltaire still had a copy of the king’s private poems. Frederick, feeling quite annoyed, and not sure what scandalous thing Voltaire might do with the book, which included some harsh satirical pieces against notable figures, especially his uncle, the King of England, decided that he had to get the book back at all costs. He realized that writing to Voltaire to ask for its return would be pointless.

Voltaire, on his journey to Paris, would pass through Frankfort. Frederick secretly employed a Prussian officer to obtain from the authorities there the necessary powers, and to arrest him, and take from him the cross of Merit, the gold key of the chamberlain, and especially the volume of poems. The officer, M. Freytag, kept himself minutely informed of Voltaire’s movements. At eight o’clock in the evening of the 31st of May the illustrious philosopher arrived, with a small suite, traveling in considerable state, and stopped at the “Golden Lion.” M. Freytag was on the spot. He was a man of distinction. He called upon Voltaire, and, after the interchange of the customary civilities, informed the poet that he was under the necessity of arresting him in the name of the King of Prussia, and detaining him until he should surrender the cross, the key, and the volume of poems. Voltaire was greatly annoyed. He professed warm friendship for the King of Prussia. Very reluctantly, and not until after several hours of altercation, he surrendered the key and the cross. The volume of poems he was very anxious indeed to retain, and affirmed that they were, he knew not where, with luggage he had left behind him in Leipsic or Dresden. He was informed that he would be detained as a prisoner until the volume was produced.

Voltaire, on his way to Paris, would stop in Frankfurt. Frederick secretly hired a Prussian officer to get the necessary permissions from the local authorities to arrest him and take away his cross of Merit, the gold key of the chamberlain, and especially his book of poems. The officer, M. Freytag, kept a close watch on Voltaire’s movements. At 8 PM on May 31st, the famous philosopher arrived with a small entourage, traveling in style, and checked in at the "Golden Lion." M. Freytag was already there. He was a distinguished man. He visited Voltaire, and after exchanging the usual pleasantries, informed the poet that he had to arrest him in the name of the King of Prussia and hold him until he surrendered the cross, the key, and the book of poems. Voltaire was very annoyed. He expressed warm friendship for the King of Prussia. Very reluctantly, and only after several hours of argument, he gave up the key and the cross. He was very eager to keep the book of poems, claiming that it was somewhere with luggage he had left in Leipzig or Dresden. He was told he would be held as a prisoner until the book was produced.

In a state of great exasperation, Voltaire wrote for a large trunk to be sent to him which contained the book. To save himself from the humiliation of being guarded as a prisoner, he gave his395 parole d’honneur that he would not go beyond the garden of the inn. After a delay of three weeks, Voltaire decided, notwithstanding his parole, to attempt his escape. His reputation was such that M. Freytag had no confidence in his word, and employed spies to watch his every movement.

In a state of great frustration, Voltaire requested that a large trunk be sent to him, which contained the book. To avoid the embarrassment of being treated like a prisoner, he promised that he wouldn't go beyond the inn's garden. After a delay of three weeks, Voltaire decided, despite his promise, to try to escape. His reputation was such that M. Freytag didn't trust his word and hired spies to monitor his every move.

On the 20th of June, Voltaire dressed himself in disguise, and, with a companion, M. Coligny, entered a hackney-coach, and ordered the driver to leave the city by the main gate. M. Freytag was immediately informed of this by his spies. With mounted men he commenced the pursuit, overtook the carriage as it was delayed a moment at the gate, and arrested the fugitive in the king’s name. Voltaire’s eyes sparkled with fury, and he raved insanely. The scene gathered a crowd, and Voltaire was taken by a guard of soldiers to another inn, “The Billy-Goat,” as the landlord of the “Golden Lion” refused any longer to entertain so troublesome a guest.

On June 20th, Voltaire put on a disguise and, along with his companion M. Coligny, got into a hired coach. He instructed the driver to leave the city through the main gate. M. Freytag was quickly notified of this by his spies. With mounted men, he began the chase, caught up with the carriage when it paused for a moment at the gate, and arrested the fugitive in the king’s name. Voltaire's eyes blazed with rage, and he shouted wildly. A crowd gathered, and Voltaire was taken by a group of soldiers to another inn, “The Billy-Goat,” since the landlord of the “Golden Lion” refused to host such a troublesome guest any longer.

All Frankfort was excited by these events. The renown of Voltaire as a philosopher, a poet, and as the friend of Frederick, filled Europe. His eccentricities were the subject of general remark. The most distinguished men, by birth and culture, had paid him marked attention during his brief compulsory sojourn in Frankfort. Having arrived at “The Billy-Goat,” his conduct, according to the report of M. Freytag, was that of a madman, in which attempted flight, feigned vomitings, and a cocked pistol took part. The account which Voltaire gave of these events is now universally pronounced to be grossly inaccurate.

Everyone in Frankfort was buzzing about these events. Voltaire's reputation as a philosopher, poet, and friend of Frederick was well-known across Europe. His quirky behavior was widely discussed. The most distinguished individuals, both by birth and education, had given him significant attention during his short mandatory stay in Frankfort. When he arrived at “The Billy-Goat,” his behavior, according to M. Freytag’s report, was that of a madman, involving attempts to escape, feigned vomiting, and a cocked pistol. Voltaire's account of these events is now widely regarded as highly inaccurate.

On the 6th of July, the trunk having arrived, the volume of poems was recovered and Voltaire was allowed to go on his way. His pen, dipped in gall, was an instrument which even a monarch might fear. It inflicted wounds upon the reputation of Frederick which will probably never be healed. Four years passed away, during which Voltaire and Frederick were almost entirely strangers to each other.

On July 6th, the trunk arrived, and the volume of poems was retrieved, allowing Voltaire to continue his journey. His pen, dipped in bitterness, was a tool that even a king might dread. It caused damage to Frederick's reputation that will likely never be repaired. Four years went by during which Voltaire and Frederick were mostly strangers to one another.

The merciless satires of Voltaire, exposing Maupertuis to the ridicule of all Europe, proved death-blows to the sensitive philosopher. He was thrown into a state of great dejection, which induced disease, of which he died in 1759. Maupertuis needed this discipline. In the proud days of prosperity he had rejected Christianity. In these hours of adversity, oppressed by humiliation396 and pain, and with the grave opening before him, he felt the need of the consolations of religion. Christian faith cheered the sadness of his dying hours.98

The harsh critiques from Voltaire, which made Maupertuis the laughingstock of all Europe, were devastating for the sensitive philosopher. He fell into a deep depression that led to the illness that ultimately caused his death in 1759. Maupertuis needed this wake-up call. During his successful years, he had dismissed Christianity. But in these challenging times, weighed down by humiliation and suffering, and facing his mortality, he found himself yearning for the comfort of religion. Christian faith uplifted his troubled spirit in his final moments.396

The Marquis D’Argens, another of Frederick’s infidel companions, one whom Voltaire described as “the most frank atheist in Europe,” after a very ignoble life of sin and shame, having quarreled with the king, found himself aged, poor, friendless, and infirm. He then, experiencing need of different support from any which infidelity could give, became penitent and prayerful. Renouncing his unbelief, he became an openly avowed disciple of Jesus.99

The Marquis D’Argens, another of Frederick’s unfaithful companions, whom Voltaire called “the most honest atheist in Europe,” after a life full of disgraceful actions and decisions, found himself old, broke, alone, and weak after falling out with the king. Realizing he needed a different kind of support than what his disbelief could offer, he became remorseful and started praying. Giving up his unbelief, he openly declared himself a follower of Jesus.99

What effect was produced upon the mind of Frederick as he saw one after another of his boon companions in infidelity, in their hours of sickness and approaching death, seeking the consolations of religion, we do not know. The proud king kept his lips hermetically sealed upon that subject. Voltaire, describing the suppers of the gay revelers at Sans Souci, writes:

What impact did it have on Frederick when he saw one by one his close friends in disbelief, during their times of illness and near death, turning to religion for comfort? We don’t know. The proud king kept quiet about that. Voltaire, talking about the parties of the lively guests at Sans Souci, writes:

“Never was there a place in the world where liberty of speech was so fully indulged, or where the various superstitions of men were treated with so much ridicule and contempt. God was respected. But those who, in His name, had imposed on mankind, were not spared. Neither women nor priests ever entered the palace. In a word, Frederick lived without a court, without a council, and without a religion.”

“Never was there a place in the world where freedom of speech was so fully embraced, or where people's superstitions were met with so much mockery and disdain. God was respected. But those who, in His name, had imposed on humanity were not let off the hook. Neither women nor priests were ever allowed in the palace. In short, Frederick lived without a court, without a council, and without a religion.”

Prussia had enjoyed eight years of peace. But Frederick was not a popular man excepting with his own subjects. They idolized him. Innumerable are the anecdotes related illustrative of his kindness to them. He seemed to be earnestly seeking their welfare. But foreign courts feared him. Many hated him. He was unscrupulous and grasping, and had but very little sense of moral integrity. He was ambitious of literary renown; of reputation as a keen satirist. With both pen and tongue he was prone to lash without mercy his brother sovereigns, and even the courtiers who surrounded him. There were no ties of friendship which could exempt any one from his sarcasm. Other sovereigns felt that he was continually on the watch to enlarge his realms, by invading their territories, as he had robbed Maria Theresa of the province of Silesia.

Prussia had enjoyed eight years of peace. But Frederick wasn’t a popular guy, except among his own people. They looked up to him and adored him. There are countless stories about his kindness towards them. He seemed genuinely invested in their well-being. However, foreign courts were wary of him. Many despised him. He was ruthless and greedy, with very little sense of moral integrity. He aspired to literary fame and wanted to be known as a sharp satirist. With both his writing and his words, he was often merciless in criticizing his fellow rulers and even the courtiers around him. No friendship was strong enough to shield anyone from his sarcasm. Other rulers felt that he was always poised to expand his territory by taking over theirs, just as he had taken Silesia from Maria Theresa.

397 Some years before this time Frederick had taken possession of East Friesland, and had made Emden a port of entry. It was a very important acquisition, as it opened to Prussia a convenient avenue for maritime commerce. With great vigor and sagacity Frederick was encouraging this commerce, thus strengthening his kingdom and enriching his subjects. England, mistress of the seas, and then, as usual, at war with France, was covering all the adjacent waters with her war-ships and privateers. Frederick had inquired of the English court, through his embassador at London, whether hemp, flax, or timber were deemed contraband. “No,” was the official response. Freighted with such merchandise, the Prussian ships freely sailed in all directions. But soon an English privateer seized several of them, upon the assumption that the planks with which they were loaded were contraband.

397 A few years earlier, Frederick had taken control of East Friesland and made Emden a port of entry. This was a significant gain, as it provided Prussia with an easy route for maritime trade. With great energy and insight, Frederick was promoting this trade, thus reinforcing his kingdom and benefiting his people. England, the dominant naval power, was once again at war with France, patrolling the nearby waters with her warships and privateers. Frederick had asked the English court, through his ambassador in London, whether hemp, flax, or timber were considered contraband. The official answer was, “No.” Loaded with such goods, the Prussian ships sailed freely in all directions. However, an English privateer soon captured several of them, claiming that the planks they were carrying were contraband.

It was an outrage to which Frederick was not disposed to submit. He entered his remonstrances. The question was referred to the British Court of Admiralty. Month after month the decision was delayed. Frederick lost all patience. English capitalists held Silesian bonds to the amount of about one million two hundred and fifty thousand dollars.

It was an outrage that Frederick was not willing to accept. He raised his objections. The matter was sent to the British Court of Admiralty. Month after month, the decision was postponed. Frederick lost all patience. English investors held Silesian bonds worth about one million two hundred and fifty thousand dollars.

“I must have my ships back again,” said Frederick to the British court. “The law’s delay in England is, I perceive, very considerable. My people, who have had their property thus wrested from them, can not conveniently wait. I shall indemnify them from the money due on the Silesian bonds, and shall give England credit for the same. Until restitution is made, I shall not pay either principle or interest on those bonds.”

“I need my ships back,” Frederick said to the British court. “I notice that the legal process in England takes a long time. My people, who have had their property taken from them, can't wait around. I will compensate them with the money owed on the Silesian bonds, and I’ll give England credit for that. Until my ships are returned, I won’t pay either the principal or interest on those bonds.”

The British court was frantic with rage. Frederick had a strong army on the frontiers of Hanover. The first hostile gun fired would be the signal for the invasion of that province, and it would inevitably be wrested from the British crown. The lion roared, but did not venture to use either teeth or claws. England was promptly brought to terms. It was grandly done of Frederick. There was something truly sublime in the quiet, noiseless, apparently almost indifferent air with which Frederick accomplished his purpose.

The British court was filled with anger. Frederick had a strong army at the borders of Hanover. The first shot fired would signal the invasion of that province, and it would inevitably be taken from the British crown. The lion roared but didn't dare to use its teeth or claws. England quickly came to terms. Frederick handled it impressively. There was something truly remarkable in the calm, quiet, and seemingly indifferent manner in which Frederick achieved his goal.

Maria Theresa was more and more unreconciled to the loss of Silesia. Never for an hour did she relinquish the idea of eventually398 regaining the province. The various treaties into which she had been compelled to enter she regarded as merely temporary arrangements. Between the years 1752 and 1755 the energetic and persistent queen was making secret arrangements for the renewal of the Silesian war.

Maria Theresa was increasingly unhappy about losing Silesia. She never gave up on the idea of eventually getting the province back. She viewed the various treaties she had to sign as just temporary fixes. Between 1752 and 1755, the determined and relentless queen was secretly planning to restart the Silesian war.

The King of Poland, who was also Elector of Saxony, had strong feelings of personal hostility to Frederick. His prime minister, Count Von Brühl, even surpassed his royal master in the bitter antagonism with which he regarded the Prussian monarch. Frederick, whose eagle eye was ever open, and whose restless mind was always on the alert, suspected that a coalition was about to be formed against him. He had false keys made to the royal archives at Dresden; bribed one of the officials there, M. Menzel, stealthily to enter the chamber of the archives, and copy for him such extracts as would throw any light upon the designs of the court. Among other items of intelligence, he found that Austria, Russia, and Poland were deliberating upon the terms of a coalition against him.

The King of Poland, who was also the Elector of Saxony, held deep personal animosity toward Frederick. His prime minister, Count Von Brühl, was even more intense in his hostility toward the Prussian king. Frederick, with his keen insight and restless mind, sensed that a coalition was forming against him. He had false keys made for the royal archives in Dresden and bribed one of the officials there, M. Menzel, to secretly enter the archives room and copy any documents that might reveal the court's plans. Among other pieces of information, he discovered that Austria, Russia, and Poland were discussing the terms of a coalition against him.

On the 15th of May, 1753, the Russian Senate had passed the resolution that it should henceforth be the policy of Russia not only to resist all further encroachments on the part of Prussia, but to seize the first opportunity to force the Prussian monarch back to the possession of simply his original boundary of Brandenburg. It was also agreed that, should Prussia attack any of the allies of Russia, or be attacked by any of them, the armies of the czar should immediately array themselves against the armies of Frederick. There were many other papers, more or less obscure, which rendered it very certain that Maria Theresa would ere long make a new attempt to regain Silesia, and that in that attempt she would be aided both by Russia and Poland. Frederick also knew full well that nothing would better please his uncle George II. of England than to see Prussia crowded back to her smallest limits. To add to Frederick’s embarrassment, France was hopelessly alienated from him.

On May 15, 1753, the Russian Senate approved a resolution stating that it would now be Russia's policy not only to resist any further encroachments from Prussia but also to take the first chance to push the Prussian king back to just his original border of Brandenburg. It was also agreed that if Prussia attacked any of Russia's allies or was attacked by them, the czar's armies would quickly mobilize against Frederick's forces. There were many other documents, some of which were unclear, that indicated Maria Theresa would soon make another attempt to regain Silesia, and that she would receive support from both Russia and Poland in this effort. Frederick was also well aware that nothing would make his uncle George II of England happier than seeing Prussia reduced to its smallest size. To add to Frederick's troubles, France was completely alienated from him.

Many bitter words had already passed between Louis XV. and Frederick. But recently a new element of discord had appeared. The Duchess of Pompadour, the guilty favorite of Louis XV., beautiful, fascinating, and wicked, had become a power in Europe, notwithstanding the ignoble position she occupied.399 This artful and enchanting woman, having the weak king completely under her control, was in reality the ruler of France. The proudest nobles and the highest ecclesiastics bowed submissively at her shrine. Even the immaculate Maria Theresa, constrained by state policy, wrote flattering notes to her, addressing her as “my cousin,” “princess and cousin,” “madame, my dearest sister.”

Many harsh words had already been exchanged between Louis XV and Frederick. But lately, a new source of tension had emerged. The Duchess of Pompadour, the guilty favorite of Louis XV, beautiful, charming, and devious, had risen to power in Europe, despite her unseemly position. 399 This cunning and captivating woman had the weak king completely under her thumb and was essentially the ruler of France. The proudest nobles and highest church officials bowed down to her. Even the virtuous Maria Theresa, bound by diplomatic necessity, sent her flattering notes, calling her “my cousin,” “princess and cousin,” “madame, my dearest sister.”

The pampered duchess sent by the French minister to Berlin a complimentary message to Frederick. He disdainfully replied: “The Duchess of Pompadour! who is she? I do not know her.” This was an offense never to be forgiven.

The spoiled duchess sent by the French minister to Berlin a nice message to Frederick. He snobbishly replied: “The Duchess of Pompadour! Who is she? I don’t know her.” This was an insult that would never be forgiven.

Frederick was now in imminent danger of being assailed by a coalition of Austria, Russia, Poland, and England. Indeed, it was by no means certain that France might not also join the alliance. All this was the result of Frederick’s great crime in wresting Silesia from Austria. Such was the posture of affairs when, in the summer of 1755, Frederick decided to take a trip into Holland incognito. He disguised himself with a black wig, and assumed the character of a musician of the King of Poland. At Amsterdam he embarked for Utrecht in the common passage-boat. The king mingled with the other passengers without any one suspecting his rank. There chanced to be in the boat a young Swiss gentleman, Henry de Catt, twenty-seven years of age. He was a teacher, taking a short tour for recreation. He gives the following account of his interview with the king, whom, at the time, he had no reason to suppose was other than an ordinary passenger. We give the narrative in his own words:

Frederick was now in serious danger of being attacked by a coalition of Austria, Russia, Poland, and England. In fact, it wasn't certain that France wouldn't also join the alliance. This situation arose from Frederick's major offense in taking Silesia from Austria. This was the state of affairs when, in the summer of 1755, Frederick decided to take a trip to Holland incognito. He disguised himself with a black wig and pretended to be a musician from the King of Poland. In Amsterdam, he boarded a passenger boat to Utrecht. The king blended in with the other passengers, and no one suspected his true identity. Onboard was a young Swiss gentleman, Henry de Catt, who was twenty-seven years old. He was a teacher taking a short vacation for leisure. He provides the following account of his interaction with the king, whom at the time he had no reason to believe was anything other than an ordinary passenger. Here is his narrative in his own words:

“As I could not get into the cabin, because it was all engaged, I staid with the other passengers in the steerage, and the weather being fine, came upon deck. After some time there stepped out of the cabin a man in cinnamon-colored coat with gold buttons; in black wig; face and coat considerably dusted with Spanish snuff. He looked at me fixedly for a while, and then said, without farther preface, ‘Who are you, sir?’ This cavalier tone from an unknown person, whose exterior indicated nothing very important, did not please me, and I declined satisfying his curiosity. He was silent. But some time after he assumed a more courteous tone, and said, ‘Come in here to me, sir. You will be better here than in the steerage amidst the tobacco-smoke.’

“As I couldn't get into the cabin because it was fully booked, I stayed with the other passengers in the steerage. Since the weather was nice, I went up on deck. After a while, a man in a cinnamon-colored coat with gold buttons came out of the cabin. He had a black wig, and his face and coat were quite dusty from Spanish snuff. He stared at me for a moment and then said, without any introduction, ‘Who are you, sir?’ His overly confident tone, coming from someone who didn’t seem particularly important, annoyed me, so I chose not to answer his question. He fell silent. But later, he switched to a more polite tone and said, ‘Come in here with me, sir. You’ll be better off here than in the steerage with all the tobacco smoke.’”

400 “This polite address put an end to all anger; and, as the singular manner of the man excited my curiosity, I took advantage of the invitation. We sat down and began to speak confidentially with one another.

400 “This friendly greeting ended all anger, and since the man's unique way of speaking intrigued me, I decided to take him up on the invitation. We sat down and started talking openly with each other.

“‘Do you see the man in the garden yonder, sitting, smoking his pipe?’ said he to me. ‘That man, you may depend upon it, is not happy.’

“‘Do you see the guy in the garden over there, sitting and smoking his pipe?’ he said to me. ‘That guy, you can count on it, is not happy.’”

“‘I know not,’ I answered; ‘but it seems to me, until one knows a man, and is completely acquainted with his situation and his way of thought, one can not possibly determine whether he is happy or unhappy.’

“I don’t know,” I replied; “but it seems to me that until you really know a person and understand their situation and mindset, you can’t truly decide whether they are happy or unhappy.”

“My gentleman admitted this, and led the conversation on to the Dutch government. He criticised it—probably to bring me to speak. I did speak, and gave him frankly to know that he was not perfectly instructed in the thing he was criticising.

“My gentleman admitted this and shifted the conversation to the Dutch government. He criticized it—probably to prompt me to respond. I did respond and made it clear that he was not fully informed about what he was criticizing."

“‘You are right,’ answered he; ‘one can only criticise what one is thoroughly acquainted with.’

“‘You’re right,’ he replied; ‘you can only criticize what you really understand.’”

“He now began to speak of religion; and, with eloquent tongue, to recount what mischiefs scholastic philosophy had brought upon the world; then tried to prove that creation was impossible.

“He now started talking about religion; and, with an articulate voice, he recounted the troubles that scholastic philosophy had caused in the world; then he attempted to prove that creation was impossible.

“At this last point I stood out in opposition. ‘But how can one create something out of nothing?’ said he.

“At this last point I stood my ground. ‘But how can you create something from nothing?’ he asked.”

“‘That is not the question,’ I answered. ‘The question is, whether such a being as God can, or can not, give existence to what, as yet, has none.’

“‘That’s not the question,’ I replied. ‘The question is whether a being like God can or cannot bring into existence what doesn’t exist yet.’”

“He seemed embarrassed, and added, ‘But the universe is eternal.’

“He seemed embarrassed and added, ‘But the universe is eternal.’”

“‘You are in a circle,’ said I. ‘How will you get out of it?’

“‘You’re in a circle,’ I said. ‘How will you get out of it?’”

“‘I skip over it,’ he replied, laughing; and then began to talk of other things. He inquired,

“‘I just skip it,’ he said with a laugh, and then he started talking about something else. He asked,

“‘What form of government do you reckon the best?’

‘What type of government do you think is the best?’

“‘The monarchic, if the king is just and enlightened.’

‘The monarchy, if the king is fair and knowledgeable.’

“‘Very well,’ said he; ‘but where will you find kings of that sort?’ And thereupon went into such a sally as could not in the least lead me to suppose that he was one. In the end, he expressed pity for them, that they could not know the sweets of friendship, and cited on the occasion these verses—his own, I suppose:

“‘Alright,’ he said; ‘but where are you going to find kings like that?’ And then he went off on a tangent that made me think he wasn’t one at all. In the end, he felt sorry for them, saying they couldn’t experience the joys of friendship, and he quoted these lines—his own, I guess:

401

401

"A friendship, a joy for great souls;
Friendship, that kings, those renowned ingrates They are quite unhappy not to know!

“‘I have not the honor to be acquainted with kings,’ said I; ‘but, to judge from what one has read in history of several of them, I should believe, sir, on the whole, that you are right.’

“‘I don’t have the honor of knowing kings,’ I said; ‘but, based on what I've read in history about several of them, I would agree with you, sir, on the whole.’”

“‘Ah! yes, yes,’ he added, ‘I’m right. I know the gentlemen.’

“‘Ah! yes, yes,’ he added, ‘I’m sure. I know those guys.’”

“A droll incident happened during our dialogue. My gentleman wanted to let down a little sash window, and could not manage it. ‘You do not understand that,’ said I; ‘let me do it.’ I tried to get it down, but succeeded no better than he.

“A funny thing happened during our conversation. My friend wanted to lower a small sash window but couldn’t do it. ‘You don’t get it,’ I said; ‘let me try.’ I attempted to lower it, but I didn’t have any more luck than he did.”

“‘Sir,’ said he, ‘allow me to remark, on my side, that you understand as little of it as I.’

“‘Sir,’ he said, ‘let me point out that you understand it just as little as I do.’”

“‘That is true,’ I replied, ‘and I beg your pardon. I was too rash in accusing you of a want of expertness.’

“‘That's true,’ I replied, ‘and I’m sorry. I was too hasty in accusing you of lacking skill.’”

“‘Were you ever in Germany?’ he now asked me.

“‘Have you ever been to Germany?’ he asked me now.

“‘No,’ I answered; ‘but I should like to make that journey. I am very curious to see the Prussian states and their king, of whom one hears so much.’ And now I began to launch out on Frederick’s actions.

“‘No,’ I replied; ‘but I would really like to make that trip. I’m really curious to see the Prussian states and their king, who everyone talks about so much.’ And now I started to talk about Frederick’s actions.

“But he interrupted me hastily with the word, ‘Nothing more of kings, sir—nothing more. What have we to do with them? We will spend the rest of our voyage on more agreeable and cheering objects.’ And now he spoke of the best of all possible worlds, and maintained that in our planet, earth, there was more evil than good. I maintained the contrary, and this discussion brought us to the end of the voyage.

“But he quickly cut me off, saying, ‘No more talk about kings, sir—let’s not go there. What do we care about them? We should focus the rest of our journey on more pleasant and uplifting things.’ Then he talked about the best of all possible worlds and argued that on our planet, Earth, there’s more evil than good. I disagreed, and this discussion carried us through to the end of the voyage.”

“On quitting me he said, ‘I hope, sir, you will leave me your name. I am very glad to have made your acquaintance. Perhaps we shall see one another again.’ I replied as was fitting to the compliment, and begged him to excuse me for having contradicted him a little. I then told him my name, and we parted.”

“After leaving me, he said, ‘I hope you'll share your name with me. It was great to meet you. Maybe we'll see each other again.’ I responded appropriately to his compliment and asked him to forgive me for disagreeing with him a bit. I then told him my name, and we went our separate ways.”

How soon Henry learned that he had been conversing with the King of Prussia we do not know. It is evident that Frederick was pleased with the interview. He soon after invited Henry de Catt to his court, and appointed him reader to the king. In this capacity he served his Prussian majesty for about twenty years. He left a note-book in the royal archives of Berlin from which the above extracts are taken.

How soon Henry realized that he had been talking to the King of Prussia, we don’t know. It’s clear that Frederick enjoyed the conversation. Soon after, he invited Henry de Catt to his court and made him a reader for the king. In this role, he served the Prussian king for about twenty years. He left a notebook in the royal archives of Berlin, from which the above excerpts are taken.


402

402

CHAPTER XXV.
START OF THE SEVEN YEARS’ WAR.

Secret Preparations for a Coalition.—Frederick’s Embarrassments.—The uncertain Support of England.—Causes of the War.—Commencement of Hostilities.—Letter from Frederick to his Sister Amelia.—Letter to his Brother.—The Invasion of Saxony.—Misfortunes of the Royal Family of Poland.—Battle of Lobositz.—Energetic Military Movements.—Prisoners of War compelled to enlist in the Prussian Service.—Dispatches from Frederick.—Battle of Prague.—Battle of Kolin.—Retreat of Frederick.—Death of Sophia Dorothea.

Secret Preparations for a Coalition—Frederick's Challenges—Uncertain Support from England—Reasons for the War—Start of Hostilities—Letter from Frederick to his Sister Amelia—Letter to his Brother—The Invasion of Saxony—Misfortunes of the Polish Royal Family—Battle of Lobositz—Active Military Movements—Prisoners of War Forced to Join the Prussian Army—Dispatches from Frederick—Battle of Prague—Battle of Kolin—Frederick's Retreat—Death of Sophia Dorothea.

We now enter upon the third Silesian war, usually termed in history The Seven Years’ War. For four years Frederick had been aware that a coalition was secretly forming against him. Maria Theresa wished, with ardor which had never for one moment abated, to regain Silesia. All the other European powers, without exception, desired to curb Frederick, whose ambition they feared. They were well aware that he was taking advantage of a few years of peace to replenish his treasury, and to enlarge his army for new conquests. As we have before stated, Frederick, by bribery, had fully informed himself of the secret arrangements into which Austria, Russia, Poland, and other powers were entering for the dismemberment of his realms. It is in vain to attempt to unravel the intricacies of the diplomacy which ensued.

We are now entering the third Silesian war, commonly known in history as The Seven Years’ War. For four years, Frederick had been aware that a coalition was secretly forming against him. Maria Theresa, with an unwavering passion, wanted to reclaim Silesia. Every other European power, without exception, aimed to put Frederick in check, fearing his ambition. They understood he was taking advantage of a few years of peace to rebuild his treasury and expand his army for further conquests. As mentioned before, Frederick had used bribery to learn all about the secret agreements that Austria, Russia, Poland, and other powers were making to divide his territories. It’s pointless to try to unravel the complexities of the diplomacy that followed.

England, while endeavoring to subsidize Russia against Frederick, entered secretly into a sort of alliance with Frederick, hoping thus to save Hanover. The Empress Elizabeth, of Russia, heartily united with Maria Theresa against Frederick, whom she personally disliked, and whose encroachments she dreaded. His Prussian majesty, proud of his powers of sarcasm, in his poems spared neither friend nor foe. He had written some very severe things against the Russian empress, which had reached her ears.100

England, while trying to support Russia against Frederick, secretly formed an alliance with Frederick, hoping to protect Hanover. Empress Elizabeth of Russia firmly joined forces with Maria Theresa against Frederick, whom she personally disliked and feared due to his territorial gains. The Prussian king, proud of his sarcastic wit, did not hold back in his poems, attacking both friends and enemies. He had penned some harsh remarks about the Russian empress, which she had heard about. 100

403 Frederick was in great perplexity. To wait for his enemies to complete their arrangements, and to commence the attack at their leisure, placed him at great disadvantage. To begin the attack himself, and thus to open anew the floodgates of war, would increase the hostility with which the nations were regarding him. As the diplomacy of the foreign cabinets had been secret, he would universally be regarded as the aggressor. England was Frederick’s only ally—a treacherous ally, influenced not by sympathy for Frederick, but by hatred of France, and by fear of the loss of Hanover. The British cabinet would abandon Prussia the first moment it should see it to be for its interest to do so.

403 Frederick was deeply troubled. Waiting for his enemies to finalize their plans and attack at their convenience put him at a serious disadvantage. If he launched an attack himself, it would reignite the full scale of war and increase the hostility that other nations felt towards him. Since the diplomacy of the foreign governments had been secret, he would be universally seen as the aggressor. England was Frederick’s only ally—a unreliable ally, motivated not by loyalty to Frederick, but by a dislike of France and a fear of losing Hanover. The British government would abandon Prussia at the first opportunity if it benefited them to do so.

The King of Prussia had an army of two hundred thousand men under perfect discipline. The Old Dessauer was dead, but many veteran generals were in command. It was manifest that war would soon burst forth. In addition to the personal pique of the Duchess of Pompadour, who really ruled France, Louis XV. was greatly exasperated by the secret alliance into which Frederick had entered with England. The brother of the Prussian king, Augustus William, the heir-apparent to the throne, disapproved of this alliance. He said to the French minister, Valori, “I would give a finger from my hand had it never been concluded.”

The King of Prussia had an army of two hundred thousand men in perfect order. The Old Dessauer was gone, but many experienced generals were in charge. It was clear that war would soon break out. Besides the personal resentment of the Duchess of Pompadour, who actually ran France, Louis XV was very frustrated by the secret alliance Frederick had formed with England. The Prussian king’s brother, Augustus William, the heir to the throne, didn’t approve of this alliance. He told the French minister, Valori, “I would give a finger from my hand if it had never been made.”

In July, 1756, Frederick, for form’s sake, inquired, through his embassador at Vienna, why Maria Theresa was making such formidable military preparations. At the same time he conferred with two of his leading generals, Schwerin and Retzow, if it would not be better, since it was certain that Austria and Russia would soon declare war, to anticipate them by an attack upon Austria. The opinion of both, which was in perfect accord with that of the king, was that it was best immediately to seize upon Saxony, and in that rich and fertile country to gather magazines, and make it the base for operations in Bohemia.

In July 1756, Frederick, for the sake of appearances, asked through his ambassador in Vienna why Maria Theresa was making such intense military preparations. At the same time, he consulted with two of his top generals, Schwerin and Retzow, about whether it would be better to preemptively attack Austria, as it was clear that Austria and Russia would soon declare war. Both generals agreed with the king, concluding that it was best to quickly take control of Saxony and use its rich and fertile land to stock up supplies, making it the base for operations in Bohemia.

A spy was sent to Saxony, who reported that there were but twenty thousand troops there. All necessary information was promptly and secretly obtained in reference to roads and fortresses. It required three weeks to receive an answer from Vienna.404 The reply was evasive, as Frederick knew that it would be. In the mean time, his Prussian majesty, with characteristic energy, had mustered on the frontier an army numbering in the aggregate nearly one hundred and fifty thousand men. These troops, in three divisions, with two thousand pieces of artillery, were to make a rush upon Saxony. Among the directions given by Frederick to the leaders of these divisions were the following:

A spy was sent to Saxony, who reported that there were only twenty thousand troops there. All the necessary information about the roads and fortresses was quickly and discreetly gathered. It took three weeks to get a response from Vienna.404 The reply was vague, as Frederick knew it would be. In the meantime, his Prussian majesty, with his usual energy, had assembled an army on the frontier totaling nearly one hundred and fifty thousand men. These troops, organized into three divisions with two thousand pieces of artillery, were set to advance on Saxony. Among the instructions Frederick gave to the commanders of these divisions were the following:

“Each regiment shall take but one baggage-cart for a company. No officer, whoever he may be or whatever his title, shall take with him the least of silver plate, not even a silver spoon. Whoever wants to keep table, great or small, must manage the same with tin utensils, without exception, be he who he will.”

“Each regiment can only take one baggage cart for each company. No officer, regardless of who they are or what title they hold, can bring any silver plate, not even a silver spoon. Anyone who wants to set up a table, large or small, must do so using only tin utensils, without exception, no matter who they are.”

On the 25th of August, 1756, the king wrote from Potsdam to his brother, the Prince of Prussia, and his sister Amelia, who were at Berlin, as follows:

On August 25, 1756, the king wrote from Potsdam to his brother, the Prince of Prussia, and his sister Amelia, who were in Berlin, saying:

My dear Brother, my dear Sister,—I write you both at once for want of time. I have as yet received no answer from Vienna. I shall not get it till to-morrow. But I count myself surer of war than ever, as the Austrians have named their generals, and their army is ordered to march to Königgrätz. So that, expecting nothing else but a haughty answer, or a very uncertain one, on which there will be no reliance possible, I have arranged every thing for setting out on Saturday next.”

Dear Bro, dear Sis,—I'm writing to both of you at the same time because I'm short on time. I still haven't received any response from Vienna. I'll get it tomorrow. But I'm more certain than ever that war is coming since the Austrians have named their generals and their army is set to march to Königgrätz. So, expecting nothing but an arrogant reply or a very vague one that won't be dependable, I've made all the arrangements to leave this Saturday.

Upon the ensuing day, having received the answer from Vienna, he wrote to his brother:

Upon the following day, after getting the response from Vienna, he wrote to his brother:

“You have seen the paper I have sent to Vienna. Their answer is, that they have not made an offensive alliance with Russia against me. Of the assurance that I required there is not one word, so that the sword alone can cut this Gordian knot. I am innocent of this war. I have done what I could to avoid it; but, whatever be one’s love of peace, one can not, and one must not, sacrifice to that safety and honor. At present our one thought must be to wage war in such a way as may cure our enemies of their wish to break peace again too soon.”

"You’ve seen the letter I sent to Vienna. Their response is that they haven’t formed an offensive alliance with Russia against me. There isn’t a word about the assurance I needed, so the sword is the only thing that can cut this Gordian knot. I’m not responsible for this war. I’ve done everything I could to avoid it; however, no matter how much one values peace, one cannot and must not sacrifice safety and honor for it. Right now, our focus must be on fighting in a way that teaches our enemies not to seek peace again too soon."

On Saturday morning, August 28, 1756, the Prussian army, over one hundred thousand strong, entered Saxony at three different points on the northern frontier. Frederick, with about sixty thousand troops, crossed the Elbe at Torgau, and seized upon Leipsic. Duke Ferdinand, of Hanover, led his columns405 across the frontier about eighty miles to the right. The Duke of Brunswick-Bevern crossed about the same distance to the left. Each column was stronger than the whole Saxon army. The appointed place of rendezvous for the three divisions was the city of Dresden, the capital of Saxony. By the route marked out, each column had a distance of about one hundred and fifty miles to traverse.

On Saturday morning, August 28, 1756, the Prussian army, over one hundred thousand strong, entered Saxony at three different points along the northern border. Frederick, with about sixty thousand troops, crossed the Elbe at Torgau and took control of Leipsic. Duke Ferdinand of Hanover led his forces across the border about eighty miles to the right, while the Duke of Brunswick-Bevern crossed roughly the same distance to the left. Each column was larger than the entire Saxon army. The designated meeting point for the three divisions was the city of Dresden, the capital of Saxony. Following the planned route, each column had to cover about one hundred and fifty miles.

THE INVASION OF SAXONY.

“Thus,” writes Voltaire, “Frederick invaded Saxony under the pretense of friendship, and that he might make war upon Maria Theresa with the money of which he should rob the Saxons.”

“Therefore,” writes Voltaire, “Frederick invaded Saxony while pretending to be friendly, so he could wage war on Maria Theresa using the money he would steal from the Saxons.”

Not a soldier appeared to oppose the invaders. The Prussians seized, in an unobstructed march, all the most important Saxon towns and fortresses. The King of Poland and his court, with less than twenty thousand troops, had fled from the capital up the river, which here runs from the south to Pirna, where they concentrated their feeble army, which numbered but eighteen thousand men. Frederick, with his resistless column, entered Dresden on the 9th of September. The queen had remained in the palace. The keys of the archives were demanded of her. She refused to surrender them. The officers proceeded to break open the door. The queen placed herself before the door. The officers, shrinking from using personal violence, sent to Frederick for instructions. He ordered them to force the archives, whatever opposition the queen, in person, might present. The queen,406 to avoid a rude assault, withdrew. The door was forced, and the archives seized.

Not a soldier showed up to oppose the invaders. The Prussians marched through, taking all the key Saxon towns and fortresses without any resistance. The King of Poland and his court fled from the capital with less than twenty thousand troops, retreating up the river to Pirna, where they gathered their weak army of only eighteen thousand men. Frederick, leading his unstoppable force, entered Dresden on September 9th. The queen stayed in the palace. They asked her for the keys to the archives, but she refused to hand them over. The officers tried to break the door down. The queen stood in front of the door to block them. The officers, hesitant to use force, sent a message to Frederick for guidance. He instructed them to break into the archives, regardless of the queen’s personal resistance. To avoid a violent confrontation, the queen stepped aside. The door was forced open, and the archives were taken.

“The king found,” writes Voltaire, “testimonies of the dread which he had occasioned. The queen died soon after of grief. All Europe pitied that unfortunate family. But in the course of those public calamities millions of families experienced hardships not less great, though more obscure.”101

“The king discovered,” writes Voltaire, “evidence of the fear he had caused. The queen soon died from grief. All of Europe felt sympathy for that unfortunate family. However, during those public disasters, millions of families faced hardships just as significant, though less visible.”101

Thus was commenced the Seven Years’ War. It proved one of the most bloody and cruel strifes which man has ever waged against his brother man. Through its terrible scenes of conflagration, blood, and despair, Frederick obtained the renown of being one of the ablest generals who ever marshaled armies upon fields of blood.

Thus began the Seven Years’ War. It turned out to be one of the most brutal and savage conflicts that humans have ever waged against each other. Amidst the horrific scenes of fire, blood, and despair, Frederick gained the reputation of being one of the most skilled generals to ever lead armies into battle.

His Polish majesty had placed his feeble band of troops in the vicinity of Pirna, on the Elbe, amidst the defiles of a mountainous country, where they could easily defend themselves against superior numbers. Winter was rapidly approaching. In those high latitudes and among those bleak hills the storms of winter ever raged with terrible severity. The Austrians were energetically accumulating their forces in Bohemia to act against the Prussians. The invasion of Saxony by Frederick, without any apparent provocation, roused all Europe to intensity of hatred and of action.

His Polish majesty had stationed his weak group of troops near Pirna, along the Elbe, in a mountainous area where they could easily defend themselves against larger forces. Winter was coming fast. In those northern regions and among those harsh hills, winter storms always hit with brutal force. The Austrians were actively gathering their troops in Bohemia to take action against the Prussians. Frederick's invasion of Saxony, with no clear reason, sparked widespread outrage and mobilization across Europe.

His Prussian majesty carefully examined the position of the Saxons. They were in a region of precipices and chasms, broken into a labyrinth of sky-piercing and craggy rocks. The eminences, in some cases, rose two thousand feet, and were covered with pine forests. “There is no stronger position in the world,” Frederick writes. All these passes were fortified, mile after mile, by batteries, ramparts, palisades, and abattis. But the Saxon troops, taken unawares, had but a small supply of provisions. Frederick decided to block every entrance to their encampment, and thus to starve them out. His Polish majesty sent frantic cries to France and Austria for help. Frederick was assailed with the title of the “Prussian robber.”

His Prussian majesty carefully looked over the situation of the Saxons. They were in an area filled with cliffs and deep gorges, creating a maze of towering and jagged rocks. The hills, in some cases, rose two thousand feet and were covered with pine forests. “There is no stronger position in the world,” Frederick wrote. All these routes were fortified, mile after mile, with batteries, walls, barriers, and spikes. But the Saxon troops, caught off guard, had only a small supply of food. Frederick decided to block every entrance to their camp to starve them out. His Polish majesty sent desperate pleas for help to France and Austria. Frederick was labeled the “Prussian robber.”

The Dauphiness of France was daughter of the King of Poland. With tears she craved protection for her parents. The Duchess of Pompadour was anxious to show her gratitude to407 Maria Theresa, who had condescended to address her as a “cousin and a dear sister.” A French army of one hundred thousand men was soon on the march to aid Austria in the liberation of Saxony. At the same time, an Austrian army of sixty thousand men, under Marshal Browne, was advancing rapidly from Bohemia to penetrate the fastnesses of the mountains for the release of the Polish king.

The Dauphiness of France was the daughter of the King of Poland. With tears, she pleaded for protection for her parents. The Duchess of Pompadour was eager to express her gratitude to 407 Maria Theresa, who had graciously addressed her as a “cousin and a dear sister.” A French army of one hundred thousand soldiers was soon on the way to support Austria in freeing Saxony. At the same time, an Austrian army of sixty thousand soldiers, led by Marshal Browne, was making swift advances from Bohemia to enter the mountains for the rescue of the Polish king.

BATTLE OF LOBOSITZ, OCT. 1, 1756.

BATTLE OF LOBOSITZ, OCT. 1, 1756.

a a. Prussian Infantry, b. Cavalry, c c. Artillery. d d. Austrian Army.

a a. Prussian Infantry, b. Cavalry, c c. Artillery. d d. Austrian Army.

On Friday, the 1st of October, 1756, the Prussian army under Frederick, leaving the Saxons besieged in their encampment, marched up the river to meet the foe advancing to the aid of the Saxons. They encountered the Austrians, under Marshal Browne, at Lobositz, about thirty miles south of Pirna. A terrible battle of seven hours’ duration ensued. The opposing generals were of nearly equal ability. The soldiers were equal in courage. The carnage of the bloody conflict was almost equal on either side. The desperation of the Prussian assault was resistless. Bayonet often crossed bayonet. The Austrians were driven from their strong position into the city. The Prussians laid the city in ashes. As the Austrians fled from the blazing streets, many, endeavoring to swim across the Elbe, were drowned. At the close of this bloody strife General Browne withdrew his army to the rear, where he still presented a defiant front to the Prussians. He had lost from his ranks, in killed and wounded, two thousand nine hundred and eighty-four. The loss of Frederick was still greater; it numbered three thousand three hundred and eight. Neither party would confess to a defeat.

On Friday, October 1, 1756, the Prussian army led by Frederick, leaving the Saxons trapped in their camp, marched up the river to confront the enemy coming to assist the Saxons. They met the Austrians, commanded by Marshal Browne, at Lobositz, about thirty miles south of Pirna. A fierce battle lasting seven hours broke out. The opposing generals were nearly equally skilled. The soldiers showed equal bravery. The slaughter in the brutal conflict was almost even on both sides. The ferocity of the Prussian attack was unstoppable. Bayonets often clashed. The Austrians were pushed from their strong position into the city. The Prussians set the city on fire. As the Austrians fled from the burning streets, many drowned while trying to swim across the Elbe. At the end of this bloody struggle, General Browne pulled his army back, still maintaining a defiant stance against the Prussians. He had lost 2,984 men killed and wounded. Frederick's losses were even greater, totaling 3,308. Neither side would admit to a defeat.

“Never have my troops,” writes Frederick, “done such miracles of valor, cavalry as well as infantry, since I had the honor to command them. By this dead-lift achievement I have seen what they can do.”

“Never have my troops,” writes Frederick, “shown such incredible bravery, both cavalry and infantry, since I had the honor of leading them. With this amazing feat, I’ve witnessed what they’re capable of.”

The Prussians remained at Lobositz nearly a fortnight, to see if Marshal Browne would again attempt to force the defiles. The Saxon troops, for whose relief the Austrians were advancing, were about thirty miles farther north, on the south, or left408 bank of the Elbe. The news of the repulse of Marshal Browne at Lobositz fell disastrously upon their starving ranks. Maria Theresa was much distressed. She sent a messenger to her Austrian general to relieve the Saxons at whatever cost. A confidential messenger was dispatched through the mountains to the Saxon camp, which he reached in safety. He informed his Polish majesty that Marshal Browne, with a picked force of eight thousand, horse and foot, would march by a circuitous route of sixty miles, so as to approach Pirna from the northeast, where but a small Prussian force was stationed. He would be there without fail on the 11th of August.

The Prussians stayed at Lobositz for nearly two weeks to see if Marshal Browne would try to force the passes again. The Saxon troops, whom the Austrians were trying to help, were about thirty miles further north, on the southern, or left408 bank of the Elbe. The news of Marshal Browne's defeat at Lobositz hit their starving ranks hard. Maria Theresa was very upset. She sent a message to her Austrian general to help the Saxons at any cost. A confidential messenger was sent through the mountains to the Saxon camp, where he arrived safely. He informed his Polish majesty that Marshal Browne, with a selected force of eight thousand troops, both cavalry and infantry, would take a roundabout route of sixty miles to approach Pirna from the northeast, where only a small Prussian force was stationed. He would arrive without fail on August 11th.

The Saxons were directed to cross the Elbe, by a sudden and unexpected march at Königstein, a few miles from Pirna. Immediately upon effecting the passage of the river they were to fire two cannon as a signal that the feat was accomplished. The Saxon and Austrian troops were then to form a junction, and co-operate in crushing the few Prussian bands which were left there as a guard. The Saxon troops would thus be rescued from the trap in which they were inclosed, and from the famine which was devouring them.

The Saxons were ordered to cross the Elbe with a sudden and unexpected movement at Königstein, a few miles from Pirna. As soon as they crossed the river, they were to fire two cannon as a signal that they had succeeded. The Saxon and Austrian troops would then join forces and work together to defeat the few Prussian groups left there as guards. This way, the Saxon troops would be saved from the trap they were in and from the hunger that was consuming them.

Marshal Browne skillfully and successfully performed his part of the adventure. But there was no efficient co-operation by the Saxons. The men were weak, emaciate, and perishing from hunger. Their sinews of exertion were paralyzed. The skeleton horses could not draw the wagons or the guns. To add to their embarrassment, a raging storm of wind and rain burst upon the camp. The roads were converted into quagmires. The night was pitch-dark as the Saxons, about fourteen thousand in number, drenched with rain and groping through the mud, abandoned their camp and endeavored to steal their way across the river. The watchful Prussians detected the movement. A scene of confusion, terror, slaughter ensued, which it is in vain to endeavor to describe. The weeping skies and moaning winds indicated nature’s sympathy with these scenes of woe. Still the unhappy Saxons struggled on heroically. After seventy hours of toilsome marching and despairing conflict, these unhappy peasant-lads, the victims of kingly pride, were compelled to surrender at discretion. Marshal Browne, finding the enterprise an utter failure, rapidly returned to the main body of his army.

Marshal Browne skillfully and successfully carried out his part of the adventure. However, there was no effective cooperation from the Saxons. The men were weak, emaciated, and dying from hunger. Their ability to exert themselves was paralyzed. The skeletal horses couldn’t pull the wagons or the artillery. To make matters worse, a violent storm of wind and rain hit the camp. The roads turned into quagmires. The night was pitch-dark as the Saxons, about fourteen thousand in total, soaked with rain and struggling through the mud, abandoned their camp and tried to sneak across the river. The alert Prussians spotted the movement. A chaotic scene of confusion, fear, and slaughter followed, which is impossible to fully describe. The weeping skies and howling winds showed nature’s sympathy for these tragic events. Still, the unfortunate Saxons pressed on heroically. After seventy hours of exhausting marching and desperate conflict, these unfortunate peasant lads, who were victims of royal arrogance, were forced to surrender unconditionally. Marshal Browne, realizing the mission had utterly failed, quickly returned to the main part of his army.

409 Frederick was much embarrassed in deciding what to do with his captives. They numbered about fourteen thousand. To guard and feed them was too troublesome and expensive. They could not be exchanged, as the King of Poland had no Prussian prisoners. To set them at liberty would speedily place them in the Austrian ranks to fight against him. Under these circumstances, Frederick compelled them all to enlist as Prussian soldiers. He compelled them to do this voluntarily, for they had their choice either to enlist under his banners or to starve. The King of Poland was permitted to return to Warsaw. The electorate of Saxony, nearly as large as the State of Massachusetts, and containing a population of one and a half millions, was annexed to Prussia. The captured soldiers, prisoners of war, were dressed in Prussian uniform, commanded by Prussian officers, and either placed in garrison or in the ranks of the army in the field. The public voice of Europe condemned Frederick very severely for so unprecedented an act.

409 Frederick felt very awkward about what to do with his captives. There were around fourteen thousand of them. Keeping them guarded and fed was too difficult and costly. He couldn't exchange them since the King of Poland had no Prussian prisoners to trade. Releasing them would quickly put them into the Austrian army to fight against him. Given these circumstances, Frederick forced them all to enlist as Prussian soldiers. He forced them to do this voluntarily, as they had the choice to either join his army or face starvation. The King of Poland was allowed to return to Warsaw. The electorate of Saxony, almost as large as the State of Massachusetts and with a population of one and a half million, was annexed to Prussia. The captured soldiers, prisoners of war, were dressed in Prussian uniforms, commanded by Prussian officers, and either stationed in garrisons or sent into active duty in the field. The public opinion in Europe harshly criticized Frederick for such an unprecedented action.

“Think of the sounds,” writes Carlyle, “uttered from human windpipes, shrill with rage, some of them, hoarse others with ditto; of the vituperations, execrations, printed and vocal—grating harsh thunder upon Frederick and this new course of his. Huge melody of discords, shrieking, groaning, grinding on that topic through the afflicted universe in general.”

“Think about the sounds,” writes Carlyle, “coming from human throats, some shrill with rage, others hoarse with the same; the insults and curses, both written and spoken—grating harshly like thunder against Frederick and his new direction. A huge symphony of discord, screaming, groaning, grinding on that topic throughout the troubled universe in general.”

Voltaire embraced the opportunity of giving vent to his malice in epigrams and lampoons. Frederick was by no means insensible to public opinion, but he was ever willing to brave that opinion if by so doing he could accomplish his ambitious ends.

Voltaire took the chance to express his spite in witty sayings and satirical pieces. Frederick was definitely aware of public opinion, but he was always ready to challenge it if it meant he could achieve his ambitious goals.

After this signal achievement his Prussian majesty established his army in winter quarters along the banks of the Elbe. He took up his abode in the palace of Dresden, awaiting the opening of the spring campaign. Saxony was held with a tight grasp, and taxes and recruits were gathered from the country as if it had always belonged to Prussia. Frederick had hoped that his sudden campaign would have led him into the heart of the Austrian states. Instead of this, though he had wrested Saxony from Poland, he had given Austria ample time to prepare her armies for a long war, and had roused all Europe to intense hostility against him.

After this significant achievement, his Prussian majesty set up his army in winter quarters along the banks of the Elbe. He made his home in the palace of Dresden, waiting for the spring campaign to begin. Saxony was tightly controlled, and taxes and recruits were collected from the region as if it had always belonged to Prussia. Frederick had hoped that his sudden campaign would take him deep into the heart of the Austrian states. However, even though he had taken Saxony from Poland, he had given Austria plenty of time to prepare her armies for a long war and had stirred up intense hostility against him across all of Europe.

410 It became more and more manifest to Frederick that he must encounter a terrible conflict upon the opening of the spring. Early in January he took a short trip to Berlin, but soon returned to Dresden. Though he avoided all appearance of anxiety, and kept up a cheerful air, he was fully conscious of his peril. This is evident from the secret instructions he left with his minister, Count Finck, upon his departure from Berlin. The dispatch was dated January 10th, 1757:

410 Frederick increasingly realized that he would have to face a serious conflict when spring arrived. In early January, he took a brief trip to Berlin but quickly returned to Dresden. Although he tried to hide any signs of worry and maintained a positive attitude, he was well aware of the danger he was in. This is clear from the confidential instructions he left with his minister, Count Finck, when he left Berlin. The dispatch was dated January 10th, 1757:

“Should it chance that my army in Saxony were beaten, or that the French should get possession of Hanover, and threaten us with invasion from that quarter, or that the Russians should get through by Neumark, you are to save the royal family and the archives. Should we be beaten in Saxony, remove the royal family to Cüstrin. Should the Russians enter by Neumark, or a misfortune befall us in the Lausitz, all must go to Magdeburg, but not till the last extremity. The garrison, the royal family, and the treasure must be kept together. In such a case, the silver plate and the gold plate must at once be coined into money.

“Should my army in Saxony get defeated, or if the French take Hanover and threaten us with an invasion from that direction, or if the Russians come through Neumark, you are to ensure the safety of the royal family and the archives. If we lose in Saxony, move the royal family to Cüstrin. If the Russians come through Neumark, or if we face a disaster in Lausitz, everything must go to Magdeburg, but only as a last resort. The garrison, the royal family, and the treasure must stay together. In such a case, the silver and gold items must be immediately converted into cash.”

“If I am killed, affairs must go on without alteration. If I should be taken prisoner, I forbid you from paying the least regard to my person, or paying the least heed to what I may write from my place of detention. Should such misfortune happen to me, I wish to sacrifice myself for the state. You must obey my brother. He, as well as all my ministers and generals, shall answer to me with their heads not to offer any province or ransom for me, but to continue the war, pushing their advances as if I had never existed in the world.”

“If I am killed, things must continue without any changes. If I’m captured, I forbid you to care about my welfare or pay any attention to what I might write from where I'm being held. If that misfortune befalls me, I want to sacrifice myself for the state. You must obey my brother. He, along with all my ministers and generals, will answer to me with their heads if they offer any province or ransom for me; instead, they should keep fighting and moving forward as if I never existed in the world.”

Two days after committing this important document to Count Finck, Frederick took leave of his mother and his brother. His mother he never saw again. We have no evidence that on this visit he even called upon his irreproachable, amiable, neglected wife. In preparation for the worst, Frederick had provided poison for himself, and wore it constantly about his person. It consisted of several small pills in a glass tube. This fact is fully established.

Two days after handing this important document to Count Finck, Frederick said goodbye to his mother and his brother. He never saw his mother again. There's no record that during this visit he even stopped by to see his faultless, kind, but overlooked wife. Preparing for the worst, Frederick had kept poison on him at all times. It came in the form of several small pills in a glass tube. This fact is well established.

All Europe, England alone excepted, was aroused against him. Armies were every where being marshaled. The press of all continental Europe was filled with denunciations of his crimes and encroachments. Not all his efforts to assume a careless air411 could efface from his countenance the impression left there by the struggles of his soul. His features, as seen in a portrait painted about this time, are expressive of the character of an anxious and unhappy man.

All of Europe, except for England, was stirred up against him. Armies were being gathered everywhere. The media across continental Europe was packed with accusations of his crimes and overreach. No matter how hard he tried to appear casual, he couldn't hide the turmoil on his face caused by his internal struggles. His features, as shown in a portrait painted around this time, reflect the demeanor of a worried and unhappy man.

Early in the spring of 1757, France, Russia, Austria, Poland, and Sweden were combined against Frederick. These countries represented a population of one hundred millions. Frederick’s domains contained but five millions. His annual revenue was but about ten million dollars. He had an army in the field of one hundred and fifty thousand of the best troops in the world. His fortresses were garrisoned by about fifty thousand of inferior quality. The armies of the allies numbered four hundred and thirty thousand. Frederick was regarded as an outlaw. The design of the allies was to crush him, and to divide his territory between them. Austria was to retake Silesia. France was to have the Wesel-Cleve country. Russia was to annex to her domains Prussen, Königsberg, etc. Poland, having regained Saxony, was to add to her territory Magdeburg and Halle. Sweden was to have Pomerania. Never before had there appeared such a combination against any man. The situation of Frederick seemed desperate.

Early in the spring of 1757, France, Russia, Austria, Poland, and Sweden joined forces against Frederick. These countries had a combined population of one hundred million people, while Frederick's lands had only five million. His annual income was around ten million dollars. He had an army of one hundred and fifty thousand of the best troops in the world in the field, along with about fifty thousand lesser quality soldiers stationed in his fortresses. The allied armies totaled four hundred and thirty thousand. Frederick was seen as an outlaw. The allies aimed to defeat him and divide his territory among themselves. Austria planned to reclaim Silesia; France wanted the Wesel-Cleve area; Russia intended to annex Prussia, Königsberg, and others; Poland, having regained Saxony, wanted Magdeburg and Halle; and Sweden was set to take Pomerania. Never before had such a coalition formed against any individual. Frederick's situation appeared grim.

France was first in the field with a superb host of one hundred and ten thousand men. The other powers speedily followed. In four great armies of invasion these hosts pressed upon Prussia from the southeast and southwest, the northeast and northwest. The Russian battalions were one hundred thousand strong. The Austrian army was still more formidable.

France was the first to mobilize, sending a strong force of one hundred and ten thousand troops. The other countries quickly followed suit. In four major invasion armies, these forces advanced on Prussia from the southeast and southwest, and from the northeast and northwest. The Russian forces numbered one hundred thousand. The Austrian army was even more powerful.

It was supposed, that Frederick would remain in Saxony on the defensive against the Austrians, who were rapidly gathering their army at Prague, in Bohemia. The city was situated upon the River Moldau, one of the tributaries of the Elbe, and was about sixty miles south of Dresden.

It was expected that Frederick would stay in Saxony to defend against the Austrians, who were quickly assembling their army in Prague, Bohemia. The city was located on the River Moldau, one of the tributaries of the Elbe, and was around sixty miles south of Dresden.

On the 20th of April, Frederick, having secretly placed his army in the best possible condition, commenced a rapid march upon Prague, thus plunging into the very heart of Bohemia. He advanced in three great columns up the valley of the Elbe and the Moldau. His movements were so rapid and unexpected that he seized several Austrian magazines which they had not even time to burn. Three months’ provisions were thus obtained for412 his whole army. The first column, under the king, was sixty thousand strong. The second column, led by General Bevern, numbered twenty-three thousand, horse and foot. The third, under Marshal Schwerin, counted thirty-two thousand foot and twelve thousand horse. On the 2d of May the banners of Frederick were seen from the steeples of Prague. They appeared floating from the heights of the Weissenberg, a few miles west of the city. At the same time, the other two columns, which had united under Marshal Schwerin, appeared on the east side of the Moldau, upon both banks of which the city is built.

On April 20th, Frederick secretly got his army ready and started a quick march towards Prague, deep into the heart of Bohemia. He moved in three large columns up the valleys of the Elbe and the Moldau. His actions were so swift and surprising that he captured several Austrian supply depots before they had even had time to destroy them. This provided three months’ worth of supplies for412 his entire army. The first column, led by the king, had sixty thousand troops. The second column, commanded by General Bevern, included twenty-three thousand infantry and cavalry. The third, under Marshal Schwerin, consisted of thirty-two thousand infantry and twelve thousand cavalry. On May 2nd, Frederick's banners were visible from the steeples of Prague, waving from the heights of Weissenberg, just a few miles west of the city. At the same time, the other two columns, now joined under Marshal Schwerin, appeared on the east side of the Moldau, along both banks where the city is located.

THE BATTLE OF PRAGUE, MAY 6, 1757.

THE BATTLE OF PRAGUE, MAY 6, 1757.

a a a. First position of Austrian Army. b b b. Second position to meet the Prussian Attack. c. Prussians under Keith. d d. First position of Prussian Army. e e. Second position of Prussian Army. f. Schwerin’s Prussians. g. Prussian Horse. h. Mannstein’s Attack. i. Place of Schwerin’s Monument.

a a a. Initial position of the Austrian Army. b b b. Secondary position to counter the Prussian attack. c. Prussians led by Keith. d d. Initial position of the Prussian Army. e e. Secondary position of the Prussian Army. f. Schwerin’s Prussians. g. Prussian cavalry. h. Mannstein’s attack. i. Location of Schwerin’s monument.

On the 5th of May, after careful reconnoissance, Frederick crossed the Moldau several miles north of Prague. He went over upon pontoons unopposed, and thus effected a junction with his troops on the east side of the river. The Austrian army was drawn up on some formidable heights but a short distance east of the city. Their position was very strong, and they were thoroughly intrenched. On the 6th of May the dreadful battle of Prague was fought. For many years, as not a few of our readers will remember, it was fought over and over again upon all the pianos in Christendom. They will remember the awe with which, as children, they listened to the tumult of the battle, swelling forth from the ivory keys, with the rattle of musketry, the booming of the cannon, and the groans of the dying—such groans as even the field of battle itself could scarcely have rivaled.

On May 5th, after careful scouting, Frederick crossed the Moldau a few miles north of Prague. He crossed on pontoons without any opposition, connecting with his troops on the east side of the river. The Austrian army was positioned on some formidable heights just east of the city. Their position was very strong, and they were well-entrenched. On May 6th, the terrible battle of Prague was fought. For many years, as many of our readers may recall, it was reenacted over and over again on pianos across the world. They will remember the awe with which, as children, they listened to the tumult of battle, echoing from the ivory keys, with the sounds of gunfire, the booming of cannons, and the groans of the dying—groans that even the battlefield itself could hardly match.

413 The final and decisive struggle took place on and around two important eminences, called the Sterbohol Hill and the Homoly Hill. Both of these heights the Prussians stormed. In the following glowing words Carlyle pictures the scene:

413 The final and decisive battle happened on and around two significant hills, known as Sterbohol Hill and Homoly Hill. The Prussians attacked both of these heights. In the following vivid words, Carlyle describes the scene:

“Fearful tugging, swagging, and swaying is conceivable in this Sterbohol problem! And, after long scanning, I rather judge that it was in the wake of that first repulse that the veteran Schwerin himself got his death. No one times it for us; but the fact is unforgetable; and in the dim whirl of sequences dimly places itself there. Very certain it is ‘at sight of his own regiment in retreat,’ Field-marshal Schwerin seized the colors, as did other generals, who are not named, that day. Seizes the colors, fiery old man: ‘This way, my sons!’ and rides ahead along the straight dam again; his ‘sons’ all turning, and with hot repentance following. ‘On, my children, this way!’ Five bits of grape-shot, deadly each of them, at once hit the old man; dead he sinks there on his flag; and will never fight more.

“Fearful pulling, swaggering, and swaying are possible in this Sterbohol situation! After careful consideration, I suspect that it was after that first setback that the veteran Schwerin met his end. No one times it for us; but the reality is unforgettable, and in the chaotic flow of events, it fits in there. It’s very clear that ‘at the sight of his own regiment retreating,’ Field-marshal Schwerin grabbed the colors, just like other unnamed generals did that day. Grabbing the colors, the fiery old man shouted: ‘This way, my sons!’ and rode ahead along the straight path again; his ‘sons’ all turned around and, filled with remorse, followed him. ‘On, my children, this way!’ Five pieces of grape-shot, each deadly, struck the old man at once; he fell there on his flag, never to fight again.

“‘This way!’ storm the others with hot tears; Adjutant Von Platen takes the flag: Platen too is instantly shot; but another takes it. ‘This way, on!’ in wild storm of rage and grief; in a word, they managed to do the work at Sterbohol, they and the rest. First line, second line, infantry, cavalry (and even the very horses, I suppose), fighting inexpressibly; conquering one of the worst problems ever seen in war. For the Austrians too, especially their grenadiers there, stood to it toughly, and fought like men; and ‘every grenadier that survived of them,’ as I read afterward, ‘got double pay for life.’

“‘This way!’ the others shout with tears streaming down their faces; Adjutant Von Platen grabs the flag: Platen is shot instantly, but someone else picks it up. ‘This way, onward!’ in a chaotic storm of anger and sorrow; in short, they managed to accomplish the task at Sterbohol, along with the others. First line, second line, infantry, cavalry (and even the horses, I suppose), fighting fiercely; overcoming one of the toughest challenges ever faced in war. The Austrians, especially their grenadiers there, held their ground bravely and fought like warriors; and ‘every surviving grenadier,’ as I later read, ‘received double pay for life.’”

“Done, that Sterbohol work; those foot-chargings, horse-chargings; that battery of Homoly Hill; and, hanging upon that, all manner of redoubts and batteries to the rightward and rearward; but how it was done no pen can describe, nor any intellect in clear sequence understand. An enormous mêlée there: new Prussian battalions charging, and ever new, irrepressible by case-shot, as they successively get up; Marshal Browne, too, sending for new battalions at double-quick from his left, disputing stiffly every inch of his ground, till at length (hour not given), a cannon shot tore away his foot, and he had to be carried into Prague, mortally wounded. Which probably was a most important circumstance, or the most important of all.”

“Done, that Sterbohol work; those foot charges, horse charges; that battery on Homoly Hill; and, on top of that, all kinds of redoubts and batteries to the right and behind; but how it all happened no one can truly explain, nor can any mind comprehend it in a clear sequence. It was a massive mêlée: fresh Prussian battalions charging, and more and more coming, unstoppable by cannonballs, as they kept rising up; Marshal Browne, too, calling for new battalions at double time from his left, fighting hard for every inch of ground, until finally (exact time unknown), a cannonball took off his foot, and he had to be carried into Prague, mortally wounded. This was likely a very significant event, possibly the most critical of all.”

414 “This battle,” writes Frederick, “which began toward nine in the morning, was one of the bloodiest of the age. The enemy lost twenty-four thousand men, of whom four thousand were prisoners. The Prussian loss amounted to eighteen thousand fighting men, without counting Marshal Schwerin, who was alone worth above ten thousand. This day saw the pillars of the Prussian infantry cut down.”

414 “This battle,” writes Frederick, “which started around nine in the morning, was one of the bloodiest of the time. The enemy lost twenty-four thousand men, with four thousand taken prisoner. The Prussian loss was eighteen thousand soldiers, not including Marshal Schwerin, who was worth more than ten thousand on his own. This day marked the downfall of the Prussian infantry."

Immediately after the battle, Frederick wrote rather a stately letter to his mother, informing her of his victory, and that he was about to pursue the foe with a hundred and fifty thousand men. Fifty thousand of the defeated Austrians entered Prague, and stood at bay behind its ramparts. Frederick seized all the avenues, that no provisions could enter the city, convinced that starvation, combined with a vigorous assault, would soon compel the garrison to surrender themselves, the city, and all its magazines. On the 9th of May the bombardment with red-hot balls commenced. The siege lasted six weeks, creating an amount of misery over which angels might weep. The balls of fire were constantly kindling wide and wasting conflagrations. Soon a large portion of the city presented only a heap of smouldering ruins.

Immediately after the battle, Frederick wrote a formal letter to his mother, letting her know about his victory and that he was about to chase the enemy with a hundred and fifty thousand men. Fifty thousand of the defeated Austrians entered Prague and took shelter behind its walls. Frederick blocked all the routes so no supplies could get into the city, believing that a mix of starvation and a strong attack would soon force the garrison to surrender themselves, the city, and all its supplies. On May 9th, the bombardment with red-hot balls began. The siege lasted six weeks, causing immense suffering that could bring tears to angels. The fireballs continuously ignited large and destructive fires. Soon, a significant part of the city was just a pile of smoldering ruins.

Besides the garrison of fifty thousand there were eighty thousand inhabitants in the city, men, women, and children. Large numbers perished. Some died of starvation; some were burned to death in their blazing dwellings; some were torn to pieces by shot and shell; some were buried beneath the ruins of their houses. In the stillness of the night the wails and groans of the sufferers were borne on the breeze to the ears of the Prussians in their intrenched camp. Starvation brought pestilence, which caused the death of thousands. The inhabitants, reduced to this state of awful misery, entreated the Austrian general to surrender. He refused, but forced out of the gates twelve thousand skeleton, starving people, who consumed the provisions, but could not contribute to the defense. Frederick drove the poor creatures back again at the point of the bayonet, threatening to shoot them all. The cruel act was deemed a necessity of war.

Besides the garrison of fifty thousand, there were eighty thousand people in the city, including men, women, and children. Many perished. Some died from starvation; some were burned alive in their burning homes; some were killed by gunfire and explosions; some were trapped under the rubble of their houses. In the silence of the night, the cries and moans of the suffering people drifted on the wind to the ears of the Prussians in their fortified camp. Starvation led to disease, which resulted in the deaths of thousands. The residents, pushed to this extreme misery, begged the Austrian general to surrender. He refused but forced twelve thousand starving, emaciated people out through the gates, who consumed the supplies but couldn’t help in the defense. Frederick drove the desperate souls back with the threat of bayonets, warning he would shoot them all. This cruel act was considered a necessary part of war.

Maria Theresa, anxious to save Prague, sent an army of sixty thousand men under General Daun to its relief. This army, on the rapid march, had reached Kolin, about fifty miles east of415 Prague. Should General Daun, as was his plan, attack Frederick in the rear, while the fifty thousand in Prague should sally out and attack him in front, ruin would be almost inevitable. Frederick, gathering thirty-four thousand men, marched rapidly to Kolin and attacked the foe with the utmost possible fierceness. The Austrians not only nearly twice outnumbered him, but were also in a very commanding position, protected by earthworks. Never did men fight more reckless of life than did the Prussians upon this occasion.

Maria Theresa, eager to save Prague, sent an army of sixty thousand men under General Daun to help. This army, on a rapid march, reached Kolin, about fifty miles east of 415 Prague. If General Daun, as planned, attacked Frederick from behind while the fifty thousand in Prague charged out to hit him from the front, defeat would be nearly guaranteed. Frederick, with thirty-four thousand men, quickly marched to Kolin and fiercely attacked the enemy. The Austrians not only outnumbered him nearly two to one but were also in a strong position, protected by fortifications. Never before had men fought so recklessly for their lives as the Prussians did on this occasion.

“And so from right wing to left,” writes Carlyle, “miles long there is now universal storm of volleying, bayonet charging, thunder of artillery, case-shot, cartridge-shot, and sulphurous devouring whirlwind; the wrestle very tough and furious, especially on the assaulting side. Here, as at Prague, the Prussian troops were one and all in the fire, each doing strenuously his utmost. There is no reserve left. All is gone up into one combustion. To fan the fire, to be here, there, fanning the fire where need shows, this is now Frederick’s function. This death-wrestle lasted, perhaps, four hours; till seven, or perhaps eight o’clock, of a June evening.”

“And so from right wing to left,” writes Carlyle, “for miles there is now a universal storm of gunfire, bayonet charges, and the roar of artillery, with case-shot, cartridge-shot, and a sulfurous whirlwind; the struggle is intense and furious, especially for the attackers. Here, just like in Prague, the Prussian troops are all in the line of fire, each giving their all. There are no reserves left. Everything has gone up in flames. To stoke the fire, to be here and there, fanning the flames where it’s needed, this is now Frederick’s role. This life-or-death struggle lasted, perhaps, four hours; until seven, or maybe eight o’clock, on a June evening.”

Frederick exposed himself like a common soldier. Indeed, it sometimes seems that, in the desperate state of his affairs, he sought the fatal bullet. All his efforts against the Austrians were in vain. The Prussians were repulsed with dreadful slaughter. After losing fourteen thousand men in killed, wounded, and prisoners, forty-five cannon, and twenty-two flags, Frederick was compelled to order a retreat. His magnificent regiment of guards, one thousand in number, picked men, undoubtedly the best body of troops in the world, was almost annihilated. The loss of the Austrians was about nine thousand men. They were so accustomed to be defeated by Frederick that they were equally surprised and delighted by this dearly-earned victory. The following plan will give the military reader an idea of the position of the hostile forces.

Frederick put himself at risk like a regular soldier. In fact, it sometimes seems that, given the desperate situation he was in, he was almost inviting a fatal bullet. All his attempts against the Austrians were futile. The Prussians faced a horrific defeat, suffering a loss of fourteen thousand men through kills, injuries, and captures, along with forty-five cannons and twenty-two flags. Frederick had no choice but to order a retreat. His esteemed regiment of guards, a thousand strong and undoubtedly the best troops in the world, was nearly wiped out. The Austrians lost around nine thousand men. They were so used to being defeated by Frederick that they were both surprised and thrilled by this hard-won victory. The following plan will provide the military reader with an idea of the positions of the opposing forces.

Still the conquerors had such dread of their foe that they dared not emerge from their ramparts to pursue him. Had they done so, they might easily have captured or slain his whole army. Frederick bore adversity with great apparent equanimity. He did not for a moment lose self-control, or manifest any agitation.416 With great skill he conducted his retreat. Immediately after the battle he wrote to his friend Lord Marischall:

Still, the conquerors were so afraid of their enemy that they didn't dare to leave their defenses to chase him. If they had, they could have easily captured or destroyed his entire army. Frederick handled the situation with a calm demeanor. He never lost control or showed any signs of distress.416 He skillfully managed his retreat. Right after the battle, he wrote to his friend Lord Marischall:

“Prosperity, my dear lord, often inspires a dangerous confidence. Twenty-three battalions were not sufficient to drive sixty thousand men from their intrenchments. Another time we will take our precautions better. Fortune has this day turned her back upon me. I ought to have expected it. She is a female, and I am not gallant. What say you to this league against the Margrave of Brandenburg? How great would be the astonishment of the great elector if he could see his great-grandson at war at the same time with the Russians, the Austrians, almost all Germany, and one hundred thousand French auxiliaries! I do not know whether it will be disgraceful in me to be overcome, but I am sure there will be no great glory in vanquishing me.”102

“Success, my dear lord, often leads to a dangerous overconfidence. Twenty-three battalions weren't enough to force sixty thousand men out of their fortifications. Next time, we'll be better prepared. Today, luck has turned against me. I should have anticipated it. Luck can be unreliable, and I'm not exactly heroic. What do you think about this alliance against the Margrave of Brandenburg? Just imagine the shock on the great elector's face if he saw his great-grandson fighting at the same time as the Russians, Austrians, nearly all of Germany, and a hundred thousand French auxiliaries! I don’t know if it would be embarrassing for me to be defeated, but I’m sure there's not much honor in defeating me.”__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

BATTLE OF KOLIN, JUNE 18, 1757.

BATTLE OF KOLIN, JUNE 18, 1757.

a a. Austrian Army, b b. Prussian Army. c. Ziethen’s Hussars. d. Nadasti’s Hussars. e. The Oak Wood.

a a. Austrian Army, b b. Prussian Army. c. Ziethen’s Hussars. d. Nadasti’s Hussars. e. The Oak Wood.

Frederick retreated down the banks of the Elbe, and sent couriers to the camp at Prague, ordering the siege immediately to be raised, and the troops to retire down the Moldau to join him at Leitmeritz. The news was received at the camp at two o’clock on Sunday morning, June 19, creating amazement and consternation. As Frederick was on his retreat with his broken battalions from the field of battle, parched with thirst, burning with heat, and smothered with dust, it is recorded that an old dragoon brought to the king, in his steel cap, some water which he had drawn from a well, saying to his sovereign, consolingly,

Frederick fell back along the banks of the Elbe and sent messengers to the camp at Prague, instructing them to lift the siege immediately and for the troops to retreat down the Moldau to meet him at Leitmeritz. The news reached the camp at two a.m. on Sunday, June 19, causing shock and distress. As Frederick was retreating with his weary battalions from the battlefield, parched, overheated, and covered in dust, it’s noted that an old dragoon approached the king, wearing his steel helmet, and offered him some water he had drawn from a well, reassuring him.

“Never mind, sire, God Almighty and we will mend this yet.417 The enemy may get a victory for once, but that does not send us to the devil.”

“Don't worry, my lord, God Almighty and we will fix this.417 The enemy might win this time, but that doesn’t mean we’re doomed.”

At Nimburg, about twenty miles from Kolin, where the retiring Prussians were crossing the Elbe, Frederick sat upon a green mound, lost in thought, as his troops defiled before him. He was scratching figures upon the sand with his stick.

At Nimburg, about twenty miles from Kolin, where the retreating Prussians were crossing the Elbe, Frederick sat on a green mound, deep in thought, as his troops marched past him. He was drawing figures in the sand with his stick.

AFTER THE DEFEAT.

“Raising his eyes,” says Archenholtz, “he surveyed, with speechless emotion, the small remnant of his life-guard of foot, his favorite battalion. It was one thousand strong yesterday morning, hardly four hundred now. All the soldiers of this chosen battalion were personally known to him—their names, their age, their native place, their history. In one day death had mowed them down. They had fought like heroes, and it418 was for him they had died. His eyes were visibly wet. Down his face rolled silent tears.”

“Raising his eyes,” says Archenholtz, “he looked, overwhelmed with emotion, at the small remainder of his life-guard of foot, his favorite battalion. It was one thousand strong yesterday morning, now barely four hundred. Every soldier in this chosen battalion was personally known to him—their names, their ages, their hometowns, their stories. In just one day, death had cut them down. They had fought like heroes, and they died for him. His eyes were clearly wet. Silent tears streamed down his face.”

Suddenly dashing the tears away, he issued his swift orders, and, mounting his horse, galloped to Prague, where he arrived Sunday evening. The next day the siege was raised, and the besieging troops were on the retreat north into Saxony. The whole army was soon rendezvoused at Leitmeritz, on the Elbe, about thirty miles south of Dresden. Here Frederick awaited the development of the next movement of his foes.

Suddenly wiping away his tears, he quickly gave his orders and, getting on his horse, rode to Prague, arriving Sunday evening. The next day, the siege was lifted, and the attacking troops retreated north into Saxony. The entire army soon gathered at Leitmeritz, on the Elbe, about thirty miles south of Dresden. Here, Frederick waited to see what his enemies would do next.

He had hardly arrived at Leitmeritz ere he received the tidings of the death of Sophia Dorothea, his mother. She died at Berlin on the 28th of June, 1757, in the seventy-first year of her age. This grief, coming in the train of disasters which seemed to be overwhelming his Prussian majesty, affected him very deeply. Frederick was subdued and softened by sorrow. He remembered the time when a mother’s love rocked his cradle, and wrapped him around with tender care. The reader will be surprised to learn that his grief—perhaps with some comminglings of remorse—was so great that he shut himself in his closet, and wept with sobbings like a child.

He had barely arrived in Leitmeritz when he received news of his mother, Sophia Dorothea's death. She passed away in Berlin on June 28, 1757, at the age of seventy-one. This sorrow, arriving amidst the series of disasters that seemed to be overwhelming the King of Prussia, affected him deeply. Frederick was subdued and softened by grief. He remembered the times when a mother’s love cradled him and enveloped him in tender care. Readers may be surprised to learn that his grief—perhaps mixed with some feelings of remorse—was so intense that he locked himself in his room and cried like a child.


CHAPTER XXVI.
Defeats and dangers.

Grief of the King over his Mother’s Death.—Interesting Letters.—Forces in the Field.—The March upon Dresden.—Devotion of Wilhelmina.—Atheism of the King.—Wilhelmina to Voltaire.—Despair of Frederick.—Great Victory of Rossbach.—Description of the Battle.—Utter Rout of the Allies.—Elation of Frederick.—His Poem on the Occasion.—Ravages of War.

The King’s Mourning for His Mother’s Death.—Fascinating Letters.—Troops on the Ground.—The Advance on Dresden.—Wilhelmina’s Loyalty.—The King’s Atheism.—Wilhelmina to Voltaire.—Frederick’s Despair.—Major Victory at Rossbach.—Overview of the Battle.—Total Defeat of the Allies.—Frederick’s Joy.—His Poem on the Occasion.—Devastation of War.

The tidings of the death of the king’s mother reached him on the 2d of July, 1757. Sir Andrew Mitchell, the English embassador in Berlin, gives the following account of an interview he had with Frederick on that occasion:

The news of the king’s mother’s death reached him on July 2, 1757. Sir Andrew Mitchell, the English ambassador in Berlin, provides the following account of a meeting he had with Frederick on that occasion:

“Yesterday, July 3d, the king sent for me, in the afternoon, the first time he has seen any body since the news came. I had the honor to remain with him in his closet. I must own I was most sensibly affected to see him indulging his grief, and giving way to the warmest filial affections; recalling to mind the many obligations he had to her late majesty; all she had suffered, and how nobly she had borne it; the good she did to every body;419 the one comfort he now had, that he tried to make her last years more agreeable.”

“Yesterday, July 3rd, the king summoned me in the afternoon, marking the first time he had seen anyone since the news arrived. I had the honor of staying with him in his private chamber. I have to admit, I was deeply moved to see him expressing his grief and giving in to the strongest feelings of love for his mother; reminiscing about all the obligations he had to the late queen; everything she endured, and how bravely she faced it; the good she did for everyone; the one comfort he has now is that he tried to make her final years more enjoyable.”419

SOPHIA DOROTHEA.

On the 1st of July, the day before the king heard of his mother’s death, he wrote to Wilhelmina, in reply to a letter from her which expressed great anxiety on his account:

On July 1st, the day before the king learned about his mother’s death, he wrote to Wilhelmina in response to a letter she sent expressing deep concern for him:

“Dear sister, fear nothing on my score. Men are always in the hand of what we call destiny. Accidents will befall people walking on the streets, sitting in their room, lying on their bed; and there are many who escape the perils of war.”

“Dear sister, don’t worry about me. People are always at the mercy of what we call destiny. Accidents can happen to anyone—whether they’re walking down the street, sitting in their room, or lying in bed; and there are many who manage to avoid the dangers of war.”

Again, on the 5th of July, he wrote: “I write to apprise you, my dear sister, of the new grief that overwhelms us. We have no longer a mother. This loss puts the crown on my sorrows. I am obliged to act, and have not time to give free course to my tears. Judge, I pray you, of the situation of a feeling heart put to so severe a trial. All losses in the world are capable of being remedied, but those which death causes are beyond the reach of hope.”

Again, on July 5th, he wrote: “I’m writing to let you know, my dear sister, about the new sorrow that overwhelms us. We no longer have a mother. This loss tops off my sorrows. I have to take action and don’t have time to fully let my tears flow. Please understand the situation of a sensitive heart facing such a tough challenge. All losses in the world can be fixed, but those caused by death are beyond hope.”

On the 7th of July he wrote again to Wilhelmina. The letter420 reveals the anxiety of his heart, and his earnest desire to escape, if possible, from his embarrassments. Wilhelmina had written, offering her services to endeavor to secure peace. The king replied:

On July 7th, he wrote to Wilhelmina again. The letter420 shows the worry in his heart and his strong wish to find a way out of his troubles. Wilhelmina had offered her help to try to achieve peace. The king responded:

“You are too good. I am ashamed to abuse your indulgence. But do, since you are willing, try and sound the French, and learn what conditions of peace they would demand. Send that Mirabeau103 to France. Willingly will I pay the expense. He may offer as much as five million thalers [$3,750,000] to the Favorite104 for peace alone.”

“You're too generous. I feel bad taking advantage of your kindness. But please, since you're willing, try to get in touch with the French and find out what peace terms they would ask for. Send that Mirabeau103 to France. I'll gladly cover the costs. He might offer as much as five million thalers [$3,750,000] to the Favorite104 just for peace.”

Soon after this, Frederick again wrote to his sister a letter which throws so much light upon his character that we give it almost entire:

Soon after this, Frederick wrote another letter to his sister that reveals so much about his character that we’re sharing it almost in full:

“Leitmeritz, July 13, 1757.

“Leitmeritz, July 13, 1757.

My dear Sister,—Your letter has arrived. I see in it your regrets for the irreparable loss we have had of the best and worthiest mother in this world. I am so overwhelmed by these blows from within and without that I feel myself in a sort of stupefaction.

My dear Sister,—I received your letter. I can see your sadness over the irreplaceable loss of our wonderful and deserving mother. I feel so overwhelmed by these challenges from both inside and outside that I’m kind of numb.

“The French have seized upon Friesland, and are about to pass the Weser. They have instigated the Swedes to declare war against me. The Swedes are sending seventeen thousand men into Pomerania. The Russians are besieging Memel. General Schwald has them on his front and in his rear. The troops of the empire are also about to march. All this will force me to evacuate Bohemia so soon as that crowd of enemies gets into motion.

“The French have taken Friesland and are about to cross the Weser. They’ve pushed the Swedes to declare war on me. The Swedes are sending seventeen thousand soldiers into Pomerania. The Russians are besieging Memel. General Schwald has them both in front of him and behind him. The empire's troops are also preparing to move. All of this will force me to evacuate Bohemia as soon as that group of enemies gets moving.”

“I am firmly resolved on the utmost efforts to save my country. Happy the moment when I took to training myself in philosophy. There is nothing else that can sustain a soul in a situation like mine. I spread out to you, my dear sister, the detail of my sorrows. If these things regarded myself only, I could stand it with composure. But I am the bound guardian of the happiness of a people which has been put under my charge. There lies the sting of it. And I shall have to reproach myself with every fault if, by delay or by overhaste, I occasion the smallest accident.

“I am fully committed to doing everything I can to protect my country. It was a turning point for me when I began studying philosophy. There’s nothing else that can support a soul in a situation like mine. I share with you, my dear sister, the details of my struggles. If these troubles affected only me, I could manage calmly. But I am accountable for the happiness of the people entrusted to me. That’s where the pain lies. I will have to hold myself responsible for any mistakes if, due to delay or haste, I cause even the smallest issue.”

“I am in the condition of a traveler who sees himself surrounded421 and ready to be assassinated by a troop of cut-throats, who intend to share his spoils. Since the league of Cambrai105 there is no example of such a conspiracy as that infamous triumvirate, Austria, France, Russia, now forms against me. Was it ever before seen that three great princes laid plot in concert to destroy a fourth who had done nothing against them? I have not had the least quarrel either with France or with Russia, still less with Sweden.

“I feel like a traveler surrounded and about to be attacked by a group of ruthless criminals eager to divide their loot. Since the league of Cambrai, there hasn't been a conspiracy as notorious as this infamous trio—Austria, France, and Russia—uniting against me. Has there ever been a time when three powerful leaders worked together to eliminate a fourth who hasn’t harmed them at all? I have had no conflicts with either France or Russia, and even less with Sweden.”

“Happy, my dear sister, is the obscure man whose good sense, from youth upward, has renounced all sorts of glory; who, in his safe and humble place, has none to envy him, and whose fortune does not excite the cupidity of scoundrels. But these reflections are vain. We have to be what our birth, which decides, has made us in entering upon this world.

“Happy, my dear sister, is the unknown person whose good judgment, from a young age, has turned away from all kinds of fame; who, in his secure and modest position, has no one to envy him, and whose wealth doesn’t provoke the greed of those with bad intentions. But these thoughts are pointless. We must be what our birth, which determines our fate, has made us when we entered this world.

“I beg a thousand pardons, my dear sister. In these three long pages I talk to you of nothing but my troubles and affairs. A strange abuse it would be of any other person’s friendship. But yours, my dear sister, is known to me; and I am persuaded that you are not impatient when I open to you my heart—a heart which is yours altogether, being filled with sentiments of the tenderest esteem, with which I am, my dearest sister, your

“I’m so sorry, my dear sister. In these three long pages, I only talk about my troubles and issues. It would be a strange misuse of anyone else’s friendship. But yours, my dear sister, I truly understand; and I believe you’re not annoyed when I share my feelings—a heart that is entirely yours, filled with the deepest appreciation, with which I am, my dearest sister, your

Frederick.”

Frederick.”

At this time the whole disposable force of his Prussian majesty did not exceed eighty thousand men. There were marching against him combined armies of not less, in the aggregate, than four hundred thousand. A part of the Prussian army, about thirty thousand strong, under the king’s eldest brother, Augustus William, Prince of Prussia, was sent north, especially to protect Zittau, a very fine town of about ten thousand inhabitants, where Frederick had gathered his chief magazines. Prince Charles, with seventy thousand Austrians, pursued this division. He outgeneraled the Prince of Prussia, drove him into wild country roads, took many prisoners, captured important fortresses, and, opening a fire of red-hot shot upon Zittau, laid the whole place, with its magazines, in ashes. The Prince of422 Prussia, who witnessed the conflagration which he could not prevent, retreated precipitately toward Lobau, and thence to Bautzen, with his army in a deplorable condition of exhaustion and destitution.

At this time, the entire disposable force of the Prussian king was only around eighty thousand men. Facing him were combined armies totaling over four hundred thousand. A section of the Prussian army, about thirty thousand strong, led by the king’s older brother, Augustus William, Prince of Prussia, was sent north specifically to safeguard Zittau, a lovely town with around ten thousand residents, where Frederick had stored essential supplies. Prince Charles, commanding seventy thousand Austrians, pursued this division. He outmaneuvered the Prince of Prussia, forcing him into rough backroads, capturing many soldiers, taking key fortresses, and bombarding Zittau with incendiary shots, leaving the entire town and its supplies in ruins. The Prince of Prussia, who could only watch the destruction unfold, retreated hastily toward Lobau and then to Bautzen, with his army in a terrible state of fatigue and deprivation.

Here Frederick, with the remainder of the army from Leitmeritz, joined his brother, against whom he was greatly incensed, attributing the disasters he had encountered to his incapacity. At four o’clock of the 30th of July the king met the Prince of Prussia and the other generals of the discomfited army. Both parties approached the designated spot on horseback. The king, who was accompanied by his suite, upon his arrival within about two hundred feet of the place where his brother, with his officers, was awaiting him, without saluting the prince or recognizing him in the slightest degree, dismounted, and threw himself in a reclining posture upon the greensward. General Goltz was then sent with the following message to the prince:

Here Frederick, along with the rest of the army from Leitmeritz, met up with his brother, who he was really angry with, blaming him for the setbacks he had faced due to his incompetence. At 4 PM on July 30th, the king met the Prince of Prussia and the other generals of the defeated army. Both sides rode up to the meeting spot on horseback. The king, accompanied by his entourage, when he got about two hundred feet from where his brother and his officers were waiting, didn't greet the prince or acknowledge him at all, dismounted, and lay down on the grass. General Goltz was then sent with this message to the prince:

“His majesty commands me to inform your royal highness that he has cause to be greatly discontented with you; that you deserve to have a court-martial held over you, which would sentence you and all your generals to death; but that his majesty will not carry the matter so far, being unable to forget that in the chief general he has a brother.”

“His majesty commands me to inform your royal highness that he is very dissatisfied with you; that you deserve to be court-martialed, which would lead to you and all your generals being sentenced to death; but his majesty will not take it that far, unable to forget that in the chief general, he has a brother.”

Augustus William, overwhelmed by his disgrace, and yet angered by the rebuke, coldly replied that he desired only that a court-martial should investigate the case and pronounce judgment. The king forbade that any intercourse whatever should take place between his own troops, soldiers, or officers, and those of his brother, who, he declared, had utterly degraded themselves by the loss of all courage and ambition. The prince sent to the king General Schultz to obtain the countersign for the army. Frederick refused to receive him, saying “that he had no countersign to send to cowards.” Augustus William then went himself to present his official report and a list of his troops. Frederick took the papers without saying a word, and then turned his back upon his brother. This cruel treatment fell with crushing force upon the unhappy prince. Conscious of military failure, disgraced in the eyes of his generals and soldiers, and abandoned by the king, his health and spirits alike failed him. The next morning he wrote a sad, respectfully reproachful letter to423 Frederick, stating that his health rendered it necessary for him to retire for a season from the army to recruit. The reply of the king, which was dated Bautzen, July 30, 1757, shows how desperate he, at that time, considered the state of his affairs. Hopeless of victory, he seems to have sought only death.

Augustus William, feeling overwhelmed by his disgrace and frustrated by the criticism, coldly replied that he only wanted a court-martial to investigate the situation and make a ruling. The king ordered that there should be no contact of any kind between his own troops, soldiers, or officers and those of his brother, declaring that they had completely degraded themselves by losing all courage and ambition. The prince sent General Schultz to the king to get the countersign for the army. Frederick refused to meet with him, stating “that he had no countersign to send to cowards.” Augustus William then went himself to submit his official report and a list of his troops. Frederick accepted the papers without saying a word and then turned his back on his brother. This cruel treatment hit the unfortunate prince hard. Aware of his military failures, disgraced in front of his generals and soldiers, and forsaken by the king, both his health and spirits deteriorated. The next morning, he wrote a sad and respectfully reproachful letter to Frederick, explaining that his health required him to step back from the army for a time to recover. The king's response, dated Bautzen, July 30, 1757, reflects how desperate he believed his situation was. With little hope for victory, he seemed to be seeking only death.

My dear Brother,—Your bad conduct has greatly injured my affairs. It is not the enemy, but your ill-concerted measures, which have done me this harm. My generals also are inexcusable, whether they gave you bad advice or only suffered you to come to such injudicious resolutions. In this sad situation it only remains for me to make a last attempt. I must hazard a battle. If we can not conquer, we must all of us have ourselves killed.

My dear Brother,—Your poor behavior has really hurt my situation. It isn’t the enemy, but your bad decisions that have caused this damage. My generals are also to blame, whether they gave you bad advice or just let you make these unwise choices. In this unfortunate position, I only have one last option left. I have to risk a battle. If we can’t win, we might as well all be killed.”

“I do not complain of your heart, but of your incapacity, and of the little judgment you have shown in making your decisions. A man who has but a few days to live need not dissemble. I wish you better fortune than mine has been, and that all the miseries and bad adventures you have had may teach you to treat important matters with greater care, sense, and resolution than you have hitherto done. The greatest part of the calamities which I now apprehend comes only from you. You and your children will suffer more from them than I shall. Be persuaded, nevertheless, that I have always loved you, and that with these sentiments I shall die.

“I’m not upset with your intentions, but with your inability and the poor judgment you’ve shown in your decisions. A man who has only a few days left to live doesn’t need to pretend. I hope you have better luck than I’ve had, and that all the hardships and bad experiences you’ve faced will teach you to handle important matters with more care, sense, and determination than you have so far. Most of the troubles I now fear come from you. You and your children will suffer from them more than I will. Nevertheless, believe that I have always loved you, and with these feelings, I will die.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

Upon the reception of this letter, the prince, without replying to it, verbally asked leave, through one of his officers, to throw up his commission and retire to his family in Berlin. The king scornfully replied, “Let him go; he is fit for nothing else.” In the deepest dejection the prince returned to his home. Rapidly his health failed, and before the year had passed away, as we shall have occasion hereafter to mention, he sank into the grave, deploring his unhappy lot.

Upon receiving this letter, the prince, without responding, asked through one of his officers for permission to resign his position and return to his family in Berlin. The king responded with disdain, saying, “Let him go; he’s good for nothing else.” In deep sadness, the prince went home. His health quickly declined, and before the year was over, as we will mention later, he passed away, lamenting his unfortunate fate.

Frederick speedily concentrated all his strength at Bautzen, and strove to draw the Austrians into a battle; but in vain. The heights upon which they were intrenched, bristling with cannon, he could not venture to assail. After three weeks of impatient manœuvring, Frederick gathered his force of fifty thousand424 men close in hand, and made a sudden rush upon Bernstadt, about fifty miles to the east of Bautzen. Here he surprised an Austrian division, scattered it to the winds, seized all its baggage, and took a number of prisoners. He also captured the field equipage, coach, horses, etc., of General Nadasti, who narrowly escaped.

Frederick quickly focused all his strength at Bautzen, trying to lure the Austrians into battle, but it was unsuccessful. He couldn't attack the heights where they were fortified and heavily armed. After three weeks of restless maneuvering, Frederick gathered his force of fifty thousand424 men close together and suddenly moved towards Bernstadt, about fifty miles east of Bautzen. There, he caught an Austrian division by surprise, scattering them, capturing all their supplies, and taking several prisoners. He also seized the field equipment, coach, horses, and more belonging to General Nadasti, who barely managed to escape.

The French, advancing from the Rhine on the west, were sweeping all opposition before them. They had overrun Hanover, and compelled the Duke of Brunswick, brother of George II., to withdraw, with his Hanoverian troops, from the alliance with the King of Prussia. This was a terrible blow to Frederick. It left him entirely alone to encounter his swarming enemies.

The French, moving from the Rhine in the west, were defeating all resistance in their path. They had taken over Hanover and forced the Duke of Brunswick, George II's brother, to pull his Hanoverian troops out of the alliance with the King of Prussia. This was a major setback for Frederick. It left him completely alone to face his many enemies.

The Prince of Soubise had rendezvoused fifty thousand French and Saxon troops at Erfurt, about a hundred and seventy miles west of Dresden. He had also, scattered around at different posts, easily accessible, a hundred thousand more well-armed and well-disciplined troops. Frederick took twenty-three thousand men and marched to assail these foes in almost despairing battle. To plunge with so feeble a band into such a mass of enemies seemed to be the extreme of recklessness.

The Prince of Soubise had gathered fifty thousand French and Saxon troops in Erfurt, about a hundred and seventy miles west of Dresden. He also had another hundred thousand well-armed and well-trained troops stationed at various posts, ready to move. Frederick led twenty-three thousand men and marched to attack these enemies in what seemed like a hopeless battle. Charging into such a large force with such a small group felt incredibly reckless.

On the 30th of August Frederick commenced his march from Dresden. Great caution was requisite, and great military skill, in so bold an adventure. On the 13th of September he reached Erfurt. The Prince of Soubise, aware of the prowess of his antagonist, retired to the hills and intrenched himself, waiting until he could accumulate forces which would render victory certain. Frederick had now with him his second brother, Henry, who seems to have very fully secured his confidence. On the 16th of September the king wrote:

On August 30th, Frederick began his march from Dresden. He needed to be very careful and skilled in military tactics for such a daring move. By September 13th, he arrived in Erfurt. The Prince of Soubise, knowing the strength of his opponent, retreated to the hills and fortified his position, waiting to gather enough forces to ensure victory. Frederick was now accompanied by his younger brother, Henry, who seemed to have earned his full trust. On September 16th, the king wrote:

“My brother Henry has gone to see the Duchess of Gotha to-day. I am so oppressed with grief that I would rather keep my sadness to myself. I have reason to congratulate myself much on account of my brother Henry. He has behaved like an angel, as a soldier, and well toward me as a brother. I can not, unfortunately, say the same of the elder. He sulks at me, and has sulkily retired to Torgau, from which place he has gone to Wittenberg. I shall leave him to his caprices and to his bad conduct; and I prophesy nothing for the future unless the younger guide him.”

“My brother Henry went to see the Duchess of Gotha today. I'm so overwhelmed with sadness that I'd rather keep it to myself. I have plenty of reasons to be happy about my brother Henry. He has acted like an angel, as a soldier, and has treated me well as a brother. Unfortunately, I can’t say the same about the older one. He’s sulking at me and has withdrawn to Torgau, from where he’s gone to Wittenberg. I’ll leave him to his moodiness and poor behavior; I don’t expect anything good for the future unless the younger one leads him.”

425 In these hours of trouble the noble Wilhelmina was as true to her brother as the magnet to the pole. She was appalled by no dangers, and roused all her energies to aid that brother, struggling, with the world arrayed against him. The king appreciated his sister’s love. In a poetic epistle addressed to her, composed in these hours of adversity, he wrote:

425 During these difficult times, noble Wilhelmina stood by her brother with unwavering loyalty, like a magnet to its pole. She was undeterred by any dangers and summoned all her strength to support him as he faced a world turned against him. The king recognized his sister’s affection. In a heartfelt letter he wrote to her, created during these challenging moments, he expressed:

“Oh sweet and dear hope of my remaining days! oh sister whose friendship, so fertile in resources, shares all my sorrows, and with a helpful arm assists me in the gulf! it is in vain that the destinies have overwhelmed me with disasters. If the crowd of kings have sworn my ruin, if the earth have opened to swallow me, you still love me, noble and affectionate sister. Loved by you, what is there of misfortune?”

“Oh sweet and dear hope of my remaining days! Oh sister whose friendship, so rich in support, shares all my sorrows and lends me a helping hand in the depths of despair! It is in vain that fate has overwhelmed me with disasters. If the crowd of kings has sworn my ruin, if the earth has opened to swallow me, you still love me, noble and caring sister. Loved by you, what misfortune can touch me?”

In conclusion, he gives utterance to that gloomy creed of infidelity and atheism which he had adopted instead of the Christian faith. “Thus destiny with a deluge of torments fills the poisoned remnants of my days. The present is hideous to me, the future unknown. Do you say that I am the creature of a beneficent being? I see that all men are the sport of destiny. And if there do exist some gloomy and inexorable being who allows a despised herd of creatures to go on multiplying here, he values them as nothing. He looks down on our virtues, our misdeeds, on the horrors of war, and on all the cruel plagues which ravage earth, as a thing indifferent to him. Wherefore my sole refuge and only haven, loved sister, is in the arms of death.”106

In the end, he expresses that dark belief in disbelief and atheism that he chose over the Christian faith. “So, fate fills the poisoned remains of my days with a flood of suffering. The present is ugly to me, and the future is uncertain. Do you claim that I am created by a benevolent being? I see that all people are played with by fate. And if there is some dark and unyielding being who permits a despised group of beings to keep multiplying here, he regards them as nothing. He overlooks our virtues, our wrongs, the horrors of war, and all the cruel plagues that ravage the earth as if they mean nothing to him. Therefore, my only refuge and safe haven, dear sister, is in the arms of death.”106

Twenty years before this, Frederick, in a letter to his friend Baron Suhm, dated June 6, 1736, had expressed the belief that, while the majority of the world perished at death, a few very distinguished men might be immortal.

Twenty years earlier, Frederick, in a letter to his friend Baron Suhm, dated June 6, 1736, had shared his belief that, while most people perish at death, a select few exceptional individuals might achieve immortality.

“The thought alone,” he wrote, “of your death, my dear Suhm, affords me an argument in proof of the immortality of the soul. For is it possible that the spirit which acts in you with so much clearness, brightness, and intelligence, which is so different from matter and from body—that fine soul endowed with so many solid virtues and agreeable qualities—is it possible that this should not be immortal? No! I would maintain in solid argument that, if the greatest part of the world were to be annihilated,426 you, Voltaire, Boileau, Newton, Wolfius, and some other geniuses of this order must be immortal.”107

“The very thought,” he wrote, “of your death, my dear Suhm, convinces me of the immortality of the soul. Can it be that the spirit within you, which shines with such clarity, brilliance, and intelligence, and is so distinct from matter and the physical body—that remarkable soul filled with so many strong virtues and delightful qualities—can it truly be non-immortal? No! I firmly argue that even if most of the world were to be wiped out, you, Voltaire, Boileau, Newton, Wolfius, and a few other minds of such caliber must be immortal.”107

Now, however, Frederick, in that downward path through which the rejecters of Christianity invariably descend, had reached the point at which he renounced all belief in the immortality of the soul and in the existence of God. In a poetic epistle addressed to Marshal Keith, he declares himself a materialist, and affirms his unwavering conviction that the soul, which he says is but the result of the bodily organization, perishes with that body. He declares suicide to be the only remedy for man in his hour of extremity.

Now, however, Frederick, in that downward path through which those who reject Christianity usually go, had reached the point at which he gave up all belief in the immortality of the soul and the existence of God. In a poetic letter addressed to Marshal Keith, he identifies as a materialist and asserts his strong belief that the soul, which he claims is just a product of the body's structure, dies with that body. He states that suicide is the only solution for a person in their moment of crisis.

Wilhelmina, in her distress in view of the peril of her brother, wrote to Voltaire, hoping that he might be persuaded to exert an influence in his favor.

Wilhelmina, feeling distressed about her brother's danger, wrote to Voltaire, hoping he could be persuaded to use his influence to help him.

“The king, my brother,” she wrote, “supports his misfortunes with a courage and a firmness worthy of him. I am in a frightful state, and will not survive the destruction of my house and family. That is the one consolation that remains to me. I can not write farther of it. My soul is so troubled that I know not what I am doing. To me there remains nothing but to follow his destiny if it is unfortunate. I have never piqued myself on being a philosopher, though I have made many efforts to become so. The small progress I made did teach me to despise grandeur and riches. But I could never find in philosophy any cure for the wounds of the heart, except that of getting done with our miseries by ceasing to live. The state I am in is worse than death. I see the greatest man of his age, my brother, my friend, reduced to the most frightful extremity. I see my whole family exposed to dangers and, perhaps, destruction. Would to Heaven I were alone loaded with all the miseries I have described to you.”

“The king, my brother,” she wrote, “faces his misfortunes with a bravery and strength that suit him. I’m in a terrible state and won’t survive the ruin of my home and family. That’s the only comfort I have left. I can’t write any more about it. My soul is so distressed that I don’t know what I’m doing. I have nothing left but to share his fate if it turns out badly. I’ve never claimed to be a philosopher, even though I’ve tried hard to become one. The little progress I made taught me to look down on wealth and status. But I could never find in philosophy any remedy for the wounds of the heart, except the option of ending our suffering by ceasing to live. My situation is worse than death. I see the greatest man of his time, my brother, my friend, brought to the most dreadful point. I see my entire family facing dangers and possibly destruction. I wish to Heaven that I were alone, bearing all the miseries I’ve described to you.”

Five days after this letter was written to Voltaire by Wilhelmina from Baireuth, Frederick, on the 17th of September, 1757, wrote his sister from near Erfurt. This letter, somewhat abbreviated, was as follows:

Five days after Wilhelmina wrote this letter to Voltaire from Baireuth, Frederick wrote to his sister from near Erfurt on September 17, 1757. This letter, slightly shortened, was as follows:

“My dearest Sister,—I find no other consolation but in your precious letters. May Heaven108 reward so much virtue and such427 heroic sentiments! Since I wrote you last my misfortunes have but gone on accumulating. It seems as though destiny would discharge all its wrath and fury upon the poor country which I had to rule over. I have advanced this way to fall upon a corps of the allied army, which has run off and intrenched itself among hills, whither to follow, still more to attack them, all rules of war forbid. The moment I retire toward Saxony this whole swarm will be upon my heels. Happen what may, I am determined, at all risks, to fall upon whatever corps of the enemy approaches me nearest. I shall even bless Heaven for its mercy if it grant me the favor to die sword in hand.

“My dear Sister,—the only comfort I have is your cherished letters. May Heaven__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ reward such virtue and those heroic feelings! Since my last letter, my misfortunes have only multiplied. It feels like fate is unleashing all its anger on the unfortunate country I have to govern. I’ve come here to confront a part of the allied army that has retreated and fortified themselves in the hills, and pursuing or attacking them goes against all wartime rules. The moment I turn back toward Saxony, this whole crowd will be right behind me. No matter what happens, I am resolved, at all costs, to face the enemy corps that comes closest to me. I would even be thankful to Heaven for its mercy if it allows me to die fighting.

“Should this hope fail me, you will allow that it would be too hard to crawl at the feet of a company of traitors to whom successful crimes have given the advantage to prescribe the law to me. If I had followed my own inclinations I should have put an end to myself at once after that unfortunate battle which I lost. But I felt that this would be weakness, and that it behooved me to repair the evil which had happened. But no sooner had I hastened this way to face new enemies than Winterfield was beaten and killed near Gorlitz; than the French entered the heart of my states; than the Swedes blockaded Stettin. Now there is nothing effective left for me to do. There are too many enemies. Were I even to succeed in beating two armies, the third would crush me. As for you, my incomparable sister, I have not the heart to turn you from your resolves. We think alike, and I can not condemn in you the sentiments which I daily entertain. Life has been given us as a benefit. When it ceases to be such— I have nobody left in this world to attach me to it but you. My friends, the relations I loved most, are in the grave. In short, I have lost every thing. If you take the resolution which I have taken, we end together our misfortunes and our unhappiness.

“If this hope fails me, you must agree that it would be too hard to submit to a group of traitors who, through their successful crimes, have acquired the power to dictate the law to me. If I had followed my own feelings, I would have ended my life right after that unfortunate battle I lost. But I thought that would be a sign of weakness and that I needed to rectify the damage that had been done. However, barely had I rushed here to face new enemies than Winterfield was defeated and killed near Gorlitz; the French entered deep into my territories; the Swedes blockaded Stettin. Now there’s nothing left for me to do that will make a difference. There are too many foes. Even if I managed to defeat two armies, the third would overwhelm me. As for you, my amazing sister, I can’t bring myself to sway you from your decisions. We think alike, and I can’t criticize your feelings, which reflect my own. Life has been given to us as a gift. When it stops feeling that way— I have no one left in this world to keep me connected to it but you. My friends and the loved ones I cared for most are gone. In short, I have lost everything. If you make the same choice I have, we will end our misfortunes and sorrow together.”

“But it is time to end this long, dreary letter. I have had some leisure, and have used it to open to you a heart filled with admiration and gratitude toward you. Yes, my adorable sister, if Providence troubled itself about human affairs, you ought to be the happiest person in the universe. Your not being such confirms me in the sentiments expressed in my epistle.”

“But it’s time to conclude this long, dreary letter. I’ve had some free time, and I’ve used it to share with you a heart full of admiration and gratitude. Yes, my wonderful sister, if fate took an interest in human affairs, you should be the happiest person in the world. The fact that you’re not only emphasizes what I wrote in this letter.”

In his “epistle” Frederick had expressed the opinion that428 there was no God who took any interest in human affairs. He had also repeatedly expressed the resolve to Wilhelmina, and to Voltaire, to whom he had become partially reconciled, that he was prepared to commit suicide should events prove as disastrous as he had every reason to expect they would prove. He had also urged his sister to follow his example, and not to survive the ruin of the family. Such was the support which the king, in hours of adversity, found in that philosophy for which he had discarded the religion of Jesus Christ.

In his “letter,” Frederick shared his belief that428 there was no God who cared about human affairs. He also often told Wilhelmina and Voltaire, with whom he had partially reconciled, that he was ready to take his own life if things turned out to be as disastrous as he expected. He even encouraged his sister to do the same and not to live on after the family’s downfall. This was the kind of support the king found in the philosophy he had chosen over the religion of Jesus Christ during tough times.

On the 15th of September, two days before Frederick had written the despairing letter we have just given, Wilhelmina wrote again to him, in response to previous letters, and to his poetic epistle.

On September 15th, two days before Frederick wrote the despairing letter we just shared, Wilhelmina wrote to him again, replying to his earlier letters and his poetic message.

My dearest Brother,—Your letter and the one you wrote to Voltaire have nearly killed me. What fatal resolutions, great God! Ah! my dear brother, you say you love me, and you drive a dagger into my heart. Your epistle, which I did receive, made me shed rivers of tears. I am now ashamed of such weakness. My misfortune would be so great that I should find worthier resources than tears. Your lot shall be mine. I shall not survive your misfortunes, or those of the house I belong to. You may calculate that such is my firm resolution.

My dearest Brother,—Your letter, along with the one you sent to Voltaire, has almost broken me. What tragic decisions, dear God! Oh, my beloved brother, you say you love me, yet you stab me in the heart. Your letter, which I received, made me cry rivers of tears. Now I’m ashamed of such weakness. My misfortune is so great that I should find better ways to cope than crying. Your fate will be mine. I won't get through your troubles, or those of the family I belong to. You can count on that being my firm resolve.

“But, after this avowal, allow me to entreat you to look back at what was the pitiable state of your enemy when you lay before Prague. It is the sudden whirl of fortune for both parties. The like can occur again when one is the least expecting it. Cæsar was the slave of pirates, and yet he became master of the world. A great genius like yours finds resources even when all is lost.

“But after this confession, let me remind you of how desperate your enemy was when you were at the gates of Prague. Fortune can change quickly for both sides. Something similar could happen again when you least expect it. Caesar was once a captive of pirates, yet he became the ruler of the world. A brilliant mind like yours can find solutions even when everything seems lost.”

“I suffer a thousand times more than I can tell you. Nevertheless, hope does not abandon me. I am obliged to finish. But I shall never cease to be, with the most profound respect, your

“I suffer a thousand times more than I can say. Still, hope doesn’t leave me. I have to see this through. But I will always remain, with the deepest respect, your”

Wilhelmina.”

Wilhelmina.”

On the 11th of October an express courier reached Frederick’s camp with the alarming intelligence that an Austrian division of fifteen thousand men was on the march for Berlin. The city was but poorly fortified, and held a garrison of but four thousand429 troops. Frederick had no doubt that the Austrian army was acting in co-operation with other forces of the allies, advancing upon his metropolis from the east, north, and west. Immediately he collected all his available troops and commenced a rapid march for the protection of his capital. In the mean time Wilhelmina had heard of this new peril. A rumor also had reached her that there had been a battle, and that her brother was wounded. The following letter reveals the anguish of her heart:

On October 11th, an express courier arrived at Frederick’s camp with the alarming news that an Austrian division of fifteen thousand troops was on its way to Berlin. The city was poorly fortified and had only a garrison of four thousand soldiers. Frederick was certain that the Austrian army was working with other allied forces advancing on his capital from the east, north, and west. He quickly gathered all his available troops and began a rapid march to protect his city. Meanwhile, Wilhelmina learned about this new threat. She also heard a rumor that there had been a battle and that her brother was wounded. The following letter expresses the anguish in her heart:

“Baireuth, October 15, 1757.

“Baireuth, October 15, 1757.

My dearest Brother,—Death and a thousand torments could not equal the frightful state I am in. There run reports that make me shudder. Some say that you are wounded, others that you are dangerously ill. In vain have I tormented myself to have news of you. I can get none. Oh, my dear brother, come what may, I will not survive you. If I am to continue in this frightful uncertainty, I can not stand it. In the name of God, bid some one write to me.

My dearest Brother,—Nothing can compare to the intense suffering or even the thought of death that I feel in this terrible state. I’ve heard unsettling rumors that make me shiver. Some say you’ve been hurt, others that you’re seriously ill. I’ve been trying hard to find out how you are, but I can't get any information. Oh, my dear brother, no matter what happens, I can’t live without you. If I have to endure this frightening uncertainty any longer, I don’t know how I’ll cope. For the love of God, please have someone write to me.

“I know not what I have written. My heart is torn in pieces. I feel that by dint of disquietude and alarms I am losing my senses. Oh, my dear, adorable brother, have pity on me. The least thing that concerns you pierces me to the heart. Might I die a thousand deaths provided you lived and were happy! I can say no more. Grief chokes me. I can only repeat that your fate shall be mine; being, my dear brother, your

“I can hardly understand what I’ve written. My heart is broken. I feel like I’m losing my mind from all the anxiety and fear. Oh, my dear, beloved brother, please have mercy on me. Even the smallest thing that affects you hurts me deeply. I would gladly face a thousand deaths if it meant you would live and be happy! I can’t say anything more. My sorrow is overwhelming. All I can express is that your fate will be mine; being, my dear brother, your

Wilhelmina.”

Wilhelmina.”

It turned out that the rumor of the march upon Berlin was greatly exaggerated. General Haddick, with an Austrian force of but four thousand men, by a sudden rush through the woods, seized the suburbs of Berlin. The terrified garrison, supposing that an overwhelming force of the allied army was upon them, retreated, with the royal family and effects, to Spandau. General Haddick, having extorted a ransom of about one hundred and forty thousand dollars from the city, and “two dozen pair of gloves for the empress queen,” and learning that a division of Frederick’s army was fast approaching, fled precipitately. Hearing of this result, the king arrested his steps at Torgau, and returned to Leipsic. The Berliners asserted that “the two dozen pair of gloves were all gloves for the left hand.”

The rumor about the march on Berlin was clearly blown out of proportion. General Haddick, leading an Austrian force of only four thousand men, made a surprise move through the woods and took the suburbs of Berlin. The panicked garrison, thinking that a massive allied army was attacking, pulled back with the royal family and their belongings to Spandau. General Haddick, after demanding a ransom of about one hundred and forty thousand dollars from the city, plus “two dozen pair of gloves for the empress queen,” learned that a division of Frederick’s army was quickly approaching and fled in a hurry. Upon hearing this news, the king stopped at Torgau and went back to Leipsic. The people of Berlin claimed that “the two dozen pair of gloves were all gloves for the left hand.”

430 Frederick reached Leipsic on the 26th of October. The allied forces were rapidly concentrating in overwhelming numbers around him. On the 30th the king marched to the vicinity of Lutzen, where he encamped for the night. General Soubise, though in command of a force outnumbering that of the Prussians nearly three to one, retreated rapidly to the west before Frederick, and crossed the River Saale. Frederick followed, and effected the passage of the stream with but little opposition.

430 Frederick arrived in Leipsic on October 26th. The allied forces were quickly gathering in huge numbers around him. On the 30th, the king marched near Lutzen, where he set up camp for the night. General Soubise, despite leading a force that outnumbered the Prussians nearly three to one, quickly retreated to the west before Frederick and crossed the River Saale. Frederick followed and crossed the river with very little resistance.

MAP OF THE CAMPAIGN OF ROSSBACH.

After some manœuvring, the hostile forces met upon a wide, dreary, undulating plain, with here and there a hillock, in the vicinity of Rossbach. Frederick had twenty thousand men. The French general, Prince Soubise, had sixty thousand. The allies now felt sure of their prey. Their plan was to surround Frederick, destroy his army, and take him a prisoner. On the morning of the 5th of November the two hostile armies were nearly facing each other, a few miles west of the River Saale. A party of Austrians was sent by the general of the allies to destroy the bridges upon the river in the rear of the Prussians, that their retreat might be cut off. Frederick, from a house-top, eagerly watched the movement of his foes. To his surprise and great431 satisfaction, he soon saw the whole allied army commencing a circuitous march around his left to fall upon him in his rear.

After some maneuvering, the enemy forces met on a wide, bleak, rolling plain, with a few small hills scattered around, near Rossbach. Frederick had twenty thousand men. The French general, Prince Soubise, had sixty thousand. The allies were confident they had Frederick cornered. Their plan was to surround him, destroy his army, and capture him. On the morning of November 5th, the two opposing armies were nearly facing each other, a few miles west of the River Saale. The ally general sent a group of Austrians to destroy the bridges over the river behind the Prussians to cut off their retreat. Frederick, watching from the rooftop of a house, eagerly observed his enemies' movements. To his surprise and great satisfaction, he soon saw the entire allied army starting a long march around his left flank to attack him from behind.

Instantly, and “like a change of scene in the opera,” the Prussians were on the rapid march to the east in as perfect order as if on parade. Taking advantage of an eminence called James Hill, which concealed their movements from the allies, Frederick hurled his whole concentrated force upon the flank of the van of the army on the advance. He thus greatly outnumbered his foes at the point of attack. The enemy, taken by surprise in their long line of march, had no time to form.

Instantly, and “like a scene change in an opera,” the Prussians were quickly marching east in perfect order as if they were on parade. They took advantage of a rise called James Hill, which hid their movements from the allies, and Frederick launched his entire concentrated force against the side of the advancing army. This allowed him to significantly outnumber his enemies at the point of attack. The enemy, caught off guard during their extended march, had no time to organize.

“Compact as a wall, and with an incredible velocity, Seidlitz, in the blaze of rapid steel, is in upon them.” From the first it was manifest that the destruction of the advance-guard was certain. The Prussian cavalry slashed through it again and again, throwing it into inextricable disorder. In less than half an hour this important portion of the allied troops was put to utter rout, “tumbling off the ground, plunging down hill in full flight, across its own infantry, or whatever obstacle, Seidlitz on the hips of it, and galloping madly over the horizon.”

“Compact as a wall and with incredible speed, Seidlitz, in a flurry of rapid steel, charges at them.” From the start, it was clear that the destruction of the advance-guard was inevitable. The Prussian cavalry cut through it repeatedly, throwing it into complete chaos. In less than half an hour, this important part of the allied troops was completely routed, “tumbling to the ground, rushing downhill in full retreat, over its own infantry or any obstacle, with Seidlitz right on their tails, galloping wildly over the horizon.”

BATTLE OF ROSSBACH, NOVEMBER 5, 1757.

BATTLE OF ROSSBACH, NOVEMBER 5, 1757.

a a. First Position of Combined Army. b b. First Position of Prussian Camp. c c. Advance of Prussian Army. d d. Second Position of Combined Army. e e. Prussians retire to Rossbach. f. French Cavalry, under St. Germain. g g. March of Combined Army to attack Prussian Rear. h. Prussian Attack led by Seidlitz. i. Position of Prussian Guns.

a a. First Position of the Combined Army. b b. First Position of the Prussian Camp. c c. Advance of the Prussian Army. d d. Second Position of the Combined Army. e e. Prussians retreat to Rossbach. f. French Cavalry, led by St. Germain. g g. March of the Combined Army to attack the Prussian Rear. h. Prussian Attack led by Seidlitz. i. Position of Prussian Artillery.

And now the Prussian artillery, eighteen heavy guns, opened a rapid and murderous fire upon the disordered mass, struggling in vain to deploy in line of battle. Infantry, artillery, cavalry,432 all were at work, straining every nerve, one mighty mind controlling and guiding the terrible mechanism in its death-dealing blows. The French regiments were jammed together. The Prussians, at forty paces, opened a platoon fire of musketry, five shots a minute. At the same moment the impetuous Seidlitz, with his triumphant and resistless dragoons, plunged upon the rear. The centre of the allied army was thus annihilated. It was no longer a battle, but a rout and a massacre. In twenty minutes this second astonishing feat was accomplished.

And now the Prussian artillery, with eighteen heavy guns, unleashed a rapid and deadly fire on the chaotic crowd, struggling in vain to form into battle lines. Infantry, artillery, and cavalry were all engaged, pushing themselves to the limit, with one powerful mind controlling the terrifying system in its lethal strikes. The French regiments were crammed together. The Prussians, just forty paces away, opened fire with their muskets, firing five rounds a minute. At the same time, the eager Seidlitz, with his unstoppable dragoons, charged in from the rear. The center of the allied army was effectively destroyed. It was no longer a battle, but a rout and a massacre. In just twenty minutes, this second astonishing feat was achieved.

The whole allied army was now put wildly to flight, in one of the most humiliating and disastrous retreats which has ever occurred. There is generally some slight diversity of statement in reference to the numbers engaged on such occasions. Frederick gives sixty-three thousand as the allied force. The allies lost, in killed, wounded, and missing, about ten thousand men. The loss of the Prussians was but five hundred. The French, in a tumultuous mass, fled to the west. Crossing the Unstrut River at Freiburg, they burned the bridge behind them. The Prussians rebuilt the bridge, and vigorously pursued. The evening after the battle the king wrote as follows to Wilhelmina. His letter was dated “Near Weissenfels.”

The entire allied army was now in a total panic, experiencing one of the most humiliating and disastrous retreats in history. There's usually some variation in the numbers reported for these events. Frederick claims there were sixty-three thousand troops on the allied side. The allies suffered around ten thousand casualties, including killed, wounded, and missing. The Prussians only lost five hundred men. The French, in chaos, fled westward. After crossing the Unstrut River at Freiburg, they burned the bridge behind them. The Prussians quickly rebuilt the bridge and pursued them energetically. That evening after the battle, the king wrote a letter to Wilhelmina, dated "Near Weissenfels."

“At last, my dear sister, I can announce to you a bit of good news. You were doubtless aware that the Coopers with their circles had a mind to take Leipsic. I ran up and drove them beyond Saale. They called themselves 63,000 strong. Yesterday I went to reconnoitre them; could not attack them in the post they held. This rendered them rash. To-day they came out to attack me. It was a battle after one’s own heart. Thanks to God,109 I have not one hundred men killed. My brother Henry and General Seidlitz have slight hurts. We have all the enemy’s cannon. I am in full march to drive them over the Unstrut. You, my dear sister, my good, my divine, my affectionate sister, who deign to interest yourself in the fate of a brother who adores you, deign also to share my joy. The instant I have time I will tell you more. I embrace you with my whole heart. Adieu.

“Finally, my dear sister, I have some good news to share with you. You probably know that the Coopers and their groups wanted to take Leipsic. I went up and pushed them back beyond Saale. They claimed to have 63,000 men. Yesterday, I checked on them; I couldn't attack the position they were holding, which made them reckless. Today, they attacked me. It was a memorable battle. Thank God, I have fewer than a hundred men killed. My brother Henry and General Seidlitz have minor injuries. We captured all the enemy's cannons. I’m currently moving to drive them over the Unstrut. You, my dear sister, my good, wonderful, caring sister, who cares about the fate of a brother who cherishes you, please share in my happiness. As soon as I have time, I’ll tell you more. I embrace you with all my heart. Goodbye.”

F.”

F.”

Voltaire, speaking of this conflict, says, “It was the most inconceivable and complete rout and discomfiture of which history433 makes any mention. Thirty thousand French and twenty thousand imperial troops were there seen making a disgraceful and precipitate flight before five battalions and a few squadrons. The defeats of Agincourt, Cressy, and Poitiers were not so humiliating.”110

Voltaire, discussing this conflict, states, “It was the most unimaginable and total defeat that history433 mentions. Thirty thousand French troops and twenty thousand imperial soldiers were seen making a shameful and hurried retreat in front of five battalions and a few squadrons. The defeats at Agincourt, Cressy, and Poitiers were not as humiliating.”110

As usual, Frederick wrote a poem upon the occasion. It was vulgar and profane. Carlyle says of it, “The author, with a wild burst of spiritual enthusiasm, sings the charms of the rearward part of certain men. He rises to the height of anti-biblical profanity, quoting Moses on the Hill of Vision; sinks to the bottomless of human or ultra-human depravity, quoting King Nicomedes’s experience on Cæsar, happily known only to the learned. A most cynical, profane affair; yet we must say, by way of parenthesis, one which gives no countenance to Voltaire’s atrocities of rumor about Frederick himself in the matter.”111

As usual, Frederick wrote a poem for the occasion. It was crude and offensive. Carlyle comments, “The author, in a wild burst of spiritual passion, sings praises of the behind of certain men. He reaches the peak of anti-biblical obscenity, quoting Moses on the Hill of Vision; then plunges into the depths of human or ultra-human depravity, referencing King Nicomedes’s experience with Caesar, which is thankfully known only to scholars. A very cynical, profane piece; yet we should note, as a side comment, that it doesn’t support Voltaire’s outrageous rumors about Frederick in this regard.”111

The routed allies, exasperated and starving, and hating the Protestant inhabitants of the region through which they retreated, robbed and maltreated them without mercy. The woes which the defenseless inhabitants endured from the routed army in its flight no pen can adequately describe.

The defeated allies, frustrated and hungry, and resenting the Protestant residents of the area they were retreating through, robbed and abused them without compassion. The suffering that the helpless locals experienced from the fleeing army is beyond what words can fully capture.

An eye-witness writes from near Weissenfels, in a report to the King of Poland, whose allies the French were, and whose territories they were ravaging:

An eyewitness writes from near Weissenfels in a report to the King of Poland, whose allies were the French, and whose lands they were destroying:

“The French army so handled this place as not only to take from its inhabitants, by open force, all bread and articles of food, but likewise all clothes, bed-linens, and other portable goods. They also broke open, split to pieces, and emptied out all chests, boxes, presses, drawers; shot dead in the back-yards and on the roofs all manner of feathered stock, as hens, geese, pigeons. They carried off all swine, cows, sheep, and horses. They laid violent hands on the inhabitants, clapped swords, guns, and pistols to their breasts, threatening to kill them unless they brought out whatever goods they had; or hunted them out of their houses, shooting at them, cutting, sticking, and at last driving them away, thereby to have freer room to rob and plunder. They flung out hay and other harvest stock into the mud, and had it trampled to ruin under the horses’ feet.”

The French army took control of this place, not only seizing all the bread and food from the locals by force but also taking all their clothes, bed linens, and other portable valuables. They broke open, smashed, and emptied all chests, boxes, cabinets, and drawers; they shot and killed all kinds of birds, like hens, geese, and pigeons, in backyards and on roofs. They took away all pigs, cows, sheep, and horses. They violently attacked the inhabitants, pointing swords, guns, and pistols at their chests, threatening to kill them if they didn’t hand over their belongings; or they chased them out of their homes, shooting at them, stabbing and injuring them, ultimately driving them away to have more space to steal and loot. They tossed hay and other harvest goods into the mud and trampled them under the horses' feet.

“For a hundred miles around,” writes St. Germain, “the country434 is plundered and harried as if fire from heaven had fallen on it. Scarcely have our plunderers and marauders left the houses standing.”

“For a hundred miles around,” writes St. Germain, “the country434 is looted and ravaged as if fire from the sky had struck it. Hardly have our looters and raiders left any houses standing.”

This signal achievement raised the military fame of Frederick higher than ever before. Still it did not perceptibly diminish the enormous difficulties with which he was environed. Army after army was marching upon him. Even by a series of successful battles his forces might be annihilated. But the renown of the great victory of Rossbach will ever reverberate through the halls of history.

This major achievement boosted Frederick's military reputation to new heights. However, it didn't significantly lessen the huge challenges he faced. Army after army was advancing towards him. Even with a string of successful battles, his forces could still be wiped out. But the glory of the great victory at Rossbach will always echo through history.


CHAPTER XXVII.
The Leuthen Campaign.

Results of the Battle of Rossbach.—The Attack upon Breslau.—Extraordinary Address of the King to his Troops.—Confidence of the Prussians in their Commander.—Magnificent Array of the Austrians at Leuthen.—Tactics of Frederick.—The Battle Hymn.—The Battle and the Victory.—Scenes after the Battle.—Recapture of Breslau by Frederick.

Results of the Battle of Rossbach.—The Attack on Breslau.—Notable Speech by the King to his Soldiers.—The Prussians' Confidence in their Leader.—Striking Show by the Austrians at Leuthen.—Frederick's Strategy.—The Battle Song.—The Fight and the Victory.—Events Following the Battle.—Frederick's Reoccupation of Breslau.

The battle of Rossbach was fought on the 5th of November, 1757. Frederick had but little time to rejoice over his victory. The Austrians were overrunning Silesia. On the 14th of the month, the important fortress of Schweidnitz, with all its magazines, fell into their hands. Then Prince Charles, with sixty thousand Austrian troops, marched upon Breslau, the principal city of Silesia, situated on the Oder. The Prince of Bevern held the place with a little over twenty thousand Prussian troops. His army was strongly intrenched outside of the walls, under the guns of the city.

The battle of Rossbach took place on November 5, 1757. Frederick had little time to celebrate his victory. The Austrians were invading Silesia. On the 14th of the month, the key fortress of Schweidnitz, along with all its supplies, fell into their hands. Then Prince Charles, leading sixty thousand Austrian soldiers, advanced on Breslau, the main city of Silesia, located by the Oder River. The Prince of Bevern defended the city with just over twenty thousand Prussian troops. His army was well entrenched outside the walls, under the protection of the city's heavy artillery.

On the 22d of November the Austrians commenced their attack from five different points. It was a terrific conflict. Sixty thousand men stormed ramparts defended by twenty thousand as highly disciplined troops, and as desperate in valor, as ever stood upon a battle-field. The struggle commenced at three o’clock in the morning, and raged, over eight miles of country, until nine o’clock at night. Darkness and utter exhaustion terminated the conflict. The Austrians had lost, in killed and wounded, six thousand men, the Prussians eight thousand.

On November 22nd, the Austrians launched their attack from five different locations. It was an intense battle. Sixty thousand soldiers charged the fortifications defended by twenty thousand highly disciplined troops, just as brave and determined as any fighters on a battlefield. The fighting began at 3 a.m. and continued over eight miles of terrain until 9 p.m. Darkness and sheer exhaustion ended the clash. The Austrians suffered six thousand casualties, while the Prussians lost eight thousand.

Prince Bevern, aware that the battle would be renewed upon the morrow, and conscious that he could not sustain another435 such struggle, withdrew with his Prussian troops in the night, through the silent streets of Breslau, to the other side of the Oder, leaving eighty cannon behind him. The next morning, in visiting one of the outposts, he was surprised by a party of the Austrians and taken prisoner. It was reported that, fearing the wrath of the king, he had voluntarily allowed himself to be captured. General Kyau, the next in rank, took the command. He rapidly retreated. Breslau, thus left to its fate, surrendered, with its garrison of four thousand men, ninety-eight pieces of cannon, and vast magazines filled with stores of war. The next day was Sunday. Te Deums were chanted by the triumphant Austrians in the Catholic churches in Breslau, and thanks were offered to God that Maria Theresa had reconquered Silesia, and that “our ancient sovereigns are restored to us.”

Prince Bevern, knowing that the battle would resume the next day and realizing he couldn't handle another fight like that, secretly withdrew with his Prussian troops during the night through the quiet streets of Breslau to the other side of the Oder, leaving behind eighty cannons. The next morning, while checking on one of the outposts, he was caught off guard by a group of Austrians and taken prisoner. It was rumored that he had willingly let himself be captured out of fear of the king's anger. General Kyau, next in command, took over leadership. He quickly retreated. Breslau, left to fend for itself, surrendered along with its garrison of four thousand men, ninety-eight cannons, and large supplies of war material. The next day was Sunday. Te Deums were sung by the victorious Austrians in the Catholic churches of Breslau, giving thanks to God for Maria Theresa's reconquest of Silesia and celebrating that “our ancient sovereigns are restored to us.”

These were terrible tidings for Frederick. The news reached him at Gorlitz when on the rapid march toward Silesia. Prince Charles had between eighty and ninety thousand Austrian troops in the reconquered province. Frederick seemed to be marching to certain and utter destruction, as, with a feeble band of but about twenty thousand men, he pressed forward, declaring, “I will attack them if they stand on the steeples of Breslau.”

These were awful news for Frederick. He received the information in Gorlitz while quickly advancing toward Silesia. Prince Charles had around eighty to ninety thousand Austrian troops in the reclaimed province. Frederick appeared to be heading for undeniable disaster, as he moved forward with a weak group of just about twenty thousand men, stating, “I will attack them if they stand on the steeples of Breslau.”

On the evening of the 3d of December, 1757, the king arrived at Parchwitz, in the heart of Silesia, about thirty miles from Breslau. Here the wreck of Prince Bevern’s army joined him. Thus re-enforced, he could bring about thirty thousand men into the field. He immediately, in the night, assembled his principal officers, and thus addressed them; the words were taken down at the time. We give this characteristic address slightly abbreviated:

On the evening of December 3, 1757, the king arrived at Parchwitz, located in the heart of Silesia, about thirty miles from Breslau. Here, the remnants of Prince Bevern’s army joined him. With this reinforcement, he could field about thirty thousand men. That same night, he gathered his main officers and spoke to them; his words were recorded at the time. We present this notable address in a slightly shortened form:

“My friends, the disasters which have befallen us here are not unknown to you. Schweidnitz is lost. The Prince of Bevern is beaten. Breslau is gone, and all our war-stores there. A large part of Silesia is lost. Indeed, my embarrassments would be insuperable were it not that I have boundless trust in you. There is hardly one among you who has not distinguished himself by some memorable action. All these services I well know, and shall never forget.

“My friends, the disasters that have happened to us here are not unfamiliar to you. Schweidnitz is lost. The Prince of Bevern has been defeated. Breslau is gone, along with all our supplies there. A significant part of Silesia is lost. Honestly, my challenges would be overwhelming if it weren't for the immense trust I have in all of you. There’s hardly anyone among you who hasn’t stood out with some remarkable action. I recognize all these contributions, and I will never forget them.”

“I flatter myself that now nothing will be wanting of that valor which the state has a right to expect of you. The hour is436 at hand. I should feel that I had accomplished nothing were I to leave Silesia in the hands of Austria. Let me then apprise you that I intend to attack Prince Charles’s army, which is nearly thrice the strength of our own, wherever I can find it. It matters not what are his numbers, or what the strength of his position. All this by courage and by skill we will try to overcome. This step I must risk, or all is lost. We must beat the enemy, or perish before his batteries. If there be any one who shrinks from sharing these dangers with me, he can have his discharge this evening.”

“I believe that now I will show the courage that the state has every right to expect from you. The moment is436 upon us. I would feel that I had achieved nothing if I were to leave Silesia in Austria's hands. So, let me inform you that I plan to attack Prince Charles’s army, which is almost three times our size, wherever I can find it. His numbers and the strength of his position don't matter. With courage and skill, we will try to overcome all of that. I must take this risk, or all is lost. We must defeat the enemy or be destroyed by his guns. If there’s anyone who is afraid to face these dangers with me, they can leave this evening.”

The king paused. A general murmur of applause indicated the united resolve to conquer or to die. Frederick immediately added:

The king paused. A general murmur of applause showed their determination to conquer or to die. Frederick immediately added:

“Yes, I knew it. Not one of you will forsake me. I rely upon your help and upon victory as sure. The cavalry regiment that does not, on the instant, on order given, dash full plunge into the enemy, I will directly after the battle unhorse, and make it a garrison regiment. The infantry battalion which, meet with what it may, shows the least sign of hesitating, loses its colors and its sabres, and I cut the trimmings from its uniform.

“Yes, I knew it. Not one of you will abandon me. I count on your support and on victory as certain. The cavalry unit that doesn’t immediately charge into the enemy when ordered will be dismounted after the battle and turned into a garrison unit. The infantry battalion that, no matter what happens, shows the slightest hesitation will lose its flags and sabers, and I’ll remove the decorations from its uniforms.”

“I shall be in the front and in the rear of the army. I shall fly from one wing to the other. No squadron and no company will escape my observation. Those who act well I will reward, and will never forget them. We shall soon either have beaten the enemy or we shall see each other no more.”

“I’ll be at the front and the back of the army. I’ll move quickly from one side to the other. No unit or company will slip past my watch. I’ll reward those who perform well and will always remember them. Soon, we’ll either defeat the enemy, or we won’t see each other again.”

After this address to the assembled generals Frederick rode out to the camp, and addressed each regiment in the most familiar and fatherly, yet by no means exultant terms. It was night. The glare of torches shed a lurid light upon the scene. The first regiment the king approached was composed of the cuirassiers of the Life Guard.

After this speech to the gathered generals, Frederick rode out to the camp and spoke to each regiment in a friendly and fatherly manner, but without any hint of triumph. It was nighttime. The bright light from the torches cast an eerie glow on the scene. The first regiment the king approached was made up of the cuirassiers of the Life Guard.

“Well, my children,” said Frederick, “how do you think that it will be with us now? The Austrians are twice as strong as we.”

“Well, my children,” said Frederick, “what do you think it will be like for us now? The Austrians are twice as powerful as we are.”

“Never you mind that,” they replied. “The Austrians are not Prussians. You know what we can do.”

“Don’t worry about that,” they replied. “The Austrians aren’t Prussians. You know what we’re capable of.”

“Indeed I do,” the king responded. “Otherwise I durst not risk a battle. And now, my children, a good night’s sleep to you. We shall soon attack the enemy; and we shall beat him, or we shall all die.”

“Of course I do,” the king replied. “Otherwise, I wouldn’t dare risk a battle. And now, my children, have a good night’s sleep. We’ll soon attack the enemy, and we will either defeat them or we will all perish.”

437 “Yes, death or victory,” they shouted. Then from loving lips the cheer ran along the line, “Good-night, Fritz.”

437 “Yes, death or victory,” they shouted. Then from caring lips the cheer spread along the line, “Good-night, Fritz.”

And thus the king passed from regiment to regiment. Perhaps no commander, excepting Napoleon, has ever secured to an equal degree the love of his soldiers. It is said that a deserter was brought before him.

And so the king went from one regiment to another. Maybe no other commander, except Napoleon, has ever earned the same level of affection from his soldiers. They say a deserter was brought before him.

“What induced you to desert me?” inquired the king.

“What made you leave me?” the king asked.

“Alas! your majesty,” the man replied, “we are so few, and the Austrians are so many, that defeat is certain.”

“Unfortunately, your majesty,” the man replied, “we are so few, and the Austrians are so many, that defeat is unavoidable.”

“Well,” the king replied, kindly, “try it one day more. If we do not mend matters, you and I will both desert together.”

“Well,” the king said kindly, “let's give it one more day. If things don’t improve, we’ll both leave together.”

The Austrian army, which outnumbered the Prussian over three to one, was in a camp, very strongly fortified, near Breslau. A council of war was held. Some of the Austrian officers, dreading the prowess of their redoubtable opponent, advised that they should remain behind their intrenchments, and await an attack. It would, of course, be impossible for less than thirty thousand men to storm ramparts bristling with artillery, and defended by nearly ninety thousand highly disciplined and veteran troops.

The Austrian army, which was over three times larger than the Prussian forces, was camped in a heavily fortified location near Breslau. A war council was convened. Some of the Austrian officers, fearing the skill of their formidable opponent, suggested that they stay behind their defenses and wait for an attack. It would be nearly impossible for fewer than thirty thousand men to assault ramparts filled with artillery and defended by almost ninety thousand well-trained and experienced troops.

Others, however, urged that this was ignoble and cowardly; that it would expose them to the derision of the world if they, with their overwhelming numbers, were to take shelter behind their ramparts, fearing to attack so feeble a band. Prince Charles, anxious to regain lost reputation, and elated by the reconquest of Silesia, adopted the more heroic resolve, and marched out to meet the foe.

Others, however, argued that this was shameful and cowardly; that it would make them the laughingstock of the world if they, with their huge numbers, took shelter behind their walls, afraid to fight such a weak group. Prince Charles, eager to regain his lost reputation and excited by the recapture of Silesia, chose the bolder option and marched out to confront the enemy.

With great joy Frederick learned that the Austrians had left their camp, and were on the advance to attack him. He immediately put his little army in motion for the perilous and decisive conflict. It was four o’clock Sunday morning, December 4, 1757, when Frederick left Parchwitz on his march toward Breslau. He was familiar with every square mile of the region. The Austrians were so vastly superior in numbers that many of them quite despised the weakness of the Prussian army. Many jokes were tossed about in the Austrian camp respecting the feeble band of Frederick, which they contemptuously called the “Potsdam Guard.”

With great excitement, Frederick learned that the Austrians had left their camp and were moving to attack him. He quickly got his small army ready for the risky and crucial battle. It was four o'clock on Sunday morning, December 4, 1757, when Frederick left Parchwitz to march toward Breslau. He knew every square mile of the area well. The Austrians had such a huge numerical advantage that many of them looked down on the weakened Prussian army. There were many jokes being made in the Austrian camp about Frederick's feeble group, which they scornfully called the "Potsdam Guard."

The Austrians, on the careless and self-confident march toward Parchwitz, had crossed the Schweidnitz River, or Water, as it438 was called, when they learned that Frederick, with a tiger-like spring, had leaped upon Neumarkt, an important town fourteen miles from Parchwitz. Here the Austrians had a bakery, protected by a guard of a thousand men. Seven hundred of the guard were instantly sabred or taken prisoners. The rest fled wildly. Frederick gathered up eighty thousand hot bread rations, with which he feasted his hungry troops.

The Austrians, in their careless and overconfident march toward Parchwitz, had crossed the Schweidnitz River, also known as the Water, when they found out that Frederick had made a fierce surprise attack on Neumarkt, an important town just fourteen miles from Parchwitz. The Austrians had a bakery there, guarded by a thousand soldiers. Seven hundred of the guards were quickly killed or captured. The rest ran away in panic. Frederick collected eighty thousand fresh bread rations, which he used to feed his starving troops.

MAP OF THE LEUTHEN CAMPAIGN.

Early on Monday morning the Prussians advanced from Neumarkt, eight miles, to Borne. Here they met the advance-guard of the Austrian cavalry. It was a dark, foggy morning. Frederick, as usual, was with his vanguard. Almost before the Austrians were conscious of the presence of the foe, they were assailed, with the utmost impetuosity, in front and on both their flanks. Instantly they were thrown into utter confusion. The ground was covered with their dead. Their general, Nostitz, was fatally wounded, and died the next day. Five hundred and forty were taken prisoners. The bleeding, breathless remnant fled pell-mell back to the main body, a few miles in the rear.

Early on Monday morning, the Prussians moved out from Neumarkt, eight miles, to Borne. There, they encountered the advance guard of the Austrian cavalry. It was a dark, foggy morning. Frederick, as usual, was with his vanguard. Almost before the Austrians realized that they were under attack, they were violently struck from the front and both sides. They were immediately thrown into complete chaos. The ground was littered with their dead. Their general, Nostitz, was seriously wounded and died the next day. Five hundred and forty were taken prisoner. The bleeding, breathless survivors rushed back in disarray to the main force, a few miles behind.

Frederick, pressing forward directly east, toward Leuthen, ascended an eminence, the height of Scheuberg, whence he beheld,439 directly before him, the whole majestic Austrian army. It extended for a distance of about five miles, drawn up in battle-array across his path, from the village of Nypern on the north, through Leuthen, to the village of Sagschütz on the south. So distinctly were their military lines spread out before the eye that Frederick, with his glass, could count them, man by man. Carefully the king studied the position of the enemy, and formed his plan of attack. He designed, while bewildering the Austrians by his manœuvres, to direct the whole concentrated strength of his army upon their extreme left wing. He hoped thus, by the desperate impetuosity of his attack, to roll that whole left wing together in utter ruin before the centre or the right could come to its aid. He would then press on, with numbers ever overpowering the Austrians at the point of attack, until the whole line, five miles in length, was annihilated.

Frederick, moving straight east toward Leuthen, climbed to a rise, the height of Scheuberg, from where he saw, 439 directly in front of him, the entire impressive Austrian army. It stretched for about five miles, lined up for battle across his route, from the village of Nypern in the north, through Leuthen, to the village of Sagschütz in the south. The military formations were so clearly defined that Frederick, using his binoculars, could count them one by one. The king carefully analyzed the enemy's position and devised his attack plan. He intended to confuse the Austrians with his maneuvers while directing the full concentrated strength of his army at their far left wing. He believed that, by launching a fierce and sudden attack, he could completely destroy that left wing before the center or right could come to help. He would then push forward, with numbers overwhelming the Austrians at the point of attack, until the entire five-mile line was defeated.

An eye-witness thus describes the tactics by which Frederick executed his design: “It is a particular manœuvre which, up to the present time, none but Prussian troops can execute with the precision and velocity indispensable to it. You divide your line into many pieces. You can push these forward stair-wise, so that they shall halt close to one another. Forming itself in this way, a mass of troops takes up in proportion very little ground. And it shows in the distance, by reason of the mixed uniforms and standards, a totally chaotic mass of men, heaped one on another. But it needs only that the commander lift his finger, and instantly this living coil of knotted intricacies develops itself in perfect order, and with a speed like that of mountain rivers.”112

An eyewitness describes the tactics Frederick used to carry out his plan: “It's a specific maneuver that, to this day, only Prussian troops can execute with the precision and speed required. You break your line into many sections. You can advance these sections step by step, so that they stop close to each other. This way, a large number of troops takes up very little space. From a distance, due to the mixed uniforms and flags, it appears as a completely chaotic mass of soldiers piled on top of each other. But as soon as the commander raises his finger, this tangled mass instantly organizes into perfect order, moving with the speed of rushing mountain rivers.”112

“It was a beautiful sight,” writes Tempelhof. “The heads of the columns were constantly on the same level, and at the distance necessary for forming. All flowed on exact as if in a review. And you could read in the eyes of our brave troops the temper they were in.”

“It was a beautiful sight,” writes Tempelhof. “The tops of the columns were always at the same height, and at the right distance for formation. Everything moved in perfect unison as if in a parade. You could see the determination in the eyes of our brave troops.”

As they marched their voices burst forth simultaneously in a German hymn. The gush of their rude and many-voiced melody was borne distinctly on the wind to the eminence where Frederick stood, anxiously watching those movements which were to decide his own fate, that of his family, and of his kingdom. The following is a translation of one of the verses of this hymn:

As they marched, their voices erupted together in a German hymn. The rush of their rough and diverse melody carried clearly on the wind to the high ground where Frederick stood, nervously observing those actions that would determine his own fate, along with that of his family and his kingdom. The following is a translation of one of the verses of this hymn:

440

440

"Please allow me to approach this day with enthusiasm and expertise, as I do
What you want me to do is what I must follow; what You command me to do; Let's get straight to the point when the moment is right,
“And when I do this, grant me success in it.” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

These solemn tones of sacred psalmody fell impressively upon the ear of the king when his earthly all was trembling in the balance. Religionless and atheistic as he was, he could not repress some visible emotion. One of his officers, aware of the king’s avowed contempt for every thing of a religious nature, inquired,

These serious tones of sacred songs had a strong impact on the king as everything he valued was hanging by a thread. Even though he was non-religious and atheist, he couldn't hide some visible emotion. One of his officers, knowing the king's open disdain for anything religious, asked,

“Shall we order that to cease, your majesty?”

“Should we ask for that to stop, your majesty?”

“By no means,” the king replied. “With men like these I shall be sure of victory to-day!”114

“Definitely not,” the king replied. “With men like these, I’m confident we’ll win today!”114

BATTLE OF LEUTHEN, DECEMBER 5, 1757.

BATTLE OF LEUTHEN, DECEMBER 5, 1757.

a a. Austrian Army. b b. Position of Saxon Forepost, under Nostitz. c c. Advance of Prussian Army. d. Lucchesi’s Cavalry, re-enforced by Daun. e. Left Wing, under Nadasti. f. Frederick’s Hill of Observation. g g. Prussian Army about to attack. h. Ziethen’s Cavalry. i i i. Retreat of Austrians.

a a. Austrian Army. b b. Position of the Saxon Forepost, under Nostitz. c c. Advance of the Prussian Army. d. Lucchesi’s Cavalry, supported by Daun. e. Left Wing, led by Nadasti. f. Frederick’s Observation Hill. g g. Prussian Army ready to attack. h. Ziethen’s Cavalry. i i i. Retreat of the Austrians.

The field of Leuthen—for so this battle-field was called—was a vast undulating plain or rolling prairie, extending for miles in all directions. One or two brooks flowed sluggishly through it. Here and there were expanses of marsh which neither horse nor foot could traverse. A few scraggy firs dotted the dreary landscape,441 and there were also a few hamlets of peasants’ huts scattered around. Frederick concealed his movements as much as possible behind the undulations, and succeeded in deceiving the Austrians into the belief that he was to make an attack upon their right wing. The Austrian officers, on windmills and in church belfries, were eagerly scrutinizing his manœuvres. Deceived into the conviction that their right wing was menaced, they impetuously pushed forward large re-enforcements of horse to the support of the presumed point of attack. Thus the left wing was weakened.

The field of Leuthen—this is what they called the battlefield—was a vast, rolling plain or prairie, stretching for miles in every direction. One or two small streams flowed slowly through it. Here and there were patches of marsh that neither horses nor people could cross. A few scraggly fir trees were scattered across the bleak landscape, along with a few small villages of peasant huts. Frederick kept his movements as hidden as possible behind the hills and managed to trick the Austrians into thinking he was going to attack their right flank. The Austrian officers, positioned on windmills and in church towers, were closely watching his maneuvers. Misled into believing their right wing was under threat, they hastily sent large reinforcements of cavalry to support what they thought was the target. This left their left wing weakened.441

Frederick, who had taken his position upon a windmill, saw, with much satisfaction, the successful operation of his plan. Suddenly, with almost miraculous swiftness of movement, his perfectly drilled troops, horse, foot, and artillery, every man reckless of life, poured forth with a rush and a roar as of a lava-flood upon the extreme left of the Austrians. It was one o’clock of the day. There was neither brook, bush, fence, nor marsh to impede the headlong impetuosity of the assault. At the point of attack the Prussians were, of course, most numerous. There were a few moments of terrible slaughter, and the left wing of the Austrian army was annihilated. The ground was covered with the wounded and the dead, and the fugitives, in dismay, were fleeing across the fields.

Frederick, who had positioned himself on a windmill, watched with great satisfaction as his plan unfolded successfully. Suddenly, with almost miraculous speed, his perfectly trained soldiers—cavalry, infantry, and artillery—rushed forward with a force and noise like a volcanic eruption against the far left of the Austrians. It was one o’clock in the afternoon. There were no streams, bushes, fences, or marshes to slow down the relentless assault. At the point of attack, the Prussians were clearly in the majority. There were a few moments of horrific slaughter, and the left wing of the Austrian army was completely destroyed. The ground was littered with the wounded and dead, and the panicked survivors were fleeing across the fields.

The Austrian centre was pushed rapidly forward to the aid of the discomfited left. It was too late. The soldiers arrived upon the ground breathless and in disorder. Before they had time to form, Frederick plowed their ranks with balls, swept them with bullets, and fell upon them mercilessly with sabre and bayonet. The carnage was awful. Division after division melted away in the fire deluge which consumed them. Prince Charles made the most desperate efforts to rally his dismayed troops in and around the church-yard at Leuthen. Here for an hour they fought desperately. But it was all in vain. The left wing was destroyed. The centre was destroyed. The right wing was pushed forward only to be cut to pieces by the sabres, and to be mown down by the terrific fire of the triumphant Prussians.

The Austrian center quickly moved forward to help the struggling left. It was too late. The soldiers arrived out of breath and disorganized. Before they could form ranks, Frederick struck them with cannonballs, showered them with bullets, and attacked them mercilessly with swords and bayonets. The slaughter was horrific. Division after division disappeared in the fiery storm that engulfed them. Prince Charles made frantic attempts to rally his shaken troops in and around the churchyard at Leuthen. For an hour, they fought fiercely. But it was all for nothing. The left wing was wiped out. The center was destroyed. The right wing was pushed forward only to be cut down by sabers and mowed down by the overwhelming fire of the victorious Prussians.

Scarcely had the conflict upon the extreme left commenced ere it was evident that by the military sagacity of Frederick the442 doom of the Austrian army was sealed. With thirty thousand men he had attacked ninety thousand on the open field, and was utterly overwhelming them. An Austrian officer, Prince De Ligne, describing the battle, writes:

Scarcely had the conflict on the far left started before it was clear that Frederick the442 had sealed the fate of the Austrian army with his military genius. With thirty thousand men, he attacked ninety thousand on the open field and completely overwhelmed them. An Austrian officer, Prince De Ligne, describing the battle, writes:

“Cry had risen for the reserve, and that it must come on as fast as possible. We ran at our utmost speed. Our lieutenant colonel fell, killed, at the first. Then we lost our major, and, indeed, all the officers but three. We had crossed two successive ditches which lay in an orchard to the left of the first houses in Leuthen, and were beginning to form in front of the village. But there was no standing it. Besides a general cannonade, such as can scarcely be imagined, there was a rain of case-shot upon this battalion, of which I had to take command. A Prussian battalion at the distance of eighty paces gave the liveliest fire upon us. It stood as if on the parade-ground, and waited for us without stirring. My soldiers, who were tired with running, and had no cannon, soon became scattered. At last, when I had but two hundred left, I drew back to the height where the windmill is.”

“Cry had gone up for reinforcements, and they needed to get here as quickly as possible. We ran as fast as we could. Our lieutenant colonel was killed right away. Then we lost our major, and eventually all the officers except three. We had crossed two ditches in an orchard to the left of the first houses in Leuthen and were starting to form up in front of the village. But it was overwhelming. Besides an unimaginable level of cannon fire, there was a heavy downpour of case-shot on our battalion, which I had to command. A Prussian battalion, just eighty paces away, fired at us with precision. They stood there like they were on a parade ground, waiting for us to approach. My men, already exhausted from running and without any cannons, quickly became scattered. Finally, when I only had about two hundred left, I fell back to the hill where the windmill is.”

Before the sun went down the Austrian army was every where flying from the field in hopeless confusion. Their rush was in four torrents toward the east, to reach the bridges which crossed the Schweidnitz Water. There were four of them. One was on the main road at Lissa; one a mile north at Stabelwitz; and two on the south, one at Goldschmieden, and the other at Hermannsdorf. The victory of Frederick was one of the most memorable in the annals of war. The Austrians lost in killed and wounded ten thousand men. Twenty-one thousand were taken prisoners. This was a heavier loss in numbers than the whole army of Frederick. The victors also took fifty-one flags, and a hundred and sixteen cannon.

Before the sun went down, the Austrian army was everywhere, fleeing the battlefield in total chaos. They surged in four streams towards the east, trying to reach the bridges that crossed the Schweidnitz Water. There were four bridges: one on the main road at Lissa, one a mile north at Stabelwitz, and two to the south, one at Goldschmieden and the other at Hermannsdorf. Frederick's victory was one of the most notable in military history. The Austrians suffered ten thousand casualties in killed and wounded. Twenty-one thousand were taken prisoner. This loss was greater in numbers than Frederick's entire army. The victors also captured fifty-one flags and a hundred and sixteen cannons.

As the king cast his eye over the blood-stained field, covered with the wounded and the dead, for a moment he seemed overcome with the aspect of misery, and exclaimed, “When, oh when will my woes cease?”

As the king looked over the blood-stained battlefield, filled with the wounded and the dead, he seemed momentarily overwhelmed by the sight of suffering and cried out, “When, oh when will my troubles end?”

“My children,” said Frederick that night at parole, “after such a day’s work you deserve rest. This day will send the renown of your name and that of the nation down to the latest posterity.”

“My children,” said Frederick that night at parole, “after such a day’s work, you deserve to rest. This day will ensure that your name and that of the nation is remembered for generations to come.”

443 He did not order the exhausted troops to pursue the foe. Still, as he rode along the line after dark, he inquired,

443 He didn't tell the tired soldiers to chase after the enemy. Yet, as he rode along the line after dark, he asked,

“Is there any battalion which has a mind to follow me to Lissa?”

“Is there any battalion ready to follow me to Lissa?”

Three volunteered. It was so dark that the landlord of a little country inn walked with a lantern by the side of Frederick’s horse. Lissa was on the main road to Breslau. The landlord supposed that he was guiding one of Frederick’s generals, and was very communicative.

Three people volunteered. It was so dark that the owner of a little country inn walked with a lantern beside Frederick’s horse. Lissa was on the main road to Breslau. The innkeeper thought he was guiding one of Frederick’s generals and was very chatty.

“Yesterday noon,” said he, “I had Prince Charles in my parlor. His adjutants and people were all crowding about. Such a questioning and bothering. Hundreds came dashing in, and other hundreds were sent out. In and out they went all night. No sooner was one gone than ten came. I had to keep a roaring fire in the kitchen all night, so many officers were crowding to it to warm themselves. They talked and babbled. One would say that our king was marching upon them with his Potsdam parade guard. Another would say, ‘No, he dare not come. He will turn and run.’ But my delight is that our king has paid them for their fooleries so prettily this afternoon.”

“Yesterday at noon,” he said, “I had Prince Charles in my living room. His aides and people were all around. There was so much questioning and fussing. Hundreds rushed in, and hundreds were sent out. They kept coming and going all night. No sooner would one leave than ten would arrive. I had to keep a roaring fire going in the kitchen all night because so many officers were crowding around to warm up. They talked and chattered. One would say our king was advancing on them with his Potsdam parade guard. Another would say, ‘No, he wouldn’t dare come. He’ll turn and run.’ But what I love is that our king dealt with their nonsense so nicely this afternoon.”

“When did you get rid of your guests?” inquired the king.

“When did you send your guests away?” asked the king.

“About nine this morning,” was the reply, “the prince got to horse. Not long after three he came back again with a swarm of officers, all going full speed for Lissa. They were full of bragging when they came; now they were off wrong side foremost! I saw how it was. Close following after him the flood of them ran. The high road was not broad enough. It was an hour and more before it ended. Such a pell-mell, such a welter! cavalry and infantry all jumbled together. Our king must have given them a terrible flogging.”

“About nine this morning,” was the reply, “the prince mounted his horse. Not long after three, he returned with a crowd of officers, all rushing toward Lissa. They were full of bravado when they arrived; now they were retreating in a panic! I could see how it was. Close behind him, the horde followed. The main road wasn’t wide enough. It took over an hour before it cleared up. What a chaotic mess, such confusion! Cavalry and infantry all mixed together. Our king must have given them a serious beating.”

When the king reached Lissa he found the village full of Austrian officers and soldiers in a state of utter disorganization and confusion. Had the Austrians known their strength or the weakness of the king, they might easily have taken him captive. Frederick was somewhat alarmed. He, however, assumed a bold front, and rode to the principal house in the town, which was a little one side of the main street. The house was crowded with Austrian officers, bustling about, seeking lodgings for the night. The king stepped in with a slight escort, and said gayly,

When the king arrived in Lissa, he found the village packed with Austrian officers and soldiers in complete disarray and chaos. If the Austrians had known their strength or the king's vulnerabilities, they could have easily captured him. Frederick was a bit worried, but he put on a brave face and rode over to the main house in town, which was slightly off the main street. The place was filled with Austrian officers, rushing around looking for places to stay for the night. The king stepped inside with a small escort and said cheerfully,

444 “Good evening, gentlemen, good evening. Can you make room for me here, do you think?”

444 “Good evening, guys, good evening. Do you think you could make some space for me here?”

THE KING IN SEARCH OF LODGINGS.

The astounded Austrians bowed to the dust before him, escorted him to the best room, and, stealing out into the darkness, made their way as rapidly as possible to the bridge, which at the east end of the street crossed the Schweidnitz Water. At the farther end of the bridge Austrian cannon were planted to arrest the pursuit. The officers hurried across, and vanished in the gloom of night, followed by the river-guard. The Prussian cannoneers steadily pursued, and kept up through the night an incessant fire upon the rear of the foe.

The amazed Austrians bowed to the ground in front of him, led him to the best room, and then quietly slipped out into the darkness, hurrying as fast as they could to the bridge at the east end of the street that crossed the Schweidnitz Water. At the far end of the bridge, Austrian cannons were set up to stop the pursuit. The officers rushed across and disappeared into the night, followed by the river guard. The Prussian gunners relentlessly pursued them, maintaining an ongoing barrage on the enemy's rear throughout the night.

The night was very dark and cold. A wintry wind swept the bleak, frozen fields. Still the routed Austrians pressed on. Still the tireless Prussians pursued. The Prussian soldiers were Protestants.445 Many of them were well instructed in religion. As they pressed on through the gloom, sweeping the road before them with artillery discharges, their voices simultaneously burst forth into a well-known Church hymn, a sort of Protestant Te Deum

The night was really dark and cold. A winter wind blew across the bleak, frozen fields. Still, the beaten Austrians moved forward. Still, the relentless Prussians chased them. The Prussian soldiers were Protestants.445 Many of them were well-versed in their faith. As they pushed through the darkness, clearing the path ahead with artillery fire, their voices suddenly broke into a familiar church hymn, a kind of Protestant Te Deum

"Now let's all thank God," With heart, with voice, with hands,
Who wonders greatly has done "To us and to all nations." __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

Early in the morning Frederick’s whole army was on the rapid march for Breslau, which was scarcely twenty miles distant from the battle-field. The Austrians had collected immense military stores in the city. Prince Charles, as he fled through the place with the wreck of his army, left a garrison of seventeen thousand men for its defense. In a siege of twelve days, during which there was an incessant bombardment and continual assaults, the city was carried. A few days after this, Liegnitz, which the Austrians had strongly fortified, was also surrendered to the victor. Frederick had thus reconquered the whole of Silesia excepting the single fortress of Schweidnitz.

Early in the morning, Frederick's entire army was quickly marching towards Breslau, which was only about twenty miles away from the battlefield. The Austrians had gathered a huge amount of military supplies in the city. As Prince Charles fled through the place with the remnants of his army, he left a garrison of seventeen thousand men to defend it. After a twelve-day siege, marked by constant bombardments and ongoing attacks, the city fell. A few days later, Liegnitz, which the Austrians had heavily fortified, also surrendered to the victor. Frederick had thus reclaimed all of Silesia except for the single fortress of Schweidnitz.


CHAPTER XXVIII.
Domestic issues and military setbacks.

Destruction of the Army of Prince Charles.—Dismay in Vienna.—Testimony of Napoleon I.—Of Voltaire.—Wretchedness of the King.—Compromise rejected.—New Preparations for War.—Treaty between England and Prussia.—Plan of the Campaign.—Siege of Olmütz.—Death of Prince Augustus William.—The Baggage Train.—The irreparable Disaster.—Anxiety of Frederick for Wilhelmina.—The March against the Russians.—The Battle of Zorndorf.—Anecdotes of Frederick.

Destruction of Prince Charles's Army.—Shock in Vienna.—Testimony from Napoleon I.—From Voltaire.—The King's Suffering.—Compromise Rejected.—New War Preparations.—Treaty Between England and Prussia.—Campaign Strategy.—Siege of Olmütz.—Death of Prince Augustus William.—The Supply Train.—The Irreparable Disaster.—Frederick's Concern for Wilhelmina.—The March Against the Russians.—The Battle of Zorndorf.—Frederick's Stories.

The army of Prince Charles was so utterly destroyed or dispersed by the battle of Leuthen that the morning after his terrible defeat he could rally around his banners, by count, but fifty thousand men. These were utterly disheartened. Stragglers were wandering all over the country. A few thousand of these again joined the ranks. Seventeen thousand men left in Breslau were soon captured. Prince Charles, abandoning guns and wagons,446 fled through rain, and mud, and sleet directly south toward Königgrätz, in Bohemia. The sufferings of the troops were awful. Several hundred sentinels, in one night, were frozen stiff at their posts. The dreadful retreat continued for ten days.

The army of Prince Charles was so completely destroyed or scattered by the battle of Leuthen that the morning after his devastating defeat, he could only gather around his banners, by count, fifty thousand men. These troops were completely demoralized. Stragglers were wandering throughout the countryside. A few thousand of them eventually rejoined the ranks. Seventeen thousand men left in Breslau were quickly captured. Prince Charles, leaving behind guns and wagons,446 fled through rain, mud, and sleet directly south toward Königgrätz in Bohemia. The hardships faced by the troops were horrific. Several hundred sentinels, in just one night, froze solid at their posts. The terrible retreat lasted for ten days.

“The army,” writes Prince Charles, mournfully, “was greatly dilapidated. The soldiers were without clothes, and in a condition truly pitiable. So closely were we pursued by the enemy that at night we were compelled to encamp without tents.”

“The army,” writes Prince Charles, sadly, “was in terrible shape. The soldiers had no clothes and were in a truly pitiful state. We were pursued so closely by the enemy that at night we had to set up camp without tents.”

Having reached the shelter of Königgrätz, he counted his troops, and found that he had in rank and file but thirty-seven thousand men. Of these, twenty-two thousand, from sickness, exhaustion, and wounds, were in hospital. Thus, out of the army of ninety thousand men with which he had commenced the campaign early in December, at the close of the month he could array but fifteen thousand on any field of battle.

Having arrived at the safety of Königgrätz, he took stock of his troops and realized he only had thirty-seven thousand men left. Out of these, twenty-two thousand were in the hospital due to illness, exhaustion, and injuries. Therefore, from the original army of ninety thousand he began the campaign with in early December, by the end of the month, he could muster only fifteen thousand for any battle.

The astonishment and indignation in Vienna, in view of this terrible defeat, were intense. Prince Charles was immediately relieved of his command, and General Daun appointed in his stead. It is the testimony of all military men that the battle of Leuthen was one of the most extraordinary feats of war. Napoleon, speaking of it at St. Helena, said,

The shock and anger in Vienna over this terrible defeat were overwhelming. Prince Charles was quickly removed from his command, and General Daun was appointed to take his place. All military experts agree that the battle of Leuthen was one of the most remarkable military achievements. Napoleon, reflecting on it at St. Helena, said,

“This battle is a masterpiece of movements, of manœuvres, and of resolution. It is enough to immortalize Frederick, and to rank him among the greatest generals. It develops, in the highest degree, both his moral and his military qualities.”

“This battle is a masterclass in movement, strategy, and determination. It’s enough to make Frederick immortal and place him among the greatest generals. It showcases, to the fullest extent, both his moral and military strengths.”

Voltaire, in summing up a sketch of this campaign of 1757, writes in characteristic phrase:

Voltaire, summarizing this campaign from 1757, writes in his usual style:

“Even Gustavus Adolphus never did such great things. One must, indeed, pardon Frederick his verses, his sarcasms, and his little malices. All the faults of the man disappear before the glory of the hero.”

“Even Gustavus Adolphus never accomplished such great things. One must, in fact, forgive Frederick his poetry, his sarcasm, and his petty spite. All of the man's faults fade away in the face of the hero's glory.”

On the 19th of December, the day of the capitulation of Breslau, Frederick wrote from that place to his friend D’Argens as follows:

On December 19th, the day Breslau surrendered, Frederick wrote to his friend D’Argens as follows:

“Your friendship seduces you, mon cher. I am but a paltry knave in comparison with Alexander, and not worthy to tie the shoe-latchets of Cæsar. Necessity, who is the mother of industry, has made me act, and have recourse to desperate remedies in evils of a like nature.

“Your friendship entices you, mon cher. I'm just a lowly fool compared to Alexander, and not fit to tie the shoelaces of Caesar. Need, which drives people to work hard, has forced me to take action and turn to extreme solutions for similar problems.”

447 “We have taken here from fourteen to fifteen thousand prisoners. In all, I have above twenty-three thousand of the queen’s troops in my hands, fifteen generals, and above seven hundred officers. It is a plaster on my wounds, but it is far enough from healing them.”

447 “We’ve captured around fourteen to fifteen thousand prisoners here. Overall, I have more than twenty-three thousand of the queen’s soldiers in my custody, along with fifteen generals and over seven hundred officers. It’s a small comfort, but it’s still a long way from healing my wounds.”

It was now midwinter. Frederick, having established his troops in winter quarters, took up his residence in Breslau. His troubles were by no means ended. Vastly outnumbering foes still surrounded him. Very vigorous preparations were to be made for the sanguinary conflicts which the spring would surely introduce. Frederick did what he could to infuse gayety into the society at Breslau, though he had but little heart to enter into those gayeties himself. For a week he suffered severely from colic pains, and could neither eat nor sleep. “Eight months,” he writes, “of anguish and agitation do wear one down.”

It was now midwinter. Frederick, having set up his troops in winter quarters, made his home in Breslau. His troubles were far from over. He was still surrounded by enemies who vastly outnumbered him. There were intense preparations to be made for the bloody battles that spring would definitely bring. Frederick did what he could to bring some cheer to the social scene in Breslau, even though he wasn't really in the mood to join in the festivities himself. For a week, he suffered a lot from colic pains and couldn't eat or sleep. "Eight months," he writes, "of anguish and agitation really wears you down."

His sister Amelia and several other friends visited him at Breslau. Among others was his reader, Henry de Catt.

His sister Amelia and a few other friends came to see him in Breslau. Among them was his reader, Henry de Catt.

“Should you have known me?” the king inquired of De Catt.

“Should you have known me?” the king asked De Catt.

“Hardly,” he replied, “in that dress. Besides, your majesty has grown thinner.”

“Not really,” he replied, “in that dress. Also, your majesty has lost weight.”

“That may well be,” rejoined the king, “with the cursed life I have been leading.”

“That might be true,” the king replied, “considering the miserable life I’ve been living.”

Frederick still sought recreation in writing verses which he called poetry. To D’Argens he wrote, “I have made a prodigious quantity of verses. If I live I will show them to you. If I perish they are bequeathed to you, and I have ordered that they be put into your hand.”

Frederick still found enjoyment in writing verses that he referred to as poetry. He wrote to D'Argens, "I've created a huge amount of verses. If I survive, I’ll show them to you. If I don’t make it, I've left them to you, and I've made arrangements for them to be handed over to you."

Again he wrote D’Argens on the 26th of December, “What a pleasure to hear that you are coming. I have sent a party of light horse to conduct you. You can make short journeys. I have directed that horses be ordered for you, that your rooms be warmed every where, and good fowls ready on all roads. Your apartment in this house is carpeted, hermetically shut. You shall suffer nothing from draughts or from noise.”

Again he wrote to D’Argens on December 26th, “What a pleasure to hear that you’re coming. I’ve sent a group of light cavalry to escort you. You can travel short distances. I’ve arranged for horses to be ready for you, that your rooms be heated everywhere, and good food available along the way. Your room in this house is carpeted and completely sealed. You won’t be bothered by drafts or noise.”

Frederick, having regained Silesia, was anxious for peace. He wrote a polite letter to Maria Theresa, adroitly worded, so as to signify that desire without directly expressing it. The empress queen, disheartened by the disasters of Rossbach and Leuthen, was rather inclined to listen to such suggestions; but the Duchess448 of Pompadour verified the adage that “hell has no fury like a woman scorned.” She governed the wretched Louis XV., and through him governed France. In her intense personal exasperation against Frederick she would heed no terms of compromise, and infused new energy into all warlike operations. Large subsidies were paid by France to Austria, Sweden, and Russia, to prepare for the campaign of 1758.

Frederick, having regained Silesia, was eager for peace. He wrote a polite letter to Maria Theresa, cleverly phrased to convey that wish without saying it outright. The empress queen, discouraged by the defeats at Rossbach and Leuthen, was somewhat open to such proposals; but the Duchess448 of Pompadour proved the saying that “hell hath no fury like a woman scorned.” She controlled the unfortunate Louis XV., and through him influenced France. In her intense personal anger against Frederick, she refused to consider any compromise and injected new energy into all military efforts. Large amounts of money were sent by France to Austria, Sweden, and Russia, to prepare for the campaign of 1758.

Frederick was soon aware that peace was out of the question without farther fighting. Before the 1st of April he had one hundred and forty-five thousand men ready for the field. Of these, fifty-three thousand were in Silesia. Many of the Austrian deserters were induced to join his standards. But the most important event secured was forming a subsidy treaty with England. The British cabinet, alarmed in view of the power which the successful prosecution of the war on the part of the allies would give to France, after much hesitation, came to the aid of Frederick, whom they hated as much as they feared France. On the 11th of April, 1758, a treaty was signed between the English court and Frederick, containing the following important item:

Frederick quickly realized that there would be no peace without more fighting. Before April 1st, he had one hundred and forty-five thousand troops ready for battle. Out of these, fifty-three thousand were in Silesia. Many Austrian deserters were persuaded to join his forces. However, the most significant development was securing a subsidy treaty with England. The British government, worried about the power that the allies would give to France if they successfully continued the war, eventually decided to support Frederick, whom they disliked just as much as they feared France. On April 11th, 1758, a treaty was signed between the English court and Frederick, which included the following important item:

“That Frederick shall have six hundred and seventy thousand pounds ($3,350,000), payable in London to his order, in October, this year, which sum Frederick engages to spend wholly in the maintenance and increase of his army for behoof of the common object; neither party to dream of making the least shadow of peace or truce without the other.”

“That Frederick will receive six hundred seventy thousand pounds ($3,350,000), to be paid in London to his order in October of this year, which Frederick agrees to spend entirely on maintaining and expanding his army for the common cause; neither party should entertain any thoughts of peace or truce without the other.”

Schweidnitz was strictly blockaded during the winter. On the 15th of March, the weather being still cold, wet, and stormy, Frederick marched from Breslau to attack the place. His siege artillery was soon in position. With his accustomed impetuosity he commenced the assault, and, after a terrific bombardment of many days, on the night of the 15th of April took the works by storm. The garrison, which had dwindled from eight thousand to four thousand five hundred, was all captured, with fifty-one guns, thirty-five thousand dollars of money, and a large quantity of stores. Thus the whole of Silesia was again in the hands of Frederick.

Schweidnitz was completely surrounded during the winter. On March 15th, with the weather still cold, wet, and stormy, Frederick marched from Breslau to attack the city. His siege artillery was quickly set up. With his usual urgency, he began the assault, and after an intense bombardment lasting several days, he stormed the fortifications on the night of April 15th. The garrison, which had shrunk from eight thousand to four thousand five hundred, was entirely captured, along with fifty-one guns, thirty-five thousand dollars in cash, and a large amount of supplies. This meant that all of Silesia was back under Frederick’s control.

It was supposed that his Prussian majesty would now march southwest for the invasion of Bohemia. Austria made vigorous preparations to meet him there. Much to the surprise and bewilderment449 of the Austrians, the latter part of April Frederick directed his columns toward the southeast. His army, about forty thousand strong, was in two divisions. By a rapid march through Neisse and Jagerndorf he reached Troppau, on the extreme southern frontier of Silesia. He then turned to the southwest. It was again supposed that he intended to invade Bohemia, but from the east instead of from the north.

It was expected that his Prussian majesty would now head southwest to invade Bohemia. Austria was making strong preparations to confront him there. Much to the shock and confusion449 of the Austrians, in the latter part of April, Frederick directed his troops southeast instead. His army, made up of about forty thousand soldiers, was split into two divisions. By quickly marching through Neisse and Jagerndorf, he reached Troppau, located on the far southern edge of Silesia. He then changed direction to the southwest. It was once again believed that he planned to invade Bohemia, but from the east this time rather than from the north.

General Daun, in command of the Austrian forces, rapidly concentrated his troops around Leutomischel, where he had extensive magazines. But Frederick, leaving Leutomischel far away on his right, pressed forward in a southerly direction, and on the 12th of May appeared before Olmütz. His march had been rapidly and admirably conducted, dividing his troops into columns for the convenience of road and subsistence.

General Daun, leading the Austrian forces, quickly gathered his troops around Leutomischel, where he had a lot of supplies. But Frederick, keeping Leutomischel far to his right, advanced south and arrived at Olmütz on May 12th. His march was efficient and well-organized, splitting his troops into columns for easier travel and support.

Olmütz was an ancient, strongly fortified city of Moravia, pleasantly situated on the western banks of the Morawa River. It had been the capital of Moravia, and contained about ten thousand inhabitants. The place subsequently became renowned from the imprisonment of Lafayette in its citadel for many years. The city had become an arsenal, and one of the most important military store-houses of Austria.

Olmütz was an old, well-fortified city in Moravia, nicely located on the western banks of the Morawa River. It had been the capital of Moravia and had around ten thousand residents. The city later gained fame due to Lafayette’s long imprisonment in its citadel. It had turned into an arsenal and one of Austria's most important military storage facilities.

Olmütz was ninety miles from Troppau, in Silesia, where Frederick had established his base of supplies. This was a long line of communication to protect. General Daun, with a numerous Austrian army, all whose movements were veiled by clouds of those fleet and shaggy horsemen called Pandours, was forty miles to the west, at Leutomischel. Cautious in the extreme, nothing could draw him into a general battle. But he watched his foe with an eagle eye, continually assailing his line of communication, and ever ready to strike his heaviest blows upon any exposed point.

Olmütz was ninety miles from Troppau in Silesia, where Frederick had set up his supply base. This was a long line of communication to defend. General Daun, commanding a large Austrian army, whose movements were concealed by clouds of swift and shaggy horsemen known as Pandours, was forty miles to the west at Leutomischel. Extremely cautious, he would not be lured into a general battle. But he monitored his enemy closely, consistently attacking his lines of communication, and always ready to deliver his heaviest blows at any vulnerable spot.

The king’s brother Henry was in command in Saxony, at the head of thirty thousand troops. Frederick wrote to him the characteristic and very judicious advice, “Do as energetically as possible whatever seems wisest to you. But hold no councils of war.”

The king’s brother Henry was in charge in Saxony, leading thirty thousand troops. Frederick wrote to him the typical and very wise advice, "Do whatever you think is best as energetically as possible. But don’t hold any war councils."

The plan of his Prussian majesty was bold and sagacious. He supposed that he could easily take Olmütz. Availing himself of the vast magazines to be found there, he would summon450 his brother Henry to join him by a rapid march through Bohemia, and with their combined force of sixty thousand troops they would make a rush upon Vienna. The Austrian capital was distant but about one hundred miles, directly south. As the Austrian army was widely dispersed, there were but few impediments to be encountered. The success of this plan would compel the allies to withdraw their forces from the territories of the King of Prussia, if it did not enable Frederick to dictate peace in the palaces of Maria Theresa.

The plan of his Prussian majesty was bold and smart. He thought he could easily capture Olmütz. Using the large supplies available there, he would call on his brother Henry to quickly march through Bohemia, and with their combined force of sixty thousand troops, they would charge towards Vienna. The Austrian capital was only about one hundred miles directly south. Since the Austrian army was spread out, there were few obstacles to face. If this plan succeeded, it would force the allies to pull their forces out of the territories of the King of Prussia, if it didn’t allow Frederick to negotiate peace in the palaces of Maria Theresa.

Olmütz was found very strongly fortified. It was so situated that, with the force Frederick had, it could not be entirely invested. Baron Marshal, a very brave and energetic old man, sixty-seven years of age, conducted the defense.

Olmütz was found to be very strongly fortified. It was positioned in such a way that, with the forces Frederick had, it could not be completely surrounded. Baron Marshal, a brave and dynamic old man of sixty-seven, led the defense.

SIEGE OF OLMÜTZ, MAY 12—JULY 2, 1758.

SIEGE OF OLMÜTZ, MAY 12—JULY 2, 1758.

a a. Stages of the Prussian March. b. Daun’s Encampment. c. Prussian Batteries and Intrenchments. d d d. Prussian Camps. e e. Loudon’s March against Mosel’s Convoy. f f. Mosel’s resting Quarters. g. Convoy attacked and ruined.

a a. Stages of the Prussian March. b. Daun’s Encampment. c. Prussian Batteries and Fortifications. d d d. Prussian Camps. e e. Loudon’s March against Mosel’s Convoy. f f. Mosel’s Resting Quarters. g. Convoy Attacked and Destroyed.

His garrison consisted of about fourteen thousand infantry and six hundred dragoons. General Daun was at the distance of but two marches, with a larger Austrian force than Frederick commanded. Nothing can more clearly show the dread with which the Austrians regarded their antagonist than the fact that General Daun did not march immediately upon Olmütz, and,451 with the aid of a sally from the garrison, overwhelm and crush Frederick beneath their united assaults.

His garrison had around fourteen thousand infantry and six hundred dragoons. General Daun was only two marches away, leading a larger Austrian force than what Frederick commanded. Nothing illustrates the fear the Austrians had for their opponent better than the fact that General Daun didn't march straight to Olmütz and, along with a sortie from the garrison, didn't overwhelm and defeat Frederick with their combined attacks.

For seven weeks the siege of Olmütz was prosecuted with great vigor. With much skill Frederick protected his baggage trains in their long and exposed route of ninety miles through forests and mountain defiles. General Keith was intrusted with the details of the siege facing the town toward the east; Frederick, with a vigilant corps of horse and foot, was about twenty miles to the west, watching every movement of General Daun, so far as he was able through the thick cloud of Pandours, behind which the Austrian commander endeavored to conceal all his manœuvres.

For seven weeks, the siege of Olmütz was carried out with great intensity. Frederick skillfully protected his supply lines during their lengthy and exposed journey of ninety miles through forests and mountain passes. General Keith was given the responsibility for the siege operations facing the town to the east; Frederick, with a watchful team of cavalry and infantry, was about twenty miles to the west, keeping an eye on every move by General Daun, as much as possible through the thick cloud of Pandours, behind which the Austrian commander tried to hide all his maneuvers.

While engaged in these labors the tidings reached him of the death of his brother Augustus William. He was Prince of Prussia, being, next to the childless Frederick, heir to the crown. Frederick seems to have received the news very heartlessly.

While working on these tasks, he received the news about the death of his brother Augustus William. He was the Prince of Prussia and the heir to the crown next to the childless Frederick. Frederick appeared to take the news very indifferently.

“Of what did he die?” he coldly inquired of the messenger.

“From what did he die?” he asked the messenger, his tone icy.

“Of chagrin, your majesty,” was the reply.

“Of disappointment, your majesty,” was the reply.

Frederick turned upon his heel, and made no answer.

Frederick turned on his heel and didn’t respond.

The unhappy Prince of Prussia, on his dying bed, wrote a very touching letter to his brother Frederick, remonstrating against his conduct, which was not only filling Europe with blood and misery, but which was also imperiling the existence of the Prussian kingdom.

The unhappy Prince of Prussia, on his deathbed, wrote a deeply emotional letter to his brother Frederick, criticizing his actions, which were not only staining Europe with blood and suffering, but were also putting the future of the Prussian kingdom at risk.

“The slow fever,” he wrote, “which consumes me, has not thrown any disorder into my understanding. Condescend to listen to me, sire, now that I can not be suspected of any illusion or deceit. There is an end to the house of Prussia if you continue to brave all Europe confederated against you. You force all Europe to arm to repel your encroachments. The princes of Europe are leagued against your majesty by justice and by interest. Their subjects regard your ruin as essential to the re-establishment of peace and the safety of monarchical government. They read in your success the slavery of the human race, the annihilation of laws, the degradation of society.”

“The slow fever,” he wrote, “that consumes me hasn't clouded my judgment. Please listen to me, sire, now that I can't be suspected of any delusion or trickery. There will be an end to the house of Prussia if you keep defying all of Europe united against you. You’re forcing all of Europe to arm themselves to resist your advances. The princes of Europe are allied against your majesty out of both justice and self-interest. Their subjects view your downfall as crucial for restoring peace and ensuring the safety of monarchy. They see your success as a pathway to human enslavement, the destruction of laws, and the decline of society.”

In reference to the course which the king had allowed himself to pursue in obtaining access to the archives of Saxony by bribing an officer to betray his trust, Augustus William wrote:

In regards to the path the king chose to take to gain access to the archives of Saxony by bribing an officer to break his trust, Augustus William wrote:

“The more you have proved that you were acquainted with452 the intentions of Saxony, the more odious have you rendered its invasion. In order to procure this knowledge, your minister has degraded his character. By means proscribed in society, you have discovered only that the King Elector of Saxony did not love the power of Prussia, that he feared it, and that he even dared to form projects to defend himself against it. Documents which are stolen make against the accuser who produces them, if they do not prove the crime which they impute.”116

“The more you’ve shown that you knew about Saxony’s plans, the more repulsive you’ve made its invasion. To get this information, your minister has lowered his reputation. By using methods condemned by society, you’ve only found out that the Elector of Saxony didn’t like the power of Prussia, that he feared it, and that he even dared to make plans to defend himself against it. Stolen documents work against the accuser who brings them forth, unless they actually prove the crime they claim.”116

In conclusion, in most pathetic terms he entreated the king to listen to terms of peace, and thus to prevent the ruin of himself, of his people, and of his royal house.

In conclusion, he pleaded with the king in the most desperate way to consider the terms of peace, hoping to prevent the destruction of himself, his people, and his royal family.

At the same time that the tidings of the death of Augustus William were communicated to the king, he received also the tidings, which to him were truly heart-rending, that Wilhelmina, worn down with care and sorrow, was fast sinking into the grave.

At the same time the news of Augustus William's death reached the king, he also got the heartbreaking news that Wilhelmina, worn down by worry and sadness, was quickly fading away.

Early in June, the cautious but ever-vigilant General Daun succeeded in throwing into Olmütz a re-enforcement of eleven hundred Austrian troops. They were guided by peasants through by-paths in the forests. Crossing the river some miles below Olmütz, they entered the city from the east.

Early in June, the careful but always watchful General Daun managed to bring in a reinforcement of eleven hundred Austrian troops into Olmütz. They were led by local farmers through back roads in the forests. After crossing the river several miles downstream from Olmütz, they entered the city from the east.

Still, on the whole, the siege progressed favorably. Large supplies of food and ammunition were indispensable to Frederick. Thirty thousand hungry men were to be fed. A constant bombardment rapidly exhausts even abundant stores of powder, shot, and shell.

Still, overall, the siege was going well. Frederick desperately needed large supplies of food and ammunition. He had thirty thousand hungry men to feed. A constant bombardment quickly drains even the most plentiful supplies of gunpowder, shot, and shell.

In the latter part of June a large train of over three thousand four-horse wagons, laden with all necessary supplies, left Troppau for Olmütz. It is difficult for a reader unfamiliar with such scenes to form any conception of the magnitude of such an enterprise. There are twelve thousand horses to be shod, harnessed, and fed, and watered three or four times a day. There are three thousand wagons to be kept in repair, rattling over the stones and plowing through the mire. Six thousand teamsters are required. There is invariably connected with such a movement one or two thousand camp-followers, sutlers, women, vagabonds. A large armed force is also needed to act as convoy.

In late June, a huge convoy of over three thousand four-horse wagons, loaded with all the necessary supplies, set off from Troppau to Olmütz. It's hard for someone who hasn't witnessed such scenes to grasp the scale of this operation. There are twelve thousand horses that need to be shod, harnessed, fed, and watered three or four times a day. Three thousand wagons need to be kept in working order, rattling over the stones and slogging through the mud. Six thousand teamsters are needed. There are usually one or two thousand camp followers, including sutlers, women, and drifters, involved in such a movement. A significant armed force is also required to provide protection as a convoy.

This train filled the road for a distance of twenty miles. To traverse the route of ninety miles required six days. The road453 led through forests and mountain defiles. A bold and vigorous foe, well equipped and well mounted, watched the movement. To protect such a train from assault is one of the most difficult achievements of war. The enemy, suddenly emerging from mountain fastnesses or gloomy forests, can select his point of attack, and then sweep in either direction along the line, burning and destroying.

This train stretched along the road for twenty miles. It took six days to cover the ninety-mile route. The road453 went through forests and mountain passes. A daring and strong enemy, well-equipped and well-mounted, observed the movement. Protecting such a train from attack is one of the toughest challenges in war. The enemy, suddenly appearing from mountain hideouts or dark forests, can choose where to strike and then go in either direction along the line, causing destruction and chaos.

On the 26th of June this vast train commenced its movement from Troppau. A convoy of about seven thousand infantry and eleven hundred cavalry guarded the wagons. They were in three bodies, on the front, in the centre, and on the rear. The king also sent forward about six thousand horse and foot from Olmütz to meet the train.

On June 26th, this massive train started moving from Troppau. A convoy of around seven thousand infantry and eleven hundred cavalry protected the wagons. They were divided into three groups: at the front, in the middle, and at the back. The king also dispatched about six thousand troops, both cavalry and infantry, from Olmütz to meet the train.

The wagons had accomplished about half the distance, when, on Friday, the 30th of June, as they were emerging from wild ravines among the mountains, they were simultaneously attacked in front, centre, and rear by three divisions of the Austrians, each about five thousand strong. Then ensued as terrible a scene of panic and confusion as war has ever witnessed. The attack of horsemen with their gleaming sabres, the storm of bullets, thick as hailstones, the thunders of the cannon, as the ponderous balls tore their way through wagons, and horses, and men, soon presented such a spectacle of devastation, ruin, and woe as mortal eyes have seldom gazed upon.

The wagons had traveled about halfway when, on Friday, June 30th, as they were coming out of the rugged ravines in the mountains, they were suddenly attacked from the front, center, and rear by three divisions of Austrians, each around five thousand strong. What followed was one of the most intense scenes of panic and chaos that war has ever seen. The charge of horsemen with their shining sabers, the relentless rain of bullets thick as hailstones, and the booming cannons, as heavy projectiles crashed through wagons, horses, and men, created a horrifying spectacle of destruction, despair, and tragedy that few have ever witnessed.

“Among the tragic wrecks of this convoy there is one that still goes to our heart. A longish, almost straight row of Prussian recruits stretched among the slain, what are these? These were seven hundred recruits coming up from their cantons to the wars. See how they have fought to the death, poor lads! and have honorably, on the sudden, got manumitted from the toils of life. Seven hundred of them stood to arms this morning; some sixty-five will get back to Troppau; that is the invoice account. There they lie with their blonde young cheeks, beautiful in death.”117

“Among the tragic wrecks of this convoy, there’s one that really hits us hard. A long, almost straight line of Prussian recruits lies among the dead—what are these? These were seven hundred recruits heading to the front from their cantons. Look at how they fought to the death, poor guys! They have honorably, all of a sudden, been freed from the struggles of life. Seven hundred of them stood ready for battle this morning; about sixty-five will make it back to Troppau; that’s the tally. There they lie with their youthful blonde cheeks, beautiful even in death.”117

A large portion of the train was utterly destroyed. The remainder was driven back to Troppau. The disaster was irreparable. The tidings were conveyed to Frederick the next day, July 1. They must have fallen upon him with crushing weight. It was the annihilation of all his hopes for the campaign, and454 rendered it necessary immediately to raise the siege and retreat. This extraordinary man did not allow himself to manifest the slightest despondency. He assembled his officers, and, with a smiling face, and hopeful, cheering words, announced his decision.

A large part of the train was completely wrecked. The rest was forced back to Troppau. The disaster was beyond repair. The news reached Frederick the next day, July 1. It must have hit him like a ton of bricks. It meant the end of all his hopes for the campaign, and454 made it necessary to lift the siege and retreat immediately. This remarkable man didn’t let the slightest bit of sadness show. He gathered his officers and, with a smile and encouraging words, announced his decision.

All Saturday night the bombardment was continued with increasing fury. In the mean time four thousand wagons were packed, and, long before the dawn of Sunday morning, were on the road. The retreat was so admirably conducted that General Daun did not venture even to attempt to harass the retiring columns. Instead of moving in a northerly direction to Silesia, Frederick directed his march to the northwest, into Bohemia. On the 8th of July his long column safely reached Leutomischel. He there seized quite an amount of military stores, which General Daun, in his haste and bewilderment, had not been able to remove or to destroy. Five more marches conducted him to Königgrätz.

All Saturday night, the bombardment continued with increasing intensity. Meanwhile, four thousand wagons were packed and, well before dawn on Sunday morning, were on their way. The retreat was managed so well that General Daun didn’t even try to disrupt the withdrawing forces. Instead of heading north to Silesia, Frederick changed his route to the northwest, towards Bohemia. By July 8th, his long column had safely reached Leutomischel. There, he captured a significant amount of military supplies that General Daun, in his rush and confusion, hadn’t been able to move or destroy. Five more marches took him to Königgrätz.

General Daun, with the utmost caution, followed the retreating army. Though his numbers were estimated at seventy-five thousand, he did not dare to encounter Frederick with his thirty thousand Prussians on the field of battle. With skill which has elicited the applause of all military critics, Frederick, early in August, continued his retreat till he reached, on the 8th of the month, Grüssau, on his own side of the mountains in Silesia. On this march he wrote to his brother Henry from Skalitz:

General Daun, being very careful, pursued the retreating army. Even though his forces were estimated at seventy-five thousand, he didn’t risk facing Frederick and his thirty thousand Prussians in battle. With a skill that has been praised by all military experts, Frederick continued his retreat early in August and reached Grüssau, on his side of the mountains in Silesia, on the 8th of the month. During this march, he wrote to his brother Henry from Skalitz:

“What you write to me of my sister of Baireuth makes me tremble. Next to my mother, she is the one I have most tenderly loved in this world. She is a sister who has my heart and all my confidence, and whose character is of a price beyond all the crowns in the universe. From my tenderest years I was brought up with her. You can conceive how there reigns between us that indissoluble bond of mutual affection and attachment for life which in many cases were impossible. Would to Heaven that I might die before her!”

“What you wrote to me about my sister from Baireuth makes me shiver. Next to my mother, she is the one I have loved most dearly in this world. She is a sister who has my heart and all my trust, and her character is worth more than all the crowns in the universe. I grew up with her from a young age. You can imagine how there exists between us that unbreakable bond of mutual love and attachment for life, which in many cases would be impossible. I wish to Heaven that I might die before her!”

On the 9th of August he wrote from Grüssau to Wilhelmina herself: “Oh, you, the dearest of my family, you whom I have most at heart of all in this world, for the sake of whatever is most precious to you, preserve yourself, and let me have at least the consolation of shedding my tears in your bosom!”

On August 9th, he wrote from Grüssau to Wilhelmina: “Oh, you, my dearest family member, the one I care about most in this world, for the sake of everything you hold dear, take care of yourself, and let me at least find comfort in shedding my tears with you!”

Frederick had left Grüssau on the 18th of April for his Moravian455 campaign. He returned on the 8th of August, after an absence of sixteen weeks. The campaign had proved an entire failure. A Russian army, fifty thousand strong, under General Fermor, had invaded Brandenburg, just beyond the extreme northern frontier of Silesia. These semi-barbarian soldiers had burned the town of Cüstrin, on the Oder, were besieging the small garrison in its citadel, and were committing the most horrid outrages upon the community around, not only plundering and burning, but even consigning captives to the flames.

Frederick left Grüssau on April 18th for his Moravian455 campaign. He returned on August 8th, after being away for sixteen weeks. The campaign had been a complete failure. A Russian army, fifty thousand strong, led by General Fermor, had invaded Brandenburg, just beyond the northern edge of Silesia. These semi-barbaric soldiers had burned the town of Cüstrin on the Oder, were besieging the small garrison in its citadel, and were committing awful atrocities against the local community, not only plundering and burning but even burning captives alive.

On Friday, the 11th of August, Frederick, leaving forty thousand men to guard Silesia, took fifteen thousand troops, and commenced a very rapid march to attack the fifty thousand Russians. Upon the eve of his departure he wrote to his brother Henry:

On Friday, August 11th, Frederick left forty thousand men to defend Silesia, took fifteen thousand troops, and began a quick march to confront the fifty thousand Russians. The night before he left, he wrote to his brother Henry:

“I march to-morrow against the Russians. As the events of war may lead to all sorts of accidents, and it may easily happen to me to be killed, I have thought it my duty to let you know what my plans were; the rather, as you are the guardian of my nephew,118 with unlimited authority.”

“I’m heading into battle against the Russians tomorrow. Since war can bring about all kinds of unexpected situations, and I might very well be killed, I felt it was important to share my plans with you, especially since you are the guardian of my nephew, 118, with full authority.”

He then gave minute directions as to what he wished to have done in case of his death. Marching rapidly through Liegnitz and Hohenfriedberg, he reached Frankfort-on-the-Oder on Sunday, the 20th of August. He was now within twenty miles of Cüstrin, and the bombardment by the heavy siege guns of the Russians could be distinctly heard. Frederick took lodgings at the house of a clergyman’s widow. Frequently he arose and went out of doors, listening impatiently to the cannonade. An eye-witness writes:

He then gave detailed instructions on what he wanted done in case he died. Marching quickly through Liegnitz and Hohenfriedberg, he arrived in Frankfort-on-the-Oder on Sunday, August 20th. He was now just twenty miles from Cüstrin, and the heavy siege guns of the Russians could be clearly heard. Frederick rented a room at a clergyman's widow's house. He often got up and went outside, impatiently listening to the cannon fire. An eyewitness writes:

“I observed that the king took a pinch of snuff as the sound of each discharge reached him. And even through that air of intrepidity, which never abandoned this prince, I could perceive the sensations of pity toward that unfortunate town, and an eager impatience to fly to its relief.”

“I saw the king take a pinch of snuff with each gunshot he heard. Even with the brave demeanor that always surrounded this prince, I could sense his feelings of pity for that unfortunate town and a strong eagerness to rush to its aid.”

The next morning, taking with him a small escort, and leaving his army to follow with as much speed as possible, he rode rapidly down the western bank of the Oder to Görgast, where he had an encampment of about fifteen thousand Prussian troops. At five o’clock in the morning of Tuesday the two bands were united. He now had at his command thirty thousand men.456 Cüstrin was on the eastern bank of the Oder, near the confluence of the Warta. A few miles below Cüstrin, at Schaumburg, there were portions of a bridge across the Oder. Here the Russians had erected a redoubt. Frederick ordered a violent attack upon that redoubt. During the night, while the attention of the Russians was occupied by the assault, Frederick marched his army twelve miles farther down the river, and crossed, without any loss, at Güstebiese. His baggage train he left, carefully guarded, on the western bank of the river.

The next morning, with a small escort, and leaving his army to catch up as quickly as they could, he rode swiftly down the western bank of the Oder to Görgast, where about fifteen thousand Prussian troops were camped. At five o'clock on Tuesday morning, the two groups united. He now had thirty thousand men at his command.456 Cüstrin was on the eastern bank of the Oder, near where it meets the Warta. A few miles downstream from Cüstrin, at Schaumburg, parts of a bridge crossed the Oder. Here, the Russians had built a redoubt. Frederick ordered a fierce attack on that redoubt. During the night, while the Russians were focused on the assault, Frederick marched his army twelve miles further down the river and crossed safely at Güstebiese. He left his baggage train, carefully guarded, on the western bank of the river.

Pressing straight forward, Wednesday morning, to the east, he encamped that night about ten miles from Güstebiese. He had so successfully veiled his movements that the Russians knew not where he was. On Thursday morning, August 24, at an early hour, he resumed his march, and crossed the Mützel River at various points. His confidence of victory was so great that he destroyed all the bridges behind him to prevent the retreat of the Russians.

Pressing straight ahead on Wednesday morning to the east, he set up camp that night about ten miles from Güstebiese. He had concealed his movements so well that the Russians had no idea where he was. On Thursday morning, August 24, early in the day, he continued his march and crossed the Mützel River at several points. His belief in his victory was so strong that he destroyed all the bridges behind him to prevent the Russians from retreating.

General Fermor was now informed, through his roving Cossacks, of the position of Frederick. Immediately he raised the siege of Cüstrin, hurried off his baggage train to Klein Kamin, on the road to Landsberg, and retired with his army to a very strong position near the village of Zorndorf. Here there was a wild, bleak, undulating plain, interspersed with sluggish streams, and forests, and impassable bogs. General Fermor massed the Russian troops in a very irregular hollow square, with his staff baggage in the centre, and awaited an attack. This huge quadrilateral of living lines, four men deep, with bristling bayonets, prancing horses, and iron-lipped cannon, was about two miles long by one mile broad.

General Fermor was now notified, through his wandering Cossacks, about Frederick's position. He quickly lifted the siege of Cüstrin, sent his baggage train to Klein Kamin on the way to Landsberg, and pulled back his army to a very strong position near the village of Zorndorf. This area featured a wild, bleak, rolling plain, scattered with sluggish streams, forests, and impenetrable swamps. General Fermor gathered the Russian troops into a large, irregular hollow square, with his staff baggage in the center, and waited for an attack. This massive shape of living soldiers, four men deep, with menacing bayonets, prancing horses, and heavily armed cannons, was about two miles long and one mile wide.

At half past three o’clock on Friday morning, Frederick, with his whole army, was again upon the march. He swept quite around the eastern end of the Russian square, and approached it from the south. By this sagacious movement he could, in case of disaster, retreat to Cüstrin.

At 3:30 AM on Friday, Frederick, along with his entire army, was on the move again. He made a wide sweep around the eastern end of the Russian formation and approached it from the south. This clever maneuver allowed him to retreat to Cüstrin in case anything went wrong.

The morning of a hot August day dawned sultry, the wind breathing gently from the south. Bands of Cossacks hovered around upon the wings of the Prussian army, occasionally riding up to the infantry ranks and discharging their pistols at them. The Prussians were forbidden to make any reply. “The infantry457 pours along like a plowman drawing his furrow, heedless of the circling crows.” The Cossacks set fire to Zorndorf. In a few hours it was in ashes, while clouds of suffocating smoke were swept through the Russian lines.

The morning of a hot August day started out sticky, with a gentle breeze coming from the south. Groups of Cossacks lingered near the Prussian army, sometimes riding up to the infantry and firing their pistols at them. The Prussians were ordered not to respond. “The infantry 457 moves forward like a plowman working his field, oblivious to the circling crows.” The Cossacks set Zorndorf on fire. In just a few hours, it turned to ashes, as clouds of choking smoke swept through the Russian lines.

The attack was made about eight o’clock, with the whole concentrated force of the Prussians, upon the southwest wing of the quadrilateral. The carnage produced by the Prussian batteries, as their balls swept crosswise through the massed Russians, was terrible. One cannon-shot struck down forty-two men. For a moment the Prussians were thrown into confusion by the destructive fire returned by the foe, and seemed discomfited. The Russians plunged wildly forward, with loud huzzas. In the eagerness of their onset their lines were broken.

The attack happened around eight o’clock, with the entire focused force of the Prussians targeting the southwest corner of the quadrilateral. The slaughter caused by the Prussian cannons, as their shots swept through the packed Russian troops, was horrific. One cannon shot took out forty-two men. For a moment, the Prussians were thrown into disarray by the devastating fire from their enemies and appeared defeated. The Russians charged forward wildly, cheering loudly. In their eagerness to attack, their formations fell apart.

CHARGE OF GENERAL SEIDLITZ AT ZORNDORF.

General Seidlitz, with five thousand horsemen, immediately dashed in among them. Almost in an instant the shouts of victory458 sank away in groans of death. It was an awful scene—a maelstrom of chaotic tumult, shrieks, blood, and death. The stolid Russians refused to fly. The Prussians sabred them and trampled them beneath their horses’ feet until their arms were weary. This terrible massacre lasted until one o’clock. The whole of the western portion of the quadrilateral was destroyed. The Russian soldiers at a little distance from the scene of carnage, reckless and under poor discipline, broke open the sutlers’ brandy-casks, and were soon beastly drunk. The officers, endeavoring to restrain them, dashed in many of the casks. The soldiers, throwing themselves upon the ground, lapped the fiery liquid from the puddles. They killed many of their own officers, and became almost unresisting victims of the sabres and bayonets of their assailants. The Prussians, exasperated by the awful acts of cruelty which had been perpetrated by the Russians, showed no mercy. In the midst of the butchery, the word ran along their lines, “No quarter.”

General Seidlitz, with five thousand horsemen, quickly charged into the fray. Almost instantly, the cheers of victory faded into cries of anguish. It was a horrific scene—a whirlwind of chaos, screams, blood, and death. The stoic Russians refused to flee. The Prussians slashed at them and trampled them underfoot until their arms grew tired. This brutal massacre continued until one o’clock. The entire western part of the quadrilateral was devastated. Russian soldiers a bit away from the slaughter, reckless and poorly disciplined, broke open the sutlers’ brandy barrels and soon became outrageously drunk. The officers tried to contain them, smashing many of the barrels. The soldiers sprawled on the ground, lapping up the fiery liquid from the puddles. They killed many of their own officers and became almost helpless victims of the swords and bayonets of their attackers. The Prussians, enraged by the horrific cruelty inflicted by the Russians, showed no mercy. Amidst the carnage, the word spread along their lines, “No quarter.”

The eastern half of the immense quadrangle endeavored to reform itself, so as to present a new front to the foe. But, before this could be done, Frederick hurled his right wing, his centre, and all that remained disposable of his left wing upon it. His cavalry plunged into the disordered mass. His batteries, with almost unprecedented rapidity of fire, tore the tumultuous and panic-stricken ranks to shreds; and his line of infantry, like a supernatural wall of bristling steel, unwaveringly advanced, pouring in upon the foe the most deadly volleys.

The eastern half of the huge quadrangle tried to reorganize itself to face the enemy with a fresh approach. But before it could do that, Frederick launched his right flank, center, and everything else he could spare from the left flank at it. His cavalry charged into the chaotic crowd. His artillery, firing at an almost incredible speed, shredded the disorganized and terrified ranks; and his line of infantry, like an unstoppable wall of sharp steel, moved forward steadily, unleashing deadly volleys on the enemy.

At one moment the Russian horse dashed against this line and staggered it. Frederick immediately rushed into the vortex to rally the broken battalions. At the same instant the magnificent squadrons of Seidlitz, five thousand strong, flushed with victory, swept like the storm-wind upon the Russian dragoons. They were whirled back like autumn leaves before the gale. About four o’clock the firing ceased. The ammunition on both sides was nearly expended. For some time the Prussians had been using the cartridge-boxes of the dead Russians.

At one moment, the Russian cavalry charged into this line and disrupted it. Frederick quickly plunged into the chaos to regroup the shattered battalions. At the same time, the impressive squadrons of Seidlitz, five thousand strong and fueled by victory, swept in like a fierce wind against the Russian dragoons. They were blown back like autumn leaves in a storm. Around four o’clock, the gunfire stopped. The ammunition on both sides was almost used up. For some time, the Prussians had been using the cartridge boxes of the fallen Russians.

And now ensued a conflict such as has seldom been witnessed in modern times. The Russian soldiers would not run. Indeed, the bridges over the Mützel being broken down, they could only plunge into the river and be drowned. Frenzied with brandy,459 they fought like tigers. “Then began a tug of deadly massacring and wrestling, man to man, with bayonets, with butts of muskets, with hands, even with teeth, such as was never seen before. The shore of Mützel is thick with men and horses, who have tried to cross, and lie swallowed in the ooze.”119

And now a conflict broke out like few seen in recent times. The Russian soldiers wouldn’t flee. In fact, with the bridges over the Mützel destroyed, they had no choice but to plunge into the river and drown. Fueled by brandy, they fought fiercely. “Then began a struggle of brutal killing and grappling, man to man, with bayonets, rifle stocks, hands, even teeth, like never seen before. The banks of the Mützel are covered with men and horses trying to cross, lying submerged in the muck.”459119

BATTLE OF ZORNDORF, AUGUST 25, 1758.

BATTLE OF ZORNDORF, AUGUST 25, 1758.

a a. Prussian Army about to cross the Mützel. b b b. Russian Army ranked for Battle. c. Russian Baggage. d d. Prussian Infantry. e e. Prussian Cavalry. f. Prussian Baggage.

a a. Prussian Army ready to cross the Mützel. b b b. Russian Army lined up for battle. c. Russian baggage. d d. Prussian infantry. e e. Prussian cavalry. f. Prussian baggage.

This lasted till nightfall. As darkness veiled the awful scene the exhausted soldiers dropped upon the ground, and, regardless of the dead and of the groans of the wounded, borne heavily upon the night air, slept almost side by side. It is appalling to reflect upon what a fiend to humanity man has been, as revealed in the history of the nations. All the woes of earth combined are as nothing compared with the misery which man has inflicted upon his brother.

This went on until night fell. As darkness covered the terrible scene, the tired soldiers collapsed onto the ground and, ignoring the dead and the sounds of the wounded, which weighed heavily in the night air, slept almost shoulder to shoulder. It's shocking to think about how much of a monster humanity has been, as shown in the history of nations. All the troubles of the world combined are nothing compared to the suffering that people have caused each other.

During the night bands of barbarian, half-drunken Cossacks ranged the field, plundering the wounded and the dead, friends and foes alike, and thrusting their bayonets through those who presented any remonstrance, or who might, by any possibility, call them to account. Four hundred of these wretches the equally merciless Prussians drove into a barn, fastened them in, set460 fire to the building, and burned them all to ashes. During the carnage of this bloody day the Russians lost, in killed, wounded, and missing, 21,539. The Prussians lost 11,390, more than one third of their number.

During the night, groups of drunken Cossacks roamed the battlefield, looting the wounded and dead, regardless of whether they were friends or enemies. They stabbed anyone who tried to protest or hold them accountable. The equally brutal Prussians herded four hundred of these miserable souls into a barn, locked them inside, set the building on fire, and burned them all to ashes. On this bloody day of slaughter, the Russians suffered a loss of 21,539 in killed, wounded, and missing. The Prussians lost 11,390, which was more than a third of their forces.

General Fermor availed himself of the darkness in withdrawing his troops, now numbering but 28,000, a mile west from the battle-field to a dense forest of firs, called Drewitz Heath. Frederick arranged his little remaining band of but eighteen thousand men in two lines, facing the foe. The next morning, Saturday, the 26th, General Fermor sent a request for a truce of three days to bury the dead. The reply was, “Your proposal is entirely inadmissible. The victor will bury the slain.” There was no serious resumption of the conflict on that day. Both parties were alike exhausted, and had alike expended nearly all their ammunition. Frederick’s hussars had, however, found out the position of the Russian baggage train, and had effectually plundered a large portion of it.

General Fermor took advantage of the darkness to pull his troops back, now only numbering 28,000, a mile west of the battlefield to a thick fir forest known as Drewitz Heath. Frederick arranged his small remaining force of just eighteen thousand men in two lines, facing the enemy. The next morning, Saturday the 26th, General Fermor requested a three-day truce to bury the dead. The response was, “Your proposal is completely unacceptable. The victor will bury the fallen.” There was no serious resumption of fighting that day. Both sides were equally exhausted and had nearly used up all their ammunition. However, Frederick’s hussars discovered the location of the Russian supply train and effectively plundered a significant part of it.

Saturday night was very dark. A thick mist mantled the landscape. About midnight, the Russians, feigning an artillery attack upon a portion of the Prussian lines, commenced a retreat. Groping their way through the woods south of Zorndorf, they reached the great road to Landsberg, and retreated so rapidly that Frederick could annoy them but little.

Saturday night was really dark. A thick fog covered the landscape. Around midnight, the Russians pretended to launch an artillery attack on a section of the Prussian lines and started to pull back. Making their way through the woods south of Zorndorf, they got to the main road to Landsberg and retreated so quickly that Frederick could barely bother them.

Several well-authenticated anecdotes are given respecting the conduct of Frederick on this occasion, which illustrate the various phases in the character of this extraordinary man. The evening before the battle of Zorndorf, the king, having completed his arrangements for a conflict against vastly unequal numbers, upon whose issue were dependent probably both his throne and his life, sent for a member of his staff of some literary pretensions, and spent some time in criticising and amending one of the poems of Rousseau. Was this an affected display of calmness, the result of vanity? Was it an adroit measure to impress the officers with a conviction of his own sense of security? Was it an effort to throw off the terrible pressure which was upon his mind, as the noble Abraham Lincoln often found it to be a moral necessity to indulge in a jest even amidst scenes of the greatest anguish? Whatever may have been the motive, the fact is worthy of record.

Several well-documented stories highlight Frederick's behavior during this time, showcasing the different facets of this remarkable man. The night before the battle of Zorndorf, the king, after finalizing his plans to fight against overwhelming odds—on which his throne and life likely depended—called for a member of his staff who had some literary talent and spent time critiquing and improving one of Rousseau's poems. Was this a show of calmness that stemmed from vanity? Was it a clever tactic to convince his officers of his own confidence? Was it a way to relieve the intense pressure weighing on him, much like Abraham Lincoln often felt the need to make a joke even in the darkest times? Whatever the reason, the fact is noteworthy.

461 Immediately after the battle Sir Andrew Mitchell called upon the king to congratulate him upon his great victory. General Seidlitz, who had led the two decisive cavalry charges, was in the royal tent. The king, in reply to the congratulations of the English minister, pointed to General Seidlitz and said,

461 Right after the battle, Sir Andrew Mitchell came to the king to congratulate him on his significant victory. General Seidlitz, who had directed the two decisive cavalry charges, was in the royal tent. In response to the English minister's congratulations, the king pointed to General Seidlitz and said,

“Had it not been for him, things would have had a bad look by this time.”

“Without him, things would have looked pretty bad by now.”

The town of Cüstrin, it will be remembered, was utterly consumed, being set on fire by the shells of the Russians. The commandant of the citadel was censured for not having prevented the calamity. He immediately sought an interview with the king, endeavoring to apologize for his conduct. The king, perhaps justly, perhaps very unjustly, interrupted him, saying,

The town of Cüstrin, as you may recall, was completely destroyed after being set on fire by Russian shells. The commandant of the citadel was criticized for failing to prevent the disaster. He quickly tried to meet with the king to explain himself. The king, perhaps fairly, perhaps unfairly, interrupted him, saying,

“I find no fault with you; the blame is entirely my own in having appointed you to such a post.”

“I have no issue with you; the blame is completely mine for putting you in such a position.”

The utter ruin of the town of Cüstrin, and the misery of its houseless and starving population, seemed to affect the king deeply. To the inhabitants, who clustered around him, he said, kindly,

The complete destruction of the town of Cüstrin and the suffering of its homeless and starving residents seemed to impact the king profoundly. To the people who gathered around him, he said kindly,

“My children, I could not come to you sooner, or this calamity should not have happened. Have a little patience, and I will cause every thing to be rebuilt.”

“My kids, I couldn’t get to you sooner, or this disaster wouldn’t have happened. Be a bit patient, and I’ll make sure everything gets rebuilt.”

As has often been mentioned, the carnage of the battle-field constitutes by no means the greater part of the miseries of war. One of the sufferers from the conflagration of the city of Cüstrin gives the following graphic account of the scene. It was the 15th of August, 1758:

As has often been said, the devastation of the battlefield is by no means the worst part of war. One of the victims of the fire in the city of Cüstrin provides the following vivid description of the scene. It was the 15th of August, 1758:

“The enemy threw such a multitude of bombs and red-hot balls into the city that by nine o’clock in the morning it burned, with great fury, in three different places. The fire could not be extinguished, as the houses were closely built, and the streets narrow. The air appeared like a shower of fiery rain and hail. The surprised inhabitants had not time to think of any thing but of saving their lives by getting into the open fields.

“The enemy dropped so many bombs and fireballs into the city that by nine in the morning it was burning fiercely in three different spots. The fire couldn't be put out since the houses were packed tightly together and the streets were narrow. The air looked like a rain of fire and hail. The shocked residents had no time to think about anything except escaping into the open fields.”

“I, as well as many others, had hardly time to put on my clothes. As I was leading my wife, with a young child in her arms, and my other children and servants before me—who were almost naked, having, ever since the first fright, run about as they got out of bed—the bombs and red-hot balls fell round462 about us. The bombs, in their bursting, dashed the houses to pieces, and every thing that was in their way. Every body that could got out of the town as fast as possible. The crowd of naked and in the highest degree wretched people was vastly great.

“I, along with many others, barely had time to get dressed. While I was helping my wife, holding a young child in her arms, and leading my other children and servants who were almost naked—having run out of bed in a panic since the first fright—the bombs and red-hot balls fell all around us. The blasts from the bombs shattered houses and everything in their path. Everyone who could was fleeing the town as fast as possible. The crowd of naked and extremely distressed people was huge.462

“Among the women were many of distinction, who had neither shoes nor stockings, nor hardly any thing else on, thinking only of saving their lives. When I had seen my family in the open field, I endeavored to return and save something, if possible, but in vain. I could not force my way through the multitude of people thronging out at the gate, some few with horses and carriages, and others with the sick and bedridden on their backs. The bombs and red-hot balls fell so thick that all thought themselves happy if they could but escape with their lives.

“Among the women were many of high status, who had no shoes or stockings, and barely anything else on, focused solely on saving their lives. After I saw my family in the open field, I tried to go back and save something, if I could, but it was useless. I couldn’t push my way through the crowd of people rushing out at the gate, some with horses and carriages, and others carrying the sick and bedridden on their backs. The bombs and fireballs were falling so thick that everyone felt lucky just to escape with their lives.”

“Many thousands are made miserable, inhabitants as well as strangers. Many from the open country and defenseless towns in Prussia, Pomerania, and the New Marche had fled hither, with their most valuable effects, in hopes of security when the Russians entered the Prussian territories; so that a great many who, a little while ago, were possessed of considerable fortunes, are now reduced to beggary. On the roads nothing was to be seen but misery, and nothing to be heard but such cries and lamentations as were enough to move even the stones. No one knew where to get a morsel of bread, nor what to do for farther subsistence. The fire was so furious that the cannon in the store and artillery houses were all melted. The loaded bombs and cartridges for cannon and muskets, with a large quantity of gunpowder, went off at once with a most horrible explosion. The fury of the enemy fell almost entirely upon the inhabitants. They did not begin to batter the fortifications, except with a few shot, till the 17th, after the rest was all destroyed.”120

“Many thousands are suffering, both locals and newcomers. Many people from the countryside and defenseless towns in Prussia, Pomerania, and the New Marche fled here with their most valuable belongings, hoping for safety when the Russians entered the Prussian territories. As a result, a large number who were once quite wealthy are now reduced to begging. On the roads, all you could see was misery, and the cries and laments were enough to move even stones. No one knew where to find a bite to eat, nor what to do for further survival. The fire was so intense that the cannons in the storage and artillery houses all melted. The loaded bombs and cartridges for cannons and muskets, along with a large amount of gunpowder, exploded all at once with a terrifying blast. The enemy's wrath fell almost entirely on the inhabitants. They didn't start attacking the fortifications with anything more than a few shots until the 17th, after everything else was already destroyed.”120


463

463

CHAPTER XXIX.
THE THIRD CAMPAIGN OF THE SEVEN YEARS' WAR.

Frederick’s Attempt to Rescue his Brother.—Captured Dispatches.—Battle of Hochkirch.—Defeat and Retreat of Frederick.—Death of Wilhelmina.—Letter to Voltaire.—Rejoicings at Vienna.—The Siege of Neisse.—The Siege of Dresden.—Conflagrations and Terror.—The Siege raised by Frederick.—Results of the Third Campaign.—Unavailing Efforts for Peace.—Despair of Frederick.

Frederick’s Effort to Save His Brother.—Seized Messages.—Battle of Hochkirch.—Frederick’s Defeat and Withdrawal.—Wilhelmina’s Death.—Letter to Voltaire.—Celebrations in Vienna.—The Siege of Neisse.—The Siege of Dresden.—Fires and Chaos.—The Siege Broken by Frederick.—Results of the Third Campaign.—Unsuccessful Peace Efforts.—Frederick’s Despair.

The battle of Zorndorf was the most bloody of the Seven Years’ War. It is often considered the most furious battle which was ever fought. While Frederick was engaged in this arduous campaign in the extreme north, driving the Russians from the Prussian territory, an Austrian army, ninety thousand strong, under General Daun, was endeavoring to reconquer Saxony. The Prussian king had left his brother Henry in defense of the province, with a small force garrisoned in the city of Dresden.

The battle of Zorndorf was the bloodiest of the Seven Years’ War. It's often regarded as the most intense battle ever fought. While Frederick was involved in this tough campaign in the far north, pushing the Russians out of Prussian land, an Austrian army of ninety thousand, led by General Daun, was trying to reclaim Saxony. The Prussian king had left his brother Henry to defend the province, with a small force stationed in the city of Dresden.

On the 2d of September, 1758, Frederick, advancing from the smouldering ruins of Cüstrin, pushed forward his columns by forced marches for the rescue of his brother, who was nearly surrounded by vastly outnumbering foes. While upon this rapid march an Austrian courier was captured, with the following dispatch, which he was bearing from General Daun to General Fermor, whose army of Russians had just been so terribly beaten by Frederick upon the field of Zorndorf, but of which fact the Austrian general had not yet been apprised:

On September 2, 1758, Frederick, moving forward from the smoldering ruins of Cüstrin, hurried his troops with forced marches to rescue his brother, who was almost surrounded by a much larger enemy force. During this rapid march, an Austrian courier was captured with a dispatch he was carrying from General Daun to General Fermor, whose army of Russians had just suffered a terrible defeat at the hands of Frederick on the battlefield of Zorndorf, a fact that the Austrian general was not yet aware of:

“Your excellency does not know that wily enemy, the King of Prussia, as well as I do. By no means get into a battle with him. Cautiously manœuvre about. Detain him there till I have got my stroke in Saxony done. Don’t try fighting him.

“Your excellency isn’t aware of that cunning enemy, the King of Prussia, as well as I am. Definitely avoid engaging him in battle. Be cautious. Keep him occupied there until I’ve completed my tasks in Saxony. Don’t try to fight him.”

Daun.

Daun.

Frederick, with grim humor characteristic of him, sent back the courier with the following response, as if from the Russian general, signed Fermor, but in the king’s handwriting:

Frederick, with his typical dark humor, sent the courier back with this reply, seemingly from the Russian general, signed Fermor, but written in the king’s handwriting:

464

464

“Your excellency was right to warn me against a cunning enemy whom you know better than I. Here have I tried fighting him, and have got beaten. Your unfortunate

“You were right to caution me about a cunning enemy you know better than I do. I tried to confront him here and ended up being defeated. Your unfortunate

Fermor.”

Fermor.

CAMPAIGN OF HOCHKIRCH.

On the 12th of September Frederick dined with his brother Henry in Dresden. General Daun, as soon as he heard of the approach of the foe whom he so much dreaded, rapidly retreated eastward to Stolpen, on the road to Bautzen. Here he intrenched himself in one of the strongest posts in Germany. As Frederick,465 at Dresden, received his supplies from Bautzen, he was much embarrassed in having his line of communication thus cut. Finding all his efforts vain to provoke Daun to a battle, after four weeks of such endeavors, he loaded his baggage trains with supplies for nine days, and by a rapid march, brushing away in the movement Daun’s right flank, and advancing through Bautzen, established himself among the hills of Hochkirch. He had thus taken position thirty miles east of General Daun’s encampment at Stolpen, cutting off his line of supply.

On September 12, Frederick had dinner with his brother Henry in Dresden. General Daun, upon learning of the enemy he feared so much approaching, quickly retreated eastward to Stolpen, on the way to Bautzen. There, he fortified one of the strongest positions in Germany. While Frederick, in Dresden, was receiving his supplies from Bautzen, he was quite troubled by his communication line being cut. After four weeks of unsuccessful attempts to entice Daun into a battle, he loaded his supply trains with enough provisions for nine days and, through a swift march that pushed away Daun’s right flank, advanced through Bautzen and positioned himself in the hills of Hochkirch. He had therefore taken a position thirty miles east of General Daun’s camp at Stolpen, cutting off his supply line.

This movement of Frederick took place on the 1st of October, 1758. On the 5th, General Daun, who stood in great dread of the military ability of his foe, after holding a council of war, made a stealthy march, in a dark and rainy night, a little to the south of Frederick’s encampment, and took a strong position about a mile east of him, at Kittlitz, near Löbau. With the utmost diligence he reared intrenchments and palisades to guard himself from attack by a foe whom he outnumbered more than two to one. He thus again blocked Frederick’s direct communication with Silesia.

This movement of Frederick happened on October 1, 1758. On the 5th, General Daun, who was very wary of his opponent's military skills, held a council of war and made a stealthy march on a dark, rainy night, a little to the south of Frederick’s camp. He secured a strong position about a mile east of him, at Kittlitz, near Löbau. With great effort, he built fortifications and barriers to protect himself from an enemy he outnumbered by more than two to one. He effectively blocked Frederick’s direct communication with Silesia again.

General Daun’s army, numbering ninety thousand men, occupied very strong positions in a line extending north and south about five miles. On the 10th, Frederick, having obtained the needful supplies, resolutely, rashly—but, situated as he was, what the world deemed rashness was prudence—advanced with but twenty-eight thousand men to assail this foe of ninety thousand behind his intrenchments. About five miles to the north, in the rear of the heights of Weissenberg, Frederick had a reserve of ten or twelve thousand men under General Retzow.

General Daun’s army, made up of ninety thousand soldiers, held strong positions along a line stretching approximately five miles from north to south. On the 10th, Frederick, having secured the necessary supplies, boldly moved forward with only twenty-eight thousand men to engage this ninety-thousand-strong opponent behind his fortifications. Around five miles to the north, behind the heights of Weissenberg, Frederick had a reserve of ten to twelve thousand men under General Retzow.

As the Prussian king brought up his little army to within a mile of the lines of General Daun, and ordered the troops to take position there, his boldest generals were appalled. It seemed to be courting sure and utter destruction. The king’s favorite adjutant general, Marwitz, ventured to remonstrate against so fearful a risk. He was immediately ordered under arrest. The line was formed while the Austrian cannon were playing incessantly upon it. General Retzow, who for some cause had failed to seize the heights of Stromberg, was also placed under arrest. Thus the king taught all that he would be obeyed implicitly and without questioning.

As the Prussian king brought his small army within a mile of General Daun's lines and ordered the troops to take up their positions, his boldest generals were shocked. It seemed to invite certain and total destruction. The king’s favorite adjutant general, Marwitz, dared to protest against such a dangerous move. He was immediately put under arrest. The line was formed while the Austrian cannons continuously fired at it. General Retzow, who for some reason had failed to capture the heights of Stromberg, was also arrested. This way, the king made it clear that he expected complete obedience without any questioning.

466 General Keith, as he looked upon the long and compact lines of General Daun, and saw how apparently easy it would be for him, from his commanding position, to annihilate the Prussian army, said to the king, sadly,

466 General Keith, as he gazed at the long and organized lines of General Daun, and realized how easy it would be for him, from his superior position, to wipe out the Prussian army, said to the king, sadly,

“If the Austrians do not attack us here they deserve to be hanged.”

“If the Austrians don’t attack us here, they deserve to be hanged.”

The king coolly replied, “We must hope that they are more afraid of us than even of the gallows.”

The king calmly replied, “We have to hope that they’re more scared of us than they are of the gallows.”

On Friday, the 13th of October, the two hostile armies, separated merely by a brook and a ravine, were within half a mile of each other. Daun had manifested great timidity in not venturing from behind his intrenchments to attack the little band of Prussians. Frederick, emboldened by this cowardice on the part of his opponent, made his arrangements to assail the Austrians in a secret attack before the dawn of the morning of Saturday, the 14th. In the mean time, Daun, probably a little ashamed of being held at bay by so small a force, formed his plan to surround and destroy the whole Prussian army. It is generally conceded by military critics that the plan was admirably conceived, and would have been triumphantly executed but for the singular ability displayed by Frederick.

On Friday, October 13th, the two opposing armies, just a brook and a ravine apart, were only half a mile away from each other. Daun showed significant hesitation by not leaving his fortifications to attack the small group of Prussians. Frederick, encouraged by this cowardice from his adversary, prepared to launch a surprise attack against the Austrians before dawn on Saturday, October 14th. In the meantime, Daun, likely feeling a bit embarrassed about being held off by such a small force, devised a plan to encircle and eliminate the entire Prussian army. Military experts generally agree that the plan was well thought out and would have been successfully carried out if it weren't for the exceptional skill displayed by Frederick.

General Daun directed the energies of his ninety thousand troops upon the right wing of the Prussians, which could not number more than twenty thousand men. As soon as it was dark on Friday night, the 13th, he sent thirty thousand men, under guides familiar with every rod of the country, by a circuitous route, south of the Prussian lines, through forest roads, to take position on the west of the Prussian right wing, just in its rear. General Daun himself accompanied this band of picked men.

General Daun focused the efforts of his ninety thousand troops on the right flank of the Prussians, which likely had no more than twenty thousand men. As soon as it got dark on Friday night, the 13th, he sent thirty thousand soldiers, led by guides who knew the area well, on a winding route south of the Prussian lines, through forest paths, to take position to the west of the Prussian right flank, right behind it. General Daun himself joined this group of elite soldiers.

At three o’clock of a dark and misty morning, the Austrians from the west, the south, and the east rushed upon the sleeping Prussians. At the same time, an attack was made upon the left wing of the Prussians, which was a feint to bewilder them, and to prevent re-enforcements from being sent to the right wing. For five hours there was a scene of tumult, confusion, and horror which can neither be described nor imagined. The morning was dark, the fog dense, and the Prussians, though ever on the alert, were taken by surprise. No one in the army of Frederick467 thought either of running or of surrendering. It was a hand-to-hand fight, with bayonets, and sabres, and butts of muskets. Marshal Keith, after receiving two bullet-wounds which he did not regard, was shot through the heart.

At three o’clock on a dark and foggy morning, the Austrians came charging at the sleeping Prussians from the west, south, and east. At the same time, they launched an attack on the left wing of the Prussians as a distraction to confuse them and stop reinforcements from being sent to the right wing. For five hours, chaos, confusion, and horror unfolded—an experience beyond description or imagination. The morning was dark, the fog was thick, and even though the Prussians were always alert, they were caught off guard. No one in Frederick's army thought about fleeing or surrendering. It turned into a close-quarter fight with bayonets, sabers, and the butts of muskets. Marshal Keith, after taking two bullet wounds that he ignored, was shot through the heart.

BATTLE OF HOCHKIRCH, OCTOBER 14, 1758.

BATTLE OF HOCHKIRCH, OCTOBER 14, 1758.

a a a. First Position of the Austrian Army. b b. Extreme Left, under Loudon. c c. Austrian Reserve, under Baden-Durlach. d d d. Prussian Army. e e. The two main Prussian Batteries. f. Ziethen’s Cavalry. g g. Prussian Vanguard, under Retzow. h h h. Advance of Austrian Army. i. Right Wing, under D’Ahremberg. k k k. Position taken by the Prussians after the battle.

a a a. First Position of the Austrian Army. b b. Far Left, led by Loudon. c c. Austrian Reserve, led by Baden-Durlach. d d d. Prussian Army. e e. The two main Prussian Batteries. f. Ziethen’s Cavalry. g g. Prussian Vanguard, led by Retzow. h h h. Advance of the Austrian Army. i. Right Wing, led by D’Ahremberg. k k k. Position taken by the Prussians after the battle.

As the morning dawned it was manifest to Frederick that the battle was lost, and that there was no salvation for the remnant of his troops but in a precipitate retreat. He had lost a hundred pieces of cannon, nearly all of his tents and camp furniture, and over eight thousand of his brave troops were either dead or468 captive. Though the Austrians had lost about the same number of men, they had still over eighty thousand left.

As morning broke, it became clear to Frederick that the battle was lost, and the only way to save the few remaining troops was to retreat quickly. He had lost a hundred cannons, almost all of his tents and camp supplies, and more than eight thousand of his brave soldiers were either dead or468 taken prisoner. Although the Austrians had suffered roughly the same number of casualties, they still had over eighty thousand men left.

With wonderful skill, Frederick conducted his retreat about four miles to the northwest. Here he took a strong position at Doberschütz, and again bade defiance to the Austrians. Slowly, proudly, and in perfect order he retired, as if merely shifting his ground. His cavalry was drawn up as on parade, protecting his baggage-wagons as they defiled through the pass of Drehsa. The Austrians gazed quietly upon the movement, not venturing to renew the attack by daylight upon such desperate men.

With impressive skill, Frederick led his retreat about four miles to the northwest. There, he took a strong position at Doberschütz and defiantly challenged the Austrians again. Slowly, confidently, and in perfect order, he withdrew, as if he were just changing his position. His cavalry stood in formation like it was a parade, guarding his baggage wagons as they moved through the Drehsa pass. The Austrians watched the movement quietly, not daring to launch a daylight attack against such determined men.

Though, as we may see from Frederick’s private correspondence, he suffered terribly in these hours of adversity and peril, he assumed in public a tranquil and even a jocose air. Meeting De Catt upon the evening of that dreadful day, he approached him, smiling, and with theatric voice and gesture declaimed a passage from Racine, the purport of which was, “Well, here you see me not a conqueror, but vanquished.”

Though, as we can see from Frederick’s private letters, he suffered greatly during these tough times of hardship and danger, he presented a calm and even cheerful demeanor in public. When he encountered De Catt on the evening of that terrible day, he approached him with a smile and, in a theatrical voice and gesture, recited a line from Racine that meant, “Well, here you see me not as a conqueror, but defeated.”

While on the retreat, one of his aids approached him, and the king, with a smile, said, “Daun has played me a slippery trick to-day.”

While at the retreat, one of his aides came up to him, and the king, smiling, said, “Daun has pulled a sneaky trick on me today.”

“I have seen it,” was the reply; “but it is only a scratch, which your majesty will soon heal again.”

“I’ve seen it,” came the reply; “but it’s just a scratch, which your majesty will heal in no time.”

“Do you think so?” inquired the king.

“Do you really think that?” the king asked.

“Not only I,” the aid replied, “but the whole army, firmly believe it of your majesty.”

“Not just me,” the aide replied, “but the entire army truly believes this about your majesty.”

“You are quite right,” responded the king. “We will manage Daun. What I lament is the number of brave men who have died this morning.”

“You're absolutely right,” replied the king. “We'll handle Daun. What I mourn is how many brave men have died this morning.”

The next day he remarked, “Daun has let us out of checkmate. The game is not lost yet. We will rest ourselves here for a few days, then we will go to Silesia and deliver Neisse. But where are all your guns?” he said, playfully, to an artilleryman, who stood, vacant, on parade.

The next day he said, “Daun has freed us from checkmate. The game isn't over yet. We'll take a break here for a few days, then we'll head to Silesia and deliver Neisse. But where are all your guns?” he asked jokingly, looking at an artilleryman who stood idly on parade.

“Your majesty,” replied the gunner, “the devil stole them all last night.”

"Your majesty," the gunner replied, "the devil took them all last night."

“Ah!” said the king, gayly, “we must have them back from him again.”

“Ah!” said the king cheerfully, “we need to get them back from him again.”

The fourth day after this dreadful defeat the king received the tidings of the death of Wilhelmina. It was apparently the469 heaviest blow he had ever encountered. The anguish which her death caused him he did not attempt to conceal. In a business letter to Prince Henry we find this burst of feeling:

The fourth day after this terrible defeat, the king got the news of Wilhelmina's death. It seemed to be the hardest blow he had ever faced. He didn’t try to hide the pain her death caused him. In a business letter to Prince Henry, we see this outpouring of emotion:

“Great God! my sister of Baireuth, my noble Wilhelmina, dead; died in the very hours while we were fighting here.”

“Great God! My sister of Baireuth, my noble Wilhelmina, is dead; she died just as we were fighting here.”

The king, in a letter to Voltaire upon this occasion, writes:

The king, in a letter to Voltaire for this occasion, writes:

“It will have been easy for you to conceive my grief when you reflect upon the loss I have had. There are some misfortunes which are reparable by constancy and courage, but there are others against which all the firmness with which one can arm one’s self, and all the reasonings of philosophers, are only vain and useless attempts at consolation.121 Of the latter kind is the one with which my unhappy fate overwhelms me, at a moment the most embarrassing and the most anxious of my whole life. I have not been so sick as you have heard. My only complaints are colics, sometimes hemorrhoidal, and sometimes nephritic.

“It would have been easy for you to understand my grief if you considered the loss I’ve faced. Some hardships can be overcome with determination and courage, but there are others where no amount of strength or wisdom from philosophers can truly provide comfort. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ This is the type of misfortune that hits me at the most awkward and anxious time in my life. I haven’t been as sick as you’ve heard. My only problems are stomach aches, sometimes from hemorrhoids, and at other times from kidney stones.”

“If it had depended upon me, I would willingly have devoted myself to that death which those maladies sooner or later bring upon one, in order to save and prolong the life of her whose eyes are now closed. I beseech you never to forget her. Collect all your powers to raise a monument to her honor. You need only do her justice. Without any way abandoning the truth, she will afford you an ample and beautiful subject. I wish you more repose and happiness than falls to my lot.

“If it had been my choice, I would have willingly accepted the death that those illnesses ultimately bring, just to save and prolong the life of the one whose eyes are now shut. I implore you to never forget her. Use all your strength to create a monument in her memory. You just need to do right by her. Staying true to the facts, she will give you a rich and beautiful subject. I wish you more peace and happiness than I have.”

Frederick.122

Frederick.” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

The court at Vienna received with transports of joy the tidings of the victory of Hochkirch. The pope was greatly elated. He regarded the battle as one between the Catholic and Protestant powers. The holy father, Clement XIII., sent a letter of congratulation to Marshal Daun, together with a sword and hat, both blessed by his holiness. The occurrence excited the derision of Frederick, who was afterward accustomed to designate his opponent as “the blessed general with the papal hat.” Frederick remained at Doberschütz ten days. During this time his brother Henry joined him from Dresden with six thousand foot470 and horse. This raised his force to a little above thirty thousand men. General Finck was left in command of the few Prussian troops who remained for the defense of the capital of Saxony.

The court in Vienna celebrated the news of the victory at Hochkirch with great joy. The pope was very pleased. He saw the battle as a conflict between Catholic and Protestant powers. Pope Clement XIII sent a congratulatory letter to Marshal Daun, along with a sword and hat, both blessed by him. This event made Frederick mock, and he later referred to his opponent as "the blessed general with the papal hat." Frederick stayed in Doberschütz for ten days. During this time, his brother Henry arrived from Dresden with six thousand infantry and cavalry. This brought his total forces to just over thirty thousand men. General Finck was left in charge of the few Prussian troops that remained to defend the capital of Saxony.

The Austrian general, flushed with victory, at the head of eighty thousand troops, encamped in strong positions a few miles east of Frederick, on the road to Neisse, in Silesia. Narrowly he watched the movements of his Prussian majesty, but he did not venture to molest him. Neisse was at that time closely besieged by the Austrians. It would inevitably soon fall into their hands unless Frederick could march to its succor. The great strategic object of the Austrian commander was so to block up the road as to prevent the advance of the Prussian troops. Frederick, despising the inactivity of his cautious foe, said to his brother,

The Austrian general, basking in victory, led eighty thousand troops, camped in strong positions a few miles east of Frederick, along the road to Neisse in Silesia. He closely monitored the movements of the Prussian king but didn't dare to attack him. Neisse was at that time under heavy siege by the Austrians. It would soon fall into their hands unless Frederick could march to its rescue. The main goal of the Austrian commander was to block the road and stop the Prussian troops from advancing. Frederick, looking down on the inaction of his cautious opponent, said to his brother,

“Daun has thrown up his cards, so the game is not yet lost. Let us repose ourselves for some days, and then go to the assistance of Neisse.”123

“Daun has given up, so the game isn't over yet. Let's take a break for a few days and then help Neisse.”123

In the mean while, Marshal Daun was so confident that Frederick, with but thirty thousand men, could not drive him from his intrenchments, guarded by eighty thousand veteran troops, that he wrote to General Harsch, who was conducting the siege of Neisse,

In the meantime, Marshal Daun was so confident that Frederick, with only thirty thousand men, couldn't drive him from his fortifications, protected by eighty thousand experienced troops, that he wrote to General Harsch, who was leading the siege of Neisse,

“Go on quietly with your siege. I have the king within my grasp. He is cut off from Silesia except by attacking me. If he does that, I hope to give you a good account of what happens.”124

“Continue your siege quietly. I have the king right where I want him. He's isolated from Silesia unless he comes after me. If he does, I expect to provide you with a detailed report of what unfolds.”124

On Tuesday evening, October 24, 1758, Frederick, in a rapid and secret march, protected by darkness, pushed his whole army around the right wing of the Austrian encampment, and took a very strong position at Reichenbach, in the rear of Marshal Daun, and on the road to Neisse. The Austrian general, astonished at this bold and successful manœuvre, now found that the march of Frederick to Neisse could by no possibility be prevented except by attacking him on his own chosen ground. This he did not dare to do. He therefore resolved to make a rush with his whole army to the west for the capture of Dresden. Frederick, in the mean time, by forced marches, was pressing forward to the east for the relief of Neisse. Thus the two armies were flying from each other in opposite directions.

On Tuesday evening, October 24, 1758, Frederick, in a quick and secret movement concealed by darkness, maneuvered his entire army around the right flank of the Austrian camp and secured a strong position at Reichenbach, behind Marshal Daun and along the route to Neisse. The Austrian general, shocked by this daring and successful tactic, realized that Frederick’s advance to Neisse couldn’t be stopped unless he attacked him on his own ground, which he was too hesitant to do. Instead, he decided to race with his whole army to the west to capture Dresden. Meanwhile, Frederick was making forced marches to the east to relieve Neisse. In this way, the two armies were racing away from each other in opposite directions.

471 When the Austrian general conducting the siege at Neisse heard of the rapid approach of Frederick, he, in consternation, blew up many of his works, abandoned several guns, and, on the 6th of November, fled with his army over the hills to the south, to take shelter in Austria. Frederick triumphantly entered Neisse, and, having driven the Austrians from every outpost, commenced, with a recruited army, his return march to Dresden. The more slow-footed Daun did not reach Dresden till the 8th of the month. The city, outside of the walls, was crowded with the dwellings of the more respectable citizens, and the beautiful mansions of the wealthy. The King of Poland was Elector of Saxony, and was in alliance with Austria. For the Austrian commander to pursue any measure which should lead to the destruction, in whole or in part, of this beautiful capital, would inflict a terrible blow upon the subjects of the ally of Austria.

471 When the Austrian general in charge of the siege at Neisse heard about Frederick's fast approach, he panicked, blew up many of his constructions, abandoned several cannons, and, on November 6th, fled with his army over the hills to the south, seeking refuge in Austria. Frederick proudly entered Neisse and, having pushed the Austrians out of every outpost, began his return march to Dresden with a newly recruited army. The slower Daun didn’t arrive in Dresden until the 8th of the month. Outside the city walls, there were many homes of the more respectable citizens and the lovely mansions of the wealthy. The King of Poland was the Elector of Saxony and was allied with Austria. For the Austrian commander to take any action that could lead to the destruction, either fully or partly, of this beautiful capital would be a severe blow to the subjects of Austria's ally.

As General Daun approached the city, the Prussian general who had been left in command of the small garrison there sent word to him that, should he menace Dresden with his forces, the Prussian commander would be under the necessity of setting fire to the suburbs, as a measure of self-defense. Daun, expostulating vehemently against so cruel an act, regardless of the menace, approached the city on the 9th of November, and at midnight commenced rearing his batteries for the bombardment. In the mean time the Prussian general had filled many of the largest houses with combustibles. As the clock struck three in the morning the torch was applied. The unhappy inhabitants had but three hours’ notice that their houses were to be surrendered to destruction. Instantly the flames burst forth with terrific fury in all directions. Sir Andrew Mitchel, who witnessed the conflagration, writes:

As General Daun got closer to the city, the Prussian general in charge of the small garrison sent a message saying that if Daun threatened Dresden with his forces, he would have no choice but to set the suburbs on fire for self-defense. Daun protested strongly against such a cruel action, but regardless of the threat, he moved toward the city on November 9th and at midnight started setting up his artillery for the bombardment. Meanwhile, the Prussian general had filled many of the largest houses with flammable materials. As the clock struck three in the morning, the fire was ignited. The unfortunate residents had only three hours' notice that their homes would be destroyed. Immediately, flames erupted violently in all directions. Sir Andrew Mitchel, who observed the fire, writes:

“The whole suburb seemed on a blaze. Nay, you would have said the whole town was environed in flames. I will not describe to your lordship the horror, the terror, the confusion of this night; the wretched inhabitants running with their furniture toward the great garden. All Dresden, in appearance, girt with flames, ruin, and smoke.”

“The entire suburb looked like it was on fire. In fact, you would think the whole town was surrounded by flames. I won’t go into detail for your lordship about the horror, the terror, the chaos of that night; the miserable residents rushing with their belongings toward the big garden. All of Dresden, by the looks of it, was engulfed in flames, destruction, and smoke.”

The army of General Daun, with its re-enforcements, amounted to one hundred thousand men. The Prussian garrison in the city numbered but ten thousand. The Prussian officer then in472 command, General Schmettau, emboldened by the approach of Frederick, repelled all proposals for capitulation.

The army of General Daun, along with its reinforcements, totaled one hundred thousand soldiers. The Prussian garrison in the city only had ten thousand. The Prussian officer in charge at the time, General Schmettau, encouraged by Frederick's arrival, rejected all offers to surrender.

“I will defend myself,” he said, “by the known rules of war and honor to the last possible moment.”

"I will stand up for myself," he said, "by the established rules of war and honor until the very last moment."

On the 15th of November Frederick arrived at Lauban, within a hundred miles of Dresden. General Daun immediately raised the siege and retired into Bohemia. Frederick marched triumphantly into the city. Thus, as the extraordinary result of the defeat at Hochkirch, Frederick, by the exhibition of military ability which astonished Europe, regained Neisse, retained Dresden, and swept both Silesia and Saxony entirely free of his foes. Frederick remained in Dresden about a month. He then retired to Breslau, in Silesia, for winter quarters. The winter was a very sad one to him. Private griefs and public calamities weighed heavily upon his heart.125 Though during the year he had destroyed a hundred thousand of his enemies, he had lost thirty thousand of his own brave little band. It was almost impossible, by any energies of conscription, to replace this waste of war. His treasury was exhausted. Though he wrenched from the wretched Saxons every dollar which military rapacity and violence could extort from them, still they were so impoverished by the long and desolating struggle that but little money could be found in the almost empty purses of a beggared people. Another campaign was soon to open, in which the allies, with almost unlimited resources of men and treasure, would again come crowding upon him in all directions in overpowering numbers.

On November 15th, Frederick arrived in Lauban, just a hundred miles from Dresden. General Daun immediately lifted the siege and retreated into Bohemia. Frederick marched triumphantly into the city. As a remarkable result of the defeat at Hochkirch, Frederick demonstrated military skill that astonished Europe, regained Neisse, held onto Dresden, and completely cleared Silesia and Saxony of his enemies. Frederick stayed in Dresden for about a month. He then moved to Breslau in Silesia for winter quarters. The winter was very sad for him. Personal losses and public disasters weighed heavily on his heart. Although he had defeated a hundred thousand of his enemies during the year, he lost thirty thousand of his own brave soldiers. It was nearly impossible to replace this loss through conscription. His finances were drained. Even though he squeezed every dollar he could from the unfortunate Saxons through military greed and force, they were so impoverished by the prolonged and devastating conflict that there was barely any money left in the nearly empty pockets of a broken people. Another campaign was about to start, where his allies, with virtually unlimited resources of men and money, would descend upon him in overwhelming numbers from all sides.

In a letter to his friend Lord Marischal, dated Dresden, November 23, 1758, just after the retreat of Daun into Bohemia from Saxony, Frederick writes sadly,

In a letter to his friend Lord Marischal, dated Dresden, November 23, 1758, just after Daun retreated into Bohemia from Saxony, Frederick writes sadly,

“There is nothing left for us, my dear lord, but to mingle and blend our weeping for the losses we have had. If my head were a fountain of tears, it would not suffice for the grief I feel.

“There’s nothing left for us, my dear lord, but to share and combine our tears for the losses we’ve faced. If my head were a fountain of tears, it still wouldn’t be enough for the sorrow I feel.

“Our campaign is over. And there is nothing come of it on the one side or the other but the loss of a great many worthy people, the misery of a great many poor soldiers crippled forever,473 the ruin of some provinces, and the ravage, pillage, and conflagration of some flourishing towns. These are exploits which make humanity suffer; sad fruits of the wickedness and ambition of certain people in power, who sacrifice every thing to their unbridled passions. I wish you, mon cher milord, nothing that has the least resemblance to my destiny, and every thing that is wanting to it.”

“Our campaign is over. And all that came of it, on either side, is the loss of many deserving people, the suffering of countless poor soldiers left permanently disabled, 473 the destruction of some provinces, and the devastation, looting, and burning of once-thriving towns. These are actions that cause great suffering; sad outcomes of the greed and ambition of certain people in power, who sacrifice everything for their unchecked desires. I wish you, mon cher milord, nothing that resembles my fate, and everything that is lacking in it.”

Thus ended in clouds, darkness, and woe the third campaign of the Seven Years’ War. The winter was employed by both parties in preparing for a renewal of the struggle. As the spring opened the allies had in the field such a military array as Europe had never seen before. Three hundred thousand men extended in a cordon of posts from the Giant Mountains, near the borders of Silesia, to the ocean. In the north, also, Russia had accumulated her vast armies for vigorous co-operation with the southern troops. All the leading Continental powers—France, Austria, Russia, Sweden, and the states of the German Empire—were combined against Prussia. England alone was the inefficient ally of Frederick. Small sums of money were loaned him from the British cabinet; and the court of St. James, hostile in heart to the Prussian king, co-operated with him only so far as was deemed essential for the promotion of British interests.

Thus ended in clouds, darkness, and sorrow the third campaign of the Seven Years’ War. Both sides used the winter to prepare for a renewed struggle. As spring approached, the allies had assembled a military force unlike anything Europe had seen before. Three hundred thousand soldiers formed a line of posts from the Giant Mountains, near the Silesian borders, to the ocean. In the north, Russia had also gathered its vast armies for strong cooperation with the southern troops. All the major Continental powers—France, Austria, Russia, Sweden, and the states of the German Empire—were united against Prussia. England stood alone as the ineffective ally of Frederick. The British cabinet loaned him small amounts of money, and the court of St. James, secretly opposed to the Prussian king, only cooperated with him as much as was seen necessary for advancing British interests.

Perhaps never before was a monarch surrounded by difficulties so great. The energy and sagacity Frederick displayed have never been surpassed, if ever equaled.

Perhaps never before was a monarch faced with such immense challenges. The energy and wisdom Frederick showed have never been matched, if they were ever equaled.

It was a dreary winter to Frederick in Breslau. Sad, silent, and often despairing, he was ever inflexibly resolved to struggle till the last possible moment, and, if need be, to bury himself beneath the ruins of his kingdom. All his tireless energies he devoted to the Herculean work before him. No longer did he affect gayety or seek recreations. Secluded, solitary, sombre, he took counsel of no one. In the possession of absolute power, he issued his commands as with the authority of a god.

It was a bleak winter for Frederick in Breslau. Sad, quiet, and often hopeless, he was determined to fight until the very end, even if it meant burying himself under the ruins of his kingdom. He put all his relentless energy into the monumental task ahead of him. He no longer pretended to be cheerful or looked for distractions. Isolated, alone, and gloomy, he didn’t consult anyone. With absolute power, he issued his orders with the authority of a god.

Frederick made several unavailing efforts during the winter to secure peace. He was weary of a war which threatened his utter destruction. The French were also weary of a struggle in which they encountered but losses and disgraces. England had but little to hope for from the conflict, and would gladly see the exhaustive struggle brought to a close.

Frederick made several unsuccessful attempts during the winter to achieve peace. He was tired of a war that threatened his complete destruction. The French were also tired of a conflict where they only faced losses and humiliations. England had little to gain from the struggle and would happily see the exhausting conflict come to an end.

474 “Many men in all nations long for peace. But there are three women at the top of the world who do not. Their wrath, various in quality, is great in quantity, and disasters do the reverse of appeasing it.”126

474 “Many men around the world desire peace. However, there are three women at the top who do not. Their anger, differing in nature, is vast in scale, and disasters do the opposite of calming it.”126

Of these three women who then held the destinies of Europe in their hands, one only, Maria Theresa, in the estimation of the public, had good cause for war. Frederick was undeniably a highway robber, seeking to plunder her. She was heroically, nobly struggling in self-defense. The guilty Duchess of Pompadour, who, having the entire control of the infamous king, Louis XV., was virtually the Empress of France, stung by an insult from Frederick, did not hesitate to deluge Europe in blood, that she might take the vengeance of a “woman scorned” upon her foe. Catharine II., Empress of Russia, who in moral pollution rivaled the most profligate of kings—whom Carlyle satirizes as “a kind of she Louis XIV.”—also stung by one of Frederick’s witty and bitter epigrams, was mainly impelled by personal pique to push forth her armies into the bloody field.

Of these three women who held Europe's fate in their hands, only Maria Theresa had a legitimate reason for war in the eyes of the public. Frederick was clearly a thief, looking to rob her. She was valiantly and nobly fighting back in self-defense. The guilty Duchess of Pompadour, who had complete control over the notorious King Louis XV and was practically the Empress of France, was provoked by an insult from Frederick and didn't hesitate to unleash violence across Europe to take revenge as a “scorned woman.” Catherine II, Empress of Russia, who was as morally corrupt as the most debauched kings—whom Carlyle mocks as “a kind of she Louis XIV”—was also motivated by personal resentment after being stung by one of Frederick’s sharp and bitter remarks, driving her to send her armies into battle.

The impartial student of history must admit that, were the government of the world taken from the hands of men, and placed in the hands of women, still the anticipated millennium of righteousness and peace might be far distant.

The unbiased student of history has to acknowledge that if the government of the world were to be taken away from men and given to women, the hoped-for age of righteousness and peace could still be a long way off.

In the following letter, which Frederick wrote at this time to his friend D’Argens, he unbosoms his sorrows with unusual frankness. The letter was dated Breslau, March 1, 1759:

In the following letter, which Frederick wrote at this time to his friend D’Argens, he shares his sorrows with unusual honesty. The letter was dated Breslau, March 1, 1759:

“I have passed my winter like a Carthusian monk. I dine alone. I spend my life in reading and writing, and I do not sup. When one is sad, it becomes, at last, too burdensome to hide one’s grief continually. It is better to give way to it than to carry one’s gloom into society. Nothing solaces me but the vigorous application required in steady and continuous labor. This distraction does force one to put away painful ideas while it lasts. But alas! no sooner is the work done than these fatal companions present themselves again, as if livelier than ever. Maupertuis was right; the sum of evil does certainly surpass that of good. But to me it is all one. I have almost nothing more to lose; and my few remaining days—what matters it much of what complexion they be?”

“I’ve spent my winter like a Carthusian monk. I eat alone. I spend my days reading and writing, and I don’t have dinner. When you’re sad, it eventually becomes too heavy to keep hiding your grief. It’s better to let it out than to bring your gloom into social situations. The only thing that comforts me is the intense focus needed for consistent work. This distraction does help me set aside painful thoughts while I’m busy. But unfortunately! No sooner is the work finished than those painful thoughts come back, seeming even more intense. Maupertuis was right; the amount of suffering definitely outweighs the amount of joy. But to me, it’s all the same. I have almost nothing left to lose; and my few remaining days—what difference does it make what they’re like?”

475 During this dismal winter of incessant and almost despairing labor the indefatigable king wrote several striking treatises on military affairs. It is manifest that serious thoughts at times occupied his mind. He doubtless reflected that if there were a God who took any cognizance of human affairs, there must be somewhere responsibility to Him for the woes with which these wars were desolating humanity. To the surprise of De Catt, the king presented him one evening with a sermon upon “The Last Judgment,” from his own pen. He also put upon paper his thoughts “On the new kind of tactics necessary with the Austrians and their allies.” He seems himself to have been surprised that he had been able so long to resist such overpowering numbers. In allusion to the allies he writes:

475 During this bleak winter of relentless and nearly hopeless work, the tireless king wrote several impactful treatises on military matters. It's clear that serious thoughts occasionally filled his mind. He probably considered that if there is a God who pays attention to human affairs, then there must be some responsibility to Him for the suffering caused by these wars ravaging humanity. To De Catt's surprise, the king gifted him one evening with a sermon on “The Last Judgment,” written by himself. He also wrote down his thoughts on “The new kind of tactics necessary against the Austrians and their allies.” He seems to have been surprised himself that he was able to withstand such overwhelming numbers for so long. Referring to the allies, he writes:

“To whose continual sluggishness and strange want of concert—to whose incoherency of movements, languor of execution, and other enormous faults, we have owed, with some excuse for our own faults, our escape from destruction hitherto.”127

“To their constant laziness and weird lack of coordination—to their disjointed movements, slow execution, and other major flaws, we have, with some justification for our own mistakes, managed to avoid destruction so far.”127


CHAPTER XXX.
FOURTH CAMPAIGN OF THE SEVEN YEARS' WAR.

Desperate Exertions of Frederick.—Aid from England.—Limited Resources.—Opening of the Campaign.—Disgraceful Conduct of Voltaire.—Letter to Voltaire.—An Act of Desperation.—Letter to Count Finckenstein.—Frankfort taken by the Prussians.—Terrible Battle of Kunersdorf.—Anguish of Frederick.—The Disastrous Retreat.—Melancholy Dispatch.—Contemplating Suicide.—Collecting the Wrecks of the Army.—Consternation in Berlin.—Letters to D’Argens.—Wonderful Strategical Skill.—Literary Efforts of the King.

Frederick's Desperate Efforts.—Assistance from England.—Scarce Resources.—Beginning of the Campaign.—Voltaire's Shameful Actions.—Letter to Voltaire.—A Desperate Maneuver.—Letter to Count Finckenstein.—Frankfort Taken by the Prussians.—Brutal Battle of Kunersdorf.—Frederick's Distress.—The Crushing Retreat.—Sorrowful Dispatch.—Contemplating Suicide.—Rebuilding the Army.—Panic in Berlin.—Letters to D’Argens.—Remarkable Strategic Skill.—The King's Literary Pursuits.

By the most extraordinary exertions, which must have almost depopulated his realms of all the young men and those of middle age, Frederick succeeded in so filling up his depleted ranks as to have in the opening spring of 1759 two hundred thousand men in field and garrison. Indeed, regardless of all the laws of nations, he often compelled the soldiers and other men of conquered provinces to enlist in his armies. How he, in his poverty, obtained the pecuniary resources requisite to the carrying on of such a war, is to the present day a matter of amazement.

By making incredible efforts that must have nearly drained his territories of all the young and middle-aged men, Frederick managed to fill his depleted forces to two hundred thousand troops in the field and garrison by early spring of 1759. In fact, without regard for international law, he often forced soldiers and men from conquered areas to join his armies. How he acquired the financial resources needed to sustain such a war while being short on funds remains astonishing even today.

England furnished him with a subsidy of about four million dollars. He immediately melted this coin, gold and silver, and adulterated it with about half copper, thus converting his four476 millions into nominally eight millions. But a few weeks of such operations as he was engaged in would swallow up all this. The merciless conscription, grasping nearly every able-bodied man, destroyed nearly all the arts of industry. The Prussian realms, thus impoverished by war’s ravages and taxation, could furnish the king with very meagre supplies. When the king invaded any portion of the territory of the allies, he wrenched from the beggared people every piece of money which violence or terror could extort. Wealthy merchants were thrown into prison, and fed upon bread and water until they yielded. The most terrible severities were practiced to extort contributions from towns which had been stripped and stripped again. Still violence could wrench but little from the skinny hand of beggary. These provinces, swept by war’s surges year after year, were in the most deplorable state of destitution and misery.

England provided him with a grant of about four million dollars. He quickly melted this coin, both gold and silver, and mixed in about half copper, effectively turning his four million into a nominal eight million. However, just a few weeks of his operations would consume all of this. The ruthless draft, taking almost every able-bodied man, devastated nearly all forms of industry. The Prussian territories, thus crippled by the ravages of war and heavy taxes, could only supply the king with scant resources. Whenever the king invaded any part of the allies' territory, he extracted every bit of money from the impoverished people that violence or fear could force them to give. Wealthy merchants were imprisoned and sustained on bread and water until they complied. The most brutal measures were taken to extract contributions from towns that had already been looted repeatedly. Yet violence could extract only a little from the desperate, impoverished populace. These provinces, battered by the relentless waves of war year after year, found themselves in a state of extreme poverty and suffering.

From the schedule which Frederick has given of his resources, it seems impossible that he could have raised more than about fifteen million dollars annually, even counting his adulterated coin at the full value. How, with this sum, he could have successfully confronted all combined Europe, is a mystery which has never yet been solved. It was the great object of both parties in this terrible conflict to destroy every thing in the enemy’s country which could by any possibility add to military power. All the claims of humanity were ignored. The starvation of hundreds of thousands of peasants—men, women, and children—was a matter not to be taken into consideration. The French minister, in Paris, wrote to Marshal De Contades on the 5th of October, 1758,

From the schedule that Frederick provided of his resources, it seems impossible that he could have raised more than about fifteen million dollars a year, even if you count his debased coin at full value. How he managed to successfully face all of Europe at once with this amount remains a mystery that has never been solved. Both sides in this brutal conflict aimed to destroy everything in the enemy's territory that could potentially contribute to military strength. Humanitarian concerns were completely disregarded. The starvation of hundreds of thousands of peasants—men, women, and children—was not something that was considered important. The French minister in Paris wrote to Marshal De Contades on October 5, 1758,

“You must make a desert of Westphalia. With regard to the countries of Lippe and Padeborn, as these are very fertile provinces, you must take great care to destroy every thing in them without exception.”

"You have to turn Westphalia into a wasteland. As for the regions of Lippe and Paderborn, since these are very fertile areas, you need to ensure that you destroy everything in them without exception."

Early in the spring of 1759 the Prussian king had gathered the main body of his troops in fortresses and strong positions in the vicinity of Landshut, on the southwestern frontier of Silesia. The enemy, under General Daun, faced him, in longer and denser lines, equally well intrenched. At the same time, powerful bands of the allies were in various parts of Europe, menacing the domains of Frederick at every vulnerable point. The allies dreaded477 the prowess of their foe. Frederick was compelled to caution by the exhaustless numbers of his opponents. Thus for many weeks neither party entered upon any decisive action. There was, however, an almost incessant series of fierce and bloody skirmishes.

Early in the spring of 1759, the Prussian king had assembled the majority of his troops in fortresses and strong positions near Landshut, on the southwestern border of Silesia. The enemy, led by General Daun, faced him in longer and denser lines, equally well entrenched. Meanwhile, powerful groups of allies were scattered across Europe, threatening Frederick’s territories at every weak point. The allies feared their opponent's strength. Frederick was forced to be cautious due to the overwhelming numbers of his adversaries. As a result, for many weeks, neither side took any decisive action. However, there was an almost constant series of intense and bloody skirmishes.

The ability which Frederick displayed in striking his enemies where they would most keenly feel the infliction, and in warding off the blows they attempted in return, excited then the surprise of Europe, and has continued to elicit the astonishment of posterity. It would but weary the reader to attempt a description of these conflicts at the outposts, terrible as they often were.

The skill Frederick showed in attacking his enemies where it would hurt them the most, and in avoiding the blows they tried to throw back, surprised Europe at the time and continues to amaze people today. Describing these fierce battles at the front lines would just bore the reader, no matter how brutal they often were.

During this time, in May, the king wrote a very bitter and satirical ode against Louis XV.—“the plaything of the Pompadour,” “polluted with his amours,” “and disgracefully surrendering the government of his realms to chance.” The ode he sent to Voltaire. The unprincipled poet, apprehending that the ode might come to light, and that he might be implicated, treacherously sent it to the prime minister, the Duke De Choiseul, to be shown to the king. At the same time, he wrote to Frederick that he had burned the ode. In the account which Voltaire himself gives of this disgraceful transaction, he writes:

During this time, in May, the king wrote a very bitter and sarcastic poem about Louis XV.—“the toy of the Pompadour,” “tainted by his affairs,” “and shamefully handing over the governance of his kingdoms to fate.” He sent the poem to Voltaire. The unscrupulous poet, fearing that the poem might be revealed and that he might get implicated, sneakily sent it to the prime minister, Duke De Choiseul, to show the king. At the same time, he told Frederick that he had destroyed the poem. In the account that Voltaire himself gives of this disgraceful incident, he writes:

“The packet had been opened. The king would think I was guilty of high treason, and I should be in disgrace with Madame De Pompadour. I was obliged, in order to prevent my ruin, to make known to the court the character and conduct of their enemy.

“The packet had been opened. The king would think I was guilty of treason, and I would be in trouble with Madame De Pompadour. I had to reveal the true nature and actions of their enemy to the court in order to save myself.”

“I knew that the Duke De Choiseul would content himself with persuading the King of France that the King of Prussia was an irreconcilable enemy, whom it was therefore necessary, if possible, to annihilate.

“I knew that Duke De Choiseul would be satisfied with convincing the King of France that the King of Prussia was an unyielding enemy who needed to be eliminated, if at all possible.”

“I wrote to Frederick that his ode was beautiful, but that he had better not make it public, lest it should close all the avenues to a reconciliation with the King of France, incense him irremediably, and thus force him to strain every nerve in vengeance.

“I wrote to Frederick that his ode was beautiful, but he should probably keep it private, or it might cut off all chances for a reconciliation with the King of France, anger him beyond repair, and push him to seek revenge with all his might.”

“I added that my niece had burned his ode from fear that it should be imputed to me. He believed me and thanked me; not, however, without some reproaches for having burned the best verses he had ever made.”128

“I mentioned that my niece had burned his poem, worried that it would be blamed on me. He believed me and thanked me; although he did throw in some complaints about having lost the best lines he’d ever written.”128

478 The latter part of June, an army of a hundred thousand Russians, having crossed the Vistula, was concentrated, under General Soltikof, at Posen, on the River Warta, in Poland. They were marching from the northeast to attack the Prussian forces near Landshut in their rear. General Daun, with a still larger force of Austrians, was confronting Frederick on the southwest. The plan of the allies was to crush their foe between these two armies. Frederick had lost the ablest of his generals. The young men who were filling their places were untried.

478 In late June, an army of a hundred thousand Russians, led by General Soltikof, had gathered at Posen, on the River Warta in Poland, after crossing the Vistula. They were advancing from the northeast to attack the Prussian forces near Landshut from behind. General Daun, with an even larger Austrian force, was facing Frederick to the southwest. The allies aimed to defeat their enemy by pinching them between these two armies. Frederick had lost his most skilled general, and the young men stepping into those roles were inexperienced.

The Russians, triumphantly advancing, entered Silesia, and reached Crossen, on the Oder, within a hundred miles of Frederick’s encampment.

The Russians, boldly moving forward, entered Silesia and reached Crossen, on the Oder, just a hundred miles from Frederick’s camp.

Some trifling unavailing efforts had been made for peace. In reply to a letter from Voltaire, alluding to this subject, Frederick wrote, under date of 2d July, 1759:

Some insignificant, ineffective attempts had been made for peace. In response to a letter from Voltaire mentioning this topic, Frederick wrote, dated July 2, 1759:

“Asking me for peace is indeed a bitter joke. It is to Louis XV. you must address yourself, or to his Amboise in petticoats.129 But these people have their heads filled with ambitious projects. They wish to be the sovereign arbiters of sovereigns. That is what persons of my way of thinking will by no means put up with. I like peace as much as you could wish, but I want it good, solid, and honorable. Socrates or Plato would have thought as I do on this subject had they found themselves in the accursed position which is mine in the world.

“Asking me for peace is really a cruel joke. You should be talking to Louis XV. or his lady in charge. But these folks are all caught up in grand plans. They want to be the ultimate decision-makers for everyone else. That’s something people like me simply won’t accept. I want peace just as much as you do, but I want it to be genuine, lasting, and honorable. Socrates or Plato would have seen things the same way I do if they had been in the unfortunate situation I'm in.”

“Think you there is any pleasure in living this dog’s life, in seeing and causing the butchery of people you know nothing of, in losing daily those you do know and love, in seeing perpetually your reputation exposed to the caprices of chance, passing year after year in disquietudes and apprehensions, in risking without end your life and your fortune?

"Do you really think there’s any joy in living this miserable life, in witnessing and causing the slaughter of people you don’t know, in losing every day those you do know and love, in constantly having your reputation at the mercy of chance, spending year after year in anxiety and worry, and endlessly risking your life and your fortune?"

“I know right well the value of tranquillity, the sweets of society, the charms of life. I love to be happy as much as any one whatever. But, much as I desire these blessings, I will not purchase them by baseness and infamies. Philosophy enjoins us to do our duty faithfully, to serve our country at the price of our blood, of our repose, and of every sacrifice which can be required of us.”130

“I fully understand the importance of peace, the joy of companionship, and the pleasures of life. I want to be happy just as much as anyone else. But as much as I wish for these blessings, I won’t achieve them through dishonesty and disgrace. Philosophy teaches us to do our duty diligently, to serve our country even at the cost of our lives, our comfort, and every sacrifice that may be demanded of us.”130

Soon after this Frederick dispatched a young and impetuous479 officer, General Wedell, invested with dictatorial powers, at the head of twenty-six thousand men, to attack the Russian army, at every hazard, and arrest its march. The heroic little band of Prussians met the Russians at Züllichau. One of General Wedell’s officers remonstrated against the attack.

Soon after this, Frederick sent a young and impulsive 479 officer, General Wedell, who was given dictatorial powers, to lead twenty-six thousand men in an attack on the Russian army, no matter the risk, and stop its advance. The brave small group of Prussians confronted the Russians at Züllichau. One of General Wedell’s officers protested against the attack.

“The risk is too great,” said he; “Soltikof has seventy thousand men, and no end of artillery. We have but twenty-six thousand, and know not that we can bring a single gun to where Soltikof is.”

“The risk is too high,” he said; “Soltikof has seventy thousand men and a ton of artillery. We only have twenty-six thousand, and we don’t even know if we can get a single gun to where Soltikof is.”

Still the order was given for the assault. The Prussians plunged into the dense ranks of their foes, regardless of being outnumbered nearly three to one. A terrible battle was fought. General Wedell was overpowered and beaten. He retreated across the Oder, having lost six thousand men in killed, wounded, and prisoners. The victorious Russians did not pursue him. They marched down the river to Frankfort, where they effected a junction with other troops, giving them an effective force of ninety-six thousand fighting men.

Still, the order was given for the attack. The Prussians charged into the thick lines of their enemies, despite being outnumbered nearly three to one. A brutal battle took place. General Wedell was overwhelmed and defeated. He retreated across the Oder, having lost six thousand men in killed, wounded, and captured. The victorious Russians did not pursue him. They marched down the river to Frankfort, where they joined up with other troops, boosting their effective force to ninety-six thousand soldiers.

Frederick received the disastrous news on the 24th of July, the day after the calamity. In the exercise of an unusual spirit of forbearance, he sent word to the defeated general, “It is not your fault; I dreaded something of the kind.” The king’s brother Henry was in command of a few thousand men near Bautzen, in Saxony. Frederick wrote to him to forward his troops immediately, so as to form a union with the retreating army under Wedell. Henry himself was to repair to the vicinity of Landshut, and take command of the army which was to be left in that vicinity confronting General Daun. The king took about thirty thousand picked troops, and hurried to the north to gather up by the way the troops of Henry and of Wedell, and with that combined force of forty-eight thousand men make a new attack upon the ninety-six thousand Russians.131

Frederick got the terrible news on July 24th, the day after the disaster. Showing an uncommon level of restraint, he told the defeated general, “It’s not your fault; I feared something like this might happen.” The king’s brother, Henry, was leading a few thousand men near Bautzen, in Saxony. Frederick wrote to him to send his troops right away to unite with the retreating army under Wedell. Henry himself was to move near Landshut and take command of the army stationed there facing General Daun. The king gathered about thirty thousand elite troops and rushed north to pick up Henry’s and Wedell’s forces, aiming to assemble a total of forty-eight thousand men for a new attack against the ninety-six thousand Russians.131

It was an act of desperation. The king fully appreciated its peril. But the time had long since passed when he could rely upon the ordinary measures of prudence. In despair was his only hope.

It was a desperate move. The king knew how dangerous it was. But the moment had long gone when he could depend on normal caution. In his despair, he found his only hope.

On the 29th of July the king joined his brother Henry at Sagan, on the Bober, about sixty miles above or south of Frankfort.480 The marches which had been effected by the king and his brother were the most rapid which had then ever been heard of. Greatly perplexed by the inexplicable movements of the Russians, the king pressed on till he effected a junction with the remnant of Wedell’s defeated army, near Müllrose, within twelve miles of Frankfort. He reached this place on the 3d of August. To Count Finckenstein he wrote:

On July 29, the king met up with his brother Henry at Sagan, along the Bober River, about sixty miles above or south of Frankfurt.480 The march that the king and his brother executed was the fastest that had ever been heard of at that time. Confused by the unpredictable movements of the Russians, the king continued until he linked up with the remaining forces of Wedell's defeated army near Müllrose, just twelve miles from Frankfurt. He arrived there on August 3. He wrote to Count Finckenstein:

“I am just arrived here after cruel and frightful marchings. There is nothing desperate in all that. I believe the noise and disquietude this hurly-burly has caused will be the worst of it. Show this letter to every body, that it may be known that the state is not undefended. I have made about one thousand prisoners from Haddick.132 All his meal-wagons have been taken. Finck,133 I believe, will keep an eye on him. This is all I can say. To-morrow I march to within two leagues of Frankfort. Katte must instantly send me two hundred tons of meal and one hundred bakers. I am very tired. For six nights I have not closed an eye. Farewell.

“I just got here after a rough and scary march. It's not really that urgent, though. I think the noise and chaos from this will be the worst part. Share this letter with everyone so they know the state is not undefended. I've taken about a thousand prisoners from Haddick. All of his supply wagons are captured. I believe Finck will keep an eye on him. That’s all I can say for now. Tomorrow, I’ll march within two leagues of Frankfurt. Katte needs to send me two hundred tons of flour and one hundred bakers right away. I’m really exhausted. I haven’t slept a wink in six nights. Goodbye.”

F.”

F.”

The Russians, with empty meal-wagons and starving soldiers, had taken possession of Frankfort-on-the-Oder on the 29th of July. The city contained twelve thousand inhabitants. The ransom which the Russian general demanded to save the city from pillage by the Cossacks was four hundred and fifty thousand dollars. Pillage by the Cossacks! No imagination can conceive the horrors of such an event. Nearly one hundred thousand men, frenzied with intoxication, brutal in their habits, restrained by no law, would inflict every outrage which fiends could conceive of. Well might fathers and mothers, sons and daughters, turn pale and feel the blood curdle in their veins at the thought. Four hundred and fifty thousand dollars ransom! That was nearly forty dollars for each individual, man, woman, and child! Compliance with the demand was impossible. Frankfort, in its impoverishment, could by no possibility raise a tenth part of the sum. Dreadful was the consternation. There was no relenting; the money or the pillage!

The Russians, with empty supply wagons and starving soldiers, took control of Frankfort-on-the-Oder on July 29th. The city had twelve thousand residents. The ransom that the Russian general demanded to save the city from being looted by the Cossacks was four hundred and fifty thousand dollars. Looting by the Cossacks! No one could imagine the horrors of such an event. Nearly one hundred thousand men, driven by alcohol and brutal in their behavior, would commit every atrocity imaginable. It's no wonder that fathers and mothers, sons and daughters, would turn pale and feel their blood run cold at the thought. Four hundred and fifty thousand dollars in ransom! That meant nearly forty dollars for every individual—man, woman, and child! Meeting that demand was impossible. Frankfort, in its poverty, couldn’t possibly raise even a tenth of that amount. The fear was dreadful. There was no mercy—money or destruction!

481 With the utmost exertions, inspired by terror, thirty thousand dollars were at length raised. The Russian general, Soltikof, naturally a humane man, seeing, at the close of a week of frantic exertions on the part of the magistrates of Frankfort, the impossibility of extorting the required sum, took the thirty thousand dollars, and kept his barbarian hordes encamped outside the gates.

481 Despite intense efforts fueled by fear, thirty thousand dollars were finally raised. The Russian general, Soltikof, who was a naturally compassionate person, observed that after a week of desperate attempts by the officials of Frankfort, it was impossible to gather the necessary amount. He accepted the thirty thousand dollars and kept his brutal troops camped outside the gates.

FREDERICK CROSSING THE ODER.

Frankfort is on the west side of the Oder. The Russian army was encamped on the eastern side of the river. The force collected there consisted of about seventy-eight thousand Russians and eighteen thousand Austrians. Frederick had, by great exertions, gathered fifty thousand troops to attack them. He was approaching Frankfort from the southwest. In a secret midnight march he crossed the river by bridges of boats some miles north of the city, near Cüstrin. At four o’clock in the morning of the 11th of August his troops had all accomplished the passage482 of the stream, and, to the surprise of the Russians, were marching down upon them from the north.

Frankfort is located on the west side of the Oder River. The Russian army was camped on the eastern side of the river. The forces gathered there included around seventy-eight thousand Russians and eighteen thousand Austrians. Frederick had, through significant effort, assembled fifty thousand troops to launch an attack. He was advancing toward Frankfort from the southwest. In a secret midnight march, he crossed the river using boat bridges a few miles north of the city, near Cüstrin. By four in the morning on August 11th, all his troops had successfully crossed the river, and to the Russians' surprise, they were marching down on them from the north.482

Vastly superior as was the Russian army in numbers, General Soltikof did not venture to advance to attack his terrible foe. He had selected a very strong position on a range of eminences about one hundred feet high, running for several miles in an easterly direction from the river. Upon this ridge, which was called “the Heights of Kunersdorf,” the Russian general had intrenched himself with the utmost care. The surrounding country was full of bogs, and sluggish streams, and a scraggy growth of tough and thorny bushes, almost impenetrable.

Although the Russian army was significantly larger, General Soltikof did not dare to attack his formidable enemy. He had chosen a very strong position on a series of hills about one hundred feet high, stretching for several miles east from the river. On this ridge, known as "the Heights of Kunersdorf," the Russian general had carefully fortified his defenses. The surrounding area was filled with swamps, slow-moving streams, and a dense growth of tough, thorny bushes that were nearly impossible to penetrate.

Had the Prussian troops been placed on those heights, behind that formidable array of ramparts, and palisades, and abatis, they could with ease have repelled the assaults of three or four times their number. But now they were to undertake the desperate enterprise of advancing to the assault under the greatest disadvantages, with one to attack where there were two to defend. Frederick rapidly advanced from crossing the stream, and the same evening, Saturday, August 11th, encamped at Bischofsee, at the distance of about two miles to the northeast of the intrenched camp of his foes. The king, accompanied by a small escort, rode forward to the knolls of Trettin, and anxiously surveyed with his glass the fearful array of his foes in their long, compact, well-defended lines, arranged in an elongated irregular parallelogram.

If the Prussian troops had been positioned on those heights, behind their strong defenses of walls, fences, and obstacles, they could have easily defended against attacks from three or four times their number. But now, they had to face the desperate challenge of advancing to attack under the worst conditions, having only one to assault where there were two to defend. Frederick quickly moved forward after crossing the stream, and that same evening, Saturday, August 11th, set up camp at Bischofsee, about two miles northeast of the fortified camp of his enemies. The king, with a small escort, rode ahead to the hills of Trettin and anxiously surveyed through his telescope the terrifying sight of his enemies in their long, tight, well-fortified lines, arranged in an elongated, uneven shape.

About three o’clock the next morning, Sunday, August 12th, Frederick’s army, in two columns, was again in motion. By a slightly circuitous march through the dense forest the king placed his troops in position to approach from the southeast, so as to attack the left flank of the enemy, being the northern extremity of the parallelogram.

About three o’clock the next morning, Sunday, August 12th, Frederick’s army, in two columns, was on the move again. By taking a slightly longer route through the thick forest, the king positioned his troops to approach from the southeast, ready to attack the left side of the enemy, which was the northern end of the parallelogram.

I shall not attempt to describe the battle which ensued—so bloody, so disastrous to the Prussians. It was, like all other desperate battles, a scene of inconceivable confusion, tumult, and horror. At eight o’clock in the morning, General Finck (who was in command of the right wing of the Prussians) was in position to move upon the extreme northern point of attack. It was not until half past eleven that Frederick, in command of the main body of the army, was ready to make a co-operative assault from the east. At the point of attack the Russians had seventy-483two cannons in battery. The Prussians opened upon them with sixty guns. Templeton describes the cannonade as the loudest which he had yet ever heard.

I won't try to describe the battle that followed—it was incredibly bloody and a complete disaster for the Prussians. Like all other desperate fights, it was a scene of unimaginable chaos, noise, and terror. At eight in the morning, General Finck, who was in charge of the right wing of the Prussians, was ready to move on the far northern point of attack. It wasn't until eleven-thirty that Frederick, leading the main army, was set to launch a coordinated assault from the east. At the attack site, the Russians had seventy-two cannons in place. The Prussians fired at them with sixty guns. Templeton described the cannon fire as the loudest he had ever heard.

After half an hour of rapid and terrific fire, the Prussian troops were ordered to advance and storm the works of the foe on the Mühlberg Hill. Like wolves in the chase, these men of iron nerves rushed forward through torrents of grape-shot and musket-shot, which covered their path with the dead. In ten minutes they were in possession of the hill-top, with all its batteries. The left wing of the Russian army was thrown into a maelstrom whirl of disorder and destruction. One hundred and eighty of the artillery pieces of the enemy fell into the hands of the victors.

After half an hour of intense and fierce gunfire, the Prussian troops were commanded to advance and attack the enemy positions on Mühlberg Hill. Like wolves on a hunt, these steely soldiers charged through a storm of cannon and rifle fire, leaving a trail of the dead behind them. In just ten minutes, they had taken control of the hilltop and all its artillery. The left flank of the Russian army was plunged into chaos and ruin. One hundred eighty enemy artillery pieces fell into the hands of the victors.

Frederick was overjoyed. He regarded the day as his own, and the Russian army as at his mercy. He sent a dispatch to anxious Berlin, but sixty miles distant: “The Russians are beaten. Rejoice with me.” It was one of the hottest of August days, without a breath of wind. Nearly every soldier of the Prussian army had been brought into action against the left wing only of the foe. After a long march and an exhausting fight, they were perishing with thirst. For twelve hours many of them had been without water. Panting with heat, thirst, and exhaustion, they were scarcely capable of any farther efforts.

Frederick was ecstatic. He saw the day as his own and considered the Russian army completely at his mercy. He sent a message to anxious Berlin, which was sixty miles away: “The Russians are defeated. Celebrate with me.” It was one of the hottest days in August, with not a single breeze. Almost every soldier in the Prussian army had been deployed against only the left flank of the enemy. After a long march and a grueling battle, they were dying of thirst. Many of them had gone without water for twelve hours. Struggling with heat, thirst, and exhaustion, they could hardly muster any further efforts.

Just then eighteen thousand fresh Russian troops advanced upon them in solid phalanx from their centre and their right wing. It was nearly three o’clock in the afternoon. The fugitive Russians were rallied. With new impetuosity the re-enforced band hurled itself upon the Prussians. They speedily regained their hundred and eighty guns, and opened upon the ranks of Frederick such torrents of grape-shot as no flesh and blood could endure. Huge gaps were torn through his lines. His men recoiled, whirled round, and were driven pell-mell from the hill.

Just then, eighteen thousand fresh Russian troops advanced in a solid formation from their center and right flank. It was nearly three o’clock in the afternoon. The fleeing Russians were regrouped. With renewed energy, the reinforced group launched itself at the Prussians. They quickly regained their hundred and eighty guns and unleashed a barrage of grape-shot on Frederick's ranks that no one could withstand. Huge gaps were torn through his lines. His men fell back, turned around, and were driven in chaos from the hill.

Thrice Frederick in person led the charge against the advancing foe. He had three horses shot under him. A gold snuffbox in his pocket was flattened by a bullet. His friends entreated him not thus to peril a life upon which every thing depended. He was deaf to all remonstrances. It is manifest that, in his despair, he sought a soldier’s grave.

Thrice, Frederick personally led the charge against the oncoming enemy. He had three horses shot out from under him. A bullet dented the gold snuffbox in his pocket. His friends pleaded with him not to risk his life, which everything depended on. He ignored all their warnings. It's clear that in his desperation, he was looking for a soldier’s grave.

On came the Russians in ever-increasing numbers. Frederick’s484 heavy artillery, each piece drawn by twelve horses, could not be brought forward through the bogs, and the entangling woods, and over the rugged heights. Though the Prussians fought with all the energies mortal valor could inspire, and though the king flew from post to post of peril and of death, animating his troops by voice and gesture, and by his own reckless courage, it was all in vain. Hope soon died in all hearts. The king was heard despairingly to exclaim, “Is there not one bullet which can reach me, then?”

The Russians kept coming in larger and larger numbers. Frederick’s484 heavy artillery, each piece pulled by twelve horses, couldn't be moved through the swamps, the tangled woods, or over the rough terrain. Although the Prussians fought with everything they had, and the king rushed from one dangerous spot to another, encouraging his troops with his voice, gestures, and fearless bravery, it was all pointless. Hope quickly faded from everyone’s hearts. The king was heard crying out in despair, “Is there not one bullet that can hit me, then?”

Frederick had seen many dark days before, but never one so dark as this. In the frenzy of his exertions to retrieve the lost battle, he cried out to his soldiers, his eyes being flooded with tears, “Children, do not forsake me, your king, your father, in this pinch!” The retreat became a flight. In endeavoring to cross the little stream called the Hen-Floss, there was such crowding and jamming at the bridges that the Prussians were compelled to leave one hundred and sixty-five guns of various calibre behind them. Had the Russians pursued with any vigor, scarcely a man of the Prussian army could have escaped. But General Soltikof stood in such fear of his opponent, who had often wrested victory out of defeat, that he attempted no pursuit.

Frederick had faced many tough times before, but never one as tough as this. In the heat of his efforts to turn around the lost battle, he shouted to his soldiers, tears filling his eyes, “Children, don’t abandon me, your king, your father, in this moment of need!” The retreat turned into a rout. While trying to cross the small stream called the Hen-Floss, there was so much crowding and chaos at the bridges that the Prussians were forced to leave behind one hundred and sixty-five guns of various sizes. If the Russians had pursued with any determination, hardly a member of the Prussian army would have made it out. But General Soltikof was so afraid of his opponent, who had frequently turned defeat into victory, that he didn’t pursue at all.

In broken bands the Prussians retreated down by the way of Oetscher to the bridges at Göritz, where they had crossed the Oder, and where their heavy baggage was stationed. Frederick was among the last to quit the fatal field. As a swarm of Cossacks approached the spot where he stood, a party of his friends charged them fiercely, cutting to the right and left, and held them for a moment at bay. One of Frederick’s adjutants seized the bridle of his horse, and galloped off with the unresisting monarch.

In scattered groups, the Prussians fell back along the route to Oetscher toward the bridges at Göritz, where they had crossed the Oder and where their heavy supplies were kept. Frederick was one of the last to leave the disastrous battlefield. As a swarm of Cossacks closed in on him, a group of his friends charged at them fiercely, swinging their weapons and holding them off for a moment. One of Frederick’s aides grabbed the reins of his horse and quickly rode off with the king, who offered no resistance.

At the bridges Frederick found but three thousand men of his late army. The huts around were filled with the wounded and the dying, presenting an aspect of misery which, in these hours of terrible defeat, appalled his majesty. In one of these huts, surrounded by mutilated bodies, groans, and death, Frederick wrote the following dispatch to his minister (Finckenstein) at Berlin. It was dated Oetscher, August 12, 1759:

At the bridges, Frederick found only three thousand men from his recent army. The huts around him were filled with the wounded and dying, showing a scene of suffering that horrified him in these hours of terrible defeat. In one of these huts, surrounded by mangled bodies, groans, and death, Frederick wrote the following message to his minister (Finckenstein) in Berlin. It was dated Oetscher, August 12, 1759:

“I attacked the enemy this morning about eleven. We beat 485him back to the Jews’ Church-yard, near Frankfort.134 All my troops came into action, and have done wonders. I reassembled them three times. At length I was myself nearly taken prisoner, and we had to quit the field. My coat is riddled with bullets. Two horses were killed under me.135 My misfortune is that I am still alive. Our loss is very considerable. Of an army of forty-eight thousand men, I have at this moment, while I write, not more than three thousand together. I am no longer master of my forces.

“I attacked the enemy this morning around eleven. We pushed them back to the Jews' Church-yard near Frankfort. 485 All my troops fought bravely and accomplished amazing things. I regrouped them three times. In the end, I almost got captured myself, and we had to leave the battlefield. My coat is full of bullet holes. Two horses were killed under me. My misfortune is that I’m still alive. Our losses are quite significant. From an army of forty-eight thousand, I currently have no more than three thousand left as I write this. I’m no longer in control of my forces.”

In Berlin you will do well to think of your safety. It is a great calamity. I will not survive it. The consequences of this battle will be worse than the battle itself. I have no resources more; and, to confess the truth, I hold all for lost. I will not survive the destruction of my country. Farewell forever.

In Berlin, it’s crucial to think about your safety. It’s a complete disaster. I’m not going to make it through this. The consequences of this battle will be worse than the battle itself. I have no resources left, and honestly, I feel like everything is lost. I won’t survive the destruction of my country. Goodbye forever.

F.”

F.”

BATTLE OF KUNERSDORF, AUGUST 12, 1759.

BATTLE OF KUNERSDORF, AUGUST 12, 1759.

a a a. Russian Army. b b. Austrians, under Loudon. c c. Russian Abatis. d. Russian Wagenburg. e e. Position of Prussian Army Evening of 11th. f f. Vanguard, under Finck. g. Prussian Heavy Baggage. h. Attack of Prussian Grenadiers. i i. Prussian main Army. k k. Finck’s Line of Attack.

a a a. Russian Army. b b. Austrians, led by Loudon. c c. Russian Abatis. d. Russian Wagenburg. e e. Position of Prussian Army on the Evening of the 11th. f f. Vanguard, led by Finck. g. Prussian Heavy Baggage. h. Attack by Prussian Grenadiers. i i. Prussian main Army. k k. Finck’s Line of Attack.

486 Probably the reader will infer from the above letter that the king felt that the hour had come for him to die, and that he intended to resort to that most consummate act of folly and cowardice—suicide. He had always avowed this to be his intention in the last resort. He had urged his sister Wilhelmina to imitate his example in this respect, and not to survive the destruction of their house. Ruin now seemed inevitable. In the battle of Kunersdorf Frederick had lost, in killed and wounded, nineteen thousand men, including nearly all the officers of distinction, and also one hundred and sixty pieces of artillery. The remainder of his army was so dispersed that it could not be rallied to present any opposition to the foe.

486 The reader will likely gather from the letter above that the king believed his time to die had come and that he planned to take the ultimate step of despair and cowardice—suicide. He had always claimed this would be his choice as a last resort. He encouraged his sister Wilhelmina to follow his lead in this matter and not to survive the fall of their family. Ruin now seemed unavoidable. In the Battle of Kunersdorf, Frederick lost nineteen thousand men, both killed and wounded, including nearly all the distinguished officers, along with one hundred sixty pieces of artillery. The rest of his army was so scattered that it couldn’t be regrouped to mount any resistance against the enemy.

Though General Soltikof had lost an equal number of men, he was still at the head of nearly eighty thousand troops flushed with victory. He could summon to his standard any desirable re-enforcements. An unobstructed march of but sixty miles would lead his army into the streets of Berlin. The affairs of Frederick were indeed desperate. There was not a gleam of hope to cheer him. In preparation for his retirement from the army, from the throne, and from life, he that evening drew up the following paper, placing the fragments of the army which he was about to abandon in the hands of General Finck. By the death of the king, the orphan and infant child of his brother Augustus William (who had died but a few months before) would succeed to the throne. Frederick appointed his brother Henry generalissimo of the Prussian army.

Though General Soltikof had lost the same number of men, he still led nearly eighty thousand victorious troops. He could call on any needed reinforcements. A clear march of just sixty miles would take his army straight into the streets of Berlin. Frederick’s situation was truly dire. There was no sign of hope to lift his spirits. As he prepared for his withdrawal from the army, the throne, and life itself, he spent that evening drafting the following document, handing over the remnants of the army he was about to leave to General Finck. With the king’s death, his orphaned infant nephew, the child of his late brother Augustus William, would take the throne. Frederick appointed his brother Henry as the general of the Prussian army.

This notable paper, which reflects but little credit upon the character of Frederick, was as follows:

This notable paper, which reflects poorly on Frederick's character, was as follows:

“General Finck gets a difficult commission. The unlucky army which I give up to him is no longer in a condition to make head against the Russians. Haddick will now start for Berlin, perhaps Loudon too.136 If General Finck go after these, the Russians487 will fall on his rear. If he continue on the Oder, he gets Haddick on his flank. However, I believe, should Loudon go for Berlin, he might attack Loudon and beat him. This, if it succeeded, would be a stand against misfortune, and hold matters up. Time gained is much in these desperate circumstances. Cöper, my secretary, will send him the news from Torgau and Dresden. You must inform my brother137 of every thing, whom I have declared generalissimo of the army. To repair this bad luck altogether is not possible. But what my brother shall command must be done. The army swears to my nephew. This is all the advice in these unhappy circumstances I am in a condition to give. If I had still had resources, I would have staid by them.

“General Finck has a challenging task ahead. The unfortunate army I’m giving him can no longer withstand the Russians. Haddick will be heading to Berlin, and possibly Loudon too. If General Finck pursues them, the Russians will attack him from behind. If he moves along the Oder, he will have Haddick on his side. However, I believe if Loudon goes for Berlin, he might be able to strike and defeat Loudon. If that happens, it could be a way to cope with our misfortune and gain some time. Göper, my secretary, will send him updates from Torgau and Dresden. You need to keep my brother informed about everything. I’ve made him the army's commander. We can't completely fix this bad luck, but we have to follow my brother’s orders. The army supports my nephew. That’s all I can offer in this unfortunate situation. If I had any resources left, I would have stayed with them.”

Frederick.

Frederick.

It will be perceived that this paper is slightly less despairing than the preceding letter which he had written to Count Finckenstein. Frederick, having written the order to General Finck, threw himself, in utter exhaustion, upon some straw in a corner of the hut, and fell soundly asleep. The Prussian officers, passing by, gazed sadly through the open door upon the sleeping monarch. A single sentinel guarded the entrance.

It seems that this paper is a bit less hopeless than the previous letter he wrote to Count Finckenstein. Frederick, after giving the order to General Finck, collapsed from exhaustion onto some straw in a corner of the hut and fell into a deep sleep. The Prussian officers walked by, looking sadly through the open door at the sleeping king. A lone sentinel stood watch at the entrance.

The next morning Frederick crossed the river to Reitwein, on the western bank. Here, during the day, broken bands of his army came in to the number of twenty-three thousand. It would seem that a night of refreshing sleep had so far recruited the exhausted energies of the king that he was enabled to look a little more calmly upon the ruin which enveloped him. He that day wrote as follows from Reitwein to General Schmettau, who was in command of the Prussian garrison at Dresden:

The next morning, Frederick crossed the river to Reitwein on the western bank. Throughout the day, scattered groups of his army arrived, totaling around twenty-three thousand. It seemed that a night of good sleep had somewhat restored the king's depleted energy, allowing him to view the devastation surrounding him with a bit more calmness. That day, he wrote the following from Reitwein to General Schmettau, who was in charge of the Prussian garrison at Dresden:

“You will, perhaps, have heard of the check I have met with from the Russian army on the 13th138 of this month. Though at bottom our affairs in regard to the enemy here are not desperate, I find I shall not be able to make any detachment for your assistance. Should the Austrians attempt any thing against Dresden, therefore, you will see if there are means of maintaining yourself; failing which, it will behoove you to try and obtain a favorable capitulation—to wit, liberty to withdraw, with the488 whole garrison, moneys, magazines, hospital, and all that we have at Dresden, either to Berlin or elsewhere, so as to join some corps of my troops.

“You might have heard about the setback I experienced with the Russian army on the 13th __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ of this month. While our situation against the enemy here isn’t dire, I understand that I won’t be able to send any assistance your way. If the Austrians make a move against Dresden, you’ll have to find a way to hold your ground; if that’s not feasible, you should aim for a favorable surrender—specifically, the ability to retreat with the entire garrison, funds, supplies, hospital, and everything we have in Dresden, either to Berlin or another location, so we can regroup with some of my troops.

“As a fit of illness has come on me, which I do not think will have dangerous results, I have, for the present, left the command of my troops to Lieutenant General Von Finck, whose orders you are to execute as if coming directly from myself. On this I pray God139 to have you in his holy and worthy keeping.

“Since I’ve come down with an illness that I don’t think will be serious, I have temporarily handed over command of my troops to Lieutenant General Von Finck, and you should follow his orders as if they were coming straight from me. I pray that God keeps you in His holy and worthy care.”

F.”

F.”

FREDERICK ASLEEP IN THE HUT AT OETSCHER.

The consternation at Berlin, as contradictory reports of victory and defeat reached the city, was indescribable. M. Sulzer, an eye-witness of the scene, writes under date of Berlin, August 13th, 1759:

The confusion in Berlin, as conflicting reports of victory and defeat flooded the city, was beyond description. M. Sulzer, a witness to the events, writes from Berlin on August 13th, 1759:

489 “Above fifty thousand human beings were on the palace esplanade and the streets around, swaying hither and thither in an agony of expectation, in alternate paroxysms of joy, of terror, and of woe. Often enough the opposite paroxysms were simultaneous in the different groups. Men crushed down by despair were met by men leaping into the air for very gladness.”

489 “Over fifty thousand people were on the palace platform and the surrounding streets, swaying back and forth in a state of intense anticipation, experiencing alternating bursts of joy, fear, and sadness. Often, these conflicting emotions were felt at the same time in different groups. Men overwhelmed by despair encountered others jumping for joy.”

As we have mentioned, the Russian general had such a dread of Frederick that he did not dare to pursue him. In his report of the victory to the Czarina Charlotte, speaking of his own heavy loss of over eighteen thousand men, he writes, “Your majesty is aware that the King of Prussia sells his victories at a dear rate.” To some who urged him to pursue Frederick, he replied, “Let me gain but another such victory, and I may go to Petersburg with the news of it myself alone, with my staff in my hand.”

As we mentioned, the Russian general was so afraid of Frederick that he didn’t dare to chase him. In his report of the victory to Czarina Charlotte, referring to his own significant loss of over eighteen thousand men, he writes, “Your majesty knows that the King of Prussia sells his victories at a high price.” To those who insisted he go after Frederick, he replied, “If I win just one more battle like this, I might go to Petersburg with the news myself, all alone, with just my staff in my hand.”

Frederick remained at Reitwein four days. He was very unjust to his army, and angrily reproached his soldiers for their defeat. It is true that, had every soldier possessed his own spirit, his army would have conquered, or not a man would have left the field alive. The Russians, with almost inconceivable inactivity, retired to Lossow, ten miles south of Frankfort-on-the-Oder. The king, having by great exertions collected thirty-two thousand men, marched up the valley of the Spree, and placed himself on the road between the Russians and Berlin.

Frederick stayed in Reitwein for four days. He was really unfair to his army, blaming his soldiers angrily for their defeat. It's true that if every soldier had his same spirit, they would have won, or no one would have survived the battle. The Russians, showing almost unbelievable inactivity, retreated to Lossow, ten miles south of Frankfort-on-the-Oder. The king, after working hard to gather thirty-two thousand men, marched up the Spree Valley and positioned himself on the road between the Russians and Berlin.

While on this march he wrote from Madlitz, under date of August 16th, to Marquis D’Argens, at Berlin:

While on this march, he wrote from Madlitz, on August 16th, to Marquis D’Argens in Berlin:

“We have been unfortunate, my dear marquis, but not by my fault. The victory was ours, and would even have been a complete one, when our infantry lost patience, and at the wrong moment abandoned the field of battle. The Russian infantry is almost totally destroyed. Of my own wrecks, all that I have been able to assemble amounts to thirty-two thousand men. With these I am pushing on to throw myself across the enemy’s road, and either perish or save the capital. This is not what you will call a deficiency of resolution.

“We’ve had some bad luck, my dear marquis, but it wasn’t my fault. The victory was ours, and it would have been a complete win, but our infantry lost patience and left the battlefield at the wrong time. The Russian infantry is almost completely wiped out. Of my own forces, all I’ve been able to gather amounts to thirty-two thousand men. With them, I’m pushing forward to block the enemy’s path, and either perish or save the capital. This isn’t what you’d call a lack of determination.”

“For the event I can not answer. If I had more lives than one, I would sacrifice them all to my country. But, if this stroke fail, I think I am clear scores with her, and that it will be permissible to look a little to myself. There are limits to every490 thing. I support my misfortune. My courage is not abated by it. But I am well resolved, after this stroke, if it fail, to open an outgate to myself, and no longer be the sport of any chance.”140

“For the event, I can't answer. If I had more than one life, I would give them all for my country. But if this plan fails, I believe I’ll be even with her, and it would be alright to think a bit about myself. There are limits to everything. I bear my misfortune. My courage isn’t diminished by it. But I’m determined, after this attempt, if it fails, to find a way out for myself and no longer be at the mercy of chance.”140

Four days after, in anticipation of an immediate attack from the Russians, he again wrote to the same address, “Remain at Berlin, or retire to Potsdam. In a little while there will come some catastrophe. It is not fit that you suffer by it. If things take a good turn, you can be back to Berlin. If ill luck still pursue us, go to Hanover, or to Zelle, where you can provide for your safety.”

Four days later, anticipating an immediate attack from the Russians, he wrote again to the same address, “Stay in Berlin, or move to Potsdam. Soon there will be some disaster. You shouldn’t have to suffer from it. If things improve, you can return to Berlin. If bad luck continues, go to Hanover, or to Zelle, where you can ensure your safety.”

The next day, the 21st of August, he wrote to D’Argens to come and visit him, and bring his bed with him. “I will have you a little chamber ready.” But the next day he wrote,

The next day, August 21st, he wrote to D’Argens to come and visit him and to bring his bed along. “I’ll have a small room prepared for you.” But the following day he wrote,

“Yesterday I wrote to you to come; to-day I forbid it. Daun is marching upon Berlin. Fly these unhappy countries. This news obliges me again to attack the Russians between here and Frankfort. You may imagine if this is a desperate resolution. It is the sole hope that remains to me of not being cut off from Berlin on the one side or the other. I will give these discouraged troops brandy, but I promise myself nothing of success. My one consolation is that I shall die sword in hand.”

“Yesterday I wrote to you to come; today I’m telling you not to. Daun is heading towards Berlin. Escape these troubled lands. This news forces me to go after the Russians between here and Frankfurt again. You can imagine how desperate this decision is. It’s the only hope I have left to avoid being trapped from either side of Berlin. I’ll give these weary troops some brandy, but I’m not expecting any success. My only comfort is that if I die, I’ll be fighting.”

Just after dispatching this letter he received one from D’Argens, to which he immediately, on the same day, returned the following reply:

Just after sending this letter, he got one from D’Argens, and he immediately replied on the same day with the following response:

“Certainly I will fight. But do not flatter yourself about the result. A happy chance alone can help us. Go, in God’s name to Tangermünde. Wait there how destiny shall have disposed of us. I will reconnoitre the enemy to-morrow. Next day, if there is any thing to do, we will try it. If the enemy still holds to the Wine Hills of Frankfort, I shall not dare to attack him.

“Of course, I will fight. But don’t get too confident about the outcome. Only luck can really help us. Go to Tangermünde, for God’s sake. Wait there to see what fate has in store for us. I’ll scout the enemy tomorrow. The day after, if there’s anything we can do, we’ll give it a shot. If the enemy is still positioned in the Wine Hills of Frankfort, I won’t risk an attack.”

“The torments of Tantalus, the pains of Prometheus, the doom of Sisyphus, were nothing to the torments I have suffered for the last ten days. Death is sweet in comparison with such a life. Pity me, and believe that I still keep to myself a great many evil things, not wishing to afflict or disquiet any body with them. Believe me that I would not counsel you to fly these unlucky countries if I had any ray of hope. Adieu, mon cher.”

“The sufferings of Tantalus, the agony of Prometheus, the fate of Sisyphus, were nothing compared to the pain I've endured for the last ten days. Death is a relief compared to such a life. Have compassion for me, and know that I still hold back many dark thoughts, not wanting to burden or disturb anyone with them. Trust me when I say that I wouldn’t advise you to leave these cursed lands if I had any glimmer of hope. Goodbye, mon cher.”

491 The rumor that Daun was marching upon Berlin proved a false alarm. On the 4th of September the king again wrote D’Argens from his encampment at Waldau, a few leagues south of his last position, just over the border in Saxony:

491 The rumor that Daun was heading towards Berlin turned out to be a false alarm. On September 4th, the king wrote to D’Argens again from his camp at Waldau, a few miles south of his previous location, just over the border in Saxony:

“I think Berlin is now in safety. You may return thither. The barbarians are in the Lausitz. I keep by the side of them, between them and Berlin, so that there is nothing to fear for the capital. The imminency of danger is passed. But there will be still many bad moments to get through before reaching the end of the campaign. These, however, only regard myself. Never mind these. My martyrdom will last two months yet. Then the snows and the ices will end it.”

“I think Berlin is safe now. You can go back there. The enemy is in Lausitz. I’m staying close to them, positioned between them and Berlin, so there’s nothing to worry about for the capital. The threat has passed. However, there will still be many tough times ahead before this campaign is over. But those are just my concerns. Don’t worry about those. My suffering will last another two months. Then the snow and ice will put an end to it.”

General Schmettau had in Dresden a garrison of but three thousand seven hundred men. It will be remembered that he would doubtless be compelled to capitulate, and to do so on the best terms he could. But his Prussian majesty, being now a little more hopeful, wrote to him again, urging him to hold out to the last extremity, and informing him that he had dispatched to his aid General Wunsch, with a re-enforcement of eight thousand men, and General Finck with six thousand. The courier was cut off. General Schmettau, entirely unconscious that relief was coming, closely besieged, and threatened with the massacre of his whole garrison should the place be taken by storm, on Tuesday evening, the 4th of September, surrendered the city.

General Schmettau had a garrison of only three thousand seven hundred men in Dresden. It's important to remember that he would likely have to surrender and do so on the best terms available. However, his Prussian king, feeling a bit more optimistic, wrote to him again, urging him to hold out until the very end. He informed Schmettau that he had sent General Wunsch with an additional eight thousand men and General Finck with six thousand men to help. Unfortunately, the courier was intercepted. Unaware that relief was on the way, and under constant siege with the threat of his entire garrison being slaughtered if the city was taken by force, General Schmettau surrendered the city on Tuesday evening, September 4th.

It was a sore calamity to Frederick. Had General Schmettau held out only until the next day, which he could easily have done, relief would have arrived, and the city would have been saved. Frederick was in a great rage, and was not at all in the mood to be merciful, or even just. He dismissed the unfortunate general from his service, degraded him, and left him to die in poverty.

It was a painful disaster for Frederick. If General Schmettau had just held out until the next day, which he easily could have done, help would have arrived, and the city would have been saved. Frederick was incredibly angry and was not in a forgiving or fair mindset at all. He kicked the unfortunate general out of his service, stripped him of his rank, and left him to die in poverty.

Frederick had now under his command twenty-four thousand men. They were mostly on the road between Frankfort and Berlin, for the protection of the capital. His brother Henry, in the vicinity of Landshut, with his head-quarters at Schmöttseifen, was in command of thirty-eight thousand. The Russians and Austrians numbered one hundred and twenty thousand. There was, however, but little cordial co-operation among the allies. Each was accused of endeavoring to crowd the other to the front of the battle against the terrible Frederick.

Frederick now had twenty-four thousand men under his command. They were mainly stationed on the route between Frankfurt and Berlin, to protect the capital. His brother Henry, near Landshut and based at Schmöttseifen, was in charge of thirty-eight thousand troops. The Russians and Austrians together had one hundred and twenty thousand soldiers. However, there was very little genuine cooperation among the allies. Each side accused the other of trying to push ahead to confront the formidable Frederick.

492 The Russians did not attempt to march upon Berlin. About the middle of September General Soltikof gathered all his forces in hand, and commenced a march into Silesia to effect a junction with General Daun. Frederick followed, and, by a very rapid march, took possession of Sagan, on the Bober, where he was in direct communication with Henry. On the 24th of September the king wrote to his younger brother Ferdinand, in Berlin:

492 The Russians didn’t try to march on Berlin. Around mid-September, General Soltikof brought all his troops together and started a march into Silesia to connect with General Daun. Frederick pursued them and quickly took control of Sagan, on the Bober, where he was in direct contact with Henry. On September 24th, the king wrote to his younger brother Ferdinand, in Berlin:

“You may well suppose that, in the present posture of affairs, I am not without cares, inquietudes, and anxieties. It is the most frightful crisis I have had in my life. This is the moment for dying, unless one conquer. Daun and my brother Henry are marching side by side. It is possible enough all these armies may assemble hereabouts, and that a general battle may decide our fortune and the peace. Take care of your health, dear brother.

“You might assume that, considering what's going on, I’m dealing with a lot of worries, restlessness, and anxiety. This is the toughest crisis I've ever faced. It feels like a moment meant for dying, unless someone comes out on top. Daun and my brother Henry are working together. It’s likely that all these armies will converge here, and a big battle could decide our fate and peace. Take care of yourself, dear brother."

F.”

F.”

There was much manœuvring, in which Frederick displayed his usual skill, quite circumventing his foes. Daily he became less despairing. On the 25th of October he wrote to Fouquet:

There was a lot of maneuvering, in which Frederick showed his usual skill, completely outsmarting his enemies. Day by day, he felt less hopeless. On October 25th, he wrote to Fouquet:

“With twenty-one thousand your beaten and maltreated servant has hindered an army of fifty thousand from attacking him, and has compelled them to retire to Neusatz.”

“With twenty-one thousand, your battered and mistreated servant has held back an army of fifty thousand from attacking him and has forced them to retreat to Neusatz.”

On the 10th of October Frederick was attacked by the gout, and for three weeks was confined to his room. This extraordinary man, struggling, as it were, in the jaws of destruction, beguiled the weary hours of sickness and pain by writing a treatise upon Charles XII. and his Military Character. On the 24th of October, the Russian commander, quarreling with General Daun, set out, with his whole force, for home. On the 1st of November the king was carried in a litter to Glogau. Cold weather having now set in, General Daun commenced a march for Bohemia, to seek winter quarters nearer his supplies. Frederick, his health being restored, rejoined his troops under Henry, which were near Dresden. The withdrawal of both the Russians and Austrians from Silesia greatly elated him. On the 15th of November he wrote to D’Argens from Maxen, a village a little south of Dresden:

On October 10th, Frederick was hit by gout and was stuck in his room for three weeks. This remarkable man, fighting against the odds, passed the difficult hours of sickness and pain by writing a treatise on Charles XII. and his Military Character. On October 24th, the Russian commander, in a dispute with General Daun, set out for home with his entire force. On November 1st, the king was carried in a litter to Glogau. With the cold weather setting in, General Daun began his march to Bohemia to find winter quarters closer to his supplies. Frederick, having regained his health, rejoined his troops under Henry, who were near Dresden. The departure of both the Russians and Austrians from Silesia greatly pleased him. On November 15th, he wrote to D’Argens from Maxen, a village just south of Dresden:

“Yesterday I joined the army, and Daun decamped. I have493 followed him thus far, and will continue it to the frontiers of Bohemia. Our measures are so taken that he will not get out of Saxony without considerable loss.”

“Yesterday I enlisted in the army, and Daun left his position. I've followed him this far, and I'll keep going to the borders of Bohemia. We've planned things in a way that he won't exit Saxony without taking a significant hit.”

General Finck was stationed at Maxen, with about fifteen thousand men, to cut the communications of Daun with Bohemia. Frederick, in his undue elation, was quite sure of inflicting terrible blows upon Daun. He issued imperative commands to General Finck to fight the allies regardless of their numbers. The Prussian general did not dare to disobey this command and withdraw from his commanding position, even when he saw himself being surrounded with such superior forces as would almost certainly crush him.

General Finck was stationed at Maxen with about fifteen thousand men to disrupt Daun's communications with Bohemia. Frederick, overly excited, was confident he could deal significant blows to Daun. He gave strict orders to General Finck to engage the allies no matter their numbers. The Prussian general didn't dare to disobey this order and retreat from his commanding position, even when he realized he was being surrounded by such overwhelming forces that would almost certainly defeat him.

In a very triumphant mood, the king, on the 19th of November, wrote a boastful and irreverent “Ode to Fortune,” in that easy rhyme which he called poetry. The substance of this ode, translated into prose, was as follows:

In a very triumphant mood, the king, on the 19th of November, wrote a boastful and irreverent “Ode to Fortune” in that easy rhyme which he called poetry. The substance of this ode, translated into prose, was as follows:

“I am a poor heretic. I have never been blessed by the holy father. I never attend church. I worship neither God nor the devil. Often have those shaven scoundrels, the priests, declared that I had become extinct.

“I am a poor heretic. I have never been blessed by the holy father. I don’t go to church. I worship neither God nor the devil. Those shaven scoundrels, the priests, have often claimed that I have become extinct.”

“But behold the caprice of Fortune. After a hundred preferences of my rivals, she smiles upon me, and packs off the hero of the hat and sword, whom the pope had blessed, and who had gone on pilgrimages. He skulks out of Saxony, panting like a dog whom the cook has flogged out of the kitchen.”

“But look at the whims of Fortune. After a hundred choices by my rivals, she smiles at me and sends away the hero wearing the hat and sword, who had been blessed by the pope and had gone on pilgrimages. He sneaks out of Saxony, panting like a dog that has been kicked out of the kitchen.”

This ode, “an irrepressible extempore effusion,” as he termed it, the royal poet forwarded to D’Argens. The day but one after writing this, General Daun, having effectually surrounded General Finck with nearly fifty thousand men of the allied troops—nearly four to one—after a severe conflict, compelled the surrender of his whole army. The following plan of the battle of Maxen will show how completely Finck was encircled. General Daun claimed that he marched back into Dresden, as prisoners of war, eight generals, five hundred and twenty-nine officers, and fifteen thousand privates, with all their equipments and appurtenances.141 The next day, the 22d, Frederick wrote to D’Argens:

This poem, “an uncontainable spontaneous overflow,” as he called it, was sent by the royal poet to D’Argens. The day after writing this, General Daun, having effectively surrounded General Finck with nearly fifty thousand allied troops—almost four to one—after a fierce battle, forced the surrender of his entire army. The following plan of the battle of Maxen will illustrate how completely Finck was encircled. General Daun claimed that he returned to Dresden with eight generals, five hundred and twenty-nine officers, and fifteen thousand soldiers as prisoners of war, along with all their equipment and belongings.141 The next day, the 22nd, Frederick wrote to D’Argens:

“I am so stupefied with the misfortune which has befallen494 General Finck that I can not recover from my astonishment. It deranges all my measures. It cuts me to the quick. Ill luck, which persecutes my old age, has followed me from Kunersdorf to Saxony. I will still strive what I can. The little ode I sent you, addressed to Fortune, was written too soon. One should not shout victory until the battle is over. I am so crushed by these reverses and disasters that I wish a thousand times I were dead.

“I am so shocked by the misfortune that has befallen494 General Finck that I can't shake my astonishment. It disrupts all my plans. It cuts me deeply. Bad luck, which follows me in my old age, has trailed me from Kunersdorf to Saxony. I will still do what I can. The little poem I sent you, addressed to Fortune, was written too soon. One shouldn't celebrate victory until the battle is over. I am so overwhelmed by these setbacks and disasters that I wish a thousand times I were dead.

BATTLE OF MAXEN, NOVEMBER 20, 1759.

BATTLE OF MAXEN, NOVEMBER 20, 1759.

a a. Prussian Army. b. Prussian Detachment, under Wunsch. c c. Austrian Attack, under Daun. d d. Attack of Brentano and Sincere. e e e. Reich’s Army.

a a. Prussian Army. b. Prussian unit, commanded by Wunsch. c c. Austrian attack, led by Daun. d d. Assault by Brentano and Sincere. e e e. Reich's Army.

“From day to day I grow more weary of dwelling in a body worn out and condemned to suffer. I am writing to you in the first moment of my grief. Astonishment, sorrow, indignation, and scorn, all blended together, lacerate my soul. Let us get to the end, then, of this execrable campaign. I will then write to you what is to become of me, and we will arrange the rest. Pity me, and make no noise about me. Bad news goes fast enough of itself. Adieu, dear marquis.”

“Day by day, I grow more exhausted living in a body that’s worn out and doomed to suffer. I’m writing to you in the first moment of my grief. Shock, sadness, anger, and disdain mix together and tear at my soul. Let’s wrap up this horrible situation quickly. I’ll then tell you what’s going to happen to me, and we can figure out the rest. Have pity on me, and keep my situation quiet. Bad news spreads fast enough on its own. Goodbye, dear marquis.”

The king, as usual, was merciless to General Finck. As soon as he returned from Austrian captivity he was tried by court-martial, and condemned to a year’s imprisonment in the fortress of Spandau, and was expelled from the army. He afterward retired to Denmark, where he was kindly received.

The king was, as always, ruthless towards General Finck. As soon as he came back from being held in Austria, he was put on trial by court-martial, sentenced to a year in prison at the fortress of Spandau, and kicked out of the army. He later moved to Denmark, where he was warmly welcomed.

General Daun, elated by this victory, relinquished the plan of retiring to Bohemia, and decided to remain in Saxony for the winter. Frederick had but thirty-six thousand men in Saxony. Daun commanded seventy-two thousand.

General Daun, thrilled by this victory, abandoned his plan to retreat to Bohemia and decided to stay in Saxony for the winter. Frederick had only thirty-six thousand men in Saxony, while Daun commanded seventy-two thousand.

The Elbe was now frozen. The storms of winter covered the icy fields with snow. Daun retired to Dresden. Frederick established himself in the little town of Freiberg, about thirty miles southwest from Dresden. His troops were in cantonments in the adjoining villages. Here he took up his abode in a humble cottage. Thus terminated the fourth campaign of the Seven Years’ War.

The Elbe was now frozen. Winter storms had blanketed the icy fields in snow. Daun retreated to Dresden. Frederick set up in the small town of Freiberg, about thirty miles southwest of Dresden. His troops were stationed in the nearby villages. He took shelter in a modest cottage. This marked the end of the fourth campaign of the Seven Years’ War.


495

495

CHAPTER XXXI.
The struggle went on.

Winter Encampment.—Death of Maupertuis.—Infamous Conduct of Voltaire.—Reproof by the King.—Voltaire’s Insincerity.—Correspondence.—The King publishes his Poems.—Dishonorable Conduct of the King.—New Encampment near Dresden.—Destruction of Frederick’s Army in Silesia.—Atrocities perpetrated by the Austrians.—Astonishing March.—The Austrians outwitted.—Dresden bombarded and almost destroyed by Frederick.—Battle of Liegnitz.—Utter Rout of the Austrians.—Undiminished Peril of Frederick.—Letter to D’Argens.

Winter Camp.—Death of Maupertuis.—Shameful Actions of Voltaire.—Warning from the King.—Voltaire’s Deceitfulness.—Letters exchanged.—The King releases his Poems.—Dishonorable Deeds of the King.—New Camp set up near Dresden.—Destruction of Frederick’s Army in Silesia.—Atrocities by the Austrians.—Amazing March.—The Austrians outsmarted.—Dresden bombed and nearly destroyed by Frederick.—Battle of Liegnitz.—Total Defeat of the Austrians.—Constant Threat to Frederick.—Letter to D’Argens.

It was early in January, 1760, that the two hostile armies went into winter quarters. General Daun, with his seventy-two thousand triumphant troops, held Dresden. He encamped his army in an arc of a circle, bending toward the southwest from the city, and occupying a line about thirty miles in extent. Frederick, with thirty-two thousand troops depressed by defeat, defiantly faced his foe in a concave arc concentric to that of Daun. The two antagonistic encampments were almost within cannon-shot of each other.

It was early January 1760 when the two opposing armies settled in for the winter. General Daun, with his seventy-two thousand victorious soldiers, took control of Dresden. He set up his army in a circular formation, curving southwest from the city, covering a distance of about thirty miles. Frederick, with thirty-two thousand troops disheartened by defeat, boldly confronted his enemy in a concave arc that mirrored Daun’s position. The two rival camps were nearly within cannon range of each other.

Never were the prospects of Frederick more gloomy. He had taken up his residence for the winter in a very humble cottage near the hamlet of Freiberg. He must have been very unhappy. Scenes of suffering were every where around him. It was terribly cold. His troops were poorly clothed, and fed, and housed.

Never were Frederick's prospects more bleak. He had settled for the winter in a small cottage near the village of Freiberg. He must have been extremely unhappy. Scenes of suffering surrounded him everywhere. It was freezing cold. His troops were poorly dressed, fed, and housed.

“It was one of the grimmest camps in nature; the canvas roofs grown mere ice-plates, the tents mere sanctuaries of frost. Never did poor young Archenholtz see such industry in dragging wood-fuel, such boiling of biscuits in broken ice, such crowding round the embers to roast one side of you while the other was freezing. But Daun’s people, on the opposite side of the Plauen Dell, did the like. Their tents also were left standing in the frozen state, guarded by alternating battalions no better off than their Prussian neighbors.”142

“It was one of the bleakest camps in nature; the canvas roofs had turned into ice plates, and the tents were just frosty shelters. Poor young Archenholtz had never seen such effort put into hauling firewood, boiling biscuits in broken ice, or huddling around the embers to roast one side of you while the other side froze. But Daun’s troops, on the other side of the Plauen Dell, were doing the same. Their tents also stood frozen, guarded by alternating battalions just as miserable as their Prussian neighbors.”142

Thus affairs continued through the winter. There were two frostbitten armies facing each other on the bleak plains. With apparently not much to be gained in presenting this front of defiance,496 each party breasted the storms and the freezing gales, alike refusing to yield one inch of ground.

Thus, things went on throughout the winter. There were two frostbitten armies facing each other on the desolate plains. With seemingly nothing to be gained from showing this defiant stance,496 both sides braved the storms and freezing winds, unwilling to give up even an inch of ground.

THE WINTER CAMP.

During the previous summer, the philosopher Maupertuis, after weary wanderings in the languor of consumption, and in great dejection of spirits, had been stricken by convulsions while in his carriage at Basel. He had lost favor with the king, and was poor, friendless, and dying. His latter years had been imbittered by the venomous assaults of Voltaire.

During the previous summer, the philosopher Maupertuis, after exhausting travels in the fatigue of illness and feeling very down, suffered convulsions while in his carriage in Basel. He had fallen out of favor with the king and was now poor, without friends, and dying. His later years had been made bitter by the spiteful attacks from Voltaire.

While in health and prosperity, quaffing the wines of Frederick, he was an avowed infidel, and eagerly joined the ribald companions of the king in denouncing all religion as the fanaticism of weak minds. But in these hours of pain, of loneliness, and of approaching death he could find no consolation in the teachings of philosophy. He sent for two Christian ministers to visit497 him daily, and daily had the Bible read to him. It was a death-bed repentance. Bitterly he deplored a wasted life. Sincerely he seemed to embrace the doctrines of Christianity.143 He died, after a lingering sickness, far from home and friends, on the 27th of July, 1759.

While he was healthy and prosperous, enjoying Frederick's wines, he was a declared atheist, eagerly joining the king's raucous companions in condemning all religion as the folly of weak minds. But in these moments of pain, loneliness, and impending death, he found no comfort in philosophical teachings. He asked for two Christian ministers to visit him daily, and each day, he had the Bible read to him. It was a deathbed repentance. He deeply regretted a life wasted. He genuinely seemed to embrace the teachings of Christianity. He died, after a prolonged illness, far from home and friends, on July 27, 1759.

Voltaire made himself very merry over the dying scene of Maupertuis. There was never another man who could throw so much poison into a sneer as Voltaire. It is probable that the conversion of Maupertuis somewhat troubled his conscience as the unhappy scorner looked forward to his own dying hour, which could not be far distant. He never alluded to Maupertuis without indulging in a strain of bitter mockery in view of his death as a penitent. Even the king, unbeliever as he was in religion or in the existence of a God, was disgusted with the malignity displayed by Voltaire. In reply to one of Voltaire’s envenomed assaults the king wrote:

Voltaire took great delight in the dying moments of Maupertuis. No one else could infuse so much venom into a sneer like Voltaire. It's likely that Maupertuis's conversion weighed on his conscience as the miserable critic anticipated his own final moments, which couldn't be far off. He never mentioned Maupertuis without indulging in a bitter mockery of his death as a penitent. Even the king, who was a skeptic about religion and the existence of God, was repulsed by the malice shown by Voltaire. In response to one of Voltaire’s venomous attacks, the king wrote:

“You speak of Maupertuis. Do not trouble the ashes of the dead. Let the grave, at least, put an end to your unjust hatreds. Reflect that even kings make peace after long battling. Can not you ever make it? I think you would be capable, like Orpheus, of descending to hell, not to soften Pluto, and bring back your beautiful Emilie, but to pursue into that abode of woe an enemy whom your wrath has only too much persecuted in this world. For shame!”144

“You're talking about Maupertuis. Don’t disturb the dead. At least let the grave put an end to your unfair grudges. Remember that even kings make peace after fighting for a long time. Can’t you ever do that? I think you’d be able, like Orpheus, to go down to hell, not to appease Pluto and bring back your beautiful Emilie, but to chase after an enemy whom your anger has tormented too much in this world. What a shame!”144

Soon after Frederick wrote to Voltaire upon this subject again, still more severely, but in verse. The following is almost a literal translation of this poetic epistle:

Soon after Frederick wrote to Voltaire about this topic again, even more harshly, but in verse. The following is almost a literal translation of this poetic letter:

“Leave the cold ashes of Maupertuis in peace. He was noble and faithful. He pardoned you that vile libel of Doctor Akakia which your criminal fury scribbled against him. And what return are you making? Shame on such delirious ravings as those of Voltaire! Shall this grand genius, whom I have admired, soil himself with calumny, and be ferocious on the dead? Shall he, like a vile raven, pounce upon the sepulchre, and make prey upon its corpses?”

“Leave the cold ashes of Maupertuis in peace. He was noble and loyal. He forgave you for that terrible slander from Doctor Akakia that your angry rage wrote against him. And what do you do in return? Shame on such crazy rants as those of Voltaire! Is this great genius, whom I have admired, going to dirty himself with lies and attack the dead? Will he, like a disgusting raven, swoop down on the grave and feed on its corpses?”

The friendship of these two remarkable men must have been of a singular character. Voltaire thus maliciously wrote of the king:

The friendship between these two remarkable men must have been truly unique. Voltaire wrote about the king in a rather spiteful way:

498 “He is as potent and as malignant as the devil. He is also as unhappy, not knowing friendship.”

498 “He is as powerful and as evil as the devil. He is also as miserable, not knowing what it means to have a friend.”

Voltaire had, as a pet, a very vicious ape, treacherous, spiteful, who pelted passers-by with stones, and, when provoked, would bite terribly. The name of this hateful beast was Luc. Voltaire gave his friend Frederick the nickname of Luc. He corresponded freely with the enemies of his Prussian majesty. A few extracts will reveal the character of the friendship of the philosopher. Some days after the battle of Kunersdorf Voltaire wrote to D’Argental:

Voltaire had a pet ape that was very vicious, treacherous, and spiteful, known for throwing stones at passersby and biting fiercely when provoked. This hated creature was named Luc. Voltaire gave his friend Frederick the nickname Luc. He communicated openly with the enemies of his Prussian majesty. A few excerpts will show the nature of the philosopher's friendship. A few days after the battle of Kunersdorf, Voltaire wrote to D’Argental:

“I do not love Luc; far from it. I never will pardon him his infamous procedure with my niece,145 nor the face he has to write me flattering things twice a month without having ever repaired his wrongs. I desire much his entire humiliation, the chastisement of the sinner; whether his eternal damnation I do not quite know.”

“I don’t love Luc; not at all. I will never forgive him for his terrible actions with my niece,145 nor for pretending to write me nice things twice a month without ever making up for what he’s done. I want to see him completely humiliated, punished for his sins; as for whether I wish for his eternal damnation, I’m not sure.”

Again he wrote, a few months after, to the Duke of Choiseul: “He has been a bad man, this Luc. And now, if one were to bet by the law of probability, it would be three to one that Luc would go to pot [sera perdu], with his rhymings and his banterings, and his injustices and politics, all as bad as himself.”146

Again he wrote, a few months later, to the Duke of Choiseul: “He has been a terrible person, this Luc. And now, if you were to bet based on probability, it would be three to one that Luc would end up in trouble [sera perdu], with his poetry and jokes, and his unfairness and politics, all just as awful as he is.”146

Frederick affected great contempt for public opinion. He wrote to Voltaire:

Frederick showed a strong disdain for public opinion. He wrote to Voltaire:

“I have the lot of all actors who play in public—applauded by some, despised by others. One must prepare one’s self for satires, for calumnies, for a multitude of lies, which will be sent abroad into currency against one. But need that trouble my tranquillity? I go my road. I do nothing against the interior voice of my conscience. And I concern myself very little in what way my actions paint themselves in the brain of beings not always very thinking, with two legs, and without feathers.”

“I have the fate of all actors who perform in public—praised by some, hated by others. You have to get ready for criticisms, slanders, and a lot of lies that will spread about you. But should that disturb my peace of mind? I continue on my path. I don’t act against my inner conscience. And I care very little about how my actions are perceived by those who aren’t always the most thoughtful, walking on two legs and without feathers.”

It is evident that the king, thus surrounded with perils and threatened with utter destruction, was anxious for the termination of the war. But still this inflexible man would not listen to any suggestions for peace but on his own terms. He wrote to Voltaire, urging him “to bring back peace.” At the same time he said,

It’s clear that the king, surrounded by dangers and facing total destruction, was eager to end the war. Yet, this stubborn man refused to consider any peace proposals except on his own terms. He wrote to Voltaire, asking him “to help restore peace.” At the same time, he said,

499 “In spite of all your efforts, you will not get a peace signed by my hands except on conditions honorable to my nation. Your people, blown up with self-conceit and folly, may depend on these words.”

499 “Regardless of all your efforts, you won't receive a peace agreement signed by me unless it respects my nation’s honor. Your people, filled with arrogance and foolishness, can count on these words.”

But that he was fully awake to his perils, and keenly felt his sufferings, is manifest from the following extract from another of his letters:

But it's clear that he was fully aware of his dangers and deeply felt his pain, as shown in the following excerpt from another one of his letters:

“The sword and death have made frightful ravages among us. And the worst is that we are not yet at the end of the tragedy. You may judge what effect these cruel shocks make on me. I wrap myself in my stoicism the best I can. Flesh and blood revolt against such tyrannous command, but it must be followed. If you saw me you would scarcely know me again. I am old, broken, gray-headed, wrinkled. I am losing my teeth and my gayety. If this go on, there will be nothing of me left but the mania of making verses, and an inviolable attachment to my duties, and to the few virtuous men whom I know.”

“The sword and death have caused terrible damage among us. And the worst part is that we’re not even near the end of this tragedy. You can imagine how these cruel shocks affect me. I try to wrap myself in stoicism as best as I can. My body and spirit rebel against such harsh demands, but I have to comply. If you saw me, you would hardly recognize me. I am old, broken, gray-haired, and wrinkled. I’m losing my teeth and my cheerfulness. If this continues, there will be nothing left of me but an obsession with writing poetry and a strong commitment to my responsibilities, and to the few good people I know.”

In the above letter the king alludes to the “mania of making verses.” Strange as it may seem, he this winter, when apparently almost crushed beneath the weight of cares and sorrows, when every energy of mind and body seemed called into requisition in preparation for a new campaign, published an edition of his poems.

In the letter above, the king mentions the “mania of making verses.” As odd as it sounds, this winter, when he seemed nearly overwhelmed by worries and sadness, and when every bit of his mind and body seemed necessary for preparing for a new campaign, he published a new edition of his poems.

The allies represented a population of ninety millions. The realms of Frederick embraced scarcely five millions of inhabitants. The allies decided that they would no longer make an exchange of prisoners. It was manifest that, by merely protracting the war, even without any signal successes on the part of the allies, Frederick would find all his resources of men exhausted. Frederick, who was never very scrupulous with regard to the means which he employed for the promotion of his ends, immediately compelled his prisoners of war, of whatever nationality, to enlist in his service.

The allies represented a population of ninety million. Frederick's territories had barely five million inhabitants. The allies decided they would stop exchanging prisoners. It was evident that by simply dragging out the war, even without any significant victories for the allies, Frederick would run out of men. Frederick, who was never particularly concerned about the methods he used to achieve his goals, immediately forced his prisoners of war, regardless of their nationality, to join his ranks.

“Prisoners, captive soldiers, if at all likely fellows,” writes Archenholtz, “were by every means persuaded and even compelled to take Prussian service. Compelled, cudgel in hand, not asked if they wished to serve, but dragged to the Prussian colors, obliged to swear there, and fight against their countrymen.”147

“Prisoners, captive soldiers, if they were at all cooperative,” writes Archenholtz, “were strongly encouraged and even forced to join the Prussian military. Forced, with a club in hand, not asked if they wanted to serve, but taken to the Prussian colors, required to swear allegiance there, and fight against their own countrymen.”147

500 Frederick also seized money wherever he could find it, whether in the hands of friend or foe. His contributions levied upon the Saxons were terrible. The cold and dreary winter passed rapidly away. The spring was late in that northern clime. It was not until the middle of June that either party was prepared vigorously to take the field. It was generally considered by the European world that Frederick was irretrievably ruined. In the last campaign he had lost sixty thousand men. Universal gloom and discouragement pervaded his kingdom. Still Frederick, by his almost superhuman exertions, had marshaled another army of one hundred thousand men. But the allies had two hundred and eighty thousand to oppose to them. Though Frederick in public assumed a cheerful and self-confident air, as if assured of victory, his private correspondence proves that he was, in heart, despondent in the extreme, and that scarcely a ray of hope visited his mind. To his friend D’Argens he wrote:

500 Frederick also grabbed money wherever he could, whether from friends or enemies. His taxes on the Saxons were harsh. The cold and dreary winter flew by. Spring was late in that northern region. It wasn't until mid-June that either side was ready to actively take the field. It was widely believed across Europe that Frederick was beyond saving. In the last campaign, he had lost sixty thousand men. A sense of gloom and discouragement spread throughout his kingdom. Still, Frederick, through his nearly superhuman efforts, had gathered another army of one hundred thousand men. But the allies had two hundred and eighty thousand to fight against them. Although Frederick publicly maintained a cheerful and confident demeanor, as if he was sure of victory, his private letters show that he was extremely despondent, with hardly a glimmer of hope in his mind. To his friend D’Argens he wrote:

“I am unfortunate and old, dear marquis. That is why they persecute me. God knows what my future is to be this year. I grieve to resemble Cassandra with my prophecies. But how augur well of the desperate situation we are in, and which goes on growing worse? I am so gloomy to-day I will cut short.

“I’m unfortunate and aging, dear marquis. That’s why they persecute me. God knows what my future will be this year. I regret resembling Cassandra with my predictions. But how can I have a positive outlook on the desperate situation we’re in, which only seems to get worse? I’m feeling so down today that I’ll keep this brief."

“Write to me when you have nothing better to do. And don’t forget a poor philosopher who, perhaps to expiate his incredulity, is doomed to find his purgatory in this world.”

“Message me when you have some free time. And don’t forget about a struggling philosopher who, maybe to make up for his skepticism, is stuck finding his purgatory in this life.”

Again, and at the same time, he wrote to another friend:

Again, he wrote to another friend:

“The difficulties I had last campaign were almost infinite, there were such a multitude of enemies acting against me. Pomerania, Brandenburg, Saxony, frontiers of Silesia, were alike in danger, and often all at one time. If I escaped absolute destruction, I must impute it chiefly to the misconduct of my enemies, who gained such advantages, but had not the sense to follow them up. Experience often corrects people of their blunders. I can not expect to profit by any thing of that kind on their part in the course of this campaign.”148

“The challenges I faced last campaign were nearly endless; there were so many enemies working against me. Pomerania, Brandenburg, Saxony, and the borders of Silesia were all at risk, often simultaneously. If I managed to avoid total disaster, I largely owe it to the mistakes of my enemies, who gained significant advantages but lacked the foresight to capitalize on them. Experience often helps people learn from their errors. I can’t expect to benefit from any mistakes on their part in this campaign.”148

Four campaigns of the Seven Years’ War have passed. We are now entering upon the fifth, that of 1760. The latter part501 of April Frederick broke up his encampment at Freiberg, and moved his troops about twenty miles north of Dresden. Here he formed a new encampment, facing the south. His left wing was at Meissen, resting on the Elbe. His right wing was at the little village of Katzenhäuser, about ten miles to the southwest. Frederick established his head-quarters at Schlettau, midway of his lines. The position thus selected was, in a military point of view, deemed admirable. General Daun remained in Dresden “astride” the Elbe. Half of his forces were on one side and half on the other of the river.

Four campaigns of the Seven Years’ War have passed. We are now entering the fifth one, in 1760. In late April, Frederick broke up his camp at Freiberg and moved his troops about twenty miles north of Dresden. Here, he set up a new camp facing south. His left wing was at Meissen, right along the Elbe river, while his right wing was at the small village of Katzenhäuser, about ten miles to the southwest. Frederick established his headquarters at Schlettau, which was situated in the middle of his lines. The position he chose was considered excellent from a military perspective. General Daun stayed in Dresden, positioned “astride” the Elbe. Half of his forces were on one side of the river and half on the other.

The stunning news soon reached Frederick that General Fouquet, whom he had left in Silesia with twelve thousand men, had been attacked by a vastly superior force of Austrians. The assault was furious in the extreme. Thirty-one thousand Austrians commenced the assault at two o’clock in the morning. By eight o’clock the bloody deed was done. Ten thousand of the Prussians strewed the field with their gory corpses. Two thousand only escaped. General Fouquet himself was wounded and taken prisoner. To add to the anguish of the king, this disaster was to be attributed to the king himself. He had angrily ordered General Fouquet to adopt a measure which that general, better acquainted with the position and forces of the foe, saw to be fatal. Heroically he obeyed orders, though he knew that it would prove the destruction of his army.

The shocking news soon reached Frederick that General Fouquet, whom he had left in Silesia with twelve thousand men, had been attacked by a much larger Austrian force. The assault was incredibly fierce. Thirty-one thousand Austrians began the attack at two in the morning. By eight o’clock, the bloody battle was over. Ten thousand Prussians lay dead on the field. Only two thousand managed to escape. General Fouquet himself was wounded and taken prisoner. To make matters worse for the king, this disaster was attributed to him. He had angrily ordered General Fouquet to take a course of action that the general, more familiar with the enemy's position and strength, knew would be disastrous. Heroically, he followed the orders, even though he realized it would lead to the downfall of his army.

Silesia was at the mercy of the foe. Frederick regarded the calamity as irreparable. Still in a few hours he recovered his equanimity, and in public manifested his accustomed stoicism. The victorious Austrian soldiers in Silesia conducted themselves like fiends. Their plunderings and outrages were too shocking to be recited. “Nothing was spared by them,” writes Frederick, “but misery and ugliness.”

Silesia was at the mercy of the enemy. Frederick saw the disaster as something that couldn’t be fixed. However, within a few hours, he regained his composure and publicly showed his usual stoicism. The victorious Austrian soldiers in Silesia acted like demons. Their looting and violence were too terrible to describe. “They left nothing behind,” Frederick wrote, “except misery and destruction.”

There was a small garrison at Glatz, at Silesia, which, though closely besieged, still held out against the Austrians. Frederick thought that if he could by any stratagem draw General Daun from Dresden, he could, by a sudden rush, break down its walls and seize the city. He moved with celerity which completely deceived the Austrian commander. At two o’clock in the morning of Wednesday, July 2d, his whole army was almost on the run toward Silesia. They marched as troops never marched before.502 For twelve hours their speed was unintermitted. The next day, in utter exhaustion, they rested. But on Friday, as the village clocks were tolling the hour of midnight, all were again on the move, the king himself in front. Again it was a run rather than a march through a dreary realm of bogs, wild ravines, and tangled thickets. At three o’clock on Saturday morning the march was resumed.

There was a small garrison at Glatz, in Silesia, which, despite being tightly surrounded, still held out against the Austrians. Frederick believed that if he could cleverly lure General Daun away from Dresden, he could make a sudden attack, break down the walls, and take the city. He moved quickly, completely deceiving the Austrian commander. At 2:00 AM on Wednesday, July 2nd, his entire army was almost running toward Silesia. They marched like troops had never marched before.502 For twelve hours, they maintained their speed without stopping. The next day, utterly exhausted, they rested. But on Friday, as the village clocks chimed midnight, they were all on the move again, the king himself leading the way. Once more, it was more of a run than a march through a bleak landscape of swamps, steep ravines, and tangled underbrush. At 3:00 AM on Saturday, the march resumed.

General Daun was soon informed of this energetic movement. He instantly placed himself at the head of sixty thousand troops, and also set out, at his highest possible speed, for Glatz.

General Daun was quickly informed of this vigorous movement. He immediately took command of sixty thousand troops and set off at full speed for Glatz.

Sunday, July 6th, was a day of terrible heat. At three o’clock in the morning the Prussian troops were again in motion. There was not a breath of wind. The blazing sun grew hotter and hotter. There was no shade. The soldiers were perishing of thirst. Still the command was “onward,” “onward.” In that day’s march one hundred and five Prussian soldiers dropped dead in their tracks.

Sunday, July 6th, was an incredibly hot day. At three o’clock in the morning, the Prussian troops were on the move again. There wasn’t a whisper of wind. The scorching sun became hotter and hotter. There was no shade to be found. The soldiers were dying of thirst. Still, the command was “move forward,” “move forward.” That day, one hundred and five Prussian soldiers collapsed and died right where they stood.

General Daun thought that such energy as this could not be a feint. He was much nearer to Glatz than was Frederick. Monday, July 7th, the Prussian troops rested. General Daun pressed on. Tuesday night he was two days’ march ahead of Frederick. In the mean time, the Prussian king, who had made this tremendous march simply to draw the foe from Dresden, suddenly turned, and with the utmost velocity directed his troops back toward the city.

General Daun believed that such energy couldn't be a trick. He was much closer to Glatz than Frederick. On Monday, July 7th, the Prussian troops took a break. General Daun continued to advance. By Tuesday night, he was two days' march ahead of Frederick. Meanwhile, the Prussian king, who had made this huge march just to lure the enemy away from Dresden, suddenly turned around and quickly directed his troops back toward the city.

General Maguire had been left in Dresden with but about fourteen thousand men for its defense. On Saturday, July 13th, the Prussian army appeared before the city. All the night they were erecting their batteries. Early Sunday morning the cannonade began. As Daun might speedily arrive at the head of sixty thousand troops for the relief of the garrison, the bombardment was conducted with the utmost possible energy. Day and night the horrible tempest fell upon the doomed city. Adversity had soured the king’s disposition, and rendered him merciless. He had no compassion upon the innocent inhabitants. It was his aim, at whatever cost, to secure the immediate surrender of the place. He cruelly directed his terrific fire upon the thronged dwellings rather than upon the massive fortifications. Street after street blazed up in flames. It was Frederick’s relentless503 plan by “fire torture” to force the citizens to compel Maguire to the surrender. But the Austrian commander hardened his heart against the misery of the Saxon people, and held the place.

General Maguire was left in Dresden with only about fourteen thousand men to defend it. On Saturday, July 13th, the Prussian army showed up outside the city. They spent the night setting up their artillery. Early Sunday morning, the cannon fire began. Since Daun could quickly arrive with sixty thousand troops to help the garrison, the bombardment was carried out with extreme intensity. Day and night, the terrible storm of destruction rained down on the doomed city. Adversity had soured the king’s mood and made him unforgiving. He had no pity for the innocent residents. His goal was, at any cost, to force the immediate surrender of the city. He ruthlessly targeted the crowded homes instead of the strong fortifications. Street after street burst into flames. It was Frederick’s relentless plan to use “fire torture” to pressure the citizens into forcing Maguire to surrender. But the Austrian commander hardened his heart to the suffering of the Saxon people and held his ground.

General Daun was proverbially slow-footed. For thirteen days the wretched city burned and bled. In a memorial to the world, which the King of Poland, as Elector of Saxony, published on the occasion, he said,

General Daun was notoriously slow to act. For thirteen days, the unfortunate city suffered from flames and violence. In a statement to the world, which the King of Poland, as Elector of Saxony, released at that time, he said,

“Had the enemy attacked Dresden according to the rules and the customs of war, had they directed their efforts against the ramparts, the king would, without doubt, have lamented the evils which would have resulted from it to his people, but he would have lamented them without complaining. But the Prussians made war on the innocent townsmen. Their fire was wholly directed against the houses. They endeavored to destroy a town which they could not take.”

“Had the enemy attacked Dresden following the rules and customs of war, had they focused their efforts on the defenses, the king would have definitely mourned the consequences this would have had for his people, but he would have done so without complaining. Instead, the Prussians waged war on the innocent townsfolk. Their fire was entirely aimed at the buildings. They tried to destroy a town they couldn't capture.”

In truth, when General Daun approached, and Frederick saw that there was no possibility of his taking the city, he, in the wantonness of his rage, set fire to upward of a hundred houses in the suburbs which had hitherto escaped the flames. Three hundred and fifty houses were destroyed within the walls. More than that number were half destroyed, shattered by bombs, and scorched with flames. These were terrible calamities falling upon a city already exhausted by four years of the most desolating war. The King of Poland closed his appeal by saying,

In reality, when General Daun arrived and Frederick realized he couldn’t capture the city, he, filled with anger, set fire to over a hundred houses in the suburbs that had so far survived the destruction. Three hundred fifty houses were destroyed within the city. More than that were partially destroyed, damaged by bombs, and burned. These were catastrophic events impacting a city already worn out from four years of devastating war. The King of Poland ended his appeal by saying,

“The king thinks it scarcely worth while to mention his palaces and his gardens sacked and ruined, in contempt of the regard usually paid from one sovereign to another. Is there a man in all Europe who does not see in these terrible effects an implacable hatred and a destructive fury which all nations ought to concur in repressing?”149

"The king feels it's hardly worth talking about his palaces and gardens that were looted and destroyed, showing a disregard for the respect typically given between rulers. Is there anyone in all of Europe who doesn’t recognize in these dreadful consequences a relentless hatred and a destructive rage that all nations should work together to suppress?"149

Frederick, being constrained by the approach of General Daun to raise the siege of Dresden, retired to his intrenched camp at Schlettau. Leaving fifteen thousand men to guard the camp, he, on the 1st of August, before the dawn, crossed the Elbe, and was again on the rapid march toward Silesia. His army consisted of thirty thousand men, and was accompanied by two thousand heavy baggage-wagons. In five days the king marched over one hundred miles, crossing five rivers. Armies of the allies, amounting504 to one hundred and seventy-five thousand Austrians and Russians, were around him—some in front, some in his rear, some on his flanks.150

Frederick, pressed by General Daun's approach to lift the siege of Dresden, retreated to his fortified camp at Schlettau. Leaving fifteen thousand troops to secure the camp, he crossed the Elbe before dawn on August 1st and quickly resumed his march towards Silesia. His army totaled thirty thousand men and included two thousand heavy baggage-wagons. In five days, the king covered over a hundred miles, crossing five rivers. Allied forces, totaling one hundred seventy-five thousand Austrians and Russians, encircled him—some ahead, some behind, and some on his sides.504

On the 14th of August Frederick had reached Liegnitz. His foes surrounded him in such numbers that escape seemed impossible, and destruction sure. General Loudon, with thirty-five thousand allies, was scarcely a mile east of him. General Lacy, with an immense swarm of cavalry, was at the distance of but a few thousand yards on the west. General Daun, with his immense army, approaching from the southwest, had taken possession of Liegnitz. Frederick was encamped upon some heights a few miles east of the city. To human view, the position of his Prussian majesty was desperate.

On August 14th, Frederick had arrived in Liegnitz. His enemies surrounded him in such numbers that escape seemed impossible, and destruction was certain. General Loudon, with thirty-five thousand allies, was barely a mile to the east. General Lacy, with a large group of cavalry, was just a few thousand yards to the west. General Daun, with his massive army, coming from the southwest, had taken control of Liegnitz. Frederick was camped on some heights a few miles east of the city. To any observer, the situation for the Prussian king looked desperate.

“He was clinging on the head of slippery abysses, his path hardly a foot’s breadth, mere enemies and avalanches hanging round on every side; ruin likelier at no moment of his life.”

“He was clinging to the edge of treacherous cliffs, his path barely a foot wide, with enemies and avalanches looming all around; disaster more likely than at any other moment in his life.”

On the night of the 14th Frederick had stationed his lines with the greatest care to guard against surprise. At midnight, wrapped in his cloak, and seated on a drum by a watch-fire, he had just fallen asleep. An Irish officer, a deserter from the Austrians, came blustering and fuming into the camp with the announcement that General Lacy’s army was on the march to attack Frederick by surprise. Frederick sprang to his horse. His perfectly drilled troops were instantly in motion. By a rapid movement his troops were speedily placed in battle array upon the heights of the Wolfsberg. They would thus intercept the enemy’s line of march, would take him by surprise, and were in the most admirable position to encounter superior numbers. To deceive the foe, all the Prussian camp-fires were left burning. General Loudon had resorted to the same stratagem to deceive Frederick.

On the night of the 14th, Frederick had carefully arranged his troops to prevent any surprises. At midnight, wrapped in his cloak and sitting on a drum by a campfire, he had just fallen asleep. An Irish officer, a defector from the Austrians, burst into the camp, shouting that General Lacy’s army was on the move to surprise Frederick. Frederick quickly got on his horse. His well-trained troops were instantly mobilized. In no time, his forces were positioned for battle on the heights of the Wolfsberg. This would allow them to intercept the enemy's advance, spring a surprise attack, and be in an excellent position to face a larger force. To mislead the enemy, all the Prussian campfires were left burning. General Loudon had used the same tactic to trick Frederick.

To the surprise of General Loudon, there was opened upon his advance-guard of five thousand men, as it was pressing forward on its stealthy march, in the darkness ascending an eminence, the most destructive discharge of artillery and musketry. The division was hurled back with great slaughter. Gathering re-enforcements, it advanced the second and the third time with the same results. Cavalry, infantry, artillery, were brought forward,505 but all in vain. Frederick brought into action but fifteen thousand men. He utterly routed the hostile army of thirty-five thousand men, killing four thousand, and taking six thousand prisoners. He also captured eighty-two cannon, twenty-eight flags, and five thousand muskets. His own loss was eighteen hundred men. The battle commenced at three o’clock in the morning, and was over at five o’clock.

To General Loudon's surprise, as his advance guard of five thousand men moved forward in the dark, stealthily making their way up a rise, they were met with a devastating barrage of artillery and gunfire. The division was pushed back with heavy losses. Gathering reinforcements, they charged forward a second and third time, only to face the same outcome. Cavalry, infantry, and artillery were all deployed, but it was all for nothing. Frederick engaged with just fifteen thousand troops and completely routed the opposing army of thirty-five thousand, killing four thousand and capturing six thousand prisoners. He also seized eighty-two cannons, twenty-eight flags, and five thousand muskets. His own losses totaled eighteen hundred men. The battle started at three in the morning and ended by five.

BATTLE OF LIEGNITZ, AUGUST 16, 1760.

BATTLE OF LIEGNITZ, AUGUST 16, 1760.

a a. Prussian Camp, left with fires burning. b b b. Prussian Main Army. c c. Ziethen’s Division. d d. Loudon’s Camp, also left with fires burning. e e e. Loudon’s Army attacked by the Prussians. f f f. Approach of Daun. g g. Lacy’s Cavalry.

a a. Prussian Camp, still with fires burning. b b b. Prussian Main Army. c c. Ziethen’s Division. d d. Loudon’s Camp, also still with fires burning. e e e. Loudon’s Army attacked by the Prussians. f f f. Daun is approaching. g g. Lacy’s Cavalry.

Frederick remained upon the field of battle four hours gathering up the spoils. The dead were left unburied. The wounded were placed in empty meal-wagons. General Loudon fled precipitately across the Katzbach River. To deceive the Austrians in reference to his movements, Frederick wrote a false dispatch to his brother Henry, which he placed in the hands of a trusty peasant. The peasant was directed to allow himself to be taken. The plan worked to a charm. The other portions of the allied army, deceived by the dispatch, retreated as Frederick wished to have them. He soon formed a junction with his brother Henry, and being astonished himself at his almost miraculous506 escape, marched to the strong fortress of Breslau, which was still held by a small Prussian garrison, and where he had large magazines.

Frederick stayed on the battlefield for four hours collecting the spoils. The dead were left unburied, and the wounded were placed in empty meal wagons. General Loudon fled quickly across the Katzbach River. To confuse the Austrians about his movements, Frederick wrote a fake dispatch to his brother Henry and gave it to a trustworthy peasant. He instructed the peasant to let himself be captured. The plan worked perfectly. The other parts of the allied army, misled by the dispatch, retreated as Frederick intended. He soon linked up with his brother Henry and, amazed at his almost miraculous escape, marched to the strong fortress of Breslau, which was still held by a small Prussian garrison and where he had large supplies.

But, notwithstanding this wonderful victory and narrow escape, it still seemed that Frederick’s destruction was only postponed for a short time. He was in the heart of Silesia, and was surrounded by hostile armies three times more numerous than his own.

But despite this amazing victory and close call, it still looked like Frederick’s downfall was only delayed for a little while. He was deep in Silesia, surrounded by enemy armies that were three times larger than his own.

Twelve days after the battle of Liegnitz Frederick wrote as follows to his friend, the Marquis D’Argens, who was at Berlin. The letter was dated Hermannsdorf, near Breslau, 27th of August, 1760:

Twelve days after the battle of Liegnitz, Frederick wrote the following to his friend, the Marquis D’Argens, who was in Berlin. The letter was dated Hermannsdorf, near Breslau, August 27, 1760:

“Formerly, my dear marquis, the affair of the 15th would have decided the campaign. At present it is but a scratch. A great battle must determine our fate. Such we shall soon have. Then, should the event prove favorable to us, you may, with good reason, rejoice. I thank you for your sympathy. It has cost much scheming, striving, and address to bring matters to this point. Do not speak to me of dangers. The last action cost me only a coat and a horse. That is buying victory cheap.151

“Once, my dear marquis, the events of the 15th would have determined the campaign. Now it’s just a minor setback. A major battle will decide our fate. We’ll have that soon. If the outcome is in our favor, you’ll have every reason to celebrate. I appreciate your support. It took a lot of planning, effort, and skill to get us here. Don't mention the dangers to me. The last engagement only cost me a coat and a horse. That’s a pretty cheap price for victory.__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

“I never in my life was in so bad a posture as in this campaign. Miracles are still needed to overcome the difficulties which I foresee. I do my duty as well as I can. But remember, my dear marquis, that I can not command good fortune. I am obliged to leave too much to chance, as I have not the means to render my plans more certain.

“I've never faced such a tough situation as I have during this campaign. I still need miracles to get through the challenges I see ahead. I do my best to fulfill my duties. But remember, my dear marquis, I can't control luck. I have to rely too much on chance because I don't have the resources to make my plans more dependable."

“I have the labors of Hercules to perform, at an age, too, when my strength is leaving me, when my infirmities increase, and, to speak the truth, when hope, the only consolation of the unhappy, begins to desert me. You are not sufficiently acquainted with the posture of affairs to know the dangers which threaten the state. I know them, but conceal them. I keep all my fears to myself, and communicate to the public only my hopes and the trifle of good news I may now and then have. If the blow I now meditate succeeds, then, my dear marquis, will be the time to express our joy. But, till then, do not let us flatter ourselves, lest unexpected bad news deject us too much.

“I have Herculean tasks to manage, especially now when my strength is fading, my health is declining, and honestly, when hope—the only comfort for the unhappy—starts to fade away from me. You don’t fully understand the situation to grasp the dangers threatening the state. I’m aware of them, but I keep them to myself. I only share my hopes and the little bits of good news I occasionally have with the public. If the plan I’m considering works out, then, my dear marquis, that will be the time to celebrate. But until then, let’s not get our hopes up too high, or we might be brought down by unexpected bad news.”

507 “I live here the life of a literary monk. I have much to think of about my affairs. The rest of my time I give to literature, which is my consolation. I know not if I shall survive this war. Should it so happen, I am resolved to pass the rest of my days in retirement, in the bosom of philosophy and friendship.

507 “I live here like a literary monk. I have a lot to think about regarding my life. The rest of my time I dedicate to literature, which brings me comfort. I don't know if I will make it through this war. If I do, I’m determined to spend the rest of my days in peace, surrounded by philosophy and friendship.

“As soon as the roads are surer I hope you will write more frequently. I do not know where we shall have our winter quarters. Our houses at Breslau have been destroyed in the late bombardment. Our enemies envy us every thing, even the air we breathe. They must, however, leave us some place. If it be a safe one, I shall be delighted to receive you there.

“As soon as the roads are safer, I hope you’ll write more often. I don’t know where we’ll be staying for the winter. Our homes in Breslau were destroyed in the recent bombing. Our enemies envy us everything, even the air we breathe. They must, however, leave us some space. If it’s a safe one, I’d be thrilled to have you there.”

“Here is business which I must attend to. I was in a writing vein, but I believe it is better to conclude, lest I should tire you and neglect my own duties. Adieu, my dear marquis. I embrace you.

“Here’s some business I need to take care of. I was in a writing mood, but I think it’s better to wrap this up so I don’t tire you out and neglect my own responsibilities. Goodbye, my dear marquis. I hug you.”

Frederick.152

Frederick.”__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__


CHAPTER XXXII.
THE END OF THE FIFTH CAMPAIGN.

Incessant Marches and Battles.—Letter from Frederick to D’Argens.—Letter to his Brother Henry.—Berlin summoned to Surrender.—Sacking of the City.—Letter to D’Argens.—Desperate Resolves of Frederick.—The Resort of Suicide.—Remarkable Address of Frederick to his Generals.—Bloody Battle of Torgau.—Dismal Night-scene.—Familiarity of the King with the Soldiers.—Winter Quarters at Freiberg.—Singular Letter to the Countess of Camas.—Death of the Princess Amelia.—Anecdotes of the King.—His domestic Habits.—His unscrupulous Measures to obtain Men and Money.—Letter of Charlotte of Mecklenburg.

Endless Marches and Battles.—Letter from Frederick to D’Argens.—Letter to his Brother Henry.—Berlin ordered to surrender.—Looting in the city.—Letter to D’Argens.—Frederick's desperate decisions.—Thoughts of suicide.—Notable speech by Frederick to his generals.—Bloody battle of Torgau.—Gloomy night scene.—The king's familiarity with the soldiers.—Winter quarters in Freiberg.—Unusual letter to the Countess of Camas.—Death of Princess Amelia.—Anecdotes about the king.—His home life.—His ruthless tactics to gain soldiers and funds.—Letter from Charlotte of Mecklenburg.

Sieges, skirmishes, battles innumerable ensued. The Russians and the Austrians, in superior numbers and with able leaders, were unwearied in their endeavors to annihilate their formidable foe. The conflict was somewhat analogous to that which takes place between the lion at bay in the jungle and a pack of dogs. The details could scarcely be made intelligible to the reader, and would certainly prove tedious.153

Sieges, skirmishes, and countless battles followed. The Russians and Austrians, outnumbering their opponents and led by capable commanders, were relentless in their efforts to defeat their formidable enemy. The struggle was somewhat similar to a lion cornered in the jungle facing a pack of dogs. The details would be hard for the reader to follow and would definitely become tiresome.153

Frederick so concentrated his forces as, ere long, to have about fifty thousand troops with him at Breslau. Weary weeks of marchings and fightings, blood and woe, passed on. Painful508 blows were struck upon both sides, but nothing decisive was accomplished. In the midst of these harassments, perils, and toils, the king wrote to D’Argens, on the 18th of September, from Reisendorf:

Frederick focused his forces so much that soon he had about fifty thousand troops with him at Breslau. Exhausting weeks of marching and fighting, filled with blood and suffering, went by. Hard hits were taken on both sides, but nothing decisive was achieved. Amidst these struggles, dangers, and efforts, the king wrote to D’Argens on September 18th from Reisendorf:

“I will not sing jeremiades to you, nor speak of my fears or anxieties; but I can assure you that they are great. The crisis I am in changes in appearance, but nothing decisive happens. I am consumed by a slow fire; I am like a living body losing limb after limb. May Heaven assist us, for we have much need of it.

“I won't lament to you, nor will I share my fears or anxieties; but I can assure you that they are significant. The crisis I'm facing shifts in form, but nothing definitive occurs. I'm burning slowly from the inside; I’m like a living being losing limb after limb. May Heaven help us, for we need it desperately.

“You speak of my personal safety. You ought to know, as I do, that it is not necessary for me to live. But while I do live I must fight for my country, and save it if it be possible. In many little things I have had luck; I think of taking for my motto, Maximus in minimis, et minimus in maximis.154

“You talk about my personal safety. You should know, as I do, that it’s not essential for me to stay alive. But while I am alive, I have to fight for my country and save it if I can. I’ve had some luck in many small things; I’m thinking of adopting the motto, Maximus in minimis, et minimus in maximis.154

“It is impossible for you to imagine the horrible fatigues which we undergo. This campaign is worse than any of the others. I sometimes know not which way to turn. But why weary you with these details of my toils and miseries? My spirits have forsaken me. All my gayety is buried with those dear and noble ones to whom my heart was bound. The end of my life is melancholy and sad; but do not, therefore, my dear marquis, forget your old friend.”155

“It’s hard for you to imagine the awful exhaustion we’re going through. This campaign is tougher than any of the others. Sometimes, I don’t even know where to turn. But why should I burden you with the details of my struggles and sufferings? I’ve lost my spirit. All my happiness is gone with those dear and noble people I cared about. The end of my life feels gloomy and sad; but please, my dear marquis, don’t forget your old friend.”155

To his brother Henry he wrote, “I have had a bad time of it, my dear brother; our means are so eaten away; far too short for opposing the prodigious number of our enemies set against us. If we must fall, let us date our destruction from the infamous day of Maxen. My health is a little better, but I have still hémorroïdes aveugles. That were nothing, however, were it not for the disquietudes I feel. For these three days I have had so terrible a cramp in continuance that I thought it would choke me. It is now a little gone. No wonder that the chagrins and continual disquietudes I live in should undermine, and at length overturn, the most robust constitution.”

To his brother Henry he wrote, “I’ve been having a really tough time, my dear brother; our resources are almost drained and it's way too little to take on the huge number of enemies against us. If we have to fall, let’s mark our destruction from the infamous day of Maxen. My health is slightly better, but I still have hémorroïdes aveugles. That wouldn’t be a big deal, though, if it weren't for the anxiety I’m feeling. For the past three days, I’ve been dealing with such terrible cramps that I thought it would suffocate me. They’ve eased a bit now. It’s no surprise that the worries and constant distress I’m living in are wearing me down and will eventually break the strongest constitution.”

Early in October the allies planned an expedition for the capture of Berlin. The city had no defenses but weak palisades, which were garrisoned by but twelve hundred men. General Czernichef led a column of twenty thousand Russians, General509 Lacy another of fifteen thousand Austrians, and General Soltikof a third column of twenty thousand more.

Early in October, the allies organized a mission to capture Berlin. The city had minimal defenses, consisting only of weak barricades, which were manned by just twelve hundred soldiers. General Czernichef commanded a group of twenty thousand Russians, General Lacy led another group of fifteen thousand Austrians, and General Soltikof headed a third group of twenty thousand more.

On the 3d of October the vanguard of this army, three thousand strong, was seen in the distance from the steeples of Berlin. The queen and royal family fled with the archives to Magdeburg. The city was summoned to an immediate surrender, and to pay a ransom of about four million dollars to rescue it from the flames. The summons was rejected. General Tottleben, in command of the advance, erected his batteries, and at five o’clock in the afternoon commenced his bombardment with red-hot balls. In the night a re-enforcement of five thousand Prussians, under Prince Eugene of Würtemberg, who had marched forty miles that day, entered the city, guided by the blaze of the bombardment, to strengthen the garrison. Tottleben retired to await the allied troops, which were rapidly on the march. In the mean time, on the 8th, General Hülsen arrived with nine thousand Prussian troops, increasing the garrison in Berlin to fifteen thousand. Frederick was also on the march, to rescue his capital, with all the troops he could muster. But the Russians had now arrived to the number of thirty-five thousand. The defenses were so weak that they could easily take or destroy the place.

On October 3rd, the vanguard of this army, three thousand strong, was spotted from the steeples of Berlin. The queen and royal family fled with the archives to Magdeburg. The city was ordered to surrender immediately and pay a ransom of about four million dollars to save it from destruction. This demand was rejected. General Tottleben, in charge of the advance, set up his artillery and began bombarding the city with red-hot shots at five o’clock in the afternoon. During the night, a reinforcement of five thousand Prussians, led by Prince Eugene of Würtemberg, who had marched forty miles that day, entered the city, guided by the flames of the bombardment, to bolster the garrison. Tottleben pulled back to wait for the allied troops, who were rapidly approaching. In the meantime, on the 8th, General Hülsen arrived with nine thousand Prussian soldiers, boosting the garrison in Berlin to fifteen thousand. Frederick was also on his way to save his capital, bringing all the troops he could gather. However, the Russians had now arrived in numbers totaling thirty-five thousand. The defenses were so weak that they could easily take or destroy the place.

The garrison retired to avoid capture. Berlin surrendered on the morning of October 9th. For three days the enemy held the city. The semi-barbaric soldiers committed fearful outrages. The soldiers sacked the king’s palaces at Potsdam and Charlottenburg, smashing furniture, doors, windows, mirrors, statuary, cutting the pictures, and maltreating the inmates.

The military garrison withdrew to prevent being captured. Berlin fell on the morning of October 9th. The enemy occupied the city for three days. The somewhat uncivilized soldiers committed horrifying atrocities. They looted the king’s palaces in Potsdam and Charlottenburg, destroying furniture, doors, windows, mirrors, and statues, slashing paintings, and mistreating the residents.

On the 11th it was announced that Frederick, with nearly the whole Prussian army, was within five days’ march of Berlin. The allies held him in such dread, when he had any thing like an equality of numbers with them, that they fled from him at the rate of thirty miles a day. But terrible were the ravages which they inflicted on the Prussian people during this retreat.

On the 11th, it was announced that Frederick, with almost the entire Prussian army, was just five days' march from Berlin. The allies feared him so much, especially when their numbers were roughly equal, that they were fleeing at a pace of thirty miles a day. However, they caused significant destruction to the Prussian people during their retreat.

The Russians marched to Poland. The Austrians returned to Saxony. As soon as Frederick heard of their retreat, instead of continuing his march to Berlin, he also turned his columns southward. On the 27th of October he crossed the Elbe, about sixty miles above Dresden, and found himself in the vicinity of General Daun, whose army outnumbered that of Frederick two to510 one. The situation of Frederick was extremely critical. Under these circumstances, he wrote to D’Argens on the 28th:

The Russians marched into Poland. The Austrians went back to Saxony. As soon as Frederick learned about their retreat, instead of continuing his march to Berlin, he also turned his troops south. On October 27th, he crossed the Elbe, about sixty miles above Dresden, and found himself near General Daun, whose army was twice the size of Frederick's. Frederick's situation was very critical. Given these circumstances, he wrote to D’Argens on the 28th:

SACKING THE PALACE.

“You, as a follower of Epicurus, put a value upon life. As for me, I regard death from the Stoic point of view. Never shall I see the moment which will oblige me to make a disadvantageous peace. No persuasion, no eloquence, shall ever induce me to sign my own dishonor. Either I will bury myself under the ruins of my country, or, if that consolation appears too great to the Destiny which persecutes me, I shall know how to put an end to my misfortunes when it is no longer possible to bear them. I have acted, and continue to act, in pursuance of this conviction, and according to the dictates of honor, which have always directed my steps. My conduct shall continue, at all times, to be conformable to these principles.

“You, as a follower of Epicurus, value life. As for me, I view death through a Stoic lens. I will never witness the moment that forces me to accept an unfavorable peace. No argument or persuasion will ever convince me to sign my own disgrace. I will either bury myself beneath the ruins of my country, or, if that comfort seems too great for the Destiny that pursues me, I will know how to end my suffering when it becomes unbearable. I have acted, and will continue to act, based on this belief and according to the principles of honor that have always guided me. My behavior will always align with these principles.”

511 “After having sacrificed my youth to my father, and my maturer age to my country, I think that I have acquired the right to dispose of my old age as I please. I have told you, and I repeat it, my hand shall never sign a disgraceful peace. I shall continue this campaign with the resolution to dare all, and to try the most desperate things, either to succeed or to find a glorious end.

511 “After dedicating my youth to my father and my adulthood to my country, I believe I have earned the right to live out my old age as I see fit. I’ve told you this before, and I’ll say it again: my hand will never sign a shameful peace. I will keep fighting in this campaign with the resolve to take risks and attempt the most daring actions, whether to succeed or to find a glorious end.”

“Indeed, how many reasons has one at fifty years of age to despise life! The prospect which remains to me is an old age of infirmity and pain, with disappointments, regrets, ignominies, and outrages to endure. In truth, if you really consider my situation, you ought to blame my intentions less than you do. I have lost all my friends. I am unfortunate in all the ways in which it is possible to be so. I have nothing to hope for. I see my enemies treat me with derision, while their insolence prepares to trample me under foot. Alas!

“Honestly, how many reasons does someone at fifty have to hate life! The future I see is filled with old age, sickness, and pain, alongside disappointments, regrets, humiliations, and injustices to deal with. Honestly, if you really think about my situation, you should judge my intentions less harshly. I’ve lost all my friends. I’m unfortunate in every possible way. I have nothing to look forward to. I watch my enemies mock me, while their arrogance aims to crush me. Oh no!

"When we've lost everything, when we have no more hope,
"Life is a disgrace, and death is a duty." __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

“I have nothing to add to this. I will only inform your curiosity that we passed the Elbe the day before yesterday; that to-morrow we march toward Leipsic, where I hope to be on the 31st, where I hope we shall have a battle, and whence you shall receive news of us as it occurs.”

“I have nothing more to say about this. I’ll just let you know that we crossed the Elbe the day before yesterday; tomorrow we’re marching toward Leipzig, where I hope to be on the 31st, and I hope we’ll have a battle. You’ll get updates from us as they happen.”

It is not strange that Frederick, being destitute of religious principle, should have ever contemplated suicide as his last resort. On the 2d of November the king came in sight of the encampment of General Daun at Torgau, on the Elbe, some score of leagues north of Dresden. The king was at the head of forty-four thousand troops. Marshal Daun had eighty thousand, strongly intrenched upon heights west of the city, in the midst of a labyrinth of ponds, hills, ravines, and forests. We shall not attempt to enter into a detail of the battle. The following plan of the battle will give the military reader an idea of the disposal of the forces.

It’s not surprising that Frederick, lacking any religious beliefs, would consider suicide as a last resort. On November 2nd, the king saw General Daun's camp at Torgau, along the Elbe, about twenty leagues north of Dresden. The king commanded forty-four thousand troops, while Marshal Daun had eighty thousand, well entrenched on the heights west of the city, surrounded by a maze of ponds, hills, ravines, and forests. We won’t go into detail about the battle. The following battle plan will give the military reader an understanding of the troop placements.

The position of the Austrians on the heights of Siptitz, an eminence which rose two hundred feet above the bed of the river, seemed impregnable. Sixty-five thousand Austrians stood512 upon those heights, protected by earth-works and a formidable abatis. They had four hundred guns in battery, a larger number than had ever before been brought upon a battle-field. To attack then and there was an act of desperation. On the evening of the 2d the king assembled his generals and said to them,

The Austrians were positioned on the heights of Siptitz, a rise that loomed two hundred feet above the riverbed, and it seemed impossible to take. Sixty-five thousand Austrians occupied those heights, shielded by earthworks and a strong barrier of fallen trees. They had four hundred cannons ready, more than had ever been seen on a battlefield before. Attacking them there would be a desperate move. On the evening of the 2nd, the king gathered his generals and said to them,

“I have called you together, not to ask your advice, but to inform you that to-morrow I shall attack Marshal Daun. I am aware that he occupies a strong position, but it is one from which he can not escape. If I beat him, all his army must be taken prisoners or drowned in the Elbe. If we are beaten, we must all perish. This war is become tedious. You must all find it so. We will, if we can, finish it to-morrow. General Ziethen, I confide to you the right wing of the army. Your object must be, in marching straight to Torgau, to cut off the retreat of the Austrians when I shall have beaten them, and driven them from the heights of Siptitz.”

"I've gathered you here, not to seek your advice, but to let you know that tomorrow I will launch an attack on Marshal Daun. I understand he holds a strong position, but it's one he cannot escape from. If I defeat him, his entire army will either be captured or drowned in the Elbe. If we lose, we will all perish. This war has become tiresome. You must all feel the same way. We will, if possible, end it tomorrow. General Ziethen, I trust you with the right wing of the army. Your aim should be to march directly to Torgau to block the Austrians' retreat once I've defeated them and pushed them off the heights of Siptitz."

BATTLE OF TORGAU, NOVEMBER 3, 1760.

BATTLE OF TORGAU, NOVEMBER 3, 1760.

a a. Prussian Camp at Schilda. b b b. Austrian Army. c c c. Rear-guard, under Lacy. d. Prussian Detachment, under Ziethen. e. Frederick’s Division beginning the Attack. f. Hülsen’s Infantry. g. Holstein’s Cavalry.

a a. Prussian Camp at Schilda. b b b. Austrian Army. c c c. Rear-guard, led by Lacy. d. Prussian Detachment, led by Ziethen. e. Frederick’s Division starting the Attack. f. Hülsen’s Infantry. g. Holstein’s Cavalry.

At an early hour on the morning of the 3d Frederick broke up his camp south of the foe, and, by a circuitous route of fourteen513 miles, came down upon the Austrians from the north. General Ziethen marched in almost a straight line for Torgau, to cut off the retreat. It was two o’clock in the afternoon when Frederick, emerging from the forest, ordered his men to charge. The assault was as impetuous and reckless as mortal men could possibly make. Instantly four hundred pieces of artillery opened fire upon them.

At an early hour on the morning of the 3rd, Frederick packed up his camp south of the enemy and took a winding route of fourteen513 miles to approach the Austrians from the north. General Ziethen marched almost directly toward Torgau to cut off their escape. It was two o’clock in the afternoon when Frederick, coming out of the forest, commanded his troops to charge. The attack was as fierce and reckless as humans could make it. Immediately, four hundred cannons fired on them.

“Archenholtz describes it as a thing surpassable only by doomsday; clangorous rage of noise risen to the infinite; the boughs of the trees raining down upon you with horrid crash; the forest, with its echoes, bellowing far and near, and reverberating in universal death-peal, comparable to the trump of doom.”157

“Archenholtz describes it as something that can only be outdone by doomsday; a deafening roar of noise reaching unimaginable levels; the branches of the trees crashing down on you with terrifying force; the forest, with its echoes, roaring both close and far, resonating in a universal sound of death, comparable to the trumpet of judgment.”157

Frederick exclaimed, in astonishment, “What an infernal fire! Did you ever hear such a cannonade before? I never did.”

Frederick exclaimed, in shock, “What a terrible fire! Have you ever heard such cannon fire before? I never have.”

The first assault was made by six thousand grenadiers upon the extreme western wing of the Austrian army. The terrible conflict lasted nearly an hour. The Prussians were driven back, leaving nine out of ten of the assailing force dead or wounded behind them. The Austrians pursued, and encountered slaughter equal to that which they had inflicted.

The first attack was launched by six thousand grenadiers against the far western side of the Austrian army. The intense battle lasted almost an hour. The Prussians were pushed back, leaving nine out of ten of their attacking force dead or injured. The Austrians followed, facing casualties similar to those they had caused.

New columns were formed. Soon after three another charge was ordered. It was sanguinary and unsuccessful as the first. Frederick himself was wounded by a nearly spent case-shot which struck him on the breast. The blow was severe and painful. Had the ball retained a little more impetus it would have passed through his body. It is said that the ball struck him to the earth, and that for some time he was void of consciousness. Upon reviving, his first words to his adjutant, a son of Old Dessauer, who was sorrowfully bending over him, were, “What are you doing here? Go and stop the runaways.”

New columns were formed. Soon after three, another charge was ordered. It was bloody and failed just like the first. Frederick himself was wounded by a nearly spent case-shot that hit him in the chest. The blow was severe and painful. If the ball had retained a bit more force, it would have gone through his body. It's said that the impact knocked him to the ground, and for a while, he was unconscious. When he came to, his first words to his adjutant, a son of Old Dessauer, who was sadly leaning over him, were, “What are you doing here? Go and stop the runaways.”

It was now half past four o’clock. The sun of the short November day was rapidly sinking. Hasty preparations were made for another charge, aided by a body of Prussian cavalry which had just reached the ground. The gathering twilight was darkening hill and valley as the third assault was made. It was somewhat successful. By this time the two armies were quite intermingled. Marshal Daun was severely wounded, and was taken into Torgau to have his wounds dressed. The hour514 of six had now arrived. It was a damp, cloudy, dark night. The combatants were guided mainly by the flash of the muskets and the guns. “The night was so dark,” says Archenholtz, “that you could not see your hand before you.” Still for two hours the battle raged.

It was now 4:30 PM. The sun of the short November day was quickly setting. Quick preparations were made for another charge, with the help of a group of Prussian cavalry that had just arrived. The growing twilight was darkening the hills and valleys as the third assault took place. It was somewhat successful. By this point, the two armies were completely mixed together. Marshal Daun was seriously injured and was taken into Torgau to have his wounds treated. The hour514 of 6 PM had arrived. It was a damp, cloudy, dark night. The combatants were mainly guided by the flashes of the muskets and cannons. “The night was so dark,” says Archenholtz, “that you couldn’t see your hand in front of you.” Still, the battle continued for two more hours.

Marshal Daun, as he retired with a shattered leg to have his wound dressed, resigned the command to General Buccow. In a few moments his arm was shot off, and General O’Donnell took the command. He ordered a retreat. The Austrian army, at nine o’clock in the evening, in much disorder, were crossing the Elbe by three bridges which had been thrown across the stream in preparation for a possible disaster. The king, disappointed in a victory which did not promise great results, passed the night conversing with the soldiers at their watch-fires. He had ever indulged them in addressing him with much familiarity, calling him Fritz, which was a diminutive of Frederick, and expressive of affection. “I suppose, Fritz,” said one of the soldiers, “after this, you will give us good winter quarters.”

Marshal Daun, after retiring with a badly injured leg to have his wound treated, handed over command to General Buccow. Moments later, his arm was shot off, and General O’Donnell took over command. He ordered a retreat. The Austrian army, at nine o’clock in the evening, was crossing the Elbe in a disorganized manner over three bridges that had been built in anticipation of a potential disaster. The king, disappointed with a victory that didn’t seem to offer great results, spent the night talking with the soldiers by their campfires. He had always allowed them to address him with a sense of familiarity, calling him Fritz, a nickname for Frederick that showed affection. “I guess, Fritz,” said one of the soldiers, “after this, you’ll give us good winter quarters.”

“By all the devils,” exclaimed the king, “I shall not till we have taken Dresden. Then I will provide for you to your heart’s content.”

“By all the devils,” the king exclaimed, “I won’t rest until we’ve taken Dresden. Then I’ll make sure you get everything you want.”

The king was not a man of refined sensibilities. Not unfrequently his letters contained coarse and indelicate expressions. He was very profane. Voltaire says of him, “He has a pleasing tone of voice even in swearing, which is as familiar to him as to a grenadier.”

The king wasn't someone with refined sensibilities. His letters often included crude and inappropriate language. He was quite profane. Voltaire remarked about him, "He has a nice tone of voice even when swearing, which is as natural to him as it is to a grenadier."

The battle of Torgau is to be numbered among the most bloody of the Seven Years’ War. The Austrians lost twelve thousand in killed and wounded, eight thousand prisoners, forty-five cannon, and twenty-nine flags. The Prussian loss was also very heavy. There were fourteen thousand killed or wounded, and four thousand taken prisoners.

The battle of Torgau is considered one of the bloodiest of the Seven Years’ War. The Austrians lost twelve thousand in killed and wounded, eight thousand prisoners, forty-five cannons, and twenty-nine flags. The Prussian loss was also significant, with fourteen thousand killed or wounded, and four thousand taken prisoner.

The Austrians retired to Dresden for winter quarters. Frederick was left in the field which he had won. Gradually he withdrew to his old camping-ground at Freiberg, where his troops had been cantoned the previous winter. On the 10th of November, 1760, he wrote from Meissen to the Marquis D’Argens at Berlin:

The Austrians pulled back to Dresden for the winter. Frederick remained in the territory he had conquered. Slowly, he moved back to his previous campsite at Freiberg, where his troops had been stationed the winter before. On November 10, 1760, he wrote from Meissen to the Marquis D’Argens in Berlin:

“I drove the enemy to the gates of Dresden. They occupy515 their camp of last year. All my skill is not enough to dislodge them. We have saved our reputation by the day of Torgau. But do not imagine that our enemies are so disheartened as to desire peace. I fear that the French will preserve through the winter the advantages they have gained during the campaign.

“I drove the enemy to the gates of Dresden. They’re still occupying their camp from last year. All my skill isn't enough to force them out. We saved our reputation on the day of Torgau. But don't think our enemies are so demoralized that they want peace. I'm worried that the French will hold onto the advantages they've gained during the campaign throughout the winter.

“In a word, I see all black, as if I were at the bottom of a tomb. Have some compassion on the situation I am in. Conceive that I disguise nothing from you, and yet that I do not detail to you all my embarrassments, my apprehensions, and troubles. Adieu, my dear marquis. Write to me sometimes. Do not forget a poor devil who curses ten times a day his fatal existence, and could wish he already were in those silent countries from which nobody returns with news.”

“In a word, I see everything as dark, like I'm at the bottom of a tomb. Please have some compassion for my situation. Understand that I’m not hiding anything from you, yet I'm not telling you all my struggles, worries, and problems. Goodbye, my dear marquis. Write to me occasionally. Don’t forget about a poor soul who curses his miserable life ten times a day and wishes he were already in those silent places from which no one returns with news.”

The next day, the 11th, Frederick wrote from Neustadt to the Countess of Camas, who at Berlin was the grand mistress of the queen’s household. The trifling tone of this letter, which was penned in the midst of a struggle so awful, is quite characteristic of the writer:

The next day, the 11th, Frederick wrote from Neustadt to the Countess of Camas, who was the head of the queen's household in Berlin. The light-hearted tone of this letter, written in the middle of such a terrible struggle, is very typical of the writer:

“I am punctual in answering, and eager to satisfy you. You shall have a breakfast-set, my good mamma; six coffee-cups, very pretty, well diapered, and tricked out with all the little embellishments which increase their value. On account of some pieces which they are adding to the set, you will have to wait a few days. But I flatter myself this delay will contribute to your satisfaction, and produce for you a toy that will give you pleasure, and make you remember your old adorer.

“I always respond on time and am excited to please you. You will receive a breakfast set, my dear mom; six lovely coffee cups, nicely decorated, and adorned with all the little details that add to their value. Since they are adding some pieces to the set, you’ll have to wait a few days. But I believe this wait will enhance your satisfaction and result in a gift that will bring you joy and remind you of your old admirer.”

“It is curious how old people’s habits agree. For four years past I have given up suppers as incompatible with the trade I am obliged to follow. On marching days my dinner consists of a cup of chocolate.

“It’s interesting how old people's habits are similar. For the past four years, I’ve stopped having supper because it doesn’t fit with the job I have to do. On marching days, my dinner is just a cup of hot chocolate.”

“We have been running about like fools, quite inflated with our victory, to see if we could not chase the Austrians out of Dresden. But they made mockery of us from the tops of their mountains. So I have withdrawn, like a naughty little boy, to hide myself, out of spite, in one of the most cursed villages of Saxony. We must now drive these gentlemen of the imperial army out of Freiberg in order to get something to eat and a place to sleep in.158

“We’ve been running around like idiots, feeling all high and mighty from our victory, trying to chase the Austrians out of Dresden. But they laughed at us from the tops of their mountains. So I’ve retreated, like a naughty kid, to sulk in one of the most miserable villages in Saxony. We now need to push these imperial army guys out of Freiberg to find something to eat and a place to sleep in.158

516 “This is, I swear to you, such a dog’s life [chienne de vie] as no one but Don Quixote ever led before me. All this tumbling, toiling, bother, and confusion have made me such an old fellow that you would scarcely know me again. The hair on the right side of my head has grown quite gray. My teeth break and fall out. My face is as full of wrinkles as the furbelow of a petticoat. My back is bent like a fiddle-bow, and my spirit is sad and downcast, like a monk of La Trappe.

516 “I swear, this is such a miserable life that no one besides Don Quixote has ever lived before me. All this falling, struggling, hassle, and chaos have aged me so much that you would hardly recognize me. The hair on the right side of my head has turned completely gray. My teeth break and fall out. My face is wrinkled like an old petticoat. My back is hunched like a fiddle bow, and my spirit is heavy and downcast, like a Trappist monk.”

“I forewarn you of this, that, if we should meet again in flesh and bone, you might not feel yourself too violently shocked by my appearance. There remains nothing to me unaltered but my heart, which, as long as I breathe, will retain sentiments of esteem and tender friendship for my good mamma. Adieu.”159

“I want to warn you that if we meet again in person, you might not be too surprised by how I look. The only thing that hasn’t changed for me is my heart, which, as long as I’m alive, will keep feelings of respect and affection for my dear mom. Goodbye.”159

On Saturday, the 25th of October of this year, George II., King of England, died. The poor old gentleman, who had been endowed with but a very ordinary share of intelligence, was seventy-seven years of age. On Monday he had presided at a review of troops in Hyde Park. On Thursday he stood upon the portico of his rural palace in Kensington to see his Guards march by for foreign service. Saturday morning he rose at an early hour, took his cup of chocolate as usual, and, opening his windows, said the morning was so fine he would take a walk in his garden. It was then eight o’clock. His valet withdrew with the cup and saucer. He had hardly shut the door when he heard a groan and a fall. Hurrying back, he found the king upon the floor. Faintly the death-stricken monarch exclaimed, “Call Amelia,” and instantly died.

On Saturday, October 25th of this year, George II, King of England, passed away. The old man, who had only a very average level of intelligence, was seventy-seven years old. On Monday, he had overseen a troop review in Hyde Park. On Thursday, he stood on the porch of his country palace in Kensington to watch his Guards march off for foreign duty. On Saturday morning, he woke up early, had his usual cup of chocolate, and opening his windows, remarked that the morning was so nice that he would take a walk in his garden. It was then eight o’clock. His valet took the cup and saucer and left the room. He had barely closed the door when he heard a groan and a fall. Rushing back, he found the king on the floor. Weakly, the dying monarch said, “Call Amelia,” and immediately passed away.

“Poor deaf Amelia (Frederick’s old love, now grown old and deaf) listened wildly for some faint sound from those lips now mute forever. George II. was no more. His grandson, George III, was now king.”160

“Poor deaf Amelia (Frederick’s old love, now older and deaf) listened desperately for any faint sound from those lips that were now silent forever. George II was gone. His grandson, George III, was now the king.”160

George II. had always hated his nephew Frederick. His only object in sustaining the war was to protect his native electorate of Hanover and to abase France.161 The new sovereign, in his first speech to Parliament, said:

George II had always disliked his nephew Frederick. His main goal in continuing the war was to protect his home electorate of Hanover and to bring down France.161 The new sovereign, in his first speech to Parliament, said:

“I rely upon your zeal and hearty concurrence to support the King of Prussia and the rest of my allies, and to make ample517 provision for carrying on the war, as the only means of bringing our enemies to equitable terms of accommodation.”

“I count on your enthusiasm and strong agreement to support the King of Prussia and my other allies, and to ensure there is enough517 resources to continue the war, as the only way to bring our enemies to fair terms of settlement.”

It seems that in England there were two parties in reference to the war. Sir Horace Walpole, in a letter under date of December 5th, 1760, wrote to Sir Horace Mann, at Florence:

It seems that in England there were two sides regarding the war. Sir Horace Walpole, in a letter dated December 5th, 1760, wrote to Sir Horace Mann in Florence:

“I shall send you a curious pamphlet, the only work I almost ever knew that changed the opinions of many. It is called ‘Considerations on the present German War.’ The confirmation of the King of Prussia’s victory near Torgau does not prevent the disciples of the pamphlet from thinking that the best thing which could happen for us would be to have that monarch’s head shot off.”162

"I'll send you an interesting pamphlet, the only piece I know of that really changed a lot of people's minds. It's called 'Considerations on the Present German War.' The news about the King of Prussia’s victory near Torgau doesn't stop the followers of the pamphlet from believing that the best outcome for us would be if that monarch got his head blown off."162

Notwithstanding the opposition, Parliament voted to continue the subsidy to Frederick of about three million four hundred thousand dollars (£670,000). This sum was equal to twice or three times that amount at the present day.

Despite the opposition, Parliament voted to keep the subsidy for Frederick at about three million four hundred thousand dollars (£670,000). This amount was equivalent to two or three times that today.

Frederick, having cantoned his troops at Freiberg and its vicinity, on the 27th of November wrote again to the Countess of Camas:

Frederick, having stationed his troops at Freiberg and the surrounding area, wrote again to the Countess of Camas on November 27th:

“We have settled our winter quarters. I have yet a little round to take, and afterward I shall seek for tranquillity at Leipsic, if it be to be found there. But, indeed, for me tranquillity is only a metaphysical word which has no reality.”

"We've set up camp for the winter. I still have a short journey to complete, and after that, I'll be looking for peace in Leipzig, if it's even there. But honestly, for me, peace is just a philosophical term that doesn't really exist."

Frederick was so busy cantoning his troops that he did not take possession of his head-quarters in Leipsic until the 8th of December. He occupied the Apel House, No. 16 Neumarkt Street, the same which he had occupied before the battle of Rossbach. The same mistress kept the house as before. Upon seeing the king, the good woman exclaimed, in astonishment, “How lean your majesty has grown!”

Frederick was so busy organizing his troops that he didn't take over his headquarters in Leipzig until December 8th. He stayed at the Apel House, No. 16 Neumarkt Street, the same place he had used before the battle of Rossbach. The same lady managed the house as before. Upon seeing the king, the kind woman exclaimed in surprise, “How skinny you’ve become, Your Majesty!”

“Lean indeed I am,” the king replied. “And what wonder, with three women163 hanging on the throat of me all this while!”

“Yeah, I really am,” the king replied. “And what do you expect, with three women163 hanging around my neck all this time!”

Thus ended the fifth campaign of the Seven Years’ War. Though the king had thus far averted the destruction which seemed every hour to be impending, his strength and resources were so rapidly failing that it seemed impossible that he could518 much longer continue the struggle. Under these despairing circumstances, the king, with an indomitable spirit, engaged vigorously in gathering his strength for a renewal of the fight in the spring.

Thus ended the fifth campaign of the Seven Years’ War. Although the king had managed to fend off destruction that seemed to loom every hour, his strength and resources were quickly fading, making it hard to believe he could continue the fight for much longer. In these desperate circumstances, the king, with unwavering determination, actively worked to gather his strength for a renewed effort in the spring.

“In the midst of these preparations for a new campaign against a veteran army of two hundred and eighty thousand enemies, Frederick yet found sufficient leisure for peaceable occupations. He consecrated some hours every day to reading, to music, and to the conversation of men of letters.”164

“In the middle of getting ready for a new campaign against a seasoned army of 280,000 enemies, Frederick still found enough time for peaceful activities. He dedicated a few hours each day to reading, music, and chatting with intellectuals.”164

D’Argens spent the winter with the king at Leipsic. He gives the following incident: “One day I entered the king’s apartment, and found him sitting on the floor with a platter of fried meat, from which he was feeding his dogs. He had a little rod, with which he kept order among them, and shoved the best bits to his favorites.”

D’Argens spent the winter with the king in Leipzig. He recounts the following incident: “One day I walked into the king’s room and found him sitting on the floor, feeding his dogs from a platter of fried meat. He had a small stick to maintain order among them and pushed the best pieces to his favorites.”

The marquis looked for a moment upon the singular spectacle with astonishment. Then raising his hands, he exclaimed,

The marquis gazed for a moment at the unusual sight in shock. Then, raising his hands, he said,

“The five great powers of Europe, who have sworn alliance, and conspired to ruin the Marquis of Brandenburg, how might they puzzle their heads to guess what he is now doing! Scheming some dangerous plan, think they, for the next campaign, collecting funds, studying about magazines for man and horse; or is he deep in negotiations to divide his enemies, and get new allies for himself? Not a bit of it. He is sitting peaceably in his room feeding his dogs.”165

“The five major powers of Europe, who have formed an alliance and plotted against the Marquis of Brandenburg, must be scratching their heads trying to figure out what he’s up to now! They probably think he’s cooking up some dangerous scheme for the next campaign, raising funds, looking into supplies for both men and horses; or maybe he’s deep in negotiations to split his enemies and gain new allies for himself? Not even close. He’s just sitting quietly in his room feeding his dogs.”165

The king was quite unscrupulous in the measures to which he resorted to recruit his army. Deserters, prisoners, peasants, were alike forced into the ranks. Even boys but thirteen and fourteen years of age were seized by the press-gangs. The countries swept by the armies were so devastated and laid waste that it was almost an impossibility to obtain provisions for the troops. It will be remembered that upon the capture of Berlin several of the king’s palaces had been sacked by the Russian and Austrian troops. The king, being in great want of money, looked around for some opportunity to retaliate. There was within his cantonments a very splendidly furnished palace, called the Hubertsburg Schloss, belonging to the King of Poland. On the 21st of January, 1761, Frederick summoned to his audience-room519 General Saldern. This officer cherished a very high sense of honor. The bravest of the brave on the field of battle, he recoiled from the idea of performing the exploits of a burglar. The following conversation took place between the king and his scrupulous general. In very slow, deliberate tones, the king said:

The king was completely ruthless in the lengths he went to recruit his army. Deserters, prisoners, and peasants were all forced into service. Even boys as young as thirteen and fourteen were taken by the press gangs. The territories ravaged by the armies were so destroyed that it was nearly impossible to find food for the troops. It's worth noting that when Berlin was captured, several of the king’s palaces were looted by the Russian and Austrian troops. Desperate for money, the king looked for a way to retaliate. Within his camp was a beautifully furnished palace called Hubertsburg Schloss, which belonged to the King of Poland. On January 21, 1761, Frederick called General Saldern to his audience room519. This officer had a strong sense of honor. Bold and courageous in battle, he shied away from the idea of acting like a burglar. The following conversation took place between the king and his principled general. Speaking slowly and deliberately, the king said:

“General Saldern, to-morrow morning I wish you to go with a detachment of infantry and cavalry to Hubertsburg. Take possession of the palace, and pack up all the furniture. The money they bring I mean to bestow on our field hospitals. I will not forget you in disposing of it.”

“General Saldern, tomorrow morning I want you to go with a group of infantry and cavalry to Hubertsburg. Take over the palace and pack up all the furniture. The money they bring will be donated to our field hospitals. I won’t forget you when figuring out how to use it.”

“Forgive me, your majesty,” General Saldern replied, “but this is contrary to my honor and my oath.”

“Sorry, your majesty,” General Saldern replied, “but this goes against my honor and my oath.”

The king, in still very calm and measured words, rejoined, “You would be right if I did not intend this desperate method for a good object. Listen to me. Great lords don’t feel it in their scalp when their subjects are torn by the hair. One has to grip their own locks as the only way to give them pain.”

The king, speaking very calmly and deliberately, replied, “You would be right if I didn’t have a good reason for this drastic approach. Listen closely. Powerful nobles don’t feel it when their people are pulled by their hair. You have to grab your own hair to understand their pain.”

“Order me, your majesty,” said General Saldern, “to attack the enemy and his batteries, and I will cheerfully, on the instant, obey; but I can not, I dare not, act against honor, oath, and duty. For this commission your majesty will easily find another person in my stead.”

“Command me, Your Majesty,” said General Saldern, “to strike at the enemy and his defenses, and I will gladly do so immediately; but I cannot, I won’t, act against my honor, my oath, and my duty. For this position, Your Majesty will easily find someone else in my place.”

The king turned upon his heel, and, with angry voice and gesture, said, “Saldern, you refuse to become rich.”

The king spun around and, with an angry tone and gesture, said, “Saldern, you refuse to get rich.”

In a pet Frederick left the room. The heroic general, who had flatly refused to obey a positive command, found it necessary to resign his commission. The next day another officer plundered the castle. Seventy-five thousand dollars of the proceeds of the sale were appropriated to the field hospitals. The remainder, which proved to be a large sum, was the reward of the plundering general.

In a fit of anger, Frederick left the room. The brave general, who had outright refused to follow a direct order, felt he had no choice but to resign his commission. The next day, another officer looted the castle. Seventy-five thousand dollars from the sale went to the field hospitals. The rest, which turned out to be a substantial amount, was given to the looting general.

“The case was much canvassed in the army. It was the topic in every tent among officers and men. And among us army chaplains, too, the question of conflicting duties arose. Your king ordering one thing, and your conscience another, what ought a man to do? And what ought an army chaplain to preach or advise?

“The case was widely discussed in the army. It was the topic in every tent among officers and soldiers. And among us army chaplains, too, the issue of conflicting duties came up. Your king orders one thing, and your conscience says another, what should a person do? And what should an army chaplain preach or advise?

“Our general conclusion was that neither the king nor General520 Saldern could well be called in the wrong. General Saldern, in obeying the inner voice, did certainly right. But the king, also, in his place, might judge such a measure expedient. Perhaps General Saldern himself would have done so had he been King of Prussia.”166

“Our overall conclusion was that neither the king nor General520 Saldern could be considered at fault. General Saldern, by following his instincts, did the right thing. But the king, in his position, might see such a decision as necessary. Maybe General Saldern would have thought the same if he had been King of Prussia.”166

The Duke of Mecklenburg had a sister, Charlotte, a bright and beautiful young girl of seventeen. Her heart was so moved by the scenes of misery which she witnessed every where around her that she ventured to write a very earnest appeal to Frederick for peace.

The Duke of Mecklenburg had a sister, Charlotte, a bright and beautiful young woman of seventeen. Her heart was so touched by the scenes of suffering she saw all around her that she took the bold step of writing a heartfelt plea to Frederick for peace.

“It was but a few years ago,” she wrote, “that this territory wore the most pleasing appearance. The country was cultivated. The peasants looked cheerful. The towns abounded with riches and festivity. What an alteration at present from such a charming scene! I am not expert at description, neither can my fancy add any horrors to the picture. But sure even conquerors themselves would weep at the hideous prospect now before me.

“Just a few years ago,” she wrote, “this area was so beautiful. The land was cultivated. The farmers seemed happy. The towns were full of wealth and celebration. What a drastic change from such a lovely scene! I’m not great at describing things, and I can’t add any nightmares to the picture. But even conquerors would weep at the terrible sight before me now."

“The whole country, my dear country, lies one frightful waste, presenting only objects to excite terror, pity, and despair. The business of the husbandman and the shepherd are quite discontinued. The husbandman and shepherd are become soldiers themselves, and help to ravage the soil they formerly occupied. The towns are inhabited by old men, women, and children. Perhaps here and there a warrior, rendered unfit for service by wounds and want of limbs, is left at his door. His little children hang round him, ask a history of every wound, and grow themselves soldiers before they find strength for the field.

“The whole country, my dear nation, is now a terrifying wasteland, filled only with things that inspire fear, pity, and despair. Farming and shepherding have completely stopped. The farmers and shepherds have become soldiers themselves, helping to destroy the land they once took care of. The towns are now filled with elderly men, women, and children. Occasionally, there might be a warrior who can’t fight anymore due to injuries or missing limbs left at home. His young children gather around him, asking about every wound, and they turn into soldiers themselves before they even have the strength to fight.”

“But this were nothing did we not feel the alternate insolence of either army as it happens to advance or retreat. It is impossible to express the confusion which even those create who call themselves our friends. Even those from whom we might expect redress oppress us with new calamities. From you, therefore, it is that we expect relief. To you even women and children may complain, for your humanity stoops to the most humble petition, and your power is capable of repressing the greatest injustice. I am, sire, etc.,

“This would be bearable if we didn’t have to deal with the arrogance of either army as they advance or retreat. It’s hard to put into words the chaos even those who claim to be our friends create. Even those we might rely on for help bring us new troubles. From you, we hope to find relief. Even women and children can turn to you, because your compassion embraces even the smallest request, and your strength can tackle the greatest injustices. I am, sire, etc.,

Charlotte Sophia, of Mecklenburg-Strelitz.”

Charlotte Sophia, of Mecklenburg-Strelitz.”

521 This letter was extensively circulated in England. It was greatly admired. It so happened that the court was then looking around for a bride for their young king. The result was that in the course of a few months Charlotte became Queen of England, as the wife of George III.

521 This letter was widely shared in England. It received a lot of praise. At that time, the court was searching for a bride for their young king. As a result, within a few months, Charlotte became Queen of England as the wife of George III.

It is not known that Frederick paid any attention to this appeal. Impoverished as his realms were, large sums of money were absolutely necessary for the conduct of a new campaign. The king levied a contribution upon Leipsic of nearly a million of dollars. The leading citizens said that in their extreme destitution it was impossible to raise that sum. The king threatened to burn down the city over their heads. The combustibles were gathered. The soldiers stood with the torches in their hands to kindle the conflagration. But then the king, apparently reflecting that from the smouldering ashes of the city he could glean no gold, ordered the city to be saved, but arrested a hundred of the chief merchants and threw them into prison.

It’s unclear if Frederick paid any attention to this request. Even though his territories were struggling financially, he needed large amounts of money to fund a new campaign. The king demanded nearly a million dollars from Leipsic. The prominent citizens argued that, given their dire situation, it was impossible to gather that amount. The king threatened to set the city on fire. The flammable materials were assembled, and soldiers stood ready with torches to ignite the blaze. However, the king seemed to realize that there would be no gold to gain from the charred ruins of the city, so he ordered it to be spared but arrested a hundred of the leading merchants and imprisoned them.

These men, of the highest distinction, were treated with every indignity to extort the money from them. They were incarcerated in gloomy dungeons, with straw only for their beds, and with bread and water only for their food. But even this severity was unavailing. Seventeen were then selected from their number, and were informed that they were to be forced into the ranks as common soldiers. Their muskets and their knapsacks were given to them, and they were ordered to Magdeburg to be drilled. By this application of torture the money was obtained. And now, while the storms of winter were sweeping the frozen fields, both parties were gathering their strength anew for the struggle of the sixth campaign.

These distinguished men were subjected to every humiliation to force them to pay money. They were locked up in dark dungeons, with only straw for their beds and just bread and water for their meals. Even this harsh treatment didn’t work. Seventeen of them were chosen and told they would be made to serve as ordinary soldiers. Their rifles and backpacks were handed to them, and they were ordered to Magdeburg for training. Through this kind of torture, the money was extracted. Now, as winter storms swept across the frozen fields, both sides were gathering their strength once again for the sixth campaign.


522

522

CHAPTER XXXIII.
THE END OF THE SEVEN YEARS' WAR.

Commencement of the Sixth Campaign.—The Fortified Camp at Bunzelwitz.—Skillful Engineering.—Unintermitted Toil of the Soldiers.—Retreat of the Russians.—Loss of Schweidnitz.—Peculiar Treatment of General Zastrow.—Close of the Sixth Campaign.—The King at Breslau.—Desponding Letter to D’Argens.—Death of Elizabeth of Russia.—Accession of Peter III.—His Marriage with the Daughter of a Prussian General.—Takes the Baptismal Name of Catharine.—Assassination of Peter III.—Curious Proclamation by the Empress.—Commencement of the Seventh Campaign.—Alliance of Russia with Prussia.—Withdrawal from the Alliance.—Termination of the War.

Start of the Sixth Campaign.—The Fortified Camp at Bunzelwitz.—Expert Engineering.—Non-stop Work by the Soldiers.—Russian Retreat.—Loss of Schweidnitz.—Unusual Treatment of General Zastrow.—Conclusion of the Sixth Campaign.—The King in Breslau.—Disheartening Letter to D’Argens.—Death of Elizabeth of Russia.—Rise of Peter III.—His Marriage to the Daughter of a Prussian General.—He Takes the Baptismal Name of Catherine.—Assassination of Peter III.—Interesting Proclamation by the Empress.—Beginning of the Seventh Campaign.—Alliance between Russia and Prussia.—Withdrawal from the Alliance.—Conclusion of the War.

The fifth campaign of the Seven Years’ War closed with the year 1760. By exertions such as mortal man perhaps never made before, Frederick succeeded, during the winter, in raising an army of ninety-six thousand men. In the mean time the allies had concentrated in Bohemia, to crush him, seventy-two thousand Austrians and sixty thousand Russians. The capture of four fortresses would drive Frederick hopelessly out of Silesia. Early in May, Frederick, leaving his brother Henry with about forty thousand men to protect Saxony, set out with fifty thousand for the relief of Neisse, which was then besieged. General Goltz, probably the most able of the Prussian commanders, was detached to the fortified camp at Glogau.

The fifth campaign of the Seven Years’ War wrapped up in 1760. Through efforts that no mortal man had likely ever attempted before, Frederick managed, during the winter, to assemble an army of ninety-six thousand men. Meanwhile, the allies had gathered in Bohemia to defeat him, with seventy-two thousand Austrians and sixty thousand Russians. The capture of four fortresses would force Frederick completely out of Silesia. Early in May, Frederick, leaving his brother Henry with about forty thousand men to defend Saxony, set off with fifty thousand to relieve Neisse, which was under siege. General Goltz, probably the most skilled of the Prussian commanders, was sent to the fortified camp at Glogau.

“But, alas! poor Goltz, just when ready to march, was taken with sudden, violent fever, the fruit probably of overwork; and in that sad flame blazed away his valiant existence in three or four days; gone forever, June 30, 1761, to the regret of Frederick and of many.”167

“But, unfortunately, poor Goltz, just when ready to march, suddenly fell ill with a severe fever, likely a result of overwork; and in that tragic blaze, his brave life was consumed in three or four days; gone forever, June 30, 1761, leaving Frederick and many others in grief.”167

The Russians were entering Silesia from the northeast by the way of Poland. Frederick, by one of his incredibly rapid marches, for a time prevented the junction of the two hostile armies. After innumerable marchings and manœuvrings, during which Frederick displayed military ability which commanded the admiration even of his foes, the Prussian king found himself, on the 16th of August, at Nicolstadt, in the very heart of Silesia, at the head of fifty-seven thousand men. In front of him, obstructing his advance, there were sixty thousand Russians. In523 his rear, cutting off his retreat, there were seventy-two thousand Austrians. From a commanding eminence Frederick could watch the movements of both of these hostile bands. Both Russians and Austrians stood in such awe of the prowess of their redoubtable antagonist that they moved cautiously, like hounds surrounding the lion at bay.

The Russians were coming into Silesia from the northeast through Poland. Frederick, with one of his incredibly fast marches, temporarily prevented the two enemy armies from joining forces. After countless marches and maneuvers, during which Frederick showcased military skills that earned respect even from his enemies, the Prussian king found himself on August 16 at Nicolstadt, right in the heart of Silesia, leading fifty-seven thousand men. In front of him, blocking his advance, were sixty thousand Russians. Behind him, cutting off his escape, were seventy-two thousand Austrians. From a high vantage point, Frederick could observe the movements of both enemy forces. Both the Russians and Austrians were so intimidated by the strength of their formidable opponent that they moved cautiously, like hounds surrounding a lion at bay.

At three o’clock in the morning of the 20th of August, and after the march of a few hours, the little army of Frederick commenced constructing a fortified camp near the poor little village of Bunzelwitz, about half way between the Silesian fortresses of Schweidnitz and Striegau. Spades were provided. Fifty thousand men were instantly employed, according to a well-matured plan, in digging and trenching. The extraordinary energies of Frederick seemed to nerve every arm. Here there was speedily reared the camp of Bunzelwitz, which has attained world-wide renown.

At three in the morning on August 20th, after marching for a few hours, Frederick's small army began setting up a fortified camp near the tiny village of Bunzelwitz, roughly halfway between the Silesian fortresses of Schweidnitz and Striegau. Shovels were handed out, and fifty thousand men immediately got to work digging and trenching, following a well-thought-out plan. Frederick’s remarkable energy seemed to inspire every soldier. Soon, the camp of Bunzelwitz was established, gaining worldwide fame.

An ordinary eye would not have seen in the position any peculiar military strength. It was an undulating plain about eight miles long and broad, without any abrupt eminences. A small river bordered it on the west, beyond which rose green hills. On the east was the almost impregnable fortress of Schweidnitz, with its abundant stores. Farm-houses were scattered about, with occasional groves and morasses. There were also sundry villages in the distance.

An ordinary eye wouldn’t have noticed any unusual military power in the area. It was a rolling plain about eight miles long and wide, with no sharp elevations. A small river bordered it on the west, beyond which green hills rose. To the east was the nearly impenetrable fortress of Schweidnitz, stocked with plenty of supplies. Farmhouses were scattered throughout, alongside some groves and marshes. There were also a few villages visible in the distance.

Frederick himself was chief engineer. The army was divided into two forces of twenty-five thousand each. Carlyle gives a graphic description of this enterprise.

Frederick was the chief engineer himself. The army was split into two groups of twenty-five thousand each. Carlyle offers a vivid description of this operation.

“And twenty-five thousand spades and picks are at work, under such a field engineer as there is not in the world when he takes to that employment. At all hours, night and day, twenty-five thousand of them: half the army asleep, other half digging, wheeling, shoveling; plying their utmost, and constant as Time himself: these, in three days, will do a great deal of spadework. Batteries, redoubts, big and little; spare not for digging. Here is ground for cavalry, too. Post them here, there, to bivouac in readiness, should our batteries be unfortunate. Long trenches are there, and also short; batteries commanding every ingate, and under them are mines.”

"And twenty-five thousand shovels and picks are busy, under the guidance of an engineer unlike any other when he takes on this job. At all hours, day and night, twenty-five thousand of them: half the army sleeping, the other half digging, wheeling, shoveling; giving it their all, as steady as Time itself: in just three days, they'll accomplish a lot of digging. Batteries, strongholds, big and small; don’t hold back on the excavation. There’s also space for cavalry. Position them here and there to camp out and be ready, in case our batteries face trouble. There are long trenches and short ones; batteries overseeing every approach, and below them are mines."

Many of the trenches were sixteen feet broad by sixteen feet524 deep. Under each battery there were two mines. In case of capture, the mines and the victors could be blown high into the air. Knowing that the batteries were all mined, the Russian and Austrian soldiers would be slow to make charges in which victory would be certain death. The small villages around were all strongly fortified.

Many of the trenches were sixteen feet wide and sixteen feet deep. Beneath each battery, there were two mines. If capture occurred, the mines and the victors could be blown sky high. Knowing that all the batteries were mined, the Russian and Austrian soldiers would hesitate to make charges that would lead to certain death. The small villages nearby were all heavily fortified.

“Würben, in the centre, is like a citadel looking down upon Striegau Water. Heavy cannon, plenty of them, we have brought from Schweidnitz. We have four hundred and eighty cannon in all, and one hundred and eighty-two mines. Würben, our citadel and centre, is about five miles from Schweidnitz. Before our lines are palisades and chevaux-de-frise. Woods we have in abundance in our circuit, and axes for carpentries of that kind. There are four intrenched knolls; twenty-four big batteries capable of playing beautifully, all like pieces in a concert.”168

“Würben, in the center, stands like a fortress overlooking Striegau Water. We’ve brought a lot of heavy cannons from Schweidnitz—four hundred and eighty in total, along with one hundred and eighty-two mines. Würben, our fortress and main stronghold, is about five miles away from Schweidnitz. In front of our defenses, we have wooden barricades and chevaux-de-frise. We have plenty of woods around us, along with axes for that kind of construction. There are four fortified hills and twenty-four large batteries that can fire beautifully, all in perfect harmony like instruments in a concert.”168

Frederick had been three days and nights at work upon his fortress before the allies ventured forward to look into it. It was then a Gibraltar. Still for eight days more the spade was not intermitted. Cogniazo, an Austrian, writes: “It is a masterpiece of art, in which the principles of tactics are combined with those of field fortifications as never before.”

Frederick had been working on his fortress for three days and nights before the allies dared to check it out. At that point, it was like a Gibraltar. Yet, for another eight days, the digging didn’t stop. Cogniazo, an Austrian, writes: “It is a masterpiece of art, where the principles of tactics are integrated with those of field fortifications like never before.”

The Austrians took position upon the south, at the distance of about six miles. The Russians were at the same distance on the west, with their head-quarters at Hohenfriedberg.

The Austrians positioned themselves to the south, about six miles away. The Russians were the same distance to the west, with their headquarters at Hohenfriedberg.

It would seem that Frederick’s troops must have had iron sinews, and that they needed as little repose as did their master. Those not at work with the spade were under arms to repel an assault. Two or three times there was an alarm, when the whole fifty thousand, in an hour, were in battle-array. Frederick was fully aware of the crisis he had encountered. To be beaten there was irretrievable ruin. No one in the army performed more exhausting labor than the king himself. He seemed to be omnipresent, by day and by night. Near the chief battery, in a clump of trees, there was a small tent, and a bundle of straw in the corner. Here the king occasionally sought a few moments of repose. But his nervous excitement rendered him so restless, that most of the time he was strolling about among the guard parties, and warming himself by their fires.

It seems that Frederick’s troops must have had incredible stamina, needing just as little rest as their leader. Those not working with shovels were ready to fight off an attack. A couple of times, there were alarms that had all fifty thousand soldiers ready for battle in under an hour. Frederick fully understood the critical situation he was in. Being defeated would mean total disaster. No one in the army worked harder than the king himself. He seemed to be everywhere, day and night. Close to the main battery, in a cluster of trees, there was a small tent with a bundle of straw in the corner. Here, the king occasionally took a few moments to rest. However, his nervous energy kept him so restless that most of the time he was walking around among the guard units, staying warm by their fires.

525

525

THE KING’S BIVOUAC.

“One evening,” writes Carlyle, “among the orders is heard this item: ‘And remember a lock of straw, will you, that I may not have to sleep upon the ground, as last night!’ Many anecdotes are current to this day about his pleasant, homely ways, and affabilities with the sentry people, and the rugged hospitalities they would show him at their watch-fires. ‘Good evening, children.’ ‘The same to thee, Fritz.’ ‘What is that you are cooking?’—and would try a spoonful of it, in such company; while the rough fellows would forbid smoking. ‘Don’t you know he dislikes it?’ ‘No! smoke away,’ the king would insist.”

“One evening,” writes Carlyle, “among the orders, someone mentions: ‘And remember to get a lock of straw for me, so I don’t have to sleep on the ground like last night!’ Many stories are still told today about his friendly, down-to-earth nature, and how he connected with the sentries. They would show him their warm hospitality around their campfires. ‘Good evening, kids.’ ‘Same to you, Fritz.’ ‘What are you cooking?’—and he would even taste a spoonful of it while in their company; the rough guys would tell him not to smoke. ‘Don’t you know he hates it?’ ‘No! Go ahead and smoke,’ the king would insist.”

General Loudon was in command of the Austrians, and General Butturlin of the Russians, who were arrayed against Frederick. They could not agree upon a plan of attack. Neither commander was willing to expose his troops to the brunt of a battle in which the carnage would necessarily be dreadful. Thus the weeks wore away. Frederick could not be safely attacked, and winter was approaching.

General Loudon was in charge of the Austrians, and General Butturlin was leading the Russians, who were positioned against Frederick. They couldn't come to an agreement on a strategy for attack. Neither commander was willing to risk their troops in a battle that would inevitably be brutal. As a result, the weeks passed. Frederick couldn't be attacked without risk, and winter was closing in.

At ten o’clock at night on the 9th of September, the Russian camp went up in flame. The next morning not a Russian was526 to be seen. The whole army had disappeared over the hills far away to the north. Frederick immediately dispatched eight thousand men under General Platen to attack the flank of the retreating foe, and destroy his baggage-wagons. The feat was brilliantly accomplished. On the 15th of September, before the dawn of the morning, General Platen fell upon the long train, took nearly two thousand prisoners, seven cannon, and destroyed five thousand heavily-laden wagons.

At ten o’clock at night on September 9th, the Russian camp went up in flames. The next morning, not a single Russian was to be seen. The entire army had vanished over the hills far to the north. Frederick immediately sent eight thousand men under General Platen to attack the flank of the retreating enemy and destroy their supply wagons. This mission was executed brilliantly. On the morning of September 15th, just before dawn, General Platen launched an attack on the long convoy, capturing nearly two thousand prisoners, seven cannons, and destroying five thousand heavily-loaded wagons.

Frederick remained at Bunzelwitz a fortnight after the retreat of the Russians. In the mean time the French and English were fighting each other with varying success upon the banks of the Rhine. It is not necessary to enter into the details of their struggles. Frederick’s magazines at Schweidnitz were getting low. On the 26th of September he broke up his camp at Bunzelwitz, and in a three days’ march to the southeast reached Neisse. The Austrians did not venture to annoy him. Frederick had scarcely reached Neisse when he learned, to his amazement and horror, that General Loudon, with a panther-like spring, had captured Schweidnitz, with its garrison and all its supplies. It was a terrible blow to the king. The Austrians could now winter in Silesia. The anguish of Frederick must have been great. But he gave no utterance to his gloomy forebodings.

Frederick stayed at Bunzelwitz for two weeks after the Russians retreated. Meanwhile, the French and English were battling each other with mixed results along the banks of the Rhine. There's no need to go into detail about their conflicts. Frederick's supplies at Schweidnitz were running low. On September 26th, he broke camp at Bunzelwitz and made a three-day march southeast to Neisse. The Austrians didn’t dare to disturb him. Frederick had only just arrived in Neisse when he learned, to his shock and horror, that General Loudon, with a swift attack, had taken Schweidnitz along with its garrison and all its supplies. This was a devastating blow for the king. The Austrians could now spend the winter in Silesia. Frederick must have felt a lot of distress, but he kept his dark thoughts to himself.

“The king,” writes Küster, “fell ill of the gout, saw almost nobody, never came out. It was whispered that his inflexible heart was at last breaking. And for certain there never was in his camp and over his dominions such a gloom as in this October, 1761, till at length he appeared on horseback again, with a cheerful face; and every body thought to himself, ‘Ha! the world will still roll on, then.’”

“The king,” writes Küster, “got sick with gout, barely saw anyone, and never came outside. People whispered that his unyielding heart was finally breaking. For sure, there had never been such a gloom in his camp and across his realm as in this October of 1761, until he finally appeared on horseback again, with a cheerful face; and everyone thought to themselves, ‘Ah! The world will keep going, then.’”

Frederick’s treatment of the unfortunate General Zastrow, who was in command at Schweidnitz, was quite peculiar. Very generously he wrote to him:

Frederick's treatment of the unfortunate General Zastrow, who was in charge at Schweidnitz, was rather unusual. He generously wrote to him:

My dear General Von Zastrow,—The misfortune which has befallen me is very grievous. But what consoles me in it is to see by your letter that you have behaved like a brave officer, and that neither you nor your garrison have brought disgrace or reproach upon yourselves. I am your well-affectioned king.

Dear General Von Zastrow,—I find myself in an unfortunate and distressing situation. However, what gives me comfort is knowing from your letter that you have acted like a brave officer, and that you and your garrison have not brought shame or dishonor upon yourselves. I remain your loyal king.

Frederick.

Frederick.

527 “P.S.—You may, in this occurrence, say what Francis I., after the battle of Pavia, wrote to his mother: ‘All is lost except honor.’ As I do not yet completely understand the affair, I forbear to judge of it, for it is altogether extraordinary.”

527 “P.S.—You can say, in this situation, what Francis I. wrote to his mother after the battle of Pavia: ‘Everything is lost except honor.’ Since I don’t fully understand what happened yet, I’ll wait to form a judgment, as it’s truly unusual.”

Notwithstanding this letter, Frederick refused to give General Zastrow any further employment, but left him to neglect, obscurity, and poverty. Zastrow wrote to the king imploring a court-martial. He received the following laconic reply:

Notwithstanding this letter, Frederick refused to give General Zastrow any further work, leaving him to neglect, obscurity, and poverty. Zastrow wrote to the king begging for a court-martial. He received the following brief response:

“It is of no use. I impute nothing of crime to you. But after such a mishap it would be dangerous to trust you with any post or command.”

“It’s pointless. I don’t blame you for any crime. But after such an incident, it would be risky to put you in any position of authority or responsibility.”

The freezing gales of winter soon came, when neither army could keep the open field. Frederick established his winter quarters at Breslau. General Loudon, with his Austrians, was about thirty miles southwest of him at Kunzendorf. Thus ended the sixth campaign.

The freezing winter winds soon arrived, making it impossible for either army to stay in the open field. Frederick set up his winter quarters in Breslau. General Loudon, with his Austrian troops, was about thirty miles southwest of him at Kunzendorf. This marked the end of the sixth campaign.

The winter was long, cold, and dreary. Fierce storms swept the fields, piling up the snow in enormous drifts. But for this cruel war, the Prussian, Russian, and Austrian peasants, who had been dragged into the armies to slaughter each other, might have been in their humble but pleasant homes, by the bright fireside, in the enjoyment of all comforts.

The winter was long, cold, and dreary. Intense storms blew across the fields, heaping snow into massive drifts. If it weren't for this brutal war, the Prussian, Russian, and Austrian peasants, who had been forced into the armies to fight each other, could have been in their simple but cozy homes, by the warm fireside, enjoying all the comforts.

“The snow lies ell-deep,” writes Archenholtz; “snow-tempests, sleet, frost. The soldiers bread is a block of ice, impracticable to human teeth till you thaw it.”

“The snow is a foot deep,” writes Archenholtz; “snowstorms, sleet, frost. The soldiers’ bread is a block of ice, impossible for human teeth to bite until you thaw it.”

It was on the 9th of December that the king, after incredible exposure to hunger, and cold, and night-marchings, established himself for the winter in the shattered apartments of his ruined palace at Breslau. He tried to assume a cheerful aspect in public, but spent most of his hours alone, brooding over the ruin which now seemed inevitable. He withdrew from all society, scarcely spoke to any body except upon business. One day General Lentulus dined with him, and not one word was spoken at the table. On the 18th of January, 1762, the king wrote in the following desponding tones to D’Argens:

It was on December 9th that the king, after facing extreme hunger, cold, and long nights of marching, settled in for the winter in the damaged rooms of his ruined palace in Breslau. He tried to appear cheerful in public, but spent most of his time alone, ruminating over the destruction that now seemed unavoidable. He isolated himself from everyone, barely speaking to anyone except for business matters. One day, General Lentulus had dinner with him, and not a single word was exchanged at the table. On January 18, 1762, the king wrote in the following downcast tone to D’Argens:

“The school of patience I am at is hard, long-continued, cruel, nay, barbarous. I have not been able to escape my lot. All that human foresight could suggest has been employed, and528 nothing has succeeded. If Fortune continues to pursue me, doubtless I shall sink. It is only she that can extricate me from the situation I am in. I escape out of it by looking at the universe on the great scale, like an observer from some distant planet. All then seems to me so infinitely small; and I could almost pity my enemies for giving themselves such trouble about so very little.

“The school of patience I'm in is tough, drawn out, ruthless, even brutal. I haven't been able to break free from my situation. Everything humanly possible has been tried, and nothing has worked. If luck keeps chasing me, I’ll definitely fall. It’s only luck that can pull me out of the mess I'm in. I find a way to cope by viewing the universe from a broader perspective, like someone watching from a faraway planet. Everything then appears so incredibly insignificant; I could almost feel sorry for my enemies for worrying about something so minor.”

“What would become of us without philosophy, without this reasonable contempt of things frivolous, transient, and fugitive, about which the greedy and ambitious make such a pother, fancying them to be solid! This is to become wise by stripes, you will tell me. Well, if one do become wise, what matters it how? I read a great deal. I devour my books, and that brings me useful alleviation. But for my books, I think hypochondria would have had me in Bedlam before now. In fine, dear marquis, we live in troublous times and in desperate situations. I have all the properties of a stage hero—always in danger, always on the point of perishing. One must hope that the conclusion will come, and if the end of the piece be lucky, we will forget the rest.”169

“What would happen to us without philosophy, without this reasonable disdain for things that are trivial, fleeting, and temporary, which the greedy and ambitious make such a fuss over, thinking they are substantial! You’ll tell me that this is learning wisdom the hard way. Well, if one does gain wisdom, does it really matter how? I read a lot. I consume my books, and that brings me some relief. Without my books, I think depression would have driven me mad by now. In short, dear marquis, we live in chaotic times and in dire situations. I have all the traits of a tragic hero—always in danger, always on the verge of disaster. One must hope that there will be a resolution, and if the ending turns out well, we’ll forget all the rest.”169

“The darkest hour is often nearest the dawn.” The next day after Frederick had written the above letter he received news of the death of his most inveterate enemy, Elizabeth, the Empress of Russia. As we have mentioned, she was intensely exasperated against him in consequence of some sarcasms in which he had indulged in reference to her private life. Elizabeth was the daughter of Peter the Great, and had inherited many of her father’s imperial traits of character. She was a very formidable foe.

“The darkest hour is often closest to the dawn.” The day after Frederick wrote the above letter, he received news of the death of his most relentless enemy, Elizabeth, the Empress of Russia. As we mentioned, she was extremely angry with him due to some sarcastic comments he had made about her personal life. Elizabeth was the daughter of Peter the Great and had inherited many of her father's imperial characteristics. She was a very formidable opponent.

“Russia may be counted as the bigger half of all he had to strive with; the bigger, or at least the far uglier, more ruinous, and incendiary; and, if this were at once taken away, think what a daybreak when the night was at the blackest.”170

“Russia can be seen as the larger part of everything he had to deal with; the larger, or at least the much uglier, more destructive, and inflammatory; and if this were suddenly removed, imagine what a dawn it would be when the night was at its darkest.”170

The nephew of Elizabeth, and her successor, Peter III., was a very warm admirer of Frederick. One of his first acts was to send to the Prussian king the assurance of his esteem and friendship. Peter immediately released all the Prussian prisoners in his dominions, entered into an armistice with Frederick, which529 was soon followed by a treaty of alliance. The two sovereigns commenced a very friendly correspondence. Frederick returned all the Russian prisoners, well clothed and fed, to their homes. The change was almost as sudden and striking as the transformations in the kaleidoscope. On the 23d Peter issued a decree that there was peace with Prussia, that he had surrendered to his Prussian majesty all the territorial conquests thus far made, and had recalled the Russian armies.

The nephew of Elizabeth and her successor, Peter III, was a strong admirer of Frederick. One of his first actions was to assure the Prussian king of his respect and friendship. Peter quickly released all the Prussian prisoners in his territory and entered into a ceasefire with Frederick, which529 was soon followed by a treaty of alliance. The two leaders began a very friendly correspondence. Frederick returned all the Russian prisoners, well-dressed and well-fed, to their homes. The change was almost as sudden and striking as the transformations in a kaleidoscope. On the 23rd, Peter issued a decree declaring peace with Prussia, stating that he had surrendered all territorial gains made so far to his Prussian majesty and had recalled the Russian armies.

Peter III. had been left an orphan, and titular Duke of Schleswig-Holstein, when eleven years of age. His mother was a daughter of Peter the Great. His aunt, the Czarina Elizabeth, who had determined not to marry, adopted the child, and pronounced him to be her heir to the throne. Being at that time on friendly terms with Frederick, the Empress Elizabeth had consulted him in reference to a wife for the future czar. It will be remembered that the king effected a marriage between Peter and Sophia, the beautiful daughter of a Prussian general, Prince of Anhalt-Zerbst, and at that time commandant of Stettin. His wife was sister to the heir-apparent of Sweden. Carlyle, speaking of this couple, says:

Peter III was left an orphan and the nominal Duke of Schleswig-Holstein at the age of eleven. His mother was a daughter of Peter the Great. His aunt, Empress Elizabeth, who had decided not to marry, adopted him and declared him her heir to the throne. At that time, she was on good terms with Frederick and consulted him about a wife for the future czar. It’s worth noting that the king arranged a marriage between Peter and Sophia, the beautiful daughter of a Prussian general, the Prince of Anhalt-Zerbst, who was then the commandant of Stettin. His wife was the sister of the heir-apparent of Sweden. Carlyle, discussing this couple, says:

“They have a daughter, Sophie-Frederike, now near fifteen, and very forward for her age; comely to look upon, wise to listen to. ‘Is not she the suitable one?’ thinks Frederick in regard to this matter. ‘Her kindred is of the oldest—old as Albert the Bear. She has been frugally brought up, Spartan-like, though as a princess by birth. Let her cease skipping ropes on the ramparts yonder with her young Stettin playmates, and prepare for being a czarina of the Russias,’ thinks he. And communicates his mind to the czarina, who answers, ‘Excellent! How did I never think of that myself!’”

“They have a daughter, Sophie-Frederike, who is almost fifteen and quite mature for her age; she's nice to look at and wise to listen to. ‘Isn’t she the right choice?’ Frederick thinks about this. ‘Her family goes way back—dating back to Albert the Bear. She has been raised modestly, like a Spartan, even though she’s a princess by birth. It's time she stops playing jump rope on the ramparts over there with her young friends from Stettin and gets ready to be a czarina of Russia,’ he considers. He shares his thoughts with the czarina, who responds, ‘That's brilliant! How did I never think of that myself!’”

This was in January, 1744. The young lady, with her mother, by express invitation, and with this object in view, visited the Russian court. Sophia embraced the Greek religion, received in baptism the new name of Catharine, and on the 1st of September, 1745, was married to her second cousin Peter. “And with invocation of the Russian heaven and Russian earth they were declared to be one flesh, though at last they turned out to be two fleshes, as my reader well knows.”171

This was in January 1744. The young woman, along with her mother, visited the Russian court at the invitation, with this purpose in mind. Sophia converted to the Greek Orthodox faith, was baptized with the name Catharine, and on September 1, 1745, she married her second cousin, Peter. “And with the blessings of the Russian sky and land, they were declared one flesh, although they eventually turned out to be two fleshes, as you well know.”171

530

530

THE EMPRESS CATHARINE.

About a year before this, on the 17th of July, 1744, Frederick’s sister Ulrique had been married to Adolf Frederick, the heir-apparent to the throne of Sweden. Eighteen years of this weary world’s history, with its wars and its woes, had since passed away. On the 5th of April, 1751, the old king of Sweden died. Thus Adolf became king, and Frederick’s sister Ulrique Queen of Sweden. And now, on the 5th of January, 1762, the Empress of Russia died, and Peter III., with his wife Catharine, ascended the throne of that majestic empire.

About a year before this, on July 17, 1744, Frederick’s sister Ulrique married Adolf Frederick, the heir to the Swedish throne. Eighteen years of this tiring world's history, filled with wars and troubles, have since gone by. On April 5, 1751, the old king of Sweden passed away. As a result, Adolf became king, and Frederick’s sister Ulrique became Queen of Sweden. Now, on January 5, 1762, the Empress of Russia has died, and Peter III, along with his wife Catharine, has taken the throne of that grand empire.

The withdrawal of Russia from the alliance against Frederick, though hailed by him with great joy, still left him, with wasted armies and exhausted finances, to struggle single-handed against Austria and France united, each of which kingdoms was far more powerful than Prussia. The winter passed rapidly away without any marked events, each party preparing for the opening of the campaign in the ensuing spring. On the 8th of June, 1762, Frederick wrote to D’Argens:

The withdrawal of Russia from the alliance against Frederick, which he celebrated with joy, still left him with depleted armies and drained finances, having to fight alone against Austria and France, both of which were much stronger than Prussia. Winter quickly passed without any significant events, with each side getting ready for the start of the campaign the following spring. On June 8, 1762, Frederick wrote to D’Argens:

“In fine, my dear marquis, the job ahead of me is hard and difficult, and nobody can say positively how it will all go. Pray for us; and don’t forget a poor devil who kicks about strangely in his harness, who leads the life of one damned.”

“In short, my dear marquis, the task in front of me is tough and complicated, and no one can say for sure how it will all turn out. Please pray for us; and don’t forget a poor soul who struggles oddly in his duties, living a life that feels cursed.”

Peter III. was a drunken, brutal, half-crazed debauchee. Catharine was a beautiful, graceful, intellectual, and dissolute woman. They hated each other. They did not even pretend to be faithful to each other. Catharine formed a successful conspiracy, dethroned her husband, and was proclaimed by the army sole empress. After a series of the wildest scenes of intrigue, corruption, and crime, the imbecile Peter III., who had fled to the remote palace of Ropscha, was murdered, being first compelled to drink of poison, and then, while writhing in pain, he was strangled with a napkin. Whether Catharine were a party to this531 assassination is a question which can now probably never be decided. It is certain that she must have rejoiced over the event, and that she richly rewarded the murderers.

Peter III was a drunken, brutal, half-crazed party animal. Catherine was a beautiful, graceful, intelligent, and reckless woman. They hated each other. They didn’t even pretend to be loyal to one another. Catherine pulled off a successful conspiracy, overthrew her husband, and was declared the sole empress by the army. After wild scenes of intrigue, corruption, and crime, the foolish Peter III, who had fled to the distant palace of Ropscha, was killed—first forced to drink poison, and then, while in agony, he was strangled with a napkin. Whether Catherine was involved in this assassination is a question that may never be answered. It’s clear she must have celebrated the outcome and that she generously rewarded the murderers.

ASSASSINATION OF PETER III.

In the following curious proclamation, the Empress Catharine II. announced to her subjects the death of her husband:

In the following unusual announcement, Empress Catharine II. informed her subjects about the death of her husband:

“The seventh day after our accession to the throne of all the Russias we received information that the late emperor, Peter III., was attacked with a violent colic. That we might not be wanting in Christian duty, or disobedient to the divine command by which we are enjoined to preserve the life of our neighbor, we immediately ordered that the said Peter should be furnished with every thing that might be judged necessary to restore his health by the aids of medicine. But, to our great regret and affliction, we were yesterday evening apprized that, by permission of the Almighty, the late emperor departed this life.”

“On the seventh day after we took the throne of all of Russia, we received news that the former emperor, Peter III, was suffering from a severe case of colic. To fulfill our Christian duty and obey the divine command to protect the life of our neighbor, we promptly ordered that everything necessary be provided to restore his health with medical assistance. However, to our deep sorrow, we were informed last night that, by the will of the Almighty, the former emperor passed away.”

The seventh campaign of the Seven Years’ War commenced on the 1st of July, 1762. Peter III. had sent an army of twenty thousand men to the support of Frederick. Aided by these troops, united with his own army, Frederick had emerged from532 his winter quarters, and was just about to attack the Austrian army, which was intrenched upon the heights of Burkersdorf, a little south of Schweidnitz, which fortress the Austrians then held. The evening before the contemplated attack the Russian General Czernichef entered the tent of Frederick with the following appalling tidings:

The seventh campaign of the Seven Years’ War started on July 1, 1762. Peter III had sent an army of twenty thousand men to support Frederick. With these troops joining his own army, Frederick had come out of his winter quarters and was about to attack the Austrian army, which was fortified on the heights of Burkersdorf, just south of Schweidnitz, a fortress that the Austrians were holding at the time. The evening before the planned attack, Russian General Czernichef entered Frederick's tent with some shocking news:532

“There has been a revolution in St. Petersburg. The Czar Peter III., your majesty’s devoted friend, has been deposed, and probably assassinated. The Czarina Catharine, influenced by the enemies of your majesty, and unwilling to become embroiled in a conflict with Austria and France, has ordered me to return instantly homeward with the twenty thousand troops under my command.”

“There has been a revolution in St. Petersburg. Czar Peter III, your majesty’s loyal friend, has been overthrown and likely killed. Czarina Catherine, swayed by your majesty’s enemies and not wanting to get caught up in a conflict with Austria and France, has ordered me to head back home immediately with the twenty thousand troops under my command.”

For a moment the king was quite stunned by the blow. The withdrawal of these troops would expose him to be speedily overwhelmed by the Austrians. By earnest entreaty, Frederick persuaded Czernichef to remain with him three days longer. “I will require of you no service whatever. The Austrians know nothing of this change. They will think that you are still my ally. Your presence simply will thus aid me greatly in the battle.”

For a moment, the king was completely taken aback by the blow. Pulling back these troops would leave him quickly overrun by the Austrians. With sincere pleading, Frederick convinced Czernichef to stay with him for three more days. “I won’t ask anything of you. The Austrians are unaware of this change. They’ll believe you are still my ally. Your presence will therefore be a huge help in the battle.”

General Czernichef, though at the risk of his head from the displeasure of Catharine, generously consented so far to disobey the orders of his empress. The next day, July 2, 1762, Frederick, with his remaining troops, attacked the foe, under General Daun, at Burkersdorf. From four o’clock in the morning until five in the afternoon the antagonistic hosts hurled themselves against each other. Frederick was the victor. “On fall of night, Daun, every body having had his orders, and been making his preparations for six hours past, ebbed totally away, in perfect order, bag and baggage; well away to southward, and left Frederick quit of him.”172

General Czernichef, despite the risk of angering Catharine, bravely decided to disregard his empress's orders. The next day, July 2, 1762, Frederick, with his remaining troops, launched an attack against the enemy, led by General Daun, at Burkersdorf. From 4 a.m. until 5 p.m., the two forces clashed fiercely. Frederick emerged victorious. "As night fell, Daun, having given his orders and made his preparations for six hours, retreated completely and in perfect order, taking all his belongings with him, heading south, and left Frederick free of him."172

Early the next morning, Czernichef, greatly admiring the exploit Frederick had performed, commenced his march home. Just before this there was a change in the British ministry, and the new cabinet clamored for peace. England entered into a treaty with France, and retired from the conflict. Frederick, vehemently upbraiding the English with treachery—the same kind533 of treachery of which he had repeatedly been guilty—marched upon Schweidnitz. After a vigorous siege of two months he captured the place.

Early the next morning, Czernichef, who greatly admired the feat Frederick had accomplished, started his march home. Just before this, there was a change in the British government, and the new cabinet demanded peace. England signed a treaty with France and withdrew from the conflict. Frederick, angrily accusing the English of betrayal—the same kind of betrayal he had often committed—advanced on Schweidnitz. After a strong siege that lasted two months, he took the city.

Nearly all of Silesia was again in the hands of Frederick. He seems to have paid no regard to the ordinary principles of honor in the accomplishment of his plans. Indeed, he seems to have had no delicate perceptions of right and wrong, no instinctive appreciation of what was honorable or dishonorable in human conduct. He coined adulterated money, which he compelled the people to take, but which he refused to receive in taxes. In his Military Instructions, drawn up by his own hand, he writes:

Nearly all of Silesia was once again under Frederick's control. He didn't seem to care about the usual standards of honor while carrying out his plans. In fact, he appeared to lack any keen sense of right and wrong, and he didn't instinctively recognize what was honorable or dishonorable in people's actions. He minted counterfeit money, which he forced people to accept, but he wouldn't accept it for taxes. In his Military Instructions, written by himself, he states:

“When you find it very necessary, yet very difficult, to gain any intelligence of the enemy, there is another expedient, though a cruel one. You take a rich burgher, possessed of rich lands, a wife, and children. You oblige him to go to the enemy’s camp, as if to complain of hard treatment, and to take along with him, as his servant, a spy who speaks the language of the country; assuring him at the same time that, in case he does not bring the spy back with him, after having remained a sufficient time in the enemy’s camp, you will set fire to his house, and massacre his wife and children. I was forced to have recourse to this cruel expedient. It answered my purpose.”173

“When it's absolutely necessary, yet really difficult, to gather any information about the enemy, there's another method, though it's harsh. You take a wealthy local man, who has rich land, a wife, and kids. You force him to go to the enemy’s camp under the pretense of complaining about mistreatment, and you make sure he takes along a spy who speaks the local language, posing as his servant; you promise him that if he doesn't bring the spy back after spending enough time in the enemy camp, you'll burn down his house and kill his wife and kids. I had to resort to this cruel method. It got the job done.”173

A man’s moral nature must be indeed obtuse who could thus recommend the compulsion of a peaceable citizen to act the part of a traitor to his own country, under the alternative of having his house fired and his wife and children massacred.

A man's moral character must be really dull if he could suggest forcing a peaceful citizen to betray his own country, with the threat of having his home set on fire and his wife and children killed.

Winter was now approaching. The Austrians in Saxony made a desperate attack upon Prince Henry, and were routed with much loss. The shattered Austrian army retired to Bohemia for winter quarters. Under the circumstances, it was a victory of immense importance to Frederick. Upon receiving the glad tidings, he wrote to Henry:

Winter was now coming. The Austrians in Saxony launched a desperate attack on Prince Henry but were defeated with heavy losses. The damaged Austrian army fell back to Bohemia for winter quarters. Given the situation, it was a victory of great significance for Frederick. When he heard the good news, he wrote to Henry:

“Your letter, my dear brother, has made me twenty years younger. Yesterday I was sixty, to-day hardly eighteen. I bless Heaven for preserving your health, and that things have passed so happily. It is a service so important rendered by you to the state that I can not enough express my gratitude, and will wait to do it in person.”

“Your letter, my dear brother, has made me feel like I’m twenty years younger. Yesterday I was sixty; today I feel hardly eighteen. I thank Heaven for keeping you healthy and for everything going so well. The service you’ve done for the state is so important that I can’t express my gratitude enough, and I’ll wait to say it in person.”

534 On the 24th of November the belligerents entered into an armistice until the 1st of March. All were exhausted. It was manifest that peace would soon be declared. Commissioners to arrange the terms of peace met at the castle of Hubertsburg, near Dresden. On the 15th of February, 1763, peace was concluded. Frederick retained Silesia. That was the result of the war.

534 On November 24th, the warring parties agreed to a ceasefire until March 1st. Everyone was worn out. It was clear that peace would be announced soon. Representatives to negotiate the terms of peace gathered at the Hubertsburg castle, near Dresden. On February 15, 1763, peace was finalized. Frederick kept Silesia. That was the outcome of the war.

According to Frederick’s computation, he had succeeded in wresting this province from Maria Theresa at an expense of eight hundred and fifty-three thousand lives, actual fighters, who had perished upon the field of battle. Of these, one hundred and eighty thousand were Prussians. Of the hundreds of thousands of men, women, and children who, in consequence of the war, had perished of exposure, famine, and pestilence, no note is taken. The population of Prussia had diminished, during the seven years, five hundred thousand.

According to Frederick's calculations, he had managed to take this region from Maria Theresa at the cost of eight hundred fifty-three thousand lives, including actual soldiers who died on the battlefield. Out of these, one hundred eighty thousand were Prussians. There's no mention of the hundreds of thousands of men, women, and children who, as a result of the war, died from exposure, starvation, and disease. Over the seven years, the population of Prussia decreased by five hundred thousand.

The day in which the treaty was signed Frederick wrote to the Marquis D’Argens as follows: “The best thing I have now to tell you of, my dear marquis, is the peace. And it is right that the good citizens and the public should rejoice at it. For me, poor old man that I am, I return to a town where I know nothing but the walls, where I find no longer any of my friends, where great and laborious duties await me, and where I shall soon lay my old bones in an asylum which can neither be troubled by war, by calamities, nor by the wickedness of men.”

The day the treaty was signed, Frederick wrote to the Marquis D’Argens saying: “The best news I have for you, my dear marquis, is about the peace. It's only right that the good citizens and the public celebrate it. As for me, a poor old man, I’m going back to a town where I only know the walls, where I no longer find any of my friends, where big and demanding responsibilities await me, and where I’ll soon rest my old bones in a place free from war, disasters, and the malice of people.”

Archenholtz, who was an eye-witness of the miseries which he describes, gives the following account of the state of Germany at the close of the conflict:

Archenholtz, who witnessed the suffering he describes, provides the following account of the condition of Germany at the end of the conflict:

“Whole provinces had been laid waste. Even in those which had not been thus destroyed, internal commerce and industry were almost at an end. A great part of Pomerania and Brandenburg was changed into a desert. There were provinces where hardly any men were to be found, and where the women were therefore obliged to guide the plow. In others women were as much wanting as men. The most fertile plains of Germany, on the banks of the Oder and the Wesel, presented only the arid and sterile appearance of a desert. An officer has stated that he had passed through seven villages without meeting a single person excepting a curate.”174

“Entire provinces had been devastated. Even in those that weren’t destroyed, trade and industry had nearly ground to a halt. Much of Pomerania and Brandenburg had turned into wasteland. There were provinces where hardly any men were left, so women had to take over plowing. In other areas, women were just as scarce as men. The most fertile lands of Germany, along the banks of the Oder and the Wesel, looked like a barren desert. One officer reported that he passed through seven villages without encountering a single person, except for a curate.”174

535

535

THE OFFICER AND THE CURATE.

On the 15th of March, 1763, Frederick left Leipsic, and on the 30th entered his capital of Berlin, from which he had been absent six years. It was nine o’clock in the evening when his carriage drove through the dark and silent streets to his palace. His arrival at that hour had not been anticipated. It is said that he repaired immediately to the queen’s apartment, where he met the several members of the royal family. As soon as it was known that the king had arrived, Berlin blazed with illuminations and rang with rejoicings.

On March 15, 1763, Frederick left Leipsic and entered his capital, Berlin, on the 30th, after being away for six years. It was 9 PM when his carriage rolled through the dark, quiet streets to his palace. His arrival at that time wasn’t expected. It’s said that he went straight to the queen’s room, where he met various members of the royal family. Once it was announced that the king was back, Berlin lit up with celebrations and cheers.


536

536

CHAPTER XXXIV.
THE PARTITION OF POLAND.

The King patronizes literary and scientific Men.—Anecdotes.—The Family Quarrel.—Birth of Frederick William III.—Rapid Recuperation of Prussia.—The King’s Tour of Observation.—Desolate Aspect of the Country.—Absolutism of Frederick.—Interview between Frederick and D’Alembert.—Unpopularity of Frederick.—Death of the King of Poland.—Plans for the Partition of Poland.—Intrigues of Catharine.—Interview between Frederick and the Emperor Joseph.—Poland seized by Russia, Prussia, and Austria.—The Division of the Spoil.—Remorse of Maria Theresa.—Indifference of Frederick to public Opinion.

The King supports writers and scientists. — Anecdotes. — The Family Feud. — Birth of Frederick William III. — Swift Recovery of Prussia. — The King’s Observational Tour. — The Country's Desolate Appearance. — Frederick's Absolutism. — Meeting between Frederick and D’Alembert. — Frederick's Lack of Popularity. — Death of the King of Poland. — Plans for Dividing Poland. — Catherine's Schemes. — Meeting between Frederick and Emperor Joseph. — Poland divided by Russia, Prussia, and Austria. — The Division of Spoils. — Maria Theresa’s Regret. — Frederick's Indifference to Public Opinion.

There still remained to Frederick twenty-three years of life. He now engaged very vigorously in the endeavor to repair the terrible ravages of war by encouraging agriculture, commerce, and all useful arts. He invited the distinguished French philosophers Helvetius and D’Alembert to visit his court, and endeavored, though unavailingly, to induce them to take up their residence in Berlin. They were both in sympathy with the king in their renunciation of Christianity.

There were still twenty-three years of life ahead for Frederick. He became very active in trying to heal the massive destruction caused by the war by promoting agriculture, commerce, and all useful trades. He invited the notable French philosophers Helvetius and D’Alembert to visit his court and tried, though unsuccessfully, to persuade them to settle in Berlin. They both shared the king's views in their rejection of Christianity.

There are many anecdotes of Frederick floating about in the journals whose authenticity can not be vouched for. The two following are doubtless authentic. Frederick, as he was riding through the streets of Berlin, saw a crowd looking upon a picture which was posted high up on a wall. He requested his groom to see what it was. The servant returned with the reply, “It is a caricature of your majesty, seated on a stool, with a coffee-mill between your knees, grinding with one hand, and picking up the beans which have fallen with the other,”

There are many stories about Frederick in the journals that can't be verified. The two below are definitely true. While riding through the streets of Berlin, Frederick noticed a crowd staring at a picture displayed high on a wall. He asked his groom to check it out. The servant came back with the answer, “It’s a caricature of your majesty, sitting on a stool, with a coffee grinder between your knees, grinding with one hand, and picking up the beans that have fallen with the other.”

“Take it down,” said the king, “and hang it lower, that the people may not hurt their necks in looking at it.”

“Take it down,” said the king, “and hang it lower so that people won’t strain their necks looking at it.”

The crowd heard what he said. With bursts of laughter they tore the caricature in pieces, scattered it to the winds, and greeted the king, as he rode away, with enthusiastic shouts of “Our Fritz forever.”

The crowd heard what he said. With bursts of laughter, they ripped the caricature into pieces, scattered it to the wind, and cheered the king as he rode away, shouting “Our Fritz forever.”

The Crown Prince Frederick had married the daughter of the Duke of Brunswick. She was a very beautiful, proud, high-spirited woman. Her husband was a worthless fellow, dissolute in the extreme. She, stung to madness, and unrestrained by Christian537 principle, retaliated in kind. A divorce was the result. The discarded princess retired to the castle of Stettin, where she lived in comparative seclusion, though surrounded with elegance.

Crown Prince Frederick had married the daughter of the Duke of Brunswick. She was an incredibly beautiful, proud, and spirited woman. Her husband was a good-for-nothing, completely dissolute. She, driven to madness and unbound by Christian values, responded in kind. This led to a divorce. The estranged princess moved to the castle of Stettin, where she lived mostly in seclusion, though surrounded by elegance.

FREDERICK THE GREAT, ÆT. 59.

Upon one occasion she ordered a very rich silk dress directly from Lyons. The custom-house dues were heavy. The custom-house officer detained the dress until the dues should be paid. The haughty princess, exceedingly indignant, sent an order to him to bring the dress instantly to her, and she would pay the538 demand. As soon as he entered her apartment, she snatched the dress from his hands, and with her open palm gave him two slaps in the face, ordering him immediately to leave the house175

One time, she ordered a really fancy silk dress directly from Lyon. The customs fees were high. The customs officer held onto the dress until the fees were paid. The proud princess, extremely angry, instructed him to bring the dress to her immediately and promised to pay the fee. As soon as he entered her room, she grabbed the dress from his hands and slapped him twice across the face, telling him to leave her house right away.538

The officer drew up a statement of the facts, and sent it to the king, with the complaint that he had been dishonored in discharging the duties intrusted to him by his majesty. The king sent the following reply:

The officer wrote a report of the facts and sent it to the king, along with the complaint that he had been dishonored while carrying out the duties assigned to him by his majesty. The king responded with the following:

“To the custom-house officer at Stettin. The loss of the excise dues shall fall to my score. The dress shall remain with the princess; the slaps to him who received them. As to the pretended dishonor, I entirely relieve the complainant from that. Never can the appliance of a beautiful hand dishonor the face of an officer of customs.”

“To the customs officer at Stettin. I will take responsibility for the loss of the excise duties. The dress will stay with the princess; the blame goes to the person who received it. Regarding the alleged dishonor, I completely clear the complainant of that. A beautiful hand can never bring dishonor to the face of a customs officer.”

Frederick, with his own pen, gives the following account of this family quarrel, which resulted in the divorce of the Crown Prince and Elizabeth:

Frederick, using his own pen, provides the following account of this family dispute, which led to the divorce of the Crown Prince and Elizabeth:

“Not long ago we mentioned the Prince of Prussia’s marriage with Elizabeth of Brunswick. The husband, young and dissolute, given up to a profligate life, from which his relatives could not correct him, was continually committing infidelities to his wife. The princess, who was in the flower of her beauty, felt outraged by such neglect of her charms. Her vivacity and the good opinion she had of herself brought her upon the thought of avenging her wrongs by retaliation. Speedily she gave into excesses scarcely inferior to those of her husband. Family quarrels broke out, and were soon publicly known. The antipathy which ensued took away all hope of succession. The brothers of the king, Henry and Ferdinand, avowed frankly that they would never consent to have, by some accidental birth, their rights of succession to the crown carried off. In the end, there was nothing for it but proceeding to a divorce.”176

“Not long ago, we talked about the marriage of the Prince of Prussia to Elizabeth of Brunswick. The husband, young and reckless, leading a wild lifestyle that his family couldn’t fix, was constantly cheating on his wife. The princess, in the height of her beauty, felt insulted by such disregard for her charms. Her lively spirit and high opinion of herself led her to think about getting even. Before long, she indulged in behaviors that were hardly different from her husband’s. Family conflicts erupted and quickly became public knowledge. The resulting hostility dashed any hopes of having an heir. The king’s brothers, Henry and Ferdinand, openly stated that they would never agree to have their claims to the throne jeopardized by an unexpected birth. In the end, the only option left was to pursue a divorce.”176

Within three months after the divorce, the Crown Prince, anxious for an heir, married, on the 18th of April, 1769, the Princess Frederica Louisa, of Hesse-Darmstadt. A son was born to them, who became Frederick William III.

Within three months after the divorce, the Crown Prince, eager for an heir, married the Princess Frederica Louisa of Hesse-Darmstadt on April 18, 1769. They had a son who became Frederick William III.

539 Under the energetic administration of Frederick, Prussia began, very rapidly, to recover from the desolation which had overwhelmed it. The coin, in a little more than a year, was restored to its purity. In the course of two years Frederick rebuilt, in different parts of his realms, fourteen thousand five hundred houses. The army horses were distributed among the impoverished farmers for plow teams. Early in June, 1763, the king set out on a general tour of inspection.

539 With Frederick's dynamic leadership, Prussia quickly started to bounce back from the devastation it had faced. The currency was restored to its original quality in just over a year. Within two years, Frederick rebuilt fourteen thousand five hundred houses across different areas of his territories. Army horses were given to struggling farmers to use as plow teams. In early June 1763, the king embarked on a comprehensive inspection tour.

“To form an idea,” he writes, “of the general subversion, and how great were the desolation and discouragement, you must represent to yourself countries entirely ravaged, the very traces of the old habitations hardly discoverable. Of the towns some were ruined from top to bottom; others half destroyed by fire. Of thirteen thousand houses the very vestiges were gone. There was no field in seed, no grain for the food of the inhabitants. Sixty thousand horses were needed if there were to be plowing carried on. In the provinces generally there were half a million population less than in 1756; that is to say, upon four millions and a half the ninth man was wanting. Noble and peasant had been pillaged, ransomed, foraged, eaten out by so many different armies; nothing now left them but life and miserable rags.

“To get an idea,” he writes, “of the overall devastation and how severe the destruction and despair were, you need to picture countries completely devastated, with barely any remnants of the old homes visible. Some towns were ruined from top to bottom; others were half destroyed by fire. Of thirteen thousand houses, there were hardly any remains. No fields were planted, no grain for the people to eat. Sixty thousand horses were needed if plowing was to be done. In the provinces overall, there were half a million fewer people than in 1756; in other words, out of four and a half million, one out of every nine was missing. Both nobles and peasants had been plundered, ransomed, foraged, and stripped bare by numerous armies; all they had left was their lives and some tattered clothing.”

“There was no credit by trading people even for the necessaries of life. There was no police in the towns. To habits of equity and order there had succeeded a vile greed of gain and an anarchic disorder. The silence of the laws had produced in the people a taste for license. Boundless appetite for gain was their main rule of action. The noble, the merchant, the farmer, the laborer, raising emulously each the price of his commodity, seemed to endeavor only for their mutual ruin. Such, when the war ended, was the fatal spectacle over these provinces, which had once been so flourishing. However pathetic the description may be, it will never approach the touching and sorrowful impression which the sight of it produced.”

“There was no credit among people even for the basic necessities of life. There was no police in the towns. Instead of fairness and order, there was a disgusting greed for profit and chaos. The absence of laws had led people to crave freedom without limits. An insatiable desire for profit was their main guiding principle. The noble, the merchant, the farmer, and the laborer, each competing to raise the price of their goods, seemed to be actively working towards each other’s downfall. Such was the tragic scene in these provinces after the war ended, which had once been so prosperous. No matter how emotionally heart-wrenching the description is, it can never capture the deep and sorrowful impact that seeing it firsthand had.”

The absolutism of Frederick placed all legislative, judicial, and executive powers in his hands. He was law-maker, judge, and executioner. The liberty, property, and lives of his subjects were at his disposal. He could call others to assist him in the government, but they were merely servants to do his bidding.

The absolute rule of Frederick put all legislative, judicial, and executive powers in his hands. He was the lawmaker, judge, and executioner. The freedom, property, and lives of his subjects were under his control. He could bring others in to help him govern, but they were just servants to carry out his orders.

“During the war,” writes Frederick, “the councilors and ministers540 had successively died. In such time of trouble it had been impossible to replace them. The embarrassment was to find persons capable of filling these different employments. We searched the provinces, where good heads were found as rare as in the capital. At length five chief ministers were pitched upon.”

“During the war,” writes Frederick, “the councilors and ministers540 had died one after another. In such troubling times, it was impossible to replace them. The challenge was to find people who could take on these various roles. We looked throughout the provinces, where finding competent individuals was as difficult as in the capital. Finally, we settled on five chief ministers.”

The rich abbeys of the Roman Catholics were compelled to establish manufactures for weaving damasks and table-cloths. Some were converted into oil-mills, or “workers in copper, wire-drawers, the flaxes and metals, with water-power, markets, and so on.”

The wealthy abbeys of the Roman Catholics had to start factories for making damasks and tablecloths. Some were turned into oil mills or became “copper workers, wire drawers, processing flax and metals, using water power, markets, and so on.”

While on this tour of inspection, the celebrated French philosopher D’Alembert, by appointment, met the king at Geldern, and accompanied him to Potsdam. D’Alembert was in entire sympathy with the king in his renunciation of Christianity. In 1755 D’Alembert had, by invitation, met Frederick at Wesel, on the Rhine. In a letter to Madame Du Deffand, at Paris, dated Potsdam, June 25, 1763, D’Alembert wrote:

While on this inspection tour, the famous French philosopher D’Alembert met the king at Geldern, as planned, and went with him to Potsdam. D’Alembert fully supported the king in his rejection of Christianity. In 1755, D’Alembert had met Frederick at Wesel, on the Rhine, by invitation. In a letter to Madame Du Deffand in Paris, dated Potsdam, June 25, 1763, D’Alembert wrote:

“I will not go into the praises of King Frederick, now my host. I will merely send you two traits of him, which will indicate his way of thinking and feeling. When I spoke to him of the glory which he had acquired, he answered, with the greatest simplicity,

“I won't list the praises of King Frederick, who is now my host. Instead, I'll just share two aspects of him that show his way of thinking and feeling. When I mentioned the glory he had earned, he replied with the utmost simplicity,

“‘There is a furious discount to be deducted from said glory. Chance came in for almost the whole of it. I would far rather have written Racine’s Athalie than have performed all the achievements of this war.’

‘There’s a huge discount to take off that glory. Luck had a big part in it. I would much rather have written Racine’s Athalie than have done everything accomplished in this war.’

“The other trait I have to give you is this. On the 15th of February last, the day of concluding this peace, which is so glorious to him, some one said to him, ‘It is the finest day of your majesty’s life.’ The king replied,

“The other trait I need to share with you is this. On February 15th, the day this glorious peace was finalized, someone said to him, ‘This is the best day of your majesty’s life.’ The king replied,

“‘The finest day of life is the day on which one quits it.’”177

“‘The best day of life is the day on which one leaves it.’”177

Helvetius, another of the distinguished French deistical philosophers, was invited to Berlin to assist the king in his financial operations. To aid the mechanics in Berlin, and to show to the world that the king was not so utterly impoverished as many imagined, Frederick, on the 11th of June, 1763, laid the foundation of the sumptuous edifice called “The New Palace of Sans Souci.”

Helvetius, another prominent French deistical philosopher, was invited to Berlin to help the king with his financial affairs. To support the craftsmen in Berlin and to demonstrate to the world that the king was not as completely broke as many thought, Frederick, on June 11, 1763, started the construction of the lavish building known as “The New Palace of Sans Souci.”

541 Frederick, though now at peace with all the world, found no nation in cordial alliance with him. He had always disliked England, and England returned the dislike with interest. The Duchess of Pompadour, who controlled France, hated him. Maria Theresa regarded him as a highway robber who had snatched Silesia from her and escaped with it. Frederick, thus left without an ally, turned to his former subject, now Catharine II., whom he had placed on the throne of Russia. On the 11th of April, 1764, one year after the close of the Seven Years’ War, he entered into a treaty of alliance with the Czarina Catharine. The treaty was to continue eight years. In case either of the parties became involved in war, the other party was to furnish a contingent of twelve thousand men, or an equivalent in money.

541 Frederick, although at peace with everyone, found no nation willing to ally with him. He had always disliked England, and England felt the same way about him. The Duchess of Pompadour, who was in charge of France, hated him. Maria Theresa viewed him as a thief who had taken Silesia from her and gotten away with it. With no allies, Frederick turned to his former subject, now Catherine II, whom he had helped ascend to the Russian throne. On April 11, 1764, one year after the end of the Seven Years' War, he signed a treaty of alliance with Czarina Catherine. The treaty would last for eight years. If either side went to war, the other was supposed to provide a contingent of twelve thousand men or an equivalent amount in money.

On the 5th of October, 1763, Augustus, the unhappy King of Poland, had died at Dresden, after a troubled reign of thirty years. The crown was elective. The turbulent nobles, broken up into antagonistic and envenomed cliques, were to choose a successor. Catharine, as ambitious as she was able and unprincipled, resolved to place one of her creatures upon the throne, that Poland, a realm spreading over a territory of 284,000 square miles, and containing a population of 20,000,000, might be virtually added to her dominions. Carlyle writes:

On October 5, 1763, Augustus, the troubled King of Poland, died in Dresden after a difficult thirty-year reign. The crown was elected. The restless nobles, divided into hostile and bitter factions, were set to choose a successor. Catharine, ambitious, capable, and unscrupulous, decided to put one of her supporters on the throne so that Poland, a kingdom covering 284,000 square miles and home to a population of 20 million, could effectively be incorporated into her empire. Carlyle writes:

“My own private conjecture, I confess, has rather grown to be, on much reading of those Rulhières and distracted books, that the czarina—who was a grandiose creature, with considerable magnanimities, natural and acquired; with many ostentations, some really great qualities and talents; in effect, a kind of she Louis Quatorze (if the reader will reflect on that royal gentleman, and put him into petticoats in Russia, and change his improper females for improper males)—that the czarina, very clearly resolute to keep Poland hers, had determined with herself to do something very handsome in regard to Poland; and to gain glory, both with the enlightened philosophe classes and with her own proud heart, by her treatment of that intricate matter.”

“I admit, my own private theory has formed, after a lot of reading those Rulhières and other confusing books, that the czarina—who was a grand figure, with many natural and cultivated virtues; with plenty of showiness, some truly impressive qualities and talents; essentially, a female version of Louis XIV (if the reader can picture that royal figure, dressed in women’s clothing in Russia, and swapping his inappropriate female companions for inappropriate male ones)—that the czarina, clearly determined to keep Poland under her control, had decided to do something very admirable regarding Poland; aiming to earn glory with the enlightened intellectuals as well as with her own proud heart through her handling of that complex situation.”

In the court of the czarina there was a very handsome young Pole, Stanislaus Poniatowski, who had been an acknowledged lover of Catharine. Though Catharine had laid him aside for other favorites, she still regarded him with tender feelings. He was just the man to do her bidding. By skillful diplomacy she542 caused him to be elected King of Poland. That kingdom was now entirely in her hands, so far as it was in the power of its monarch to place it there.

In the court of the czarina, there was a very attractive young Pole named Stanislaus Poniatowski, who had been a known lover of Catherine. Although Catherine had moved on to other favorites, she still held warm feelings for him. He was exactly the kind of person who could carry out her wishes. With clever diplomacy, she542 ensured his election as King of Poland. That kingdom was now completely under her control, as much as it was within the power of its monarch to make it so.

This, however, stirred up great strife in Poland. The nobles were roused. Scenes of confusion ensued. The realm was plunged into a state of anarchy. Frederick, being in cordial co-operation with the czarina in all her measures, instructed his minister in Warsaw to follow her policy in every particular. It has generally been supposed that Frederick was the first to propose the banditti division of the kingdom of Poland between Prussia, Russia, and Austria by means of their united armies. This is not certain. But, whoever may have at first made the suggestion, it is very certain that Frederick cordially and efficiently embarked in the enterprise.178

This, however, caused a lot of conflict in Poland. The nobles were awakened. Confusion broke out everywhere. The country was thrown into chaos. Frederick, working closely with the czarina on all her strategies, told his minister in Warsaw to follow her lead in every way. It's commonly believed that Frederick was the first to suggest dividing the kingdom of Poland between Prussia, Russia, and Austria through their combined forces. This isn't definite. But, no matter who originally made the suggestion, it’s clear that Frederick enthusiastically and effectively joined the effort.178

Poniatowski was elected King of Poland on the 7th of September, 1764, and crowned on the 25th of November. He was then thirty-two years of age, and the scarcely disguised agent of Catharine. Two or three years passed of wars and rebellions, and all the usual tumult of this tumultuous world. In August, 1765, the Emperor Francis died. He was at Innsprück, attending the marriage festivities of his second son Leopold. About nine o’clock in the evening of the 18th, while sauntering through the rooms in the midst of the brilliant gala, he was struck with apoplexy. He staggered for a moment, fell into the hands of his son Joseph, and instantly died.

Poniatowski was elected King of Poland on September 7, 1764, and crowned on November 25. He was thirty-two years old at the time and was clearly a puppet for Catharine. A couple of years went by filled with wars, rebellions, and the usual chaos of the world. In August 1765, Emperor Francis passed away. He was in Innsbruck, celebrating the wedding of his second son Leopold. Around nine o’clock on the evening of the 18th, while walking through the rooms in the midst of the festive gala, he suffered a stroke. He staggered for a moment, collapsed into the arms of his son Joseph, and died instantly.

Joseph, the oldest son of Maria Theresa and Francis, by the will of his mother became emperor. But Maria Theresa still swayed the sceptre of imperial power, through the hands of her son, as she had formerly done through the hands of her amiable and pliant husband. The young emperor was fond of traveling. He visited all the battle-fields of the Seven Years’ War, and put up many monuments. Through his minister at Berlin, he expressed his particular desire to make the acquaintance of Frederick. The interview took place at Neisse on the 25th of August, 1769. His majesty received the young emperor on the grand staircase of the palace, where they cordially embraced each other.

Joseph, the oldest son of Maria Theresa and Francis, became emperor by his mother's will. However, Maria Theresa still held the reins of imperial power through her son, just as she had done with her agreeable and compliant husband. The young emperor enjoyed traveling. He visited all the battlefields of the Seven Years’ War and erected many monuments. Through his minister in Berlin, he expressed a keen interest in meeting Frederick. The meeting took place in Neisse on August 25, 1769. His majesty welcomed the young emperor on the grand staircase of the palace, where they warmly embraced each other.

“Now are my wishes fulfilled,” said the emperor, “since I have the honor to embrace the greatest of kings and soldiers.”

“Now my wishes are fulfilled,” said the emperor, “since I have the honor to embrace the greatest of kings and warriors.”

543 “I look upon this day,” the king replied, “as the fairest of my life; for it will become the epoch of uniting two houses which have been enemies too long, and whose mutual interests require that they should strengthen, not weaken, one another.”

543 “I see this day,” the king said, “as the best of my life; it marks a moment when two houses that have been rivals for too long come together, and their shared interests demand that they support, not undermine, each other.”

There were dinner-parties, and military reviews, and operas to beguile the time. The interview lasted three days. The king and the emperor often walked out arm in arm. Frederick wrote:

There were dinner parties, military reviews, and operas to pass the time. The meeting lasted three days. The king and the emperor often walked out arm in arm. Frederick wrote:

“The emperor has a frankness of manner which seems natural to him. In his amiable character, gayety and great vivacity are prominent features.”

“The emperor has a straightforward way of interacting that feels genuine to him. His friendly nature is highlighted by his cheerfulness and high energy.”

Under cover of these festivities important political matters were discussed. The question of the partition of Poland arose, and arrangements were made for another interview. Soon after this, Frederick sent to Catharine a sketch of a plan for partitioning several provinces in Poland—Russia, Prussia, and Austria each taking a share. “To which Petersburg, intoxicated with its own outlooks on Turkey, paid not the least attention.”179 The second interview, of five days, commenced on the 3d of September, 1770, at Neustadt, near Austerlitz, which has since become so famous.

Amid these celebrations, important political discussions took place. The topic of Poland's partition came up, and plans were made for another meeting. Shortly after, Frederick sent Catharine a draft for a plan to divide several provinces in Poland, with Russia, Prussia, and Austria each taking a portion. “To which Petersburg, caught up in its own ambitions regarding Turkey, paid no attention at all.”179 The second meeting, lasting five days, began on September 3, 1770, at Neustadt, near Austerlitz, which has since become quite famous.

The Prince De Ligne, in a long letter to Stanislaus, King of Poland, gives an interesting account of several conversations which ensued. In this narrative he writes:

The Prince De Ligne, in a lengthy letter to Stanislaus, King of Poland, shares an intriguing account of several conversations that took place afterwards. In this narrative, he writes:

“I forget how the conversation changed. But I know that it grew so free that, seeing somebody coming to join in it, the king warned him to take care, saying that it was not safe to converse with a man doomed by the theologians to everlasting fire. I felt as if he somewhat overdid this of his ‘being doomed,’ and that he boasted too much of it. Not to hint at the dishonesty of these free-thinking gentlemen, who very often are thoroughly afraid of the devil, it is at least bad taste to make display of such things. And it was with the people of bad taste whom he had about him, and some dull skeptics of his own academy, that he had acquired the habit of mocking at religion.”

“I don't remember how the conversation shifted. But I do remember that it became so open that when someone approached to join us, the king warned him to be cautious, saying it wasn't safe to talk to a man condemned by the theologians to eternal hell. I felt like he was exaggerating this ‘doomed’ thing a bit and that he took too much pride in it. Not to mention the dishonesty of these free-thinking types, who often are genuinely afraid of the devil, it's at least in poor taste to flaunt such matters. And it was with those of bad taste he surrounded himself, along with some dull skeptics from his own academy, that he developed the habit of ridiculing religion.”

The king was not a little vain of the keen thrusts he could occasionally give the clergy. In a letter to Marie-Antoine, Electress of Saxony, dated Potsdam, May 3, 1768, he, with much apparent complacency, records the following witty achievement:

The king was somewhat proud of the sharp remarks he could sometimes make to the clergy. In a letter to Marie-Antoine, Electress of Saxony, dated Potsdam, May 3, 1768, he notes with clear satisfaction the following clever accomplishment:

544 “It is a pity for the human race, madam, that men never can be tranquil. But they never can be any where. Even the little town of Neufchâtel has had its troubles. Your royal highness will be astonished to learn how. A parson there had set forth in a sermon that, considering the immense mercy of God, the pains of hell could not last forever. The synod shouted murder at such scandal, and has been struggling ever since to get the parson exterminated. The affair was of my jurisdiction, for your royal highness must know that I am pope in that country. Here is my decision:

544 “It’s unfortunate for humanity, madam, that men can never find peace. They’re always in turmoil, even in the small town of Neufchâtel. You might be surprised to hear why. A pastor there suggested in a sermon that, given God’s immense mercy, the torments of hell couldn’t last forever. The synod was outraged by such a scandalous idea and has been trying ever since to get the pastor removed. This matter falls under my authority, as you must know I am the pope in that region. Here’s my decision:

“‘Let the parsons who make for themselves a cruel and barbarous God be eternally damned, as they desire and deserve; and let those parsons who conceive God gentle and merciful enjoy the plenitude of his mercy.’

“‘Let the preachers who create a cruel and savage God be eternally condemned, as they want and deserve; and let those preachers who see God as kind and compassionate experience the fullness of His mercy.’”

“However, madam, my sentence has failed to calm the minds. The schism continues, and the number of damnatory theologians prevail over the others.”180

“However, ma'am, my statement hasn't helped to ease everyone's minds. The division continues, and the number of condemning theologians is greater than the others.”180

The king could be very courteous. He gave a dinner-party, at which General Loudon, one of the most efficient of the Austrian generals, and who had often been successfully opposed to Frederick, was a guest. As he entered the king said,

The king could be very polite. He hosted a dinner party, where General Loudon, one of the most capable Austrian generals who had frequently successfully challenged Frederick, was a guest. As he walked in, the king said,

“General Loudon, take a seat by my side. I had much rather have you with me than opposite me.” Mettez vous auprès de moi. J’aime mieux vous avoir à côté de moi que vis-à-vis.181

“General Loudon, please sit next to me. I’d much prefer to have you beside me than across from me.” Mettez vous auprès de moi. J’aime mieux vous avoir à côté de moi que vis-à-vis.181

Catharine was at this time engaged vigorously in a war with the Turks. Frederick, by his treaty with the czarina, was compelled to assist her. This ambitious woman, endowed with extraordinary powers, was pushing her conquests toward Constantinople, having formed the resolve to annex that imperial city to the empire, and thus to open through the Straits of the Bosphorus and the Dardanelles new avenues for Russian commerce.

Catharine was at this time actively engaged in a war against the Turks. Frederick, due to his treaty with the czarina, had to assist her. This ambitious woman, with remarkable abilities, was expanding her conquests toward Constantinople, determined to add that imperial city to the empire and thereby create new pathways for Russian commerce through the Bosphorus and Dardanelles.

Count Von Kaunitz, an able but proud and self-conceited man, was prime minister of the Emperor of Germany. His commanding mind exerted quite a controlling influence over his imperial master. Kaunitz records the following conversation as having taken place at this interview between himself and Frederick:182

Count Von Kaunitz, a capable but arrogant and self-important man, was the prime minister of the Emperor of Germany. His strong intellect had a significant influence over his imperial boss. Kaunitz notes the following conversation that supposedly happened during this meeting between him and Frederick:182

545 “These Russian encroachments upon the Turk,” said Kaunitz, “are dangerous to the repose of Europe. His imperial majesty can never consent that Russia should possess the provinces of Moldavia and Wallachia. He will much rather go to war. These views of Russia are infinitely dangerous to every body. They are as dangerous to your majesty as to others. I can conceive of no remedy against them but this. Prussia and Austria must join frankly in protest and absolute prohibition of them.”

545 “These Russian advances on the Turks,” said Kaunitz, “threaten the peace of Europe. His imperial majesty will never agree to Russia taking control of the provinces of Moldavia and Wallachia. He would prefer to go to war instead. These ambitions of Russia pose a serious risk to everyone. They are just as harmful to your majesty as they are to others. I cannot think of any solution to counter them other than this: Prussia and Austria must openly unite in protest and completely forbid these actions.”

“I have nothing more at heart,” Frederick replied, “than to stand well with Austria. I wish always to be her ally, never her enemy. But the prince sees how I am situated. Bound by express treaty with her czarish majesty, I must go with Russia in any war. I will do every thing in my power to conciliate her majesty with the emperor—to secure such a peace at St. Petersburg as may meet the wishes of Vienna.”183

“I care about nothing more,” Frederick replied, “than maintaining a good relationship with Austria. I always want to be her ally, never her enemy. But the prince understands my situation. Bound by a formal treaty with her imperial majesty, I have to side with Russia in any conflict. I will do everything I can to bring her majesty and the emperor together—to achieve a peace in St. Petersburg that aligns with the interests of Vienna.”183

Singularly enough, the very next day Frederick received an express from the Divan requesting him, with the aid of Austria, to mediate peace with Russia. The Turks had encountered such reverses that they were anxious to sheathe the sword. Frederick with great joy undertook the mediation. But he found the mediation far more difficult than he had imagined. Catharine and Maria Theresa, so totally different in character, entertained a rooted aversion to each other. The complications were so great that month after month the deliberations were continued unavailingly. Maria Theresa was unrelentingly opposed to the advance of Russia upon Constantinople.

Interestingly, the very next day Frederick got a message from the Divan asking him, with Austria's help, to mediate peace with Russia. The Turks had faced such setbacks that they were eager to put down their weapons. Frederick happily agreed to mediate. However, he found the process much more challenging than he had anticipated. Catherine and Maria Theresa, being so different in personality, had a deep-seated dislike for one another. The complications were so extensive that the discussions dragged on month after month without any progress. Maria Theresa was firmly against Russia expanding into Constantinople.

Thus originated with the Empress Catharine, one hundred years ago, the idea of driving the Turks out of Europe, and of annexing Constantinople to her majestic empire. From that time until now the question has been increasingly agitating the courts of Europe. Every day, now, the “Eastern Question” is assuming greater importance. The following map very clearly shows the commanding position of Constantinople, and the immense strength, both in a military and a commercial point of view, it would give to the Russian empire.

Thus originated with Empress Catherine, one hundred years ago, the idea of pushing the Turks out of Europe and annexing Constantinople to her grand empire. Since then, this issue has been increasingly stirring the courts of Europe. Every day, the "Eastern Question" is becoming more significant. The following map clearly illustrates the strategic position of Constantinople and the immense military and commercial strength it would provide to the Russian Empire.

Meneval, private secretary of Napoleon I., records that, in one546 of the interviews of the emperor with Alexander, the czar offered to co-operate with Napoleon in all his plans if the emperor would consent that Russia should take Constantinople. The French emperor replied, after a moment’s hesitation,

Meneval, private secretary to Napoleon I, notes that during one of the emperor's meetings with Alexander, the czar proposed to work together with Napoleon on all his plans if the emperor agreed to let Russia take Constantinople. After a brief pause, the French emperor responded,

“Constantinople! never. It is the empire of the world.”

“Constantinople! Never. It's the empire of the world.”

MAP OF THE EAST.

There can be but little doubt, however, that the Bosphorus and the Dardanelles will ere long be in the hands of Russia. “I know that I or my successors,” said the Czar Nicholas, “must547 have Constantinople. You might as well arrest a stream in its descent from a mountain as the Russians in their advance to the Hellespont.”184

There’s little doubt that the Bosphorus and the Dardanelles will soon be under Russian control. “I know that I or my successors,” said Czar Nicholas, “must have Constantinople. You might as well try to stop a river from flowing down a mountain as to hold back the Russians in their push toward the Hellespont.”184

There was a famine in Poland, and the famine was followed by pestilence. A general state of tumult and discord ensued. Maria Theresa had gathered a large army on the frontiers of Hungary to watch the designs of Russia upon Turkey. Availing herself of this disturbed state of Poland, Maria Theresa marched her troops into one of its provinces called Zips, which had once belonged to Hungary, and quietly extended her boundaries around the acquisition. Catharine was much exasperated by the measure.

There was a famine in Poland, and it was followed by disease. This led to a general state of chaos and conflict. Maria Theresa had assembled a large army at the borders of Hungary to keep an eye on Russia’s intentions toward Turkey. Taking advantage of the unrest in Poland, Maria Theresa moved her troops into a province called Zips, which had once been part of Hungary, and quietly expanded her territory around it. Catherine was very annoyed by this action.

The czarina had, about that time, invited Prince Henry, the warlike brother of Frederick, to visit her. They had met as children when the czarina was daughter of the commandant at Stettin. Henry was received with an extraordinary display of imperial magnificence. In the midst of this routine of feasting, balls, and masquerades, Catharine one day said to Henry, with much pique, referring to these encroachments on the part of Maria Theresa,

The czarina had, around that time, invited Prince Henry, the battle-ready brother of Frederick, to visit her. They had met as kids when the czarina was the daughter of the commandant in Stettin. Henry was welcomed with an amazing show of imperial splendor. In the midst of this routine of feasts, balls, and masquerades, Catharine one day said to Henry, quite irritably, referring to Maria Theresa's encroachments,

“It seems that in Poland the Austrians have only to stoop and pick up what they like. If the court of Vienna has the intention to dismember that kingdom, its neighbors will have the right to take their share.”185

“It looks like the Austrians in Poland just have to bend down and grab whatever they want. If the court in Vienna plans to break up that kingdom, its neighbors will have the right to take their portion.”185

Frederick caught eagerly at the suggestion, as the remark was reported to him by his brother. He drew up a new plan of partition, which he urged with all his powers of address upon both Russia and Austria. The conscience of Maria Theresa was strongly opposed to the deed. Catharine and Kaunitz were very greedy in their demands. Circumstances assumed such an aspect that it was very difficult for Maria Theresa to oppose the measure. At length, through the extraordinary efforts of Frederick, on the 5th of August, 1772, the following agreement was adopted:

Frederick eagerly embraced the suggestion when his brother brought it to him. He created a new plan for partition, which he advocated for with all his persuasive skills to both Russia and Austria. Maria Theresa was strongly against the idea. Catherine and Kaunitz were both very demanding. The situation became such that it was quite difficult for Maria Theresa to oppose the proposal. Finally, due to Frederick's remarkable efforts, on August 5, 1772, the following agreement was reached:

Russia took 87,500 square miles. Austria received 62,500. The share which fell to Frederick was but 9456 square miles. Small in respect to territory as was Frederick’s share, it was regarded, in consequence of its position and the nature of the country, equally valuable with the other portions.

Russia took 87,500 square miles. Austria received 62,500. The share that Frederick got was only 9,456 square miles. Despite being small in size, Frederick’s share was considered just as valuable as the other territories because of its location and the characteristics of the land.

548 “Frederick’s share,” writes Mr. Carlyle, “as an anciently Teutonic country, and as filling up the always dangerous gap between his Ost Prussen and him, has, under Prussian administration, proved much the most valuable of the three, and, next to Silesia, is Frederick’s most important acquisition.”

548 “Frederick’s share,” writes Mr. Carlyle, “as an anciently German territory, and as filling in the always risky gap between his East Prussia and himself, has proven to be by far the most valuable of the three under Prussian control, and next to Silesia, is Frederick’s most significant gain.”

In carrying out these measures of partition, which the world has usually regarded as one of the most atrocious acts of robbery on record, resort was had both to bribery and force. The King of Poland was the obsequious servant of Catharine. A common fund was raised by the three powers to bribe the members of the Polish diet. Each of the confederate powers also sent an army to the Polish frontiers, ready to unite and crush the distracted people should there be any forcible resistance. Thus the deed was accomplished.

In carrying out these partition measures, which the world has often seen as one of the most horrible acts of theft in history, both bribery and force were used. The King of Poland was the obedient servant of Catherine. A common fund was created by the three powers to bribe the members of the Polish diet. Each of the allied powers also sent an army to the Polish borders, prepared to join forces and crush the troubled people if there was any resistance. Thus, the act was completed.

Maria Theresa was a devout woman, governed by stern convictions of duty. Her moral nature recoiled from this atrocious act. But she felt driven to it by the pressure brought upon her by her own cabinet, her powerful and arrogant prime minister, and by the courts of Prussia and Russia. While, therefore, very reluctantly giving her assent to the measure, she issued the following extraordinary document:

Maria Theresa was a devoted woman, driven by strong beliefs about her responsibilities. Her moral sense revolted against this horrible act. But she felt forced into it by the demands of her own cabinet, her powerful and arrogant prime minister, and by the courts of Prussia and Russia. Thus, while very unwillingly agreeing to the decision, she issued the following extraordinary document:

“When all my lands were invaded, and I knew not where in the world to be brought to bed in, I relied on my good right and the help of God. But in this thing, where not only public law cries to Heaven against us, but also all natural justice and sound reason, I must confess never in my life to have been in such trouble, and I am ashamed to show my face. Let the prince (Kaunitz) consider what an example we are giving to all the world, if, for a miserable piece of Poland, or of Moldavia, or Wallachia, we throw our honor and reputation to the winds. I see well that I am alone, and no more in vigor. Therefore I must, though to my very great sorrow, let things take their course.”186

“When all my lands were invaded, and I had no idea where in the world I would find rest, I relied on my rightful claims and the help of God. But in this situation, where not only public law cries out against us, but also all natural justice and sound reasoning, I must admit I have never been in such distress, and I am ashamed to show my face. Let the prince (Kaunitz) consider what kind of example we are setting for the world if, for a worthless piece of Poland, or Moldavia, or Wallachia, we throw our honor and reputation away. I realize I am alone and no longer strong. Therefore, I must, though it deeply saddens me, let things unfold as they will.”186

A few days afterward, in an official document, she writes: “I consent, since so many great and learned men will have it so. But long after I am dead, it will be known what this violating of all that was hitherto held sacred and just will give rise to.”187

A few days later, in an official document, she writes: “I agree, since so many esteemed and knowledgeable men want it this way. But long after I’m gone, people will see what this violation of everything that was once considered sacred and just will lead to.”187

549 Frederick had cultivated a supreme indifference to public opinion. Not believing in any God, in any future retribution, or in any immortality, and regarding men merely as the insects of an hour, like the myriad polyps which, beneath the ocean, rear their stupendous structures and perish, his sense of right and wrong must necessarily have been very different from that which a believer in the Christian faith is accustomed to cherish. In allusion to this subject, he writes:

549 Frederick had developed a complete indifference to what others thought. Without belief in any God, future punishment, or an afterlife, and seeing people as just temporary beings, like the countless polyps building their massive structures in the ocean only to die, his understanding of right and wrong had to be very different from what someone with Christian beliefs typically holds. Regarding this topic, he writes:

“A new career came to open itself to me. And one must have been either without address or buried in stupidity not to have profited by an opportunity so advantageous. I seized this unexpected opportunity by the forelock. By dint of negotiating and intriguing, I succeeded in indemnifying our monarchy for its past losses by incorporating Polish Prussia with my old provinces. This acquisition was one of the most important we could make, because it joined Pommern to East Prussia, and because, rendering us masters of the Weichsel River, we gained the double advantage of being able to defend that kingdom (East Prussia), and to draw considerable tolls from the Weichsel, as all the trade of Poland goes by that river.”

“A new career opened up for me. You'd have to be either clueless or really foolish not to take advantage of such a great opportunity. I grabbed this unexpected chance with both hands. Through a lot of negotiation and clever maneuvering, I managed to compensate our monarchy for its past losses by adding Polish Prussia to my former provinces. This acquisition was one of the most significant we could have made because it connected Pommern to East Prussia, and, by taking control of the Weichsel River, we gained the double benefit of being able to defend that kingdom (East Prussia) and collecting substantial tolls from the Weichsel, since all of Poland's trade goes through that river.”

The region thus annexed to Prussia was in a deplorable state of destitution and wretchedness. Most of the towns were in ruins. War had so desolated the land that thousands of the people were living in the cellars of their demolished houses.

The region that was annexed to Prussia was in a terrible state of poverty and misery. Most of the towns were in ruins. War had devastated the land so much that thousands of people were living in the basements of their destroyed homes.

“The country people hardly knew such a thing as bread. Many had never tasted such a delicacy. Few villages possessed an oven. A weaving-loom was rare; a spinning-wheel unknown. The main article of furniture in this bare scene of squalor was a crucifix, and a vessel of holy water under it. It was a desolate land, without discipline, without law, without a master. On nine thousand English square miles lived five hundred thousand souls—not fifty-five to the square mile.”188

“The rural folks barely knew what bread was. Many had never tasted such a treat. Few villages had an oven. Weaving looms were uncommon, and spinning wheels were unheard of. The central piece of furniture in this stark scene of poverty was a crucifix, along with a container of holy water beneath it. It was a bleak land, lacking discipline, law, and leadership. On nine thousand English square miles lived five hundred thousand people—not even fifty-five per square mile.”188

With extraordinary energy and sagacity Frederick set about developing the resources of his new acquisition. Houses were built. Villages rose as by magic. Marshes were drained. Emigrants, in large numbers, mechanics and farmers, were transported to the new lands. Canals were dug. Roads were improved, and new ones opened. One hundred and eighty-seven school-550masters were sent into the country. Every where there was plowing, ditching, building.

With incredible energy and insight, Frederick began developing the resources of his new acquisition. Houses were constructed. Villages appeared as if by magic. Marshes were drained. Large numbers of emigrants, including mechanics and farmers, were brought to the new lands. Canals were excavated. Roads were upgraded, and new ones were created. One hundred and eighty-seven school-550masters were sent into the region. Everywhere, there was plowing, ditching, and construction.

“As Frederick’s seven years’ struggle of war may be called superhuman, so was there also, in his present labor of peace, something enormous, which appeared to his contemporaries almost preternatural, at times inhuman. It was grand, but also terrible, that the success of the whole was to him, at all moments, the one thing to be striven after. The comfort of the individual was of no concern at all.”189

“As Frederick’s seven-year struggle in war could be seen as superhuman, his current efforts for peace also had an enormous quality that seemed almost unnatural to those around him, sometimes even inhumane. It was impressive, but also frightening, that his sole focus at all times was the success of the collective. The comfort of the individual didn’t matter at all.”189

The weal or woe of a single human polyp was, in the view of Frederick, entirely unimportant in comparison with the great enterprises he was ambitious of achieving. For this dismemberment of Poland Frederick was severely assailed in a book entitled “Polish Dialogues.” In answer to a letter from Voltaire, he wrote, under date of March 2, 1775:

The well-being or suffering of a single individual didn’t matter much to Frederick when compared to the grand goals he aimed to accomplish. He faced harsh criticism for the dismemberment of Poland in a book called “Polish Dialogues.” In response to a letter from Voltaire, he wrote on March 2, 1775:

“The ‘Polish Dialogues’ you speak of are not known to me. I think of such satires with Epictetus, ‘If they tell any truth of thee, correct thyself. If they are lies, laugh at them.’ I have learned, with years, to become a steady coach-horse. I do my stage like a diligent roadster, and pay no heed to the little dogs that will bark by the way.”

“The ‘Polish Dialogues’ you mentioned are unfamiliar to me. I think of those satirical words from Epictetus, ‘If they speak any truth about you, correct yourself. If they’re lies, just laugh them off.’ Over the years, I’ve learned to be a reliable workhorse. I perform my part like a careful driver and ignore the little dogs that bark along the way.”


CHAPTER XXXV.
LIFE'S FINAL ACTS.

Character of the Crown Prince.—Stratagem of the Emperor Joseph II.—Death of the Empress Catharine of Russia.—Matrimonial Alliance of Russia and Prussia.—Death of the King of Bavaria.—Attempt to Annex Bavaria to Austria.—Unexpected Energy of Frederick.—Court Intrigues.—Preparations for War.—Address to the Troops.—Declaration of War.—Terror in Vienna.—Irritability of Frederick.—Death of Voltaire.—Unjust Condemnation of the Judges.—Death of Maria Theresa.—Anecdote.—The King’s Fondness for Children.—His Fault-finding Spirit.—The King’s Appearance.—The Last Review.—Statement of Mirabeau.—Anecdote related by Dr. Moore.—Frederick’s Fondness for Dogs.—Increasing Weakness. —Unchanging Obduracy toward the Queen.—The Dying Scene.

Character of the Crown Prince.—Strategy of Emperor Joseph II.—Death of Empress Catherine of Russia.—Marriage Alliance between Russia and Prussia.—Death of the King of Bavaria.—Attempt to Annex Bavaria to Austria.—Unexpected Decision of Frederick.—Court Intrigues.—Preparations for War.—Address to the Troops.—Declaration of War.—Panic in Vienna.—Frederick's Irritability.—Death of Voltaire.—Unjust Judgment of the Judges.—Death of Maria Theresa.—Anecdote.—The King's Love for Children.—His Critical Nature.—The King's Appearance.—The Final Review.—Statement by Mirabeau.—Anecdote shared by Dr. Moore.—Frederick's Affection for Dogs.—Growing Weakness.—Unchanging Stubbornness towards the Queen.—The Dying Scene.

Toward the end of the year 1775 the king had an unusually severe attack of the gout. It was erroneously reported that it was a dangerous attack of the dropsy, and that he was manifestly drawing near to his end. The Crown Prince, who was to succeed him, was a man of very little character. The Emperor551 of Germany, Joseph II., thought the death of Frederick would present him an opportunity of regaining Silesia for Austria. The Austrian army was immediately put in motion and hurried to the frontiers of Silesia, to seize the province the moment the king should expire. This was openly done, and noised abroad. Much to the disappointment of the emperor, the king got well. Amidst much ridicule, the troops returned to their old quarters.190

Toward the end of 1775, the king had a particularly severe gout attack. It was mistakenly reported that it was a serious case of dropsy and that he was clearly nearing the end of his life. The Crown Prince, who was meant to take over, had very little character. The Emperor551 of Germany, Joseph II, believed Frederick's death would give him a chance to recover Silesia for Austria. The Austrian army was quickly mobilized and rushed to the Silesian borders to take control of the province as soon as the king died. This was done openly and became widely known. Much to the emperor's disappointment, the king recovered. Amid a lot of mockery, the troops returned to their previous bases.190

Frederick was probably not surprised at this act on the part of the emperor. He undoubtedly had sufficient candor to admit that it was exactly what he should have done under similar circumstances.

Frederick was likely not surprised by this action from the emperor. He probably had enough honesty to acknowledge that it was exactly what he would have done in the same situation.

Catharine of Russia had a son, Paul, her heir to the throne. It so chanced that she died just at the time Prince Henry of Prussia was visiting St. Petersburg. Through his agency Paul was induced to take as a second wife a niece of Frederick’s, the eldest daughter of Eugene of Würtemberg. Thus the ties between Russia and Prussia were still more strengthened, so far as matrimonial alliances could strengthen them. The wedding took place in Berlin on the 18th of October, 1776.

Catharine of Russia had a son, Paul, who was her heir to the throne. Coincidentally, she passed away just as Prince Henry of Prussia was visiting St. Petersburg. With his influence, Paul was persuaded to marry a niece of Frederick’s, the eldest daughter of Eugene of Würtemberg. This further strengthened the connections between Russia and Prussia, at least in terms of marriage alliances. The wedding happened in Berlin on October 18, 1776.

Several years now passed away with nothing specially worthy of record. Frederick did not grow more amiable as he advanced in years. Though Frederick was often unreasonable, petulant, and unjust, and would seldom admit that he had been in the wrong, however clear the case, it can not be doubted that it was his general and earnest desire that justice should be exercised in all his courts.

Several years passed with nothing particularly noteworthy to mention. Frederick didn't become any more pleasant as he got older. Even though Frederick was often unreasonable, irritable, and unfair, and rarely acknowledged when he was wrong, no matter how obvious it was, there's no doubt that he genuinely wanted justice to be upheld in all his courts.

In September, 1777, the King of Bavaria died. The emperor thought it a good opportunity to annex Bavaria to Austria. “Do but look on the map,” says Carlyle, in his peculiar style of thought and expression: “you would say, Austria without Bavaria is like a human figure with its belly belonging to somebody else. Bavaria is the trunk or belly of the Austrian dominions, shutting off all the limbs of them each from the other; making for central part a huge chasm.”

In September 1777, the King of Bavaria died. The emperor saw this as a great chance to annex Bavaria to Austria. “Just look at the map,” says Carlyle, in his unique way of thinking and expressing himself: “you’d think Austria without Bavaria is like a human figure with its belly belonging to someone else. Bavaria is the trunk or belly of the Austrian territories, separating all the limbs from one another; creating a huge gap in the central part.”

France would hardly object, since she was exhausted with long wars. England was busy in the struggle with her North American colonies. Russia was at war with the Turks. There was no power to be feared but Prussia.

France would hardly object, as she was worn out from long wars. England was occupied with her fight against the North American colonies. Russia was at war with the Turks. There was no power to fear except Prussia.

552 “Frederick,” said Kaunitz, “is old and broken. He can not live long. Having suffered so much, he has an absolute horror of war. We need not fear that he will again put his armies in motion.”

552 “Frederick,” said Kaunitz, “is old and frail. He can’t live much longer. After everything he’s been through, he has a deep aversion to war. We don’t need to worry about him mobilizing his armies again.”

But no sooner did Frederick get an intimation that Austria was contemplating this enlargement of her domains than he roused himself to prevent it with all the vigor of his earlier years. It was a very delicate matter; for Charles Theodore, the elector, and his nephew August Christian, heir to the electorate, a young gentleman of very illustrious pedigree, but of a very slender purse, had both been bribed by Austria secretly to co-operate in the movement. The reader will be interested in Carlyle’s account, slightly abbreviated, of Frederick’s skill in diplomacy:

But as soon as Frederick got wind that Austria was planning to expand its territory, he sprang into action to stop it with all the energy of his younger days. It was a very sensitive situation; Charles Theodore, the elector, and his nephew August Christian, the heir to the electorate—a young man from a distinguished family but with limited finances—had both been secretly bribed by Austria to support the initiative. Readers will find Carlyle’s brief account of Frederick’s diplomatic skills quite engaging:

“Heir is a gallant enough young gentleman. Frederick judges that he probably will have haggled to sign any Austrian convention for dismemberment of Baiern, and that he will start into life upon it so soon as he sees hope.

“Heir is a brave young man. Frederick thinks that he will probably have negotiated to sign any Austrian agreement for the division of Baiern, and that he will jump into action as soon as he sees a glimmer of hope.

“‘A messenger to him,’ thinks Frederick; ‘a messenger instantly; and who?’ For that clearly is the first thing. And a delicate thing it is; requiring to be done in profoundest secrecy, by hint and innuendo rather than speech—by somebody in a cloak of darkness, who is of adroit quality, and was never heard of in diplomatic circles before, not to be suspected of having business of mine on hand.

“‘A messenger for him,’ thinks Frederick; ‘a messenger right away; and who?’ Because that is definitely the first thing. And it's a tricky situation; it needs to be handled with the utmost secrecy, using hints and implications rather than direct speech—by someone shrouded in darkness, who has skills and who has never been seen in diplomatic circles before, so they won't be suspected of having my business at hand.

“Frederick bethinks him that in a late visit to Weimar he had noticed, for his fine qualities, a young gentleman named Görtz, late tutor to the young Duke Karl August, a wise, firm, adroit-looking young gentleman, who was farther interesting as brother to Lieutenant General Von Görtz, a respectable soldier of Frederick’s. Ex-tutor at Weimar, we say, and idle for the moment; hanging about court there, till he should find a new function.

“Frederick remembers that during a recent visit to Weimar, he noticed a young man named Görtz for his impressive qualities. Görtz had been the tutor to the young Duke Karl August—a smart, capable-looking guy who was also intriguing because he was the brother of Lieutenant General Von Görtz, a respected soldier of Frederick’s. We say he’s a former tutor at Weimar and currently without a job, just hanging around the court there until he finds a new position.”

“Of this ex-tutor Frederick bethinks him; and in the course of that same day—for there is no delay—Frederick, who is at Berlin, beckons General Görtz to come over to him from Potsdam instantly.

“Frederick remembers his former tutor; and later that same day—there’s no time to waste—Frederick, who is in Berlin, summons General Görtz to come over to him from Potsdam immediately.

“‘Hither this evening, and in all privacy meet me in the palace at such an hour’ (hour of midnight or thereby); which of553 course Görtz, duly invisible to mankind, does. Frederick explains: an errand to München; perfectly secret, for the moment, and requiring great delicacy and address; perhaps not without risk, a timorous man might say: will your brother go for me, think you? Görtz thinks he will.

“‘Come here this evening, and meet me in the palace at this hour’ (around midnight); which, of course, Görtz, undetected by anyone, does. Frederick explains: he has a mission to Munich; it’s completely confidential for now and needs a lot of finesse and skill; maybe not without some risk, a cautious person might say: do you think your brother will go for me? Görtz thinks he will.

“‘Here is his instruction, if so,’ adds the king, handing him an autograph of the necessary outline of procedure—not signed, nor with any credential, or even specific address, lest accident happen. ‘Adieu, then, herr general lieutenant; rule is, shoes of swiftness, cloak of darkness: adieu!’

“‘Here’s his instructions, if that’s the case,’ adds the king, giving him a handwritten note outlining the necessary steps—not signed, without any credentials, or even a specific address, to avoid any mishaps. ‘Goodbye, then, General Lieutenant; remember: swift shoes, cloak of darkness: goodbye!’”

“And Görtz senior is off on the instant, careering toward Weimar, where he finds Görtz junior, and makes known his errand. Görtz junior stares in the natural astonishment; but, after some intense brief deliberation, becomes affirmative, and in a minimum of time is ready and on the road.

“And Görtz senior is off right away, speeding toward Weimar, where he finds Görtz junior and explains his purpose. Görtz junior looks on in genuine surprise; but after a moment of quick thought, he agrees and soon gets ready to hit the road.”

“Görtz junior proved to have been an excellent choice on the king’s part, and came to good promotion afterward by his conduct in this affair. Görtz junior started for München on the instant, masked utterly, or his business masked, from profane eyes; saw this person, saw that, and glided swiftly about, swiftly and with sure aim; and speedily kindled the matter, and had smoke rising in various points. And before January was out, saw the Reisch-Diet, at Regensburg, much more the general gazetteerage every where, seized of this affair, and thrown into paroxysms at the size and complexion of it: saw, in fact, a world getting into flame—kindled by whom or what nobody could guess for a long time to come. Görtz had great running about in his cloak of darkness, and showed abundant talent of the kind needed. A pushing, clear-eyed, stout-hearted man; much cleverness and sureness in what he did and forebore to do. His adventures were manifold; he had much traveling about: was at Regensburg, at Mannheim; saw many persons whom he had to judge of on the instant, and speak frankly to, or speak darkly, or speak nothing; and he made no mistake.

Görtz junior turned out to be an excellent choice for the king, and he gained significant recognition afterward due to his actions in this matter. He immediately set off for Munich, completely masked, or rather, his purpose was concealed from prying eyes; he observed this person, then that one, moving swiftly and purposefully; and soon ignited the situation, creating smoke in various locations. By the end of January, he saw the Reich Diet in Regensburg, and the general public everywhere was caught up in this affair, thrown into a frenzy at its scale and nature: indeed, a world was igniting—sparked by someone or something nobody could identify for quite some time. Görtz was busy moving in his cloak of darkness, displaying a wealth of talent needed for the task. He was a driven, clear-eyed, courageous man; very clever and confident in both his actions and restraint. He encountered many adventures, traveled extensively: he was in Regensburg, in Mannheim; he met many people whom he had to assess quickly, engaging with them directly, cryptically, or not at all; and he made no errors.

“We can not afford the least narrative of Görtz and his courses: imagination, from a few traits, will sufficiently conceive them. He had gone first to Karl Theodor’s minister: ‘Dead to it, I fear; has already signed?’ Alas! yes. Upon which to Zweibrück, the heir’s minister, whom his master had distinctly ordered to sign,554 but who, at his own peril, gallant man, delayed, remonstrated, had not yet done it; and was able to answer:

“We can't bother with the full story of Görtz and his plans: a bit of imagination will be enough to understand them. He first approached Karl Theodor’s minister: ‘I’m afraid it’s too late; has he already signed?’ Unfortunately, yes. Then he went to Zweibrück, the heir’s minister, who his master had clearly instructed to sign,554 but who, bravely risking his position, hesitated and argued against it; he hadn't done it yet and was able to respond:

“‘Alive to it, he? Yes, with a witness, were there hope in the world!’ which threw Görtz upon instant gallop toward Zweibrück Schloss in search of said heir, the young Duke August Christian; who, however, had left in the interim (summoned by his uncle, on Austrian urgency, to consent along with him), but whom Görtz, by dexterity and intuition of symptoms, caught up by the road, with what a mutual joy! As had been expected, August Christian, on sight of Görtz, with an armed Frederick looming in the distance, took at once into new courses and activities. From him no consent now; far other: treaty with Frederick; flat refusal ever to consent: application to the Reich, application even to France, and whatever a gallant young fellow could do.

“‘He’s aware of it, is he? Yes, with a witness, if there’s any hope left in the world!’ This sent Görtz into a rapid gallop toward Zweibrück Schloss to find the heir, the young Duke August Christian; however, he had already left (called by his uncle at Austria's urgent request to agree with him), but Görtz, through skill and instinct, caught up with him on the road, and what a shared joy it was! As expected, when August Christian saw Görtz, with an armed Frederick in the distance, he immediately shifted to new plans and actions. No agreement from him now; rather, a deal with Frederick; a complete refusal to consent: an appeal to the Reich, even an appeal to France, and whatever a brave young man could do.

“Frederick was in very weak health in these months; still considered by the gazetteers to be dying. But it appears he is not yet too weak for taking, on the instant necessary, a world-important resolution; and of being on the road with it, to this issue or to that, at full speed before the day closed. ‘Desist, good neighbor, I beseech you. You must desist, and even you shall:’ this resolution was entirely his own, as were the equally prompt arrangements he contrived for executing it, should hard come to hard, and Austria prefer war to doing justice.”191

“Frederick was in really poor health during these months; still viewed by the news writers as close to death. But it seems he isn't too weak to make a crucial, world-changing decision on the spot and to be on the move with it, racing towards this or that outcome before the day ended. ‘Please stop, good neighbor. I beg you. You have to stop, and you will:’ this decision was entirely his own, just like the quick plans he made to carry it out, should things turn serious and Austria choose war over justice.”191

While pushing these intrigues of diplomacy, Frederick was equally busy in marshaling his armies, that the sword might contribute its energies to the enforcement of his demands. One hundred thousand troops were assembled in Berlin, in the highest state of discipline and equipment, ready to march at a moment’s warning.

While working on these diplomatic intrigues, Frederick was also focused on organizing his armies, ensuring that military force could back up his demands. One hundred thousand troops were gathered in Berlin, fully disciplined and equipped, ready to mobilize at a moment's notice.

On Sunday, April 5, 1778, Frederick reviewed these troops, and addressed his officers in a speech, which was published in the newspapers to inform Austria what she had to expect. Eager as Frederick was to enlarge his own dominions, he was by no means disposed to grant the same privilege to other and rival nations. The address of Frederick to his officers was in reality a declaration to the Austrian court.

On Sunday, April 5, 1778, Frederick reviewed these troops and spoke to his officers in a speech that was published in the newspapers to let Austria know what to expect. As eager as Frederick was to expand his own territories, he was by no means willing to give the same opportunity to other rival nations. Frederick's address to his officers was essentially a message to the Austrian court.

“Gentlemen,” said Frederick, “I have assembled you here for a555 public object. Most of you, like myself, have often been in arms with one another, and are grown gray in the service of our country. To all of us is well known in what dangers, toils, and renown we have been fellow-sharers. I doubt not in the least that all of you, as myself, have a horror of bloodshed; but the danger which now threatens our countries not only renders it a duty, but puts us in the absolute necessity, to adopt the quickest and most effectual means for dissipating at the right time the storm which threatens to break out upon us.

“Gentlemen,” Frederick said, “I’ve gathered you here for an important reason. Most of you, like me, have often been at odds with each other, and we’ve grown old serving our country. We all know the dangers, struggles, and honors we’ve shared together. I have no doubt that all of you, like me, dread violence; however, the threat facing our nations demands that we take swift and effective action to prevent the storm that’s about to hit us.”

“I depend with complete confidence on your soldierly and patriotic zeal, which is already well and gloriously known to me, and which, while I live, I will acknowledge with the heartiest satisfaction. Before all things I recommend to you, and prescribe as your most sacred duty, that in every situation you exercise humanity on unarmed enemies. In this respect, let there be the strictest discipline kept among those under you.

“I fully trust in your dedication as a soldier and your patriotic spirit, which I already know well and admire greatly, and which I will always recognize with the utmost appreciation as long as I live. Above all, I urge you and firmly state as your most important duty that in every situation you show compassion towards unarmed enemies. In this regard, please maintain the highest level of discipline among those you lead.”

“To travel with the pomp of a king is not among my wishes, and all of you are aware that I have no pleasure in rich field-furniture; but my increasing age, and the weakness it brings, render me incapable of riding as I did in my youth. I shall, therefore, be obliged to make use of a post-chaise in times of marching, and all of you have liberty to do the same. But on the day of battle you shall see me on horseback; and there, also, I hope my generals will follow that example.”

“To travel with kingly pomp isn’t something I desire, and you all know I don’t take pleasure in extravagant gear; however, my age and the weaknesses that come with it make it impossible for me to ride like I used to in my younger days. Therefore, I will have to use a post-chaise during marches, and you are all free to do the same. But on the day of battle, you will see me on horseback; and I hope my generals will follow suit there as well.”

Kaunitz, the Austrian prime minister, was by no means prepared for this decisive action. In less than a week Frederick had one hundred thousand soldiers on the frontiers. Austria had not ten thousand there to meet them. Kaunitz, quite alarmed, assumed a supplicatory tone, and called for negotiation.

Kaunitz, the Austrian prime minister, was definitely not ready for this bold move. In less than a week, Frederick had gathered a hundred thousand soldiers at the borders. Austria had fewer than ten thousand there to confront them. Kaunitz, feeling quite worried, took on a pleading tone and requested negotiations.

“Must there be war?” he said. “I am your majesty’s friend. Can we not, in mutual concession, find agreement?”

“Does there have to be war?” he asked. “I’m your majesty’s friend. Can we not come to an agreement through mutual compromise?”

The result was a congress of three persons, two Prussians and one Austrian, which congress met at Berlin on the 24th of May, 1778. For two months they deliberated. The Austrians improved the delay in making very vigorous preparations for war. Frederick really wished to avoid the war, for he had seen enough of the woes of battle. They could come to no agreement.

The outcome was a meeting of three people, two from Prussia and one from Austria, which took place in Berlin on May 24, 1778. They spent two months discussing the situation. Meanwhile, the Austrians took advantage of the delay to make strong preparations for war. Frederick truly wanted to steer clear of conflict, as he had witnessed enough of the suffering that comes with battle. They were unable to reach any agreement.

On the 3d of July Frederick issued his declaration of war. On that very day his solid battalions, one hundred thousand556 strong, with menacing banners and defiant bugle-notes, crossed the border, and encamped on Bohemian ground. At the same moment, the king’s brother, Prince Henry, with another army of one hundred thousand men, commenced a march from the west to co-operate in an impetuous rush upon Vienna. These tidings caused the utmost consternation in the Austrian capital. An eye-witness writes:

On July 3rd, Frederick declared war. That same day, his strong battalions, numbering one hundred thousand556, marched across the border with threatening banners and defiant bugle calls, setting up camp on Bohemian soil. At the same time, the king's brother, Prince Henry, led another army of one hundred thousand men from the west to join in a fierce attack on Vienna. This news caused panic in the Austrian capital. An eyewitness writes:

“The terror in Vienna was dreadful. I will not attempt to describe the dismay the tidings excited among all ranks of people. Maria Theresa, trembling for her two sons who were in the army, immediately dispatched an autograph letter to Frederick with new proposals for a negotiation.”

“The fear in Vienna was terrible. I won’t try to describe the panic the news caused among all groups of people. Maria Theresa, worried for her two sons who were in the army, quickly sent an handwritten letter to Frederick with new proposals for a negotiation.”

Frederick had not grown old gracefully. He was domineering, soured, and irritable, finding fault with every body and every thing. As his troops were getting into camp at Jaromirtz on the 8th of July, the king, weary with riding, threw himself upon the ground for a little rest, his adjutants being near him. A young officer was riding by. Frederick beckoned to him, and wrote, with his pencil, an order of not the slightest importance, and said to the officer, aloud, in the hearing of all, purposely to wound their feelings,

Frederick had not aged well. He was overbearing, bitter, and irritable, constantly criticizing everyone and everything. As his troops were settling in at Jaromirtz on July 8th, the king, tired from riding, lay down on the ground to rest for a moment, with his adjutants nearby. A young officer rode by. Frederick called him over and wrote an order with his pencil that was completely unimportant, then said to the officer, loud enough for everyone to hear, intentionally to hurt their feelings,

“Here, take that order to General Lossow, and tell him that he is not to take it ill that I trouble him, as I have none in my suite that can do any thing.” It often seemed to give Frederick pleasure, and never pain, to wound the feelings of others.

“Here, take that order to General Lossow, and tell him not to be upset that I’m bothering him, since I have no one in my group who can do it.” It often seemed to give Frederick pleasure, and never discomfort, to hurt the feelings of others.

“On arriving with his column,” writes General Schmettau, “where the officer—a perfectly skillful man—had marked out the camp, the king would lift his spy-glass, gaze to right and left, riding round the place at perhaps a hundred yards distance, and begin, ‘Look here, sir, what a botching you have made of it again!’

“Upon arriving with his group,” writes General Schmettau, “where the officer—a truly skilled man—had set up the camp, the king would raise his spyglass, look to the right and left, riding around the area at maybe a hundred yards away, and start, ‘Look here, sir, what a mess you’ve made of it again!’”

“And then, grumbling and blaming, would alter the camp till it was all out of rule, and then say,

“And then, complaining and pointing fingers, would change the camp until everything was a mess, and then say,

“‘See there; that is the way to mark out camps.’”192

“‘Look there; that’s how you set up camps.’”192

Through the efforts of Maria Theresa there was another brief conference, but it amounted to nothing. Neither party wished for war. But Austria craved the annexation of Bavaria, and Frederick was determined that Austria should not thus be enlarged.557 Thus the summer passed away in unavailing diplomacy and in equally unavailing military manœuvrings. While engaged in these adventures, Frederick received the tidings of the death of Voltaire, who breathed his last on the 20th of May, 1778. The soul of Frederick was too much seared by life’s stern conflicts to allow him to manifest, or probably to feel, any emotion on the occasion. He, however, wrote a eulogy upon the renowned littérateur, which, though written by a royal pen, attracted but little attention.

Thanks to Maria Theresa's efforts, there was another short conference, but it led to nothing. Neither side wanted war. However, Austria desired to annex Bavaria, and Frederick was determined to prevent that from happening.557 So the summer passed with ineffective diplomacy and futile military maneuvers. While involved in these activities, Frederick learned of Voltaire's death, which occurred on May 20, 1778. Frederick's soul was too hardened by life's harsh battles to show, or likely even feel, any emotion about it. Nonetheless, he wrote a tribute to the famous writer, which, despite being penned by a king, garnered little attention.

During the winter Russia and France interposed in behalf of peace. The belligerents agreed to submit the question to their decision. Austria was permitted to take a small slice of Bavaria, and for a time the horrors of war were averted.

During the winter, Russia and France stepped in for the sake of peace. The fighting parties agreed to let them decide the issue. Austria was allowed to take a small piece of Bavaria, and for a while, the terrors of war were avoided.

Soon after this an event occurred very characteristic of the king—an event which conspicuously displayed both his good and bad qualities. A miller was engaged in a lawsuit against a nobleman. The decree of the court, after a very careful examination, was unanimously in favor of the nobleman; the king, who had impulsively formed a different opinion of the case, was greatly exasperated. He summoned the four judges before him, denounced them in the severest terms of vituperation, would listen to no defense, and dismissed them angrily from office.

Soon after this, an event happened that was very typical of the king—one that clearly showed both his good and bad traits. A miller was in a lawsuit against a nobleman. After a thorough review, the court's decision was unanimously in favor of the nobleman; the king, who had hastily formed a different opinion about the case, was extremely frustrated. He called the four judges to him, criticized them in the harshest terms, refused to listen to any defense, and angrily dismissed them from their positions.

“May a miller,” he exclaimed, fiercely, “who has no water, and consequently can not grind, have his mill taken from him? Is that just? Here is a nobleman wishing to make a fish-pond. To get more water for his pond, he has a ditch dug to draw into it a small stream which drives a water-mill. Thereby the miller loses his water, and can not grind. Yet, in spite of this, it is pretended that the miller shall pay his rent, quite the same as at the time when he had full water for his mill. Of course he can not pay his rent. His incomings are gone.

“Can a miller,” he shouted, angrily, “who has no water and therefore can't grind, have his mill taken away from him? Is that fair? Here’s a nobleman planning to create a fish pond. To get more water for his pond, he digs a ditch to divert a small stream that powers a water mill. Because of this, the miller loses his water and can’t grind. Yet, somehow it’s expected that the miller will pay his rent just like when he had plenty of water for his mill. Of course he can't pay his rent. His income is gone.”

“And what does the court of Cüstrin do? It orders the mill to be sold, that the nobleman may have his rent! Go you, sir,” addressing the grand chancellor, “about your business, this instant. Your successor is appointed; with you I have nothing more to do.” The other three were assailed in the same way, but still more vehemently, as the king’s wrath flamed higher and higher. “Out of my sight,” he exclaimed at last; “I will make an example of you which shall be remembered.”

“And what does the court of Cüstrin do? It orders the mill to be sold so the nobleman can get his rent! You, sir,” he said to the grand chancellor, “go handle your business right now. Your replacement is appointed; I have nothing more to discuss with you.” The other three were treated the same way, but even more harshly, as the king's anger intensified. “Get out of my sight,” he finally shouted; “I'll make an example of you that everyone will remember.”

558

558

CONDEMNATION OF THE JUDGES.

The next day, December 11, 1779, the king issued the following protocol in the newspapers:

The next day, December 11, 1779, the king published the following protocol in the newspapers:

“The king’s desire always was and is that every body, be he high or low, rich or poor, get prompt justice. Wherefore, in respect to this most unjust sentence against the miller Arnold, pronounced in the Neumark, and confirmed here in Berlin, his majesty will establish an emphatic example, to the end that all559 the courts of justice in the king’s provinces may take warning thereby, and not commit the like glaring unjust acts. For let them bear in mind that the least peasant, yea, what is still more, that even a beggar, is, no less than his majesty, a human being, and one to whom due justice must be meted out. All men being equal before the law, if it is a prince complaining against a peasant, or vice versa, the prince is the same as the peasant before the law.

The king has always wanted everyone, whether high or low, rich or poor, to receive prompt justice. Therefore, regarding the unjust sentence against the miller Arnold, handed down in Neumark and upheld here in Berlin, His Majesty will set a strong example so that all the courts in the king’s provinces take heed and avoid making such blatant unjust decisions. They should remember that even the lowest peasant, or even a beggar, is just as much a human being as His Majesty, and deserves to receive proper justice. Everyone is equal before the law, whether it’s a prince complaining about a peasant or the other way around; both are treated the same before the law.

“Let the courts take this for their rule; and whenever they do not carry out justice in a straightforward manner, without any regard of person and rank, they shall have to answer to his majesty for it.”

“Let the courts use this as their rule; and whenever they fail to administer justice in a direct way, without considering individuals' status or rank, they will have to answer to his majesty for it.”

The discarded judges were arrested, imprisoned for a year, and fined a sum of money equal to the supposed loss of the miller. In this case the judges had heard both sides of the question, and the king but one side. The question had been justly decided. The case was so clear that the new judges appointed by the king, being conscientious men, could not refrain from sustaining the verdict. Still the king, who would never admit that he was in the wrong, ordered no redress for those who had thus suffered for righteousness sake. After Frederick’s death the court compelled the miller to refund the money which had been so unjustly extorted for damages.

The removed judges were arrested, spent a year in prison, and were fined an amount equal to the alleged loss of the miller. In this case, the judges heard both sides of the argument, while the king only heard one. The matter was decided fairly. The case was so obvious that the new judges appointed by the king, being principled individuals, couldn’t help but uphold the verdict. However, the king, who would never admit he was wrong, provided no compensation for those who had suffered for doing the right thing. After Frederick’s death, the court forced the miller to repay the money that had been unjustly taken for damages.

On the 29th of November, 1780, Maria Theresa died. The extraordinary character which she had developed through life was equally manifested in the hour of death. She died of congestion of the lungs, which created a painful and suffocating difficulty of breathing. Her struggles for breath rendered it impossible for her to lie upon the bed. Bolstered in her chair, she leaned her head back as if inclined to sleep.

On November 29, 1780, Maria Theresa passed away. The remarkable strength she had shown throughout her life was evident even in her final moments. She died from lung congestion, which made it painful and difficult for her to breathe. Her struggles to get air made it impossible for her to lie on the bed. Propped up in her chair, she leaned her head back as if she were about to fall asleep.

“Will your majesty sleep, then?” inquired an attendant.

“Will your majesty be going to sleep, then?” asked an attendant.

“No,” the empress replied; “I could sleep, but I must not. Death is too near. He must not steal upon me. These fifteen years I have been making ready for him; I will meet him awake.”

“No,” the empress said; “I could sleep, but I can’t. Death is too close. He must not catch me off guard. For the past fifteen years, I’ve been preparing for him; I will face him awake.”

For fifteen years she had been a mourning widow. Her husband had died on the 18th of August. The 18th day of every month had since then been a day of solitary prayer. On the 18th of every August she descended into the tomb, and sat for560 a season engaged in prayer by the side of the mouldering remains of her spouse.

For fifteen years, she had been a grieving widow. Her husband had passed away on August 18th. Since then, the 18th day of every month had become a day of solitary prayer for her. Every August 18th, she would go down into the tomb and spend some time in prayer next to the decaying remains of her spouse.

MARIA THERESA AT THE TOMB OF HER HUSBAND.

The Emperor Joseph had been embarrassed in his ambitious plans by the conscientious scruples of his mother. He now entered into a secret alliance with the Czarina Catharine, by which he engaged to assist her in her advance to Constantinople, while she, in her turn, was to aid him in his encroachments and annexations to establish an empire in the West as magnificent as the czarina hoped to establish in the East.

The Emperor Joseph felt held back in his ambitious plans by his mother's strong morals. He secretly teamed up with Czarina Catherine, agreeing to support her move towards Constantinople, while she would help him expand and annex territories to create a Western empire as impressive as the one she aimed to build in the East.

Delighted with this plan, and sanguine in the hope of its successful accomplishment, the czarina named her next grandson Constantine. Austria and Russia thus became allied, with all their sympathies hostile to Frederick. Old age and infirmities were stealing upon the king apace. Among the well-authenticated561 anecdotes related of him, the following is given by Carlyle:

Delighted with this plan and optimistic about its success, the czarina named her next grandson Constantine. Austria and Russia thus became allies, with all their sympathies against Frederick. The king was quickly succumbing to old age and health issues. Among the well-documented anecdotes about him, the following is shared by Carlyle:

“Loss of time was one of the losses Frederick could least stand. In visits, even from his brothers and sisters, which were always by his own express invitation, he would say some morning (call it Tuesday morning), ‘You are going on Wednesday, I am sorry to hear’ (what you never heard before). ‘Alas! your majesty, we must.’ ‘Well, I am sorry; but I will lay no constraint on you. Pleasant moments can not last forever.’ This trait is in the anecdote-books; but its authenticity does not rest on that uncertain basis. Singularly enough, it comes to me individually, by two clear stages, from Frederick’s sister, the Duchess of Brunswick, who, if any body, would know it well.”

“Frederick couldn’t stand wasting time. During visits, even from his brothers and sisters, which he always invited, he would say one morning (let’s say Tuesday morning), ‘You’re leaving on Wednesday? I’m sorry to hear that’ (which you never heard before). ‘Oh dear! Your majesty, we have to.’ ‘Well, I’m sorry; but I won’t hold you back. Good times can’t last forever.’ This detail is in the anecdote books; but its accuracy doesn’t rely on that shaky ground. Interestingly, it comes to me directly, in two clear parts, from Frederick’s sister, the Duchess of Brunswick, who, if anyone would know, certainly would.”

We have often spoken of the entire neglect with which the king treated his virtuous and amiable queen. Preuss relates the following incident:

We have often talked about how completely the king ignored his virtuous and kind queen. Preuss shares this story:

“When the king, after the Seven Years’ War, now and then in carnival season dined with the queen in her apartments, he usually said not a word to her. He merely, on entering, on sitting down at table, and leaving it, made the customary bows, and sat opposite to her. Once the queen was ill of gout. The table was in her apartments, but she was not there. She sat in an easy-chair in the drawing-room. On this occasion the king stepped up to the queen and inquired about her health. The circumstance occasioned among the company present, and all over the town, as the news spread, great wonder and sympathy. This is probably the last time he ever spoke to her.”193

“When the king, after the Seven Years’ War, occasionally dined with the queen in her rooms during carnival season, he usually didn’t say a word to her. He just bowed when he entered, sat down at the table, and bowed again when he left, sitting across from her. One time, the queen had gout. The table was set in her rooms, but she wasn’t there; she was in an easy chair in the drawing room. On this occasion, the king went up to the queen and asked how she was feeling. This surprise caused quite a stir among the guests and everyone in town as the news spread, generating a lot of wonder and sympathy. This was probably the last time he ever spoke to her.”193

“The king was fond of children; he liked to have his grand-nephews about him. One day, while the king sat at work in his cabinet, the younger of the two, a boy of eight or nine, was playing ball about the room, and knocked it once and again into the king’s writing operation, who twice or oftener flung it back to him, but next time put it in his pocket, and went on. ‘Please your majesty, give it me back,’ begged the boy, and again begged: majesty took no notice; continued writing. Till at length came, in the tone of indignation, ‘Will your majesty give me my ball, then?’ The king looked up; found the little Hohenzollern planted firm, hands on haunches, and wearing quite a peremptory562 air. ‘Thou art a brave little fellow. They won’t get Silesia out of thee?’ cried he, laughing, and flinging him his ball.”194

“The king loved children; he enjoyed having his grand-nephews around him. One day, while the king was working in his office, the younger of the two, a boy about eight or nine, was playing ball in the room. He accidentally knocked it into the king’s writing area a couple of times, and the king threw it back to him more than once. But the next time, he just pocketed it and continued working. ‘Please, your majesty, give it back to me,’ the boy pleaded, asking again. The king ignored him and kept writing. Finally, in an indignant tone, the boy asked, ‘Will your majesty give me my ball then?’ The king looked up and saw the little Hohenzollern standing firm, hands on his hips, with a rather commanding expression. ‘You’re a brave little guy. They won’t get Silesia out of you, will they?’ he laughed, tossing the ball back to him.”562

The fault-finding character of the king, and his intense devotion to perfecting his army, both increased with his advancing years. After one of his reviews of the troops in Silesia, in the year 1784, he wrote in the following severe strain to the commanding general:

The king's critical nature and his strong commitment to improving his army both grew as he got older. After one of his inspections of the troops in Silesia in 1784, he wrote the following harsh letter to the commanding general:

“Potsdam, September 7, 1784.

“Potsdam, September 7, 1784.

My dear General,—While in Silesia I mentioned to you, and will now repeat in writing, that my army in Silesia was at no time so bad as at present. Were I to make shoemakers or tailors into generals, the regiments could not be worse. Regiment Thadden is not fit to be the most insignificant militia battalion of a Prussian army. Of the regiment Erlach, the men are so spoiled by smuggling they have no resemblance to soldiers; Keller is like a heap of undrilled boors; Hager has a miserable commander; and your own regiment is very mediocre. Only with Graf Von Anhalt, with Wendessen, and Markgraf Heinrich could I be content. See you, that is the state I found the regiments in, one after one. I will now speak of their manœuvring.

My dear General,—While I was in Silesia, I told you, and I’ll now write it down, that my army in Silesia has never been in such bad shape as it is now. If I were to make shoemakers or tailors into generals, the regiments couldn’t be any worse. Regiment Thadden isn’t fit to be the most insignificant militia battalion in a Prussian army. The men in Regiment Erlach are so spoiled by smuggling that they don't even resemble soldiers; Keller is just a bunch of untrained peasants; Hager has a terrible commander; and your own regiment is pretty average. The only ones I could be satisfied with are Graf Von Anhalt, Wendessen, and Markgraf Heinrich. That’s the condition I found the regiments in, one after another. Now, I’ll talk about their maneuvering.

“Schwartz, at Neisse, made the unpardonable mistake of not sufficiently besetting the height on the left wing; had it been serious, the battle had been lost. At Breslau, Erlach, instead of covering the army by seizing the heights, marched off with his division straight as a row of cabbages into that defile; whereby, had it been earnest, the enemy’s cavalry would have cut down our infantry, and the fight was gone.

“Schwartz, at Neisse, made the unforgivable mistake of not properly securing the high ground on the left flank; if it had been a serious issue, the battle would have been lost. At Breslau, Erlach, instead of protecting the army by taking the heights, marched his division straight into that narrow pass like a line of cabbages; if it had been serious, the enemy's cavalry would have wiped out our infantry, and we would have lost the fight.”

“It is not my purpose to lose battles by the base conduct of my generals; wherefore I hereby appoint that you, next year, if I be alive, assemble the army between Breslau and Ohlau; for four days before I arrive in your camp, carefully manœuvre with the ignorant generals, and teach them what their duty is. Regiment Von Arnim and regiment Von Kanitz are to act the enemy; and whoever does not then fulfill his duty shall go to court-martial; for I should think it a shame of any country to keep such people, who trouble themselves so little about their business.”

“It’s not my intention to lose battles due to the poor actions of my generals; therefore, I’m appointing you to gather the army next year between Breslau and Ohlau, if I’m still alive. For four days before I reach your camp, work closely with the unaware generals and teach them their responsibilities. The Von Arnim regiment and the Von Kanitz regiment will act as the enemy; anyone who doesn’t fulfill their duty will face court-martial. I believe it’s shameful for any country to keep people who care so little about their responsibilities.”

563 The king seemed to think it effeminate and a disgrace to him as a soldier ever to appear in a carriage. He never drove, but constantly rode from Berlin to Potsdam. In the winter of 1785, when he was quite feeble, he wished to go from Sans Souci, which was exposed to bleak winds, and where they had only hearth fires, to more comfortable winter quarters in the new palace. The weather was stormy. After waiting a few days for such a change as would enable him to go on horseback, and the cold and wind increasing, he was taken over in a sedan-chair in the night, when no one could see him.

563 The king thought it was unmanly and a disgrace for him as a soldier to ever be seen in a carriage. He never drove but always rode from Berlin to Potsdam. In the winter of 1785, when he was quite weak, he wanted to move from Sans Souci, which was exposed to harsh winds and only had fireplace heating, to more comfortable winter quarters in the new palace. The weather was stormy. After waiting a few days for conditions to improve so he could travel on horseback, and with the cold and wind getting worse, he was transported in a sedan chair at night when no one could see him.

In August, 1785, the king again visited Silesia to review his troops. A private letter, quoted by Carlyle, gives an interesting view of his appearance at the time:

In August 1785, the king visited Silesia once more to inspect his troops. A private letter, quoted by Carlyle, provides an interesting perspective on his appearance at that time:

“He passed through Hirschberg on the 18th of August. A concourse of many thousands had been waiting for him several hours. Outriders came at last; then he himself, the unique; and, with the liveliest expression of reverence and love, all eyes were directed on one point. I can not describe to you my feelings, which, of course, were those of every body, to see him, the aged king; in his weak hand the hat; in those grand eyes such a fatherly benignity of look over the vast crowd that encircled his carriage, and rolled tide-like, accompanying it. Looking round, I saw in various eyes a tear trembling.

“He passed through Hirschberg on August 18th. A crowd of thousands had been waiting for him for several hours. Finally, the outriders arrived, and then he himself, the one and only; with an overwhelming sense of reverence and love, all eyes were focused on him. I can’t describe my feelings, which mirrored those of everyone else, seeing him, the aging king; with his frail hand holding his hat; in those grand eyes, such a fatherly kindness shining down over the vast crowd that surrounded his carriage, moving like a wave in rhythm with it. Looking around, I noticed tears glistening in different eyes.”

“His affability, his kindliness, to whoever had the honor of speech with this great king, who shall describe it! After talking a good while with the merchants’ deputation from the hill country, he said, ‘Is there any thing more, then, from any body?’ Upon which the president stepped forward and said, ‘The burned-out inhabitants of Greiffenberg have charged me to express once more their most submissive gratitude for the gracious help in rebuilding; their word of thanks is indeed of no importance; but they daily pray God to reward such royal beneficence.’ The king was visibly affected, and said, ‘You don’t need to thank me; when my subjects fall into misfortune, it is my duty to help them up again; for that reason am I here.’”

“His friendliness and warmth towards anyone lucky enough to speak with this great king—who could truly describe it? After chatting for some time with the merchants' delegation from the hill country, he asked, ‘Is there anything else from anyone?’ The president stepped forward and said, ‘The displaced people of Greiffenberg have asked me to express their heartfelt gratitude for your generous support in rebuilding. Their thanks may not carry much weight, but they pray daily for God to reward such royal kindness.’ The king was visibly moved and replied, ‘You don’t need to thank me; when my subjects face misfortune, it’s my duty to help them rebuild. That’s why I’m here.’”

On Monday, the 22d of August, the great review commenced near Strehlen. It lasted four days. All the country mansions around were filled with strangers who had come to witness the spectacle.

On Monday, August 22nd, the big review began near Strehlen. It went on for four days. All the nearby country houses were filled with visitors who came to see the event.

564 “The sure fact, and the forever memorable, is that on Wednesday, the third day of it, from four in the morning, when the manœuvres began, till well after ten o’clock, when they ended, there was rain like Noah’s; rain falling as from buckets and water-spouts; and that Frederick, so intent upon his business, paid not the slightest regard to it, but rode about, intensely inspecting, in lynx-eyed watchfulness of every thing, as if no rain had been there. Was not at the pains even to put on his cloak. Six hours of such down-pour; and a weakly old man of seventy-three past! Of course he was wetted to the bone. On returning to head-quarters, his boots were found full of water; ‘when pulled off, it came pouring from them like a pair of pails.’”195

564 “The undeniable fact, and one that will always be remembered, is that on Wednesday, the third day of it, starting from four in the morning when the maneuvers began, until well after ten o’clock when they ended, it rained heavily, like during Noah’s time; rain pouring down as if from buckets and water spouts; and Frederick, completely focused on his work, paid no attention to it at all, riding around and closely inspecting everything with keen watchfulness, as if the rain wasn’t even happening. He didn’t even bother to put on his cloak. Six hours of such downpour; and a frail old man of seventy-three! Naturally, he was soaked to the bone. When he returned to headquarters, his boots were filled with water; ‘when pulled off, it poured out like a couple of buckets.’”195

THE LAST REVIEW.

Lafayette, Lord Cornwallis, and the Duke of York were his565 guests at the dinner-table that day. The king suffered from his exposure, was very feverish, and at an early hour went to bed. The next day he completed his review; and the next day “went—round by Neisse, inspection not to be omitted there, though it doubles the distance—to Brieg, a drive of eighty miles, inspection work included.”196

Lafayette, Lord Cornwallis, and the Duke of York were his565 guests at the dinner table that day. The king was feeling unwell from being out in the cold, was quite feverish, and went to bed early. The next day he finished his review; and the day after that “went—around by Neisse, inspections couldn’t be skipped there, even though it doubles the distance—to Brieg, a drive of eighty miles, inspection work included.”196

From this exhausting journey for so old a man the king returned to Potsdam through a series of state dinners, balls, and illuminations. On the night of the 18th of September he was awoke by a very severe fit of suffocation. It was some time before he could get any relief, and it was thought that he was dying. The next day gout set in severely. This was followed by dropsy. The king suffered severely through the winter. There is no royal road through the sick-chamber to the tomb. The weary months of pain and languor came and went. The renowned Mirabeau visited the king in his sick-chamber on the 17th of April, 1786. He writes:

From this exhausting journey for a man of his age, the king returned to Potsdam through a series of state dinners, balls, and illuminations. On the night of September 18th, he was suddenly woken by a severe choking fit. It took a while for him to find relief, and many thought he was dying. The next day, he was hit hard by gout, followed by dropsy. The king endured intense suffering throughout the winter. There’s no easy path from the sickroom to the grave. The long months of pain and weakness came and went. The famous Mirabeau visited the king in his sickroom on April 17th, 1786. He writes:

“My dialogue with the king was very lively; but the king was in such suffering, and so straitened for breath, I was myself anxious to shorten it. That same evening I traveled on.”

“My conversation with the king was really engaging; however, the king was in so much pain and struggling to breathe that I felt the urge to cut it short. That evening, I continued my journey.”

That same evening Marie Antoinette wrote from Versailles to her sister Christine at Brussels:

That same evening, Marie Antoinette wrote from Versailles to her sister Christine in Brussels:

“The King of Prussia is thought to be dying. I am weary of the political discussions on this subject as to what effects his death must produce. He is better at this moment, but so weak he can not resist long. Physique is gone. But his force and energy of soul, they say, have often supported him, and in desperate crises have even seemed to increase. Liking to him I never had. His ostentatious immorality has much hurt public virtue, and there have been related to me barbarities which excite horror.

“The King of Prussia is believed to be dying. I’m tired of all the political debates about what his death will mean. He’s doing a bit better right now, but he’s so weak he can’t hold on for much longer. His health is failing. However, people say that his strength and determination have often pulled him through tough times, and in desperate situations, he has even seemed to thrive. I've never had any fondness for him. His blatant immorality has significantly damaged public morality, and I've heard horrific stories about his brutal actions.”

“He has done us all a great deal of ill. He has been king for his own country, but a trouble-feast for those about him—setting up to be the arbiter of Europe, always assailing his neighbors, and making them pay the expense. As daughters of Maria Theresa, it is impossible we can regret him; nor is it the court of France that will make his funeral oration.”197

“He has caused us all a lot of trouble. He has been king in his own country, but a headache for everyone around him—trying to be the judge of Europe, constantly attacking his neighbors, and forcing them to bear the costs. As daughters of Maria Theresa, we certainly can’t regret him; nor will the court of France deliver his eulogy.”197

The Prince of Ligne, a very accomplished courtier, about this566 time visited the sick and dying king. During his brief stay he dined daily with the king, and spent his evenings with him. In an interesting account which he gives of these interviews, he writes:

The Prince of Ligne, a very skilled courtier, during this566 time visited the sick and dying king. During his short stay, he had dinner with the king every day and spent his evenings with him. In an intriguing account he provides of these meetings, he writes:

“Daily for five hours the universality of his conversation completed my enchantment at his powers. The arts, war, medicine, literature, religion, philosophy, morality, history, and legislation passed in review by turns. The great times of Augustus and Louis XIV.; the good society among the Romans, the Greeks, and the French; the chivalry of Francis I.; the valor of Henry IV.; the revival of letters, and their changes since Leo X.; anecdotes of men of talent of former days, and their errors; the eccentricities of Voltaire; the sensitive vanity of Maupertuis; the agreeableness of Algarotti; the wit of Jordan; the hypochondriacism of the Marquis D’Argens, whom the king used to induce to keep his bed for four-and-twenty hours by merely telling him he looked ill—and what not besides? All that could be said of the most varied and agreeable kind was what came from him, in a gentle tone of voice, rather low, and very agreeable from his manner of moving his lips, which possessed an inexpressible grace.”198

“Every day for five hours, his diverse conversation captivated me with his abilities. He covered topics like art, war, medicine, literature, religion, philosophy, morality, history, and law, each in turn. We discussed the great eras of Augustus and Louis XIV., the refined societies of the Romans, Greeks, and French, the chivalry of Francis I., the bravery of Henry IV., the revival of literature since Leo X., and the stories of talented individuals from the past and their mistakes. We talked about Voltaire's eccentricities, the sensitive pride of Maupertuis, the charm of Algarotti, the humor of Jordan, and the hypochondria of the Marquis D’Argens, whom the king could keep in bed for a whole day just by saying he looked unwell—and so much more! Everything that could be expressed in the most diverse and pleasant way came from him, in a soft, low tone that was made even more pleasant by the graceful way he moved his lips.”198

Dr. Moore gives the following account of a surprising scene, considering that the king was an infirm and suffering man seventy-three years of age:

Dr. Moore describes a surprising scene, especially when you consider that the king was a frail and ailing man at seventy-three years old:

“A few days ago I happened to take a very early walk about a mile from Potsdam, and seeing some soldiers under arms in a field at a small distance from the road, I went toward them. An officer on horseback, whom I took to be the major, for he gave the word of command, was uncommonly active, and often rode among the ranks to reprimand or instruct the common men. When I came nearer I was much surprised to find that this was the king himself.

“A few days ago, I happened to take a very early walk about a mile from Potsdam, and seeing some soldiers in a field not far from the road, I went toward them. An officer on horseback, whom I assumed was the major because he was giving commands, was unusually active and frequently rode among the ranks to reprimand or instruct the soldiers. When I got closer, I was really surprised to find out that it was the king himself.”

“He had his sword drawn, and continued to exercise the corps for an hour after. He made them wheel, march, form the square, and fire by divisions and in platoons, observing all their motions with infinite attention; and, on account of some blunder, put two officers of the Prince of Prussia’s regiment in arrest. In short, he seemed to exert himself with all the spirit of a young officer567 eager to attract the notice of his general by uncommon alertness.”199

“He had his sword drawn and continued to drill the troops for another hour. He had them wheel, march, form squares, and fire in divisions and platoons, watching all their movements closely. Because of a mistake, he put two officers from the Prince of Prussia’s regiment under arrest. In short, he acted with all the energy of a young officer eager to catch his general’s attention with his exceptional enthusiasm.”567199

FREDERICK AND HIS DOGS.

Frederick was very fond of dogs. This was one of his earliest passions, and it continued until the end of his life. He almost invariably had five or six Italian greyhounds about him, leaping upon the chairs, and sleeping upon the sofas in his room. Dr. Zimmermann describes them as placed on blue satin chairs and couches near the king’s arm-chair, and says that when Frederick, during his last illness, used to sit on his terrace at Sans Souci in order to enjoy the sun, a chair was always placed by his side, which was occupied by one of his dogs. He fed them himself, took the greatest possible care of them when they were sick, and when they died buried them in the gardens of Sans Souci. The568 traveler may still see their tombs—flat stones with the names of the dogs beneath engraved upon them—at each end of the terrace of Sans Souci, in front of the palace.

Frederick loved dogs. This was one of his earliest passions, and it lasted until the end of his life. He almost always had five or six Italian greyhounds around him, jumping on the chairs and sleeping on the sofas in his room. Dr. Zimmermann describes them sitting on blue satin chairs and couches near the king’s armchair, mentioning that during Frederick's last illness, he would sit on his terrace at Sans Souci to soak up the sun, with a chair always placed beside him for one of his dogs. He took care of them himself, tended to them when they were sick, and when they passed away, he buried them in the gardens of Sans Souci. The568 traveler can still see their tombs—flat stones with the names of the dogs engraved beneath them—at each end of the terrace of Sans Souci, in front of the palace.

“The king was accustomed to pass his leisure moments in playing with them, and the room where he sat was strewed with leather balls with which they amused themselves. As they were all much indulged, though there was always one especial favorite, they used to tear the damask covers of the chairs in the king’s apartment, and gnaw and otherwise injure the furniture. This he permitted without rebuke, and used only to say,

“The king liked to spend his free time playing with them, and the room where he sat was filled with leather balls they played with. Since they were all well taken care of, even though there was always one special favorite, they often ripped the damask covers on the chairs in the king’s room and chewed on and damaged the furniture. He allowed this without scolding them and would only say,

“‘My dogs destroy my chairs; but how can I help it? And if I were to have them mended to-day, they would be torn again to-morrow. So I suppose I must bear with the inconvenience. After all, a Marquise De Pompadour would cost me a great deal more, and would neither be as attached nor as faithful.’”

“‘My dogs ruin my chairs; but what can I do about it? And if I got them fixed today, they’d just be torn again tomorrow. So I guess I have to put up with the hassle. Besides, a Marquise De Pompadour would cost me a lot more and wouldn’t be as loyal or devoted.’”

One of Frederick’s dogs, Biche, has attained almost historic celebrity. We can not vouch for the authenticity of the anecdote, but it is stated that the king took Biche with him on the campaign of 1745. One day the king, advancing on a reconnoissance, was surprised and pursued by a large number of Austrians. He took refuge under a bridge, and, wrapping Biche in his cloak, held him close to his breast. The sagacious animal seemed fully conscious of the peril of his master. Though of a very nervous temperament, and generally noisy and disposed to bark at the slightest disturbance, he remained perfectly quiet until the Austrians had passed.

One of Frederick’s dogs, Biche, has become almost a legendary figure. We can't confirm the truth of the story, but it's said that the king brought Biche with him on the 1745 campaign. One day, while the king was scouting ahead, he was surprised and chased by a large group of Austrians. He took cover under a bridge, wrapping Biche in his cloak and holding him close to his chest. The clever dog seemed fully aware of the danger his master was in. Despite usually being very nervous, loud, and prone to barking at the slightest noise, he stayed completely quiet until the Austrians passed by.

At the battle of Sohr, Biche was taken captive with the king’s baggage. The animal manifested so much joy upon being restored to its master that the king’s eyes were flooded with tears.

At the battle of Sohr, Biche was captured along with the king’s belongings. The animal showed such joy when reunited with its owner that the king was brought to tears.

On the 4th of July the king rode out for the last time. Not long after, the horse was again brought to the door, but the king found himself too weak to mount. Still, while in this state of extreme debility and pain, he conducted the affairs of state with the most extraordinary energy and precision. The minutest questions received his attention, and every branch of business was prosecuted with as much care and perfection as in his best days.

On July 4th, the king went out for the last time. Soon after, the horse was brought to the door again, but the king found himself too weak to get on. Still, even in his extreme weakness and pain, he managed the affairs of state with remarkable energy and accuracy. Every little detail received his attention, and each area of business was handled with as much care and perfection as in his best days.

“He saw his ministers, saw all who had business with him, many who had little; and in the sore coil of bodily miseries, as569 Hertzberg observed with wonder, never was the king’s intellect clearer, or his judgment more just and decisive. Of his disease, except to the doctors, he spoke no word to any body.

“He saw his ministers and everyone who needed to talk to him, many who had trivial matters; and despite his physical pain, as Hertzberg noted in amazement, the king’s mind was never clearer, nor his judgment more fair and decisive. He didn’t mention his illness to anyone except the doctors.”

“The body of Frederick is a ruin, but his soul is still here, and receives his friends and his tasks as formerly. Asthma, dropsy, erysipelas, continual want of sleep; for many months past he has not been in bed, but sits day and night in an easy-chair, unable to get breath except in that posture. He said one morning to somebody entering, ‘If you happened to want a night-watcher, I could suit you well.’”200

“The body of Frederick is a wreck, but his spirit is still present, welcoming his friends and managing his responsibilities like before. He's dealing with asthma, swelling, skin infections, and constant insomnia; for many months now, he hasn't slept in a bed, but sits day and night in a chair, only able to breathe comfortably in that position. One morning, he said to someone who walked in, ‘If you need someone to keep watch at night, I’d be a great fit.’”200

There is something truly sublime in the devotion with which he, in disregard of sleeplessness, exhaustion, and pain, gave himself to work. His three clerks were summoned to his room each morning at four o’clock.

There’s something truly amazing in the dedication with which he, ignoring lack of sleep, fatigue, and pain, threw himself into his work. His three clerks were called to his office every morning at four o’clock.

“My situation forces me,” he said, “to give them this trouble, which they will not have to suffer long. My life is on the decline. The time which I still have belongs not to me, but to the state.”

“My situation forces me,” he said, “to give them this trouble, which they won’t have to suffer for long. My life is coming to an end. The time I have left isn’t mine, but belongs to the state.”

He conversed cheerfully upon literature, history, and the common topics of the day. But he seemed studiously to avoid any allusion to God, to the subject of religion, or to death. He had from his early days very emphatically expressed his disbelief in any God who took an interest in the affairs of men. Throughout his whole life he had abstained from any recognition of such a God by any known acts of prayer or worship. Still Mr. Carlyle writes:

He talked happily about literature, history, and current events. But he seemed to carefully avoid mentioning God, religion, or death. From a young age, he had clearly stated his disbelief in any God who cared about human affairs. Throughout his life, he had refrained from acknowledging such a God through any known acts of prayer or worship. Still, Mr. Carlyle writes:

“From of old, life has been infinitely contemptible to him. In death, I think, he has neither fear nor hope. Atheism, truly, he never could abide: to him, as to all of us, it was flatly inconceivable that intellect, moral emotion, could have been put into him by an Entity that had none of its own. But there, pretty much, his Theism seems to have stopped. Instinctively; too, he believed, no man more firmly, that Right alone has ultimately any strength in this world: ultimately, yes; but for him and his poor brief interests, what good was it? Hope for himself in divine Justice, in divine Providence, I think he had not practically any: that the unfathomable Demiurgus should concern himself with such a set of paltry, ill-given animalcules as one’s self and mankind570 are, this also, as we have often noticed, is in the main incredible to him.

"From the beginning, life has been completely worthless to him. In death, I think he feels neither fear nor hope. He truly couldn’t stand atheism; for him, as for all of us, it was simply unimaginable that intellect and moral feelings could have been given to him by a being that had none of its own. But that was pretty much the limit of his Theism. Instinctively, he firmly believed that only Right has any real power in this world: ultimately, yes; but for him and his limited interests, what good was it? I think he had no real hope for himself in divine Justice or divine Providence: the idea that the unfathomable Creator would care about such a worthless, poorly made creature as himself and humanity, as we've often noticed, is mostly unbelievable to him."

“Inarticulate notions, fancies, transient aspirations, he might have, in the background of his mind. One day, sitting for a while out of doors, gazing into the sun, he was heard to murmur, ‘Perhaps I shall be nearer thee soon;’ and, indeed, nobody knows what his thoughts were in these final months. There is traceable only a complete superiority to fear and hope; in parts, too, are half glimpses of a great motionless interior lake of sorrow, sadder than any tears or complainings, which are altogether wanting to it.”

“Vague ideas, daydreams, short-lived hopes—he might have had them lingering in the back of his mind. One day, while sitting outside and staring at the sun, he was heard to mumble, ‘Maybe I’ll be closer to you soon;’ and honestly, no one knows what he was thinking during those last months. What’s clear is a total sense of being above fear and hope; there are also hints of a vast, still inner lake of sadness that’s deeper than any tears or complaints, which are completely absent."

Dr. Zimmermann, whose work on Solitude had given him some renown, had been sent for to administer to the illustrious patient. His prescriptions were of no avail. On the 10th of August, 1786, Frederick wrote to his sister, the Duchess Dowager of Brunswick:

Dr. Zimmermann, known for his work on Solitude, had been called to care for the distinguished patient. His treatments had no effect. On August 10, 1786, Frederick wrote to his sister, the Duchess Dowager of Brunswick:

My adorable Sister,—The Hanover doctor has wished to make himself important with you, my good sister; but the truth is, he has been of no use to me. The old must give place to the young, that each generation may find room clear for it; and life, if we examine strictly what its course is, consists in seeing one’s fellow-creatures die and be born. In the mean while, I have felt myself a little easier for the last day or two. My heart remains inviolably attached to you, my good sister. With the highest consideration, my adorable sister, your faithful brother and servant,

My dear Sister,—The Hanover doctor has been trying to impress you, but honestly, he hasn’t been any help to me at all. The old must make way for the young so that each generation can have its space; and if we look closely at life, it really just involves watching people being born and dying. In the meantime, I’ve been feeling a bit better over the past couple of days. My heart is still deeply connected to you, my dear sister. With all my respect, my dear sister, your loyal brother and servant,

Frederick.”

Frederick.

The last letter which it is supposed that he wrote was the following cold epistle to his excellent wife, whom, through a long life, he had treated with such cruel neglect:

The last letter he supposedly wrote was this cold note to his wonderful wife, whom he had treated with such cruel neglect throughout their long life together:

Madam,—I am much obliged by the wishes you deign to form; but a heavy fever I have taken hinders me from answering you.”

Ma'am,—I appreciate the wishes you’ve expressed; however, I’m suffering from a severe fever that prevents me from responding to you.”

Scarcely any thing can be more sad than the record of the last days and hours of this extraordinary man. Few of the children of Adam have passed a more joyless life. Few have gone down to a grave shrouded with deeper gloom. None of those Christian hopes which so often alleviate pain, and take from death its571 sting, cheered his dying chamber. To him the grave was but the portal to the abyss of annihilation.

Scarcely anything can be more sad than the account of the last days and hours of this extraordinary man. Few people have lived a more joyless life. Few have gone to their grave surrounded by deeper gloom. None of those Christian hopes that so often ease pain and take away death's sting cheered his dying room. For him, the grave was just the entrance to the void of nothingness.

Days of pain and nights of sleeplessness were his portion. A hard cough racked his frame. His strength failed him. Ulcerous sores broke out upon various parts of his body. A constant oppression at his chest rendered it impossible for him to lie down. Gout tortured him. His passage to the grave led through eighteen months of constant suffering. Dr. Zimmermann, in his diary of the 2d of August, writes:

Days filled with pain and nights without sleep were all he experienced. A harsh cough shook his body. He lost his strength. Painful sores appeared on different parts of him. A constant pressure in his chest made it impossible for him to lie down. Gout tormented him. His journey to the grave was marked by eighteen months of relentless suffering. Dr. Zimmermann, in his diary entry from August 2nd, writes:

“The king is very chilly, and is always enveloped in pelisses, and covered with feather-beds. He has not been in bed for six weeks, but sleeps in his chair for a considerable time together, and always turned to the right side. The dropsical swelling augments. He sees it, but will not perceive what it is, or at least will not appear to do so, but talks as if it were a swelling accompanying convalescence, and proceeding from previous weakness. He is determined not to die if violent remedies can save him, but to submit to punctures and incisions to draw off the water.”

“The king is really cold and always wrapped in heavy coats and covered with lots of blankets. He hasn't been in bed for six weeks; instead, he sleeps in his chair for quite a while and always on his right side. The swelling is getting worse. He notices it but refuses to acknowledge what it is, or at least pretends not to, talking as if it’s just a swelling due to recovery from being previously weak. He is determined not to die if aggressive treatments can help him, willing to undergo procedures like punctures and incisions to remove the fluid.”

Again, on the 8th, Dr. Zimmermann wrote: “The king is extraordinarily ill. On the 4th erysipelas appeared on the leg. This announces bursting and mortification. He has much oppression, and the smell of the wound is very bad.”

Again, on the 8th, Dr. Zimmermann wrote: “The king is extremely ill. On the 4th, erysipelas showed up on the leg. This indicates impending rupture and decay. He is experiencing a lot of pressure, and the wound has a really foul odor.”

On the 15th, after a restless night, he did not wake until eleven o’clock in the morning. For a short time he seemed confused. He then summoned his generals and secretaries, and gave his orders with all his wonted precision. He then called in his three clerks and dictated to them upon various subjects. His directions to an embassador, who was about leaving, filled four quarto pages.

On the 15th, after a restless night, he didn't wake up until eleven o'clock in the morning. For a moment, he seemed a bit confused. He then gathered his generals and secretaries and gave his orders with his usual precision. He also called in his three clerks and dictated to them about various topics. His instructions for an ambassador who was about to leave filled four quarto pages.

As night came on he fell into what may be called the death-sleep. His breathing was painful and stertorous; his mind was wandering in delirious dreams; his voice became inarticulate. At a moment of returning consciousness he tried several times in vain to give some utterance to his thoughts. Then, with a despairing expression of countenance, he sank back upon his pillow. Fever flushed his cheeks, and his eyes assumed some of their wonted fire. Thus the dying hours were prolonged, as the friendless monarch, surrounded by respectful attendants, slowly descended to the grave.

As night fell, he slipped into what could be described as a death-like sleep. His breathing was labored and harsh; his mind drifted into delirious dreams; his voice became unintelligible. In brief moments of awareness, he tried several times without success to express his thoughts. Then, with a look of despair, he sank back onto his pillow. Fever flushed his cheeks, and a spark returned to his eyes. So, in these final hours, the lonely king, surrounded by respectful attendants, slowly made his way to the grave.

572 His feet and legs became cold. Death was stealing its way toward the vitals. About nine o’clock Wednesday evening a painful cough commenced, with difficulty of breathing, and an ominous rattle in the throat. One of his dogs sat by his bedside, and shivered with cold; the king made a sign for them to throw a quilt over it.

572 His feet and legs grew cold. Death was creeping closer to him. Around nine o’clock on Wednesday evening, a painful cough began, along with difficulty breathing and a worrying rattle in his throat. One of his dogs sat by his bedside, shivering from the cold; the king gestured for them to cover it with a quilt.

Another severe fit of coughing ensued, and the king, having with difficulty got rid of the phlegm, said, “The mountain is passed; we shall be better now.” These were his last words. The expiring monarch sat in his chair, but in a state of such extreme weakness that he was continually sinking down, with his chest and neck so bent forward that breathing was almost impossible. One of his faithful valets took the king upon his knee and placed his left arm around his waist, while the king threw his right arm around the valet’s neck.

Another terrible fit of coughing followed, and the king, after struggling to clear his throat, said, “We’ve crossed the mountain; we’ll be better now.” These were his last words. The dying monarch sat in his chair, but he was so weak that he kept sinking down, with his chest and neck hunched forward, making it nearly impossible to breathe. One of his loyal attendants lifted the king onto his knee and put his left arm around his waist, while the king threw his right arm around the attendant’s neck.

It was midnight. “Within doors all is silence; around it the dark earth is silent, above it the silent stars.” Thus for two hours the attendant sat motionless, holding the dying king. Not a word was spoken; no sound could be heard but the painful breathing which precedes death.

It was midnight. “Inside, everything was silent; outside, the dark earth was quiet, and above it, the still stars.” For two hours, the attendant sat still, holding the dying king. No words were spoken; the only sound was the labored breathing that comes before death.

At just twenty minutes past two o’clock the breathing ceased, the spirit took its flight, and the lifeless body alone remained. Life’s great battle was ended, and the soul of the monarch ascended to that dread tribunal where prince and peasant must alike answer for all the deeds done in the body. It was the 17th of August, 1786. The king had reigned forty-six years, and had lived seventy-six years, six months, and twenty-four days.

At just twenty minutes past two o’clock, the breathing stopped, the spirit left, and only the lifeless body was left behind. Life’s major struggle was over, and the king’s soul rose to that fearsome court where both royalty and commoners must answer for all their actions in life. It was August 17, 1786. The king had ruled for forty-six years and had lived for seventy-six years, six months, and twenty-four days.

One clause in the king’s will was judiciously disregarded. As a last mark of his contempt for his own species, Frederick had directed that he should be buried at Sans Souci by the side of his dogs.

One clause in the king’s will was carefully ignored. As a final sign of his disdain for humanity, Frederick had instructed that he should be buried at Sans Souci next to his dogs.

In the king’s will, the only reference to any future which might be before him was the following:

In the king’s will, the only mention of any future that might lie ahead of him was this:

“After having restored peace to my kingdom; after having conquered countries, raised a victorious army, and filled my treasury; after having established a good administration throughout my dominions; after having made my enemies tremble, I resign, without regret, this breath of life to Nature.”

“After restoring peace to my kingdom; after conquering countries, raising a victorious army, and filling my treasury; after establishing effective governance throughout my lands; after making my enemies tremble, I resign, without regret, this breath of life to Nature.”

573 He left a small sum for the support of his amiable, blameless, and neglected queen, saying, “She never gave me the least uneasiness during my whole reign, and she merits every attention and respect for her many and unshaken virtues.”

573 He left a small amount of money for the care of his kind, innocent, and overlooked queen, stating, “She never caused me any trouble during my entire reign, and she deserves all the attention and respect for her many unwavering virtues.”

“All next day the body lay in state in the palace; thousands crowding, from Berlin and the other environs, to see that face for the last time. Wasted, worn, but beautiful in death, with the thin gray hair parted into locks, and slightly powdered.”201

“All the next day, the body lay in state in the palace, with thousands coming from Berlin and the surrounding areas to see that face one last time. Wasted, worn, but beautiful in death, with thin gray hair parted into locks and lightly powdered.”201

At eight o’clock in the evening his body was borne, accompanied by a battalion of the Guards, to Potsdam; eight horses drew the hearse. An immense concourse, in silence and sadness, filled the streets. He was buried in a small chapel in the church of the garrison at Potsdam. There the remains of Frederick and his father repose side by side.

At eight o’clock in the evening, his body was taken away, accompanied by a battalion of Guards, to Potsdam; eight horses pulled the hearse. A large crowd, silent and somber, filled the streets. He was buried in a small chapel at the garrison church in Potsdam. There, the remains of Frederick and his father lie side by side.

“Life’s work complete, safely placed
In this, their final retreat:
Ignored over their silent dust "The storms of life will hit."

575

575

FOOTNOTES

1 “He got no improvement in breeding, as we intimated; none at all: fought, on the contrary, with his young cousin, afterward our George II., a boy twice his age, though of weaker bone, and gave him a bloody nose, to the scandal and consternation of the French Protestant gentlemen and court dames in their stiff silks. ‘Ahee your electoral highness!’ This had been a rough unruly boy from the first discovery of him.”—Carlyle.

1 “He showed no improvement in breeding, as we mentioned; none at all: instead, he fought with his young cousin, who later became our George II., a boy twice his age but weaker in build, and gave him a bloody nose, shocking and upsetting the French Protestant gentlemen and court ladies in their formal silks. ‘Oh dear, your electoral highness!’ This had been a rough and unruly boy from the very beginning.”—Carlyle.

2 Geständnisse eines Œsterreichischen Veterans, i., p. 64.

2 Confessions of an Austrian Veteran, i., p. 64.

3 “When his majesty took a walk, every human being fled before him, as if a tiger had broken loose from a menagerie. If he met a lady in the street, he gave her a kick, and told her to go home and mind her brats. If he saw a clergyman staring at the soldiers, he admonished the reverend gentleman to betake himself to study and prayer, and enforced this pious advice by a sound caning administered on the spot. But it was in his own house that he was most unreasonable and ferocious. His palace was hell, and he the most execrable of fiends.”—Macaulay.

3 “When the king went for a walk, everyone ran away from him, as if a tiger had escaped from a zoo. If he encountered a woman on the street, he would kick her and tell her to go home and take care of her kids. If he saw a clergyman staring at the soldiers, he would scold the man of God to go study and pray, and he reinforced this holy advice with a good beating right then and there. But it was in his own house that he was the most unreasonable and brutal. His palace felt like hell, and he was the worst of demons.”—Macaulay.

4 “It was the queen-mother who encouraged the prince in his favorite amusement, and who engaged musicians for his service. But so necessary was secrecy in all these negotiations that if the king, his father, had discovered he was disobeyed, all these sons of Apollo would have incurred the danger of being hanged. The prince frequently took occasion to meet his musicians a-hunting, and had his concerts either in a forest or cavern.”—Burney, Present State of Music in Germany, ii., 139.

4 "It was the queen mother who supported the prince in his favorite pastime and brought musicians to serve him. However, secrecy was crucial in all these dealings because if the king, his father, found out he was being disobeyed, all these sons of Apollo would have faced the risk of being hanged. The prince often took the opportunity to meet his musicians while hunting and held his concerts either in a forest or a cave."—Burney, Present State of Music in Germany, ii., 139.

5 “One of the preceptors ventured to read the ‘Golden Bull’ in the original Latin with the prince royal. Frederick William entered the room, and broke out, in his usual kingly style, ‘Rascal, what are you at there?’ ‘Please your majesty,’ answered the preceptor, ‘I was explaining the “Golden Bull” to his royal highness.’ ‘I’ll Golden Bull you, you rascal!’ roared the majesty of Prussia. Up went the king’s cane, away ran the terrified instructor, and Frederick’s classical studies ended forever.”—Macaulay.

5 “One of the teachers tried to read the ‘Golden Bull’ in the original Latin with the prince. Frederick William walked in and exclaimed, in his typical royal manner, ‘What are you doing, you scoundrel?’ ‘Your majesty,’ the teacher replied, ‘I was explaining the “Golden Bull” to his royal highness.’ ‘I’ll Golden Bull you, you rascal!’ yelled the king of Prussia. The king raised his cane, the frightened teacher ran away, and Frederick’s classical studies ended for good.” —Macaulay.

6 “Frederick William and George II., though brothers-in-law, and, in a manner, brought up together, could never endure each other, even when children. This personal hatred and settled antipathy had like to have proved fatal to their subjects. The King of England used to style the King of Prussia my brother the sergeant. The King of Prussia called the King of England my brother the player. This animosity soon infected their dealings, and did not fail to have its influence on the most important events.”—Memoirs of the House of Brandenburg, by Frederick II., vol. ii., p. 69.

6 “Frederick William and George II, although they were brothers-in-law and somewhat raised together, could never stand each other, even as kids. This personal hatred and deep-seated dislike almost ended up being disastrous for their subjects. The King of England liked to call the King of Prussia my brother the sergeant. The King of Prussia referred to the King of England as my brother the player. This hostility quickly affected their interactions and certainly influenced major events.” —Memoirs of the House of Brandenburg, by Frederick II., vol. ii., p. 69.

7 “It was a marriage much beneath what this princess might have pretended to. But Frederick William loved such alliances—first, because they were at hand, and brought about without trouble, and thus his daughters were taken off his hands at an early age; and, secondly, because to these little princes the honor of obtaining a Princess of Prussia was sufficient, whereas great sovereigns would have required a more considerable dower than the avaricious habits of Frederick William permitted him to give.”—Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover.

7 “It was a marriage far below what this princess could have aspired to. But Frederick William favored such unions—first, because they were convenient and easy to arrange, allowing him to marry off his daughters at an early age; and second, because for these minor princes, the chance to marry a Princess of Prussia was enough, while major sovereigns would have expected a much larger dowry than Frederick William's stingy nature would allow him to offer.” —Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover.

8 “The sad truth, dimly indicated, is sufficiently visible. His life for the next four or five years was extremely dissolute. Poor young man, he has got into a disastrous course; consorts chiefly with debauched young fellows, as Lieutenants Katte, Keith, and others of their stamp, who lead him on ways not pleasant to his father, nor conformable to the laws of this universe. Health, either of body or mind, is not to be looked for in his present way of life. The bright young soul, with its fine strengths and gifts wallowing like a rhinoceros in the mud bath. Some say it is wholesome for a human soul; not we.”—Carlyle, ii., p. 21.

8 “The unfortunate reality, though not obviously stated, is clear enough. For the next four or five years, his life was incredibly reckless. Poor young man, he's on a self-destructive path; he mainly hangs out with corrupt young guys like Lieutenants Katte, Keith, and others like them, who lead him into ways that would upset his father and don't align with the rules of this world. Don't expect him to have good health, either physically or mentally, in his current lifestyle. The bright young spirit, with all its strengths and talents, is just wallowing like a rhino in a muddy pit. Some argue it's good for a human spirit; not us.” —Carlyle, ii., p. 21.

9 “Never in any romance or stage play was young lady, without blame, without furtherance, and without hinderance of her own, so tormented about a settlement in life—passive she all the while, mere clay in the hands of the potter, and begging the universe to have the extreme goodness only to leave her alone.”—Carlyle.

9 “Never in any romance or play was there a young woman, without fault, without encouragement, and without obstruction on her part, so troubled about settling down in life—she was completely passive, like clay in the hands of the potter, begging the universe to be kind enough to just leave her alone.”—Carlyle.

10 The Prussian minister Reichenbach, at London, wrote to M. Grumkow, under date of March 14, 1730: “Reichenbach flatters himself that the king will remain firm, and not let his enemies deceive him. If Grumkow and Seckendorf have opportunity, they may tell his Prussian majesty that the whole design of this court is to render his country a province dependent on England. When once the Princess Royal of England shall be wedded to the Prince Royal of Prussia, the English, by that means, will form such a party at Berlin that they will altogether tie his Prussian majesty’s hands.”

10 The Prussian minister Reichenbach, in London, wrote to M. Grumkow on March 14, 1730: “Reichenbach believes that the king will stay strong and not let his enemies trick him. If Grumkow and Seckendorf get the chance, they should inform his Prussian majesty that the entire plan of this court is to make his country a province controlled by England. Once the Princess Royal of England marries the Prince Royal of Prussia, the English will create such a faction in Berlin that they will completely tie his Prussian majesty’s hands.”

11 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

12 Memoires de la Margrave De Bareuth.

12 Memoirs of the Margrave of Bayreuth.

13 “A Captain Fouqué comes to Cüstrin on duty or as a volunteer by-and-by. He is an old friend of the prince’s; a ready-witted, hot-tempered, highly-estimable man. He is often with the prince. Their light is extinguished precisely at seven o’clock. ‘Very well, lieutenant,’ he would say, ‘you have done your orders to the Crown Prince’s light. But his majesty has no concern with Captain Fouqué’s candles,’ and thereupon would light a pair. Nay, I have heard of lieutenants who punctually blew out the prince’s light, as a matter of duty and command, and then kindled it again as a civility left free to human nature. In short, his majesty’s orders can only be fulfilled to the letter. Even in the letter his majesty’s orders are severe enough.”—Carlyle, vol. ii., p. 218.

13 “Captain Fouqué comes to Cüstrin on duty or as a volunteer occasionally. He’s an old friend of the prince’s; a quick-witted, hot-tempered, highly respected man. He spends a lot of time with the prince. Their light goes out exactly at seven o’clock. ‘Alright, lieutenant,’ he would say, ‘you’ve done what you were told regarding the Crown Prince’s light. But his majesty doesn’t care about Captain Fouqué’s candles,’ and then he would light a couple of his own. In fact, I’ve heard of lieutenants who would diligently blow out the prince’s light, as part of their duty, and then relight it again as a courtesy to human nature. In short, his majesty’s orders can only be followed to the letter. And even in the letter, his majesty’s orders are strict enough.”—Carlyle, vol. ii., p. 218.

14 Voltaire, in his unreliable “Vie Privée du Roi de Prusse,” t. ii., p. 51, says that, when Frederick became king, he settled upon Doris, who was then married and poor, an annuity of seventy-six dollars. Thiebault, far more accurate, in his “Souvenirs de Vingt Ans de Séjour à Berlin,” says he gave her a pension of one hundred and fifty-six dollars. It does not speak well for Frederick that he could have so meanly requited so terrible a wrong.

14 Voltaire, in his questionable “Vie Privée du Roi de Prusse,” t. ii., p. 51, states that when Frederick became king, he granted Doris, who was then married and struggling financially, an annuity of seventy-six dollars. Thiebault, who is much more reliable, in his “Souvenirs de Vingt Ans de Séjour à Berlin,” claims he provided her with a pension of one hundred and fifty-six dollars. It reflects poorly on Frederick that he could repay such a severe injustice in such a petty way.

15 “The first idea of Frederick William was to deliver his son over to be condemned by the ordinary tribunal of Prussia, well knowing that his judges would never venture to decide except according to his wishes. Indeed, he took a very summary as well as a very certain mode of effecting this object; for, whenever their sentiments were not approved by him, he was in the habit of going into the court where they sat and there distributing kicks and blows to all the judges in turn, at the same time calling them rogues and blackguards! From men so circumstanced Frederick would have no chance of acquittal.”—The Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. i., p. 33.

15 “Frederick William's first idea was to hand his son over to be judged by the regular courts of Prussia, fully aware that the judges would never make a decision that went against his wishes. In fact, he had a quick and certain way of ensuring this happened; whenever he disagreed with their opinions, he would enter the courtroom and proceed to kick and hit all the judges in turn, while calling them crooks and scoundrels! With judges like these, Frederick had no hope of being acquitted.”—The Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. i., p. 33.

16 “The prince had been some weeks in his prison at Cüstrin when one day an old officer, followed by four grenadiers, entered his chamber weeping. Frederick had no doubt that he was to be made a head shorter. But the officer, still in tears, ordered the grenadiers to take him to the window and hold his head out of it, that he might be obliged to look on the execution of his friend Katte upon a scaffold expressly built for that purpose. He saw, stretched out his hand, and fainted. The father was present at this exhibition.”—Memoirs of the Life of Voltaire, p. 26.

16 “The prince had been in his prison at Cüstrin for several weeks when one day, an old officer, followed by four grenadiers, entered his room in tears. Frederick feared he was about to be executed. But the officer, still crying, ordered the grenadiers to take him to the window and hold his head out so he would have to watch his friend Katte be executed on a scaffold set up for that purpose. He saw it, reached out his hand, and fainted. The father was there to witness this spectacle.”—Memoirs of the Life of Voltaire, p. 26.

17 “General Ginkel, the Dutch embassador, here told me of an interview he had with the king. The king harbors most monstrous wicked designs, not fit to be spoken of in words. It is certain, if he continue in the mind he is in at present, we shall see scenes here as wicked and bloody as any that were ever heard of since the creation of the world. He will sacrifice his whole family—every body, except Grumkow, being, as he imagines, in conspiracy against him. All these things he said with such imprecations and disordered looks, foaming at the mouth all the while, as it was terrible either to see or hear.”—Dickens’s Dispatch, 7th December, 1730.

17 “General Ginkel, the Dutch ambassador, told me about a meeting he had with the king. The king has some incredibly wicked plans that shouldn’t even be spoken of. If he keeps thinking the way he does now, we’re going to witness some scenes here that are as evil and bloody as any that have ever happened since the beginning of time. He believes he will sacrifice his entire family—everyone, except Grumkow, whom he thinks is the only one not in conspiracy against him. He spoke of all this with such curses and a wild look in his eyes, foaming at the mouth the whole time, making it terrifying to see or hear.” —Dickens’s Dispatch, 7th December, 1730.

18 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

19 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. i., p. 127.

19 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. i., p. 127.

20 The grandmother was a very gay, fashionable woman, entirely devoted to pleasure.

20 The grandmother was a very cheerful, trendy woman, completely dedicated to enjoyment.

21 The prince used a harsher term, which we can not quote.

21 The prince used a more severe term, which we cannot quote.

22 A ruble was about eighty-five cents of our money.

22 A ruble was roughly eighty-five cents in our currency.

23 To Frederick cultivating tranquillity.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ To Frederick seeking peace.

24 Her husband.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Her spouse.

25 The above extracts are taken from Correspondance Familière et Amicale de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, avec U. F. de Suhm.

25 The excerpts above are from Correspondance Familière et Amicale de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, avec U. F. de Suhm.

26 Thibault, Souvenirs de Vingt Ans de Séjours à Berlin.

26 Thibault, Memories of Twenty Years Living in Berlin.

27 William III. of England.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ William III of England.

28 Baron Bielfeld, in his letters, gives the following account of the prince’s admission to the masonic fraternity: “On the 14th the whole day was spent in preparations for the lodge. A little after midnight we saw the Prince Royal arrive, accompanied by Count W——. The prince presented this gentleman as a candidate whom he recommended, and whose reception he wished immediately to succeed his own. He desired us likewise to omit, in his reception, not any one rigorous ceremony that was used in similar cases; to grant him no indulgence whatever; but gave us leave, on this occasion, to treat him merely as a private person. In a word, he was received with all the usual and requisite formalities. I admired his intrepidity, the serenity of his countenance, and his graceful deportment even in the most critical moments. After the two receptions we opened the lodge, and proceeded to our work. He appeared delighted, and acquitted himself with as much dexterity as discernment.”—Letters of Baron Bielfeld, vol. iii., p. 36.

28 Baron Bielfeld, in his letters, shares the following account of the prince’s induction into the masonic fraternity: “On the 14th, the entire day was spent preparing for the lodge. Shortly after midnight, we saw the Prince Royal arrive, accompanied by Count W——. The prince introduced this gentleman as a candidate he was recommending and wanted to be accepted immediately after his own. He requested that we not skip any of the strict ceremonies typical in such cases; to grant him no leniency whatsoever; but he did allow us, on this occasion, to treat him just like a regular person. In short, he was received with all the usual formalities. I admired his bravery, the calmness on his face, and his elegant demeanor even in the most challenging moments. After the two receptions, we opened the lodge and began our work. He seemed thrilled and handled himself with as much skill as insight.” —Letters of Baron Bielfeld, vol. iii., p. 36.

29 Baron Bielfeld gives the following account of the personal appearance of the king at this time: “If we judge by his portraits, he was in his youth very handsome. But it must be confessed that he does not now retain any traces of beauty. His eyes are indeed lively, but his looks are frightful. His complexion is composed of a mixture of high red, blue, yellow, and green. His head is large. His neck is quite sunk between his shoulders, and his figure is short and gross.”—Letters, vol. iii., p. 67.

29 Baron Bielfeld provides the following description of the king's appearance at this time: “If we judge by his portraits, he was very handsome in his youth. However, it must be admitted that he no longer shows any signs of beauty. His eyes are indeed lively, but his overall appearance is terrifying. His complexion is a mix of deep red, blue, yellow, and green. He has a large head. His neck is sunk between his shoulders, and his figure is short and stout.” —Letters, vol. iii., p. 67.

30 Frederick had taken the fancy of calling his companions by classical names. Suhm was Diaphanes; Keyserling was called Cæsarion, etc.

30 Frederick liked to give his friends classical names. Suhm was Diaphanes; Keyserling went by Cæsarion, and so on.

31 Bielfeld informs us that “about one in the afternoon he sent for Ellert, his first physician, and asked him if he thought that his life and his sufferings could continue long, and if the agonies of his last moments would be great. The physician answered, ‘Your majesty has already arrived at that period. I feel the pulse retire. It now beats below your elbow.’

31 Bielfeld tells us that "around one in the afternoon, he called for Ellert, his primary doctor, and asked him if he thought his life and suffering could go on much longer, and whether the pain of his final moments would be intense. The doctor replied, 'Your majesty has already reached that point. I can feel your pulse weakening. It now beats below your elbow.'"

“The king inquired, ‘Where will it retire at last?’

“The king asked, ‘Where will it finally settle down?’”

“‘To the heart,’ the doctor replied. ‘And in about an hour it will cease to beat at all.’

“‘To the heart,’ the doctor said. ‘And in about an hour, it will stop beating completely.’”

“On which the king said, with perfect resignation, ‘God’s will be done!’”—Letters, vol. iii., p. 127.

“On which the king said, with complete acceptance, ‘God’s will be done!’”—Letters, vol. iii., p. 127.

32 Frederick William, in his reviews of the giant guard, was frequently attended by the foreign ministers who chanced to be at his court. On one of these occasions he asked the French minister if he thought that an equal number of the soldiers of France would venture to engage with these troops. With politeness, characteristic of the nation, the minister replied that it was impossible that men of the ordinary stature should think of such an attempt. The same question was asked of the English embassador. He replied, “I can not affirm that an equal number of my countrymen would beat them, but I think that I may safely say that half the number would try.”

32 Frederick William, during his reviews of the giant guard, was often joined by the foreign ministers who happened to be at his court. On one such occasion, he asked the French minister if he thought an equal number of French soldiers would dare to face these troops. With the politeness typical of his nation, the minister replied that it was impossible for men of ordinary height to consider such an attempt. The same question was posed to the English ambassador. He responded, “I can’t say that an equal number of my countrymen would defeat them, but I think it’s safe to say that half the number would give it a shot.”

33 Voltaire, after he had quarreled with Frederick, gave the following amusing account of a gift he received from the king soon after his accession to the throne: “He began his reign by sending an embassador extraordinary to France, one Camas, who had lost an arm. He said that, as there was a minister from the French court at Berlin who had but one hand, he, that he might acquit himself of all obligation toward the most Christian king, had sent him an embassador with one arm. Camas, as soon as he arrived safe at his inn, dispatched a lad to tell me that he was too much fatigued to come to my house, and therefore begged that I would come to him instantly, he having the finest, greatest, and most magnificent present that was ever presented to make me on the part of the king his master. ‘Run, run, as fast as you can,’ said Madame Du Châtelet; ‘he has assuredly sent you the diamonds of the crown.’ Away I ran, and found my embassador, whose only baggage was a small keg of wine, tied behind his chaise, sent from the cellar of the late king by the reigning monarch, with a royal command for me to drink. I emptied myself in protestations of astonishment and gratitude for these liquid marks of his majesty’s bounty, instead of the solid ones I had been taught to expect, and divided my keg with Camas.”—Memoirs, p. 34.

33 Voltaire, after having a falling out with Frederick, shared a funny story about a gift he got from the king shortly after he took the throne: “He started his reign by sending an extraordinary ambassador to France, a man named Camas, who had lost an arm. He claimed that since there was a minister from the French court in Berlin who had only one hand, to fulfill his obligations to the most Christian king, he sent an ambassador with one arm. As soon as Camas arrived safely at his inn, he sent a boy to tell me that he was too tired to come to my house and therefore requested that I come to him right away, as he had the finest, greatest, and most magnificent gift ever to offer me on behalf of his master, the king. ‘Run, run, as fast as you can,’ said Madame Du Châtelet; ‘he has certainly sent you the crown jewels.’ So I rushed over and found my ambassador, whose only luggage was a small keg of wine tied behind his carriage, sent from the late king’s cellar by the current monarch, with a royal order for me to drink. I expressed my astonishment and gratitude for these liquid tokens of his majesty’s generosity, instead of the solid ones I had expected, and I shared my keg with Camas.” —Memoirs, p. 34.

34 “As the bishops of Liege had been in possession of the contested districts for more than a century, and as Frederick William had not, any more than his predecessors, adopted any vigorous measures to gain possession of them, it is not probable that the claim of Frederick was very well founded. At all events, his conduct was violent and unjust. The inhabitants of these districts had been guilty of no crime but that of avowing their allegiance to the prince whom they had been accustomed to obey, and whom they appear to have considered as their lawful sovereign. When Frederick, therefore, sent his troops to live upon the inhabitants of those districts at discretion, he committed an act of tyranny and of cruelty which nothing in the circumstances of the case could justify.”—Memoirs of Voltaire, p. 44.

34 “Since the bishops of Liege had held the disputed areas for over a century, and Frederick William, like his predecessors, had not taken any strong steps to claim them, it’s unlikely that Frederick’s claim was very legitimate. In any case, his actions were brutal and unfair. The people in these areas had not done anything wrong except express their loyalty to the prince they were used to following, whom they seemed to believe was their rightful ruler. So when Frederick sent his troops to exploit the residents of those regions as they pleased, he committed an act of tyranny and cruelty that nothing about the situation could justify.”—Memoirs of Voltaire, p. 44.

35 Memoirs, p. 47, 48.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Memoirs, p. 47, 48.

36 “His majesty,” says M. Bielfeld, “did not appear to be greatly moved. But what followed convinces me that he possesses the art of composing his countenance, and that the emotion passed within; for he rose soon after, sent for M. Von Eichel, secretary of the cabinet, and commanded him to write to Marshal Schwerin and M. Von Podewils, Minister for Foreign Affairs, and order them to come immediately to Reinsberg. These gentlemen arrived forthwith. They daily held long and very secret conferences with his majesty. They say that sovereigns have sometimes authority even over their infirmities. The fever has shown itself docile to the will of the monarch, for after two slight attacks it has entirely left him.”—Letters, vol. iv., p. 18.

36 “His majesty,” says M. Bielfeld, “didn't seem to be very affected. But what happened next makes me believe he knows how to mask his emotions, keeping them inside; because he got up shortly after, called for M. Von Eichel, the cabinet secretary, and told him to write to Marshal Schwerin and M. Von Podewils, the Minister for Foreign Affairs, and tell them to come to Reinsberg right away. These gentlemen arrived immediately. They had long, very secret meetings with his majesty every day. It's said that rulers sometimes have power even over their ailments. The fever has responded to the king's will, as after two mild episodes, it has completely left him.” —Letters, vol. iv., p. 18.

37 Macaulay, speaking of the claims of Frederick to Silesia, says: “They amount to this, that the house of Brandenburg had some ancient pretensions to Silesia, and had, in the previous century, been compelled, by hard usage on the part of the court of Vienna, to waive those pretensions. It is certain that, whoever might have been originally in the right, Prussia had submitted. Prince after prince of the house of Brandenburg had acquiesced in the existing arrangement. Nay, the court of Berlin had recently been allied with that of Vienna, and had guaranteed the integrity of the Austrian states. Is it not perfectly clear that, if antiquated claims are to be set up against recent treaties and long possession, the world can never be at peace for a day?”—Life of Frederick the Great, by Macaulay, p. 62.

37 Macaulay, discussing Frederick's claims to Silesia, states: “They basically amount to the fact that the house of Brandenburg had some old claims to Silesia, and had been forced to give them up in the previous century due to harsh treatment from the court of Vienna. It's clear that, no matter who might have been right originally, Prussia had accepted the situation. Prince after prince from the house of Brandenburg had gone along with the existing arrangement. In fact, the court of Berlin had recently formed an alliance with Vienna and had guaranteed the integrity of the Austrian states. Isn’t it obvious that if outdated claims are going to be raised against recent treaties and long-standing possession, the world can never be at peace for even a day?”—Life of Frederick the Great, by Macaulay, p. 62.

38 “The King of Prussia, the Anti-Machiavel, had already fully determined to commit the great crime of violating his plighted faith, of robbing the ally whom he was bound to defend, and of plunging all Europe into a long, bloody, and desolating war, and all this for no other end whatever except that he might extend his dominions and see his name in the gazettes. He determined to assemble a great army with speed and secrecy to invade Silesia before Maria Theresa should be apprised of his design, and to add that rich province to his kingdom.”—Life of Frederick the Great, by Macaulay, p. 61.

38 “The King of Prussia, the Anti-Machiavel, had already decided to carry out the serious offense of breaking his promise, betraying the ally he was meant to protect, and dragging all of Europe into a long, bloody, and devastating war, all for the sole purpose of expanding his territory and seeing his name in the newspapers. He planned to quickly and secretly gather a large army to invade Silesia before Maria Theresa found out about his plan, aiming to annex that wealthy province to his kingdom.”—Life of Frederick the Great, by Macaulay, p. 61.

No, despite your virtues and your charms,
I'm not fulfilled. No, you're just a flirt; You control the feelings of others but don’t share your own.

40 In this wicked world power seldom respects weakness. No sooner was the emperor dead than four claimants sprang up to wrest from Maria Theresa a part or the whole of the kingdoms she had inherited from her father; and this, notwithstanding nearly all the powers of Europe had guaranteed the Pragmatic Sanction. The Elector of Bavaria claimed Bohemia, from an article in the will of the Emperor Ferdinand I., made two centuries before. The King of Poland demanded the whole Austrian succession, in virtue of the right of his wife, who was the eldest daughter of the Emperor Joseph, elder brother of Charles VI. The King of Spain claimed all the Austrian possessions, in consequence of his descent from the wife of Philip II., who was daughter of the Emperor Maximilian. The King of Sardinia hunted up an obsolete claim to the duchy of Milan. But for the embarrassment into which these claims plunged Maria Theresa, Frederick would hardly have ventured to invade the province of Silesia. The woes which, in consequence, desolated the nations of Europe, no mind but that of the omniscient God can gauge.

40 In this ruthless world, power rarely shows mercy to the weak. As soon as the emperor died, four contenders emerged to snatch away from Maria Theresa a part or all of the kingdoms she inherited from her father; this happened despite nearly all the powers of Europe having guaranteed the Pragmatic Sanction. The Elector of Bavaria claimed Bohemia based on a clause in the will of Emperor Ferdinand I, dated two centuries prior. The King of Poland demanded the entire Austrian inheritance due to the rights of his wife, who was the eldest daughter of Emperor Joseph, the older brother of Charles VI. The King of Spain asserted claims to all the Austrian territories based on his lineage from Philip II's wife, who was the daughter of Emperor Maximilian. The King of Sardinia unearthed an outdated claim to the duchy of Milan. If it weren't for the complications these claims created for Maria Theresa, Frederick would hardly have dared to invade the province of Silesia. The suffering that resulted and affected the nations of Europe is beyond the comprehension of any mind except that of all-knowing God.

41 The husband of Maria Theresa.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Maria Theresa's husband.

42 Voltaire’s Age of Louis XV., vol. i., p. 54.

42 Voltaire’s Age of Louis XV., vol. i., p. 54.

43 Id.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same.

44 Military Instructions, p. 171.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Military Instructions, p. 171.

45 The army with which Frederick invaded Silesia consisted of a general force of 28,000 men, which was followed by a rear-guard of 12,000. He had, in all, about 12,000 cavalry. The remainder were foot soldiers. The artillery consisted of 20 three-pounders, 4 twelve-pounders, 4 howitzers, and 4 large mortars of fifty-pounds calibre. His artillerymen numbered 166.

45 The army that Frederick used to invade Silesia was made up of a main force of 28,000 troops, along with a rear guard of 12,000. He had about 12,000 cavalry in total. The rest were infantry. The artillery included 20 three-pounder cannons, 4 twelve-pounder cannons, 4 howitzers, and 4 large mortars with a fifty-pound caliber. He had 166 artillerymen.

Straverunt others for us, for posterity:
The whole world is on the path that Christ has laid out to the stars.

47 Charles Etienne Jordan was thirty-six years of age. He was the son of wealthy parents in Berlin, and had been a preacher. The death of a beloved wife, leaving him with an only daughter, had plunged him into the profoundest melancholy. Frederick, when Crown Prince, took a great fancy to him, making him nominally his reader, giving him charge of his library. He is represented as a man of small figure, genial, and affectionate, of remarkable vivacity, very courteous, and one who was ever careful never, by word or action, to give pain to others.

47 Charles Etienne Jordan was thirty-six years old. He was the son of wealthy parents in Berlin and had been a preacher. The death of his beloved wife, which left him with only one daughter, had plunged him into deep sadness. Frederick, when he was Crown Prince, took a great liking to him, making him his official reader and putting him in charge of his library. He is described as a small-statured man who was warm and affectionate, incredibly lively, very polite, and always careful not to hurt others, whether through his words or actions.

48 His next younger brother, Augustus William, who had accompanied him on the expedition.

48 His next younger brother, Augustus William, who had joined him on the trip.

49 Colonel Keyserling was a Courlander of good family. He had been officially named as “Companion” of the Crown Prince in his youthful days. Frederick entitled him Cæsarion, and ever regarded him as one of the choicest of his friends. He was a man of very eccentric manners, but warm-hearted and exceedingly companionable.

49 Colonel Keyserling was a Courlander from a good family. He had officially been named “Companion” of the Crown Prince in his younger years. Frederick called him Cæsarion and always considered him one of his closest friends. He was a man with very unconventional habits, but he was warm-hearted and very friendly.

50 Algarotti was a Venetian gentleman of much elegance of manners and dress. He was very fervent in his utterance, and could talk fluently upon every subject. He was just of the age of Frederick. Being the son of wealthy parents, he had enjoyed great advantages of study and travel, had already published several works, and was quite distinguished as a universal genius, a logician, a poet, a philosopher, and a connoisseur in all the arts. He was a great favorite of Frederick, and accompanied him to Strasbourg and on this expedition to Silesia. Wilhelmina describes him as “one of the first beaux esprits of the age,” and “as one who does the expenses of the conversation.”

50 Algarotti was an elegant Venetian gentleman known for his charming manners and stylish dress. He spoke passionately and could engage fluently on any topic. He was the same age as Frederick. As the son of wealthy parents, he had the privilege of extensive study and travel, had already published several works, and was recognized as a universal genius—a logician, poet, philosopher, and connoisseur of the arts. He was a favorite of Frederick and accompanied him to Strasbourg and on his expedition to Silesia. Wilhelmina describes him as “one of the first beaux esprits of the age,” and “the one who covers the costs of the conversation.”

51 Leopold of Anhalt-Dessau was one of the most extraordinary men of any age. His life was but a constant whirlwind of battle, almost from his birth in 1676, to his death in 1747. His face was of the “color of gunpowder,” and his fearless, tumultuous soul was in conformity with the rugged body in which it was incased. The whole character of the man may be inferred from the following prayer, which it is said he was accustomed to offer before entering battle: “O God! assist our side. At least, avoid assisting the enemy, and leave the result to me.” Leopold, called the Old Dessauer, and his son, the Young Leopold, were of essential service to Frederick in his wars. Pages might be filled illustrative of the character of this eccentric man.

51 Leopold of Anhalt-Dessau was one of the most remarkable individuals of any time. His life was a continuous whirlwind of conflict, almost from his birth in 1676 to his death in 1747. His face had the "color of gunpowder," and his fearless, turbulent spirit matched the rugged body it inhabited. You can get a sense of his entire character from the following prayer, which he was said to offer before going into battle: "O God! support our side. At the very least, don't support the enemy, and leave the outcome to me." Leopold, known as the Old Dessauer, and his son, the Young Leopold, were crucial to Frederick in his wars. Pages could be filled with examples that illustrate the nature of this peculiar man.

52 Military Instructions, p. 113.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Military Instructions, p. 113.

53 It was the day before. But it is not surprising that the bewildered young king should have been somewhat confused in his dates.

53 It was the day before. But it’s not surprising that the confused young king was a bit mixed up about the dates.

54 Monsieur le Baron Bielfeld, Lettres Familières et Autres, tome i., p. 3.

54 Monsieur le Baron Bielfeld, Lettres Familières et Autres, vol. 1, p. 3.

55 “Some men,” says a quaint writer, “have a God to swear by, though they have none to pray to.”

55 “Some people,” says an old-fashioned writer, “have a God to swear by, even if they have none to pray to.”

56 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xi., p. 90.

56 Works of Frédéric, vol. xi., p. 90.

57 “Valori was one night with him, and, on rising to take leave, the fat hand, sticking probably in the big waistcoat pocket, twitched out a little diplomatic-looking Note, which Frederick, with gentle adroitness (permissible in such circumstances), set his foot upon, till Valori had bowed himself out.”—Carlyle, vol. iii., p. 330.

57 "Valori spent one night with him, and when it was time to leave, the chubby hand, likely stuck in the large waistcoat pocket, pulled out a little diplomatic-looking note, which Frederick, with careful skill (allowed in such situations), stepped on until Valori had bowed himself out."—Carlyle, vol. iii., p. 330.

58 The Iron Crown. It was so called because there was entwined, amidst its priceless gems and exquisitely wrought frosted gold, some iron wire, said to be drawn from one of the spikes which had been driven through one of the hands of our Savior.

58 The Iron Crown. It’s called that because it has some iron wire, believed to have come from one of the spikes that pierced the hand of our Savior, woven among its priceless gems and beautifully crafted frosted gold.

59 Œuvres de Frédéric, vol. ii., p. 84.

59 Works of Frédéric, vol. ii., p. 84.

60 “Sure enough, the Sea Powers are checkmated now. Let them make the least attempt in favor of the queen if they dare. Holland can be overrun from Osnabrück quarter at a day’s warning. Little George has his Hanoverians, his subsidized Hessians, Danes, in Hanover; his English on Lexden Heath. Let him come one step over the marches, Maillebois and the Old Dessauer swallow him. It is a surprising stroke of theatrical-practical Art, brought about, to old Fleury’s sorrow, by the genius of Belleisle, and they say of Madame Châteauroux; enough to strike certain Governing Persons breathless for some time, and denotes that the Universal Hurricane, or World Tornado has broken out.”—Carlyle, vol. iii., p. 357.

60 “Sure enough, the Sea Powers are checkmated now. Let them make the slightest attempt in favor of the queen if they dare. Holland can be taken over from the Osnabrück area with just a day’s notice. Little George has his Hanoverians, his paid Hessians, and Danes in Hanover; his English on Lexden Heath. Let him take one step across the borders, and Maillebois and the Old Dessauer will swallow him up. It’s a surprising move of theatrical-practical Art, done, to old Fleury’s dismay, by the genius of Belleisle, and they say of Madame Châteauroux; enough to leave certain Governing Persons breathless for a while, indicating that the Universal Hurricane, or World Tornado, has broken out.”—Carlyle, vol. iii., p. 357.

61 Count Brühl was for many years the first minister of the king. He was a weak, extravagant man, reveling in voluptuousness. His decisions could always be controlled by an ample bribe. His sole object seemed to be his own personal luxurious indulgence. “Public affairs,” he said, “will carry themselves on, provided we do not trouble ourselves about them.”

61 Count Brühl was the king's top minister for many years. He was a weak, extravagant man who indulged in luxury. His choices could always be swayed by a generous bribe. It seemed that his only goal was to satisfy his own lavish desires. “Public affairs,” he said, “will manage themselves as long as we don’t interfere with them.”

Sir Charles Hanbury Williams, in his letters from Dresden, writes: “Now, as every thing of every kind, from the highest affairs of the state down to operas and hunting, are all in Count Brühl’s immediate care, I leave you to judge how his post is executed. His expenses are immense. He keeps three hundred servants and as many horses. It is said, and I believe it, that he takes money for every thing the king disposes of in Poland, where they frequently have very great employments to bestow.”

Sir Charles Hanbury Williams, in his letters from Dresden, writes: “Now, since everything, from the most important state matters to operas and hunting, falls under Count Brühl’s direct responsibility, I’ll let you decide how well he handles his position. His spending is enormous. He employs three hundred servants and as many horses. It's said—and I believe it—that he charges money for everything the king decides on in Poland, where they often have significant positions to offer.”

62 Histoire de mon Temps.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ History of My Time.

63 Campagnes de le Roi de Prusse, p. 5.

63 Campaigns of the King of Prussia, p. 5.

64 Œuvres de Frédéric, xvii., p. 196.

64 Works of Frédéric, xvii., p. 196.

65 Campaigns of the King of Prussia, p. 57.

65 Campaigns of the King of Prussia, p. 57.

66 Correspondance de Frédéric II.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Correspondence of Frederick II.

67 “Huge huzzaing, herald-trumpeting, bob-major-ing, burst forth from all Prussian towns, especially from all Silesian ones, in those June days, as the drums beat homeward; elaborate illuminations in the short nights, with bonfires, with transparencies; transparency inscribed ‘Frederico Magno (To Frederick the Great),’ in one small instance, still of premature nature.”—Carlyle.

67 “Loud cheers, trumpet calls, and ringing bells erupted from all Prussian towns, especially in Silesia, during those June days, as the drums played a welcome home; there were elaborate light displays in the short nights, with bonfires and illuminated signs; one sign read ‘Frederick the Great,’ in one small instance, still a bit too early.”—Carlyle.

68 Bielfeld, 251.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bielfeld, 251.

69 Histoire de mon Temps.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ History of My Time.

70 Bielfeld, p. 251.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bielfeld, p. 251.

71 It would seem that Voltaire was sent to Frederick as the secret agent and spy of the French minister. “Voltaire,” writes Macaulay, “was received with every mark of respect and friendship. The negotiation was of an extraordinary description. Nothing can be conceived more whimsical than the conferences which took place between the first literary man and the first practical man of the age, whom a strange weakness had induced to change their parts. The great poet would talk of nothing but treaties and guarantees, and the king of nothing but metaphors and rhymes. On one occasion Voltaire put into his majesty’s hand a paper on the state of Europe, and received it back with verses scrawled on the margin. In secret they both laughed at each other. Voltaire did not spare the king’s poems, and the king has left on record his opinion of Voltaire’s diplomacy, saying, ‘He had no credentials, and the whole mission was a mere farce.’”

71 It seems that Voltaire was sent to Frederick as the secret agent and spy of the French minister. “Voltaire,” Macaulay writes, “was welcomed with every sign of respect and friendship. The negotiation was quite unusual. Nothing could be more bizarre than the discussions held between the top literary figure and the top practical man of the era, who, due to a strange quirk, had switched roles. The great poet would discuss nothing but treaties and guarantees, while the king focused solely on metaphors and rhymes. At one point, Voltaire handed the king a paper about the state of Europe, only to get it back covered in verses in the margins. Privately, they both laughed at each other. Voltaire didn’t hold back in critiquing the king’s poems, and the king noted his thoughts on Voltaire’s diplomacy, stating, ‘He had no credentials, and the whole mission was a complete joke.’”

As a specimen of the character of the document above alluded to, we give the following. Voltaire, in what he deemed a very important state paper, had remarked,

As an example of the type of document mentioned earlier, we provide the following. Voltaire, in what he considered a very important official paper, noted,

“The partisans of Austria burn with the desire to open the campaign in Silesia again. Have you, in that case, any ally but France? And, however potent you are, is an ally useless to you?”

“The supporters of Austria are eager to start the campaign in Silesia once more. So, do you have any ally besides France? And, no matter how strong you are, isn’t an ally still valuable to you?”

The king scribbled on the margin,

The king jotted notes in the margins,

"Hey friend,
Don’t you see We're getting them. A la Barbari!

72 Œuvres de Frédéric, XXVII., vol. i., p. 387.

72 Works of Frédéric, XXVII., vol. i., p. 387.

73 Letters of Bielfeld, vol. i., p. 188.

73 Letters of Bielfeld, vol. i., p. 188.

74 In Pöllnitz’s memoirs and letters he repeated the rumor that the great elector’s second wife, an ancestor of Frederick, had attempted to poison her step-son.

74 In Pöllnitz’s memoirs and letters, he repeated the rumor that the great elector’s second wife, an ancestor of Frederick, tried to poison her step-son.

75 Voltaire is proverbially inaccurate in details. It was the king’s invariable custom to rise at four in summer and six in winter.

75 Voltaire is famously inaccurate with details. The king consistently got up at four in the summer and six in the winter.

76 “In his retreat Frederick is reported to have lost above thirty thousand men, together with most of his heavy baggage and artillery, and many wagons laden with provisions and plunder.”—Tower’s Life and Reign of Frederick, vol. i., p. 209.

76 “In his retreat, Frederick is said to have lost over thirty thousand men, along with most of his heavy baggage and artillery, as well as many wagons filled with supplies and loot.” —Tower’s Life and Reign of Frederick, vol. i., p. 209.

77 Carlyle, vol. iv., p. 50.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 4, p. 50.

78 Carlyle, vol. iv., p. 76.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 4, p. 76.

79 Carlyle, vol. iv., p. 54.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 4, p. 54.

80 Carlyle, vol. i., p. 302.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 1, p. 302.

81 Carlyle, vol. iv., p. 80.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 4, p. 80.

82 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. ii., p. 218.

82 Works of Frédéric, vol. ii., p. 218.

83 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. iii., p. 123.

83 Works of Frédéric, vol. iii., p. 123.

84 Scamander, a small stream in Asia Minor, celebrated in the songs of Homer.

84 Scamander, a small stream in what is now Turkey, famous from the songs of Homer.

85 Robinson’s Dispatch, August 4, 1745.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Robinson’s Dispatch, August 4, 1745.

86 Histoire de mon Temps.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ History of My Time.

87 In this, as in most other similar cases, there is considerable diversity of statement as to the precise number of troops engaged on either side. But there is no question that the Austrians were in numbers far superior to the Prussians.

87 In this case, like in many others, there's a lot of disagreement about the exact number of troops involved on each side. But it's clear that the Austrians outnumbered the Prussians by a significant margin.

88 Müller, Tableaux des guerres de Frédéric le Grand.

88 Müller, Tableaux des guerres de Frédéric le Grand.

89 Mémoires de Frédéric, Baron de Trenck.

89 Memoirs of Frederick, Baron de Trenck.

90 Carlyle, vol. iv., p. 171.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 4, p. 171.

91 Id. ibid.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source.

92 Voltaire, speaking of this action, says: “It was the famous old Prince of Anhalt who gained this decisive victory. He had been a warrior fifty years, and was the first who had entered into the lines of the French army at Turin in 1707. For conducting the infantry he was esteemed the most experienced officer in Europe. This great battle was the last that filled up the measure of his military glory—the only glory which he had enjoyed, for fighting was his only province.”—Age of Louis XV., chap. xvii.

92 Voltaire, talking about this action, says: “It was the renowned old Prince of Anhalt who achieved this decisive victory. He had been a warrior for fifty years and was the first to breach the French army's lines at Turin in 1707. For leading the infantry, he was considered the most seasoned officer in Europe. This great battle was the final event that completed his military glory—the only glory he had ever known, as fighting was his only domain.” —Age of Louis XV., chap. xvii.

93 “About three pounds ten shillings, I think—better than ten pounds in our day to a common man, and better than one hundred pounds to a Linsenbarth.”—Carlyle.

93 “About three pounds ten shillings, I think—better than ten pounds today for an average person, and better than one hundred pounds to a Linsenbarth.” —Carlyle.

94 Commentaire Historique sur les Œuvres de l’Auteur de la Henriade.

94 Historical Commentary on the Works of the Author of the Henriade.

95 Supplément aux Œuvres Posthumes de Frédéric, ii.

95 Supplement to the Posthumous Works of Frédéric, ii.

96 Voltaire boasted that he had gained the cause, because the Jew was fined thirty shillings. But he knew full well, as did every one else, that the result of the suit covered him with dishonor.

96 Voltaire bragged that he had won the case since the Jew was fined thirty shillings. But he was well aware, as was everyone else, that the outcome of the lawsuit left him in disgrace.

97 This was a private letter which reflected severely upon the character of Maupertuis.

97 This was a private letter that harshly criticized Maupertuis's character.

98 Thiebault, Souvenirs de Vingt Ans de Séjour à Berlin.

98 Thiebault, Memories from Twenty Years Living in Berlin.

99 Biographie Universelle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Universal Biography.

100 In a letter which the Prince of Prussia, Augustus William, wrote to the king, remonstrating against those encroachments which were arraying all Europe against him, he says: “Russia is persuaded that your designs upon her occasioned the applications which you have made to the court of Vienna to substitute a truce of two years in room of a solemn treaty of peace. She believes that you wanted to tie up the hands of the empress queen so as to put it out of her power to succor her ally; that a war against Russia was the principal object of your intrigues in Sweden; that you have designs upon Courland; that Polish Prussia and Pomerania would be very convenient to you; and that you find Russia the greatest obstacle to this rounding of your dominions. In short, she believes that she has the same interest in your abasement as the house of Austria.”—Vie de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, t. ii., p. 318.

100 In a letter that the Prince of Prussia, Augustus William, wrote to the king, protesting against the encroachments that were uniting all of Europe against him, he states: “Russia believes that your plans regarding her prompted the requests you made to the court of Vienna to replace a formal treaty of peace with a two-year truce. She thinks you aimed to restrict the empress queen's ability to support her ally; that a war against Russia was your main goal in your dealings in Sweden; that you have intentions towards Courland; that Polish Prussia and Pomerania would be very beneficial for you; and that you see Russia as the biggest obstacle to expanding your territories. In short, she believes her interests align with those of the house of Austria in wanting to see you weakened.”—Vie de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, t. ii., p. 318.

101 Age of Louis XV., chapter xxxii.

101 Age of Louis XV., chapter xxxii.

102 Archenholtz, Histoire de la Guerre de cet Homme.

102 Archenholtz, The Story of This Man's War.

103 An uncle of the great Mirabeau.

103 An uncle of the famous Mirabeau.

104 The Duchess of Pompadour.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Duchess of Pompadour.

105 In the years 1508–1509 the celebrated league of Cambrai was formed by Louis XII. of France, Maximilian, Emperor of Germany, Ferdinand, King of Spain, and Pope Julius II., against Venice. The league was called Holy because the pope took part in it.

105 In the years 1508–1509, the well-known League of Cambrai was established by Louis XII of France, Maximilian, the Emperor of Germany, Ferdinand, the King of Spain, and Pope Julius II, targeting Venice. The league was called Holy because the pope was involved.

"Thus my only refuge in my one harbor
"Is found, dear sister, in the arms of death."

107 Correspondance Familière et Amicale, tome i., p. 31.

107 Correspondance Familière et Amicale, volume 1, p. 31.

108 “Heaven!” This was probably a slip of the pen. Frederick would have been perplexed to explain who or what he meant by “Heaven.” It would, however, subsequently appear that he used the word as synonymous with fate or destiny.

108 “Heaven!” This was likely a typo. Frederick would have been confused trying to explain who or what he meant by “Heaven.” However, it would later seem that he used the word interchangeably with fate or destiny.

109 The atheistic pen of Frederick will sometimes slip.

109 The godless pen of Frederick will sometimes miss the mark.

110 Memoires pour servir à la Vie de M. De Voltaire.

110 Memoirs to Serve the Life of Mr. Voltaire.

111 Carlyle, vol. v., p. 168.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 5, p. 168.

112 Archenholtz, vol. i., p. 209.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Archenholtz, vol. 1, p. 209.

"Grant that I do diligently what I am supposed to do,
What your command leads me to in my position, Let me do it soon, at the time I should; "And when I do it, make sure it goes well."

114 “Indeed, there is in him, in those grim days, a tone as of trust in the Eternal, as of real religious piety and faith, scarcely noticeable elsewhere in his history. His religion, and he had, in withered forms, a good deal of it, if we will look well, being almost always in a strictly voiceless state—nay, ultra voiceless, or voiced the wrong way, as is too well known!”—Carlyle.

114 “Indeed, during those tough times, there’s a sense of trust in the Eternal within him, along with genuine religious devotion and faith, which is hardly seen anywhere else in his story. He had a fair amount of religion, albeit in withered forms, if we take a close look. It was almost always in a completely voiceless state—actually, ultra voiceless, or expressed in a misguided way, as is well known!”—Carlyle.

“Now thank we all, God" With hearts, mouths, and hands,
The great things do, An uns und allen Enden.

116 Vie de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, Strasbourg, 1788, t. ii., p. 317.

116 Life of Frederick II, King of Prussia, Strasbourg, 1788, vol. ii, p. 317.

117 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

118 The son of the late Prince of Prussia. He was now heir to the crown.

118 The son of the deceased Prince of Prussia. He was now the heir to the throne.

119 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

120 London Magazine, vol. xxvii., p. 670.

120 London Magazine, vol. 27, p. 670.

121 This confession of the king is worthy of notice. His philosophy afforded him no consolation in these hours of anguish. It is faith in Christ alone which can “take from death its sting, and from the grave its victory.”

121 This confession of the king deserves attention. His philosophy offered him no comfort in these times of suffering. It is only faith in Christ that can “remove death's sting and the grave's victory.”

122 Correspondance de Voltaire avec le Roi de Prusse.

122 Voltaire's Correspondence with the King of Prussia.

123 Archenholtz, Histoire de la Guerre de Sept Ans.

123 Archenholtz, History of the Seven Years' War.

124 Histoire de la Guerre de Sept Ans, par Frédéric II.

124 History of the Seven Years' War, by Frederick II.

125 “The loss of his Wilhelmina, had there been no other grief, has darkened all his life to Frederick. Readers are not prepared for the details of grief we could give, and the settled gloom of mind they indicate. A loss irreparable and immeasurable; the light of life, the one heart that loved him, gone. All winter he dwells internally on the sad matter, though soon falling silent on it to others.”—Carlyle, vol. v., p. 318.

125 “The loss of his Wilhelmina, even if there was no other sorrow, has cast a shadow over Frederick's entire life. Readers aren't ready for the details of grief we could provide, and the deep sadness that comes with it. It's a loss that can't be replaced or measured; the light of his life, the one person who loved him, is gone. All winter he reflects on this sad situation, although he soon becomes quiet about it with others.” —Carlyle, vol. v., p. 318.

126 Carlyle, vol. v., p. 314.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 5, p. 314.

127 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xix., p. 56.

127 Works of Frédéric, vol. xix., p. 56.

128 Mémoires pour servir à la Vie de M. De Voltaire, Ecrit par Lui-même.

128 Memoirs to Serve the Life of Mr. De Voltaire, Written by Himself.

129 The Duchess of Pompadour.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Duchess of Pompadour.

130 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xxiii., p. 53.

130 Works of Frédéric, vol. xxiii., p. 53.

131 Histoire de la Guerre de Sept Ans, par Frédéric II.

131 History of the Seven Years' War, by Frederick II.

132 General Haddick was in command of an Austrian force marching to join the Russians. Frederick had surprised one of his detachments.

132 General Haddick was in charge of an Austrian unit heading to join the Russians. Frederick had caught one of his groups off guard.

133 General Finck, one of the most efficient of Frederick’s generals, to whom we shall often hereafter refer.

133 General Finck, one of Frederick’s most effective generals, whom we will often refer to later.

134 This was a mistake. Frederick had probably been misinformed.

134 This was a mistake. Frederick had likely been given the wrong information.

135 There were three horses shot under Frederick; but from the third the king dismounted before he fell.

135 There were three horses shot under Frederick; but from the third, the king got off before it fell.

136 Haddick and Loudon were two of the most able generals in the army of Soltikof.

136 Haddick and Loudon were two of the most competent generals in Soltikof's army.

137 Prince Henry.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Prince Harry.

138 This was a slip of the pen. The battle of Kunersdorf was on the 12th.

138 This was a typo. The battle of Kunersdorf was on the 12th.

139 “I pray God!” Even the heart of the atheist in hours of calamity yearns for a God.

139 “I pray to God!” Even an atheist's heart, in times of crisis, longs for a higher power.

140 The king here undoubtedly refers to the vial of poison which he invariably carried in his waistcoat pocket.

140 The king here clearly refers to the vial of poison that he always kept in his waistcoat pocket.

141 “Of the 14,000 men who had made the expedition with him, only 3000 remained unwounded at the time of the capitulation.”—Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 134.

141 “Out of the 14,000 men who had gone on the expedition with him, only 3,000 were left uninjured at the time of the surrender.”—Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 134.

142 Carlyle, vol. v., p. 469.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 5, p. 469.

143 Biographie Universelle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Universal Biography.

144 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xxii., p. 61.

144 Works of Frédéric, vol. xxii., p. 61.

145 Voltaire’s niece, Madame Denis, was with him when he was arrested at Frankfort, and she was terribly frightened.

145 Voltaire’s niece, Madame Denis, was with him when he was taken into custody in Frankfurt, and she was extremely scared.

146 Œuvres de Voltaire, t. lxxx., p. 313.

146 Works of Voltaire, vol. lxxx., p. 313.

147 Archenholtz, vol. ii., p. 53.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Archenholtz, vol. 2, p. 53.

148 “The symptoms we decipher in these letters, and otherwise, are those of a man drenched in misery; but used to his black element, unaffectedly defiant of it, or not at the pains to defy it; occupied only to do his very utmost in it, with or without success, till the end come.”—Carlyle.

148 “The signs we see in these letters and elsewhere show a man soaked in despair; yet he seems to accept this dark reality, either defiantly or without concern for it; focused only on doing his best in it, regardless of success, until the end arrives.” —Carlyle.

149 Annual Register, vol. iii., p. 209.

149 Annual Register, vol. iii., p. 209.

150 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 152.

150 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 152.

151 The king had a coat torn from him by a rebounding cannon-ball, and a horse shot under him.

151 The king had his coat ripped off by a bouncing cannonball, and a horse shot out from underneath him.

152 Œuvres Posthumes de Frédéric II.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Posthumous Works of Frederick II.

153 “No human intellect in our day could busy itself with understanding these thousandfold marchings, manœuvrings, assaults, surprisals, sudden facings about (retreat changed to advance); nor could the powerfulest human memory, not exclusively devoted to study the art military under Frederick, remember them when understood.”—Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 59.

153 “No human mind today could be occupied with grasping these countless movements, maneuvers, attacks, surprises, and sudden changes (turning retreats into advances); nor could even the strongest human memory, not solely focused on studying military tactics under Frederick, recall them once understood.”—Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 59.

154 Great in small things, small in great things.

154 Great in the little things, tiny in the big things.

155 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xix., p. 139.

155 Works of Frédéric, vol. xix., p. 139.

When someone has lost everything and no longer has hope,
Life is shameful, and death is an obligation.

157 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

158 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xix., p. 204.

158 Works of Frédéric, vol. xix, p. 204.

159 Correspondance Familière et Amicale de Frédéric, Roi de Prusse, t. ii., p. 140.

159 Letters from Frederick, King of Prussia, vol. ii., p. 140.

160 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

161 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 170.

161 Life of Frederick II., by Lord Dover, vol. ii., p. 170.

162 Walpole’s Letters to Sir Horace Mann, vol. i., p. 6, 7.

162 Walpole’s Letters to Sir Horace Mann, vol. i., p. 6, 7.

163 Maria Theresa of Austria, Elizabeth, Empress of Russia, and the Marchioness of Pompadour, who was virtually Queen of France.

163 Maria Theresa of Austria, Elizabeth, Empress of Russia, and the Marchioness of Pompadour, who was essentially the Queen of France.

164 Vie de Frédéric II., Roi de Prusse, t. ii., p. 141.

164 Life of Frederick II, King of Prussia, vol. ii., p. 141.

165 Prusse, t. ii., p. 282.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Prusse, vol. ii, p. 282.

166 Küster, Charakterzüge des General Lieutenant v. Saldern, p. 40

166 Küster, Character Traits of General Lieutenant v. Saldern, p. 40

167 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

168 Archenholtz, vol. ii., p. 262.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Archenholtz, vol. 2, p. 262.

169 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xix., p. 281.

169 Works of Frédéric, vol. xix., p. 281.

170 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

171 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

172 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

173 Military Instructions, written by the King of Prussia, p. 176.

173 Military Instructions, written by the King of Prussia, p. 176.

174 Archenholtz, Histoire de la Guerre de Sept Ans.

174 Archenholtz, History of the Seven Years' War.

175 “Northern tourists, Wraxall and others, passing that way, speak of this princess down to recent times as a phenomenon of the place. Apparently a high and peremptory kind of lady, disdaining to be bowed too low by her disgraces. She survived all her generation, and the next and the next, and, indeed, into our own. Died 18th February, 1840, at the age of ninety-six.”—Carlyle.

175 “Northern tourists, including Wraxall and others, who traveled that route, still talk about this princess as a local phenomenon. She seemed to be a proud and commanding woman, refusing to bow too low to her misfortunes. She outlived her entire generation, and the one after that, and even into our own time. She passed away on February 18, 1840, at the age of ninety-six.”—Carlyle.

176 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. vi., p. 23.

176 Works of Frédéric, vol. vi., p. 23.

177 Œuvres Posthumes de D’Alembert, t. i., p. 197, cited by Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 283.

177 Posthumous Works of D'Alembert, vol. i, p. 197, cited by Carlyle, vol. vi, p. 283.

178 Histoire ou Anecdotes sur la Révolution de Russie en l’année 1762, par M. Rulhière.

178 History or Anecdotes about the Russian Revolution in the year 1762, by Mr. Rulhière.

179 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. vi., p. 26.

179 Works of Frédéric, vol. vi., p. 26.

180 Correspondance avec l’Electrice Marie-Antoine.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Correspondence with Electress Marie-Antoinette.

181 Pezzl, Vie de Loudon, vol. ii., p. 29.

181 Pezzl, Life of Loudon, vol. ii., p. 29.

182 “Kaunitz,” writes Frederick, “had a clear intellect, greatly twisted by perversities of temper, especially by a self-conceit and arrogance which were boundless. He did not talk, but preach. At the smallest interruption he would stop short in indignant surprise. It has happened that at the council-board in Schönbrunn, when her imperial majesty has asked some explanation of a word or thing not understood by her, Kaunitz made his bow and quitted the room.”

182 “Kaunitz,” Frederick writes, “had a sharp mind, but it was heavily distorted by his temperament, particularly by his endless self-importance and arrogance. He didn’t engage in conversation; he delivered sermons. The slightest interruption would leave him momentarily stunned with indignation. There have been times at the council table in Schönbrunn when, if her imperial majesty asked for clarification on something she didn’t understand, Kaunitz would bow and leave the room.”

183 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xxvi., p. 30.

183 Works of Frédéric, vol. xxvi., p. 30.

184 Schnitzler, vol. ii., p. 247.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Schnitzler, vol. 2, p. 247.

185 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. xxvi., p. 345.

185 Works of Frédéric, vol. xxvi., p. 345.

186 Hormayr, Taschenbuch, 1831, S. 66, cited by Dr. J. D. E. Preuss, Historiographer of Brandenburg, in his life of Friedrich der Grosse, vol. iv., p. 38.

186 Hormayr, Handbook, 1831, p. 66, cited by Dr. J. D. E. Preuss, Historian of Brandenburg, in his biography of Frederick the Great, vol. iv., p. 38.

187 Preuss, vol. iv., p. 39.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Preuss, vol. 4, p. 39.

188 G. Freytag, Neue Bilder aus dem Leben des deutschen Volkes, cited by Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 378.

188 G. Freytag, New Images from the Life of the German People, cited by Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 378.

189 Freytag, p. 397.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Freytag, p. 397.

190 Œuvres de Frédéric, t. vi., p. 124.

190 Works of Frédéric, vol. vi., p. 124.

191 Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 446–449.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 6, pp. 446–449.

192 Schmettau, vol. xxv., p. 30.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Schmettau, vol. 25, p. 30.

193 Preuss, t. iv., p. 187.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Preuss, vol. 4, p. 187.

194 Fischer, vol. ii., p. 445, as cited by Carlyle.

194 Fischer, vol. ii., p. 445, as referenced by Carlyle.

195 Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 529.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 6, p. 529.

196 Carlyle.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle.

197 Correspondance Inédite de Marie Antoinette, p. 137.

197 Unpublished Correspondence of Marie Antoinette, p. 137.

198 Mémoires et Mélanges Historiques et Littéraires, par le Prince de Ligny.

198 Memoirs and Historical and Literary Miscellany, by the Prince of Ligny.

199 Dr. Moore, View of Society and Manners in France, Switzerland, and Germany.

199 Dr. Moore, Perspectives on Society and Customs in France, Switzerland, and Germany.

200 Carlyle, vol. vi., p. 535.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Carlyle, vol. 6, p. 535.

201 Rödenbeck, vol. iii., p. 365.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rödenbeck, vol. 3, p. 365.

INDEX.

  • A.
  • Abdication of Frederick William contemplated, 50.
  • Absolutism of Frederick William (note), 43.
  • Academy of Sciences established in Berlin, 191;
  • Frederick’s interest in the, 390.
  • Adelbert, Bishop of Prag, his missionary spirit, 18.
  • Adolph Frederick of Sweden marries Frederick’s sister Ulrique, 323.
  • Alarm of the monarchies of Europe at the successes of Frederick the Great, 267;
  • of the British Cabinet, 286.
  • Alembert, D’, a French Philosopher and friend of Frederick, 540.
  • Algarotti, Count, Italian, at Reinsberg, 171;
  • Note, 233;
  • describes a Review of the Guards, 379.
  • Alliance of European Powers against Frederick threatened, 238.
  • Amelia, Princess, of England, her constancy to Frederick, 150.
  • Anecdote of Frederick William, 20;
  • of the Berlin Student, 27;
  • of Frederick William, 38;
  • of M. Von Bentenreider, 44;
  • of Scenes in the Tobacco Parliament, 48;
  • of Frederica Louisa, 56;
  • of Frederick William in the Music-room, 67;
  • of Wilhelmina and Fritz, 78;
  • of a Raven, 115;
  • of Frederick William, 161;
  • of the French Minister (note), 192;
  • of Frederick the Great and Voltaire (note), 199;
  • of Count Dufour, 200;
  • of Frederick the Great, 272, 300;
  • of the Old Dessauer, 346;
  • of Frederick and the Protestant Peasants, 353;
  • of the Hungarian Count, 378;
  • of Colonel Chasot and an Austrian Officer, 380;
  • of Frederick, 399;
  • of the Prussian Dragoon, 416;
  • of Frederick and the Austrians, 443;
  • of Frederick before the Battle of Zorndorf, 460;
  • of Frederick, 517, 518, 525, 536;
  • of Elizabeth of Brunswick, wife of the Crown Prince, 537;
  • of Frederick, 556, 557, 561;
  • of one of Frederick’s Dogs, 568.
  • Animosity between Frederick William and George II. of England (note), 55.
  • Announcement of Prussian Victory at Mollwitz—Frederick’s Chagrin, 259.
  • Anspach, Marquis of, marries a sister of Frederick, 66.
  • Anti-Machiavel, Frederick’s protestations in, 217.
  • Archenholtz: he writes of Frederick after Kolin, 417;
  • of Frederick’s treatment of his Captives, 499.
  • Argens, Marquis D’, his character, 396.
  • Attack upon Frederick’s Supply-train from Troppau described, 453.
  • Augustus William, brother of Frederick, betrothed, 210;
  • his Grief and Death, 451.
  • Augustus III., King of Poland, Frederick’s counsels to him, 298;
  • his Exasperation against Frederick, 305.
  • Aulic Council held at Presburg, 284.
  • Austria favors Catholicism, 224.
  • Austrian Envoy, the, his suspicions of Frederick, 219.
  • Austrian Retreat after Leuthen, 442;
  • after Torgau, 514.
  • Austrians, Cruelty of the, 364;
  • defeated by Prince Henry, 533.
  • B.
  • Baireuth, Frederick, Duke of, 76;
  • he visits Berlin, 120;
  • received with favor by Wilhelmina, 121;
  • Character of the old Marquis of, 147;
  • Frederick the Great visits Wilhelmina in her home at, 161.
  • Barberina, Señora, her Adventures, 318, 319.
  • Bathyani, General, and his Pandours, 332.
  • Baumgarten, Conflict at, 241;
  • Neipperg at, 283.
  • Belgard, Frederick William reviews a Regiment at, 179.
  • Belleisle, Lord, commands French troops, 284;
  • his Interview with Frederick, 315.
  • Berlin, Palace of, its Splendor, 37;
  • Frederick William arrives at, 97;
  • Grand Review at, 119;
  • Description of the Palace of, 129;
  • Wilhelmina writes of, 134;
  • Grand Entrèe of Frederick with his Bride, 151;
  • the Princess Royal resides at, 154;
  • Frederick William returns from Lithuania to, 180;
  • he bids a final farewell to, 180;
  • Wilhelmina visits, 210;
  • Frederick the Great returns from Silesia to, 236;
  • Frederick again returns to, 297;
  • the Gayety of, 322;
  • Alarm in, 348;
  • Carousal at, 385;
  • an Austrian Division on the march to attack, 428;576
  • Terror at, 488;
  • besieged by the Allies, 508;
  • the Garrison retires, and the City surrenders, 509;
  • Illuminations in, after the Treaty of Peace, 535;
  • Congress at, 555.
  • Berneck, Wilhelmina writes Frederick of, 156.
  • Bernstadt, Frederick surprises and scatters an Austrian Division at, 424.
  • Besserer, M., Chaplain of the Garrison at Cüstrin, 107.
  • Bevern, Prince, holds Breslau, 434.
  • Bielfeld, Baron, describes the Princess Elizabeth Christina, 144;
  • his Account of a Carousal at Reinsberg, 169;
  • an Accident to, 171;
  • his Account of the Crown Prince, 171, 172;
  • of Frederick William (note), 181;
  • he relates a Dialogue (note), 187;
  • his Conversation with Frederick after the Death of his Father, 189;
  • he writes (note), 212;
  • of Frederick, 268;
  • he describes Frederick’s Manner at the Marriage of his Brother, 297;
  • he relates Frederick’s Passage through Frankfort, 314;
  • he describes the Leave-taking of Ulrique, and the Berlin Court, 324.
  • Bohemia, Prussian Forces enter, 330.
  • Borck, Baron von, counsels Frederick William, 61;
  • his proposal to Sophie Dorothee, 76;
  • he commands at Maaseyk, 208;
  • he is charged with proposals to General Roth, the Austrian Commander, 234.
  • Borne, short but bloody Conflict at, 438.
  • Botta, Marquis of, the Austrian Envoy, 220.
  • Brandenburg, the Duchy of, 18;
  • its Capital, 19.
  • Breslau, Capital of Silesia, 228;
  • Terms of Surrender offered, 229;
  • terms of its surrender to Frederick, 281;
  • Frederick crowned Sovereign Duke of Silesia at, 294;
  • afterward retaken by Austria, 435;
  • Frederick concentrates troops at, 507;
  • he establishes Winter Quarters at, 527.
  • Brieg, Siege of, raised, 250;
  • Frederick encamped around, 265.
  • Britz, immense Concourse at, to meet Frederick on his return to Berlin, 373.
  • Broglio, Marshal, commandant in Strasbourg, 200.
  • Browne, General, an Austrian commander in Silesia, 223;
  • his skillful Manœuvre to relieve the Saxons, 408.
  • Brühl, Count, Prime Minister of Augustus III., 299;
  • his Character (note), 299.
  • Brünn, Frederick besieges, 304.
  • Brunswick, secret Conclave, and Initiation of the Crown Prince into the Order of Freemasons at, 176.
  • Buddenbrock, General, his mean office, 91.
  • Budischau, Castle of, used as Saxon Barracks, 302.
  • Budweis, Frederick takes possession of, 333.
  • Bunzelwitz, Camp of, celebrated in history, 523.
  • C.
  • Captain of Giant Guards, 43.
  • Caroline, Queen of England, Sophie Dorothee writes to, 74.
  • Carlyle, Quotations from and Opinions of (note), 20, 21;
  • his Opinion of Frederick William, 24;
  • his Description of the Tabagie, 46;
  • of Frederick William, 48;
  • he describes the Companions of the Crown Prince (note), 71;
  • Comments on Wilhelmina (note), 73;
  • Extract from, 97;
  • on Predestination, 110;
  • translates a Letter of Frederick to his Father, 113;
  • he writes of Voltaire, 173;
  • of Frederick, 217;
  • he describes a March in December, 225;
  • on France, 239;
  • he describes M. Maupertuis, 264;
  • Maria Theresa, 273;
  • his graphic Account of Frederick and the English Ministers, 280;
  • his View of the Offer of Frederick to Austria, 287;
  • of Frederick’s political Morality, 293;
  • his Description of the Pandours, 333;
  • he writes of Frederick, 339;
  • of Leopold, 343;
  • of the French Victory at Fontenoy, 358;
  • describes the Storming of Sterbohol and Homoly Hills, 413;
  • on Frederick’s poetic Effusion, 433;
  • on the Battle of Zorndorf, 459;
  • on the Armies at Freiburg, 495;
  • on Frederick’s Manœuvrings (note), 507;
  • on the Camp at Bunzelwitz, 523;
  • on the Czarina, 541;
  • on Bavaria, 551;
  • on Frederick’s diplomatic Skill, 552;
  • his Rendering of Frederick’s religious Creed, 569.
  • Catharine II. conspires against Peter III., and dethrones him, 530;
  • her Proclamation after the Death of Peter III., 531;
  • Frederick the Great enters into an alliance with her, 541;
  • goes to War with Turkey, 544;
  • her Death, 551.
  • Catt, Henry de, his Narrative, 399, 400, 401;
  • he visits Frederick at Breslau, 447.
  • Charles, Duke of Brunswick, 151.
  • Charles VI. of Germany, his Alliance with Frederick William, 45;
  • he intercedes for the Crown Prince, 111;
  • his Death, 212;
  • the dying Scene, 213.
  • Charles Albert, Emperor of Germany, 301;
  • his Death, 344.
  • Charles, Prince, of Austria advances against Frederick, 307;
  • his Aim, 309;
  • bereaved and crushed, 342.
  • Charlotte, Sister of Frederick the Great, slanders his Bride, 148;
  • her Marriage, 152.
  • Charlotte Sophia of Mecklenburg, the Bride of George III. of England, 521.
  • Chasot, Lieutenant, fights a Duel, 168.
  • Châtelet, Madame Du, her Character, 173;
  • her Death, 379.
  • Children of Frederick William, 50.
  • Chotusitz, Battle of, 310;
  • Cavalry Charge at, led by General Bredow, 311.
  • Chrudim, Frederick’s Head-quarters at, 307;
  • he concentrates his Army at, 308.
  • Cirey, Chateau of, the Residence of Voltaire, 173.577
  • Cleves, Voltaire visits Frederick at, 203.
  • Coalition against Frederick, 402.
  • Cochius, M., a clerical Adviser of Frederick William, 187.
  • Combination against Frederick, 411.
  • Cossacks hover around the Prussian Army, 456;
  • their Mercilessness, 459.
  • Court-martial convened, 105.
  • Court Intrigues, 148.
  • Crown Prince of Prussia, 20.
  • Crown Prince Cadets, 30.
  • Cüstrin, Frederick, the Crown Prince of Prussia, a Prisoner at, 101;
  • his Privations, 114;
  • his Life at, 122;
  • he returns after the Marriage of his Sister, 135;
  • Conflagration of, 461, 462;
  • in a midnight March Frederick crosses the Oder near, 481.
  • Czaslau, Prince Charles, rendezvouses at, 310.
  • Czernichef, General, communicates to Frederick the News of the Death of Peter III.; its Effect, 532.
  • D.
  • Dance of Torches, 131.
  • Daun, General, an Austrian Officer, re-enforces Olmütz, 452;
  • he dares not attack Frederick, 454;
  • his Endeavors to reconquer Saxony, 463;
  • his Plans successful, 466;
  • he overwhelms the Forces of General Finck, 493;
  • is astride the Elbe at Dresden, 501;
  • severely wounded at Torgau, 513.
  • Delay of the Courier sent to England respecting the double Marriages;
  • the Consequences, 75.
  • Despotic Conduct of Frederick William, 43, 68.
  • Dessauer, the Old, alienated from Frederick, 340;
  • his military Skill and Character, 345;
  • Frederick directs him to watch the Saxons, 347;
  • he enters Saxony, 367;
  • his Prayer before commencing Battle, 369.
  • Dialogue of Sophie Dorothee with Grumkow, 74;
  • of Frederick with Count Von Kaunitz, 545.
  • Dickens, Sir Guy, an English Embassador, 86;
  • he conveys letters to the Crown Prince from George II. of England, 87;
  • his Testimony respecting Frederick William, 112;
  • he is baffled in his attempts to discover the Plans of Frederick, 220.
  • Discipline in the Prussian Army, 378.
  • Doberschütz, Frederick at, after the Victory of Hochkirch, 469.
  • Double Marriages, the, relinquished, 61.
  • Dover, Lord, on the Marriage of Frederica Louisa (note), 66;
  • Extract from the Writings of, 104, (note), 105.
  • Dresden, Frederick William contemplates a Visit to, 78;
  • Frederick the Great visits, 298;
  • Treaty of Peace signed at, 372;
  • Frederick enters, 405;
  • his Winter Quarters at, 409;
  • the Prussian Commander fires the Suburbs of, 471;
  • surrendered by General Schmettau, 491;
  • cruelly bombarded by Frederick, 502.
  • Dubourgay, British Embassador at Berlin, 79.
  • Duhan, M., Frederick’s Visit to, 373.
  • Duke of Gloucester, the, sends Envoy to Berlin, 40.
  • Duplicity of Frederick, 291.
  • E.
  • Eastern Question, the, its Antiquity, 545.
  • Economy of Frederick William, 45.
  • Einsiedel, General, holds the Garrison at Prague, 331;
  • his heroic but awful Retreat from Prague, 338.
  • Elizabeth Christina, Princess of Bevern, 141;
  • betrothed to Frederick, 142;
  • her Marriage, 149;
  • her cruel Treatment at Berlin, 151;
  • Carlyle’s Testimony to her Character, 165;
  • Frederick’s Treatment of her, 197;
  • his cutting Neglect of her, 252;
  • her Reputation, and Frederick’s Opinion of her, 389;
  • his Testimony, 573.
  • Elizabeth of Russia, her Character and Death, 528.
  • Ellert, M., Physician to Frederick William (note), 187.
  • Emperor of Germany, the, protests against the double Marriages, 48.
  • England replenishes the Coffers of Maria Theresa, 238;
  • Checkmated by the Skill of Belleisle, 284;
  • the growing Power of France alarms her, 312;
  • endeavors to break the Alliance between France and Prussia, 359;
  • makes a Treaty with Frederick, 448;
  • her Treaty with France, 532.
  • English, the, their Unpopularity at Berlin, 82.
  • Erfurt, the Prince of Soubise intrenched at, 424.
  • Eugene, Prince, a renowned Prussian Officer, 160;
  • he re-enforces the Garrison at Berlin, 509.
  • Europe, a general Upturning of the States of, 239;
  • she censures Frederick for his cruel Treatment of Prisoners of War, 409.
  • F.
  • Fassmann, his outrageous Conduct in the Tabagie, 47.
  • Finck, Count, Frederick’s secret Instructions to, 410;
  • his cruel Treatment of, 494.
  • Fouqué, Captain, with the Crown Prince at Cüstrin (note), 102.
  • Fouquet, General, overwhelmed and captured, 501.
  • France and Germany unite against Austria, 284.
  • Francis of Lorraine elected Emperor of Germany, 360.
  • Frankenstein, General Neipperg retreats to, 283;
  • Frederick’s head-quarters at, 349.
  • Frankfort on the Oder, Frederick’s Entrance into, 314;578
  • exorbitant Demands of the Russians upon the People of, 480.
  • Frederica Louisa, Description of, 55.
  • Frederick, Elector of Brandenburg, 18;
  • crowned Frederick I., 20;
  • his Sorrows and Death, 23.
  • Frederick William, 20;
  • his Marriage, 21;
  • his Economy and Reforms, 24, 25;
  • his Idea of War, 26;
  • his ill Manners, 27;
  • his Plans for his Son, 28;
  • his Notions of Education, 32, 34;
  • Directions for Fritz, 35, 36;
  • his Efforts for the Giant Guard, 43;
  • exasperates neighboring magnates, 45;
  • his lack of intellectual Culture, 47;
  • his Illness, 55;
  • an Artist, 58;
  • his Inhumanity, 59;
  • his Anger with George II. of England, 60;
  • his strange Conscientiousness, 63;
  • effects of his Rage, 68;
  • his demoniac Conduct, 69, 70;
  • brutally threatens his Queen, 73;
  • ends the Plan for the double Marriages, 75;
  • sullenly consents to Wilhelmina’s Marriage with the Duke of Baireuth, 77;
  • his Suspicions of his Son, 78;
  • his Opinion of the Princess Amelia, 82;
  • Ultimatum concerning the double Marriages, 84;
  • he publicly canes his Son, 85;
  • he ill-treats Wilhelmina, 88;
  • he assaults his Son in the Yacht, 91;
  • he arraigns and tries Fritz, 93;
  • his cruel Dispatch to his Queen, 95;
  • his Rage with the friends of Fritz, 103;
  • his Inconsistency, 109;
  • he excites the indignation of all European Powers against him, 111;
  • his inflexibility, 114;
  • his insulting Reply to Wilhelmina, 115;
  • renewed ill treatment of his Daughter, 122;
  • he interviews his Son, 123;
  • his bitter Altercation with the Judges, 127;
  • his Store of Silver, 130;
  • he writes his Son, 137;
  • he allows Fritz a meagre Income, 146;
  • his reception of Wilhelmina, 147;
  • his displeasure with his Son, 154;
  • his Health impaired, 161;
  • his Sufferings and Petulance, 164;
  • he dislikes his Son’s Occupations, 167;
  • he visits Holland, 175;
  • he passes through Prussian Lithuania, 177;
  • his efforts for the Province, 178;
  • he bestows a Gift upon the Crown Prince, 179;
  • his Health fails, 180;
  • his Anger with the Tobacco Parliament, 183;
  • his Directions for his Funeral, 185, 186;
  • his last Hours, 187;
  • his dying Words, 188;
  • his Funeral, 189;
  • his Restrictions upon his Son, 197;
  • his authority over Herstal denied, 206.
  • Frederick the Great: his Tutors, 31;
  • his literary Acquirements, 37;
  • his refined Tastes, 38;
  • his Character at fifteen, 49;
  • his Illness, 52;
  • writes his Father, 53;
  • contemplates fleeing from Home, 61;
  • his Passion for Music, 66;
  • his Falsehood and Debts, 77;
  • his Resolve, 78;
  • his Interview with his Sister, 79;
  • he is held under Surveillance, 87;
  • he attempts escape, and is arrested, 89;
  • he is tried and condemned, 93;
  • he refuses to implicate his friends, 94;
  • he is deprived of necessaries, 101;
  • his crushing Sorrow, 107;
  • he abandons Christianity, 110;
  • his Oath of Obedience, 113;
  • his popularity at Cüstrin, 122;
  • his Interview with Frederick William, 123, 124;
  • he is allowed more Freedom, 127;
  • his lax ideas of Marriage, 128;
  • his coldness toward Wilhelmina, 134;
  • he is restored to his Command at Ruppin, 136;
  • his Betrothal, 142;
  • his Occupation at Ruppin, 145;
  • his choice of Reading, 146;
  • his Marriage, 149;
  • his treatment of his Bride, 150, 151;
  • he goes to Holland with Frederick William, 175;
  • his Masonic Initiation, 176;
  • he extols his Father’s ability, 178;
  • his sympathy for his Father in his illness, 181;
  • he enters the Tobacco Parliament, 182;
  • at Reinsberg Frederick hears of his Father’s sudden Illness, 185;
  • he is King of Prussia, 188;
  • his noble Words, 189;
  • his generous Deeds, 191;
  • his toleration, 192;
  • his caustic Replies, 193;
  • his division of Time, 194;
  • his dutiful Conduct toward his Mother, 197;
  • he visits Strasbourg incognito, 199;
  • his Opinion of Voltaire, 205;
  • he writes the Prince-bishop of Liege, 207;
  • he issues a Manifesto, 208;
  • he slights George II. of England, 210;
  • his unpopularity, 211;
  • his striking Words, 214;
  • he gives Reasons for War, 216;
  • his deceptive Measures, 218;
  • his insolent Demand upon Maria Theresa, 221;
  • his Speech to his soldiers, 222;
  • his Proclamation, 223;
  • his politic Conduct, 224, 230;
  • he writes M. Jordan, 226, 228, 232;
  • his Entrance into Breslau, 229;
  • he writes M. Algarotti, 233;
  • he fails to secure Allies, 237;
  • his narrow Escape, 240;
  • he writes Leopold, 244;
  • he writes the Old Dessauer, 246;
  • he mistakes General Neipperg’s Plans, 248;
  • his Dilemma, 249;
  • he endeavors to cross the Neisse, 250;
  • his want of military Skill, 255;
  • he flees for Life, 257;
  • his Mortification, 259, 261;
  • he writes Wilhelmina, 262;
  • his successful Strategy, 265;
  • his growing Importance, 268;
  • he signs a secret Treaty with France, 270;
  • his Physique, 275;
  • his Dialogue with Robinson and Hyndford, 279;
  • his trifling Manner, 280;
  • his brusque Reply to the Embassador, 285;
  • repulses the Austrian Envoy, 286;
  • his mean Proposition presented by Goltz, 287;
  • his Caution, 290;
  • his Perfidy, 291;
  • his sham Siege of Neisse, 293;
  • he denies the secret Treaty with Austria, 295;
  • his mean Subterfuges, 297;
  • he is annoyed by the want of Zeal in his Allies, 302;
  • he rejoices in the withdrawal of Saxony from the Alliance, 305;
  • his Views of Winter Campaigns, 307;
  • his attention to Minutiæ in his Camp, 309;
  • his Treachery to France, 313;
  • on his Silesian Campaigns, 315;
  • his Endeavors to render Berlin attractive, 318;
  • he writes an Ode to Ulrique, his Sister, 324;
  • he writes cruelly to Baron Pöllnitz, 325;
  • he fears Austrian Successes, 329;579
  • his sad March from Prague, 331, 332;
  • his Perplexities, 335;
  • his narrow escape from Capture at Collin, 338;
  • his Orders to Leopold, 341;
  • his Peril, 347;
  • his Resolve, 348;
  • his Endeavor, 355;
  • his Indignation against Louis XV., 359;
  • in his retreat to Silesia, surprised by Austria, 362;
  • his Perplexities, 366;
  • his Suavity toward the People of Berlin, 373;
  • his Industry, 377;
  • his Kindness to the old Schoolmaster, Linsenbarth, 383;
  • writes of Voltaire to Wilhelmina, 388;
  • excludes Ladies from his Court, 390;
  • Resumé of his Character, 396;
  • his mean Conduct at Dresden, 398;
  • his terrible Perplexity, 403;
  • his treatment of Saxon troops, 409;
  • he writes concerning the Battle of Prague, 414;
  • he retreats from Kolin, 415;
  • his Grief at the Death of his Mother, 418;
  • his Anger with, and cruel Treatment of Augustus William, 422;
  • his infidel Creed, 425;
  • his Support in Sorrow, 428;
  • defeats the Allies at Rossbach, 430;
  • his Address to Officers and Soldiers after Leuthen, 435, 436;
  • he writes to the Marquis D’Argens, 446, 447;
  • his grim Humor, 463;
  • his Daring, 465;
  • his Losses, 467;
  • he derides General Daun, 469;
  • his Winter at Breslau, 473;
  • his Expedient for the increase of Funds, 475;
  • he joins his Brother Henry at Sagan, 479;
  • defeated at Mühlberg Hill, 483;
  • his Injustice to his Soldiers, 489;
  • his Illness, 492;
  • his reckless Directions to his Generals, 493;
  • his strategic Deception, 505;
  • he dictates to his Generals the Plan of Operations at Torgau, 513;
  • assails the Austrians, 513;
  • his unwearying Energy, 518;
  • his cruel Extortions, 521;
  • his Military Instructions, 533;
  • he returns to Berlin, 535;
  • his Account of the Ravages of the Seven Years’ War, 539;
  • vain of his Wit, 543;
  • endeavors to mediate between Russia and Turkey, 545;
  • his Share of Poland, 548;
  • his Opinion on the Partition of Poland, 549;
  • his Diplomacy, 552;
  • his resolute Movement, 554, 555;
  • his Character in old age, 556;
  • his Protocol regarding the Miller, 559;
  • his Neglect of his Wife, 561;
  • his Illness, 565;
  • his last Sickness and Death, 569, 571, 572;
  • his Burial, 573.
  • Frederick, Prince of Wales, Son of George II. of England: his Schemes for the Hand of Wilhelmina, 52;
  • an ardent Lover, 82.
  • French, the, compel the Duke of Brunswick to withdraw his Alliance from Frederick, 424;
  • their Atrocities near Weissenfels, 433.
  • Freudenthal, General Neipperg at, 249;
  • Frederick obtains Possession of, 283.
  • Freytag, M., arrests Voltaire at Frankfort, 394;
  • his Opinion of Frederick’s Share of Poland, 549;
  • his Testimony to Frederick’s Energy in time of Peace, 550.
  • Friedenthal occupied by Frederick, 298.
  • Friedland, Frederick retreats to, 250;
  • he obtains Possession of, 283.
  • G.
  • George I., Elector of Hanover, 20;
  • he visits Berlin, 32;
  • his Character, 39;
  • his Treatment of his Wife, 41;
  • the Death of his unhappy Wife, 48;
  • his own sudden Death, 49.
  • George II., his Character, 41;
  • on the British Throne, 52;
  • he quarrels with Frederick William, 59;
  • Weakness of his Army, 65;
  • his Reasons for objecting to the “double Marriages,” 83;
  • his Reply containing the Ultimatum, 84;
  • he accedes too late to the Overtures of Frederick William, 122;
  • he assists Maria Theresa, 316;
  • his sudden Death, 516.
  • George III., his Character when Prince of Wales, 83;
  • his Marriage, 521.
  • George the Pious, Duke of Brieg, 231.
  • Giant Guards, Cost of, 61;
  • one of them robs a House, 126;
  • Frederick abolishes the Regiment after he becomes King of Prussia, 192.
  • Ginckel, General, Dutch Embassador to Prussia; his Account of an Interview with Frederick William (note), 109;
  • demands, in the Name of the Dutch Court, the Evacuation of Silesia, 270.
  • Glatz seized by Frederick, 299;
  • Austrians drive out the Old Dessauer, and retake, 340;
  • Frederick, to deceive General Daun, rushes towards, 501.
  • Glogau, a fortified town in Silesia, 223;
  • Frederick invests it, 228;
  • assaulted and captured by Leopold, 245.
  • Goltz, Colonel, carries a Proposition to Lord Hyndford from Frederick, 286;
  • his important Appointment and sudden Death, 522.
  • Görtz, M., employed on Bavarian Business, 552.
  • Götten, a Hanoverian Town, 243;
  • the Old Dessauer, with thirty-six Thousand Men, stationed there, 258;
  • the Troops there menace England, 284.
  • Grottkau, Frederick advances towards, to join the Prince of Holstein Beck, 250;
  • finds Austrians in Possession, 251;
  • after Mollwitz Austrians again retreat to, 262.
  • Grumkow, Baron, Bearer of a Letter to Sophie Dorothee, 75;
  • his Insolence to the Crown Prince, 101;
  • his Conference with Wilhelmina, 117;
  • he describes an Interview of Frederick William with the Crown Prince, 125.
  • Gundling, a boon Companion of Frederick William, 47.
  • H.
  • Haddick, General, his peculiar Ransom from Berlin, 429.
  • Hartoff, M., Prussian Minister to the Hanoverian Court, 63.
  • Helvetius invited to visit Berlin, 540.580
  • Henry, Prince, commands at Saxony, 449;
  • joins Frederick at Doberschütz, 469.
  • Hennersdorf, Frederick attacks the Austrians at, 366.
  • Herstal Castle transferred to Frederick William, 206;
  • Bishop of Liege purchases of Frederick the Great, 209.
  • Hilbersdorf, Frederick at the Mill of, 259.
  • Historical Record of the State of Prussia before the Birth of Christ, 17.
  • Hoffman, Professor, his dignified Reply to Frederick William, 181.
  • Hohenfriedburg, Austrian Officers at, 349;
  • Battle at, 351.
  • Hope renewed regarding the double Marriages, 75.
  • Hotham, Colonel, English Envoy to Prussia, 80;
  • describes a Dinner with Frederick William, 80;
  • his Endeavors to promote the Marriage of the Prince of Wales and Wilhelmina, 82.
  • Hunting Expeditions of Frederick William, 55.
  • Hyndford, Lord, an English Embassador to Frederick;
  • his Conference with him, 268, 269, 273;
  • his Conference with Frederick at Berlin, 295.
  • I.
  • Iglau, Frederick intends marching to, 301;
  • his Chagrin on reaching it, 304.
  • Incident at Kehl, 199;
  • at Lissa, 443;
  • at Frederick’s Death-bed, the faithful Valet, 572.
  • Intrigues of Voltaire, 327.
  • Iron Crown—why so called? (note), 274.
  • J.
  • Jagerndorf, Frederick’s Peril at, 248.
  • Jordan, M., a Companion of Frederick at Reinsberg, 167;
  • he writes of Frederick, 168, (note), 232;
  • he writes Frederick, 263.
  • Joseph II., Interview of Frederick with, 542;
  • he allies himself with Russia, 560.
  • K.
  • Kalkstein, Colonel, Tutor for Frederick, 31.
  • Kannegiesser, M., Embassador of George II. at Hanover, 63.
  • Katte, Lieutenant, his kindly Offices, 67;
  • he is in an unpleasant Dilemma, 69;
  • is a dangerous Friend for the Crown Prince, 71;
  • he sends Frederick’s Desk and Papers to the Queen, 96;
  • is arrested and abused by the King, 99;
  • imprisoned, 100;
  • sentenced to die, 105;
  • his Letter, 106;
  • his Execution, 107.
  • Kaunitz, Count Von, his Conceit, 544;
  • he supplicates Frederick, 555.
  • Keith, Lieutenant, stationed at Wesel, 71;
  • he escapes to the Hague, 92;
  • Frederick’s Treatment of him, 193, 194.
  • Keith, Marshal, killed at the Battle of Hochkirch, 467.
  • Kesselsdorf, battle of, described by Carlyle, 369.
  • Keyserling, Major, an early Friend of Frederick, 167;
  • his Character (note), 233.
  • Knobelsdorf, Captain, a distinguished Musician and Architect, 168.
  • Kolin, Frederick attacks the Austrians at, 415.
  • König, M., quarrels with Maupertuis, and is expelled from the Academy, 390.
  • Königsberg, the Capital of the Prussian Duchy, 19.
  • Königsgraft, Prince Charles intrenches at, 354.
  • Königsgratz, Prince Charles retreats to, 446.
  • Königsmark, Count, mysterious Disappearance of, 41.
  • Kreutzen, Colonel, sent to Liege, 210.
  • L.
  • Landskron, General Stille gives Account of the Expedition against, 300.
  • Landshut, Frederick’s Forces at, 476.
  • Lake House, Meeting of Frederick and Wilhelmina at the, 158.
  • Leipe, Skirmish at, 250.
  • Leipsic, Frederick seizes, 404.
  • Leitmeritz, Prussian Army rendezvoused at, 418.
  • Leopold of Anhalt-Dessau, 243;
  • at Schweidnitz, 247;
  • crosses the Neisse, 250;
  • alienated from Frederick, 340;
  • his Inventions, 345;
  • Carlyle writes of, 369.
  • Leopold, the Young Dessauer, takes Glogau, 245;
  • he commands at Chotusitz, 310.
  • Letter of Baron Pöllnitz, 25;
  • of Frederick William, 26;
  • of Wilhelmina, 40;
  • of Frederick William to his Son, 54;
  • of Dubourgay, the British Minister at Berlin, 60, 62;
  • of Wilhelmina, 69;
  • of the Crown Prince, 70, 75;
  • of Wilhelmina, 81;
  • of the Crown Prince to George II. of England, 84;
  • of Carlyle, 88;
  • of Frederick William to Wilhelmina, 119;
  • of the Crown Prince to Frederick William, 127;
  • of General Schulenburg, 128;
  • of Frederick to Baron Grumkow, 138, 139, 140, 141;
  • to Wilhelmina, 141, 142, 149, 156;
  • of Count Algarotti, 171;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 173;
  • of Voltaire in reply, 174;
  • of Bielfeld (note), 177;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 178;
  • of Baron Pöllnitz, 179;
  • of Frederick to Baron Suhm, 181;
  • to M. Maupertuis, 191;
  • of the Danish Envoy, 197;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 201, 202;
  • to M. Jordan, 204, 219;
  • of M. Jordan, 226;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 227, 242;
  • to M. Jordan, 228, 252;
  • to Wilhelmina, 252;
  • of a Mollwitz Gentleman, 253;
  • of an Austrian Officer, 262;
  • of Sir Thomas Robinson, 286;
  • of Frederick to M. Jordan, 306, 312;
  • of the young Sisters of Frederick to him, 322;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 327;
  • to Podewils, 347, 348;
  • of Field Marshal Keith, 377;
  • of Frederick to D’Arget, 387;
  • to Voltaire, 388;
  • of the Prince of Prussia, Augustus William, to Frederick, 402;
  • of Frederick in reply, 404;581
  • of Frederick to Lord Marischall, 416;
  • to Wilhelmina, 419, 420;
  • to Augustus William, 423;
  • to Wilhelmina, 425;
  • of Wilhelmina to Voltaire, 426;
  • of Frederick to Wilhelmina, 427, 432;
  • of Wilhelmina to Frederick, 428, 429;
  • of the King of Prussia to his Brother Henry, 449;
  • of the Prince of Prussia to Frederick, 451;
  • to his Sister, 454;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 469;
  • of Marshal Daun, 470;
  • of Sir Andrew Mitchel, 471;
  • of Frederick to Lord Marischall, 472;
  • to D’Argens, 474;
  • of the French Minister in Paris to Marshal De Contades, 476;
  • of Frederick to Voltaire, 478;
  • to Count Finck, 480;
  • to Colonel Finckenstein, 485;
  • to General Schmettau, 487;
  • to Marquis D’Argens, 489, 506, 508, 510, 514;
  • to Voltaire, 497, 499;
  • to the Countess of Camas, 515, 517;
  • of Charlotte Sophia, Mecklenburg, 520;
  • of Frederick to General Von Zastrow, 526;
  • to D’Argens, 527, 530, 534;
  • of D’Alembert, 540;
  • of the Prince De Ligne to Stanislaus, King of Poland, 543;
  • of Frederick to Marie-Antoine, 544;
  • to Voltaire, 550;
  • to his Wife, 570.
  • Leuthen, Battle of, 441;
  • Napoleon I. on, 446.
  • Leutomischel, General Daun at, 449.
  • Liegnitz captured by General Schwerin, 228;
  • Frederick visits the Army at, 366;
  • he reaches Liegnitz surrounded by Austrians, 504.
  • Ligne, the Prince De, describes the Battle of Leuthen, 442.
  • Linsenbarth, M.: his Adventures and Death, 383, 384.
  • Lobositz, Battle of, 407.
  • Loo, a beautiful Palace in Geldern, Residence of the Prince of Orange, 176.
  • Louis XV. alienated from Frederick, 358.
  • Loudon, General, an Austrian Officer, and his forces routed by Frederick, 504.
  • Lowen, Frederick escapes across a Bridge at, 258;
  • his Breakfast at, 261.
  • Ludwig, George, Count of Berg, Bishop of Liege, 207;
  • his Efforts against Frederick, 209.
  • M.
  • Macaulay, Lord, describes Frederick William (note), 27;
  • Note, 218;
  • he writes of Frederick, 297;
  • of Voltaire (note), 321.
  • Magdeburg, troops rendezvoused at, 65.
  • Magyar Warriors, the, swear fealty to the Queen of Austria, 288.
  • Mähren, Review of Austrian troops at, 380.
  • Manifesto of Frederick, 330.
  • Map of Silesia, 217;
  • illustrating the Mollwitz Campaign, 247;
  • the battle of Mollwitz, 261;
  • of the second Silesian Campaign, 294;
  • illustrating the Campaign in Moravia, 306;
  • of the Battle of Chotusitz, 310;
  • Battle of Hohenfriedburg, 350;
  • the Invasion of Saxony, 405;
  • Battle of Lobositz, 407;
  • the Battle of Prague, 412;
  • Battle of Kolin, 416;
  • Campaign of Rossbach, 430;
  • Battle of Rossbach, 431;
  • Leuthen Campaign, 438;
  • Battle of Leuthen, 440;
  • Siege of Olmütz, 450;
  • Battle of Zorndorf, 459;
  • Campaign of Hochkirch, 464;
  • Battle of Hochkirch, 467;
  • Battle of Kunersdorf, 485;
  • Battle of Maxen, 494;
  • Battle of Liegnitz, 505;
  • Battle of Torgau, 512.
  • Maria Theresa, Queen of Austria, 215;
  • scornful Sentence in her Reply to Frederick’s Demand for Silesia, 222;
  • Combinations against her, 271;
  • she is crowned Queen of Hungary, 274;
  • she consents to compromise with Frederick, 275;
  • her Anguish in view of Frederick’s Terms, 285;
  • her Address to the Hungarian Parliament, 288;
  • her Character, 316;
  • her Determination, 323;
  • her Energy and Manifesto, 340;
  • her diplomatic Skill, 359, 360;
  • her resolute Plans, 365;
  • she prepares for War, 398;
  • her Energy, 408;
  • she sends General Daun to the relief of Prague, 414;
  • her moral and religious Character, 548;
  • she sends Proposals of Peace to Frederick, 556;
  • her constancy to the Memory of her Husband, 559;
  • her Death, 559.
  • Marriage of Frederick the Great proposed, 136, 137.
  • Marwitz, General, put under arrest for a Remonstrance, 465.
  • Maupertuis, M., a French Philosopher, 191;
  • he witnesses the Battle of Mollwitz with keen suffering, 264;
  • his bitter Quarrel with Voltaire, 390;
  • his last Hours and Death, 395.
  • Maxen, General Finck worsted at the Battle of, 493.
  • Maximilian Joseph adheres to the Queen of Hungary, 344.
  • Mirabeau writes of a Visit to Frederick, 565, 566.
  • Mittenwalde, the Castle of, the Crown Prince sent to, 97.
  • Mitchel, Sir Andrew, writes of Frederick, 418.
  • Mollwitz, General Neipperg at, 253;
  • Battle at, 256.
  • Montbail, Madame, Governess of Frederick, 20.
  • Monbijou, Festivities at, 95;
  • the Palace of, assigned to the Queen Mother, 197.
  • Montholieu, Count, a French gentleman, friend of the Crown Prince, 103.
  • Moore, Rev. Dr., mentions a remarkable feat concerning Frederick the Great, 566.
  • Moravia to be wrested from Maria Theresa, 298.
  • Mosheim, Rev. Johan Lorenz, a distinguished Writer, 149.
  • Moyland, Frederick ill at the Chateau of, 202.
  • Mühlberg Hill, the Prussians storm and carry the Works on, 483.
  • Müller, M., the faithful Chaplain of Frederick William, 107, 110, 112.582
  • Myssen, the Old Dessauer marches to, 368.
  • N.
  • Neipperg, General, hastens to Neisse, 247;
  • he retreats from Mollwitz, 262;
  • his Account of an Interview with Frederick, 292;
  • he breaks camp at Neisse, 293.
  • Neisse, a small Town in Southern Silesia, 232;
  • stormed by Prussia, 234;
  • secretly re-enforced, 240;
  • Neipperg enters, 249;
  • he intrenches himself, 265;
  • Frederick invests and bombards, 293;
  • collects his forces at, 348;
  • finally abandoned by Austria, 471.
  • Neustadt, Prussian Army at, 249.
  • Neumarkt, Frederick seizes a bakery at, 438.
  • Nicholas, Czar, a Prediction credited to him, 546.
  • Nicholstadt, Frederick at, 522.
  • O.
  • Oath of Allegiance exacted by Frederick from all his Subjects, 197.
  • Ohlau, Frederick summons it to surrender, 230;
  • Prussians retreat from Grottkau to, 251, 254.
  • Olmutz, Austrian forces at, 347;
  • Frederick before, 449;
  • he retreats from, 454.
  • Oppeln, Incident at, 258;
  • Frederick gains Possession of, 286.
  • Oranienberg, Frederick William threatens his Queen with divorce and banishment to the Palace of, 73.
  • Ottmachau, a Town on the River Neisse, 231.
  • P.
  • Pallant, General, an Austrian Officer, reveals a French Plot, 314.
  • Pandours, the, sadly annoy the Prussian Army, 361.
  • Paul, Czar, his second Marriage, 551.
  • Peace, Reasons for not attaining it, 474;
  • at length concluded, 534.
  • Peasantry, Sufferings of the, 364.
  • Philipsburg besieged, 155;
  • it surrenders to the French, 161.
  • Pilsnitz, a Palace in Breslau, 229.
  • Pirna, Saxons concentrated at, 405;
  • their Position at, 406.
  • Pitsch, M., Physician to Frederick William, 188.
  • Platen, General, attacks the retreating Russians, 526.
  • Poland, Frederick William visits, with the Crown Prince, 51;
  • his Polish Majesty returns the Visit, 52;
  • he intercedes for the Crown Prince, 112;
  • his Alliance with Austria, 340;
  • Frederick’s Treatment of the Queen of, 370;
  • the King of, sues for Peace, 371;
  • the Queen tries to defend the Archives, 405;
  • the King appeals to France and Austria, 406;
  • Memorial of the King of, 503;
  • Death of the King of, 541;
  • its Partition proposed by Frederick, 543.
  • Pöllnitz, M., his Account of the Journey from Lithuania, 179.
  • Pompadour, Duchess of, her Character and Influence, 399;
  • her Letter to Maria Theresa, 407;
  • her Bitterness toward Frederick, 448.
  • Poniatowski, Stanislaus, elected King of Poland, 542.
  • Posen, Russians under Soltikof at, 478.
  • Potsdam, the Palace of, 37;
  • the Captain of the Grenadier Guard of, 42;
  • Frederick returns to, from his first military Expedition, 65;
  • Marriage of Frederica Louisa at, 66;
  • Frederick William and Sophie Dorothee return from the Marriage of the Crown Prince to, 150;
  • the King being ill, the Crown Prince visits him at, 164;
  • Frederick William retires to die at, 183;
  • its Palace sacked by Austrian Soldiers, 509.
  • Prague surrenders to Prussia, 331;
  • is abandoned, 336;
  • the Battle of, 412;
  • Siege of, 414.
  • Pragmatic Sanction, 213.
  • Prätorius, the Danish Minister writes, 219.
  • Predestination, Frederick’s Views respecting, 110.
  • Press, freedom of the, proclaimed in Berlin, 192.
  • Presburg, Maria Theresa at, 284.
  • Prince of Wales proposes for the Hand of Wilhelmina, 54.
  • Prince Charles en route for Berlin, 366;
  • goes to Dresden, 368;
  • his culpable Delay at Dresden, 370.
  • Prince of Russia; Frederick concerns himself in his matrimonial Schemes, 323.
  • Protestantism, Frederick’s Efforts in behalf of, 243.
  • Prussia, the Transfer of the Duchy of, 18;
  • its Capital, 19.
  • Prussian Kingdom, Extent and Resources of the, 188.
  • Prussians, the, in distress, 253;
  • retreat to Silesia, 336;
  • their Losses (note), 339;
  • they enter Saxony, 405.
  • Q.
  • Quantz, M., Music-teacher of the Crown Prince, 66;
  • his narrow Escape, 69.
  • R.
  • Racoule, Madame, a Governess of Frederick in his childhood, 30.
  • Ranke, Professor, writes of the Cruelty of Frederick William to Frederick, 85.
  • Räsfeld, M., Prussian Envoy at the Hague: Frederick writes him, 270.
  • Reformation, the, of the sixteenth Century: its Influence in Prussia, 18.
  • Reichenbach, Frederick sends Columns to, in order to save his Magazine at Schweidnitz, 283.
  • Reinsberg, Castle of, 152;583
  • Apartments of Elizabeth Christina at, 153;
  • Visitors at, 172;
  • its distance from Potsdam, 185;
  • Frederick invites his sister to visit him—Wilhelmina repairs thither with the neglected Wife, 212.
  • Retzow, General, placed under Arrest for failure in Battle, 465.
  • Ritter, Doris: her unjust Accusation, 103;
  • the cruel Punishment inflicted upon her, 104;
  • Frederick’s Meanness toward her, 193.
  • Robinson, Sir Thomas, Earl of Grantham: his Interview with Frederick, 276, 277, 278;
  • he returns with sad Tidings to the Court of Austria, 284;
  • his earnest Entreaty to the young Queen, 285.
  • Rochow, Lieutenant Colonel, arrests the Flight of the Crown Prince, 89.
  • Roloff, M., a Clergyman of Frederick William’s Court: his Faithfulness to the Monarch, 184.
  • Römer, General, an Austrian Commander at Mollwitz, 256.
  • Roth, General, commands Austrian forces at Neisse, 234;
  • his pitiless Expedient, 235;
  • commands the Fortress at Brünn, 304.
  • Rothenburg, Count, leads Austrian Scouts near Mollwitz, 255.
  • Ruppin, the Crown Prince commissioned Colonel Commandant at, 136;
  • the dull Life of Frederick at, 145.
  • Russia meditates joining a Coalition against Frederick, 298;
  • with France, intervenes for Peace, 557.
  • Russians, the, after Zorndorf—their Retreat, 460;
  • after the Surrender of Berlin, they flee to Poland, fearing Frederick, 509;
  • they scatter near Hohenfriedburg, 524.
  • S.
  • Saldern, General, his moral heroism, 519.
  • Salzdahlum, a ducal Palace in the Duchy of Brunswick, 149.
  • Saxe, Chevalier De, General of Saxon Horse, announces the breaking of the Alliance between Saxony and Prussia, 305.
  • Saxon troops: Character of their Leaders, 302;
  • their Sufferings in the Retreat from Moravia, 305;
  • their strong Position near Pirna, 406;
  • besieged in their Encampment, 407;
  • they surrender at discretion, 408.
  • Schönbrunn, England sends Sir Thomas Robinson to, 360.
  • Schlettau, Frederick raises the Siege of Dresden and retires to, 503.
  • Schlubhut hung by order of Frederick William, 125.
  • Schmettau, General, declines General Daun’s Proposals, 472;
  • he is unjustly degraded by Frederick the Great, 491.
  • Schnellendorf: its Treaty disclosed—the Reasons for this Measure, 298.
  • Schnellendorf, Little, secret Conclave proposed at, 289.
  • Schulenburg, Field Marshal, Lieutenant General at Cüstrin: his Portraiture of Frederick, 128;
  • his heroism, 256.
  • Schwedt, the Marquis of, Frederick William, sues for the Hand of Wilhelmina, 74;
  • his Rage at the failure of his Suit, 120.
  • Schweidnitz, a fortified Town in Silesia, 238;
  • its Fortress recaptured by the Austrians, 434;
  • besieged and again captured by Frederick, 533.
  • Schwerin, General, he commands a Division against Liegnitz, 228;
  • his Decision wins the Day at Mollwitz, 262;
  • his Stratagem at Breslau, 282;
  • he urges Frederick to attack Saxony, 403;
  • his Death at Sterbohol Hill, 413.
  • Seckendorf, Count, assists at the arrest of the Crown Prince, 90;
  • appealed to by Frederick, 92;
  • he presents to Frederick William a Remonstrance from Charles VI. in behalf of Fritz, 111;
  • he counsels the King on the Marriage of Frederick, 148;
  • he contrives to send Money to the Crown Prince, 154.
  • Silesia, Territory of, 214;
  • division of Feeling in, 223;
  • Frederick’s Reasons for war with, 295;
  • its Cost to Prussia, 534.
  • Smirzitz, Incident at, 356.
  • Sohr, Battle of, 362, 363.
  • Soltikof, a Russian General: his Humanity, 481;
  • he intrenches at Kunersdorf, 482;
  • he writes on the Victory at Kunersdorf, 489.
  • Sonsfeld, Madam, Governess of Wilhelmina, 78;
  • at the Ball, 95;
  • her Care of Wilhelmina, 98;
  • Threats of Frederick William against her, 116.
  • Sophie Dorothee, Daughter of George I. of England: her Marriage with Frederick William, 21;
  • her Intrigues and Plans, 38, 39;
  • her Love for her Son Frederick, 67;
  • she receives the King’s Messengers, 72;
  • she replies to Frederick William, 75;
  • she scathes Grumkow, 76;
  • she becomes angry with Wilhelmina, 77;
  • her Interview with Frederick William, 97;
  • her firm Resolve, 114;
  • her Letters to Wilhelmina, 115, 119;
  • a strange Mother, 121;
  • her Anger and Illness, 122;
  • dislikes Wilhelmina’s Marriage, 130, 131;
  • her Manœuvres, 145;
  • her cool Treatment of her Daughter, 147;
  • she ill treats Elizabeth Christina, 150.
  • Spanish Minister, the: his luxurious Ease, 267.
  • Steinau, Frederick’s Head-quarters at, 249;
  • Neipperg encamps near, 283.
  • Stille, Baron, describes the Scene at Chrudim, 308, 309.
  • Stolpen, General Daun retreats to the Stronghold at, 464.
  • Strasbourg, Frederick and Suite at, incognito, 200.584
  • Strehlin, Envoys from various European Nations visit Frederick at his Encampment at, 267;
  • a Review of Prussian troops at, 282;
  • Frederick’s last grand Review, consuming four Days, at, 563.
  • Sulzer, M., writes from Berlin, 488.
  • Suhm, Baron Von, a constant Friend and Correspondent of Frederick, 166, 168.
  • Sweden, the King of, intercedes for the Crown Prince, 112;
  • declares war against Russia, 284.
  • T.
  • Tobacco Parliament, 46;
  • they discuss the Question of a Duel between Frederick William and George II. of England, 61;
  • the entrance of the Crown Prince disturbs the Sitting of the Members, 182.
  • Tottleben, General, bombards Berlin, 509.
  • Traun, Marshal, his military Ability, 334.
  • Trebitsch, Frederick to concentrate his forces at, 300.
  • Trench, Baron, Narrative by, 336;
  • he describes the Hardships of the Prussian Guards, 379.
  • Troppau occupied by Frederick, 298.
  • Tulmier, M., persuades Wilhelmina to accede to her Father’s wishes, 117.
  • U.
  • Ulrique, Princess, takes leave of the Prussian Court, 324.
  • V.
  • Valori, M. De, French Embassador at Berlin, 272;
  • he watches Frederick anxiously, 289;
  • he is hoodwinked, 292;
  • his Comment on Frederick, 351;
  • the Prussian King ill treats him, 359.
  • Vienna, Frederick suggests a Compromise to the Court of, 287;
  • Alarm at, 288;
  • not needless Terror in, 556.
  • Villa, Rev. Dr., sent to England to negotiate the double Marriages, 78.
  • Voltaire, the French infidel Philosopher: the Influence of his Writings, 49;
  • Note, 108;
  • he compliments Frederick, 198;
  • he counsels the Suppression of the Anti-Machiavel, 209;
  • he announces the Victory of Mollwitz, 263;
  • panegyrizes Frederick, 316;
  • details Conversations with Frederick, 320, 321;
  • describes Frederick’s Life, 328;
  • his Views on the Victory at Kesselsdorf (note), 370;
  • at the Carousal, 385;
  • enters into Speculation with a Jew, and what came of it, 387;
  • quarrels with Maupertuis, and lampoons him, 391;
  • describes the Suppers at Sans Souci, 396;
  • writes on the Battle of Rossbach, 432;
  • on the Battle of Leuthen, 446;
  • his mean Transactions, 477;
  • his Death, 557.
  • W.
  • Wagon Train, Description of, 452.
  • Waldau, Colonel, one of the Jailers of the Crown Prince, 91.
  • Wallis, Count, an Austrian Officer, 223;
  • he defends Glogau, 244.
  • War, Frederick William’s Opinion of, 26;
  • Preparations for, 65;
  • Remarks upon, by Sherman, Wellington, and Napoleon I., 355;
  • good Objects sometimes attainable by, 355.
  • Wartensleben, Field Marshal, Grandfather of Lieutenant Katte, 105.
  • Wedell, General, his Defeat at Zullichau, 479.
  • Weichau, a Silesian Town, 223.
  • Weisenthal, the Camp of the Crown Prince at, 160.
  • Wesel, the Fortress of, Prison of Frederick, 97.
  • Wilhelmina: her Birth, 21;
  • her Love for Fritz, 37;
  • her Cousin proposes for her Hand, 52;
  • prematurely saluted as Princess of Wales, 81;
  • describes a Ball, 95;
  • abused by her Father, 98;
  • imprisoned, 100;
  • her Captivity, 114, 115;
  • her deep Sorrows, 117;
  • writes her Mother, 118;
  • meets the Prince of Baireuth, 121;
  • is betrothed, 122;
  • her Marriage, 129;
  • her Annoyances, 130;
  • her Wedding-dress, 131;
  • the Wedding Ball, 132;
  • gives her Opinion of Sophie Dorothee, 133;
  • takes leave of her Father, 135;
  • visits Berlin after Years, 147;
  • questions Frederick, 148;
  • her Interview with Elizabeth Christina, 151;
  • her Poverty, 154;
  • her Interview with Frederick, 158, 161;
  • her Grief, 163;
  • receives a Visit from her Brother, 199;
  • she visits Berlin, 211;
  • she describes the Coronation of the Emperor of Germany, 301;
  • again visits Berlin, 385;
  • her Sickness and Death, 468.
  • William Augustus, Crown Prince, younger Brother of Frederick the Great, 199;
  • his Marriage, 296.
  • Wilsdruf, Interview of Frederick the Great and the Old Dessauer at, 370.
  • Wischau, Prussian troops at, 300.
  • Wolfenbuttel, Mansion of, 149.
  • Wusterhausen, the Palace of, described, 37.
  • Z.
  • Zimmerman, a Carpenter in Zulich: his cruel Death, 44.
  • Zimmerman, Dr., prescribes in vain for Frederick the Great, 570, 571.
  • Zittau, the Prince of Prussia defeated at, 421.
  • Zorndorf, fierce Contests at, 457, 458, 463.

THE END.

THE END.


601

601

VALUABLE STANDARD WORKS
For public and private libraries,
Published by HARPER & BROTHERS, New York.

For a full List of Books suitable for Libraries, see Harper & Brothers’ Trade-List and Catalogue, which may be had gratuitously on application to the Publishers personally, or by letter enclosing Five Cents.

For a full list of books suitable for libraries, see Harper & Brothers’ Trade-List and Catalogue, which can be obtained for free by visiting the publishers in person or sending them a letter with five cents.

Harper & Brothers will send any of the following works by mail, postage prepaid, to any part of the United States, on receipt of the price.

Harper & Brothers will send any of the following works, with postage covered, to anywhere in the United States upon receipt of payment.

MOTLEY’S DUTCH REPUBLIC. The Rise of the Dutch Republic. By John Lothrop Motley, LL.D., D.C.L. With a Portrait of William of Orange. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $10 50.

MOTLEY’S DUTCH REPUBLIC. The Rise of the Dutch Republic. By John Lothrop Motley, LL.D., D.C.L. Includes a Portrait of William of Orange. 3 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $10.50.

MOTLEY’S UNITED NETHERLANDS. History of the United Netherlands: from the Death of William the Silent to the Twelve Years’ Truce—1609. With a full View of the English-Dutch Struggle against Spain, and of the Origin and Destruction of the Spanish Armada. By John Lothrop Motley, LL.D., D.C.L. Portraits. 4 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $14 00.

MOTLEY’S UNITED NETHERLANDS. History of the United Netherlands: from the Death of William the Silent to the Twelve Years’ Truce—1609. With a detailed overview of the English-Dutch conflict against Spain and the rise and fall of the Spanish Armada. By John Lothrop Motley, LL.D., D.C.L. Includes portraits. 4 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $14.00.

NAPOLEON’S LIFE OF CÆSAR. The History of Julius Cæsar. By His Imperial Majesty Napoleon III. Two Volumes ready. Library Edition, 8vo, Cloth, $3 50 per vol.

NAPOLEON’S LIFE OF CÆSAR. The History of Julius Cæsar. By His Imperial Majesty Napoleon III. Two Volumes available. Library Edition, 8vo, Cloth, $3.50 per vol.

Maps to Vols. I. and II. sold separately. Price $1 50 each, NET.

Maps for Vols. I and II are sold separately. Price $1.50 each, NET.

HAYDN’S DICTIONARY OF DATES, relating to all Ages and Nations. For Universal Reference. Edited by Benjamin Vincent, Assistant Secretary and Keeper of the Library of the Royal Institution of Great Britain; and Revised for the Use of American Readers. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00; Sheep, $6 00.

HAYDN’S DICTIONARY OF DATES, covering all Ages and Nations. For Universal Reference. Edited by Benjamin Vincent, Assistant Secretary and Keeper of the Library of the Royal Institution of Great Britain; and Updated for American Readers. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00; Sheep, $6.00.

MACGREGOR’S ROB ROY ON THE JORDAN. The Rob Roy on the Jordan, Nile, Red Sea, and Gennesareth, &c. A Canoe Cruise in Palestine and Egypt, and the Waters of Damascus. By J. Macgregor, M.A. With Maps and illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2 50.

MACGREGOR’S ROB ROY ON THE JORDAN. The Rob Roy on the Jordan, Nile, Red Sea, and Gennesareth, etc. A Canoe Cruise in Palestine and Egypt, and the Waters of Damascus. By J. Macgregor, M.A. With Maps and illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2.50.

WALLACE’S MALAY ARCHIPELAGO. The Malay Archipelago: the Land of the Orang-Utan and the Bird of Paradise. A Narrative of Travel, 1854–1862. With Studies of Man and Nature. By Alfred Russel Wallace. With Ten Maps and Fifty-one Elegant Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $3 50.

WALLACE’S MALAY ARCHIPELAGO. The Malay Archipelago: The Land of the Orangutan and the Bird of Paradise. A Travel Narrative, 1854–1862. With Studies of Humans and Nature. By Alfred Russel Wallace. Includes Ten Maps and Fifty-one Beautiful Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $3.50.

WHYMPER’S ALASKA. Travel and Adventure in the Territory of Alaska, formerly Russian America—now Ceded to the United States—and in various other parts of the North Pacific. By Frederick Whymper. With Map and Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2 50.

WHYMPER’S ALASKA. Travel and Adventure in the Territory of Alaska, once Russian America—now part of the United States—and in various other regions of the North Pacific. By Frederick Whymper. With Map and Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2.50.

ORTON’S ANDES AND THE AMAZON. The Andes and the Amazon; or, Across the Continent of South America. By James Orton, M.A., Professor of Natural History in Vassar College, Poughkeepsie, N. Y., and Corresponding Member of the Academy of Natural Sciences, Philadelphia. With a New Map of Equatorial America and numerous Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2 00.

ORTON’S ANDES AND THE AMAZON. The Andes and the Amazon; or, Across the Continent of South America. By James Orton, M.A., Professor of Natural History at Vassar College, Poughkeepsie, N.Y., and Corresponding Member of the Academy of Natural Sciences, Philadelphia. Featuring a New Map of Equatorial America and numerous Illustrations. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2.00.

WINCHELL’S SKETCHES OF CREATION. Sketches of Creation: a Popular View of some of the Grand Conclusions of the Sciences in reference to the History of Matter and of Life. Together with a Statement of the Intimations of Science respecting the Primordial Condition and the Ultimate Destiny of the Earth and the Solar System. By Alexander Winchell, LL.D., Professor of Geology, Zoology, and Botany in the University of Michigan, and Director of the State Geological Survey. With Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

WINCHELL’S SKETCHES OF CREATION. Sketches of Creation: A Popular View of Some of the Major Conclusions of the Sciences Regarding the History of Matter and Life. Along with a Summary of the Insights from Science Related to the Original State and Final Fate of the Earth and the Solar System. By Alexander Winchell, LL.D., Professor of Geology, Zoology, and Botany at the University of Michigan, and Director of the State Geological Survey. With Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

WHITE’S MASSACRE OF ST. BARTHOLOMEW. The Massacre of St. Bartholomew: Preceded by a History of the Religious Wars in the Reign of Charles IX. By Henry White, M.A. With Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $1 75.

WHITE’S MASSACRE OF ST. BARTHOLOMEW. The Massacre of St. Bartholomew: Preceded by a History of the Religious Wars during the Reign of Charles IX. By Henry White, M.A. With Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $1.75.

602 LOSSING’S FIELD-BOOK OF THE REVOLUTION. Pictorial Field-Book of the Revolution; or, Illustrations, by Pen and Pencil, of the History, Biography, Scenery, Relics, and Traditions of the War for Independence. By Benson J. Lossing. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $14 00; Sheep, $15 00; Half Calf, $18 00; Full Turkey Morocco, $22 00.

602 LOSSING’S FIELD-BOOK OF THE REVOLUTION. Pictorial Field-Book of the Revolution; or, Illustrations, by Pen and Pencil, of the History, Biography, Scenery, Relics, and Traditions of the War for Independence. By Benson J. Lossing. 2 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $14.00; Sheep, $15.00; Half Calf, $18.00; Full Turkey Morocco, $22.00.

LOSSING’S FIELD-BOOK OF THE WAR OF 1812. Pictorial Field-Book of the War of 1812; or, Illustrations, by Pen and Pencil, of the History, Biography, Scenery, Relics, and Traditions of the Last War for American Independence. By Benson J. Lossing. With several hundred Engravings on Wood, by Lossing and Barritt, chiefly from Original Sketches by the Author. 1088 pages, 8vo, Cloth, $7 00; Sheep, $8 50; Half Calf, $10 00.

LOSSING’S FIELD-BOOK OF THE WAR OF 1812. Pictorial Field-Book of the War of 1812; or, Illustrations, by Pen and Pencil, of the History, Biography, Scenery, Relics, and Traditions of the Last War for American Independence. By Benson J. Lossing. Featuring several hundred wood engravings by Lossing and Barritt, mostly based on original sketches by the author. 1088 pages, 8vo, Cloth, $7.00; Sheep, $8.50; Half Calf, $10.00.

ALFORD’S GREEK TESTAMENT. The Greek Testament: with a critically-revised Text; a Digest of Various Readings; Marginal References to Verbal and Idiomatic Usage; Prolegomena; and a Critical and Exegetical Commentary. For the Use of Theological Students and Ministers. By Henry Alford, D.D., Dean of Canterbury. Vol. I., containing the Four Gospels. 944 pages, 8vo, Cloth, $6 00; Sheep, $6 50.

ALFORD’S GREEK TESTAMENT. The Greek Testament: with a revised Text; a Summary of Different Readings; Marginal References to Language and Idiomatic Usage; Introductory Notes; and a Critical and Exegetical Commentary. For the Use of Theological Students and Ministers. By Henry Alford, D.D., Dean of Canterbury. Vol. I., containing the Four Gospels. 944 pages, 8vo, Cloth, $6.00; Sheep, $6.50.

ABBOTT’S HISTORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION. The French Revolution of 1789, as viewed in the Light of Republican Institutions. By John S. C. Abbott. With 100 Engravings. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

ABBOTT’S HISTORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION. The French Revolution of 1789, seen through the lens of Republican Institutions. By John S. C. Abbott. With 100 Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

ABBOTT’S NAPOLEON BONAPARTE. The History of Napoleon Bonaparte. By John S. C. Abbott. With Maps, Woodcuts, and Portraits on Steel. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $10 00.

ABBOTT’S NAPOLEON BONAPARTE. The History of Napoleon Bonaparte. By John S. C. Abbott. With Maps, Woodcuts, and Portraits on Steel. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $10.00.

ABBOTT’S NAPOLEON AT ST. HELENA; or, Interesting Anecdotes and Remarkable Conversations of the Emperor during the Five and a Half Years of his Captivity. Collected from the Memorials of Las Casas, O’Meara, Montholon, Antommarchi, and others. By John S. C. Abbott. With Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

ABBOTT’S NAPOLEON AT ST. HELENA; or, Fascinating Stories and Notable Conversations of the Emperor during the Five and a Half Years of his Captivity. Gathered from the Memoirs of Las Casas, O’Meara, Montholon, Antommarchi, and others. By John S. C. Abbott. With Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

ADDISON’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Joseph Addison, embracing the whole of the “Spectator.” Complete in 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6 00.

ADDISON’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Joseph Addison, including the entire “Spectator.” Complete in 3 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $6.00.

ALCOCK’S JAPAN. The Capital of the Tycoon: a Narrative of a Three Years’ Residence in Japan. By Sir Rutherford Alcock, K.C.B., Her Majesty’s Envoy Extraordinary and Minister Plenipotentiary in Japan. With Maps and Engravings. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50.

ALCOCK’S JAPAN. The Capital of the Tycoon: a Narrative of a Three Years’ Stay in Japan. By Sir Rutherford Alcock, K.C.B., Her Majesty’s Extraordinary Envoy and Plenipotentiary Minister in Japan. With Maps and Illustrations. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.50.

ALISON’S HISTORY OF EUROPE. First Series: From the Commencement of the French Revolution, in 1789, to the Restoration of the Bourbons, in 1815. [In addition to the Notes on Chapter LXXVI., which correct the errors of the original work concerning the United States, a copious Analytical Index has been appended to this American edition.] Second Series: From the Fall of Napoleon, in 1815, to the Accession of Louis Napoleon, in 1852. 8 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $16 00.

ALISON’S HISTORY OF EUROPE. First Series: From the Start of the French Revolution in 1789 to the Restoration of the Bourbons in 1815. [Along with the Notes on Chapter LXXVI., which correct the errors of the original work regarding the United States, a detailed Analytical Index has been included in this American edition.] Second Series: From the Fall of Napoleon in 1815 to the Rise of Louis Napoleon in 1852. 8 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $16.00.

BANCROFT’S MISCELLANIES. Literary and Historical Miscellanies. By George Bancroft. 8vo, Cloth, $3 00.

BANCROFT’S MISCELLANIES. Literary and Historical Miscellanies. By George Bancroft. 8vo, Cloth, $3.00.

BALDWIN’S PRE-HISTORIC NATIONS. Pre-Historic Nations; or, Inquiries concerning some of the Great Peoples and Civilizations of Antiquity, and their Probable Relation to a still Older Civilization of the Ethiopians or Cushites of Arabia. By John D. Baldwin, Member of the American Oriental Society. 12mo, Cloth, $1 75.

BALDWIN’S PRE-HISTORIC NATIONS. Pre-Historic Nations; or, Investigations into Major Peoples and Civilizations of Ancient Times, and their Potential Connections to an Earlier Civilization of the Ethiopians or Cushites of Arabia. By John D. Baldwin, Member of the American Oriental Society. 12mo, Cloth, $1.75.

BARTH’S NORTH AND CENTRAL AFRICA. Travels and Discoveries in North and Central Africa: being a Journal of an Expedition undertaken under the Auspices of H. B. M.’s Government, in the Years 1849–1855. By Henry Barth, Ph.D., D.C.L. Illustrated. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $12 00.

BARTH’S NORTH AND CENTRAL AFRICA. Travels and Discoveries in North and Central Africa: a Journal of an Expedition supported by H. B. M.’s Government, from 1849 to 1855. By Henry Barth, Ph.D., D.C.L. Illustrated. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $12.00.

HENRY WARD BEECHER’S SERMONS. Sermons by Henry Ward Beecher, Plymouth Church, Brooklyn. Selected from Published and Unpublished Discourses, and Revised by their Author. With Steel Portrait. Complete in 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

HENRY WARD BEECHER’S SERMONS. Sermons by Henry Ward Beecher, Plymouth Church, Brooklyn. Selected from Published and Unpublished Discourses, and Revised by their Author. With Steel Portrait. Complete in 2 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

LYMAN BEECHER’S AUTOBIOGRAPHY, &c. Autobiography, Correspondence, &c., of Lyman Beecher, D.D. Edited by his Son, Charles Beecher. With Three Steel Portraits, and Engravings on Wood. In 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $5 00.

LYMAN BEECHER’S AUTOBIOGRAPHY, &c. Autobiography, Correspondence, &c., of Lyman Beecher, D.D. Edited by his Son, Charles Beecher. With Three Steel Portraits and Wood Engravings. In 2 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $5.00.

BOSWELL’S JOHNSON. The Life of Samuel Johnson, LL.D. Including a Journey to the Hebrides. By James Boswell, Esq. A New Edition, with numerous Additions and Notes. By John Wilson Croker, LL.D., F.R.S. Portrait of Boswell. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4 00.

BOSWELL’S JOHNSON. The Life of Samuel Johnson, LL.D. Including a Journey to the Hebrides. By James Boswell, Esq. A New Edition, with many Additions and Notes. By John Wilson Croker, LL.D., F.R.S. Portrait of Boswell. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4.00.

603 DRAPER’S CIVIL WAR. History of the American Civil War. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology in the University of New York. In Three Vols. 8vo, Cloth, $3 50 per vol.

603 DRAPER’S CIVIL WAR. The History of the American Civil War. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology at the University of New York. In Three Volumes. 8vo, Cloth, $3.50 per volume.

DRAPER’S INTELLECTUAL DEVELOPMENT OF EUROPE. A History of the Intellectual Development of Europe. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology in the University of New York. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

DRAPER’S INTELLECTUAL DEVELOPMENT OF EUROPE. A History of the Intellectual Development of Europe. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology at the University of New York. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

DRAPER’S AMERICAN CIVIL POLICY. Thoughts on the Future Civil Policy of America. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology in the University of New York. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2 50.

DRAPER’S AMERICAN CIVIL POLICY. Thoughts on the Future Civil Policy of America. By John W. Draper, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiology at the University of New York. Crown 8vo, Cloth, $2.50.

DU CHAILLU’S AFRICA. Explorations and Adventures in Equatorial Africa: with Accounts of the Manners and Customs of the People, and of the Chase of the Gorilla, the Crocodile, Leopard, Elephant, Hippopotamus, and other Animals. By Paul B. Du Chaillu. Numerous Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

DU CHAILLU’S AFRICA. Explorations and Adventures in Equatorial Africa: with Accounts of the Manners and Customs of the People, and of the Hunt for the Gorilla, Crocodile, Leopard, Elephant, Hippopotamus, and other Animals. By Paul B. Du Chaillu. Numerous Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

DU CHAILLU’S ASHANGO LAND. A Journey to Ashango Land: and Further Penetration into Equatorial Africa. By Paul B. Du Chaillu. New Edition. Handsomely Illustrated. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

DU CHAILLU’S ASHANGO LAND. A Journey to Ashango Land: and Further Penetration into Equatorial Africa. By Paul B. Du Chaillu. New Edition. Beautifully Illustrated. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

BURNS’S LIFE AND WORKS. The Life and Works of Robert Burns. Edited by Robert Chambers. 4 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $6 00.

BURNS’S LIFE AND WORKS. The Life and Works of Robert Burns. Edited by Robert Chambers. 4 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $6.00.

BELLOWS’S OLD WORLD. The Old World in its New Face: Impressions of Europe in 1867–1868. By Henry W. Bellows. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50.

BELLOWS’S OLD WORLD. The Old World in its New Face: Impressions of Europe in 1867–1868. By Henry W. Bellows. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.50.

BRODHEAD’S HISTORY OF NEW YORK. History of the State of New York. By John Romeyn Brodhead. First Period, 1609–1664. 8vo, Cloth, $3 00.

BRODHEAD’S HISTORY OF NEW YORK. History of the State of New York. By John Romeyn Brodhead. First Period, 1609–1664. 8vo, Cloth, $3.00.

BULWER’S PROSE WORKS. Miscellaneous Prose Works of Edward Bulwer, Lord Lytton. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50.

BULWER’S PROSE WORKS. Miscellaneous Prose Works of Edward Bulwer, Lord Lytton. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.50.

CARLYLE’S FREDERICK THE GREAT. History of Friedrich II., called Frederick the Great. By Thomas Carlyle. Portraits, Maps, Plans. &c. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $12 00.

CARLYLE’S FREDERICK THE GREAT. History of Friedrich II., known as Frederick the Great. By Thomas Carlyle. Portraits, Maps, Plans, etc. 6 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $12.00.

CARLYLE’S FRENCH REVOLUTION. History of the French Revolution. Newly Revised by the Author, with Index, &c. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50.

CARLYLE’S FRENCH REVOLUTION. History of the French Revolution. Newly Revised by the Author, with Index, etc. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.50.

CARLYLE’S OLIVER CROMWELL. Letters and Speeches of Oliver Cromwell. With Elucidations and Connecting Narrative. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50.

CARLYLE’S OLIVER CROMWELL. Letters and Speeches of Oliver Cromwell. With Explanatory Notes and Connecting Narrative. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.50.

CHALMERS’S POSTHUMOUS WORKS. The Posthumous Works of Dr. Chalmers. Edited by his Son-in-Law, Rev. William Hanna, LL.D. Complete in 9 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $13 50.

CHALMERS'S POSTHUMOUS WORKS. The Posthumous Works of Dr. Chalmers. Edited by his Son-in-Law, Rev. William Hanna, LL.D. Complete in 9 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $13.50.

COLERIDGE’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Complete Works of Samuel Taylor Coleridge. With an Introductory Essay upon his Philosophical and Theological Opinions. Edited by Professor Shedd. Complete in Seven Vols. With a fine Portrait. Small 8vo, Cloth, $10 50.

COLERIDGE’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Complete Works of Samuel Taylor Coleridge. With an Introductory Essay on his Philosophical and Theological Views. Edited by Professor Shedd. Complete in Seven Volumes. With a beautiful Portrait. Small 8vo, Cloth, $10.50.

CURTIS’S HISTORY OF THE CONSTITUTION. History of the Origin, Formation, and Adoption of the Constitution of the United States. By George Ticknor Curtis. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6 00.

CURTIS’S HISTORY OF THE CONSTITUTION. History of the Origin, Formation, and Adoption of the Constitution of the United States. By George Ticknor Curtis. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6.00.

DOOLITTLE’S CHINA. Social Life of the Chinese: with some Account of their Religious, Governmental, Educational, and Business Customs and Opinions. With special but not exclusive Reference to Fuhchau. By Rev. Justus Doolittle, Fourteen Years Member of the Fuhchau Mission of the American Board. Illustrated with more than 150 characteristic Engravings on Wood. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $5 00.

DOOLITTLE’S CHINA. Social Life of the Chinese: including an overview of their religious, governmental, educational, and business customs and beliefs. With special, but not exclusive, focus on Fuhchau. By Rev. Justus Doolittle, who was a member of the Fuhchau Mission of the American Board for fourteen years. Illustrated with over 150 distinctive wood engravings. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $5.00.

DAVIS’S CARTHAGE. Carthage and her Remains: being an Account of the Excavations and Researches on the Site of the Phœnician Metropolis in Africa and other adjacent Places Conducted under the Auspices of Her Majesty’s Government. By Dr. Davis, F.R.G.S. Profusely Illustrated with Maps, Woodcuts, Chromo-Lithographs, &c. 8vo, Cloth, $4 00.

DAVIS’S CARTHAGE. Carthage and its Remains: an Account of the Excavations and Researches at the Site of the Phoenician Metropolis in Africa and nearby Locations Conducted under the Support of Her Majesty’s Government. By Dr. Davis, F.R.G.S. Richly Illustrated with Maps, Woodcuts, Chromo-Lithographs, etc. 8vo, Cloth, $4.00.

EDGEWORTH’S (Miss) NOVELS. With Engravings. 10 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $15 00.

EDGEWORTH’S (Miss) NOVELS. With Illustrations. 10 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $15.00.

GIBBON’S ROME. History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire. By Edward Gibbon. With Notes by Rev. H. H. Milman and M. Guizot. A new cheap Edition. To which is added a complete Index of the whole Work, and a Portrait of the Author. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9 00.

GIBBON’S ROME. History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire. By Edward Gibbon. With Notes by Rev. H. H. Milman and M. Guizot. A new affordable Edition. This edition also includes a complete Index of the entire Work, along with a Portrait of the Author. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9.00.

604 HARPER’S PICTORIAL HISTORY OF THE REBELLION. Harper’s Pictorial History of the Great Rebellion in the United States. With nearly 1000 Illustrations. In Two Vols., 4to. Price $6 00 per vol.

604 HARPER’S PICTORIAL HISTORY OF THE REBELLION. Harper’s Pictorial History of the Great Rebellion in the United States. With almost 1000 Illustrations. In Two Volumes, 4to. Price $6.00 per volume.

HARPER’S NEW CLASSICAL LIBRARY. Literal Translations.

HARPER’S NEW CLASSICAL LIBRARY. Literal Translations.

The following Volumes are now ready. Portraits. 12mo, Cloth, $1 50 each.

The following volumes are now available. Portraits. 12mo, Cloth, $1.50 each.

Cæsar.Virgil.Sallust.Horace.Cicero’s Orations.Cicero’s Offices, &c.Cicero on Oratory and Orators.Tacitus (2 vols.).—Terence.Sophocles.Juvenal.Xenophon.Homer’s Iliad.Homer’s Odyssey.Herodotus.Demosthenes.Thucydides.Æschylus.Euripides (2 vols.).

Cæsar.Virgil.Sallust.Horace.Cicero’s Orations.Cicero’s Offices, &c.Cicero on Oratory and Orators.Tacitus (2 vols.).—Terence.Sophocles.Juvenal.Xenophon.Homer’s Iliad.Homer’s Odyssey.Herodotus.Demosthenes.Thucydides.Æschylus.Euripides (2 vols.).

HELPS’S SPANISH CONQUEST. The Spanish Conquest in America, and its Relation to the History of Slavery and to the Government of Colonies. By Arthur Helps. 4 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $6 00.

HELPS’S SPANISH CONQUEST. The Spanish Conquest in America and its Connection to the History of Slavery and the Governance of Colonies. By Arthur Helps. 4 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $6.00.

HUME’S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. History of England, from the Invasion of Julius Cæsar to the Abdication of James II., 1688. By David Hume. A new Edition, with the Author’s last Corrections and Improvements. To which is Prefixed a short Account of his Life, written by Himself. With a Portrait of the Author. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9 00.

HUME’S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. History of England, from the Invasion of Julius Cæsar to the Abdication of James II., 1688. By David Hume. A new edition, featuring the author’s final corrections and improvements. This edition includes a brief account of his life, written by himself, along with a portrait of the author. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9.00.

GROTE’S HISTORY OF GREECE. 12 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $18 00.

GROTE’S HISTORY OF GREECE. 12 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $18.00.

HALE’S (Mrs.) WOMAN’S RECORD. Woman’s Record; or, Biographical Sketches of all Distinguished Women, from the Creation to the Present Time. Arranged in Four Eras, with Selections from Female Writers of each Era. By Mrs. Sarah Josepha Hale. Illustrated with more than 200 Portraits. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

HALE’S (Mrs.) WOMAN’S RECORD. Woman’s Record; or, Biographical Sketches of all Notable Women, from Creation to Now. Organized into Four Eras, with Selections from Female Writers of Each Era. By Mrs. Sarah Josepha Hale. Illustrated with over 200 Portraits. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

HALL’S ARCTIC RESEARCHES. Arctic Researches and Life among the Esquimaux: being the Narrative of an Expedition in Search of Sir John Franklin, in the Years 1860, 1861, and 1862. By Charles Francis Hall. With Maps and 100 Illustrations. The Illustrations are from Original Drawings by Charles Parsons, Henry L. Stephens, Solomon Eytinge, W. S. L. Jewett, and Granville Perkins, after Sketches by Captain Hall. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

HALL’S ARCTIC RESEARCHES. Arctic Researches and Life among the Eskimos: the Story of an Expedition to Find Sir John Franklin, in the Years 1860, 1861, and 1862. By Charles Francis Hall. With Maps and 100 Illustrations. The Illustrations are from Original Drawings by Charles Parsons, Henry L. Stephens, Solomon Eytinge, W. S. L. Jewett, and Granville Perkins, based on Sketches by Captain Hall. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

HALLAM’S CONSTITUTIONAL HISTORY OF ENGLAND, from the Accession of Henry VII. to the Death of George II. 8vo, Cloth, $2 00.

HALLAM’S CONSTITUTIONAL HISTORY OF ENGLAND, from the Accession of Henry VII to the Death of George II. 8vo, Cloth, $2.00.

HALLAM’S LITERATURE. Introduction to the Literature of Europe during the Fifteenth, Sixteenth, and Seventeenth Centuries. By Henry Hallam. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4 00.

HALLAM’S LITERATURE. Introduction to the Literature of Europe during the Fifteenth, Sixteenth, and Seventeenth Centuries. By Henry Hallam. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4.00.

HALLAM’S MIDDLE AGES. State of Europe during the Middle Ages. By Henry Hallam. 8vo, Cloth, $2 00.

HALLAM’S MIDDLE AGES. The State of Europe during the Middle Ages. By Henry Hallam. 8vo, Cloth, $2.00.

HILDRETH’S HISTORY OF THE UNITED STATES. First Series: From the First Settlement of the Country to the Adoption of the Federal Constitution. Second Series: From the Adoption of the Federal Constitution to the End of the Sixteenth Congress. 6 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $18 00.

HILDRETH’S HISTORY OF THE UNITED STATES. First Series: From the First Settlement of the Country to the Adoption of the Federal Constitution. Second Series: From the Adoption of the Federal Constitution to the End of the Sixteenth Congress. 6 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $18.00.

JAY’S WORKS. Complete Works of Rev. William Jay: comprising his Sermons, Family Discourses, Morning and Evening Exercises for every Day in the Year, Family Prayers, &c. Author’s enlarged Edition, revised. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6 00.

JAY’S WORKS. Complete Works of Rev. William Jay: including his Sermons, Family Talks, Morning and Evening Exercises for every Day of the Year, Family Prayers, etc. Author’s expanded Edition, revised. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6.00.

JOHNSON’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Samuel Johnson, LL.D. With an Essay on his Life and Genius, by Arthur Murphy, Esq. Portrait of Johnson. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4 00.

JOHNSON’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Samuel Johnson, LL.D. With an Essay on his Life and Genius, by Arthur Murphy, Esq. Portrait of Johnson. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4.00.

KINGLAKE’S CRIMEAN WAR. The Invasion of the Crimea, and an Account of its Progress down to the Death of Lord Raglan. By Alexander William Kinglake. With Maps and Plans. Two Vols. ready. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00 per vol.

KINGLAKE’S CRIMEAN WAR. The Invasion of Crimea, and a Record of its Development until the Death of Lord Raglan. By Alexander William Kinglake. With Maps and Plans. Two Volumes available. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00 per volume.

KRUMMACHER’S DAVID, KING OF ISRAEL. David, the King of Israel: a Portrait drawn from Bible History and the Book of Psalms. By Frederick William Krummacher, D.D., Author of “Elijah the Tishbite,” &c. Translated under the express Sanction of the Author by the Rev. M. G. Easton, M.A. With a Letter from Dr. Krummacher to his American Readers, and a Portrait. 12mo, Cloth, $1 75.

KRUMMACHER’S DAVID, KING OF ISRAEL. David, the King of Israel: a Portrait drawn from Bible History and the Book of Psalms. By Frederick William Krummacher, D.D., Author of “Elijah the Tishbite,” etc. Translated with the express approval of the Author by the Rev. M. G. Easton, M.A. Includes a Letter from Dr. Krummacher to his American Readers and a Portrait. 12mo, Cloth, $1.75.

LAMB’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Charles Lamb. Comprising his Letters, Poems, Essays of Elia, Essays upon Shakspeare, Hogarth, &c., and a Sketch of his Life, with the Final Memorials, by T. Noon Talfourd. Portrait. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 00.

LAMB’S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Charles Lamb. Including his Letters, Poems, Essays of Elia, Essays on Shakespeare, Hogarth, etc., and a Sketch of his Life, along with the Final Memorials, by T. Noon Talfourd. Portrait. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.00.

605 LIVINGSTONE’S SOUTH AFRICA. Missionary Travels and Researches in South Africa; including a Sketch of Sixteen Years’ Residence in the Interior of Africa, and a Journey from the Cape of Good Hope to Loando on the West Coast; thence across the Continent, down the River Zambesi, to the Eastern Ocean. By David Livingstone, LL.D., D.C.L. With Portrait, Maps by Arrowsmith, and numerous Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $4 50.

605 LIVINGSTONE’S SOUTH AFRICA. Missionary Travels and Researches in South Africa; including a Summary of Sixteen Years Living in the Interior of Africa, and a Journey from the Cape of Good Hope to Loando on the West Coast; then across the Continent, down the Zambezi River, to the Indian Ocean. By David Livingstone, LL.D., D.C.L. With Portrait, Maps by Arrowsmith, and many Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $4.50.

LIVINGSTONES’ ZAMBESI. Narrative of an Expedition to the Zambesi and its Tributaries, and of the Discovery of the Lakes Shirwa and Nyassa. 1858–1864. By David and Charles Livingstone. With Map and Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

LIVINGSTONES’ ZAMBESI. Story of an Expedition to the Zambesi and its Tributaries, and of the Discovery of Lakes Shirwa and Nyassa. 1858–1864. By David and Charles Livingstone. Includes Map and Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

M’CLINTOCK & STRONG’S CYCLOPÆDIA. Cyclopædia of Biblical, Theological, and Ecclesiastical Literature. Prepared by the Rev. John M’clintock, D.D., and James Strong, S.T.D. 3 vols. now ready. Royal 8vo. Price per vol., Cloth, $5 00; Sheep, $6 00; Half Morocco, $8 00.

M’CLINTOCK & STRONG’S CYCLOPEDIA. Cyclopedia of Biblical, Theological, and Ecclesiastical Literature. Prepared by Rev. John M’clintock, D.D., and James Strong, S.T.D. 3 volumes now available. Royal 8vo. Price per volume: Cloth, $5.00; Sheep, $6.00; Half Morocco, $8.00.

MARCY’S ARMY LIFE ON THE BORDER. Thirty Years of Army Life on the Border. Comprising Descriptions of the Indian Nomads of the Plains; Explorations of New Territory; a Trip across the Rocky Mountains in the Winter; Descriptions of the Habits of Different Animals found in the West, and the Methods of Hunting them; with Incidents in the Life of Different Frontier Men, &c., &c. By Brevet Brigadier-General R. B. Marcy, U.S.A., Author of “The Prairie Traveller.” With numerous Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, Beveled Edges, $3 00.

MARCY’S ARMY LIFE ON THE BORDER. Thirty Years of Army Life on the Border. This book includes descriptions of the Indian nomads of the plains, explorations of new territory, a winter trip across the Rocky Mountains, information about the habits of various animals found in the West, and methods for hunting them; along with stories from the lives of different frontier men, etc. By Brevet Brigadier-General R. B. Marcy, U.S.A., author of “The Prairie Traveller.” With numerous illustrations. 8vo, cloth, beveled edges, $3.00.

MACAULAY’S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. The History of England from the Accession of James II. By Thomas Babington Macaulay. With an Original Portrait of the Author. 5 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $10 00; 12mo, Cloth, $7 50.

MACAULAY’S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. The History of England from the Accession of James II. By Thomas Babington Macaulay. With an Original Portrait of the Author. 5 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $10.00; 12mo, Cloth, $7.50.

MOSHEIM’S ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY, Ancient and Modern; in which the Rise, Progress, and Variation of Church Power are considered in their Connection with the State of Learning and Philosophy, and the Political History of Europe during that Period. Translated, with Notes, &c., by A. Maclaine, D.D. A new Edition, continued to 1826, by C. Coote, LL.D. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $4 00.

MOSHEIM’S ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY, Ancient and Modern; where the rise, progress, and changes of church power are explored in relation to the state of education and philosophy, as well as the political history of Europe during that time. Translated with notes, etc., by A. Maclaine, D.D. A new edition, updated to 1826, by C. Coote, LL.D. 2 vols., 8vo, cloth, $4.00.

NEVIUS’S CHINA. China and the Chinese: a General Description of the Country and its Inhabitants; its Civilization and Form of Government; its Religious and Social Institutions; its Intercourse with other Nations; and its Present Condition and Prospects. By the Rev. John L. Nevius, Ten Years a Missionary in China. With a Map and Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $1 75.

NEVIUS’S CHINA. China and the Chinese: a General Description of the Country and its People; its Civilization and Government; its Religious and Social Institutions; its Interactions with Other Nations; and its Current Situation and Future Outlook. By the Rev. John L. Nevius, Ten Years as a Missionary in China. With a Map and Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $1.75.

OLIN’S (Dr.) LIFE AND LETTERS. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 00.

OLIN’S (Dr.) LIFE AND LETTERS. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.00.

OLIN’S (Dr.) TRAVELS. Travels in Egypt, Arabia Petræa, and the Holy Land. Engravings. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $3 00.

OLIN'S (Dr.) TRAVELS. Travels in Egypt, Arabia Petraea, and the Holy Land. Engravings. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $3.00.

OLIN’S (Dr.) WORKS. The Works of Stephen Olin, D.D., late President of the Wesleyan University. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 00.

OLIN’S (Dr.) WORKS. The Works of Stephen Olin, D.D., former President of Wesleyan University. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3.00.

OLIPHANT’S CHINA AND JAPAN. Narrative of the Earl of Elgin’s Mission to China and Japan, in the Years 1857, ’58, ’59. By Laurence Oliphant, Private Secretary to Lord Elgin. Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $3 50.

OLIPHANT’S CHINA AND JAPAN. Story of the Earl of Elgin’s Mission to China and Japan, in the Years 1857, ’58, ’59. By Laurence Oliphant, Private Secretary to Lord Elgin. Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $3.50.

OLIPHANT’S (Mrs.) LIFE OF EDWARD IRVING. The Life of Edward Irving, Minister of the National Scotch Church, London. Illustrated by his Journals and Correspondence. By Mrs. Oliphant. Portrait. 8vo, Cloth, $3 50.

OLIPHANT’S (Mrs.) LIFE OF EDWARD IRVING. The Life of Edward Irving, Minister of the National Scotch Church, London. Illustrated by his Journals and Correspondence. By Mrs. Oliphant. Portrait. 8vo, Cloth, $3.50.

PAGE’S LA PLATA. La Plata, the Argentine Confederation, and Paraguay. Being a Narrative of the Exploration of the Tributaries of the River La Plata and Adjacent Countries, during the Years 1853, ’54, ’55, and ’56, under the Orders of the United States Government. New Edition, containing Farther Explorations in La Plata, during 1859 and ’60. By Thomas J. Page, U.S.N., Commander of the Expeditions. With Map and numerous Engravings. 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

PAGE’S LA PLATA. La Plata, the Argentine Confederation, and Paraguay. This is a story about exploring the tributaries of the River La Plata and nearby countries during the years 1853, ’54, ’55, and ’56, ordered by the United States Government. New Edition, including additional explorations in La Plata during 1859 and ’60. By Thomas J. Page, U.S.N., Commander of the Expeditions. With a map and many engravings. 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

PRIME’S COINS, MEDALS, AND SEALS. Coins, Medals, and Seals, Ancient and Modern. Illustrated and Described. With a Sketch of the History of Coins and Coinage, Instructions for Young Collectors, Tables of Comparative Rarity, Price-Lists of English and American Coins, Medals, and Tokens, &c., &c. Edited by W. C. Prime, Author of “Boat Life in Egypt and Nubia,” “Tent Life in the Holy Land,” &c., &c. 8vo, Cloth, $3 50.

PRIME’S COINS, MEDALS, AND SEALS. Coins, Medals, and Seals, Ancient and Modern. Illustrated and Described. With a Brief History of Coins and Coinage, Tips for Young Collectors, Rarity Comparison Tables, Price Lists of English and American Coins, Medals, and Tokens, etc. Edited by W. C. Prime, Author of “Boat Life in Egypt and Nubia,” “Tent Life in the Holy Land,” etc. 8vo, Cloth, $3.50.

SPRING’S SERMONS. Pulpit Ministrations; or, Sabbath Readings. A Series of Discourses on Christian Doctrine and Duty. By Rev. Gardiner Spring, D.D., Pastor of the Brick Presbyterian Church in the City of New York. Portrait on Steel. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6 00.

SPRING’S SERMONS. Pulpit Messages; or, Sunday Readings. A Series of Talks on Christian Beliefs and Responsibilities. By Rev. Gardiner Spring, D.D., Pastor of the Brick Presbyterian Church in New York City. Steel Portrait. 2 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $6.00.

606 POETS OF THE NINETEENTH CENTURY. The Poets of the Nineteenth Century, Selected and Edited by the Rev. Robert Aris Willmott. With English and American Additions, arranged by Evert A. Duyckinck, Editor of “Cyclopædia of American Literature.” Comprising Selections from the Greatest Authors of the Age. Superbly Illustrated with 132 Engravings from Designs by the most Eminent Artists. In elegant small 4to form, printed on Superfine Tinted Paper, richly bound in extra Cloth, Beveled, Gilt Edges, $6 00; Half Calf, $6 00; Full Turkey Morocco, $10 00.

606 POETS OF THE NINETEENTH CENTURY. The Poets of the Nineteenth Century, Selected and Edited by the Rev. Robert Aris Willmott. With English and American Additions, arranged by Evert A. Duyckinck, Editor of “Cyclopædia of American Literature.” Featuring Selections from the Greatest Authors of the Era. Beautifully Illustrated with 132 Engravings from Designs by Leading Artists. In an elegant small 4to format, printed on Superfine Tinted Paper, beautifully bound in extra Cloth, Beveled, Gilt Edges, $6.00; Half Calf, $6.00; Full Turkey Morocco, $10.00.

SHAKSPEARE. The Dramatic Works of William Shakspeare, with the Corrections and Illustrations of Dr. Johnson, G. Steevens, and others. Revised by Isaac Reed. Engravings. 6 vols., Royal 12mo, Cloth, $9 00.

SHAKESPEARE. The Dramatic Works of William Shakespeare, with the Corrections and Illustrations of Dr. Johnson, G. Steevens, and others. Revised by Isaac Reed. Illustrations. 6 volumes, Royal 12mo, Cloth, $9.00.

SMILES’S LIFE OF THE STEPHENSONS. The Life of George Stephenson, and of his Son, Robert Stephenson; comprising, also, a History of the Invention and Introduction of the Railway Locomotive. By Samuel Smiles, Author of “Self-Help,” &c. With Steel Portraits and numerous Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $3 00.

SMILES’S LIFE OF THE STEPHENSONS. The Life of George Stephenson and his son, Robert Stephenson; also including a History of the Invention and Introduction of the Railway Locomotive. By Samuel Smiles, Author of “Self-Help,” etc. With Steel Portraits and many Illustrations. 8vo, Cloth, $3.00.

SMILES’S HISTORY OF THE HUGUENOTS. The Huguenots: their Settlements. Churches, and Industries in England and Ireland. By Samuel Smiles. With an Appendix relating to the Huguenots in America. Crown 8vo, Cloth, Beveled, $1 75.

SMILES'S HISTORY OF THE HUGUENOTS. The Huguenots: their Settlements, Churches, and Industries in England and Ireland. By Samuel Smiles. With an Appendix about the Huguenots in America. Crown 8vo, Cloth, Beveled, $1.75.

SMILES’S SELF-HELP. Self-Help; with Illustrations of Character, Conduct, and Perseverance. By Samuel Smiles. New Edition, Revised and Enlarged. 12mo, Cloth, $1 00.

SMILES’S SELF-HELP. Self-Help; with Illustrations of Character, Conduct, and Perseverance. By Samuel Smiles. New Edition, Revised and Enlarged. 12mo, Cloth, $1.00.

SPEKE’S AFRICA. Journal of the Discovery of the Source of the Nile. By Captain John Hanning Speke, Captain H. M. Indian Army, Fellow and Gold Medalist of the Royal Geographical Society, Hon. Corresponding Member and Gold Medalist of the French Geographical Society, &c. With Maps and Portraits and numerous Illustrations, chiefly from Drawings by Captain Grant. 8vo, Cloth, uniform with Livingstone, Barth, Burton, &c., $4 00.

SPEKE’S AFRICA. Journal of the Discovery of the Source of the Nile. By Captain John Hanning Speke, Captain H. M. Indian Army, Fellow and Gold Medalist of the Royal Geographical Society, Hon. Corresponding Member and Gold Medalist of the French Geographical Society, etc. With Maps, Portraits, and numerous Illustrations, mainly from Drawings by Captain Grant. 8vo, Cloth, matching the editions of Livingstone, Barth, Burton, etc., $4.00.

STRICKLAND’S (Miss) QUEENS OF SCOTLAND. Lives of the Queens of Scotland and English Princesses connected with the Regal Succession of Great Britain. By Agnes Strickland. 8 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $12 00.

STRICKLAND’S (Miss) QUEENS OF SCOTLAND. Lives of the Queens of Scotland and English Princesses linked to the Royal Lineage of Great Britain. By Agnes Strickland. 8 volumes, 12mo, Cloth, $12.00.

THE STUDENT’S HISTORIES.

THE STUDENT’S HISTORIES.

France. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

France. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

Gibbon. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Gibbon. Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

Greece. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Greece. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

Hume. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Hume. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

Rome. By Liddell. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Rome. By Liddell. Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

Old Testament History. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Old Testament History. Illustrations. 12mo, Hardcover, $2.00.

New Testament History. Engravings.. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

New Testament History. Illustrations. 12mo, Hardcover, $2.00.

Strickland’s Queens of England. Abridged. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00.

Strickland's Queens of England. Abridged. Illustrations. 12mo, Cloth, $2.00.

TENNYSON’S COMPLETE POEMS. The Complete Poems of Alfred Tennyson, Poet Laureate. With numerous Illustrations by Eminent Artists, and Three Characteristic Portraits. 8vo, Paper, 50 cents; Cloth, $1 00.

TENNYSON’S COMPLETE POEMS. The Complete Poems of Alfred Tennyson, Poet Laureate. With many illustrations by renowned artists, and three distinctive portraits. 8vo, Paper, 50 cents; Cloth, $1.00.

THOMSON’S LAND AND THE BOOK. The Land and the Book; or, Biblical Illustrations drawn from the Manners and Customs, the Scenes and the Scenery of the Holy Land. By W. M. Thomson, D.D., Twenty-five Years a Missionary of the A.B.C.F.M. in Syria and Palestine. With two elaborate Maps of Palestine, an accurate Plan of Jerusalem, and several hundred Engravings, representing the Scenery, Topography, and Productions of the Holy Land, and the Costumes, Manners, and Habits of the People. 2 large 12mo vols., Cloth, $5 00.

THOMSON’S LAND AND THE BOOK. The Land and the Book; or, Biblical Illustrations drawn from the Manners and Customs, the Scenes and the Scenery of the Holy Land. By W. M. Thomson, D.D., Twenty-five Years a Missionary of the A.B.C.F.M. in Syria and Palestine. With two detailed maps of Palestine, an accurate plan of Jerusalem, and several hundred illustrations depicting the scenery, geography, and products of the Holy Land, as well as the clothing, customs, and daily life of the people. 2 large 12mo volumes, Cloth, $5.00.

TICKNOR’S HISTORY OF SPANISH LITERATURE. With Criticisms on the particular Works, and Biographical Notices of Prominent Writers. 3 vols., 8vo, Cloth, $5 00.

TICKNOR’S HISTORY OF SPANISH LITERATURE. With Criticisms on the specific Works, and Biographical Notes on Notable Writers. 3 volumes, 8vo, Cloth, $5.00.

VÁMBÉRY’S CENTRAL ASIA. Travels in Central Asia. Being the Account of a Journey from Teheran across the Turkoman Desert, on the Eastern Shore of the Caspian, to Khiva, Bokhara, and Samarcand, performed in the Year 1863. By Arminius Vámbéry, Member of the Hungarian Academy of Pesth, by whom he was sent on this Scientific Mission. With Map and Woodcuts. 8vo, Cloth, $4 50.

VÁMBÉRY’S CENTRAL ASIA. Travels in Central Asia. This is the story of a journey from Tehran across the Turkmen Desert, on the eastern shore of the Caspian, to Khiva, Bukhara, and Samarkand, taken in 1863. By Arminius Vámbéry, a member of the Hungarian Academy of Pesth, who was sent on this scientific mission. With a map and illustrations. 8vo, cloth, $4.50.

WOOD’S HOMES WITHOUT HANDS. Homes Without Hands: being a Description of the Habitations of Animals, classed according to their Principle of Construction. By J. G. Wood, M.A., F.L.S., Author of “Illustrated Natural History.” With about 140 Illustrations, engraved by G. Pearson, from Original Designs made by F. W. Keyl and E. A. Smith under the Author’s Superintendence. 8vo, Cloth, Beveled Edges, $4 50.

WOOD’S HOMES WITHOUT HANDS. Homes Without Hands: a Description of Animal Dwellings, categorized by their Construction Principles. By J. G. Wood, M.A., F.L.S., Author of “Illustrated Natural History.” Featuring around 140 Illustrations, engraved by G. Pearson, based on Original Designs by F. W. Keyl and E. A. Smith under the Author’s Oversight. 8vo, Cloth, Beveled Edges, $4.50.

Transcriber’s Notes

Punctuation and spelling were made consistent when a predominant preference was found in this book; otherwise they were not changed.

Punctuation and spelling were standardized when a clear preference was identified in this book; otherwise, they were left unchanged.

The spelling and accent marks of non-English words were not changed. A few are noted below.

The spelling and accent marks of non-English words were not altered. A few are mentioned below.

Simple typographical errors were corrected; occasional unbalanced quotation marks retained.

Simple typographical errors were fixed; some uneven quotation marks were kept.

Ambiguous hyphens at the ends of lines were retained; occurrences of inconsistent hyphenation have not been changed.

Ambiguous hyphens at the ends of lines were kept; instances of inconsistent hyphenation have not been altered.

Text uses both “château” and “chateau”; both retained.

Text uses both “château” and “chateau”; both retained.

Index not checked for proper alphabetization or correct page references.

Index not checked for proper alphabetical order or correct page references.

Page 300: “with a gripe” probably is a misprint for “grip”.

Page 300: “with a gripe” is likely a typo for “grip”.

Page 365: “Marshal Brüne” may be a misprint for “Marshal Grüne”.

Page 365: “Marshal Brüne” might be a typo for “Marshal Grüne”.

Page 553: “Reisch-Diet” was printed that way.

Page 553: “Reisch-Diet” was printed like that.

Page 575: “Grand Entrèe” should be “Entrée”.

Page 575: “Grand Entrèe” should be “Entrée”.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!